THE SCIENCE OF HE APU T I CS, ACCORDING TO THE PRINCIPLES OF HOM(EOPATHY, BY BERNHARD B HR, M. D. TRANSLATED AND ENRICHED WITH NUMEROUS ADDITIONS FROM KAFKA AND OTHER SOURCES, BY CHARLES J. HEMPEL, M.D. VOL UM-]E I.L NEW YORK: BOERICKE & TAFEL, No. 145 GRAND STREET. BOSTON:-OTIS CLAPP. CHICAGO:-C. S. HALSEY.-KEEN & Co. CINCINNATI:-SMITH & WORTHINGTON. DETROIT:-E. A. LODGE. PHILADELPHI:-F. E. BOERICKE.- A. J. TAFEL. ST. LOUI:-H. C. G. LUYTIES.-JOHN MUNSON. 1 869. Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1869, byJ BOERICKE & TAFEL, In the Clerk's Office of the District Court of the Southern District of New York. KING & BAIRD, PRINTERS. CONTENTS OF THE SECOND VOLUME. SEVENTH SECTION. Pave Diseases of the Sexual Organs....................................................... 1 A. Diseases of the Male Sezxcal Organs............................................. 1 1. Urethritis. Gonorrhcea, Catarrh of the Urethra, Blennorrhcea of the Urethral Lining Membrane..................... 1 2. Orchitis, Inflammation of the Testes............................. 13 3. Spermatorrhcea........................................................... 16 B. Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs........................................ 20 1. Vaginitis, Catarrh of the Sexual Mucous Lining. Fluor Albus, Leucorrhoea, Whites.................................... 20 2. Metritis, Inflammation of the Womb............................. 27 8. Metritis puerperalis. Puerperal Fever, Inflammation of the Uterus during Confinement............................... 34 4. Oophoritis, Ovaritis. Inflammation of the Ovaries......... 45 5. Menstrual Anomalies................................................. 47 a. Derangements attendant upon the appearance of the M enses..................................................... 53 b. Amenorrhcea, Suppression or Delay of the Menses 55 c. Menstruatio Nimia, Profuse Menses.................... 57 d. Dysmenorrhea, ScantyMenses............................ 60 e. Difficult Menstruation, Ailments accompanying the Menses........................................................... 61 6. Metrorrhagia. Uterine Hemorrhage......................... 66 7. Carcinoma Uteri. Cancer of the Womb.................. 81 8. Various Morbid Conditions in the Sexual System of the Female.................................................................... 87 9. Vaginodynia, Neuralgia of the Vagina.............. 92 10. Mastitis, Inflammation of the Breasts.................. 95 11. M astodynia................................................................. 99 12. Carcinoma Mammae. Cancer of the Breasts................ 100 EIGHI5THI SECTION.~ Diseases of the Respiratory Organs................................................ 107 A. Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea............................................. 107 1. Laryngotracheitis Catarrhalis acuta. Acute Laryngotracheal Catarrh.......,.................................... 107 2. Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. Croup, Membranous Croup 112 3. Laryngotracheitis Chronica. Chronic Laryngotracheal Catarrh.................................................................. 129 (V) VI Contents of the Second Volume. Page 4. (Edema Glottidis, Laryngitis Submucosa, (Edema of the Glottis.......................................................... 137 5. Spasmus Glottidis, Spasm of the Glottis........................ 140 6. Ulcers of the Larynx, Helcosis seu ulcera laryngis.......... 145 B. Diseases of the Lungs................................................................. 149 1. Hypermmia of the Lungs. Congestion, Plethora of the Lungs..................................................................... 150 2. Pneumorrhagia, Pulmonary Hemorrhage....................... 154 8. Bronchitis Acuta, Acute Bronchitis........................... 164 4. Influenza, Grippe........................................................ 182 5. Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis, Whooping-Cough............ 193 6. Bronchitis Chronica, Chronic Bronchitis, Chronic Pulmonary or Bronchial Catarrh.................................... 210 7. Bronchiectasia, Dilatation of the Bronchia.................... 234 8. Emphysema Pulmonum, Emphysema of the Lungs......... 235 9. Pneumonia, Inflammation of the Lungs........................ 243 10. GangrEena Pulmonum, Gangrene of the Lungs.............. 303 11. (Edema Pulmonum, Hydrops Pulmonum, (Edema of the Lungs, Dropsy of the Lungs.................................... 307 12. Asthma................3........................................... 311 C. Diseases of the Diaphragm........................................................... 321 1. Diaphragmitis, Inflammation of the Diaphragm.............. 322 2. Singultus, Hiccup........................................................ 323 3. Hernia of the Diaphragm............................................. 324 D. Diseases of the Pleura.............................................................. 325 1. Pleuritis, Pleurisy, Inflammation of the Pleura.............. 325 2. Hydrothorax, Dropsy of the Chest:................................ 342 3. Pneumothorax............................................................ 343 NINTSH SECTION. Diseases of the Organs of Circulation.............................................. 345 A.' Diseases of the eart................................................................. 345 1. Carditis, Pericarditis, Endocarditis, Myocarditis. Inflammation of the Heart, Pericardium, Endocardium, Substance of the Heart................................................. 347 2. Hypertrophia Cordis, Hypertrophy of the Heart............ 372 3. Dilatatio Cordis, Dilatation of the Heart....................... 381 4. Adipositas Cordis, Fatty Degeneration of the Heart........ 382 5. Anomalies, Abnormal Conditions of the Orifices of the Heart, Valvular Diseases.......................................... 388 a. Insufficiency of the Mitral Valve....................... 388 b. Stenosis of the left Auriculo-ventricular Orifice 389 c. Insufficiency of the Aortic Valves.:................... 394 d. Stenosis of the Aortic Orifice........................... 396 e. Defects of the Orifices and Valves of the Right H eart......................................................... 399 6. Palpitation of the Heart.......................................... 399 7. Stenocardia, Angina Pectoris...................................... 405 Contents of the Second Volume. VII TENTH SECTION. Page Derangements of Single Systems...................................................... 410 A. Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, Articulations................................. 410 1. Ostitis, Periostitis, Pott's Disease. Inflammation of the Bones and Periosteum............................................. 410 2. Rhachitis, Rickets.................................................. 416 3. Enchondroma, Pedarthrocace, Spina Ventosa............... 40 4. Psoitis, Inflammation of the Psoas-muscle..................... 421 5. Lumbago.................................................................... 422 6. Progressive Muscular Paralysis................................... 424 7. Inflammation of Joints................................................ 426 a. Coxalgia, Coxarthrocace, Inflammation of the Hipjoint............................................................. 427 b. Gonarthrocace, Tumor Albus Genu, Gonitis, Inflammation of the Knee-joint........................... 430 c. Inflammation of the Tarsus................................. 433 B. Diseases of the Arteries, Veins, Lymphatics and Lymnphatic Glands 435 1. Diseases of the Arteries............................................... 435 2. Diseases of the Veins........................................... 436 a. Phlebitis, Inflammation of the Veins..................... 436 b. Phlebectasia, Varices, Dilatation of the Veins....... 438 3. Diseases of the Lymphatic Vessels and Glands............... 442 a. Lymphangioitis and Lymphadenitis Acuta............ 442 b. Lymphadenitis Chronica, Chronic Inflammation of Lymphatic Glands.......................................... 445 C. Diseases of the Nerves..................................................447 1. Ischias................................. 447 2. Neuralgia Intercostalis. Intercostal Neuralgia............... 450 D. Diseases of the Skin.................................................................. 452 1. Erythema................................................................... 453 2. Erysipelas.................................................... 455 3. Roseola, Rubeolas..............:......................................... 465 4. Urticaria, Nettlerash....................... 466 5. Miliaria, Rash.............................................. 469 6. Pityriasis, Dandruff, Dandriff.............................. 470 7. Psoriasis, Scaly Tetter................................................. 472 8. Ichthyosis, Fish-skin, Porcupine Disease.................... 473 9. Lichen, Strophulus, Tooth-Rash............................. 474 10. Prurigo. 4.6............................................... 476 11. Acne, Stone-pock.4 7................................................... 478 12. Sycosis, Mentagra... 480 13. Acne Rosacea, Gutta Rosacea, Copper-nose, Bottle-nose... 482 14. Lupus, Wolf, Jacob's Ulcer............................................ 483 15. Herpes, Tetter.............................................................. 486 a. Herpes Facialis.................................................. 487 b. Herpes Prseputialis................. 487 c. Herpes Zoster, Zona, Shingles................................ 488 d. Herpes Iris and Circinnatus................................... 490 viII Contents of the Second Volume. Page 16. Eczema..................................................................... 490 17. Impetigo..................................................................... 497 18. Ecthyma, Rupia...................................... 499 19. Pemphygus.................................................501 20. Furuncle, Carbuncle, Anthrax................................. 503 21. Seborrhoea............................................ 505 22. Favus, Honey-comb Tetter, Scald-head............... 506 23. Scabies, Itch................................................................ 507 ELEVENTIT SECTION. Constitutional Diseases................................................................ 513 A. Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases........................................ 513 1. Morbilli, Measles........................................................ 513 2. Scarlatina, Scarlet-fever............................................. 522 3. Variola, Small-pox....................................................... 532 4. Syphilis.................................................... 542 a. Primary Chancre.................................................. 543 b. Secondary Syphilis...................................... 548 c. Tertiary Syphilis................................................. 551 B. Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Di ses................................... 563 1. Intermittent Fever, Fever and Ague............................. 563 2. Typhus........................................................................ 576 3. Febris Icterodes, Yellow Fever....................................... 602 4. Cholera Asiatica............................................ 613 C. Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection........................... 624 1. Chlorosis, Green-sickness............................................. 624 2. Rhumatism.......................................................... 630 a. Acute Articular Rheumatism............................... 630 b. Acute Muscular Rheumatism................................ 632 c. Chronic Articular Rheumatism............................ 633 8. Arthritis, Gout................................................ 640 4. Dropsy........................................................................ 645 5. Scorbutus, Scurvy.................................................. 649 6. Scrofulosis.................................................................. 652 7. Tuberculosis.......................................................... 658 8. Constitutional Plethora, Polyaemia, Hyperamia............... 681 9. Anaemia, Oligaemia. Deficiency or rather Paleness of the Blood............................6.................................... 687 10. Congenital Anmmia............................................ 701 11. Consecutive Anemia................................................... 709 12. Secondary Anmmia.................................................... 711 13. Marasmus, Tabes..................................................... 711 14. Obesitas, Adiposis, Polysarcia, Obesity........................... 714 -15. Uraemia.....................................................72.......... 720 16. Pyaemia. Purulent Decomposition of the Blood............... 728 17. Septicaemia. Putrid Decomposition of the Blood............. 732 18. Gastromalacia, Softening of the Stomach........................ 737 19. Goitre, Bronchocele, Derbyshire Neck................ 743 SEVENTH SECTION. Diseases of the Sexual Organs. A. DISEASES OF THE MALE SEXUAL ORGANS. 1. Urethritis. Gonorrhcea, Catarrh of the Urethra, Blennorrhoea of the Urethral Mucous Lining. IF we have not made a distinction between virulent and nonvirulent gonorrhcea, it is because the last-named disease is so vague and indefinite and, moreover, of such rare occurrence, that a bare allusion to the same will suffice for all practical purposes. Etiology. The non-virulent blennorrhcea is caused by the irritation produced by foreign bodies in the urethra (calculi, etc.); or it may be caused by excessive sexual intercourse, intercourse during the menstrual flow, irritating drugs, etc., although not frequently by the latter; it may likewise have a catarrhal origin and, finally, may constitute a symptom of other inflammations,,nore especially of the bladder and prostate gland. In a case of blennorrhcea we should never be too hasty in not attributing it to the contact with an infectious virus. Gonorrhcea proper or an infectious blennorrhcea of the urethra, is always occasioned by infectious contact; and, although we cannot deny the possibility that gonorrhoea may result without sexual intercourse, yet in the majority of cases it may be boldly asserted that an impure coition is the cause of the disease. Of course, the patients make every possible effort to conceal the origin of their trouble. What conditions and influences have to co-operate in order to produce an infection, is difficult to determine: all we know is, that the same woman will infect one person without infecting the other. The degree of sexual excitement may possibly constitute an additional cause of infection; at all events it is remarkable that novices are almost always caught. 1 (1) 2 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. Regarding the nature of the gonorrhceal contagium, opinions still differ. Some deny the specific nature of the contagium, placing it in the same category as the secretion of epidemic blepharophthalmitis; they assert that gonorrhcea is caused by contact with the secretion caused by an intense catarrhal inflammation of the vagina. This view is not entirely unfounded, and is more particularly supported by the circumstance that gonorrhcea does not superinduce constitutional diseases. Others attribute to the gonorrhceal virus a specific character, and the power of producing constitutional maladies, concerning whose essential actuality and nature, we shall offer some further remarks in the following paragraphs. The gonorrhceal virus has even been supposed to be identical with the chancrepoison; this opinion has, however, been abandoned. We cannot afford time or space to enter upon a more extensive discussion of these points, to which we shall, however, refer somewhat more fully in the next paragraph. [Jahr's recent work on Venereal Diseases, translated and edited with numerous notes and additions by Chs. J. Hempel, M. D., and published by W. Radde, No. 550 Pearl St., New York, is the best work on this important subject now extant, in the literature of our School; no physician who desires to have a full and accurate knowledge of the various opinions now prevalent regarding the nature of the gonorrhceal virus and the syphilitic contagium, or of the manifold disorders which they are capable of producing, from the simplest blennorrhoea to the most terrible disorganization, or of their homceopathic treatment as conducted in accordance with strictly and unimpeachably scientific principles, can do without this work. I.] Symptoms and Course. The time between the first communication of the gonorrheal disease and its actual manifestation is from three to eight days, very seldom either less or more, although the patients are very apt to indicate a longer period. Usually, however, this is an intentional deception, but may likewise be an error, for the reason that the disease sometimes sets in so mildly that it may have existed for some days without having been noticed. The duration of the stage of incubation may likewise differ, in consequence of differences inherent in the degree of infectiousness of the secretion, as has already been noticed when speaking of blennorrhcea of the eyes. The affection commences with a titillating, painless, sometimes even voluptuous sensation in the urethra, from which a small quantity of a transparent, slimy secretion is discharged by which the orifice is glued together in the morning. At Urethritis. 3 this stage the visible portion of the urethral mucous membrane is already redder and swollen. The peculiar titillation is followed byan increased\ desire to urinate and increased erections, sometimes also by nocturnal emissions. In a few days the titillation changes to a pain, the urging to urinate becomes more frequent, the pain at urinating becomes intolerable, and the urine of which only a few drops are emitted, becomes scalding hot, so that it seems like fire. If the urine is emitted in larger quantity, the pains during the emission are less severe, buit so much more violent immediately after. The concentrated urine, moreover, causes an increased pain, on which account the first discharge of urine early in the morning. is the most distressing. The orifice of the urethra now begins to swell quite perceptibly, the lips look very red. The secretion still remains scanty, looks yellow or greenish-yellow, is thick, stiffens the linen with yellow or greenish-yellow stains, and, in the morning is easily squeezed out in an increased quantity. The sensitiveness of the urethra to pressure now extends to the fossa navicularis. The erections, especially at night, become more frequent and continuous, causing the patient great pain in consequence of the stretching of the exceedingly sensitive urethra; emissions now occur very rarely. Shortly after this, the purulent secretion increases in quantity, but preserves its greenish-yellow color. The parts stained by the discharge, the glans and prepuce, swell; the smegura is secreted more abundantly, excoriations and small superficial ulcers show themselves. -The inflammatory irritation of the prepuce easily results in phimosis or paraphimosis. The further extension of the disease is evident from the fact that the urethra now is sensitive in its whole length. It is only in a few cases that the gonorrhoea remains confined to the anterior portion of the urethra. This socalled inflammatory stage seldom lasts less than eight days, generally a fortnight. General febrile symptoms are seldom present; what might be considered as such, is owing to the mental excitement of the patient and to the intensity of the pain. Towards the end of this first stage the discharge generally becomes very copious, but its color changes more and more to that of a whitish mucus, and assumes a more fluid consistence. At the same time the pains at urinating abate almost entirely, leaving at most only a disagreeable feeling, the erections becomes less frequent and painful; on the other hand, the nocturnal emissions are apt to be more frequent and to be followed by slight exacerbations. The white secretion leaves gray and stiff stains on the linen, with a yellowish point in 4 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. the centre. In favorable cases the whole disease is terminated in five to seven weeks amid a gradual abatement of all the symptoms. Such a simple and favorable course does not by any means constitute the rule; generally we meet with one or more complications. In the first stage, we not unfrequently meet with a considerable inflammation, on which account a gonorrhea of this kind has been terned erythematous, with distinct febrile motions. The inflammatory stage may be protracted beyond the above-named period. In the next place we sometimes observe inflamed spots in the neigh borhood of the urethra, elongated or rounded infiltrations which sometimes terminate in abscesses, but are not always of great importance. The extension of the inflammation along the whole course of the urethra is apt to superinduce a simple congestive or even inflammatory affection of the prostate gland, rarely of the bladder. An inflammation of the prostate gland involves danger, because it may result in a more or less complete retention of urine, or terminate in suppuration. Orchitis will be spoken of more fully by and by. Inflammatory swellings of the inguinal glands, socalled gonorrhoeal buboes, are very common. They are of no4special importance, and disappear of themselves as soon as the inflammatory stage has run its course. Isolated deviations from this picture of gonorrhoea, exert little or no influence upon its general course. The so-called dry gonorrhcea consists in a short-lasting suspension of the purulent secretion, which is most commonly accompanied by an exacerbation of the inflammatory symptoms. It not unfrequently happens that at the commencement of the disease streaks of blood are mixed up with the pus, which does not influence the further course of the disease. The so-called torpid gonorrhea which has the peculiar characteristic of being totally or partially without any inflammatory symptoms, is of rare occurrence and mostly attacks individuals who have had the disease more than once. It cannot be denied that repeated attacks of gonorrhcea and the cauterizing action of the injections used during the treatment of such attacks, diminish the disposition to contract an inflammatory gonorrhoea. One of the most painful complications is chordee by which is understood the curving of the penis downwards during an erection. It arises when the corpora cavernosa have become involved in tLe inflammation and the consequent infiltration of these bodies does not permit the interstitial swelling of these parts during an erec Urethritis. 5 tion. This trouble is so much more serious as this condition of the corpora cavernosa may remain a permanent disorganization. One of the most ordinary consequences of gonorrhcea, which is so common, that it may almost be considered the rule, is gleet, a chronic urethritis or secondary gonorrhcea. It arises gradually from the acute form, the discharge becoming more and more scanty, clearer and thinner, and continuing all the time, sometimes for years, unless arrested by medical interference. It often defies all treatment. A discharge of this kind would be of comparatively trifling importance if we knew to a certainty whether it is infectious or not, the latter supposition having undoubtedly the larger amount of probability in its favor. The treacherous stains on the linen are, of course, a source of great anxiety to the sufferers, and it is not to be wondered if they desire to be freed from their distress. Finally, exacerbations will occur duriing gleet, which, if they do not result in an attack of acute gonorrhcea, cause some pain at urinating and an increased, whitish discharge. Such exacerbations sometimes set in after slight colds, after drinking beer or wine, or even after coition. Gleet is no guarantee against a fresh infection, but this may absorb it instead of rendering it more inveterate. Among the sequele which may involve the bladder, prostate gland, etc., we note more especially strictures of the urethra. One cause of stricture may be a contracting cicatrix in the urethra, in which case the bougie is alone capable of affording help. Or the stricture may depend upon infiltration and subselquent callous hypertrophy of the tissue surrounding the urethra, in which case it is sometimes felt externally like a hard, elongated swelling. We shall devote a few lines to the so-called gonorrhceal disease and gonorrhceal metastases. Hahnemann speaks of two kinds of gonorrhcea, a benign kind which may be regarded as a local disease of the urethra, and another kind depending upon the sycosic contagium. Itartmann observes, that the two kinds cannot well be distinguished in a given case. It can scarcely be supposed that condylomata constitute a distinct phenomenon in gonorrhcea, which may run its course as completely and rapidly with, as without them. If blennorhceic condylomata constituted a specific product, ophthalmic blennorhcea ought to be a result of the sycosic miasm, since condylomatous growths likewise occur in the former disease. Be this as it may, it is of very little consequence whether there are two kinds of gonorrhcea, for in practice we cannot make this distinction even if we would. It is an established fact, that the gonorrhceal bears no 6 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. resemblance to the syphilitic contagium, by which is meant that the former does not develop, as a more or less regular consequence, a -constitutional malady, and that it acts like the contagium of the ophthalmic blennorhcea and similarly to the contagium of small-pox, scarlatina, etc. Or shall we consider these contagia as syphilitic because their respective diseases sometimes leave severe constitutional derangements behind them? In our opinion, a gonorrhceal epidemic disease neither exists, nor is it at all possible. At all events, if anl intense gonorrhceal infection, including, of course, the absurd manner in which it is often treated, gives rise to a constitutional disease, it is wrong to hold the gonorrhoea responsible for it, any more than that it may have acted as the exciting cause or the spark that may have ignited the accumulated combustible material. This view is supported by a number of analogies, whereas the other view requires -for its proof a mass of speculative hypotheses. Let the partisans of this doctrine be invited to point to a case of gonorrhoeal constitutional disease. If such a thing did at all exist, it certainly cannot be difficult to pick out a dozen cases among the tens of thousands that have been treated for gonorrhcea. And then it would be incumbent upon them to show that in those cases the gonorrhcea was a simple blennorrhcea and not caused by a syphilitic ulcer. Hartmann has not made this distinction, nor is it probable that Iahnemann did so. Gonorrhceal metastasis, is likewise a theory of very questionable authenticity. Orchitis is certainly not to be regarded as such a metastasis and, as regards gonorrhceal rheumatism, which is admitted even by the most obstinate sceptics, we are not quite sure whether the medicines which the patient took, have not more to do with it than the gonorrhcea. Under homceopathic treatment we have never yet met with a single case of pretended metastasis. Treatment. Hartmann's views in respect to the treatment of gonorrhcea differ from our own in many respects. According to Hartmann, Hahnemann gives the following instructions for the treatment of gonorrhea: "Sycosic gonorrhoea is cured most certainly and radically by the internal use of Thuya, which is homceopathic to this disease, giving one dose of a few pellets of the 30th potency, which, if no improvement has taken place in twenty, thirty or forty days, is to be followed by an equally small dose of the 12th potency of Nitric acid which must be permitted to act for an equally long period. The miasm of the other benign kinds of gonorrhcea does not seem to infect the general organism, and to re Urethritis. 7 main localized in the urinary organs. This kind of gonorrhcea yields to a single drop of the fresh juice of parsley (succus Petroselini), provided the frequent urging to urinate indicates this drug, or to a drop of an alcoholic solution of Copaiva, unless the intense inflammation and the debilitating treatmenthaveroused the latent psora which hitherto had been slumbering in the organism of the patient, in which case it often happens that a lingering gonorrhcea is excited into action which will only yield to an antipsoric treatment." Hartmann replies to these statements in the following words: "The simple gonorrhcea yields only in a few cases to the tincture of parsley or to the alcoholic solution of Copaiva: nor have I been able to cure sycosic gonorrhea with nothing but Thuya; in general this kind of gonorrhcea cannot well be separated from the benign form, unless condylomata are present, or the patient knows positively that the woman who infected him, had sycosis. The same remark applies to figwarts. Quite recently I treated a case of sycosic condylomata which would not yield to Thuya, but got well in ten days after a single dose of Nitric acid 1; in another case I effected a cure with two doses of Cinnabaris; in other cases other mercurial preparations were required." At a later period he adds: "In many cases of gonorrhea all three remedies proposed by Hahnemann, and even many others, have to be used for a cure."-"I know now that gonorrhcea which sets in with great violence at first, is much more easily managed, if Thuya is used at once at the commencement. Nevertheless, I admit that I am as yet unable to distinguish sycosic gonorrhea from any other form unless condylomata are present. *Gonorrhcea attended with condylomata is in most cases a secondary affection, as may be inferred from the fact that it disappears simultaneously. with the sycosic disease against which the treatment has to be directed." The idea of a so-called gonorrhceal disease is very plainly enunciated in the preceding paragraph. It is evident that the doctrine of a sycosic miasm owes its origin to the difficulty of explaining the frequently peculiar and chronic course of gonorrhoea; but it is wrong to undertake to explain that which requires to be explained by resorting to an explanation which is itself unintelligible. If any one should consider a statement of this kind as disrespectful to Hahnemann, let him consider that it is much better to admit defects than to wilfully close one's eyes to them. I-ow many cures has any homceopathic physician made in accordance with Hahnemann's precepts? A normnal gonorrhcea runs a course of five to seven weeks. IHow can we 8 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. talk about cures if we are to let remedies act for forty or eighty days? If a gonorrhsea disappears under Hahnemann's treatment, what has Thuya or Nitric acid to do with the cure? We boldly assert that most homoeopathic physicians employ other means and methods in order to secure the cure of gonorrhcea. If the gonorrhoea disappears in the fourth week, we are entitled to consider this a cure. It will scarcely ever yield in a shorter period of time. Hartmann admits that this disease cannot be cured by means of a strict comparison of the symptoms, and, that we cannot get along without resorting to a certain empiricism. We fully agree with him in this opinion; hence the reader must not expect to find the use of each of the following remedies accounted for by an enumeration of the symptoms. For the first stage of an uncomplicated gonorrhcea there is no better simile and no more efficient remedy than Mercurius solubilis. This drug has the whole group of symptoms; tickling in the urethra when touching it at urinating, the tickling is of a voluptuous sort, attended with violently excited sexual desire; greenish-yellow purulent secretion from the urethra, with traces of blood; inflammation of the prepuce and glans with balanorrhcea; breaking out of little sores; urging to urinate, with frequent and painful emissions, etc. The choice of Mercurius is therefore in strict accord with homceopathic principles, but does not depend, as Hartmann fancies, upon the resemblance of the gonorrhceal to the chancre-virus, for it does not exist. If Hartmann states that he has cured but few cases of gonorrhcea with Mercurius, we do not find this strange; Mercurius is not sufficient to a cure, and even if it were, it would not cure the disease at once, for it cannot be cut short by internal treatment. Let it suffice to state that most homceopathic physicians prefer Mercurius as long as the inflammatory symptoms continue. Some of the above-mentioned complications likewise require Mercurius. We allude more particularly to inflammatory infiltrations of the prostate and to the parts adjoining the urethra. It is surprising that such infiltrations scarcely ever occur if the gonorrhea is treated with Mercurius from the beginning. If chordce sets in, Mercurius is indicated by the cause producing the chordee. Gonorrhceal buboes likewise require Mercurius. The doses should not be too small; we have always had more success with the second trituration than with the higher attenuations; odie or two grains every morning or even every other morning are quite sufficient; it may not be advisable to continue the use of this drug longer than ten days or a fortnight. Urethritis. 9 Hepar sulphuris is the best remedy to give after Mercurius. The symptoms referring to the disease are not very characteristic, but the success obtained in very many cases, is remarkably striking. This medicine is given as soon as the discharge assumes a whitish color and the pains abate quite considerably. This usually takes place about the ninth or tenth day. Under the persevering use of this remedy, the discharge will either cease entirely in the fourth week, or else become so trifling, that the pain will almost cease; nor will a secondary discharge remain, except in a very few cases. Mercurius and Hepar sulphuris are tolerably sure remedies for an uncomplicated gonorrhcea of moderate intensity. The various deviations from the average course of the disease will require a few additional remedies. For the excessive sexual excitement during the inflammatory period of gonorrhcea, with almost unceasing painful erections, especially at night, violent urging to urinate, with inability to void more than a few drops, discharge of blood, or if there is no discharge as in dry gonorrhoea, Cantharides will be found excellent. This remedy should not be given too strong; even the third trituration may still cause an homceopathic aggravation. If the gonorrhoea sets in without any marked inflammatory symptoms; if the discharge is copious, rather white than yellow, and causing a superficial inflammation of the glans and prepuce, Cannabis is preferable to Mercurius at the outset. Marked sexual excitement argues against, rather than in favor of the remedy. In the subsequent course of the disease where Hepar has been advised, Cannabis sometimes has a very good curative effect. This medicine should be given in the lowest attenuations. The true torpid gonorrhcea which is more particularly met with in individuals that have been infected several times, requires for its cure Thuya, Acidum nitr., Sulphur and likewise Hepar sulphuris, and in general, the remedies recommended for secondary gonorrhcea. As we said before, gonorrhceal buboes are best treated with Mercurius; but after they have passed into a chronic-inflammatory condition, Clematis erecta or Kali iodatum should be employed. Chordee does not require any special treatment: it is best acted upon by Mercurius. If the erections are frequent and continuous, Cantharides may relieve them. An admixture of blood in the discharge is not an alarming symptom, and is met by most of the previously-named remedies. 10 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. If the bladder becomes involved in the inflammation, the medicines indicated for cystitis, will have to be used. Secondary gonorrhcea constitutes, so to speak, a separate affection; it is one of the most obstinate plagues both to the physician and patient, and its removal is so much more difficult as it presents a great uniformity of symptoms which greatly interferes with the selection of the suitable homceopathic agent. The published cases shed very little light regarding the preference that should be given to one or the other remedy; it is, indeed, very difficult to distinguish between a cure effected by the action of Nature and that of the remedy. According to the experience of most physicians Thu'ya occidentalis is the best remedy. It should not be given as long as inflammatory symptoms are present; nevertheless, it is recommended by many, and even by Hahnemann, at the outset of gonorrhcea. In the acute stage Hartmann only derived benefit from Thuya if condylomata were present; on the contrary, in secondary gonorrhma, he found it very efficacious, which many other practitioners confirm by their own experience. Although the presence of condylomata is a good indication, yet Thuya likewise acts well if no condylomata are present. Nitri acidum competes with Thuya, but will scarcely ever prove useful, except in the secondary form of gonorrhea. As a rule it seems to act best in cases where Thuya had proved useless. Petroleum has been recommended in former times, but is now very generally abandoned on account of its inefficiency in this disease. It has likewise been recommended in the acute form, more particularly if the neck of the bladder is very much involved. Capsicur may likewise prove useful under such circumstances. Sulphur sometimes has a good effect if all the other remedies have proved fruitless; nevertheless it cannot be depended upon for certain. In strictures occasioned by chronic-inflammatory infiltrations it is an important remedy. Clematis erecta and Nitri ae. should, however, be tried first for this trouble. Strictures depending upon the presence of cicatrices in the urethra, are beyond the reach of internal treatment and have to be managed by surgical means, the bougie, etc. The following remedies have likewise either been used or recommended. In acute gonorrhcea: Balsam. copaivoe, Tussilago petasites, Petroselinum; the last-named remedy deserves the most attention, Urethritis. 11 although it is not used much by practitioners generally. In gleet: Cubebce, Agnus castus, Mezereurn, lodium, Phosphori acidum. [In several inveterate cases of gonorrhcea, where injections had been used for several months without the least benefit, a cure was effected by Kafka by means of the internal use of Matico 1, a Peruvian plant known in Peru as the Yerba del soldado, (the soldier's weed or herb.) H.] It cannot be denied that Homceopathy cannot boast of any very brilliant results in the treatment of gonorrhcea. It is only exceptionally that a real gonorrhea yields in a few days to internal homreopathic treatment; it generally takes weeks to cure the disease, and even then the gradual transformation of the disease into a gleetish discharge cannot be avoided. Have we not yet discovered the right remedies? Or do we not make a proper use of the remedies we have? In this condition of things it certainly behooves us to ascertain how gonorrhcea is treated by physicians of other Schools. The most common method now in vogue is a vigorous cauterization of the urethra with Nitrate of silver, zinc, etc. Not even the most inveterate doubter can deny that a gonorrhcea is sometimes cut short by such a proceeding; on the other hand, it is certain that a cure does not always take place in this way, that this treatment is attended with severe pain, and that it is not without danger as regards the supervention of strictures. This last circumstance is of course flatly denied by the partisans of this checking or aborting method. Astringent injections after the inflammatory stage is passed, frequently lead to good results, nor are their secondary effects attended with the danger involved in the former method; nevertheless they are not absolutely reliable, and it often happens that the gonorrhea breaks out again after a suppression of several days. Large quantities of Copaiva and Cubebs sometimes suppress the discharge for a few days, but it frequently returns again with a renewed fierceness and changes to a most obstinate gleet. In addition to these disappointments the gastrointestinal canal is sometimes very much weakened by these drugs. Moreover it is our conviction that these two drugs are the most frequent cause of gonorrheal orchitis and of the peculiar gonorrhceal rheumatism, neither of which conditions has ever occurred to us under*a strict homeopathic treatment. Upon the whole, we are willing to admit that these severe methods of treatment are now and then crowned with brilliant success; but on the other hand we believe that they do not counterbalance 12 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. the dangers incident to this treatment; we believe that a gonor. rhcea treated in this manner, without being cured, becomes exceed. ingly inveterate. Hence we prefer, under all circumstances, the slower but safer homceopathic treatment, were it for no better reason than that it never does any positive harm. It might be worth while to ascertain how often a strict homceopathic treatment of gonorrhcea has resulted in orchitis, strictures, cystitis, etc. Such cases will be few indeed. Another advantage of the homceopathic treatment of gonorrhcea, which is readily perceived and appreciated by the patients, is the circumstance that they need not impose upon themselves distressing inconveniences. It is well, however, that the attention of the patient should be directed at the very commencement of the treatment to the difference between the allopathic and the homeopathic methods. The patient's mode of living constitutes an important part in the treatment of gonorrhcea. The views of physicians differ greatly in this respect. Some doctors torment their patients half to death by their pedantic dogmatism in regulating the diet and general mode of living.: Abundant experience has satisfied us that so much pedantic care is uncalled-for. The patient may take exercise, but should avoid all severe exertions and remain as much as possible in a recumbent posture. Every patient should wear from the start a good suspensory which we do not, however, regard as a preventive against orchitis. The usual diet may be pursued with the following exceptions: The patient must abstain from fat food, eat meat moderately, avoid spices, spirits, wine and beer, and likewise coffee during the first period of the treatment; during the subsequent treatment coffee may be drank without hesitation. In order to avoid the nocturnal erections, the supper should be very light and eaten in good season; after supper all beverages should be abstained from. Balanitis and phimosis are best prevented by frequently washing the penis with tepid water; if the glans is covered by the prepuce, the water should be injected under the prepuce. Physicians should never omit to direct their patients' attention to the danger of gonorrhceal virus getting into their eyes. By systematically drinking cold water, the urine becomes much less concentrated. My patients drink a glassful every hour. The night-urine is especially irritating; on this account the patients should cdink two or three glasses of water on rising in the morning, and should then wait forty or fifty minutes before urinating; during this period the larger portion of the water will have passed into the bladder. By Urethritis. 13 pursuing this course we have always got along tolerably well, and our patients enjoy the advantage of being able to attend to their usual avocations. That even severe exercise may not always have an injurious effect upon gonorrhoea, has become evident to us by the example of dozens of soldiers who, in order not to be sent to the hospital by their regimental physician, were treated by us secretly and Who attended to their military duties all the time, even those who served in the artillery. We have never seen any injurious consequences result from this management. As a matter of course, the presence of important complications during the course of gonorrhcea will require corresponding modifications in all these arrangements. In recent cases of secondary gonorrhcea, the use of cold water, as above recommended, should likewise be resorted to; in cases of long standing it has no effect. The injections which Hahnemann likewise concedes as proper, have sometimes, but not always, a favorable effect. Excellent injections are prepared of claret diluted with water, to which small quantities of Tannin may be added. We have never obtained equally favorable results with weak solutions of Nitrate of Silver, Muriate of Gold, Sublimate, Thuya; nor have we done any better with lime-water, or solutions of Zinc, Copper, or Lead. 2. Orchitis. Inflammation of the Testes. Now and then this affection is met with as the result of mechanical injuries, but most frequently originates in gonorrhcea. It not only supervenes during the course of acute urethritis, but it may likewise set in suddenly during gleet, generally without any apparent exciting cause. Severe exertion or the discontinuance of the use of suspensories are said to sometimes cause the disease, but this is not an established fact. The excessive use of beer or wine is a much more active cause of the disease, probably because the inflammation is very much increased by such stimulants. Both Cubebs and Copaiva hold the same relation to gonorrhcea. They have a specific effect upon the urethra, and it is easily conceivable that, instead of effecting a cure when given in large quantities, they aggravate the inflammatory symptoms and, owing to the specific action which they likewise exert upon the testicles; communicate the inflammation to these organs. This point has not yet been substantiated by provings on the healthy. At any rate it is strange that the exhibition of these two drugs should be so frequently and speedily followed by 14 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. orchitis which is scarcely ever observed under strictly homceopathic treatment unless the patient should commit some gross indiscretion. It might be well to inquire into this circumstance; the result might suggest additional reasons for preferring the homceopathic treatment of gonorrhcea. That orchitis takes place in consequence of the spread of the urethral inflammation through the seminal vesicles to the vas deferens and the epididymis, is distinctly shown by the painfulness of the former organs. A gonorrhoeal metastasis is out of the question, because the gonorrhceal discharge either continues side by side with the orchitis, or only disappears after the orchitis is fully developed, not before, in the same manner as a nasal, catarrh disappears during the supervention of a more serious disease of the respiratory organs. Syntptoms. Orchitis seldom sets in suddenly. Ordinarily it commences with slight drawing pains in the spermatic cord which is sensitive to contact. At the same time the patient experiences violent tearing pains in theothigh of the affected side. The weight of the testicles at first is troublesome, then becomes painful and finally intolerable. In one or two days the epididymis becomes painful to pressure, swells with more or less rapidity, and shortly after is succeeded by an inflammatory effusion into the tunica pro-' pria, in consequence of which the testicle very soon enlarges to the size of a fist. The pains now become agonizing; the patient has to confine himself to a horizontal posture with the testicle properly supported. The pain is a burning-tearing pain, most frequently with remissions after the fashion of rheumatic pains. The general condition of the patient does not suffer much, only in violent cases there is fever or even vomiting. The discharge usually disappears after the orchitis is fully developed, and does not re-appear until the inflammation has run its course; only in a few cases it does not reappear after the subsidence of orchitis. The inflammation in its acute form does not often last beyond the tenth day, sometimes the improvement commences on the fourth day. This, however, is not very rapid, since it sometimes takes weeks before the testicle resumes its former size; very frequently an obstinate swelling of the testicles remains. Treatfment. Most physicians prescribe in the first place Jfercurius sot. or vivus, especially if the orchitis had its origin in a recent attack of gonorrhcea. We give the first trituration and continue it until the inflammation begins to abate. For orchitis arising from chronic urethritis, Clemaltis erecta is preferable. This medicine does Orchitis. 15 good service after Mercurius, even better than Pulsatilla which, however, has more decided symptoms referring to such a case. It is very difficult, in a case of this kind, to select a remedy in accordance with the symptoms, for the reason that the symptoms of the different drugs are so very much alike. Beside the above-mentioned, drugs, we likewise recommend Acidum nitr., especially if the patient is tainted with syphilis and has taken a good deal of Mercury. The subsequent enlargement of the testicle, if of recent origin, requires in the first place Clematis, likewise lodium; Hartmann also proposes Staphysagria, and, if the enlargement had lasted sometime, Aurum met. and Sulphur. Colocynthis has helped us out very promptly in two cases of violent rheumatic pains in the thighs which emanated from the testicle and had remained behind after an orchitis. If the orchitis dpes not originate in gonorrhcea, a few other medicines deserve attention.s If caused by a contusion of the testicles, Arnica has to be given, afterwards Conium or Pulsatilla, to which Itartmann adds Calendula officinalis. If it is caused by a cold or a metastasis of parotitis, Rhus tox., Belladonna, Bryonia have to be given together with the above-named drugs. [We have subdued the most intense phlegmonous inflammation of the testes consequent upon sudden suppression of gonorrhoea by means of the 18th attenuation of Aconite; the first tablespoonful of a solution of a few globules in half a tumbler of water, produced an almost instantaneous relief from the most agonizing distress. In rheumatic orchitis the lower attenuations of Aconite act more specifically, or in other words are more specifically adapted to the pathological process. In a case of terrible orchitis caused by suppression of the gonorrhceal discharge, with swelling and inflammation of the spermatic co d of the affected side, high fever, flushed cheeks, glistening eyes, intolerable restlessness, Belladonna given internally and applied externally, in the proportion of fifteen to twenty drops of the fluid extract to half a cupful of water, controlled the inflammation and swelling, after other remedies had been tried in vain. H.] These remedies are likewise to be used in chronic primary swellings of the testes. Some of these swellings are, indeed, past all cure, especially those having a tubercular origin; in some cases, however, even of long standing, the result of our treatment is, indeed very striking. External applications generally are of very little use in orchitis. Neither warm nor cold fomentations are easily born, nor have they any good effect, not even palliative. Of course the testicle should 16 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. be supported so that the spermatic cord is not pulled upon. A suspensory should be worn even some time after the disease is cured. Strapping the testicle with strips of adhesive plaster so as to exert a slight compression, frequently exerts a strikingly beneficial influence. Those who have recovered from the disease, will have to behave with great discretion in order to avoid relapses which are apt to take place. 3. Spermatorrhlcea. By this heading we, strictly speaking, comprehend a flow of semen without any sexual excitement. However, in order to avoid the necessity of resorting to a number of sub-divisions, we have classed together in this chapter'abnormal nocturnal emissions as well as various other morbid derangements of the male }exual organs; an additional motive for this arrangement is the circumstance that the treatment of most of these conditions is the same. The functions of the male sexual organs vary in accordance with temperament, nlode of life, constitution, etc., to such an extent that it is often difficult to decide whether these differences are of a morbid nature or belong to the normal standard. This can only be determined by the manner in which the male sexual sphere is generally affected by the local phenomena; whether the organs are not abnormally disturbed, or whether the procreative powers are impaired or even suspended. The etiology of these various abnormal conditions of the sexual sphere is pretty much the same. Debilitating constitutional diseases, or acute diseases during the period of convalescence are apt to cause a so-called irritable weakness in the sexual sphere, which, in the former case is permanent and in the latter case only temporary. This fact is most strikingly witnessed in diabetes and tuberculosis. In the last-named condition the excessive irritability of the sexual organs contributes to hasten the general decay. A second cause are cardiac and nervous diseases, which may, however, likewise result from the sexual weakness. Hypochondria is a frequent cause, and still a more frequent consequence of sexual weakness. The most common cause of sexual weakness is the vice of onanism, which is too much overlooked by physicians. Yet it is certain that thousands might, by a timely warning, be saved fronm unspeakable mental and physical disease. Excessive nocturnal emissions generally take place between the years of 20 and 25, and exceptionally at an ealier age, even 16. Spermatorrhcea. 17 They are of a morbid nature if they occur almost regularly without rousing one froit sleep, and if they do not occur often, yet leave for days a sensation of languor and debility, and of mental depression. They are likewise abnormal if they occur several times in one night or week. Moreover every emission that takes place in the waking state, with or without any special cause, at stool for instance, is to be regarded as abnormal. The consequences of such abnormal losses very soon show themselves: Paleness of the face with dark margins around the eyes; insufficient sleep; drowsiness with inability to sleep; dulness of the head; aching, pressing pain in the head; vertigo; irritable, sensitive temper; aversion to society, to work, and, after a while, a deranged appetite and digestion, deficient assimilation. Spermatorrhcea, properly speaking, consists in a loss of semen at every emission of urine, at stool, without any cause or after the most trifling erections. The pernicious consequences of this sort of spermatorrhcea manifest themselves much more speedily than after nocturnal emissions, most probably because spermatorrhcea never occurs in organisms whose physiological functions had been carried on in a normal manner. Irritable weakness of the sexual organs is sometimes the cause, but more frequently the consequence of both the previously-mentioned anomalies. The sexual excitement occurs too easily and too vehemently, without possessing suificient energy and consistence for the act of coition. The ejaculation of the semen takes place too soon, or even not at all, or. the introduction of the penis into the vagina is prevented, by a premature cessation of the erection. The sexual weakness may be characterized by all sorts of abnormal manifestations in the sexual sphere. The mental disposition exerts a powerful influence in this direction. Hypochondriacs are particularly disposed to irritable weakness which, under abnormal mental influences, sometimes attains to such a degree of intensity that it seems to amount to complete impotence. Complete impotence, by which is meant an entire suspension of the ability to perform the sexual act, is upon the whole a very rare and frequently only temporary disorder, except when depending upon debilitating incurable constitutional diseases, such as diabetes or tuberculosis, or when depending upon the loss of one testicle. An excess of sexual excitement (satyriasis) besides taking place at the commencement of gonorrhcea, as we have already stated, may likewise occur in consequence of debilitating conditions, first 2 18 Diseases of the Male Sexual Organs. as a passing increase and subsequently to be succeeded by a decrease of excitability. It is frequently met with in the case of persons who have been addicted to the vice of onanism, or among worn-out roues; very rarely without such a cause, and then mostly as a symptom of some deep-seated disease of the brain. In treating most of these forms of sexual weakness, the diet, mode of life and psychical agencies exert an important influence; hence we place them in the front rank. We cannot lay it down as a rule that these morbid conditions require either a lean or a strengthening diet. Some are afflicted with weakness of the sexual organs, more especially with excessive pollutions, because they live too well; it is a mistake to suppose that this waste is repaired by a nourishing diet, since it is well known that some persons are living in circumstances which preclude the possibility of indulging in good living. Hence it becomes a matter of interest to inquire whether a lean or a rich diet is the more suitable. All such patients must be cautioned against going to sleep with a full bladder or a full stomach, either in the daytime or at night. Certain beverages, such as spirits and hop-beer, must be strictly avoided. Beer-drinkers are very apt to deny the debilitating influence of hop-beer on the genital organs; that this influence exists, must be evident to all who are acquainted with the effects of Lupulin. It is well known that drunkenness, either partial or total, causes an irritable weakness of the sexual organs. Coffee, and in some even tobacco, have to be interdicted; among the secondary effects of coffee we notice a depressing excitability and irritability of the nervous system. In general all strongly-spiced and stimulating food is hurtful. As regards bodily exercise, it is certain that bodily fatigue diminishes sexual excitement and brings it back again to a normal standard; muscular exercise has also the advantage of preventing the mind from dwelling upon erotic subjects. Viewed from this point, walking is not the best kind of exercise, for the reason that it leaves the mind free to revel in all kinds of fancies; onanists are very apt to be fond of walking. Severe mental labor is sometimes preferable to bodily exercise, especially in the case of hypochondriacs and onanists. This leads us to a consideration of psychical influences as a means of cure. Every physician knows that the evil consequences of nocturnal emissions, and even to some extent, of self-abuse, are more imaginary than real. lumbers are made hypochondriacs by reading books that fill them with fear and trembling at the excesses they may have been guilty of in Spermatorrhoea. 19 former days. Encouraging advice does them more good than medicine. Self-abuse is prevented much more certainly by. comforting encouragement than by picturing the consequences of such a crime in the most frightful colors. In dealing with sexual weakness, it is in the first place necessary to depress the fancy, and in the second place to strengthen the will. On this account, reading novels is so hurtful, and cold-water treatment has such an excellent effect. We deem a special enumeration of the medicines, referring to this subject, inappropriate; the multiplicity of the phenomena would leave too many gaps. The symptoms being all confined to one set of organs, they can easily be compared with the symptoms in the Materia Medica. It is only because the chapter entitled " Male genital organs" is so replete with symptoms and remedies that we furnish in the next paragraph a list of the remedies whose practical value has been verified by experience, and we classify them in accordance with the different divisions adopted for the symptoms of the disease. For excessive emissions, with increased irritability: Cantharides, Nux vomica, Camphora, Phosphorus; with diminished irritability; Conium maculatum, Phosphori acidur, Clematis erecta, Digitalis purpurea, China. For spermatorrhcea: Phosphori acidum, Calcarea carbonica, Conium, Cantharides. Among all these remedies Digitalis, and more particularly Digitalin, has the best effect. A few doses of the third trituration of this medicine are generally sufficient to effect a complete cure or at least a marked improvement. The medicine should be given in the morning; in the evening it is very apt to disturb the night's sleep. [Gelsemin, given for a period of time, has cured spermatorrhcea. Stillingin is likewise an excellent remedy for both nocturnal emissions and spermatorrhoea. H. 7.] Irritable weakness requires besides the remedies mentioned for spermatorrhcea and nocturnal emissions, the following medicines: Caladium seguinuwn, Selenium, Nitri acidum, Agaricu ususcarius, and, if the weakness borders on impotence, Agnus castus, Cannabis, Baryta, C(apsicum annuum, Lycopodium, NVatrum muriaticum. Satyriasis requires particularly Cantharides and Phosphorus, the latter more particularly, if the afiection is caused by disturbances of the central nervous system. The consequences of self-abuse are so varied that we cannot in this place indicate all the remedies that may have to be employed against them. Moreover we have made it a point to allude to this 20 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. vice in treating of the various functional derangements of the different organs. As far as the sexual organs and their functions are involved, we may have to resort to Phosphori acidum, Nux vomica, China, Calcarea carbonica. Among the external agents that may prove useful in the treatment of these affections, cold water occupies the first rank. In some forms of irritable weakness cold ablutions of the sexual organs or sitz-baths are sufficient; but where the whole nervous system is involved, a rigorous and systematic water-cure treatment is preferable; it not only helps to invigorate the constitution, but likewise to give exercise and tone to the mental energy, which is impaired by nothing more than by abuse of the sexual organs. B. DISEASES OF THE FEMALE SEXUAL ORGANS. 1. Vaginitis, Catarrh of the Sexual Mlucous Lining. Fluor Albus, Leucorrhoea, Whites. CATARRH of the female sexual organs may be distinguished as simple and virulent catarrh. The virulent catarrh or gonorrhcea of the female is caused, like goncr:hcea of the male, by contact with gonorrhceal matter, and never develops itself from an intensified simple catarrh. Simple catarrh is one of the most common derangements of the female sex. It originates in a variety of causes. In the first place we have to mention as exciting causes such as act directly upon the sexual organs: excessive coition, self-abuse, miscarriage, and to some extent confinements which, if occurring in too rapid succession, almost always cause leucorrhcea. Ascarides likewise cause catarrhal discharges from the vagina, by crawling from the anus into the lastnamed organ; pessaries should likewise be mentioned. The main causes, however, are not local, but have a constitutional origin: menstrual disturbances, a sedentary mode of life, abuse of coffee, chlorosis, scrofulosis, tuberculosis, and the various defects inherent in our modern systems of education, which have already been alluded to in the chapter on hysteria. A vaginal catarrh is scarcely ever owing to a mere cold, except perhaps at the time of the menses, at which period the tendency to this derangement is most marked. With reference to age, the trouble occurs most frequently Vaginitis, Catarrh of the Sexual Mucous Lining. 21 between tie first commencement and the cessation of the menstrual period; it is likewise met with among children, and very often among women who have ceased to menstruate, the less frequently, however, the longer the menses had ceased to make their appearance. Tumors in the uterine cavity are accompanied by a tolerably profuse catarrh as a symptomatic appearance. We transcribe from Kafka the following concise description of acute vaginal catarrh. The mucous lining of the vagina is attacked by an acute catarrhal inflammation, in which sometimes the labia majora and minora and the entrance to the vagina, and at other times the whole length of the vagina, are involved. In bad cases the inflammation may communicate itself to the cervix uteri, to the internal cavity of the uterus or to the urethra. The mucous membrane is dark-red, swollen and interstitially distended; the papillae are swollen and form numerous prominences imparting to the mucous lining a granular appearance. The granulations are at times scattered, at other times confluent, at times occupying isolated portions of the vagina, at other times the vagina in its whole extent. The hyperoemia induces a sub-mucous edema which narrows the vaginal space. The secretion of mucus is very scanty at first, or even entirely suppressed; afterwards it becomes more copious, of a yellow or yellowish-green color and opaque. Not unfrequently we find in the course of the inflammation superficial numerous erosions on the external and internal labia and at the entrance of the vagina. A benign acute catarrh of the vagina is most generally occasioned by local injuries affecting directly the mucous lining of the vagina, such as: excessive sexual intercourse, self-abuse, sudden exposure to the action of cold, foreign b'odies in the vagina, such as badlyfitting pessaries, or corrosive injections, or else the inflammatory process in the vagina may simply be a continuation of a similar process in the uterus. The symptoms of acute vaginal catarrh are an itching in the vagina with which a burning sensation afterwards becomes associated. Walking, the introduction of the finger, of a speculum, and sexual intercourse, are exceedingly painful. If the urethra is involved in the inflammation, the patients experience a violent desire to urinate; in such a case urination causes a burning distress' in the urethra. The yellow secretion stains the linen yellow; if acrid, it inflames and excoriates the parts adjoining the vulva, and often spreads a pungent and offensive odor. 22 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. An examination with the speculum would show whether the secretion proceeds from the uterine cavity or the vagina; but the introduction of the speculum is not only very painful, but often causes hemorrhage. An acute vaginal catarrh lasts from eight days to a fortnight, or else passes into the chronic form. The prognosis is generally favorable. We recently treated an acute vaginal catarrh in a girl of nine years. It was caused by sitting on a cold stone. The vagina and vulva were much inflamed, and the purulent and yellow-greenish discharge exceedingly profuse. The disease was radically cured in about a week with the German tincture of Aconite and a few doses of Iodine. H.] A simple acute catarrh is, upon the whole, a very rare disorder. Inasmuch as, with the exception of slight differences, it is identical, as far as intensity is concerned, with the virulent form of catarrh, we confine our description of the disease to the latter. Female gonorrhcea commences with a feeling of heat and dryness in the vagina, attended with a peculiar titillation and sensitiveness to contact. Soon after,the mucous membrane is seen injected, urination becomes painful (which is never the case in simple catarrh), the external pudendum becomes swollen and inflamed, in consequence of which walking is impeded, and a muco-purulent discharge makes its appearance the same as in gonorrhcea of the male, only more copious and generally of a bad odor. Some individuals, according as the disease is more or less intense, experience febrile motions, lassitude, depression of strength, drawing pains in the lumbar and sacral regions, dull pains in the pelvis, sensitiveness to contact, difficulty of urinating. Upon the mucous membrane, as well as in the neighborhood of the vagina, we often notice erosions and small flat ulcers. This inflammatory stage lasts, as in the case of the male, from eight days to a fortnight. As the pains abate, the discharge becomes thinner, more milky, and, in favorable cases, abates little by little until it ceases entirely in a few weeks. More commonly, however, the discharge continues for months, and in case the uterus is considerably involved, the gonorrhcea becomes chronic and exceedingly obstinate. The infectiousness of the discharge does not become extinct until it has lasted a long time. Chronic catarrh very generally arises from the acute form, but in most cases takes place without any preliminary acute stage. A scanty slimy secretion from the vagina occurs in most females, Vaginitis, Catarrh of the Sexual Mucous Lining. 23 either as a constant discharge, or before or after menstruation, and even a profuse discharge after several confinements still constitutes a normal secretion; at any rate the women themselves do not look upon it as anything unnatural. It is only when the discharge is excessive, or when it occurs in children, that we are justified in regarding it as a morbid phenomenon. Under the operation of one of the above-named exciting causes the discharge continues to increase in quantity and to gradually disturb the constitutional equilibrium. The discharge is at times of a glassy transparency, at times milky, and less frequently purulent; it may become so profuse that the patients may not be able to leave their room; the stains on the linen are generally stiff and grayish, less frequently yellowish; it often excoriates the external parts and the thighs; this is not owing to the quantity of the secretion, but to its quality and perhaps to the sensitiveness of the skin. The discharge is scarcely ever uniformly the same; sometimes it has remissions and even intermissions, is generally most copious before or after the menses, and frequently even takes their place entirely. If the uterine secretion is very tenacious, mucous plugs are easily deposited in the cervical canal, and an increased accumulation of mucus takes place in the uterus which causes labor-like pains that cease all at once.as soon as the mucus has been expelled. The anatomical changes accompanying this condition of things, consist in an interstitial puffing and swelling of the mucous lining which may result even in polypous formations; the follicles, known as the ovula Nabothi, are likewise altered, their orifices becoming closed by the continued secretion; they are particularly seen at the cervix in the shape of small, prominent, transparent vesicles. The ulcers are either flat, catarrhal erosions, or else the suppurating follicles are transformed into more deep-seated rounded ulcers. The erosions not unfrequently give rise to the granular ulcers of the cervix, the ulcerated surface becoming uneven and very much disposed to bleed. More recently a degree of importance has been attached to this ulcerative process of which it is not possessed in reality. In every chronic catarrh, simular ulcerations take place without the catarrh being on that account derived from the ulcers, or the constitutional symptoms from the ulcerative process generally. Why should this be done in a case of uterine catarrh? It cannot be denied that the last-named ulcers give rise to pain, especially during coition, and that they may even cause slight hemorrhages; but it is questionable whether such accidents impair the general health as much as 24 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. is supposed. It is much more natural to regard the general irritability and the nervous phenomena as simple consequences of the catarrhal disease, and to derive the ulcers from the irritation produced by the act of coition in individuals with a peculiar predisposition for such derangements. On hearing of so many physicians who make female diseases a speciality and trot around with their specula, promising the afflicted a speedy cure, we cannot forbear suspecting such vagabonds of impure designs. These ulcers of the cervix fare no better than many other modern discoveries in medicine; at first everything is explained by means of them, until repeated disappointments satisfy us, that the discovery was no great thing after all. The consequences of catarrh to the general organism vary both in extent and in intensity. Many women who have been afflicted for years with profuse leucorrhcea preserve an appearance of perfect health; others, on the contrary, are very much affected even by an inconsiderable discharge. One of the most common consequences, and, on the other hand, one of the most common causes, are menstrual irregularities, generally scanty menses. Moreover, an unusual nervous irritability, backache, aching pains in the small of the back, hemicrania, hysteric spasms set in. The patient looks sick, with a grayish, dingy complexion and dark margins around the eyes. If the discharge is very profuse, symptoms of anemia make their appearance. The faculty of conception is not very much influenced by uterine catarrh, otherwise women afflicted with it, would not conceive so readily. If the mucous lining is considerably puffed up, and the uterine canal closed by plugs of mucus, it is a matter of course that conception must be very much interfered with. The worst thing that can happen to the patient is the shock to the nervous system caused by a co-existing titillation of the genital organs and a violent excitement of the sexual instinct. Treatment. Whether an acute vaginal catarrh is virulent or not, can be inferred from the symptoms with tolerable certainty. The non-virulent catarrh scarely ever affects the parts with much intensity, but usually makes an inroad upon the constitutional wellbeing, and leaves the urethra unirritated; at least no pus can be squeezed out of its orifice. As in the male, so in the female gonorrhea, Mercurius solubilis or vivus is the first and most important remedy. The employment of aconite in this disease, as recommended by Hartmann, simply involves a loss of time. Mercurius has all the symptoms of the in Vaginitis, Catarrh of the Sexual Mucous Lining. 25 flammatory stage: Itching, smarting and burning in the sexual organs; increased sexual desire; inflammatory swelling of the vagina and external pudendum, with sensitiveness to contact; whitish, thick, purulent and greenish discharge, of an offensive odor, causing erosions and ulcerations in the surrounding parts, with painful emission of urine; tenesmus of the bladder and rectum. These phenomena constitute a complete image of the gonorrhcea of females, for which Mercurius will be found as efficient a remedy as it is for gonorrhea of the male. The symptoms which remain after the inflammation is removed, may require a variety of remedies. It is advisable to first find a suitable remedy among those that have been recommended for gonorrhcea of the male. Hepar sulphuris may be required, or else Nitri acidum or Thuya. Nitri acidum is particularly suitable if the discharge looks bad, is mixed with blood and has a bad odor; Tuya is more suitable if condylomata are present. For marked urinary difficulties Cannabis and Cantharides may be resorted to. If we are sure that an acute attack of vaginal catarrh is of the non-virulent kind, Aconite, whatever Hartmann may say in favor of this drug, is scarcely ever required, at any rate much less frequently than Belladonna. As a rule Belladonna is preferable to Aconite in all diseases of the mucous membrane; in this instance it is likewise more specifically indicated by the symptoms. Regarding Arnica, IHartmann has the following: "A condition characterized by an increased sensation of warmth, fulness and tension in the internal pudendum, constant titillation, sometimes even a burning sensation at urinating, slight fever, is sometimes met with inthe case of newly married people. It would be wrong to attribute these symptoms to infection; they are caused by too great a narrowness of the vagina and by the contusion caused by intercourse, as is likewise made evident by the swelling and redness of the external labia, attended with an intense burning pain at urinating, and even retention of urine, owing to the inflammation and swelling of the urethra and of the internal organs. Arnica meets this condition. [Belladonna and even Aconite are often required to control the swelling and inflammation of the labia. H.] If the patient complains of a burning in the vagina and labia, with discharge of a thin but acrid mucus from the genital organs, constant chilliness, disposition to lie down, sadness, depression of spirits, etc., Pulsatilla answers this condition better than any other remedy. 26 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. Other remedies which are likewise adapted to the acute form of catarrh, will be indicated in the subsequent paragraph; altogether the transition from the acute to the chronic form of leucorrhcea is scarcely noticeable. Chronic leucorrhcea is one of the most inveterate derangements, and is much more difficult to cure than an obstinate gleet, although the use of local remedies is much more practicable in the former than in the latter. We merely mention the names of the remedies, since it is impracticable to enumerate the symptoms of each which, in order to effect a cure, will have to be compared with the utmost care with the pathological phenomena; the large number of drugs bearing upon this affection, renders the use of a good Repertory indispensable. The most important and most frequently required remedies are: Calearea carbonica, Ferrum, Graphites, Lycopodium, Natrum muriaticum, China, Sepia, Kali carbonicurn, Mezereum, Phosphorus, Platina, Sabina, lodium, Conium, Alumina. We will endeavor to classify these drugs in accordance with some of the most important indications, referring the reader for more minute symptomatic particulars to the Materia Medica. The most important item to be considered is the appearance of leucorrhoea at the beginning or during the course of the menses; this point alone may furnish us a clue to the whole character of the discharge. For leucorrhcea previous to the menses the following remedies are suitable: Calcarea carbonica, Sepia, Phosphorus, Graphites, Alumina, Natrum muriaticumr; for leucorrhcea setting in in the place of the menses: Pulsatilla, Sabina, Zincum, China, Natrum muriaticurn; and subsequently to the menses: Bovista, lodium, Ruta, Cale. carb., Sepia, Graphites, Lycopodium. In the case of chlorotic individuals, if fluor albus is the consequence, not the cause of the anaemia, we resort to: Ferrum, Puls., Cale. carb., and Arsenicum; if the anaemia is caused by the loss of fluids involved in the leucorrhceal discharge, China, _Ferrum, Lycopodium, Natrum muriaticum, Stannum are required. The nervous phenomena attendant on the discharge, are most generally found under Ignatia and Platina; and if self-abuse is one of the causes, Zincum, Nux vomica and Ignatia may be exhibited. In the case of patients of a somewhat advanced age, the following remedies may be preferable: Kali carb., Natrum mur., Mezereum, Lyeopodium, Sepia. In dietetic respects all that is needful to do is to avoid everything that has a tendency to excite or keep up the discharge; this is eas Metritis, Inflammation of the Womb. 27 ily neglected if the patient's whole mode of living is chargeable with the disorder. In such a case marvellous cures are related from a visit to these or those springs, whereas a little common sense might teach that the same results can be obtained with much less trouble and expense by pursuing a regular course of proper diet and general hygiene at home. It is not our object to single out and recommend in this place certain springs that are really of use in this affection; all we have to say is, that salt-water bathing is sometimes a sovereign remedy for the most obstinate uterine catarrh, agreeable to the indications furnished by the physiological experiments instituted with common salt. Injections of water by means of a good vaginal syringe keep the parts clean and free from soreness and ulcerations; otherwise they have no curative effect. But we should not pedantically insist upon told water being used under all circumstances and by everybody; tepid water sometimes has a much more certain palliative effect. 2. Metritis. Inflammation of the Womb. This inflammation may involve the internal lining as well as the substance and the external serous coat of the uterus. If the mucous lining alone is invaded, we have the picture of an acute uterine catarrh which, however, almost always accompanies both the other forms, parenchymatous and peri-metritis. The common causes of metritis are, like those of acute catarrh, deleterious influences acting directly upon the uterus, more especially excessive coition, obstetrical operations or foreign bodies in the cavity of the uterus; or the causes may be more general, such as a cold, or violent emotions; these influences affect the uterus so much more readily at a period when the organ is in a state of congestion, for instance at the time of the menses. If the menses suddenly cease at the commencement of inflammation, we have no right to conclude that this suppression is the cause instead of the consequence of the inflammation. Chronic metritis generally arises from the acute form, or is occasioned by causes similar to those in which a chronic catarrh of the sexual mucous membrane originates. Symptoms and Course. The disease usually commences with a chill which is at once followed by pains in the diseased organ. If the parenchyma is alone affected, the pains are not very violent, aching, boring, throbbing, stitching or lancing, they are 28 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. seated deep in the pelvis, are accompanied by a most painful press. ing downwards resembling feeble labor-pains; they are increased by pressing upon the abdomen, by very active respiratory movements, urging at stool, and erect posture, and they radiate to the small of the back and thighs. If the serous covering is likewise involved, the pains become more acute, the sensitiveness to contact is greater and extends over a larger surface. The volume of the uterus not being sufficiently increased, it cannot be felt through the abdominal integuments; on exploration the uterus is found to be more sensitive, and the cervical portion is softer, more swollen and shorter than in the normal condition. The constitutional symptoms are of different degrees of intensity. Fever is never entirely absent, but is not generally very violent; the pulse is generally small and rather hard. The stomach sympathizes most readily in this disease; loss of appetite, coated tongue, nausea, retching and vomiting are very. common. The bowels are constipated, the passage of the faeces is attended with tenesmus, urination is impeded and sometimes quite impossible. If the disease breaks out during the menses, they cease immediately and in their place a discharge sets in as in acute catarrh of the uterus. If the menstrual period happens within the course of the disease, the menses either remain suspended, or else the flow of blood is more copious, sometimes even amounting to an actual hemorrhage. In the further course of the disease the discharge from the uterus is apt to become purulent, and if, which is a rare occurrence, abscesses form within the substance of the uterus, clear pus is discharged. The disease runs an acute course of about a fortnight, when, if no particular complications exist, convalescence takes place; which, however, is frequently incomplete, inasmuch as either leucorrhcea or swelling of the uterus is apt to remain behind. Among the most important complications we number an inflammation of the peritoneum which is apt to occur and by which the course of the disease is very much protracted and the metritis itself is very much aggravated. In such a case the inflammation assumes the form of diffuse peritonitis, with a very dubious prognosis. In a case of this kind, the patient being a robust young woman, not pregnant and the attack having occurred between the menstrual periods, a copious discharge of thin pus from the vagina took place about the tenth day, so that it was scarcely possible to keep a sufficient supply of clean cloths under her. This was of course followed by extreme weakness owing to which her recovery was very much Metritis, Inflammation of the Womb. 29 delayed. Previous to this discharge nothing of any sort had passed her. Metritis of pregnant females can scarcely ever be recognized with perfect certainty unless the enveloping membrane of the uterus and the peritonaeum generally become involved. It may be supposed to exist if febrile motions, vomiting or retching, meteorism, painfulness of the gravid uterus whether touched or not, set in. During the first months the inflammation. extends over the whole organ; afterwards it becomes localized, and the painful sensitiveness is likewise more circumscribed and confined to a definite locality. It is only exceptionally, that the course of pregnancy is affected unfavorably by the inflammation, and if the latter is very intense. If metritis occurs during the period of parturition, labor becomes unusually painful; and, if abscesses should form, rupture of the uterus may easily take place. After confinement metritis generally takes the form of puerperal metritis, of which we shall treat in the next chapter. Chronic metritis is upon the whole a somewhat obscure condition. It generally remains as a consequence of acute metritis, but may likewise develop itself spontaneously under the operation of the various causes that may give rise to chronic catarrh of the uterus. We discover a more or less considerable general or total swelling of the uterus; enlargement, interstitial distention, hardness and ulceration of the vaginal portion, obstinate leucorrhcea. The pains ordinarily are trifling, consisting of a sensation of pressure and heaviness in the pelvis. During and previous to menstruation the pains increase to such a degree of intensity that. they seem like genuine uterine colic. In higher grades of the disease the menses become entirely suppressed, except that about the period for their appearance violent pains set in, as if the flow would really take place. The constitutional equilibrium is more or less disturbed, and so-called hysteric nervous affections almost always make their appearance. If the swelling is considerable, the passage of the fEeces and urine is very much interfered with, likewise the circulation of the left or right lower extremity. The faculty to conceive is very much impaired by both the acute and chronic form of metritis, although the possibility of conception cannot altogether be denied. Treatment. We transcribe a few passages from Iartmann's work: "Having had many opportunities of treating this kind of inflammation I recommend as a chief and frequently applicable remedy Nux vomica, which I found useful in the district where I 30 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. happened to be located, for the additional reason that the women in my district were in the habit of indulging in the excessive use of coffee. Other homceopathic physicians have tested the efficacy of Nux in these inflammations. The selection of a drug, however, neither depends upon the seat of the inflammation, nor upon the fact whether the uterus is impregnated or not, or whether the inflammation occurs during pregnancy or confinement. If the medicine was otherwise homceopathic to the symptoms, I have cured inflammation of the fundus, cervix, anterior or posterior surface of the uterus, with a single dose of Nux. In some cases where the fever was accompanied by a severe chill, followed by intense heat, frequent and tense pulse and violent thirst, I found it necessary to begin the treatment with a few doses of Aconite. Nux vomica is indicated by the following characteristic symptoms: acute pressing pains above the pubic bones, increased by external pressure and an exploration of the internal parts; violent pains in the loins and small of the back; constipation or hard stools attended with burning-stinging pains; painful urination or retention of urine; stitching and bruising pain of the abdomen during motion or when coughing and sneezing; increased temperature and swelling of the os tinete, with simultaneous painfulness of the vagina; exacerbations in the morning-hours." We doubt the correctness of these statements. The symptoms of Aconite do not point to metritis as an homceopathic remedy for this inflammation; not even the accompanying fever is sufficiently intense to justify the use of Aconite. Nor do we believe that metritis can be cured with a single dose of Nux; at any rate we should not expect, nor do we deem it possible to cut a metritis short. " An equally indispensable remedy in these inflammations is Belladonna, more particularly, if the sensation of heaviness and dragging in the abdomen, which frequently increases to a painful bearingdown, becomes very troublesome and is attended with a stingingburning pain above the pubic bones, pains in the small of the back as if it would break, stinging pains in the hip-joints which cannot bear either motion or contact, (under certain circumstances China may here be indicated after Aconite.) If the inflammation sets in after confinement, the lochial secretion is arrested, the placenta adheres, or is discharged in the shape of an ichorous, fetid liquid, with violent burning and a sensation of fulness in the vagina, the employment of Belladonna is called for so much more pressingly." We refrain from commenting upon the last passage, for we hold Metritis, Inflammation of the Womb. 31 that if such phenomena occur while the placenta remains adhering to the uterus, we have a strictly puerperal disease before us, which does not belong in this chapter. Without doubt Belladonna is eminently suitable in cases of violent metritis, and is even preferable to Nux, more especially if the menses were arrested during the course of the inflammation. Nor have we a better remedy for metrorrhagia setting in at the time of the menses. "A similar affection occasioned by a violent fit of chagrin, especially after confinement, yields most speedily and surely to a single dose of Chamnomila. In such a case the lochial secretion is generally more profuse, and, if it was already white, it again changes to a discharge of quantities of blackish, coagulated blood. Not unfrequently we see metritis set in after the inordinate use of Chamomile-tea, which unreasonable midwives will allow their patients in confinement in spite of all the warnings of physicians. In such cases.Nux, Ignatia, Pulsatilla, each according to the symptoms of the disease, will be found to be the best antidotes. We here refer to what we have said above concerning the one dose of Nux; moreover we doubt the value of Chamomilla as a remedy in metritis. Mercurius deserves the same encomiums in this disease as in uterine catarrh. It is indicated by violent febrile heat interrupted by chills; inclination to abundant perspiration; violent thirst; purulent discharge from the vagina; diarrhceic discharge with tenesmus. These are symptoms denoting the formation of pus. Knowing as we do that this is apt to set in in the impregnated uterus, Mercurius had better be prescribed first, when the uterus is partially inflamed. Sabina may be given if the menses set in in the form of hemorrhage during the course of the inflammation, attended with laborlike pains that spread to the thighs. This remedy will likewise be found applicable in other forms of metritis; we are led to this conclusion because Sabina which is so often employed as a means of producing abortion, is apt to cause inflammatory conditions of the utei us. Other suitable remedies will be found in the next chapter on puerperal fever; or for the remaining traces of metritis we refer the reader to the remedies recommended for catarrh of the genital mucous lining; or finally, in case the peritoneum should be intensely affected, the remedies for peritonitis may be consulted. It is always well to watch convalescent patients for a time lest chronic metritis should remain behind. 32 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. For this disease we do not possess any Similia in the rigorous sense of the term; our provings have not as yet disclosed such pathogenetic virtues in our drugs as can be considered homceopathic to the pathological symptoms. Hence we shall have to select our remedies in accordance with accessory symptoms. A most important symptom is the discharge from the vagina, and next to this the character of the menstrual functions. The most noteworthy remedies in this direction have already been mentioned in the previous chapter. They are: Sepia, Platina, Lycopodium, Graphites, Conium maculatUm, Arsenicum album, Natrum muriaticum, and finally Sulphur. Sulphur is especially appropriate if the chronic disease had remained after an acute attack, in which case it is superior to any other remedy. [In bad cases of endometritis Kafka proposes Kreosotum and Secale cornutum. He writes: " If the lochia have a dirty-brown color and a fetid odor, and ulcers have broken out on the external pudendum, the question is to check the further spread of the diphtheritic process as soon as possible. At the commencement of this disease we resort to Kreosotum 1. in solution every two hours; at the same time we order injections into the vagina and uterus, using for this purpose lukewarm water to which from 10 to 15 drops of Kreosote are added. The injections have to be repeated every three or four hours. The diphtheritic exudation soon becomes detached and the lochia and ulcers of the vagina assume a healthier appearance. In very bad cases of this kind, if the diphtheritic process in the uterus has spread over a large surface, the lochia have a cadaverous smell, and the injections bring away whole quantities of disorganized, gangrened cellular tissue; if at the same time the patients are very much prostrated and become anaemic, and the ulcers on the pudendum assume a gangrened appearance, we prescribe Secale cornutum 1, in order to induce more powerful contractions and to bring about the detachment and expulsion of the necrosed cellular tissue. We will relate a striking case of this kind from our former practice. In a case of septic metritis setting in in consequence of a very tedious labor that lasted over 72 hours, the above-described phenomena were all present; the patient grew weaker from hour to hour, she ceased to answer questions and was pale as death; yet she had her senses; the extremities were cool, and the hydrsemia which had already set in, had given rise to oedema round the ankle; a gangrenous ulcer in the vagina had already destroyed a considerable Metritis, Inflammation of the Womb. 33 portion of the nymphse. Without being acquainted with the physiological effects of Secale, we proposed the external and internal use of this drug. We gave five grains of the powder every two hours, and ordered injections into the uterus every two hours, of a decoction of the same substance of the strength of one drachm of the powder to one pound of water. After the sixth powder and the sixth injection violent labor-like pains set in which brought away a black, excessively fetid coagulum that had filled the cavity of the uterus and consisted of decaying detritus. The patient who in the mean while had fainted as if dead, was washed with wine and, after her consciousness had been restored by the inhalation of some diffusible stimulant, she partook of small quantities of Malaga. The patient was saved. A good diet gradually restored her strength, and her recovery was soon obtained. Since we have become acquainted with the effects of small doses, we prescribe in the higher grades of endometritis, if the above described phenomena are present, Seceae cornutum 1, in solution every hour or two hours, and, by this means, accomplish the same purpose, with this difference, that no such tumultuous reaction takes place in the uterus, that the contractions take place slowly without any pain worth mentioning, and that the exudation is not detached all at once, but gradually. Ergotin 1, has given us the same favorable results. In desperate cases Sabina 1, may be given internally and externally. If during the course of septic endometritis the symptoms of puerperal fever supervene (for a description see next chapter), we give Camphora 1, one or two drops on sugar of milk every two hours, at the same time ordering injections of Camphor into the uterus in the proportion of one drachm of the spirits of Camphor to one pound of water, for the purpose of rousing the sinking vitality of the uterine capillaries and of the general organism, by quickening the movements of the stagnant blood-corpuscles, increasing the chances of a favorable reaction. This result, however, is a very rare one. However, if we succeed, we then discontinue the Camphor, and resort to Kreosote in order to keep up the incipient improvement. In order to neutralize the bad effects of the fetid odor of the lochia we resort to the use of disinfectants, such as the Chloride of Lime, fumigations with vinegar, etc. Parenchymatous metritis and metrophlebitis set in with fre — quently-recurring chills. These chills are more especially ominous 3 34 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. if symptoms of puerperal fever are at the same time present. In such cases, which are generally of the worst kind, we at once give Chinin. 1, every two hours. The intention is to prevent the rapid failing of strength, and at the same time to exert a favorable influence upon the fluids. If this remedy does not cause a satisfactory improvement, we resort to Chininum arsenicosuml, for the same purpose, more particularly if the chills are attended with rapid sinking of strength and the integuments at the same time show a remarkable degree of pallor. H.] 3. lMetritis puerperalis. Puererl.Fever, Inflammation of the Uterus during Confinement. Our excuse for bringing together in this chapter several morbid conditions that ought to have been separated according to the exigencies of a rigorous pathological classification, is a desire to simplify our remarks on the subject of treatment. Consequently we shall discuss in this chapter not only the simple puerperal inflammation of the tissues of the uterus, but likewise puerperal fever properly speaking, and shall, as far as possible, explain the differences between these two diseases in the paragraph on the etiological causes. Simple puerperal metritis involves, it is true, most frequently the internal lining of the uterus' (endometritis), but usually likewise extends to the parenchyma, the veins and lymphatic vessels, and very frequently to the peritonaeum, although no specific etiological cause can be assigned for each of these different localizations. rhe disease originates more especially in the circumstances under which the act of parturition takes place. The inner lining of the uterus is very easily injured by the process of labor; the place where the placenta adheres, is like an open sore; the uterine involution, even in perfectly normal conditions, is attended with signs of local inflammatory action and a general febrile excitement. Hence, even if the process of parturition takes place ever so normally, we have to carefully weigh every circumstance which the most trifling cause might kindle into an inflammatory affection. If, in addition to this, we have the effects of a tedious labor, perhaps an operation, detachment of the placenta, turning, etc., the uterus is so much more disposed to become inflamed, and the access of atmospheric air which cannot be kept out, increases this disposition by favoring the decomposition of the uterine secretion. This accounts for the.. Metritis Puerperalis. 35,ease with which trifling causes smetimes exert the most unfavorable influence upon women in confinement. Among these we place in the front rank emotions whether joyful or depressing; excessive warmth of the sick-room and bed-covering, with which a want of cleanliness almost always goes hand in hand; stimulating beverages such as chamomile-tea and coffee; and finally a cold, which, however, occurs much less frequently than is generally supposed, to the detriment of lying-in women who are not only deprived of fresh air, but, being kept too warm, are made to perspire, and thus become sensitive to the least exposure. True puerperal fever, under circumstances of which mention will be made by and by, develops itself from the uterine inflammation, or else it originates without any such special cause. Various hypotheses have been resorted to in order to explain this pernicious malady, but all these hypotheses are still unproven. What is certain is that the composition of the blood is altered, that exudations take place with a most decided tendency to suppuration, and that a general dissolution of the blood, as in typhus, is apt to occur. It seems as though this decomposition of the blood were not depending upon the puerperal condition, but may have existed already previous to confinement, which is inferred from the circumstance that fever and various local symptoms are already perceived during the last few days or even weeks of pregnancy. That the composition of the blood is altered, is moreover evidenced by the circumstance that only such women are attacked as are constitutionally sickly or are exposed to want and oppressed with care and anxiety. If, as Scanzoni asserts, pulmonary tuberculosis is a protection against puerperal fever, the doctrine of dyscrasias would seem to be confirmed by such a fact. Puerperal fever sets in under the operation of the same causes that have been indicated for simple metritis; two weighty circumstances, however, have yet to be added. One is the epidemic appearance of the disease, which shows that general atmospheric or telluric influences are at work in producing the disease, and it would seem as though stormy and damp cold weather exerted the greatest influence as an exciting cause; and the other circumstance is the communication of the disease by infection. In this respect opinions, although not by any means agreed, incline to the theory that the disease is not communicated by a contagium, but, like cholera, by miasmatic agencies. We do not deem it expedient to discuss this matter more fully in this place. A number of cases inlying-in 36 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. hospitals undoubtedly originate in this source, although there are exceptions. Symnptoms andl Counrse. In order to intelligently appreciate the phenomena characterizing the morbid process of which we are speaking, it is well to familiarize one's mind with the anatomical changes that this morbid process develops. The disease always commences in the first days after confinement, at a period when the uterus has not yet completed the process of involution. This return to a normal condition is checked by the inflammation, on which account the uterus remains larger than in its normal condition, its walls are soft and flabby. The interstices of the internal lining are sometimes pu fed up only in part, and covered with a purulent secretion; and at other times they are covered with a croupous, membranous exudation, more especially round the portion where the placenta was attached. All such exudations incline very strongly to gangrenous disorganization, in which case the mucous nmembrane is transformed into a fetid, dark-colored pulp. The uterine parenchyma scarcely ever remains uninvaded; sometimes, however, its inner layer only is interstitially distended and infiltrated. If the inflammatory process spreads, exudation takes place here and there in the muscular layer, with abscesses or ichorous deposits, the veins become involved in the inflammation, and likewise the lymphatic vessels, after which a more or less considerable peritoneal exudation is scarcely ever absent. In consequence of a further spread of the inflammation of the veins and lymphatic vessels, the femoral vessels not unfrequently become inflamed and closed up, giving rise to the so-called phlegmasia alba dolens; or else metastatic abscesses orig inate in consequence of the inflammation communicating itself to remote parts. Simple puerperal metritis rarely commences before the second, and equally rarely after the eighth day of confinement, almost always with a severe chill followed by burning heat. At the same time or very soon after, the uterus becomes painful, with or without pressure, and very soon shows a decrease of resisting power. Generally the lochial discharge ceases as soon as the inflammation sets in. One of the most common symptoms at the very outset is a violent, painful vomiting and retching, and more or less frequent diarrhceic discharges with tenesmus. The fever is very intense; the pulse, if vomiting is present, is at first empty, but seldom less than one hundred, and afterwards full and hard. The patients are tormented by a desire for cold water, their features are collapsed from Metritis Puerperalis. 37 the commencement of the attack, and, if the vomiting is severe, an expression of despair is depicted in their countenances. Two or three days after the breaking out of the disease, flat ulcers are usually seen on the external pudendum, which are covered with pus or a croupous exudation. If the disease runs a favorable course, and if no complications develop themselves, it may gradually terminate in recovery in one or two weeks, with a return of the lochia, a decrease of the local pains, and a resumption, on the part of the skin, of its normal functions. The last-mentioned change is frequently attended with the breaking out of a rash and profuse perspiration. But if decomposition of the inflammatory products in the uterus takes place, we are led to suspect the occurrence of such a change by the supervention of severe rigors followed by heat, the pulse becomes more frequent and smaller, and collapse sometimes takes place with extraordinary rapidity. The vagina now discharges a fetid, dark, ichorous fluid, mixed with exudation-shreds, and the ulcers on the pudendum assume a suspicious look and become gangrened. At the same time the local pain may disappear entirely, at least it scarcely ever increases in intensity; a profuse, colliquative diarrhcea now breaks out, nor are complications in other organs wanting, such as a copious exudation in the peritoneal cavity. VWith this series of phenomena simple metritis, under the operation of the causes described in the paragraph on etiology, passes into true puerperal fever, that is, a general decomposition of the blood takes place very speedily. The pulse now becomes very small and frequent, all pain disappears, the features collapse, assume a cadaverous appearance, the skin is burning hot and very dry, the tongue looks as in the most violent form of typhus. The diarrhcea becomes foul, bloody or dysenteric, and the vomiting sometimes reappears. Very bad symptoms are a vomiting of the color of verdigris, and an intense meteorism. The secretion from the vagina is either entirely arrested, or else exceedingly ichorous and decomposed. Gangrenous erysipelas of the integuments is a very common attendant on this dreadful disease. In cases where this putrescence of the uterus sets in as a primary affection, not as the result of a process of decomposition in the course of simple metritis, the signs of an intense constitutional disease are generally manifest already previous to the period of confinement, although the indications may be so vague that it is not always easy to interpret them correctly. The patients have a sickly, 38 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. cachectic appearance, complain of a feeling of languor, frequent shiverings, without much heat. Labor is tedious, the pains are distressing and feeble, the child is often still-born, the exhaustion after labor out of all proportion, the uterus is sensitive. to pressure. If after such preliminary symptoms a violent chill and other symptoms of metritis set in suddenly two or three days after confinement, a malignant puerperal fever may be confidently expected, which most commonly terminates in death after a very short period of time. Phlegmasia alba dolens is one of the most striking and most frequent metastatic inflammations occurring during the course of metritis. It is occasioned by the inflammation of one or more of the larger femoral veins. Amid severe pain, sometimes high up in the limb, sometimes in the knee or leg, the limb swells very rapidly from above downwards, frequently to an enormous size. The swelling is white, shining, painful, elastic in the lower grades of the disease, and at a later stage retaining, like cedema, the imprint of the finger. The motion of the limb is either rendered difficult or impossible. If the superficial veins are inflamed, they appear down the limb like bright-red, painful streaks of great hardness. The termination is either in recovery by a return of the circulation, or in suppuration of the surrounding cellular tissue and other soft parts, whereby life is greatly endangered. In severe attacks of puerperal metritis, the prognosis is always rather unfavorable. Although simple endometritis is of itself a less threatening disease, yet accidental unavoidable circumstances may transform it at any time into a putrid inflammation, or may cause a fatal termination by an invasion of the peritoneum. True puerperal fever is undoubtedly one of the most fatal diseases with which we are acquainted. Treatment. Aconitum is indicated at the commencement of metritis not so much by the local as by the general constitutional symptoms. "Belladonna 30 is indicated by the following symptoms: Disappearance of the milk from the breasts, or suspension of the milky secretion with cord-like indurations; redness radiating towards one focus, with stitching and tearing pains in the breasts. Short, oppressed breathing; anxiety with oppression; distressing drawing, lancing, labor-like pains deep in the abdomen, with painful pressing towards the sexual organs and the anus, and constant urging to stool which cannot be gratified on account of a contracting spasm Metritis Puerperalis. 39 in the rectum (for which Belladonna is almost a specific); discharge of a coagulated, fetid, black blood, or suppression of the lochial discharge; meteorism of the abdomen, without eructations or emission of flatulence, attended with stinging-digging pains in the abdomen, aggravated by contact and accompanied by a continual invitation to hack; burning heat of the whole body, especially on the forehead and in the palms of the hands, with perspiration on other parts of the body, and violent, sometimes only moderate thirst, and occasional difficulty in swallowing; violent pressing headache, especially in the forehead; turgescence of the veins of the head and conjunctiva, with contraction or dilatation of the pupils, which imparts to the eyes a glassy appearance; not unfrequently optical illusions are present, such as sparks, luminous vibrations; photopsia, even amaurosis; headache rendered intolerable by motion and noise and also by moving the eyes, the patient sometimes loses his senses and becomes furiously delirious; sleep is generally restless, not refreshing. If constipation is present it will disappear, after the use of Belladonna, together with the pains in the abdomen. Generally speaking, Belladonna deserves particular attention if a puerperal fever assumes the character of typhus, if symptoms of meningitis or encephalitis become apparent, and the affection originates in a violent paroxysm of emotional excitement." This complex of symptoms does not clearly inform us in what particular case Belladonna is really indicated. We make this remark in order to show how impracticable such a vast enumeration of all the symptoms of a drug is in the treatment of a disease whose symptomatic manifestations are so exceedingly varied. Hartmann has omitted the important symptom of spasmodic vomiting with which an attack of metritis is so apt to set in. In our opinion Belladonna should be given if puerperal metritis sets in with great violence and an intense fever; for symptomatic particulars we refer the reader to our Materia Medica. An important indication for Belladonna is the meteorism which may set in even if no marked symptoms of peritonitis are observed. If peritonitis is present, our chief attention should be directed towards it. As soon as symptoms of suppuration in the uterus, or of deconrposition of the exudation become manifest, other remedies will have to be resorted to. As regards Chamomilla and Pulsatilla, we do not, as Hartmann does, regard them as remedies for puerperal metritis; if either of these remedies is supposed to have cured metritis, all we have to say is that no metritis was present. 40 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. " Nux vomica will frequently be found curative, for the additional reason that coffee which is made use of by women in confinement in such large quantities and so strong, often occasions the disease. (Nux is likewise suitable, if the disease is caused by abuse of Chamomile-tea, provided, however, that the symptoms indicate this remedy.) The prejudice which is even entertained by people of cultivation, that coffee facilitates the secretion of milk, or even makes milk, cannot be removed by anything physicians may say to the contrary, If some of the following symptoms are present, the selection is no longer doubtful: Acute pains in the small of the back or loins; stinging and bruising pain of the abdomen during motion or contact, or when coughing or sneezing; bitter taste and eructations; nausea, even vomiting; dryness of the lips and tongue, slimy or dirty-yellow coating on the tongue; sensation of weight and burning heat in the sexual organs; suppression of the lochia; constipation or hard stool, with burning-stinging pains in the rectum; painful urination or retention of urine; dry, parchment-like, burninghot skin, with thirst, desire for cold drinks, full and hard pulse, anxiety and oppression reflected in the countenance, constant restlessness; the secretion of milk is very seldom suspended, rather increased, causing a turgescence of the breasts, with pressure and tension in the same." We will add that Nux has afforded aid in the less violent and uncomplicated forms of endometritis, but never in the more intense forms of this disease. A characteristic symptom for Nux is the violent inflammatory pain of the swollen veins of the rectum, with exquisite sensitiveness to contact. " Colocynthis is an important remedy in these fevers when caused by a fit of indignation or mortification on account of unworthy treatment, beginning and progressing with fainting-fits, attended with a febrile heat, hot and dry skin, hard, full and quick pulse, sopor alternating with delirium, during which the eyes are kept open; disposition to escape, heat about the head, stinging in the eyes and forehead, dark-red face, yellowish coating on the tongue, bitter taste in the mouth and of everything the patient eats, colic and diarrhoea after partaking of the least nourishment, and pain in the pit of the stomach when touching this part.'" These symptoms are not the most characteristic indications for Colocynthis. If the peritoneum is more especially attacked; if the coat of the uterus is invaded by the inflammation, or if, during the paroxysms of violent pain, the complexion shows the pallor of death, the features become distorted, the skin is in part cool, and in part burning-hot, Metritis Puerperalis. 41 the pulse is quick and there is distressing vomiting with diarrhoea: Colocynth would be much more appropriate. We request the reader to compare what we have said when treating of peritonitis. Veratrum album deserves a preference at the outset of the attack, if the disease sets in suddenly and with great violence; there is fierce vomiting and frequent diarrhoeic stools, the trunk is hot, while the extremities are icy-cold, the face is pale as death and covered with cold sweat, a particular indication is the presence of delirium from the commencement, attended with an unspeakable anguish. In this respect Veratrum is very similar to Colocynth, and is particularly adapted to attacks that set in with the most intense vehemence. These remedies, to which we will add Coffea cruda, Arnica and fiyoscyamus for the sake of completeness, are particularly suited in the lighter grades of metritis, and at the commencement of the severer forms of the disease. We now proceed to point out the remedies that have to be resorted to in the further course of this inflammation and for ensuing complications. Mercurius vivus and solubilis. Simple endometritis is altogether the same process as acute catarrh of the uterus, modified by puerperal influences. These modifications, however, being no less adapted to the action of Mercurius than simple catarrh, the similarity of this remedy is not interfered with. The period for its employment is the appearance of ulcers on the pudendum, hence on the second day of the disease. Without describing the general symptoms which manifest themselves as accompaniments of this stage, we will direct the reader's attention to one general indication. As long as the exudation in the uterus or peritoneal cavity does not show any disposition to putrid decomposition, and aslong as a simple suppurative process prevails, Merculrius is the appropriate remedy. The condition of the ulcers is the best criterium by which the propriety of using Mercurius can be. determined: as long as these ulcers preserve their healthy color, and do not become ichorous or gangrenous, Mercurius may be given, no matter whether the fever is high or only slight. Bryonia alba, according to Hartmann, is indicated by a feeling of emptiness in the breasts, a copious secretion of urine, no suppression of the lochia, (on the contrary, a re-appearance of a bloody lochial discharge,) no pain in the rectum at stool, sensitiveness of the uterus, violent fever, with great restlessness and depression of spirits, painfulness of the thigh when moving it. In our opinion these in 42 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. dications are exceedingly uncertain and insufficient. We consider Bryonia indicated, if the fever is not very violent, the peritoneum is involved in the inflammation, if no decomposition threatens and no ulcers have formed; disposition to sweat, breaking out here and there, but lasting only for a few moments; general languor and inclination to lie quiet; the digestive organs are very much involved in the attack, but there is no vomiting or diarrhcea; meteorism. Compare peritonitis. Rhus toxicodendron is, in sbme respects, similar to Bryonia. It is particularly appropriate if simple metritis assumes a typhoid form without any symptoms of decomposition being present. The typhoid character may be manifest from the very commencement, but as a rule it does not set in until the disease has fairly entered upon its course. The fever is continuous, with a burning heat and dryness of the skin, quick and excited pulse; the sentient sphere is very much irritated; the patients complain of violent headache, feel dizzy and as if overwhelmed with sleep, or they are more or less delirious; the face is intensely red, but the color seems unnatural; the tongue is dry and the thirst excessive. These symptoms may cause us to suspect the approach of puerperal fever. Rhus is likewise suitable if this fever sets in at the outset, or supervenes gradually in the course of puerperal metritis. In such a case Rhus is more especially indicated by two circumstances: first by the appearance of metastatic inflammations of the veins, lymphatic vessels or skin, where a malignant erysipelas or petechiae are apt to break out; and secondly, diarrhcea is very apt to suggest Rhus. If the decomposition is very far advanced, the ulcers are gangrenous, the discharge from the vagina has a fetid odor, the following remedies will be found more suitable. When giving Rhus, we have to see that the reaction is not prostrated and the fever is not completely adynamic. Secale cornutum. No remedy in our whole Materia Medica shows such a powerful tendency to decomposition of the blood as this drug; nor is any drug possessed of a more intimate and more characteristic relation to the uterus. Hence it is the true puerperal fever, the putrescence of the uterus which invites the exhibition of this drug; it is indicated by the following symptoms: The abdomen is distended and not very painful; the discharge from the vagina brownish and fetid, the ulcers on the pudendum have a bad color and spread rapidly; the fever consists in a violent burning heat mingled with almost convulsive shiverings, and with a small, almost intermittent pulse; at the same time we notice great anxiety, pain Metritis Puerperalis. 43 in the pit of the stomach, vomiting of a bad-looking substance, fetid and decomposed diarrhceic stools, almost complete suppression of urine. The skin has a bad appearance, is covered with petechie or miliaria, or badly-colored local inflammations become manifest which very speedily terminate in gangrenous disorganization of the integuments. At times the patients lie in a state of quiet, with bland delirium, and then again the delirium may be of the furious kind, attended with marked anxiety and a desire to leave the bed. Arsenicum album. Hartmann has the following remarks on this drug: " The disease may break out in any form whatever, yet it may exhibit symptoms that may require Arsenic. Such symptoms are: Burning or burning-corrosive pains in the interior of the affected part, with inability to lie on the affected part, and decrease of the pains during motion. Again: excessive anguish attended with a general, rapid prostration of strength, excessive debility, sunken eyes, extinct look, sallow,, livid complexion, sleeplessness at night, restless tossing about, and a sensation as if a burning-hot water were flowing through the veins; or the sleep is disturbed by frightful and anxious dreams. The Arsenic-fever is always of a violent kind; dry and burning heat, intense thirst which is quenched by frequently drinking small quantities of water; dry and cracked lips, phlyctwena around the mouth; nausea, loathing of food, and sometimes bilious vomiting, with violent pressing-burning pains in the abdominal viscera, meteorism; oppressive pains in the chest, dizziness and headache, restlessness, delirium, a small, feeble, intermittent pulse, etc." This picture does not reflect every characteristic feature of the Arsenic-group in puerperal fever. The position of Arsenic in this disease is best learned by comparing this remedy with Secale. Both show undoubted symptoms of decomposition of the blood; but in the case of Arsenic the reaction is violent, painful, still active, whereas in the case of Secale it is almost extinct. Hence, if both remedies are indicated by the symptoms, we may say that the prevalence of severe pain would point to Arsenic. This diagnostic distinction is particularly applicable to existing ulcers and erysipelatous inflammations to which Arsenic is homeopathic if they are painful, and Secale if they are painless and atonic. For further points of comparison we refer to the Materia Medica. Phosphorus deserves honorable mention in this place. Even a cursory perusal of its pathogenesis shows its intimate relation to the female sexual organs. Its curative influence in puerperal me 44 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. tritis cannot be determined a priori without further inquiry. This influence does not depend upon the local symptoms, but is defined by the general phenomena according to which Phosphorus holds an intermediate rank between Rhus and Arsenicum, to either of which it bears a good deal of resemblance, and from either of which it likewise differs a great deal. This can only be decided in every case by a careful comparison of the symptoms. In one form of puerperal fever Phosphorus is preferable to any other remedy, we mean the pysemic form, more particularly if metastatic inflammations take place in the pleural cavity, the lungs, the pericardium, the femoral veins. The violent fever is mingled with frequent rigors, the conjunctiva and skin have a jaundiced appearance, and soon after we observe the signs of pyelmic inflammation in the metastatically-invaded organ. For this reason Phosphorus is likewise the best remedy in metritis if the disease has assumed the character of metro-phlebitis, which it is not always possible to decide with positive certainty. The symptoms indicating such a change are: Slight signs of endornetritis, or disappearance of the symptoms of this disease without any corresponding abatement of the fever, increased painfulness of the uterus with inflammation of the femoral veins, and particularly the above-described febrile symptoms, burning heat alternating with frequent feverish shiverings or rigors. The following remedies may likewise be useful, although the indications for their use are not very frequent: Carbo vegetabilis, Zincum, Piatina, Stramionium. [See Kafka's remarks on puerperal metritis, page 32 of this work. II.] Many remedies have been recommended for phlegmasia alba dolens, although we do not see upon what such a recommendation is founded. We propose: Mercurius vivus, Phosphorus, Bryonia, Rhus toxicodendron, and Arsenicum. Mercurius corresponds to the white swelling of the thigh caused by an inflammation of the lymphatic vessels, the other remedies are indicated in this form of phlegmasia as well as in that caused by an inflammation of the veins. These few remedies will, in our opinion, prove sufficient to effect a cure. [BKehr has omitted three important remedies which are indispensable, if we wish to treat phlegmasia arising from phlebitis, as promptly and successfully as such an inflammation can be cured; they are: Belladonna, Aconite and Hamamelis. H.] Oophoritis, Ovaritis. 45 4. Oophoritis, ovaritis. Inflammation of the Ovaries. This inflammation only occurs during the period when this organ is active, between the age of pubescence and the critical change of life; or likewise previous to the 24th year, very seldom at any other time. The exciting causes are, upon the whole, obscure: it is certain, however, that an inflammation of the uterus during the first week after confinement is very apt to communicate itself to the ovaries. As an idiopathic disease oophoritis is met with among women on the other side of thirty, and' among prostitutes who have intercourse with men during the menstrual flow, or it may be caused by a cold; it is likewise said to occur after medicines that are taken for the purpose of producing abortion. Only one ovary is inflamed at a time. Symjaptoms and Course. We have to distinguish the acute and chronic form. Acute oophoritis sets in with sudden pains in the region of the ovaries; most commonly they are dull and indefinite, stinging and burning, and aggravated by hard pressure. A swelling at this place cannot be felt, and we only succeed now and then in discovering a swelling by an exploration per rectum. The pain sometimes spreads to the adjoining parts, radiates even to the thigh which feels numb, and is more especially increased by sudden motions, not however so as to enable the patients to aggravate the pain ad libitum. Very generally the uterine mucous lining becomes involved in the inflammation which manifests itself with the symptoms of uterine catarrh. There is no fever, or it is trifling; on the other hand various nervous derangements set in similar to those of hysteria; even nymphomania and vomiting may occur. Only in very rare cases oophoritis terminates in suppuration; if no dispersion takes place, the inflammation becomes chronic. In the chronic form the swelling is larger and can even be felt externally; the pains remain, but are inconsiderable and only incline to exacerbate during the menses, during pregnancy and confinement. The menses most generally become irregular, scanty; leucorrhcea is very commonly present; in the chronic more than in the acute form symptoms of hysteria become manifest, more especially an irritable, capricious mood. The prospect of a complete cure is more favorable in the acute than in the chronic form; in the latter the exciting cause generally never ceases to be present and keep up the morbid process. 46 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. Treatment. The scarcity of this disease explains why so few cases are reported in our publications that can be reliably regarded as cases of oophoritis. The affection being almost without an exception without any very great importance, we shall confine ourselves to very general indications regarding the use of the proper remedies. Belladonna is in many respects the most important remedy in this disease. As a rule, this medicine is specially adapted to diseases of glandular organs, more particularly when located in the interior of the body. Moreover our provings as well as practice have shown that this medicine bears intimate relations to the female sexual organs. Oophoritis is pointed at by the symptoms, as may easily be seen by reference to the abdominal group. Hence, Belladonna is particularly adapted to acute oophoritis attended with severe pain. Experience has likewise satisfied us that Belladonna is useful in the chronic form, provided we do not expect any immediate result. Colocynthis is recommended for inflammatory ovarian affections; the symptoms, however, do not justify this choice; nor do the pains indicating colocynth emanate from the ovary. Conium maculatum. Jahr relates a cure of chronic oophoritis effected with this drug; the ovary was very much swollen and had been indurated for a long time. This result and our physiological provings may suffice to recommend this drug. If in addition to these remedies, we mention Bryonia, Sabina and Cantharis, we have named all the remedies that are of use in acute, and, to some extent, in chronic oophoritis. We must not, however, forget Apis mellfica which contains in its pathogenesis u number of symptoms pointing to affections of the ovaries. It is very likely that too much has been expected of this remedy, but we are prepared to assert its efficacy in acute oophoritis from abundant experience in our own, practice. [In acute oophoritis we should not forget to associate Aconite 3 with Apis; the former remedy may be exhibited first, and after the inflammatory symptoms are somewhat subdued, Apis may be resorted to, or both may be continued more or less at alternate intervals. H.] For chronic oophoritis we recommend: Mercurius, China, Platina, Sepia, likewise Ignatia, Sulphur and Staphysagria. The selection of the right remedy is often very much interfered with by the existing hysteric difficulties. From Hartmann we take the following indications: If the affection was caused by disappointments in love and consequent dwelling of the fancy upon sexual things, Ignatia, Menstrual Anomalies. 47 Staphysagria and Acidum phosphoricum may be exhibited. China may be added to the two last-mentioned drugs if onanism is one of the exciting causes. Platina for a continual titillation in the internal sexual organs, compelling, the patient to rub the parts and attended with complete nymphomania; by pressing on the parts, the inflammatory pain changes to a pain as if the parts had been contused or bruised, with anxiety and oppression, palpitation of the heart, stitches in the front part of the head, sadness alternating with excessive mirth. According to Hartmann, Platina in connection with Belladonna is particularly suitable in the case of prostitutes. With Aurum mnetallicum and muriaticum, Clematis and lodiurm, we close the list of ovarian remedies; other morbid conditions of these organs, in so far as they are curable, will yield to the above-mentioned remedies. [In the Allgem. horn. Zeit., May 17th, 1862, we have the retort of a cure of ovarian cyst by Dr. Hirsch of Prague, of which a republication will be found in the 20th number of the British Journal of Homoeopathy. The cyst was the result of an inflamnation of the left ovary, which had been treated allceopathically. The disorder was completely cured chiefly by the use of the Iodine water of Hall, of which the patient took three tablespoonfuls every morning fasting, containing the 48th part of a grain of Iodine. Hall is situated near Linz in Austria; the leading constituents of this mineral water are Chlorides of Sodium, Potassium, Ammonium, Calcium, Magnesium; Iodides of Sodium and Magnesium; Bromide of Magnesium; Phosphate of Lime; Carbonate of Lime, Magnesia, and Iron; Silicic Acid. H.] 5. Menstrual Anomalies. With a view of securing a true definition of menstrual anomalies, we deem it necessary to premise certain observations concerning the normal condition of the menstrual functions. By menstruation we understand a flow of blood from the female sexual organs recurring at regular intervals. It is a sign that the female organism has attained the faculty of conceiving, and depends upon the following processes: The gradual maturing of an ovuluml in the ovaries determines an increased afflux of blood to those organs. If this congestion has reached its acme, the other organs of the sexual system participate in this hyperaemia to such an extent that the blood-vessels become ruptured and a more or less consider 48 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. able discharge of blood takes place accompanied by a sometimes more extensive and at other times more local detachment of the epithelial lining of the sexual organs. While the discharge of blood lasts, the matured ovulum enters the Fallopian tubes, which renders its fecondation possible. A discharge of blood need not necessarily accompany the passage of the ovule into the tubes; otherwise how could a woman who is nursing her baby and does not see the least sign of a menstrual show, conceive again at such a time? That this happens, is a fact established beyond the possibility of a doubt. According to circumstances the menses appear at times sooner, and at other times later. They are influenced by climate; the nearer to the equator, the sooner the menstrual period appears; they are likewise influenced by the mode of living: in cities the menses appear sooner than among country-girls; by the mental capacities: the more advanced the mental development, the earlier the menstrual functions make their appearance. The constitution exerts no particular influence; very robust girls sometimes menstruate very late, whereas feeble ones often menstruate prematurely. According to these circumstances the menses may set in between the ages of 10 and 20 years; in our climate they appear in cities between the ages of 14 and 16, and in the country between the ages of 16 and 20 years. The quantity of the menstrual blood is likewise variable and cannot be determined a priori; stout women sometimes lose a small quantity of blood, whereas feeble and spare-built women lose a great deal. The quantity is from two to eight ounces. Nor is the duration of the menstrual flow the same in all cases. It generally averages five days, but, without being considered abnormal, may last only two, or may be extended to eight or nine days. Sometimes the bleeding stops for a short time and then reappears again. The periodicity of the bleeding likewise varies. By far in the majority of cases it returns again every 28th day. In many cases there is an interval of four weeks between the periods; in a few cases we notice an interval of 21 to 30 days. Four weeks may be considered the normal length of the interval between each two successive turns. The influence of the menses upon the general health is sometimes considerable and at other times none at all. We notice hyperemia of the vagina and of the external pudendum, sometimes with increased secretion of mucus; tumefaction of the breasts with painful, Menstrual Anomalies. 49 knotty swelling of single galactiferous ducts. During the menstrual flow the nervous system is much more sensitive and excitable, whence the following phenomena: chilliness alternating with flashes of heat; headache, hemicrania, vertigo, languor, drowsiness without any ability to sleep; irritated, whining mood; loss of appetite, palpitation of the heart. In addition to these derangements we often see a sickly, gray complexion, efflorescences in the face, margins around the eyes; vomiting or nausea; altered voice. These phenomena usually occur only during the first twenty-four hours of the flow, after which they cease either suddenly or gradually. The total cessation of the menses takes place indefinitely, some women menstruating regularly until the age of 55, whereas others cease to menstruate when they are 40 years old. These differences do not depend upon the time of the first appearance of the menses, or upon the vigor of the individual, upon the number of times a woman has conceived, nor even upon other morbid conditions. The final cessation is not bound by any rule, and may take place quite normally between the ages of 40 and 50 years. It may occur suddenly and completely, or in paroxysms; some periods, even to the number of ten or twelve, being skipped, after which the menses may occur again regularly for months, or a sort of hemorrhage may set in which is again followed by a stoppage of the menses. As a rule the quantity of the menstrual flow is larger as the period of a final cesssation draws near, than in the preceding years. In the previous paragraphs we have only briefly alluded to the most important points. But they show satisfactorily the importance of the menstrual function to the female organism. Hence it is that menstrual irregularities have at all times excited a lively interest among physicians as well as lay-persons, to such an extent that they have been classified under special heads, although, in reality, they constitute a symptomatic manifestation of one and the same general or local disease. The question now is, when, in a general sense, menstruation may be said to be abnormal. The menses are abnormal in the first place if they do not harmonize with one of the previously-indicated periods; they are likewise abnormal if, for some cause or other, the usual duration of the menstrual flow in a given case is either shortened or lengthened. A woman who mellstruates every 21st day, is not considered sick; but we consider a return of the menses every 21st day abnormal, if heretofore they had occured every 28th day. Finally, whether the menstrual flow is to be considered abnormal, may depend upon the influence which 4 50 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. it exerts upon the general organism. A suspension of the menses in the case of a young girl who, after being relieved from the prejudicial influences of school and city-home, goes into the country and there regains her blooming health, cannot be regarded as a morbid condition. We now transcribe, with a few additions and variations, the following details from Hartmann, whose treatment of this subject seems to us excellent. We will first notice his general dietetic rules. "Every attention should be given to the mind and feelings of the young woman; her excited fancy should be controlled, and her nervous sensitiveness and excitable temperament which are so apt to cause disease, should be quieted. For this reason a woman should be treated with kindness and attention, especially during pregnancy and the menstrual period. Every depressing emotion, chagrin,. fright, anger, acts prejudicially upon persons in health, much more upon those who are diseased." We refer the reader to our chapter on hysteria and to our subsequent chapter on chlorosis, where we shall show that a premature development of the mental faculties, and more particularly of the fancy, exerts'a pernicious influence upon the constitution of the growing woman generally, and upon the normal functions of the sexual system in particular. "Woman's material mode of living deserves a closer attention. A wrong system has, in this respect, become a second nature to such an extent that a physician is expected to allow his patients to indulge in their accustomed violations of a proper diet, on which account we invite him to pay particular attention to the following points in the treatment of female diseases. 1) " Women who lead a sedentary life, should be induced to take more exercise than usual, and to rouse themselves from their phlegmatic torpor. This is one of the first requisites of health: frequent exercise in the open air, cleanliness, frequent bathing and washing, and frequent changes of linen. During the menses, every heating exercise and every exposure to a cold should be avoided; likewise heavy farinaceous food, freshly-baked bread; violent emotions, sexual intercourse, emetics, purgatives, baths. This caution need not be carried so far as to compel healthy and robust women to lie down the first two days and even to give up their accustomed walk. Even the drinking of mineral water should be discontinued by patients who are on a visit to springs for their health, unless the discontinuance of the water should entail greater damage than the use of it Menstrual Anomalies. 51 might occasion by its interference with the menses, in which case it is proper to put up with the lesser evil of the two. 2) "The physician should see to it that his patient drinks more liquid than heretofore. Many ladies drink nothing the whole day, except three cups of coffee at breakfast and dinner; if this quantity is diminished, as it necessarily has to be under homceopathic treatment, some other beverage will have to be substituted, such as cocoa, milk, unspiced chocolate, weak black tea, or roasted rye or barley. We know, however, from experience that these warm beverages relax the stomach and bowels, hence the patient will have to drink every day a few glasses of fresh water or very light beer. Any other spirituous or spiced, heating beverages, such as wine, punch, and the various liquors, have to be strictly prohibited." -We cannot forbear offering a few objections to IHartmann's views regarding the use of coffee. As generally prepared and drank by' most women, coffee is undoubtedly hurtful; but this does not apply to properly-prepared coffee that is not too weak and whose aroma is properly preserved. In this shape coffee is a beverage whose partisans are so numerous because it' is the best medicine against many of the morbid tendencies engendered by civilization, and which has a particularly beneficial influence on females. Only let them use good coffee of which they cannot drink large quantities, and the use of which should always be associated with fresh water.'The so-called substitutes for coffee prove in the end more hurtful than even weak and badly-prepared coffee, except perhaps beer which, however, cannot well be drank early in the morning. 3) "A bad habit that is indulged in by many ladies, is eating at any hour of the day. This practice is decidedly injurious to the success of homceopathic treatment, and should be abolished. Order is useful in all things and likewise in our meals, and patients should be given to understand that they must partake every day of a warm dinner at a fixed hour; breakfast and supper may consist of cold articles of food. 4) "Too much sleep, and sleeping too often within twenty-four hours, can only be approved of, if the patients are very weak and anemic; during sleep the body has to be kept perfectly unrestrained and easy, without the least inconvenience from the pressure of the ordinary clothing; otherwise sleep will not exert the quickening influence that is expected from it. Females especially have the bad habit of lying down with a mass of clothes on. This practice not only prevents the body from getting warm, but interferes with the 52 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. free circulation of the blood and thus gives rise to other troubles in addition to those already existing. Tight lacing is another censurable practice which is often the sole cause of menstrual irregularities. In such cases we do not advise to abandon the use of corsets entirely, but simply not to lace too tightly. If the patient is able to sit up and were to dispense with her corsets altogether, she would soon complain of weakness of the back and weakness all over, and would be more inconvenienced by the use of the many strings with which ladies have to fasten their garments, than by wearing loose and easy corsets." In this respect we cannot agree with Hartmann. Corsets, even if laced very loosely, have the disadvantage of supporting the back and occasioning muscular weakness of the back, unless they are worn without interruption. By going without corsets for a time the woman will soon learn to keep her back straight without any such artificial support. If corsets are worn too tightly, they compel the wearer to breathe with the upper portion of the thorax, the lower ribs being not allowed freely to expand on account of the compression exerted upon them. This gives rise to an incomplete respiration, an imperfect introduction of oxygen and a diminution of the elasticity of the pulmonary vesicles. Thus it is that corsets become a co-operating cause of many of the blood-diseases of females. When speaking of chlorosis and tuberculosis, we shall revert to this subject. 5) " The physician will have to inquire whether his patient, as is so often the case in the higher walks of life, uses cosmetics for the purpose of giving more color to her face, or making it look paler by such substances as vinegar, tea, decoctions, lime, chalk, roast oystershells, etc. The same objection can be raised against most kinds of pomatum and perfumes for the hair which, if it requires more fat, had better be greased with beef-marrow. This is a subject of great importance, if we consider that Lead and Arsenic are usually employed in the composition of cosmetics. 6) " Regarding the functions of the bowels, it is of importance that our female patients should never suppress an urging to stool, and that they should at least have one evacuation from the bowels every day. Women are much more afflicted with constipation than men; in most cases they are the authors of this exceedingly prejudicial state of the bowels, sometimes on account of neglect, at other times from sheer laziness, again on account of sedentary habits, and finally because they are ashamed of satisfying the calls of Nature. Menstrual Anomalies. 53 7) "Women should make it a rule to wash their parts, especially if affected with leucorrhcea or other diseases, several times a day with cold water, and during the menstrual flow with tepid water. More recently the Sitz-baths and the vaginal syringe are now in almost general use. These are not only excellent means of relief in many morbid conditions, but likewise excellent means of prevention, and should be found in every lady's bed-chamber. Cold water is indeed the most reliable nervine at our disposal." a. Derangements Attendant on the Appearance of the Menses. " It must be self-evident that the awakening of the sexual life, which is the greatest revolution which the female organism can undergo, is accompanied by phenomena that very often partake of the nature of a morbid process. The normal conditions under which the menses should first appear, have been explained in a previous paragraph. A premature appearance of the menses always implies a feeble constitution and powerful sexual instinct. Hence it is of the utmost importance not to accelerate this period because all the ailments which sometimes befall young girls at this age, are supposed to originate in the tardy appearance of the catamenial discharge. Of course, where the delay is evidently of a morbid character, Nature should be assisted by such remedial means as will promote the menstrual flow. Such morbid phenomena are the more striking, the more sensitive and delicate the young woman who had been reared in the bosom of luxury and ease. Although these ailments may not be very considerable yet their removal often requires the interference of art, Sometimes a judicious diet is sufficient for this purpose, but in many cases medicinal agents have to be used. Conditions requiring the assistance of a physician, are characterized by the following symptoms: Congestion of blood to the head, as indicated by heaviness of the head; rush of blood to the chest, with palpitation of the heart, and sometimes attended with oppression of breathing; sensation of warmth and repletion in the abdomen; feeling of indolence through the whole body; occasional flashes of heat and red flushes in the face; languid feeling in the legs and feet; pain in the small of the back and pelvic region; drawing in the thighs, frequent urg ing to urinate. These symptoms may be regarded as menstrual distresses which are very speedily succeeded by an actual appearance of the menses and disappear with them. If these simptoms continue for a longer time without any menstrual show taking place, the pa 54 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. tient will have to take a good deal of exercise in the open air, use more vegetable than animal diet, more liquids than usual, and spend her time as much as possible in cheerful company. "If the above-mentioned symptoms become more severe and continuous; if the rush of blood is more violent, causing anxiety, palpitation of the heart, constant heat, a restless sleep full of dreams and interrupted by sudden starts; if the face looks bright-red, and the pathognomonic signs of cerebral hyperemia and. congestion of the thoracic organs become manifest: we resort to the remedies that have been indicated for such conditions in their respective chapters. One of the leading remedies is undoubtedly Pudsatilla, especially if the congestive symptoms of the head and chest are accompanied by signs of abdominal and uterine congestion, as if a stone were oppressing the uterus, and the patient complains of chilliness, stretching of the extremities, yawning and other febrile symptoms. Chamomilla and Veratrun may likewise be indicated by a certain train of symptoms. The above-mentioned dietetic rules shold not be neglected while these medicines are used. Belladonna may be added to this group of remedies as one of its most prominent members. Whereas Chamomilla is very seldom indicated, Veratrum and Belladonna will often be required, the former if the functional activity of the heart is very much impaired, as indicated by paleness of the countenance, great chilliness or constant alternation of chilliness and heat, anxious feelings; the latter if symptoms of cerebral congestion prevail, with bright redness of the face, altogether in individuals of full habit. "The so-called anti-psorics here come undoubtedly into play, since this physiological act is transformed into a pathological disturbance only if a constitutional disease prevails whose symptoms are still very obscure and undeveloped. If such a disease evidently exists, it will have to be met by its appropriate remedies, otherwise we may resort to Sepia, Conium, Magnesia and Lycopodium. "If the young woman has reached the age of pubescence and feels otherwise quite well, although the menses do not show the least sign of making their appearance: the physician would commit a great wrong if he were to drench the organism with medicines; his duty will be to leave Nature alone in determining the period for the appearance of the menses, more particularly if the organism shows signs of being backward in its development. It is only if the organism is sufficiently developed and the young woman's age justifies the expectation that the menses ought to appear, that it is Menstrual Anomalies. 55 proper to hasten this process by the employment of suitable remedies, more particularly of the anti-psorics. Nevertheless, we do not commence the treatment with this class of remedies, but give in the first place Pulsatilla and, if the indications are satisfactory, repeat the dose rather frequently, more particularly in cases where the non-appearance of the menses causes, without any other bodily ailments, an excessive nervous irritability, whining, peevish, timorous disposition, paleness of the face and great flabbiness of the muscular tissue. Nuzx ominca, on the contrary, will be found appropriate in persons of an opposite temperament, an irascible, choleric disposition, a full habit, without any decided congestions, redness of the cheeks and turgescence of the body. If these remedies, to which we shall add a few more by and by, prove fruitless, we recommend as the best remedies: Causticum and Graphites, more particularly if the appearance of the menses only seems delayed in consequence of the insufficient efforts of Nature, and the discharge finally takes place in small quantity and then again ceases; Natrum muriaticum and Kali carbonicunm, if the menses do not appear at all, and Ca/earea carbonica, if there is no show, but the whole appearance of the menses indicates a plethoric habit of body. Sulphur is under such circumstances one of the chief remedies, a few doses of which ought to be given before any other medicine is resorted to, more especially if a chlorotic state of the blood is indicated by the patient's complexion. "Among the remedies corresponding to the morbid phenomena which sometimes trouble young girls before the menses first appear, we recommend Sepia and Ccdcarea for the violent hemicrania which sometimes attack such persons even at regular periods; Calcarea and Phosphorus for the violent pains in the back which sometimes resemble spinal irritation; for the convulsive symptoms we give Cocculus and Ignatia; Cuprum is less frequently indicated; for symptoms of anemia we recommend Ferrum and sometimes Arsen. icum? will be found appropriate." b. Suppression or Delay of the Menses, Amenorrhoea. "This suppression either takes place during the flow, or in consequence of causes acting previous to the actual appearance. In the former case a cold may have operated; or cold washing may be the cause; or the feet may have got chilled; or the patient may not have been sufficiently protected by her clothes; mental or moral emotions, vexations, chagrin, anger, fright, or dancing, sexual inter 56 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. course, dietetic transgressions may have led to the suppression. Most of these causes, if operating shortly before the time when the menses were to come on, may cause their retention. A gradual suppression of the catamenia may take place in consequence of deficient nutrition as well as of the abuse of warm beverages and the continued influence of depressing emotions. We have already shown that a change in the mode of living may superinduce a suspension of the menses in the case of yotng women, without leading to derangements of the general health. "The more sudden the suppression of the menses, the more violent the changes arising from such an occurrence. Some of the most prominent symptoms are: violent hemicrania, great anxiety and oppression of breathing, nose-bleed, spitting of blood, congestions of the head, heart and lungs, and the like. In some cases a suppression of this kind gives rise to acute uterine catarrh, metritis, peritonitis. If a physician is called in time, he will of course inquire what gave rise to the trouble, and will seek to remove the consequences of fright, mortification, anger, etc., by appropriatelyspecific remedies. If the physician is not called until some time after the morbid symptoms have existed, the aforesaid remedies will no longer be applicable and the constitutional condition generally will have to be acted upon by corresponding remedies. The remedies mentioned in the preceding chapter under "a" will often be found indicated. "If at the time of the menses they do not appear, and violent abdominal spasms occur, we commend Cocculus as the most suitable remedy, especially if the spasms are accompanied by anxiety and oppression of the chest, moaning and groaning, a paralytic sort of weakness, so that the patient is unable to utter a, loud word, and her extremities have lost all power or are convulsively agitated, and the puise is scarcely perceptible. Cuprum aceticum, or still better metallicum, acts very similarly to Cocculus. It is particularly applicable in typical paroxysms of the most violent kind, consisting of unbearable abdominal spasms affecting even the chest, causing a loathing, gagging, and even vomiting, affecting at the same time the extremities with epileptiform spasms during which the patient utters a piercing cry. "The following remedies likewise deserve commendation: Valeriana, Platina, Ignatia, Belladonna, Magnes arcticus, Mezereum, Digitalis. "If these remedies do not restore the menses, the physician will Menstrual Anomalies. 57 then have to resort to the so-called antipsoric remedies, more particularly Magnesia carbonica and muriatica, Sulphur, Sepia, Zincum, Silicea, Lycopodium, Graphites, Acidum nitricum, which may even be employed if the menstrual suppression causes no further trouble." We do not share Hartmann's opinion in this respect. Medicines should never be given except where actual morbid manifestations seem to indicate their use; the non-appearance of the menses sometimes is a means, on the part of Nature, to increase, or at least to economize the strength of the organism. "In the treatment of delaying menses we have to follow the same rules and maxims that have been laid down for menstrual suppression. A suppression or delay of the menses often causes abdominal spasms and other difficulties for which Pulsatillc is an excellent remedy. We likewise recommend Cicuta, Terebinthina, Zineum (especially when menstrual suppression is attended with a painful swelling of the breasts); Calearea carbonica (likewise for menstrual suppression, attended with marked symptoms of plethora); Graphites (when the menses delay too long, and the patient complains of hoarseness, headache, bloating of the feet, chilliness, bearing-down pains in the small of the back); Natrum muriaticum (if the menses delay too long and are very scanty); Strontiana (if the menses delay too long, and afterwards, when appearing, look like flesh-water and pass off in the shape of coagula); Sarsaparilla (when the menses delay, are too scanty and acrid), etc." These few indications may show that a good Repertory is the best means of securing the selection of the proper remedy. As regards external applications, we do not approve of them; their usefulness is questionable, and in many respects they are decidedly prejudicial. Hot foot-baths are more particularly hurtful; they often exert a very injurious effect upon the brain and heart, not to mention the increased susceptibility of the feet to get chilled which they invariably occasion. If the flow of blood towards the lower extremities is to be promoted, the most efficient and never hurtful means to accomplish this result, is continued and fatiguing walking. Dry cupping on the inside of the thighs is the only palliative means that can safely be permitted. c..Mnstruatio Nimia, Profuse Menses. An excess of loss of menstrual blood, a true menorrhagia, does not occur as often as it may seem to those who complain of it. To constitute menorrhagia, several circumstances have to occur that 58 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. require to be carefully discriminated. The quantity of the discharged blood has to exceed the ordinary loss quite considerably, and then again we have to inquire whether the scantiness of the ordinary menstrual flow is not an abnormal diminution in the present case. The menstrual flow is likewise considered too copious, if it continues beyond the ordinary period, although this need not necessarily imply that the menses are profuse. The morbid chara.cter of the menses is finally and more especially determined by the accessory symptoms, for a copious flow of the menses cannot be considered abnormal. as long as the constitutional harmony is in no respect disturbed by it. All circumstances that cause either permanently or temporarily an increased flow of blood towards the sexual organs, may be regarded as causes of menorrhagia. A'temporary excess of the menstrnal flow may be caused by the influences that have been pointed out as the causes of metritis; a permanent excess is occasioned by onanism, novel-reading, a constant dwelling of the fancy upon sexual things, and the habitual use of heating beverages. A few other important points have to be added. Under certain circumstances a profuse flow of the menstrual blood becomes a real physiological necessity to the body; for instance, if a larger supply of nourishment than the body requires for its normal support, causes a real plethora. This can scarcely be regarded as a morbid condition. A profuse flow is sometimes occasioned by changes in the uterus, such as acute or chronic metritis, and adventitious growths in the uterine cavity. Nursing exerts a very particular influence. As a rule, nursing women do not menstruate; yet it may happen, even in the case of quite healthy mothers, that the menses reappear again prematurely, in which case the flow is often very profuse. This is not a normal condition, although it does not inconvenience all women. Of a threatening character and exceedingly prejudicial are menorrhagias that set in when the process of nursing is continued too long. Accidents of this kind occur quite often in the country, where the women nurse their children for several years for the purpose of preventing conception, not thinking that by doing so they inflict permanent injury upon their health. We must not forget to record the fact that diseases of other organs, or of the general constitution, exert an influence upon the menses. Without considering the influence of diseases which alter the quality of the blood, such as typhus or scurvy, etc., the influence of heart-disease, of tuberculous infiltration of the lungs, emphysema, accumulations Menstrual Anomalies. 59 of fluid in the pleural cavity cannot be denied; it is more especially heart-disease that causes menorrhagia, so that the heart had better be carefully examined in every case of menorrhagia. Finally the cessation of the menses at the critical age is almost always ushered in ly profuse losses of blood. Particulars on this subject may be found under the heading: metrorrhagia. The symptoms of profuse menstruation generally may be quite inconsiderable, being no more than feeble indications of anemia. In most cases, however, profuse menstruation is allied with the syrnp-'tolms of difficult menstruation of which we shall speak hereafter. In treating this anomaly we have in the first place to direct our attention to the causal indications as far as such a thing is possible. These indications are so numerous that we cannot well specify them more particularly in this place. They constitute the cases for which Ilartmann recommends the antipsorics. Where menorrhagia occurs without being dependent upon some more deep-seated disorder, Nux vomnica will be found an efficient remedy, more particularly if the nervous system had become very much excited by disturbing mental influences, the patient gets angry at the least remark, shows an irascible and obstinate temper, starts at the least noise, loses her balance on the most trifling occurrence, wants to lie down all the time, and shows an aversion to open air. Chamomilla is particularly indicated, if the blood looks dark, almost black and coagulated, with drawing, griping pains from the small of the back to the pubic bones, sometimes accompanied by fainting fits, coldness of the extremities and great thirst. It cannot be denied that the use of Chamomile-tea often has an influence over the quantity of the menstrual discharge. Unfortunately this beverage is generally first resorted to for such ailments as precede menorrhagia which is undoubtedly made worse by the use of this tea. Besides Nux vomica Ignatia and China are indicated by such symptoms. The indications for Calcarea carbonica have been furnished by Hahnemann himself in the following brief but exhaustive remarks: "If the menses appear several days previous to the regular monthly term and to excess, Calcarea is often indispensable, more especially if the menstrual flow is excessive. But if the menses occur at the regular period, or later, Calcarea will do no good even if they are not scanty." We add that Calcarea will afford much relief in cases where anemic phenomena prevail, with disposition to congestions of the head or chest. Belladonna apparently acts similarly to the former drug, except that the congestive phenomena for which Bel 60 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. ladonna is indicated, arise from real plethora; the menses are too profuse, not excessively dark-colored and their appearance is accompanied by a pressing downwards, a painful drawing and tearing from the uterus to the thighs. Phosphorus is indicated if the menses delay a tolerably long time beyond the natural term, set in profusely and occasion great debility, weariness and languor, paleness of the countenance, a sickly appearance, back-ache. It is more particularly applicable to the menorrhagia of nursing women. Platina for a painful and too frequent return of the menses, a copious and dark discharge with labor-like pains, more particularly in the'case of sanguine, lively individuals. Sepia has similar characteristic symptoms. Digitalis is indicated if the menorrhagia depends upon a stasis of the blood caused by heart-disease, if the symptoms of passive venous congestion prevail, the face is pale or livid, the skin is cold. For further particulars we refer to the chapter on metrorrhagia where more medicines will be found mentioned. d. _Dysmenorrhlea, Scanty Menstruation. It is just as difficult to define what is understood by scanty, as we have found it difficult to define what is to be understood by profuse menstruation. As a change in the mode of living may induce a suppression of the menses, so it may likewise, by exerting a modifying influence upon the internal development of the organism, occasion a diminished flow of the catamenia. This may occur among women of a more advanced age as well as among younger persons, and it would be highly improper to disturb such a change by medicinal interference. In by far the least pregnant cases scanty menstruation is of itself a morbid symptom; generally it is dependent upon some local affection, profuse leucorrhcea, chronic metritis, uterine displacements, or it may be owing to constitutional disturbances such as chlorosis, hydrsemia, marasmus, excessive formation of fat, tuberculosis, etc. These different forms of scanty menstruation do not, in reality, require a separate treatment; it is identical with the treatment of the constitutional disorder, or else no treatment at all is required because the suppression of the menstrual flow may simply bear evidence to the fact that the organism has no blood to spare for such a function. For this reason we deem it unnecessary to indicate remedies for such a condition of things, and refer the reader to the chapter on chlorosis and, for various particular points, to the next chapter on difficult menstruation. Menstrual Anomalies. 61 e. Ailments accompanying the Menses, Diffcult Menstruation. Ailments of various kinds, sometimes preceding and sometimes accompanying the menses, are so common, especially among the higher classes, that, unless they become too troublesome, they are not complained of to a physician; on the other hand, their diversified forms may make them a source of great trouble, or they may cease for a short time in order to reappear with so much more obstinacy some time thereafter. These ailments may very naturally be classified in three categories. Either they arise from material changes in the sexual organs, a bent in the uterus, retroversion, anteversion, chronic metritis, etc., or else they are occasioned by an excess of menstrual congestion, or finally they may be of a purely nervous kind. Although the first category does not properly belong here, yet we call attention to it in order that their presence or absence be satisfactorily established. The congestive ailments are almost exclusively confined to the pelvic organs, and consist in a variety of pains, sometimes attended with palpitation of the heart, congestive headache, febrile symptoms. The nervous ailments are not restricted to the sexual sphere and very generally involve the whole nervous system. Whereas the congestive ailments abate with the appearance of the menses, and disappear entirely on the second day, the nervous symptoms on the contrary are apt to continue during the whole period. in most cases the causes of these ailments are very obscure. Although they most generally accompany scanty menses, yet they are not unfrequently attendant on profuse menstruation; moreover, although they more commonly affect sensitive, feeble, irritable, delicate and effeminate individuals, yet they are likewise met with among women of a robust constitution and who menstruate regularly. These remarks may show that it would be a futile undertaking to indicate the whole series of symptoms which characterize such ailments. Hence we prefer recording a few of the more important difficulties together with their corresponding remedies. We must, however, caution the reader against supposing that the particulars contained in the subsequent paragraphs are intended to render all further reference to the Materia Medica superfluous. It is proper to ascertain whether the ailments occur before, during or after the menstrual flow. For ailments previous to the menses, if the patients menstruate too profisely, we recommend: Belladonna, Chamomilla, Calearea, 62 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. Lycopodium, Platina, Nux vomica, and if the menses are too scanty: Pulsatilla, Cocculus, Sepia, Alumrina, Baryta. Ailments during the menses, if too copious: Nux vomica, Arsenicum, Phosphorus (the last-named deserving particular consideration), Calcarea carbonica; if too scanty: Alumira, Pulsatilla, Conium maculatumn, Graphites, Sepia, Carbo vegetabilis. Ailments after the menses, which, however, are not often noticed unless we mean the prejudicial effect of a considerable loss of blood: Platina, Ferrum, Graphites, Borax. For the colicky pains the seat of which cannot always be traced with perfect certainty, whether it is the intestinal canal or the uterus, with scanty menses: Cocculus, Coniu9n, Sepia, Pulsatilla, and with a copious flow: _Belladonna, Platina, Nux vomica. For the congestive symptoms in the pelvic organs, if preceding the appearance of the menses: Belladonna, Bryonia alba, Sabina; if accompanying the menses: Phosphorus, Veratrum album, Nux vomica; if remaining after the menses: China, Platina. For distress at thestomach, if very marked, such as eructations, nausea, vomiting, perverted taste, loss of appetite: Pulsatilla, Ipecacuanha, Veratrum, Indium. For the toothache which so often accompanies and precedes the menses, and constitutes one of the most t:oublesome torments of women, if setting in previous to the menses: Aconitum, Chamomilla, Belladonna, Pulsatilla, and more particularly Arsenicumn; if during the menses: Cale. Carb., Sepia, Phosphorus. For hemicrania which generally is present during a scanty, scarcely ever during a profuse menstrual flow. Sepia, Nux vomica, Pulsatilla. Convulsive symptoms may of course vary, sometimes being purely local, at times general, then again tonic and at other times clonic; they may even appear like epileptiform spasms so that they seem much more threatening than they really are. We may consider it as an established fact that the epileptiform spasms which occur at the time of the menses, never partake of the dangerous nature of epilepsy. The most important remedies are: Ignatia amara, Cocculus, Cuprum, Platina, Secale cornutum and Causticum. The mental disturbances belonging in this category, mostly partake of the character of exaltation, for which remedies like Platina, Veratrum albun, Iy/oscyamus, Belladonna, Stramonium, are indicated; states of depression which occur much less frequently, require Lyeopodium or Natrum muriaticum. Menstrual Anomalies. 63 We will conclude this chapter by giving a general hint bearing upon the selection of a remedy for menstrual difficulties: our chief attention should be directed to the conduct of the discharge, whether it appears at the right season or not, whether it is too scanty or too profuse, or whether it occurs normally. These points are essentially characteristic; if the remedy does not meet them, the correspondence with the other phenomena may be ever so perfect, the remedy will not suit the requirements of the case. [Recently a number of drugs have been introduced into the Ma — teria Medica of our School, some of which are being used with great success in various diseases, and more particularly in abnormal menstruation. Aletris farinosa, or the star-grass, is recommended for the preliminary symptoms of miscarriage, such as dizziness, nausea, headache, fulness in the region of the womb, colicky pains. Caulophyllum thalictroides, or the blue cohosh, has been extensively used by homceopathic physicians for painful menstruation, with a scanty flow of blood, or when the appearance of the menses is preceded by severe spasmodic pains, for which Cocculus is generally recommended. We give the Cohosh as soon as the pains commence, and resume the medicine a few days before the next period. This course of treatment has a tendency to effect a radical cure. Cimicifuga racemosa, or the black cohosh, is eminently useful in the various forms of menstrual disorder, menostasia, amenorrhaea, dysmenorrhcea, also tendency to miscarriage, menorrhagia. The resinoid Cimicifugin, first or second trituration, is very commonly usedIn the menostasia of young girls it is generally indicated by headache, hysteric nervousness, pale complexion, debility, loss of appetite, colicky bearing-down pains in the lower abdomen. In amenorrhcea or suppression of the menses from some accidental cause, a cold, etc., the characteristic indications are: congestive or neuralgic headache, febrile motions, chilly creepings, rheumatic pains in the limbs, backach, uterine spasms. In dysmenorrhea it seems principally indicated by the prevalence of neuralgic pains, spasmodic pains in the uterine region, disposition to faint, nausea, headache. In menorrhagia it is useful when the flow is of a passive character, the blood is darkcolored, coagulated, the patient complains of neuralgic pains in the small of the back, dizziness, headache, obscured vision, great weakness. It will be found admirably adapted to the hemorrhages occurring at the critical age. The doses should not be given too small. If given in sufficiently large doses, this medicine will often prevent 64 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. miscarriage. It is chiefly indicated by the sudden appearance of violent bearing-down pains, together with such accessory symptoms as headache, nausea, fainting feeling, etc. Cimicifuga is used by eclectic physicians for leucorrhcea with much success. It greatly facilitates labor, not only by accelerating the process itself, but likewise by preventing the harassing and exhausting pains which so often accompany a tedious labor. Dr. E. M. Hale suggests the use of Cimicifuga as a preventive of difficult labor. In the second edi-'tion of his "New Remedies" he relates the following case: A lady, the mother of three children, was in the eighth month of pregnancy. Her previous labors had been unusually severe, very tedious, painful and accompanied by fainting fits, cramps, agonizing pain, etc., before the birth, and flooding, syncope, and many unpleasant symptoms after the expulsion of the placenta. She took, for nearly three weeks, about ten drops of Cimicifuga first decimal dilution, four times a day. Labor came on at the proper period, but lasted only six hours; was not painful nor difficult; there was no flooding, no fainting and no cramps. She got up in nine days, and had a better convalescence than ever before. We know from abundant experience that it is an excellent remedy for the various ailments incident to the critical age of women. The annoying flashes of heat to which such women are so often subject, and for which we have been in the habit of prescribing Sepia, Sanguinaria, etc., yield much better to Cimicifuga. "In the irritable condition of the uterus," writes the London Lancet, "often observed in patients for some time after menstruation has ceased, or irregular when about to cease, and marked by pain more or less periodical in the lumbar region, Cimicifuga affords rapid relief. In neuralgic pains often met with in such patients, in other localities, it is equally beneficial. Females at the period of life we are speaking of, frequently suffer from a distressing pain in the upper part of the head, recurring with greater severity at night. These cases are very satisfactorily met by this remedy. Pains in the mammae also, whether referable to uterine disturbance or to pregnancy, are relieved by the Cimicifuga very speedily." Collinsonia canadensis, stone-root. This remedy is recommended by some homoeopathic physicians for amenorrhoea, menorrhagia, dysmenorrhcea, miscarriage, and other disorders of the female organs of generation, such as pruritus and prolapsus uteri. It is not supposed to exert a direct specific action upon these organs, but to cure the disorders alluded to by removing the affections upon which Menstrual Anomalies. 65 the disturbances of the sexual organs are depending. These affections are principally piles and constipation. The curative results of Collinsonia have been mostly obtained by means of comparatively large doses. -Gelseminum sempervireus, yellow jessamine. Dr. Hughes writes, in the British Journal of Homoeopathy: "I continue to derive the most brilliant results from this drug in dysmenorrrhcea and after-.pains, when these are spasmodic and not inflammatory. Its power over after-pains is so great that the lying-in chamber is well nigh freed from one of its greatest bugbears. But it is antipathic rather than homceopathic to these conditions, and requires to be given in full doses, from three to ten drops of the first decimal dilution." Dr. Hughes would imply that large doses of Gelseminum are antipathic, and small doses are homeopathic to spasmodic pains. If this is the Doctor's meaning, his doctrine is incorrect. We have the testimony of Dr. Douglas of Milwaukie, one of the provers of Gelseminum, that he experienced severe spasmodic pains "a succession of acute, sudden, darting pains, evidently running along single nerve-branches in almost every part of the body and limbs, sometimes so sudden and acute as to make me start. At one time a quick succession of these acute sudden pains coursed down the outside and front of the tibia for over half an hour, leaving a line of considerable tenderness marking its track. These pains, which seemed clearly neuralgic, gave me the palpable indication for its employment in this disease. And it has certainly been successful. But while it has fully cured some distressing cases of neuralgia, in which Aconite had been fully tried without benefit, there have occurred some other cases in which it has failed and Aconite has succeeded. What is the explanation of this? If we suppose that in some cases of this disease there exists a real inflammatory state of the nerve, and in others a mere excess of sensitiveness, the explanation is easy; Aconite cures the first, Gelseminum the last." But then Dr. Douglas writes further: "A majority of all cases of neuralgia will be promptly relieved by Gelsemninum, but it sometimes requires to be given in pretty large doses, repeated every half hour till the pain is relieved." Hamamelis virginina has been used with excellent effect in dysmenorrhcea and vicarious menstruation. In Hale's New Remedies a few cases are reported where cures were effected with the middle potencies of the remedy. Helonias dioica, false Unicorn, of which we prepare the resinoid Helonin, which is very frequently used in practice, has been prescribed 5 66 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. by homceopathic physicians for prolapsus uteri, a very fine case of which is reported by Dr. Geo. S. Foster of Meadville, Pa., in Hale's New Remedies. It was a case of prolapsus with ulceration of nine years' standing, and was cured perfectly by means of Helonin, after a number of other remedies had been used either without, or with only partial success. Congestive symptoms are prominently present in uterine diseases where Helonias is used, in amenorrhcea, menorrhagia, prolapsus, etc. Senecio aureus, life-root, is possessed of fine curative powers in painful menstruation when the menses occur prematurely and are very profuse; the patient suffers greatly with violent uterine spasms at the time of the menses. We recomrnmend comparatively large doses during the attack. H.] 6. XMetrorrha, ga. Uterine Hemorrhage. We deem it unnecessary to justify the distinction we have drawn between menorrhagia and metrorrhagia; both differ in their essential characteristics. When speaking of the treatment, we have included among the remedies for ordinary metrorrhagia those that refer more specially to metrorrhagia during confinement as well as during pregnancy. An hemorrhage from the unimpregnated uterus is mostly due to the same causes as menorrhagia. Every circumstance that has power to determine an excessive flow of blood to the uterus, may become the cause of metrorrhagia. It may likewise occur in consequence of a number of pathological alterations of the uterine substance and of adventitious growths in the uterine cavity. Iemnorrhages of this kind are so common that every loss of blood which cannot be attributed to the menses, ought to excite a suspicion that it is owing to the presence of material lesions. Metrorrhagia occurs most frequently at the critical age, when it is difficult to distinguish between menorrhagia and Metrorrhagia. Metrorrhagia is generally preceded by preliminary symptoms of longer or shorter duration, indicating for the most part a violent determination of blood to the pelvic organs, such as: a painful drawing and pressing in the small of the back towards the sexual organs and thighs, sensation of heaviness and fulness, of increased warmth and throbbing in the pelvis, also colicky pains; frequent desire to void the urine; titillation and burning in the sexual organs, accompanied by chilliness, heat; an accelerated, soft pulse, sometimes with a double Metrorrhagia. 67 beat (pulsus dicrotus), palpitation of the heart, swelling and sensitiveness of the breasts, leucorrhcea, etc. These symptoms are particularly prominent during metrorrhagia at the critical age. The hemorrhage itself often sets in with chilliness, paleness of the face, coldness of the extremities, sometimes without any special phenomena; sometimes it is a mere dribbling of blood, at other times large quantities of an usually dark, black blood are poured out periodically, which readily coagulates on account of the fibrin it contains, and forms coagula of considerable size even while yet in the uterus. In addition to this loss of blood we notice the most varied symptoms of constitutional disturbance, such as: excited temperament, anxiety, restlessness, labor-like pains, colic, urinary difficulties, vomiting, convulsions, spasmodic laughter and weeping. If the hemorrhage lasts a sufficient length of time, symptoms of antemia make their appearance. The importance to the organism of such hemorrhages should not be estimated too lightly; even the most trifling hemorrhage may, by its continuance or by an extraordinary increase of the loss of blood, permanently impair the patient's health and even threaten her life. Uterine hemorrhage shortly after the expulsion of the fetus, constitutes one of the most important and dangerous events. Where it is not caused by injuries of the uterine parenchyma, it almost always results from deficiency of the uterine contractions. A deficiency of this kind is not always owing to atony of the uterus such as may result from tedious labor or violent labor-pains, or even from general debility; it may likewise depend upon circumstances that render the necessary contractions even after normal labor-pains impossible. Among such circumstances we number a too rapid labor, partial adhesions of the placenta, and the presence of copious coagula in the uterus. We have only to do here with hemorrhages depending upon atony and deficient contractions of the uterus; these hemorrhages alone are accessible to medicinal influences. Hemorrhages of this kind occur immediately after confinement; they must be expected if the uterus remains large and soft. Sleep, immediately after confinement, may become the cause or at least the promoter of hemorrhage; it should not be indulged in. The symptoms of hemorrhage can only escape detection, if the accident occurs within the womb. The os tiner and the vagina are so filled with coagula that the blood remains confined within the uterine cavity, which again becomes distended by? the accumulated fluid. As in every other copious loss of blood, the symptoms 68 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. of anaemia become rapidly manifest, such as pallor of the countenance, chilliness, cold sweat, obscuration of sight, fainting, sopor, decrease of the pulse, convulsions; the uterus, moreover, feels flabby, and increases perceptibly in size. This accident is generally unaccompanied by pain. Hemorrhage occurring at a later period of confinement, is generally less copious; it likewise originates in deficient uterine contractions, or in inflammatory processes, but the prognosis in such cases is unfavorable. Iemorrhagcs of this kind occur more particularly in the case of women who do not nurse their children; the intense stimulation generally caused by the nursing, now reacts upon the uterus. Hemorrhages during pregnancy are sometimes of trifling importance, and at other times more threatening. Some women are in the habit of menstruating several times after conception without detriment to the fetus. It has seemed to us as though children born of such mothers at full term, and having otherwise their full development, were less vigorous and disposed to a variety of ailments. Hemorrhages during the second half of pregancy, if not depending upon placenta proevia, originate in the same causes as those of the -first half, of which we shall treat presently; but they usually are of a subordinate significance, because they seldom threaten the life, or interfere with the further development of the foetus. The most important hemorrhages are those occurring during the first half of pregnancy, for the reason that they mostly precede, cause or accompany a Miscarriage or abortus. Such hemorrhages happen in consequence of the vessels uniting the ovum to the uterus, being torn, either because the natural resistance of the uterus against its contents is too great, or because the resistance of the contents against the walls of the uterus is too feeble. In this way the uterus is excited to premature contractions which may easily superinduce a laceration of the vessels for the reason that in the first three months the ovum is on its whole surface connected with the uterus by means of very delicate blood-vessels. Hence miscarriages take place most easily during the first three months of pregnancy. If the after-birth is already formed, premature contractions likewise lead to the laceration and detachment of the placental vessels. This, however, is of less frequent occurrence, because the contractions affect only a smaller portion of the uterus, and it is moreover well known that the normal seat of the placenta is not the locality usually affected by the contractions, but that they are much more commonly con Mctrorrhagia. 69 fined to the lower portion of the uterus. It is all-important that the circumstances which cause premature contractions of the uterus should be carefully investigated; a miscarriage can only be prevented by keeping all such exciting causes out of the way. The causes of miscarriage either proceed from the foetus in consequence of its premature death, or from the mother. The death of the fcetus is superinduced by intensely-debilitating diseases of the mother, especially a far advanced an emia; next by constitutional syphilis, and finally by violent commotions such as fright. To judge by the changes which are sometimes noticed in the fcetus, it would seem as though certain poisonous substances which will be named by and by, might exert a destructive influence over it. As proceeding from the mother, we have the various circumstances that tend to cause a determination of blood to the uterus, and which have already been named in the chapter on acute uterine catarrh. Plethoric individuals are much more liable to miscarriage than anaemic women, especially if the former are afflicted with profuse menstruation. In their case the hemorrhage is apt to appear at the time of the catamenia. Acute febrile affections and diseases of the heart likewise predispose to miscarriage. Mechanical causes acting upon the sexual organs directly, or transmitting their effect upon the uterus by a general concussion of the system, exert a peculiarly injurious influence; so do depressing mental causes when affecting the uterus unceasingly. It is well known that women who, although again pregnant, continue to nurse their children, become liable to miscarriage on account of the excited condition of the uterus transmitted to this organ from the excited nipple. Lastly we have to mention various poisons which are sometimes resorted to for the criminal purpose of producing miscarriage, These are Sabina, Crocus, Sec(ade cornutum. Sabina is so frequently used as a means of producing abortion, that the Juniperus Sabina which grows in the neighborhood of large cities, is usually found pulled to pieces and deprived of its branches. As regards Secale cornutum, we& know from the history of epidemic ergotism that the women who were attacked by this disease, generally miscarried. In conclusion we have to observe that a woman who miscarries once, retains a disposition to miscarry a second time, and that this second miscarriage is apt to take place at the same period as the former. Thus it may happen that women miscarry nine or ten times in succession, notwithstanding they had given birth to healthy children heretofore. It almost seems as though the uterus, after the normal func 70 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. tion of impregnation has once been interfered with, loses its capacity to again successfully engage in the process of utero-gestation. Symptoms and Course. We have to examine these points more fully, because upon their correct knowledge and appreciation depends the possibility of preserving the lives of both mother and child. In the first three months, hemorrhage is generally the first symptom of incipient miscarriage. As a rule, the hemorrhage at once assumes the form of metrorrhagia, even if the woman had been otherwise perfectly healthy, especially if violent external impressions were the cause of the accident. A mere dribbling of blood at this time is of much less frequent occurrence. At first the patient does not complain of any pain; after a short lapse of time, it sets in very gradually as a dull pain, and increases until it finally assumes the character of real labor-pains; this is likewise substantiated by the circumstance that, during the paroxysms of pain, the blood is expelled in larger quantity. These phenomena are mistaken by inexperienced women, if they are otherwise afflicted with difficult and profuse menstruation, for a return of the menses. In the subsequent stages of pregnancy, metrorrhagia only takes place exceptionally, without a preliminary stage which is determined by the entrance of blood into the uterus whose mouth still remains closed; or by the premature contractions of this organ, or by the death of the fcetus. In the first of these three cases, the patients complain of a dull pain in the pelvis which extends to the back and is increased by motion, by voiding the urine or by evacuating the bowels. The symptoms are frequently associated with slight febrile motions, diarrhcea with tenesmus, urinary difficulties. All these phenomena rarely precede the hemorrhage longer than five days. It commences with distinct labor-pains. The premature contractions of the uterus may be allied to the congestive phenomena just described, but they likewise occur as primary symptoms. In such a case the patient experiences a peculiar drawing pain from the uterus across the abdomen, and spreading with peculiar violence to the small of the back, at first intermitting for hours, and finally only for a few minutes. The general organism does not seem to be affected by this pain. Sometimes the pains intermit even for days; nevertheless, they return again. The more continuous and more violent the pains, the more certainly and the sooner the hemorrhage will occur. Metrorrhagia. 71 If miscarriage is caused by the death of the fcetus, striking precursory symptoms are scarcely ever absent. They sometimes last even for weeks. The patients feel faint and weary, complain of feeling feverish, are remarkably pale, and experience a sensation of coldness in the abdomen and lower extremities. The signs of life that may have been perceived in the fcetus, cease. The patient is very much depressed in spirits, complains of painiin the stomach, increased nausea and distressing vomiting. While these symptoms continue, the pains and contractions foreboding the approaching expulsion of the foetus set in, and the hemorrhage takes place. After the blood has begun to flow the course of the trouble is pretty much the same in every case. If the foetus is separated from the organism of the mother, it has to be expelled. If the hemorrhage is at all copious, the expulsion can no longer be prevented. The course of the difficulty now varies according to the different states of the uterus. During the first months of pregnancy the lower segment is still very rigid, the os tince firmly closed; more force or a longer time is required to open the womb, whereas in the subsequent months the vaginal portion becomes more yielding and dilatable. Hence a miscarriage extends over a longer space of time in the commencement than in the subsequent months of pregnancy; moreover, the hemorrhage in the former case is more profuse. As a rule the ovum, up to the third month, is discharged uninjured, sometimes unperceived, whereas, at a subsequent period, the membranes of the ovum are ruptured, and afterwards expelled subsequently to the expulsion of the fcetus. The constitutional symptoms are preeminently those of acute anemia; even the convulsive phenomena which are not unfrequently present, are only occasioned by the annemic condition of the patient, very seldom by the amount of pain involved in the hemorrhage. Primiparcegenerally suffer most. As soon as the foetus is expelled, the flow of blood generally ceases very soon. But if the placenta has already been formed, the whole of the fcetus is not always expelled, but fragments of the ovum remain in the uterus and, by preventing the full contraction of this organ, cause the hemorrhage to continue. This is so much more dangerous as it is commonly more copious than at the commencement of miscarriage, the danger being still greater, if we are not able to remove the remnants of the fcetus. In this case the hemorrhage may likewise be internal, if the fcetal remnants close up the os tincoe. Hemorrhages of this kind are always more or less threatening, and sometimes endanger life. What we have 72 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. said, shows that miscarriage is least apt to occur in the first three months;'and that the danger involved in the hemorrhage is great — est, if a placenta has already formed, because remnants of the ovum are easily retained in the uterus. The whole course of such an accident assumes a peculiar form, if the uterus firmly contracts round the remnants of the ovum. In such a case the flow of blood suddenly stops and complete recovery seems to have taken place, until the hemorrhlage returns, sometimes after the lapse of weeks, and these hemorrhages follow each other in such rapid succession that it is impossible to mistake them for the menses. A misapprehension of this kind is, moreover, prevented by the anemie symptoms accompanying this condition. In such a case a rapid cure can only be effected by the artificial removal of the remnants of ovum whose spontaneous expulsion is sometimes delayed to a remote period. A similar course takes place in the rare cases of miscarriage of twins. After the expulsion of one feetus the uterus firmly contracts round the other one, and, for a time, the trouble seems at an end, until a second hemorrhage brings away another foetus. In a case of miscarriage the prognosis has to consider a variety of circumstances: the possibility to save the life of the fcetus; the danger to which the life of the mother is exposed by the hemorrhage; the further consequences of the accident, and finally its influence upon the faculty of conceiving anew. As far as the preservation of the fetus is concerned, the prognosis is the more unfavorable, the more copious the hemorrhage and the sooner it takes place, so that, if a profuse hemorrhage sets in during the first three months of pregnancy, the retention of the fcetus can scarcely be hoped for. All morbid processes, especially inflammatory affections, in other,organs, and either causing or accompanying the miscarriage, diminish the chances of a successful issue. The indirect consequences of a miscarriage sometimes tell on the whole future life of the patient. One of these consequences is a high grade of anmelnia, together with the abnormal conditions of the heart, which it often occasions. Chronic uterine affections are likewise very common; so are leucorrhea, chronic metritis, displacements and changes in the normal. shape of the uterus. A number of nervous derangements sometimes remain after miscarriage. The influence of such an accident upon a subsequent conception is often so trifling that it may be said to amount to nothing; many women conceive and abort by turns; as a rule the second miscarriage takes place about Metrorrhagia. 73 the same time as the former. Other women, having once miscarried, never again go the full term of pregnancy; at a certain period a hemorrhage again sets in. This is a very common occurrence after a miscarriage previous to the fourth month, and is almost a rule in the case of a primipara. The general faculty of conceiving does not seem to become modified by miscarriages. Before passing to the treatment of uterine hemorrhages generally, we will add a few more remarks concerning miscarriage. Miscarriage, both as regards the prophylactic and curative treatment of such an accident, is a morbid process which sometimes defies the most consistent treatment of the so-called Rational School. On the contrary, the homceopathic treatment of miscarriage is generally crowned with the most brilliant success. For this reason we have deemed it our privilege to lay particular stress upon a morbid process whose importance must be self-evident. In our own practice we can show the records of a number of cases of threatening miscarriage that were successfully prevented by internal treatment, and where the full term of pregnancy was secured even after hemorrhage and severe uterine contractions had already set in in some of them. Quite recently the wife of a most excellent allopathic physician of this city, who had miscarried nine times in succession in spite of her husband's best efforts to prevent such an accident, was successfully carried through her tenth pregnancy by homceopathic treatment. In the presence of so much brilliant success we have a right to say that we possess the means of preventing miscarriage with an almost unerring certainty. We will now proceed to mention the different remedies that are most commonly resorted to in the treatment of miscarriage, and afterwards review this treatment in a connected series. Sabina. We have shown on several previous occasions that the action of this drug upon the uterus is specifically characterized by congestion often amounting even to inflammation. This fact should not be lost sight of in cases where Sabina may seem to be indicated. If the metrorrhagia is preceded for some time by a labor-like drawing in the abdomen, sensitiveness to pressure, increase of the sexual passion, a more copious secretion of mucus from the vagina; if the hemorrhage is profuse, painful, and the blood is bright-red and fluid, or is discharged in the shape of firm coagula, Sabina is our best simile that will certainly help in most cases, for a confirmation of which fact we can point to our own experience as well as to our printed records. This remedy suggests itself more particularly in 74 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. the case of robust persons of a plethoric habit, who have menstruated at an early age and always were inclined to menstruate profusely. We have already stated in a previous paragraph that the specific action of Sabina upon the uterus is known even to lay-persons, and that this knowledge is made available for purposes of criminal abortion even by married women; the evidence of such a crime has been on' more than one occasion furnished us in our own practice. The relation of Secale cornutum to the uterus is equally constant and characteristic. This relation is not, as Griesselich fancies, de. pendent upon the action of this drug upon the spinal cord; it is immediate, but differs greatly from that of Sabina. Secale tends to rapidly destroy the organic activity, without occasioning any very striking signs of reaction which may even be entirely absent. Hence Secale is particularly appropriate in metrorrhagia unattended by symptoms of reaction on the part of the uterus, or the general organism, without any marked pains in the uterus, in the case of individuals of an anaemic or leucophlegmatic habit of body. Secale is therefore indicated in metrorrhagias occurring at the critical age, or in chlorotic individuals whose constitutions are broken down by debilitating diseases; or in post-partum metrorrhagias depending upon atony of the uterus, or which cause or accompany the miscarriages of ansemic subjects, or which are occasioned by the death of the fcetus. The general character of the hemorrhage will prove a better guide in the selection of Secale than mere symptomatic indications, of which we, nevertheless, proceed to point out the most essential: The blood has a dark color and shows very little or no disposition to coagulate; its discharge is either painless, or else the pain is very vague and undefinable; it flows in a rather uninterrupted stream; the hemorrhage is accompanied by great prostration, fainting fits, palpitation of the heart with intermission of the beats, convulsive movements, cold skin. Secale is likewise indicated in the latter stage of hemorrhages that commence with signs of congestions, and likewise in hemorrhages occurring during the lat. ter term of confinement. Crocus is an important member of this group of remedies, but differing from either of the above. If Crocus is so often recommended for active congestive uterine hemorrhages, we attribute this recommendation to the circumstance that the symptoms of the female sexual organs have alone been considered. They are: Pressure and a feeling of weight, stitches, pressing towards and in the sexual parts, discharge of a dark, tenacious, even black blood, but without any labor-like pains. If, in addition to these symptoms, we consider Metrorrhagia. 75 the general languor and loss of strength, the constant chilliness and a variety of other symptoms, it seems difficult to regard this series of phenomena as an active congestion. A passive congestion, on the contrary, is undoubtedly a reliable indication for Crocus, which is more especially confirmed by the quality of the blood. In general, Crocus is adapted to metrorrhagias at the critical age or which are accompanied by affections of the heart or arise from inpedimients in the portal ciTculation, in which case varicose swellings of the veins of the rectum and lower extremities present specific indications for its use. These symptoms likewise point to Crocus in cases of miscarriage and post-partum hemorrhages, although in the former we may seldom meet with the quality of the blood characteristic of Crocus. We take the liberty of presenting these three remedies as prototypes of the different medicines for metrorrhagia, even if by so doing we should incur the reproach of a generalizing dogmatism. This would, of course, be unjust, since it is the object of this work to lead the reader through general principles to special or individualizing applications, and not to teach the former for the purpose of superseding the latter. We rank in the Sabina-category the following drugs: Belladonna, Chamomilla, Platina, Nux vomica, Calcarea carbonica, lyoscyamus, Ignatia amara, _Ferrum, to which we add these short remarks: Belladonna and Chamomilla are especially applicable in the hemorrhages of lying-in women, with a general excitement of the circulation. Calcarea, Ferrum, and perhaps Pulsatilla, are adapted to the hemorrhages of feeble and anEemic subjects, with excited circulation. Hyoscyamus, if symptoms of convulsion accompany the hemorrhage from the start, more especially shortly after confinement. Ignatia and Platina for hemorrhages with excessive irritability of the nervous system and the general sensorium, especially if the accident was preceded, and probably caused by some violent commotion of feeling or by sexual excitement, Ignatia being more appropriate in the former, and Platina in the latter case. The Secale-category does not comprehend many remedies; at any rate not one of them shows a complete resemblance to the prototype. Ipecacuanha, China, and under certain circumstances Ferrum, Plumbum and Arsenicum are the few remedies belonging to this category. Ipecacuanha is generally appropriate only for post-partum hemorrhages, or after miscarriage, with cutting, colicky pains around the umbilicus, pressing towards the uterus and anus, great chilliness on 76 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. the outside and extreme heat within. China is mostly required after the hemorrhage had lasted already for some time, especially after confinement if the uterine contractions seem to be utterly exhausted, the patient is cold and blue, and a convulsive shock now and then agitates the frame. The choice of Arsenicum can only be determined by the general symptoms, not by the local sexual plienomena. Regarding Plumbum, we transcribe Griesselich's remarks from uickert's "Klinischen Erfahruigen": "Among the worst kinds of metrorrhagias we number those that befall females at the critical age and who are afflicted with hypertrophy of the uterus. If the patients have been long weighed down by severe mental distress, the hemorrhage will prove still more unyielding. Other remedies have often proved futile in such cases. The cases where Plumbum afforded help, happened among women of the higher classes who had attained the age of forty; they had had few children in the first years of their marriage; the metrorrhagia had become inveterate, and had assumed a passive character. Generally the patients had lived well, had partaken of quantities of heating beverages, had led a sedentary life and their constitutions had assumed a preeminently venous tendency; hemorrhoidal tumors had made their appearance, constipation, bloating of the bowels after eating, etc. The metrorrhagia had existed for years, with free intervals of four to six weeks and even longer. During these intervals the patients recovered their strength, but another attack brought them down again. The attack was preceded by a sensation of weight and fulness in the abdomen; slight labor-like pains from the small of the back to the front were experienced, amid which dark coagula were expelled mingled with fluid blood and serum, without any unpleasant *dor; the discharge was increased by motion; a profuse discharge was attended with syncope, yawning and stretching, twitchings and by such other signs of anaemia as palpitation of the heart, a small, intermittent pulse, etc. The hemorrhage was succeeded by a more or less profuse, inodorous and mild leucorrhcea. On exploration the uterus was found to be uniformly distended. Between the attacks the patients looked sickly, almost chlorotic; the assimilating functions were disturbed, the skin was dry, pale and yellowish, with hepatic spots; the patients complained of languor, shortness of breath on going up-stairs, had a sad and desponding mood. The Acetate of Lead, in doses of one quarter of a grain per day, arrested the hemorrhage in several cases and removed the danger of total destruction which threatened the Metrorrhagia. 77 cachectic body, without, however, correcting the constitutional condition." To these statements we add an important observation: Paul (Archives generales, Mai, 1800) has had an opportunity of watching the effects of Lead upon the female sexual organs in upwards of eighty cases; his observations lead him to infer that this metal favors miscarriages and premature births in a most extraordinary degree, and that it very commonly occasions the death of the fcetus. The category of Crocus contains a number of remedies some of which are closely related to Secale. The most important are: Arnica, China, Digitalis purpurea, Lycopodium, Kali carboniculm, Sepia, Kreosotum, Phosphorus, Carbo vegetabilis. Arnica may likewise be required in active metrorrhagia; it is particularly adapted to post-partum hemorrhages, and is known as an efficient remedy for excessive and painful after-pains. For particulars doncerning Digitalis or rather Digitalin, we refer the reader to our Essay on this drug. There is no question that in metrorrhagias occasioned by blood-stasis depending upon heart-disease, Digitalis is one of the first remedies. We are not as yet in possession of more special indications. The cure of a dangerous netrorrhagia which is reported in that Essay, has not yet been interrupted by a similar accident,.it is now eight years. Sepia deserves special consideration in cases of miscarriage; it is.but seldom indicated in simple metrorrhagia. At all events it is one of our most important remedies as a preventive of miscarriage. Whereas Sabipa is especially adapted to active, plethoric and robust constitutions, Sepia responds to nervous irritability associated with a quick circulation; it is such conditions of the system that so often give the first impulse to miscarriage and are associated with obstruction in the abdominal circulation. Reisig recommends Sepia in miscarriage between the fifth and seventh months, if symptoms of abdominal plethora are present; Kallenbach relates several cases where Sepia had a good effect, the following symptons being present: rush of blood to the head and chest, sensation of weight in the abdomen, swelling of the hemorrhoidal vessels, irritable temper, disposition to syncope. While these symptoms prevail, the movements of the foetus grow weaker until they finally cease altogether and miscarriage threatens, most probably provoked by apoplexy of the foetus consequent upon uterine congestion. Experience has demonstrated the curative virtues of Sepia as a preventive of miscarriage in so many cases that it must be owing to indolence if our physicians do not report more cases of ,78 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. cure than they have done, with carefully and distinctly drawn outlines. Lycopodium is likewise recommended as a preventive of miscarriage, but has not the same practical effect as Sepia. Lycopodium is more particularly suitable for feeble, worn-out individuals afflicted with bad.digestion, chronic gastro-intestinal catarrh, obstinate fluor albus, symptoms of venous congestion in the extremities and abdomen, varices on the legs and private parts, hemorrhoids, liver-complaint, splenetic engorgements. Such symptoms are not often met with in young persons, on which account Lycopodium is preeminently suitable for middle-aged women. It is of especial value in the metrorrhagias of the critical period, if the above-described symptoms indicate this drug. According to Hartmann, Kreosotum is suitable if a quantity of dark blood is discharged, succeeded for a few days by an acrid-swelling, bloody ichor causing a gnawing-itching and smarting of the parts, after which the flow of blood recommences mingled with coagula. At the same time the head feels very much distressed. Such symptoms suggest the presence of malignant disorganizations of the uterus: however, they may likewise occur at the critical age or during confinement without any perceptible organic alterations..It would lead us too far if we were to particularize the symptomatic indications for more remedies; it may be well, however, to classify the remedies we have named, in accordance with the distinctions which we have pointed out as characteristic features of the various kinds of metrorrhagia, Hemorrhages of the unimpregnated uterus previous to the critical age, require: Belladonna, Platina, Nux vomica, Calcarea carbonica, _Iyoscyamus, Ignatia, Ferrum; very rarely Sabina, Sepia, Phosphorus; hemorrhages at the critical age require: Platina, Secale, China, Plumbum, Arsenicumr, Digitalis, Lycopodium, Kali carbonicum, Kreosotum, Carbo veg., Crocus. For post-partum hemorrhages we recommend: Sabina, Belladonna, Chamomnilla, Bryonia, H yoscyamus, Secale, Ipecacuanha, China, Arnica. Hemorrhages during pregnancy require the remedies that will be presently named for miscarriages. In treating miscarriages we have to keep two things in view, namely the prevention of the hemorrhage by general means, the arrest of the hemorrhage, and the management of the consequences of hemorrhage in accordance with general principles. It is undoubtedly possible to prevent miscarriage; the case of the Metrorrhagia. 79 Doctor's wife to which allusion was made in a previous paragraph, will be accepted as evidence of such a fact. The nature of the prophylactic treatment is more especially determined by the consti-. tutional symptoms of the patient. If the patient is an anaemic, feeble, pale woman, Pulsatilla, Ferrum, China have to be prescribed in not too frequently repeated doses; if the anemia is attended with disposition to congestion, Calcarea carbonica is preferable. If the woman had miscarried several times, it is best to give the previously-mentioned remedies about four weeks before the term when the miscarriage is expected to take place, but neither too low nor too frequently; perhaps a few drops every three days, and to continue this treatment until at least four weeks after the term. We avoid strong attenuations lest the medicine should produce primary effects. The remedies proposed for anaemia should not be continued at the time when the miscarriage is expected; at such a period Calca.rea, Sepia or Sabina are preferable each as the patient's personality may indicate. Regarding the necessity of absolute rest in order to prevent a miscarriage, views differ a great deal. It is certainly well for the patient to avoid all physical and mental excitement, but careful and slow exercise in the open air cannot do any hurt, less, at any rate than to constantly be lying down. If this practice is excusable in the case of weakly, nervous individuals, it is certainly inexcusable in the case of plethoric, robust and quick persons. Nor can a scanty, not very nourishing diet be adopted as a rule, for in anaemia we are called upon to improve the composition of the blood by a suitable mode of living; whereas truly robust women are benefitted by a sort of starvation-cure, because they are tormented by a voracious appetite during the first months of their pregnancy. Of greater importance than all these details is the clothing of pregnant females. As a matter of course every tightfitting garment should be avoided; if it does not directly interfere with the portal circulation, it certainly interferes with the oxygenation of the blood in the lungs. This point, generally speaking, is not sufficiently heeded. Moreover, the strictest abstemiousness is indispensable from the moment that conception has become an established fact. The use of coffee should likewise be forbidden in the strictest manner. It is much more difficult to prevent the vomiting which, on account of the extraordinary strain on the abdominal muscles which the vomiting occasions may easily give rise to obstructions of the circulatiou. As yet we have no remedy that can be regarded as specific against the vomiting of pregnant females, 80 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. and it is difficult enough in any given case to select a remedy, for the reason that all cases look so very much alike. All we can do is to experiment, and to give Belladonna, lodium, Veratrum, Cuprum, Pulsatilla and Sepia, the choice of any special remedy, being of course determined by the constitution, the accessory symptoms, etc. By employing these prophylactic means we often succeed in carrying the patient through the full term of pregnancy. Of course we cannot promise success in every case. The treatment of a miscarriage begins with the commencement of the hemorrhage and the uterine contractions. In almost every case where the appearance of the blood is the first morbid symptom, Sabina will prove the right remedy, whether pains are present or not. We have often succeeded in arresting with this remedy an uterine hemorrhage that had already become very copious. We doubt whether any other medicine will act more promptly and satisfactorily at this period. Belladonna ranks next to Sabina. It is indicated, if the hemorrhage commences with violent colicky pains and a sensation in the pelvis as if pressure were made from above downwards, and as if the sexual organs would be pressed out; at the same time there is a good deal of vascular excitement. Opium is recommended, if a miscarriage is threatened in consequence of fright. If the,hemorrhage is preceded for some time by distinct laborpains, Pulsatilla, Belladonna, Secale cornutum may be tried in order to arrest the contractions if possible. If the patients are feeble, with worn-out constitutions, and the blood has begun to flow, Secale cornutum is preferable to Sabina. Crocus is seldom appropriate at the commencement of the hemorrhage. The cases where the miscarriage is caused by the premature death of the foetus, may not require any medicinal aid previous to the setting in of the hemorrhage, when Secale will most likely prove the most suitable remedy. If the above-mentioned remedies do not prevent the miscarriage, and if the os-tince dilate more and more, it is advisable not to give too powerful doses, and to calmly await the period when the fretus will be expelled; for this event can probably only be hastened by manual interference; it is moreover very questionable whether at this period the hemorrhage can be modified by internal treatment. After the expulsion of the foetus most of the above-mentioned remedies that have been recommended for simple metrorrhagia, come into play, especially: Sabina, Belladonna, Crocus, Secale, Ipecacuanha, Chamomilla, China, Hyoscyamus. Carcinoma Uteri. 81 Although we do not believe that a miscarriage can be prevented by keeping the patient all the time in a horizontal posture, yet this posture becomes indispensable as soon as the hemorrhage has commenced. Even after the hemorrhage has been arrested, the patient should be kept quietly on her back for a couple of days. If a miscarriage has taken place, the patients will have to be treated like women in confinement, even with more care, for a return of the hemorrhage, metritis, prolapsus of the uterus are apt to take place. Above all we have to make sure that no fragments of the foetus have remained in the uterus; the worst consequences of the miscarriage are sometimes caused by such an oversight. [Besides the medicines recommended by Baehr for the arrest of uterine hemorrhage and the prevention of a miscarriage, we often make use of the following with perfect success: Aconitum, if the pulse is full and bounding, the patient experiences a sensation of fulness and heaviness in the Uterine region, and drops of blood have already begun to trickle down. We give the lower potencies. In active uterine hemorrhages caused by a sudden concussion, a violent strain, or subsequent to the expulsion of the foetus, Aconite may likewise help to arrest the hemorrhage. The pulse is full and bounding or else the opposite, the patient complains of headache, the cheeks are flushed, the skin is warm and dry or else cold and covered with a clammy perspiration; the action of the heart is often disturbed, there is a tremulous fluttering of the heart, less frequently tumultuous beating. Erigeron canadense, an alcoholic solution of the oil, often helps in uterine hemorrhage, if the blood is lumpy and dark-colored. Trillium pendulum is likewise much used both in the form of an alcoholic tincture and watery infusion. Small doses will not answer. Hamamelis virg. has been used with much success in passive venous; and likewise in the more active form of arterial hemorrhage. Hemorrhages brought on by mechanical concussions of the uterine region, blows, a fall, etc., require the use of Arnica, lower potencies,, sometimes in alternation with Aconite. II.] 7. Carcinoma Uteri, Cancer of the Uterus. In by far the majority of cases this disease occurs beyond the age,of forty, and is very seldom met with in women of a less advanced age. Its origin cannot be accounted for upon well established pri - ciples; feeble as well as robust, married as well as unmarried women 6 82 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. are attacked by this terrible destroyer. Cancer of the uterus is one of the most frequently occurring forms of carcinoma, and not unfrequently runs its course as a solitary cancer. It is only in rare cases that it breaks out in addition to cancerous degenerations of other organs. The most ordinary form is medullary cancer, whereas scirrhus and alveolar cancer are very rare; epithelial cancer is a little more frequent. The medullary cancer usually commences at the vaginal portion of the uterus as a very firm, rugged infiltration, whence it spreads to the fundus and to adjoining organs, especially the bladder and rectum. The less firmness it possesses, the sooner it becomes converted into pus or ichor, in consequence of which enormous destructions of tissue may take place. Epithelial cancer always commences with cauliflower-excrescences at the os tincae so that these excrescences seem to have taken the place of the os, or at any rate coalesce with it. The excrescences seem to grow out of the papillae of the os; at first they resemble condylomata and afterwards sprout like a fungus, with marked vascular development. As the fungoid growth increases, the elements of, epithelial cancer unite with the former and the mass decays and changes to ichor. It is not certain whether these excrescences are really carcinomatous at the outset; at any rate, the fact, that they have been successfully extirpated, throws doubt on the correctness of the cancer-hypothesis. Ilartmann relates a form of disease the carcinomatous nature of which is doubtful, we mean the phagedsenic ulcer of the uterus. It likewise emanates from the vaginal portion, but the ulcerative process is not preceded by the deposition of a firm, pseudo-plastic layer or infiltration; the uterine tissue surrounding the ulceration is sound, or else softened, yellow or reddish-brown. The disorganization may gradually spread to the walls of the uterus and vagina, to the rectum, bladder and peritoneum. Carcinoma of the uterus is frequently mistaken at the commencement for menstrual disorder, leucorrhcea or chronic metritis. The first symptoms usually are menstrual derangements, cessation or a more frequent return of the menses, or in the place of the menses we have irregular hemorrhages and leucorrhcea. The mistake is made the more easily if the patient has not yet reached the critical period, so that these changes may be set down as results of a physiological cessation of the catamenial secretion. If the patient has passed through the critical period, a sudden flow of blood takes place, at first resembling the menstrual flow, but soon increasing to Carcinoma Uteri. 83 a true hemorrhage. In the beginning the patient often complains only of a feeling of weight, drawing in the pelvis, a pressing towards the sexual organs, or the pains are excited by bodily motion, a concussion, sexual intercourse, touch. An examination shows the vaginal portion harder than in the normal condition, of unequal resistance, swollen, misshapen, rugged and knotty, sensitive to pressure and readily bleeding; the lips of the os tince look puffy and notched, the os is patulous. In the course of the disease pains set in, which are at first vague and occur only now and then, but afterwards become more severe and finally, especially at night, exceed-'ingly violent, pressing, stinging, lancinating, burning, not confined to the region of the uterus, but spreading to the small of the back and thighs. Characteristic are the more or less violent burning and *stinging-boring pains over the pubic bones and in the small of the back, along the hips and thighs, interfering with walking and even sitting; very often a burning pain is continually felt deep in the pelvis, accompanied by fugitive stitches darting through the uterus. The neighboring lymphatic glands are generally infiltrated and painful. At the beginning of the trouble a serous or slimy secretion flows from the vagina, having but little smell; more usually the discharge is copious, of a brownish-red, suspicious-looking color, having a horrid smell and excoriating the skin. The bleeding becomes more and more frequent and copious, the blood being mixed with detached portions of tissue. These hemorrhages consume the strength of the patient in a very short.time. At this stage of the disease the ichorous dissolution of the carcinoma progresses very rapidly. An examination reveals the funnel-shaped ulcer and the soft, readily-bleeding excrescences; the vagina likewise is often very much narrowed by the cancerous infiltration. The patients show the imprint of the carcinomatous cachexia, together with the symptoms of a high grade of anemia. The disease generally lasts for years, calculating from the first manifestation of distinct symptoms, and without allowing for the influence of special circumstances, such as confinement, which is one of the most pernicious occurrences that can happen to a woman afflicted with cancer of the womb. It is inconceivable how it is possible for the organism to bear up for so long a time under a destructive malady like cancer, without perishing. Cauliflower-excrescences seldom beget symptoms different from those of carcinoma, and the pains are equally intense. On the other hand, however, life is less rapidly destroyed by the former, because they are not so speedily converted into ichor, and the destruction 84 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. of tissue does'not spread so far. Hemorrhages take place more readily from cauliflower-excrescences than from carcinoma. Treatment. No more than we reject the possibility of a cure of carcinoma generally, do we believe that carcinoma of the uterus is an incurable disease,although it is difficult to obtain certainty in this respect. A cure is only possible as long as the carcinoma has not spread too far, and has not yet become converted into ichor. In such a case the diagnosis is still uncertain, for sensitiveness and an uneven swelling of the os tince do not constitute carcinoma; even a fetid discharge from the vagina does not settle the diagnosis. In the stage of dissolution every attempt at a radical cure is unsuccessful, and all we can do is to mitigate the patient's distress. A number of remedies have been indicated for carcinoma of the uterus, that have only a partial affinity to this disease, and are, for the most part, suitable only for the various accessory affections accompanying the cancerous destroyer. An enumeration of all these remedies would only lead to confusion; hence we only mention those that can be employed against cancer generally. Our first remedy is: Kreosotum. Kurtz recommends this remedy when the following symptoms are present: Obstinate ]eucorrhoea during frequently recurring metrorrhagias, with aching or pressing pains and a gradually appearing fetid discharge of a serous fluid or a bloody ichor. This is attended with burning or lancinating pains in the small of the back and loins. When standing she experiences a sensation as of a weight in the pelvis; coition is painful; all the symptoms are worse at the time of the menses. On examination the vagina is found hot, the interstices of the mucous lining enlarged, the follicles are hypertrophied, the vaginal portion of the uterus is swollen, hard, the os tince is garnished with small, wart-shaped or bunchy cauliflower-excrescences. Ilartmann describes the following group of symptoms: Electrical stitches in the vagina, as if proceeding from the abdomen, causing the patient to start; voluptuous itching in the vagina, with burning and swelling of the external and internal labia; hard nodosities at the cervix uteri; ulcerative pain during coition; the menses appear from four to ten days too soon, and continue for days, with discharge of a dark, coagulated blood, pains in the small of the back and subsequent discharge of a pungent and bloody ichor; gnawing, itching and smarting in the parts; the menses stop for hours and days, but afterwards return again in a more fluid form and attended with:violent colicky pains. The.press-.................................................................................. Carcinoma Uteri. 85 ing downwards and the abdominal spasms continue after the menses, more especially in the groin and pelvic region; bleeding from the uterus and a continual corrosive leucorrhcea are not wanting. The pains are worse at night. Sensation of fainting on rising, with a peevish and desponding mood, and livid complexion. Kurtz describes cauliflower-excrescences, Hartmann true carcinoma. Of the former several cases of cure are reported in our books, of the latter inot any, or at least only palliative results. It is certain that Creosotum has not answered the expectations that Wahle's recommendation had excited in our minds. A weak local application of Creosote often does more good than the internal use of the drug. Arsenicum album has been given with excellent success in carcinoma uteri not so much on account of the specific action of Arsenic upon the sexual organs, which is rather inconsiderable and hence devoid of any marked significance, as on account of the remarkable correspondence of Arsenic with the general phenomena of a carcinomatous dyscrasia. Arsenic can only be resorted to after the whole organism reflects the plcture of a cancerous disease. However, it only palliates the severe pains and the sleeplessness, and perhaps modifies the profuse metrorrhagia, which occurs every now and then in the course of the disease. Nitri acidum is symptomatically indicated in carcinoma uteri, as it is in many other inveterate dyscrasic conditions of the organism. The most important symptoms are: Irregular menses, they sometimes remain suspended for weeks and then appear again at short intervals; between the menses copious leucorrhcea of a badly-colored, brownish appearance and offensive odor. The patient looks worn, feels nervous and is depressed in spirits. Obstructions in the portal circulation, such as hemorrhoids, indicate this drug. Acidum nitricum can, however, only be used as an intercurrent remedy at the commencement of the disease; if ichorous dissolution has commenced, this drug is no longer of any use. Graphites. The local symptoms of this drug point to carcinoma uteri not any more than those of Arsenic. Out of respect for Wahle, who recommends this drug, we give the symptoms to which, according to Wahle and Hartmann, this drug corresponds: The vagina is hot and painful; swelling of the lymphatic glands, some of which are as large as small hazel-nuts; the neck of the uterus is hard and swollen, on its left side there are three hard little nodes of various sizes and consisting of several detached tubercles which cause an acute pain and have the appearance as if they might be 86 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. converted into cauliflower-excrescences; when rising, sensation of a heavy weight deep in the abdomen, with an increase of the pains and great weakness and trembling of the lower extremities; at the time of the menses, which appear every six weeks, the pains are worse, shortly previous to, and during the menses; the blood is black, lumpy and smells very strongly; constant complaint as if a lump of lead were lying in her abdomen, with violent lancinating stitches in the uterus, darting into the thighs like electric currents; the pains are always burning and lancing; frequent lancinating stitches in the uterus, darting into the thighs; not much appetite; constipation from two to four days, followed by stool with much pressing; livid complexion; frequent chilliness, without any subsequent heat or sweat; feels sad, anxious, desponding; pulse frequent and hard. Conium maculatum is powerfully related to the female organs, but has no specific affinity to carcinoma; the menses are. very much diminished, nor has it any hemorrhage from the uterus. We do not see why Conium should be so universally recommended for carcinoma uteri; moreover, there is not a single case on record substantiating the curative virtues of Conium in this disease. It can at most only be used at the beginning, when the diagnosis is still uncertain. Nor do we see upon what grounds many other remedies have been recommended for carcinoma uteri, Thuya occicentalis for instance, which is recommended simply on account of the wart-shaped excrescences, or lodium, Carbo animalis, Aurum, Silicea, Sabina, etc. Sepia may perhaps do some good in this disease. If we expect these medicines will modify the morbid process to some extent, we shall soon find that their influence is uncertain and questionable. For the hemorrhage which is one of the most dangerous incidental symptoms of uterine cancer, we refer to the remedies that have been recommended for menorrhagia and metrorrhagia. The conduct of the patients, outside of the use of medicines, is of the utmost importance. Their anoemic appearance renders a highly nutritious diet indispensable, perfect cleanliness is likewise needful to their comfort; nor should injections of water into the vagina ever be omitted. [The use of disinfectants in this disease is indispensable; one of the best disinfecting agents is the Permanganate of Potassa to which attention has already been called when speaking of stomatitis and scurvy of the gums. I-] Various Morbid Conditions in the Sexual System. 87 8. Various Morbid Conditions in the Sexual System of the Female. ~ Climaxis, Critical Age, Change of Life. The physiological involution of the uterus or the cessation of the faculty of conceiving is attended in almost every woman with more or less marked derangements which, however, cannot be regarded as morbid conditions any more than the ailments announcing or accompanying the appearance of the menses. If the derangements alluded to are disproportionately severe and troublesome, we have of course to regard them as morbid affections requiring medicinal aid. A common complaint at the critical age is the flooding. Before interfering medicinally, it is always best to first inquire whether it is a disease. This question is best determined by the general health of the patient; if this is not impaired by the flooding, medical treatment is not called for. We often see robust women lose a quantity of blood at intervals of six to sixteen weeks and longer, but instead of being made sick by such losses, they get, on the contrary, rid of all sorts of congestive symptoms by which they had been tormented heretofore. Other women, on the contrary, after such flooding exhibit signs of extreme debility and anmenia, which shows that the loss of blood is not a normal physiological phenomenon. The loss of blood may always be said to be abnormal if it occurs more frequently than the menses. The proper remedies are pointed out in the chapters on Menstrual Irregularities and Metrorrhagia. Other abnormal conditions may arise from the disturbances caused by stasis of the blood. As a matter of course, the organism, after the naturul cessation of the menstrual flow, has gradually to restore the equilibrium of the circulation, and we seldom meet with a woman in whom this restoration takes place without any signs of disturbance. It is most frequently the abdominal organs that suffer, first the liver, next the stomach and kidneys; piles not unfrequently make their appearance. The principal remedies for these derangements are: Sepia, Belladonna, Lycopodium, Nux vomica andSulphur. The heart, lungs or head are less frequently affected by these congestions, for which Hartmann recommends Crocus. As a rule the remedies for these congestions are the same as those recommended for hyperemia of the brain, [more especially Aconite, Veratrum viride and Ciinicifuga racemosa. For the sudden flashes of heat to which such patients are liable, we recommend beside the remedies that are usually resorted to, such as Sepia, Sanguinaria, etc., Veratrum vir. 88 Diseases of the: Female Sexual Organs. and Cimicifuga. For congestions of the heart, Aconite, Digitalis and Cactus may be requirec. H.] Prolapt'us uteri, which is always more or less occasioned by a relaxation of the vaginal mucous lining, can scarcely ever be cured ^by the exclusive use of internal remedies, and it would be wrong to expect such a result without at the same time resorting to mechanical means. Hartmann recommends as adapted to such conditions: Arnica, Mercurius, Nux vomica, Sepia, Belladonna, Aurum and Calcarea carbonica; we confess, however, that we have never seen the least curative effect from any of these remedies. [Cimicifuga, ilamame is and itelonias are employed with more or less success, most generally in connection with pessaries and supporters. H.J Sterility depends upon the most diversified conditions of the system. Most commonly it is due to a disharmonious degree of excitability in the man and woman. Generally this want of harmony is owing to the dissolute life which the man may have led before his marriage, and by which he may have reduced his sexual powers below the point of normal action. It may likewise be the woman's fault, if she had indulged in self-abuse. In such cases medicines are of very little use, whereas proper hygienic rules may accomplish a great deal of good. Above all things sexual intercourse should be indulged in very moderately. If the woman is really suffering, her troubles will have to be met by appropriate medicinal treatment. IIartmann has the following brief advice: If the sterility is caused by an excess of sexual passion on the part of the woman, Platina and Phosphorus are the most promising remedies. If the menses are suppressed, we give Conium maculatum; if they are too profuse, Mercurius, and at the same time too early: Natrum mnuriaticumn, Calcarea carbonica, Acidum sulphuricum, Sulphur; if the menses delay: Graphites and Consticum; if they are too scanty: Ammonium carbonicunm. If husband and wife meet normally, and no conception takes place, Hartmann advises them to take frequent doses of Sabina or Cannabis. So far as we know, no particular resuits have been obtained by this treatment, and we doubt very much whether the remedies which Hartmann advises can do much good. On the contrary, in our opinion the remedies for menstrual irregularities or for the other morbid conditions of the sexual organs, ought to be resorted to in treating sterility. This defect can only be removed, if both husband and wife endeavor to avoid with scrupulous care every thing that might have a tendency to prevent conception. Pruritus vulvce, itching of the pudendum, is symptomatic of many Various Morbid Conditions in the Sexual System. 89 more or less acute diseases of the sexual organs, likewise at the commencement of pregnancy, both among young women as well as among those who are of a more advanced age; very commonly it precedes the appearance of the menses for a few days. Under such circumstances the trouble is not so very distressing, and does not require any special treatment. The rea,. pruritus is generally met with among older females shortly before and after the critical cessation of the menses, more especially if they are unmarried. In their case the itching is horrid, deprives them of sleep and causes a variety of nervous ailments; yet an inspection does not reveal any abnormal symptoms, except perhaps a greater dryness of the vaginal mucous membrane. The trouble often continues unceasingly for months. Most commonly, however, such individuals are affected with hemorrhoidal swellings, and the idea suggests itself that the itching may perhaps be caused by an engorged condition of the veins in the vagina. Among the remedies for this inconvenience Caladium seguinurn is the most certain and efficacious, as we are able to assert from personal experience. Moreover, we may derive benefit from Coniurn maculatum, Lycopodium, Platina and Sepia. [If the parts are very much swollen and engorged with blood, and the itching and burning are very great, we have have given with perfect relief Aconite and Belladonna in alternation; sometimes we have derived benefit from the external use of ]anamnelis. If an inspection through a glass reveals the presence of a fine fungoid herpes on the parts, we use a weak solution of the Sulphite of Soda as an external application. One of Dr. Dewee's favorite local applications was a solution of Biborate of Soda. Injections of dilute cider-vinegar are also resorted to. IH.] L Neuralgia of the Uterus. Although this affection has been variously alluded to in the different chapters on menstrual irregularities, yet we deem it useful and expedient to transfer the following more compact picture of this disease from Kafka to our pages: Neuralgia of the uterus consists in a variety of painful sensations in the uterus, previous to, or at the commencement or during the course of the catamenial discharge. As long as these pains are not excessive, we designate this condition as painful or difficult menstruation. If the pains reach a high degree of intensity, they become colicky, and we describe them as menstrual colic. If these pains appear between the menstrual periods, they constitute a peculiar form of uterine neuralgia which we shall discuss presently. 90 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. Pains in the uterus before or during the menses attack more especially individuals of sensitive or very irritable dispositions, girls as well as women whose uterus had become very irritable partly through psychical and partly through external causes. Amorous fancies, the reading of love-stories, slippery conversation, voluptuous dreams, etc., are just as frequently the causes of painful menstruation as a libidinous rubbing of the parts, amorous dallying, onanism, etc. All these causes keep up a constant irritation in the uterus, the consequences of which are congestion or nervous erethism of this organ. Uterine neuralgia between the menstrual periods may be caused by catarrhal metritis, especially after confinement with slow or imperfect return of the uterus to its normal condition, chronic infarctions, displacements and flexures of the uterus, protracted lactation, excessive coition as in the case of newly married persons or prostitutes. Previous to or during the menstrual period the pains set in either in a mild form or with much vehemence. In the former case the pains are at times tearing, at other times cutting, or drawing, pressing, contracting, griping, burning; they are mostly experienced in the region above the symphisis pubis, are either fixed or wandering, and are sometimes felt in the uterus, at other times in the vagina, or at the entrance of the vagina, in the rectum, bladder, and not unfrequently assume the form of labor-pains. If the pains set in with a great deal of vehemence, they act like colic; they are most generally contracting, tearing, griping or clawing, spread from the umbilical region to the uterus, the vagina, urethra, the anterior surface of the thigh, the small of the back or over the entire hypogastrium, not unfrequently causing a sensation of burning in the parts where the pain is felt. When the pains reach the acme of intensity, females with sensitive temperaments are not unfrequently attacked with nausea or even bilious vomiting; their features look collapsed and the extremities are cold. In other cases, especially if the patients are of a plethoric habit, the cheeks become flushed, the temperature of the body is increased, the pulse is accelerated, the thirst intense, with a longing for acidulated drinks. If vaginal blennorrhcea is present, these phenomena frequently denote a condition like catarrhal metritis which not unfrequently becomes aggravated before or during the menstrual flow. In case of chronic engorgements or displacements of the uterus pains are not always present, but the neuralgic affection manifests Various Morbid Conditions in the Sexual System. 91 itself in the form of disagreeable sensations such as weakness, languor and pressing towards the small of the back or thighs, patulous condition of the vulva with sensation as if the pelvic viscera would press out. These uncomfortable sensations are sometimes accompanied by frequent but ineffectual urging to stool, frequent desire to urinate with scanty emission of urine. The pains are sometimes so trifling that they are not even noticed by the patients. The colicky pains are always very penetrating and distressing, and sometimes last for hours and even days. The pains are often accompanied by other derangements that are of sufficient importance not to be overlooked. At one time it is a pain in the temporal region, on one side of the head, or a pressive pain in the vertex or occiput sometimes increasing to an intolerable; degree of intensity; at other times spasmodic muscular contractions are experienced in the cesophagus or larynx, sometimes taking the shape of globus hystericus, laryngismus or aphonia; again, symptoms of dyspncea with oppression of the chest and increased or unrhythmical palpitations of the heart set in; at other times the patients complain of dyspepsia with accumulation of gas in the bowels, muscular weakness especially of the lower extremities, aggravated by the least exertion; then again we notice symptoms of reflex-action in the sympathic range taking the form of spasmodic weeping or laughing; or the spinal nerves are consensually affected giving rise to convulsions. In many cases the sensorium is disturbed in consequence of reflex-action, resulting in loud and loquacious delirium and even ecstatic conditions. At the same time the menses are either excessively profuse or very much diminished. The prognosis of uterine neuralgia is generally favorable; if depending upon structural lesions or displacements of the uterus, it is doubtful. In obstinate cases of this kind the age of the patient determines the chances of a successful treatment; if the critical' age is near at hand, a speedy cessation of their troubles may be safely promised all such patients; experience has taught us that with the cessation of menstruation the uterine pains disappear. Beside the remedies that we have recommended for the various forms of menstrual irregularities, more especially for difficult and painful menstruation, we derive particular benefit in these neuralgic affections of the uterus from: Aconitunl, lower and middle potencies; Gelseminum, generally if given in tolerably large doses; Cimicifuga racemosa, likewise to be given in reasonablylarge doses; 92 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. Magnesia muriatica, lower and middle attenuations; Hypericum perfoliatum, lower attenuations. Aconite is generally indicated by a throbbing or pecking pain in the uterus, sensation of fulness, heat, or a hard aching and seated pain in the uterus, nausea, headache, palpitation of the heart. If Aconite does not relieve, Cimicifuga may be given, more.especially if the symptoms, for which this remedy has been recommended when occurring at the critical age, are present, such as headache at the top of the head, chilliness with flashes of heat, etc. Gelseminum. We are not aware that this medicine has been much used in uterine neuralgic affections of the womb, except in so far as they are symptomatic of menstrual disorders, dysmenorrhcea, etc., or in so far as they occur in child-birth. The neuralgic pains, to which both Aconite and Gelseminum are homceopathic, are most generally, though not necessarily, attended with signs of vascular engorgement. These two remedies are very often given in alternation with great benefit to the patient. Magnesia muriatica has shown good curative effects in purely spasmodic affections of the uterus. Hypericum perfoliatum. Violent tearing in the genital organs, with desire to urinate; tension in the region of the uterus as from a tight bandage; the menses delay in such a case. If neuralgia of the uterus is a secondary affection, depending upon other primary pathological conditions of the uterus, prolapsus, anteversion, retroversion, lateral displacements, flexures, etc., these causes have to be removed before a cure can be thought of. Chronic engorgements, in connection with neuralgia, may require Belladonna, Veratrum viride, Aconite, Mercurius sol., etc. Subcutaneous injections of Morphia and Atropine have relieved the most obstinate cases of uterine neuralgia. H.] 9. Vaginodynia. Neuralgia of the Vagina. We extract from Kafka the following notice of this subject: The mucous membrane of the vagina is neither swollen nor hyperemic, its secretion is not increased, its appearance unaltered. This disease is either a local affection of the vagina, or else it is complicated with uterine neuralgia. It may be caused by lascivious fancies, masturbation, abuse of sexual intercourse which is only partially gratified; discharge of an acrid, corrosive secretion from the uterus, irri Vaginodynia. 93 tating pessaries, ascarides in the vagina, dust in the uterus, displacements of this organ, etc. The symptoms are in part local, and in part general. Among the local symptoms we notice a peculiar itching or tickling of the vagina of various degrees of intensity. If not excessive, this titillation of the vagina can be borne; it does not excite the sexual passion, or at least very triflingly; it causes a slight sensation of warmth in the vagina and an irresistible urging to scratch or rub the itching parts of the vulva or vagina, which generally causes a redness of the mucous membrane and an increase of the temperature. In proportion as the warmth of the itching parts increases, they likewise become affected with a striking dryness, which is very troublesome to the patients. In sensitive and excitable women the sexual passion is first excited by the frequent rubbing of the vulva or vagina; at such a time the eyes glisten, the cheeks look flushed, the head is hot. If the rubbing is continued, a pleasurable sensation is excited, which continues until a seminal vesicle is detached after which the person feels exhausted, the face looks pale and a certain moroseness or sullenness of temper prevails. An observing physician is not slow to observe these changes in the looks and mood of his patient. They constitute important phenomena in the case of young girls whose sexual passion could not properly be made the subject of professional inquiry. The titillation in the vagina may become so violent that it may rouse an irresistible desire for sexual intercourse, and may even lead to self-abuse. In one case of this kind, an examination showed that the titillation was excited and kept up by retroversion of the uterus. Excitable, generally sterile women of feeble constitutions, lose their seminal fluid during a paroxysm of titillation, without resorting to friction; others become nymphomaniac and may even go so far as to invite men to sexual converse. Other women experience at the same time violent pains in the uterus, heat in the vagina, an increased secretion of mucus and a high degree of nervous erethism and hysteric irritability of temper, sometimes extending to the sensorium and resulting in delirium or hallucinations. Sometimes the titillation and the sexual excitement are entirely absent, and the vagina is in a condition of hyperoesthesia. Coition is exceedingly painful; even a digital exploration causes pain, the vagina contracting spasmodically around the finger. Such women,generally remain sterile. 94 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. These spasmodic contractions may even spread to the urethra and rectum, causing a continual urging to urinate and to evacuate the bowels. Vaginodynia often lasts for years and is very difficult to cure. Cases depending upon displacements of the uterus, are the most obstinate. Treatment. In order to obtain perfect certainty regarding the true nature of the disease, an ocular and manual examination of the vagina is indispensable. For simple itching, without any simultaneous excitement of the sexual passion, we give Sulphur and Graphites, the former if the itching is more of a burning nature, the latter if the itching is attended with a smarting sensation in the vagina. The troublesome feeling of dryness in the vagina is relieved by frictions with the best kind of olive-oil. If this is not sufficient, and the vagina is cool and pale, we give Natrum muriaticum 6 to 30. If there is much heat and redness, we give Belladonna 3. If the titillation in'the vagina is attended with lascivious desires, and there is a good deal of nervous erethism, pain in the uterus, -meteorism, torpor of the bowels, Nux vomica is the remedy. Cannabis indica 3 is likewise excellent under such circumstances, likewise if there is a good deal of urging to urinate, burning during urination, and the vaginal lining membrane is hot and dry. Calcarea carbonica may be given in alternation with, or after Nux vomica. Zincum met., if the titillation occurs during the menstrual flow; Mercurius sol., if the itching is confined to the labia and the entrance to the vagina. If symptoms of nymphomania are present, we may give Nux vomica, Platina, Zincum met., also Stramonium and Iyoscyamus. If the titillation in the vagina arises from dust in the vagina, we may resort to tepid Sitz-baths, also to injections of tepid water, castile soap and water, a weak solution of the Sulphite of Soda. For the itching caused by ascarides, see Helminthiasis. For painfulness of the vagina during intercourse we give Ferrum acet. 3 to 6, also Ferrum muriat. 3 to 6. If the itching is attended with aversion to sexual intercourse, Phosphorus is a good remedy. [Vaginisnius must not be confounded with the neuralgic condition of the vagina described in the preceding paragraph. Vaginismus is a spasmodic contraction of the vaginal sphincter which, so far as we know, is beyond the reach of internal treatment. Dr. Mastitis. 95 Thomas, in his recent work entitled: "A Practical Treatise on the Diseases of WVomen," informs us that this disease was first described by Burns, who advised an operation which is at present regarded as the only reliable method of cure. This operation has been recently performed by one of our own most brilliant surgeons, William Tod IIelmuth, of St. Louis. According to Dr. Thomas the causes of vaginal spasm are: The hysterical diathesis; excoriations or fissures at the vulva; irritable tumor of the meatus; chronic metritis or vaginitis; pustular or vesicular eruptions on the vulva; neuromata. For a full description of the disease and its surgical treatment we refer the reader to Dr. Sims' paper upon "Vaginismus," communicated to the London Obstetrical Society, Nov. 6th, 1861, or to Sims' work on Uterine Surgery. H.] to. Mastitis. Inflammation of the Breasts. The mammae constituting exclusively a part of the female organism, we prefer treating of inflammation of the mammae in this place instead of ranging this disease among the diseases of the thoracic organs. Mastitis proper only occurs during or immediately after lactation. The painful, sometimes rather extensive, indurated swellings of single portions of the mammse, which sometimes occur among unmarried females or married women who are not nursing, especially about the time of the menses, are evidently transitory states of hypersemia which never terminates in suppuration. The cause of mastitis is always traceable to the impeded excretion of the milk. By some cause or other, soreness or a bad shape of the nipples, too feeble drawing by the child, one or more lactiferous ducts become closed, the milk in the corresponding mammary lobule becomes stagnant, and an inflammatory process is the result. Another cause of obstruction of the milk-ducts is the improper manner in which some women wear their clothes, owing to which the breasts either bang too loosely or a direct pressure is exerted upon them. The doctrine that mastitis can originate in dietetic transgressions or a cold, is a convenient supposition rather than a scientific fact; but to go so far as to assert with Hartmann that mastitis is one of the multifarious manifestations of psora, is more than can be proved by anybody. What happens with other abscesses, is likewise true in regard to abscesses of the mammse: in some cases they heal rapidly, in other cases they cause vast destructions of tissue. Mastitis is most apt 96 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. to occur soon after confinement or shortly after weaning the child; mastitis occurring at the latter period is less apt to lead to the formation of abscesses. Symptoms. The disease never breaks out all at once. Generally women experience some time previous, a gradually increasing pain both spontaneously or while the child is nursing; and a swelling of one or more mammary lobules, which rapidly increases in extent and induration, develops itself soon after. As a rule the lower or lateral lobes are inflamed, very seldom the upper ones, and still less frequently both mamme. Sooner or later, sometimes in a few days, and at other times in some weeks, the painful spot becomes red and more sensitive, and the inflammation is intense, the whole organism feels the effect of the inflammatory process and shows its sympathy by febrile phenomena. Soon the infiltrated tissue shows the signs of suppuration, the pus being discharged through a small opening. As soon as the discharge, which is never complete, commences, the pain suddenly ceases and the febrile symptoms abate. The course of the inflammation depends upon a variety of circumstances. If the inflammation is confined to one lobe, the abscess most commonly discharges close to the nipple, empties itself very rapidly and heals. If several lobes are inflamed, or the inflamed lobe is situated near the base, the suppuration, swelling and pain continue for a long time; months and even years may elapse before the abscess heals, which discharges through several openings near the nipple. This disorder never lasts less than two weeks, and, under corresponding circumstances, may continue for months even in its acute form. The treatment of mastitis includes above everything else a prophylactic treatment which has to be commenced long before confinement, especially in the case of primiparae. The preservation and proper management of the nipples and of the mammae generally should be a constant subject of our attention. After confinement, if women do not intend to nurse their children, they will have tb dispense with liquids as much as possible. Nursing women have to keep the following points constantly in view: the breasts must not be kept too warm, must not be enclosed in tight clothing, and must, by some suitable support, be prevented from dragging down; every time after the baby has nursed, the nipple must be washed, but not be kept moist between the acts of nursing; the excessive use of liquids which women fancy favor the secretion of milk, must be avoided; the child should be put to the breast as seldom as possible, for the Mastitis.- 97 more hungry it is the more vigorously it will draw and the more completely the breast will be emptied. At the same time the nipples will not be held so long in the child's mouth, and they will not be exposed so much to the risk of being made sore by the constant nursing. By following these instructions, and more particularly by putting the child to the breast every two hours in the early period after confinement, mastitis will generally be prevented. By picturing this disease in its most horrid form, women can generally be induced to comply with the course recommended by their physician; his warning counsels in trying to prevent this disease as well as the gastric catarrh of children, are generally more potent than all the medicines of the drug-shops. If the breasts have become hard and painful, the best remedy in the case of lying-in women is Bryonia, less frequently Belladonna, whereas the latter medicine is better adapted to women who are weaning their infants. We sometimes succeed in dispersing the stagnation of the milk by gently rubbing the indurated portion while the child is nursing. The same good effect is sometimes obtained by causing the milk to be drawn by an older, more vigorous child. In no event should the infant be all at once kept fiom the breast, even if nursing causes pain. It is only if the pain is very acute, and the hardness considerable that the infant should no longer be put to the diseased breast. Belladonna will now have to be administered. As soon as redness has set in, the chances of scattering the inflammation are very slim; in some exceptional cases we may sometimes succeed in effecting this result by a few doses of liercurius. Warm poultices should never be omitted; they sometimes favor the dispersion of the abscess as much as in other cases they hasten the process of suppuration. It is best not to apply them until pus has begun to form. Hepar sulphuris will sometimes promote the discharge of the pus. A great many authorities teach to open the abscess at an early period in order to prevent the further spread of the inflammation. We doubt whether such a proceeding is justified by corresponding results; after opening the abscess we have often seen the inflammation spread much more rapidly; in the most tedious cases of mastitis, the abscess had been opened in accordance with this suggestion. On the contrary, if the abscess was not opened and the above-mentioned remedies were used, we have never seen mastitis run a tedious course. This cannot have been owing to the mildness of the cases; a coincidence of this kind cannot be supposed probable. Most homceopathic physicians avoid 98 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. the lancing of such abscesses, and yet can boast of excellent results. This shows that their medicines must have an effect which, in such cases, our opponents are doubly disposed to doubt and to deny. We do not mean to say that the abscess should not be opened if the pus is distinctly seen through the skin; what we oppose is the opening of an abscess where the tissues situated below the epidermis have to be divided. In this respect a mammary abscess is to be treated like any other abscess. If the tissues through which the abscess has to discharge, are of a nature to render every effort towards a spontaneous discharge nugatory, they have to be divided with the knife. A case of this kind occurs very rarely under homceopathic treatment. After the abscess has commenced to discharge, the course of the difficulty is quite different under homeopathic from what it is under allopathic treatment. In a fortnight at latest the discharge of pus ceases under the use of a few doses of Mercurius, and the sore heals. If this is not the case, if the hardness and pain continue and the pus is secreted in small quantity; or if the infiltration keeps spreading, and we are called upon at this juncture to treat the disease, Hepar sulphuris is to be given first. After using this remedy, the suppuration generally increases and the pain abates. Phosphorus deserves a preference if the inflammation frequently reassumes the acute form after an apparent arrest of the inflammatory process; likewise in the very rare cases of phthisis of the mamrtme., If the breast has become callous, and fistulous canals have formed, the healing of the sore will prove a very protracted process. In such cases Silicea, Sulphur, Conium and Graphites may prove the best remedies. [Regarding the use of Aconite in mastitis, Kafka has the following: If the breast swells in consequence of a cold or of a mechanical injury, and a deep-seated pain is experienced in the marmme, we at once give Aconite 3 in solution every hour; the local hypersemia will most speedily be scattered under the influence of this remedy, and, if the pain was owing to a cold, a general transpiration will speedily take place, after which the inflammation runs a much milder course and often terminates in dispersion without suppuration. Our poke or the Phytolacca decandra has long been used in domestic practice as a remedy for swelling and inflammation of the breasts. We refer the reader to Dr. Hale's notes on this subject in the second edition of his New Remedies, pages 794 and further. Mastodynia. 99 The medicine should be used internally and applied externally by means of a compress soaked with a mixture of a few drops of the tincture in half a tumbler of water, or with a mild infusion or decoction of the root. H.] 1l. Mastodynia. [Kafka writes: Painful sensations in the breasts, not having any causal connection with pregnancy or with the processes of nursing or weaning, and being most frequently noticed in girls and women as symptoms of development at the age of pubescence or as paroxysms of neuralgia, do not unfrequently become the subject of medical treatment. At the period of pubescence, either some time before or during or after the first appearance of the menses, some girls experience stitching, drawing or throbbing pains, or a tingling or prickling sensation in the swelling breasts which appear turgid and tense and very often sensitive to contact. If the girls have already commenced to menstruate, the painful sensations most commonly make their appearance before or during the menses. If menstruation has not yet commenced, the pains generally continue until the age of pubescence has been reached. Sometimes the breasts are so sensitive that the least touch, the least friction from the underclothes, or the least pressure, are almost unbearable. This sensitiveness extends either over the whole breast or is confined to the region of the nipples. The sensitiveness lasts for a longer or shorter period according as the development of the organism is more or less rapid. We are acquainted with cases of hypersesthesia of the breasts that continued until the patients were married, and spread even to other parts of the body, particularly to the region of the stomach, uterus and pudendum. The breasts are likewise liable to being attacked with pains that are not connected with the period of pubescence, but depend upon mechanical, traumatic or constitutional causes. They attack periodically full-grown girls or women, are seated in the mammary gland or nipples, come on in paroxysms, are lancing, tearing, drawing or boring; they are generally worse about the time of the menses, are aggravated by pressure, and, if lasting a certain time, result in the formation of small tubercles in the mammary gland, of a rounded shape, smooth and of the size of hazelnuts. Such paroxysms of pain scarcely ever occur spontaneously, and 100 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. are generally caused by the continued pressure of tight garments, corsets, whalebones, or they are caused by pinching, pulling, contusions, blows, etc. Sometimes they are the result of chlorosis, tuberculosis, carcinoma or constitutional syphilis. Their duration is determined by the continuance of the exciting causes. In treating these affections the cause has to be removed before anything can be expected from internal treatment. For simple hypersesthesia of the breasts Belladonna and Nux vomica may be given. If the affection can be traced to a delay in the appearance of the menses, Pulsatilla, Caulophyllum, Belladonna may be useful. If the pains are stinging and the patients are at the same time very nervous, we give Cale. carb. or Nux vomica. If caused by a blow, contusion, etc. Arnica, Conium or Sepia may be required. For tearing pains we give Conium 3 or Baryta carb. 6, and if seated in the nipples, we give Bismuth 6, or Cale. caust. 6. Drawing pains in the mamme require Kreosote 3 to 6, and if seated in the nipples Zinc. met. 6. For boring pains in the mammle we give Indigo 3 to 6, and if affecting the nipples Spigelia 3 to 6. The sensation of prickling in the nipples is relieved by Sabina 3 to 6. If these pains result from constitutional causes we have to direct our treatment against the latter. If traceable to chlorosis, we give Iron persistently, in the case of tuberculous patients Iodine; if a carcinomatous diathesis is suspected we resort to Conium and Rana bufo; if syphilis is the cause, we give Mercurius jodatus and Cinnabaris. At the same time the breasts have to be covered with soft material, and carefully protected against friction, pressure and cold. I].] if. Carcinoma Mamnmie. Cancer of the Breasts. Next to the uterus the mamme are most frequently attacked by cancer. Cancer of the mammae is most commonly of a primary nature, hence the beginning of the cancerous disease. The causes of this disease can scarcely ever be determined with certainty. If a blow or a contusion is generally regarded as the cause of this,/disease, it is probably because no better cause can be found, not'because the disease has ever been known to result immediately;from such an injury. The influence of depressing emotions which are so easily und so commonly succeeded by cancerous degenerations, is a much more evident source of the cancerous Carcinoma Mammae. 101 disease. Cancer of the mammae most commonly occurs between the ages of 40 and 50, about the period which is generally designated as a change of life. Unmarried women or women who have not had children seem to be more liable to it than married women with children. Before and after this period, it is proportionally a rare occurrence. The most frequently observed form. of carcinoma of the mammae is scirrhus, next to which we range the encephaloid or medullary fungus, the alveolar or colloid cancer and the epithelial cancer or epithelioma. [Mr. Maurice II. Collis of Dublin, in his work "The Diagnosis and Treatment of Cancer, and the Tumors analogous to it" 1864, has thrown out epithelioina and colloid growths from the true cancer-group. IHe regards Colloid as a mere variety of fibroid or recurrent tumors. Virchow says that "its stroma differs in its containing mucus and in its gelatinous nature from the ordinary stroma of cancer," page 526, On Tumors. Mr. Collis says, in rejecting epithelioma from the group of cancerous tumors: "Its superficial origin, its slow progress, its indisposition to infiltrate the deeper structures, or to contaminate the glands, the certainty of cure which follows its timely removal, and the different appearance when occupying similar localities, are of sufficient importance to outweigh the points of resemblance which it undoubtedly bears to cancer in its advanced and secondary stages. In its early stage it is strictly an hypertrophy, and in this condition it may remain for an indefinite period. Its second stage is one of hypertrophy and ulceration combined. This stage also, as far as external or cutaneous epithelioma is concerned, is slow to advance into the third or destructive stage, that of infiltration and secondary deposit," page 226. Speaking of Colloid, Virchow writes: "It remains for a very long time local, so that the nearest lymphatic glands often do not become affected until after the lapse of years, and then again the process is for a long time confined to the disease of the lymphatic glands, so that a general outbreak of the disease in all parts of the body does not.take place until late, and only in rare instances." (See his work on Tumors, page 531.) H.] The commencement of the disease is scarcely ever marked by peculiar morbid phenomena; the patients generally do not notice anything out of the way until a tolerably large tumor is perceived in the breast. It is at first round, smooth, movable, grows with more or less rapidity, and loses its mobility in proportion as it in 102 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. creases in size, and its surface becomes more uneven. At first it is most commonly deep-seated and gradually grows towards the surface, is sometimes entirely painless or becomes painful only at the time of the menses and when receiving some mechanical injury. If the cancer reaches the skin, it coalesces with it, after which the pains are almost con tantly felt. At the same time the disorganizing process extends to the deeper tissues, and at an early stage the axillary and other neighboring glands become involved. The patients now commence to feel constantly or at intervals, and particularly at night, lancinating, boring pains in the affected part which very soon become unbearable. The assimilative functions begin to suffer; the patients have a pale yellowish-gray appearance, the spirits are very much depressed. A characteristic sign is the gradual effacement and finally the complete retraction of the nipple which discharges either spontaneously or on pressure a turbid, serous fluid. At the place where the cancerous growth first became interwoven with the skin, the latter by slow degrees loses its healthy color, and finally breaks. An irregularly-shaped ulcer forms showing a disposition to penetrate to the subjacent tissues; the edges of the ulcer are infiltrated, have a sickly color and an uneven base, and secrete at first a thin, serous and afterwards an ichorus, purulent, sanguinolent and most commonly very fetid fluid. If the disease runs a slow course, the incipient ulcer often heals for a time, but again breaks open at a later period; if the disease runs a rapid course, spongy and readily-bleeding excrescences are apt to shoot up from the bottom of the sore. If larger vessels become necrosed, hemorrhages take place which are sometimes very profuse, at other times trifling. The further course of the disease which, having arrived at this stage, always terminates fatally, depends upon the extension of the cancer, upon the invasion, by the carcinomatous process, of internal organs, upon the importance of the hemorrhage and upon the loss of fluids in consequence of the ichorous discharge. Medullary fungus generally terminates fatally more speedily than schirrus; the latter may even continue for years before the skin breaks, whereas medullary fungus terminates in ichorous dissolution in a comparatively short period of time. The duration of the whole disease varies considerably; ranging from two to twelve and even more years. The younger the patient, the sooner she will succomb to the disease, and the more sudden the cancerous growth, the sooner it will destroy life. The prognosis is very bad with scarcely an exception. Carcinoma Mammee. 103 In many respects the diagnosis is liable to difficulties, because various kinds of benign tumors may occur in the breast. An incipient, cancer cannot always be recognized as such, though it may grow rapidly and be painful; these two conditions never occur in the case of benign tumors. At a later period the diagnosis is determined by the retraction of the nipple, the fluid which it discharges, the rugged unevenness and immobility of the swelling, the participation of the neighboring glands in the disease, the failing of the whole organism without any increase of the secretory products. Nevertheless there occur many cases of cancer the true nature of which remains for a long time undetermined and is clearly revealed only after the disease has run a long course. Carcinoma of the mammae is generally considered a surgical disease; it is supposed by most authors that internal treatment cannot reach it. The disease, at least in its incipiency, is considered purely local, and an operation the only cure. It is as yet difficult to show what method of treatment is the most successful in this disease, but physicians seem to incline more and more to the belief that the extirpation with the knife simply leads to the transfer of the disease to more vital organs, without affecting its general duration. IHomceopathic physicians have, for a long time past, rejected every extirpation of cancer as injurious or at least unproductive of good results. Unfortunately we are unable to affirm that Homceopathy is acquainted with a safe method of healing cancer; at present we are not acquainted with a single undeniable cure of this disease. We are entitled, however, to claim palliative results for our treatment; it never increases the trouble, and delays a fatal termination were it from no other cause than because it does not rob the patient of her strength. Hartmann mentions a number of remedies for cancer, with a multitude of indications which we do not repeat here because they have seemed to us irrelevant. The remedies which seem to have exerted some influence over this disease, are: Belladonna, Arsenicurn, Carbo animalis and vegetabilis, Clematis erecta, Coniurnmmaculaturn, Sepia, perhaps also Sulphur, Kreosotam, Aurum muriaticum and Baryta carbonica. Belladonna only alleviates the pains if they are lancing or burning pains, attended mith sub-inflammatory symptoms, and as long as the carcinoma has not become an open sore. Arsenicum likewise is an excellent palliative against the burning pains of cancerous ulcers, especially when worse at night; 104 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. this remedy likewise diminishes or even suspends for a time the suppuration and ichorous decomposition. Conium and Clematis, and likewise Baryta can only be used if the tumor has not yet begun to discharge; the other above-mentioned remedies are principally of use in cases of open cancer. For further symptomatic particulars we refer to Hahnemann's Materia Medica Pura. Other medicines have been mentioned which, however, do not seem to refer very particularly to carcinoma, such as: Nitri acidlmn, Pulsatilla, Bryonia, Phosphorus; Lycopodium, Silicea, Natrunt muriaticum would seem more appropriate. Most observers agree that the higher attenuations, if given in not too frequently repeated doses, deserve the preference over the lower. Their palliative effect is much more certain and persistent, whereas the lower attenuations sometimes do not seem to palliate at all. We do not mean to induce any one to accede to our views; we would advise, however, if a lower attenuation has not seemed to have any effect to first try a higher one before the medicine is changed. The diet should be as invigorating as possible in order to sustain the patient's strength; above all the most scrupulous cleanliness has to be observed. [The Hlydrastis canadensis has been used by the American Indians as a remedy for cancer. It has likewise been experimented with by American and English homceopathic practitioners, but the results so far have not been very satisfactory. The medicine may be given internally 3d to 6th attenuation, and applied externally in the shape of an ointment or a solution of the resinoid Hydrastin. We have used it in some cases of suppurating cancer, with some success; the destruction was arrested in its course, the pain almost ceased and the patients declared they felt comfortable. One of them was an old lady of nearly 80 years, who is still living. ]sehr's views regarding the propriety of an operation differ so widely from those of Kafka and leading homoeopaths in our own midst that we deem it proper to transcribe them: If the methodical use of appropriate remedies for tumors in the breast remains without any result; if in the meanwhile the tumor gains in size, and becomes less movable, and the axillary glands have not yet become involved in the carcinomatous degeneration, we at once advise to proceed to the extirpation of the tumor. Do not wait until the schirrous swelling has become interwoven with the tissue Carcinoma Mammae. 105 of the skin, or begins to show signs of a more marked carcinomatous degeneration. As yet the process may be regarded as local and the extirpation succeeds perfectly in a majority of cases. If these changes, however, have already taken place and if the axillary glands already begin to show signs of cancerous degeneration, the operation is very doubtful and fails in almost all such cases. As soon as the tumor has acquired a stony hardness, the skin over it is no longer movable, and the patients are tormented by severe nocturnal pains in the swelling, a cure by internal homoeopathic treatment can no longer be thought of. We at least have never succeeded in performing a cure at this stage of the disease. Even at this stage the extirpation of the tumor is still feasible, but a successful result is already very doubtful. The axillary or mesenteric glands may not yet be involved; but the operation is succeeded by new disorganizations which very speedily terminate fatally in ichorous dissolution. A successful extirpation at this stage has to be attributed to a fortunate coincidence of favorable circumstances which cannot be arranged according to a definite plan. Ience even under these circumstances we are in favor of extirpation for the reason that it does result in a cure in some cases, whereas without it the cancerous disorganization progresses in its course towards an unavoidable fatal destruction of the tissues. If the above-described phenomena of cancer of the nmamrmoe have set in and ulceration has perhaps taken place, our treatment must remain purely symptomatic. All we can do is to appease as much as possible the nocturnal tormenting pains, to preserve the patient's appetite and strength, to stop the hemorrhage that may set in, to correct the air impregnated with the pestiferous odor of the foul ichor, to arrest the colliquative diarrhcea, etc. The treatment is conducted as advised by Biehr. A few addi-' tional remedies are recommended such as China 3 for extreme debility, or China and Phosphorus for the stitching pains, Arsenic, Phosphorus and the Arsen. of Quinine for the colliquative diarrhoea; Acidum sulphuricum 1 for hemorrhage at the same time applying ice-water externally, or a solution of the Perchloride of Iron, or even touching the bleeding vessel with the real cautery. The horrid odor may be neutralized to some extent by covering the bottom of the sore with a thick layer of pulverized charcoal which absorbs the ichor; we cause the ulcers to be cleansed several times a day with tepid water, and we have the sick chamber aired and sprinkled with Chlore or Kreosote-water [or with the Perman 106 Diseases of the Female Sexual Organs. ganate of Potash.] As regards the use of caustics of any kind, after the cancer is fully developed, we have never seen them do the least good, on the contrary they seem to increase the pain and promote the spread of the ulcer. If the remedies which we use, do not produce the leastfavorable result, we give the patient Morphine from motives of humanity, as the only efficient palliative at our disposal. Professor Franklin of the St. Louis College of Homceopathy emphatically recommends a speedy extirpation of the cancerous tumor and claims for the operation an almost uniform success provided every vestige of the cancer is removed, and not a single cancer-cell is left behind. H.] EIGHTH SECTION. Diseases of the Respiratory Organs. A. DISEASES OF THE LARYNX AND TRACHEA. 1. Laryngotracheitis Catarrhalis Acuta. Acute Laryngotracheal Catarrh. Next to the catarrh of the Schneiderian membrane, a catarrh of the larynx and trachea is one of the most frequent diseases; yet the liability of these organs to catarrhal affections cannot be accounted for either by their structure or functions. One of the most common causes of disease is a cold, whether it affects the organs locally or through the skin. This is the reason why such people are most commonly affected as have rendered themselves, and more especially the skin, very susceptible by their effeminate mode of living. We often notice that, by keeping the neck too warm, the larynx becomes easily affected with catarrh, whereas such persons fancied that by enveloping their necks in thick cravats or comforters, they were effectually protected against catarrh. Since we cannot avoid frequent exposures of the neck to the air, the susceptibility of the larynx to catarrh increases in proportion as the skin of the neck is stimulated to action by an excess of warm covering. Why some persons should be affected with laryngeal catarrh from the least cold, whereas others seem to enjoy a perfect immunity in this respect, cannot be accounted for. An excessive use of the organs of voice is one of the causes that begets a particular disposition to laryngeal catarrh; individuals who, not accustomed to talking, have had to make long and fatiguing speeches, or amateur-singers are very apt to contract laryngeal disease. The disposition to such diseases is very much enhanced by the excessive use of spirits, and more particularly of the common beer. We shall afterwards speak of the influence which tubercular infiltrations of the lungs exert over catarrhal affections of the (107) 108 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. trachea; we will here state that the development of laryngeal catarrh from the least exposure very properly excites a suspicion of the presence of pulmonary tuberculosis. Secondarily laryngotracheal catarrh may result from nasal catarrh working down to the larynx, or from bronchial catarrh working upwards. It may likewise supervene during or in consequence of the presence of measles and variola, and other constitutional diseases. Symptoms and Course. The phenomena of laryngotracheal catarrh vary a great deal according to the intensity of the disease or the sensitiveness of the individual attacked by it. In mild attacks the disease always commences without fever although usually with a peculiar sensation of languor and heaviness in the extremities. The patients complain of a peculiar tickling, or a soreness and burning in the larynx cown to the sternum, which is aggravated by coughing and talking. At the same time the voice is altered, it is hoarse and has a peculiarly deeper and metallic sound; this alteration of the voice increases, according to circumstances, to complete hoarseness or loss of voice. In a few hours already a cough supervenes the particular modifications of which will be described in subsequent paragraphs. At first no phlegm is brought up by the cough, afterwards a clear, tenacious, glassy mucus is raised, which, in a few days, assumes a greenish color, becomes lumpy and has an unpleasant taste until, in a few days more, the expectoration assumes a globular shape, becomes more copious and has a yellowishwhite color. At the commencement of the catarrh streaks of blood are frequently seen mixed with the mucus; a copious admixture of blood occurs very rarely. The higher grades of catarrh which are sometimes described as laryngitis, always commence with fever which is sometimes very violent and continues several days. The pains in the larynx are very acute, stinging and burning, as from a sore; aphonia sets in at once, and every attempt at talking increases the pain to an eminent degree. The cough becomes exceedingly distressing, painful, sometimes convulsive, with a constrictive sensation of the rima glottidis and a real difficulty of performing the act of inspiration. The larynx generally feels sore when pressed upon. In two to five days the fever abates, (it scarcely ever lasts longer,) and an expectoration of mucus with relief of the cough sets in. In this form of catarrh the general constitution is more or less disturbed; the patients may even be compelled to keep their beds for some days. Laryngotracheitis Catarrhalis Acuta. 109 The laryngotracheitis of children is of particular importance. The children may have seemed quite well during the day, and often wake about midnight with a hoarse, barking cough which is sometimes associated with constricted inspirations and anxiety, so that, at first sight, the little patients seem to have a violent attack of croup; yet this is evidently contradicted by the fact that on the following day their health seems fully restored. The croupy sound seems to arise from the fact that during their sound sleep in the first part of the night, when the children breathe with their mouths open as they do in laryngeal catarrh, the vocal cords become very dry and are covered with a dried-up mucus; on this account the child's cough in the daytime has no croupy sound, nor if it wakes several times in the night. This affection has been designated as catarrhal croup. If, which is less frequently the case, this affection is associated with a marked inflammatory swelling of the laryngeal mucous membrane, or if, generally, the affection acquires a higher grade of intensity, the croupous sound may be heard for several nights in succession, and may be attended with threatening symptoms of dyspnea. Some children are remarkably liable to an affection of this'kind; this liability is still increased by the excessive quantity of clothing in which the little patients a e wrapt by their relatives fcr fear of croup. It is of such children that physicians hear the report they had had several attacks of croup, and that they have an attack every spring and fall. There are physicians who encourage this kind of belief which is hurtful to both the parents and their children. We have to add a few words concerning the cough which accompanies this affection. Many individuals whose laryngeal mucous membranes are evidently not very susceptible to catarrhal irritations, have no cough in spite of a most severe attack of catarrh, or they cough only once or twice a day. Others, on the contrary, experience even at the onset such a violent and continual irritation and desire to cough that they cough uninterruptedly, or have violent paroxysms of cough which often last four hours and end with an attack of vomiting, or even become associated with a spasm of the glottis. This kind of violent cough is generally peculiar to the catarrh accompanying measles. The disease lasts at most nine days, but, if the cough is very violent, it rarely ever disappears entirely at the termination of this period. As a rule, while decreasing gradually, it continues for some time after, or, if the patients are again enabled to go out, it often 110 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. disappears of itself as soon as a steady and mild weather sets in. More frequently the hoarseness continues for a longer time, were it only just enough to interfere with singing, if not with talking. The transition into chronic catarrh is very frequent, and is favored by the circumstance that patients, not minding the trifling disorder, expose themselves to renewed attacks of acute catarrh which finally assumes the chronic form. Laryngotracheal catarrh does not endanger life unless other diseases should supervene as grave complications. Treatment. This morbid process is not sufficiently important to require a number of remedies. It may be that a rigid individualization of every case may facilitate the cure, but we cannot indulge in the luxury of furnishing so many details. Whatever Hartmann may say to the contrary, we consider a few practical generalizations more adapted to our purpose and shall therefore confine ourselves to mentioning the remedies which experience has pointed out as the most valuable and reliable in this disease. Nux vomica is suitable in the milder cases that scarcely ever become the subject of a physician's care; the patients complain of a little hoarseness, a burning tickling in the larynx, frequent cough with tickling, scanty expectoration, and especially troublesome early in the morning, a weary and languid feeling, chilliness, frontal headache. In the more violent cases of catarrh, Nux is only useful if, after the fever has begun to abate, the expectoration continues to remain tenacious and hard to raise, and the patient is tormented by a constant titillating hacking cough. Aconitum is useful in catarrhs caused by exposure to a sharp and keen dry wind. Upon the whole, this remedy does not seem often indicated in simple catarrhal affections, except perhaps in the case of children in whom the febrile symptoms assume a different shape from what they do in the case of full-grown persons. For catarrhal croup it is undoubtedly the best remedy, which, however, ceases to be indicated, if the physician is not called till the second or third day of the disease. Belladonna may prove most serviceable in the first few days, if the catarrh is associated with fever. The following symptoms are characteristic: fever with disposition to perspire and sleep; violent stinging pains in the larynx; a dry, barking spasmodic cough coming on in paroxysms, exacerbating more particularly in the evening and before midnight; sensation as if dust had been swallowed; feeling of constriction'in the larynx; the catarrh is complicated with tonsillitis; aphonia. Laryngotracheitis Catarrhalis Acuta. 111 Mercurius acts similarly to Belladonna in this disease. It is suitable at the commencement of febrile laryngitis, if the following symptoms are present: chilliness and great sensitiveness to cold, mingled with frequent paroxysms of a burning heat; dry, distressing cough occurring more particularly at night and racking the fiame; the mucous membrane of the mouth and nose is involved in the catarrh; soreness of the larynx, hoarseness but no loss of voice; disposition to copious perspiration. Next to Aconite, Spongia is the principal remedy in the so-called catarrhal croup, with distinct symptoms of cedema of the mucous lining of the glottis. The cough is barking, hoarse, hollow, comes in paroxysms, especially at night, without expectoration and wheezing inspirations. Spongia is likewise appropriate, if the croupous sound of the cough still continues and lumps of a tenacious, yellow mucus are expectorated. Hepar sulphuris bears a good deal of resemblance to Spongia. It should be given, if mucus commences to be raised, the barking sound of the cough continues, there is a great deal of hoarseness, symptoms of ulceration of the larynx begin to make their appearance, and a constant rattling of mucus is heard in the larynx. It is an excellent remedy for singers and persons who have to talk a great deal. Hartmann has moreover the following remedies: Arsenicum, when there is glowing fever-heat with constant thirst, yawning, stretching, a prostrate feeling in the whole body, tearing-stitching pains in the head and limbs, oppression of breathing; in the night the pains abate with the appearance of perspiration, and return again early in the morning; constant desire to cough, the cough being dry, accompanied by dryness and burning in the larynx. Pultsatilla: titillation with cough, excited by a sensation of scraping and roughness in the throat, spasmodic and setting in more especially in the evening and when lying down, better on sitting up, commencing again on lying down, and sometimes increasing to suffocation; chilliness. Iyoscyamus, if the cough only occurs at night..Euphtrasia, if the cough continues all day, and fluent coryza is present at the same time. He likewise mentions Rhus, Ignatia, Drosera, Ipecacuanha, Bryonia and others, which will be more fully dwelt upon in the chapter on chronic catarrh of the larynx. If patients are very much disposed to relapses, prophylactic measures are of the utmost importance: among these the use of cold water and the abandonment of too much covering around the neck occupy the first rank. If tuberculosis lies at the foundation 112 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. of the disease, the treatment will have to be conducted in accordance with other considerations that will be expounded in the chapter on tuberculosis. 2. Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. Croup, Membranous Croup. Croup is an inflammation of the larynx and trachea resulting in a copious exudation upon the mucous membrane, on which account it is also described as angina membranacea. It is only in the present century that the anatomy, cause and course of this disease have been studied with more particular care. Consequently the literature of croup has become very extensive, owing to the importance of a disease which so often terminates fatally. Croup is almost exclusively a disease of children between the ages of two and seven years, or between the first and second dentition. It occurs even less frequently before the second than after the seventh year; the cases which are said to have occurred among adults are so rare that it is doubtful whether they were genuine croup. Moreover such cases scarcely ever prove fatal, so that the fact of their being croup cannot be confirmed by post-mortem examinations. According to all statistical tables boys are more frequently attacked than girls; from 60 to 70 per cent. of all cases are boys. As regards the influence of constitution and various other points in croup, opinions differ. Rilliet who can in many respects be regarded as an authority in croup, asserts positively that most children who are attacked with croup, are of a lymphatic habit. In this respect he differs from a number of physicians who maintain that robust, well-fed children are most liable to croup. Upon close examination we find however that these two views only differ in appearance. A lymphatic constitution is often disguised under a full habit, bright complexion, appearance of muscular strength; whereas a marked disposition to eczema, to gastric catarrhs, to angina with copious exudation and subsequent hypertrophied swellings, distinctly betray a bad foundation. Hence it is not perfectly healthy and vigorous children that are predisposed to croup, which is still more evident from the following propositions derived from actual experience. Most of the children attacked with croup belong to scrofulous and tuberculous families where croup has been a prevailing disease for several generations. Moreover croup is much more frequent in the country where the ground is level, than in cities, and here again more frequent in the Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. 113 lower strata of the population.'We shall show afterwards, however, how in the country so many circumstances combine for the development of tuberculosis, and how similar circumstances prevail among the lower strata of city-population. In this respect we can account for the frequently observed fact that croup is an hereditary disease or that several members of a family are attacked at once or shortly one after the other, or that the same individual is attacked several times in succession. It cannot be denied that if a child has been once attacked with croup, it retains an increased disposition to inflammatory affections of the larynx. True eroup is secondarily met with, although very rarely, as an accompaniment of measles, typhus, tuberculosis. In a case of measles catarrhal croup is easily confounded with true croup; the measle-catarrh is apt to commence with croupy cough which may continue for several days. The croup which is sometimes observed in a case of scarlatina, is something entirely different from true croup; it is a diphtheritic disease the true characteristics of which have already been described in the first volume. The exciting causes of croup are not always easy to trace. If croup is a, very rare disease in warm climates, nor is very frequent in mountainous districts, provided the locality is at a considerable altitude or otherwise well protected: we still are unable to explain by these facts why so many cases of croup occur in one and so few in another year. A northwest or a north wind, or even a sultry and southwest wind with rain, are very apt to bring a good deal of sickness. A district not far from the city of Hanover and situated in front of a range of mountains extending from northwest to southeast, in consequence of which that district is exposed to the winds blowing in a similar direction, is visited every year from March until June by a good many cases of croup and of severe pneumonia among adults. The flat country from Hanover to the North-Sea is similarly circumstanced. The winds blowing in this region of country, must be possessed of a peculiar nature in order to cause extensive epidemics which sometimes snatch away twenty and more children in one village. According to the investigations of latter years, which indeed are still incomplete, it appears as though the amount of ozone in the air acted an important part as one of the causative influences of croup. This is so much more probable since the amount of ozone contained in the air is liable to the greatest variations during the prevalence of abnormal proportions of electricity such as are apt to be caused (~) 114 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. by a northwest wind. That croup is caused by:a simple cold, is much more easily asserted than proven. The same child has many attacks of violent laryngeal catarrh in the course of the year, but is attacked with croup only during the prevalence of a keen blast from the north. The epidemic character of croup likewise shows that there must be other causes at work in its development beside cold or warlm weather. That croup is contagious is only believed by those who regard croup and diphtheria as identical. Syvnpto'nms and Coutrse. For a clearer comprehension of the morbid symptoms we here premise a short description of the postmortem appearances. The mucous membrane shows every possible degree of hyperelmia, from the brightest to the darkest color, but only if death takes place after the disease had run a short course; if it lasts a more considerable length of time, the color of the membrane is sometimes strikingly pale. The sub-mucous tissue is usually infiltrated, the mucous membrane itself less frequently, though the infiltration is not considerable; the muscular tissue of the larynx is likewise found swollen and softened. Upon the free surface of the mucous membrane an exudation of fibrinous plasma takes place, at times only in detached spots, at other times covering a large portion and even the whole surface of the larynx and trachea, and dipping down to the bronchial tubes. In few cases only the exudation has the consistence of cream; usually it becomes tough and firm, in which case these characteristics are more marked on the free surface of the membrane than on the ssurface adhering to the mucous lining. At times it adheres to this lining loosely, at other times very firmly. The thickness of this membranous exudation sometimes exceeds one line, sometimes it only forms a very thin, transparent layer. The formation of a firm, compact cylinder is of rare occurrence; more commonly the exudation adheres to the mucous lining in the shape of patches of various sizes. Sometimes, side by side with firm membranous patches, a portion of the exudation is seen converted into pus or even ichor, or feeble traces of vascularity are observed on. the side adhering to the mucous membrane. Very commonly though not regularly, the pharynx is involved in the morbid process, but always only to a limited extent. Less frequently, but not by any means very rarely, the exudative process spreads to the bronehia and the lungs. In a majority of cases, croup is preceded by a preliminary stage which is, however, not well defined. The children are less cheerful Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. 115 than usual, they cough with a somewhat unusual sound, are somewhat hoarse, with a little roughness in the throat, have slight febrile motions, etc. These symptoms are so trifling that they are most.commonly overlooked, if the children are otherwise strong and vigorous. In very rare, or rather in exceptional cases, croup is preceded by a nasal catarrh which, when present, is a tolerably certain guarantee against the possible occurrence of croup; in general, the transition from an ordinary catarrh of the respiratory organs to croup is not often noticed. The precursory symptoms very seldom precede the outbreak of the real disease longer than a day. This outbreak generally takes place about midnight. After sleeping quietly for a few hours, the children have a few short turns of cough, or sometimes are roused from their sleep by a severe paroxysm. The cough has a sound that is very difficult to describe; it resembles most nearly the bark of a watch-do0; it is a hoarse cough having a metallic ring and is forced out with great vehemence. These peculiar features are so striking, that the very first turn of cough rouses the family from their sleep by its unusually load and shrill ring. At the same time the voice becomes husky, loses its resonance, and seems labored; the inspirations are somewhat impeded, although not yet to a very high degree, audible, wheezing, and prolonged. This makes the patient restless and anxious. The fever is. scarcely ever very high, but the larynx is very frequently sensitive to contact. Sometimes the child falls asleep again after a short turn of cough, and it is only the wheezing inspirations that betray the presence of the terribly threatening danger. In the morning, the little patient may feel quite well, except perhaps a little weak and languid. Up to this period, croup resembles an ordinary attack of laryngitis so perfectly that it is often impossible to distinguish one from ~the other. This uncertainty and vagueness of the symptoms may.continue during the second and even third night, although the croupy character of the attack becomes more and more marked as ~the disease progresses on its course. As a rule, the affection presents all its frightful features on the second day, or even at the very outset of the attack. The cough may not become more frequent or violent, but it is less sonorous, more distressing and wheezing, and fills the children with inexpressible agony. As soon as they become aware of the approach of a paroxysm of cough, they raise themselves in their beds, hold on with spasmodic energy to the person near them, or throw themselves about as if convulsed. The 116 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. agony is still heightened by the gradually increasing difficulty of drawing breath, which is seldom very marked at the commencement of the attack and is particularly striking during the paroxysms of cough. As the dyspncea increases, the complexion becomes pallid and finally livid, and the face bloats. The pulse increases in frequency and becomes smaller. The little ones seem to suffer more pain than they really do; the children grasp at their throats and pull at their tongues, not so much because they suffer acute pain as because they are so terribly distressed for breath; at any rate touching the larynx does not seem to cause an increase of suffering. The cough and the agony of breathing do not last all the time; between the paroxysms, the patients lie in a state of sopor and utter exhaustion. True intermissions during which the disease seems on the point of leaving and the patients appear cheerful and in apparent health, occur very rarely. Intermissions or remissions generally take place in the morning; they seldom last all day, and still less frequently a day and a night, but are interrupted by renewed attacks of cough and dyspnoea. If at this stage of the disease the pathological disease should take a favorable turn, the improvement may announce itself quite suddenly by the expectoration, within a short period of time, of large quantities of membranous patches or even of the whole of the cylindrical tube at once. This last-mentioned change occurs very rarely, and even if it does occur, it is not safe to regard the danger as entirely over until at least two days have elapsed without any trace of a renewed exudation having been perceived. In other cases recovery takes place by the gradual absorption and liquefaction of the membrane, the cough becomes moister, a mucous rale is heard in the larynx and trachea, small pieces of membrane and a yellowish tenacious mucus are coughed up, the signs of congestion in the head and face decrease, the pulse rises and the breathing becomes easier. Several days may pass while these changes are going on, before all danger is past; this point remains more particularly doubtful if the children do not bring up any thing and swallow the detached mucus or membranous patches. If the disease runs an unfavorable course, every symptom steadily and uniformly increases in intensity, or the increase takes place by fits and starts, with remissions such as we have described. The face now exhibits the pallor of death, the eyes gradually lose their lustre and assume a vague and unmeaning expression. The cough now loses all resonance, the very power to force out a single Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. 117 turn of cough seems to be lost. At times the membranes in the trachea are heard to flutter, and their expulsion is momentarily expected. The dyspncea now reaches its climax, the children are almost driven to frenzy during the paroxysms of cough or the respiration becomes so restricted and superficial that the dyspncea apparently does not seem to be as violent as it is in reality. Sometimes the paroxysms become so violent that the child suddenly perishes by suffocation. Between the attacks, the coma becomes more and more profound, and the brain seems to participate in the struggle. This phenomenon, however, like the majority of deaths, has to be attributed to the gradual poisoning of the blood by carbonic acid originating in the deficient access of air to the lungs. This likewise accounts for the slow death. No immediate asphyxia taking place, this suffocative stage sometimes lasts forty-eight hours before death takes place. There is a form of croup which runs its course without the peculiar croupy cough. Here the gradually-growing danger is over]ooked, because the dyspncea increases more uniformly and slowly. This may be owing to the glottis not being contracted or at least in a lesser degree. Sometimes the diagnosis can only be determined with perfect certainty by the expulsion of membranous patches. This form of croup is scarcely less dangerous than the former, only it usually lasts much longer. The duration of croup depends upon a variety of circumstances. If the intensity of all the symptoms increases steadily, death may take place in thirty-six hours by asphyxia. In most cases the patients die on the fifth or sixth day, seldom later, and exceptionally only after the ninth day. This period does not include the preliminary stage, but dates from the first outset of the disease itself. The prognosis is in every case very doubtful. Although homceopathy is justly entitled to claim more favorable results in its treatment of croup than any other method has a right to do, yet even under homceopathic treatment croup is one of the most fatal diseases. Moreover the results of any form of treatment are often very much complicated by another circumstance. Membranous croup, especially if a cure only takes place after the dyspncea had continued for some time, is very apt to be succeeded by dangerous after-diseases among which lobular pneumonia, bronchitis and acute cedema of the lungs are the most important. These affections are the most common complications of croup, owing to which recovery is often delayed for a long time, or is never complete for the reason that chronic bronchitis, emphysema, etc., remain behind. 118 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. Before discussing the diagnosis of croup, we will add a few remarks on diphtheritic laryngitis which differs essentially from croup. Epidemic diphtheria, although more particularly confined to the mucous membrane of the mouth and fauces, is likewise very much inclined to invade the larynx. This occurrence generally shows that the disease is of a most malignant type. The symptoms of diphtheritic croup resemble those of the ordinary form of membranous croup, from which the former differs, however, in some respects. The patients begin to show laryngeal symptoms after the affection of the fauces has existed for some time, and the strength has begun to fail. The dyspncea is less intense as in membranous croup; the inflammatory swelling is less, and the patients do not die so much on account of the dyspncea as on account of the general violence of the disease. The characteristic sopor of the last stage of croup does not occur in diphtheria. These distinctions do not occur in every ease, but in the majority of cases. They are easily accounted for by the differences in the character of the exudation which in diphtheria involves the tissue of the mucous lining itself, and very speedily results in gangrenous or ichorous dissolution, often attended with considerable loss of substance. If the diphtheritic process invades the larynx, it assumes a very destructive character, sometimes without interfering with the breathing, whereas croupous laryngitis unattended with dyspnoea need not necessarily be a very dangerous disease. In pathological treatises both these forms of croup are generally described as homogeneous, whereas they differ essentially in their natures, which explains the fact that the views concerning croup are so much at variance in the different works on Pathology. Towards the end of the disease the diagnosis of croup is just as easy as it is sometimes obscure at the commencement. It is most apt to be confounded with laryngitis; indeed, both these forms of disease resemble each other so much that it is very difficult during the first twenty-four hours to diagnose the true character of the attack, in spite of the most careful investigation of all anamnestic circumstances. If we have before us an individual who has had frequent attacks of simple laryngitis; who is otherwise in the enjoyment of bodily vigor and health, and shows symptoms of an incipient or fully developed nasal catarrh: it is almost certain that the idea of croup may be abandoned. The last-mentioned circumstance is of particular importance, for we have never yet seen incipient croup accompanied by a damp nose; and if the nose does Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. 119 begin to discharge during the last stage of croup, the secretion is always of the ichorons character of a diphtheritic discharge. In laryngitis as in croup the dyspncea may at first be very great, except that in the former disease the dyspncea decreases in intensity as soon as the children are wide awake and have tasted of a little nourishment; nor does it increase after the first attack, although it may last longer than the first twenty-four hours. If croup prevails as an epidemic, every attack of laryngitis ought to be suspected from the outset; likewise, if in the same family several children, had already been attacked with croup. The presence of membranous exudations on the tonsils and in the pharynx, which, however, are not always noticed at the very commencement of the attack, places the diagnosis beyond all doubt. A spasm of the glottis which is but a transitory condition, can only be confounded with croup at the outset, so much more easily if the spasm is complicated with laryngitis. In a few hours already the true character of the enemy is sufficiently apparent. Treatment. Since Napoleon's famous concourse of 1807 the pathological and pathologico-anatomical changes occurring in croup have been investigated so thoroughly and almost exhaustively by such a number of physicians that it seems almost impossible that the therapeutic management of croup should have been so sadly neglected. Nevertheless.this charge is just. The Old School has not a single remedy for croup unless tracheotomy which is the last desperate resort, is considered such. If the numerous therapeutic experiments that have been made during the last fifty-six years on croup-patients, have failed to lead to the desired result, the method according to which the experiments were conducted, must have been erroneous. Wfe place this fact in bold relief in order to show with so much more force the superiority of the homceopathic treatment of croup over any other method. To this effect we first name some of the more renowned remedial agents that are used in croup. Att the same time we cannot help expressing our surprise that croup should drive the scepticism of the Physiological or Rational School to such straits; for it is astonishing what remedies even the leaders of this School propose in order to avert the fatal blow. Here the highly praised expectant method is utterly abandoned; on the contrary, the most diametrically opposed agents are brought into requisition one after the other in the most rapid succession, so that, without entertaining the least prejudice, we are naturally led to inquire what has become of the "rationality" of the method. 120 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. The most important and most extensively used remedies are emetics, topical and general sanguineous depletions, Calomel internally and the mercurial ointment externally, Antimony, Tartar emetic, Hepar sulphuris, Alum and finally a number of locally applied substances. At the same time cold and warm compresses, watery vapors, wrappings, etc., are not wanting. Emetics which are the most important agents in this list, are iindebted for their reputation to the apparent success which they have in simple laryngitis; we call this success apparent because no true laryngitis can be cut short by a simple emetic. No amount of sophistical argumentation is able to show that an emetic can exert the least influence over an incipient croup. Moreover we cannot overlook the fact that the effect of an emetic does not end with the act of vomiting, especially if the Sulphate of Copper is used for this purpose, and that our patients are little children. Children who had an attack of simple laryngitis, often suffer for weeks from the effects of the Sulphate of Copper or of Tartar emetic. The use of an emetic is much more excusable if, after the membrane had begun to be formed, the process of expectoration is to be promoted; there is no difficulty in comprehending that the act of vomiting stimulates the disposition to expectorate. An homoeopath will undoubtedly know how to account for the action of Ipecacuanha or Tartar emetic or even of the Sulphate of Copper upon different principles from those in vogue. In the second stage of croup the Sulphate of Copper is now the fashionable emetic; yet this preference is not accounted for upon scientific principles. We know that Copper has a good effect in the spasmodic closing of the glottis, and hence is of advantage in croup. While mentioning this effect of Copper a knowledge of which has been acquired by the most foolhardy empiricism, we at the same time have to remind our readers that not one of our allopathic opponents has been able to account for the good effects of Copper in croup except by the act of vomiting. As regards the sanguineous depletions, be they local or general, we can dispense with the trouble of dwelling upon them any further.. It is inconceivable that they are expected to prevent, arrest or diminish the exudation; what is certain is that bleeding robs the child of the power to develop the necessary reaction against the disease. Even the croup-fever is not sufficiently intense to justify bleeding. As far as Mercury is concerned, the only excuse, we dare not call it indication, for its use is that a quantity of Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. 121 coagul able lymph is effused in croup and that Mercury is a powerful antiplastic agent. But this agent alone has never yet removed a case of croup, but has occasioned such violent attacks of stomatitis that the jaws have united by ulceration. The other remedies will be further dwelt upon by and by, especially the Sulphuret of Lime; this agent which is a true specific in many cases of croup, is only mentioned very cursorily in allopathic works, more like a curiosity than as an useful remedy. The want of internal remedies naturally led physicians to hunt up external applications. The croup-membrane was to be destroyed, the subjacent mucous lining to be cauterized and the disease was thus to be conquered. Strange fancy, as if we did not know that croup is a special form of inflammation resulting from, or determined by constitutional susceptibilities. A glance at the results of the cauterizing process in diphtheria ought to have discouraged the cauterizers of the croupy membrane. The mucous lining of the larynx has been washed with the Nitrate of Silver, Muriatic acid, Alum, etc., causing the patient the most agonizing distress. The only advantage derived from such a proceeding may be that the irritating action of those agents may cause a violent coughing fit which may promote the process of expectoration. The inhalations to which we shall refer hereafter, are not of very great importance, nor is the application of ice or cold water. If we add to these means of treatment the unavoidable blisters and sinapisms, we have the best part of the medicinal apparatus of the Old School before us. In spite of all these appliances, from 70 to 90 per cent. of all undoubted cases of membranous croup perish. This result is certainly no triumph, nor has tracheotomy increased the chances of recovery. In opposition to these failures Iomceopathy can show a most successful treatment of croup to her opponents without inflicting upon the poor little patients the horrible tortures of Old School practice. We are not sanguine enough to add credence to those to profess to have treated hundreds of cases of croup during a practice of thirty or forty years without losing a single patient; but we do know that by far the larger number of cases are saved under homeopathic treatment; this is an amount of success to be proud of. We do not fall back upon statistical data which may be called in doubt on account of diagnostic inaccuracies or uncertainties; a single fact among many may prove more convincing to the most inveterate sceptic than the most scientific statistical exhibit. At the beginning of this year epidemic croup broke out on a heather 122 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. about sixteen miles from this city. Several dozens of children had already fallen victims to the above-described treatment. A young gentleman who happened to visit a merchant of the place, advised him to try homceopathic treatment. The results of this treatment were so striking that the house of this merchant was from that day besieged by persons seeking aid. With the aid of a simple domestic manual, this merchant succeeded in saving a number of lives. Is it possible to remain blind to such events? We do not attach implicit faith in the doctrine that vox populi is vox Dei; but in such terrible epidemics even a layman has sense enough to see whether those who are attacked, perish or get well, and what method of treatment is crowned with the latter result. The remedies which homceopaths use in treating croup, are the following: Aconitum, Hepar sulphuris, Spongia maritina, liodium, Bromum, Phosphorus, Cuprumr and several more. We shall consider these drugs in their respective bearing upon each of the different stages of croup, instead of furnishing a detached list of the symptomatic indications of each drug in particular. If we are called to a case of croup in the night, it is not always possible to at once obtain the conviction that we are dealing with a case of croup; for even the presence of considerable dyspnea does not always imply that the disease before us is croup. In order to meet this uncertainty the custom has prevailed for a long time already to at once give Aconite in alternation with some other remedy. We do not approve of this custom of giving remedies in alternation, but make an exception in favor of croup on account of the uncertainty in our diagnosis. Aconite is excellent in catarrhal, but utterly inefficient in membranous croup. If we suspect a case of membranous croup, we give Aconite 2, and Iodium 2, in alternation every hour. The Iodine had better be prepared fresh in order that we may be sure of operating with a reliable attenuation. This remedy is not given by all practitioners at the outset of the attack, but Hepar sulphuris or Spongia. We have the following reasons for our proceeding. Iodium exerts a special action on the larynx so constantly, and causes a violent inflammation of the larynx, with so much certainty that this effect may be set down as a pathognomonic and highly characteristic symptom of the action of Iodine. That it is capable of healing far advanced cases of croup, is true beyond all doubt. Hence there is no reason why a medicine that embraces in its pathogenetic series all the symptoms of croup and must therefore be adapted to every stage of this disease, should Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. 123 not be given at the very commencement of the attack. We consider this medicine much more appropriate than some other medicine that is only suitable in the incipient stages of the d sease. Many other physicians prefer Iepacr sulphuaris at the outset, if the following symptoms prevail: Marked febrile motions, the respiration is almost entirely unembarrassed, but has a peculiar sound; dry, metallic cough with disposition to choke, mingled with a short rattling in the trachea, as if mucus would be raised; or if the cough seems to continue moist, and the croupy sound is present; the larynx is painful; there is hoarseness, but no loss of voice. Spongia is even recommended more strongly than Hepar at the first invasion of the disease. Hahnemann himself regards Spongia as the main remedy in croup and directs to resort now and then to an intermediate dose of Aconite or IIepar; he does not consider Spongia indicated until the respiration has become embarrassed and exudation has commenced. Almost all observers are of the same opinion. In the first night, it may not matter much which of these remedies is given in alternation with Aconite. It is certain that catarrhal croup will be modified by a few doses of Aconite within twelve hours so fully that whenever this favorable change does not take place within this period of time, we may rest assured, that we are dealing with a case of membranous croup and that the selection of a specific remedy can no longer remain doubtful. This feat is not so easily accomplished if we take the Materia Medica for our guide; moreover, experience has done already a great deal for us in this respect. Experience informs us that HPepar is a suitable remedy on the second day, if mucus begins to accumulate in the windpipe, there is no increase of hoarseness, no dyspncea or very little of it, and the cough has a uniformly croupy sound; hence IHepar is indicated in the milder cases of croup. Spongia is required if the croup shows its malignant features after the lapse of a few hours, the cough has a hollow sound, less resonance, the hoarseness approximates to aphonia, the dyspnoea is more marked. lodiun is to be given if the symptoms steadily increase in intensity, the loss of voice is complete, the dyspncea has reached the highest degree of intensity, and the cough has lost a good deal of its ringing and shrill sound. As soon as we have become satisfied of the nature of the disease, Aconite is no longer given in alternation with some other drug, even if violent fever should be present. The question now is 124 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. whether at this stage of the disease two remedies like ASpongia and Hlepar, or Hepar or Spongia and Iodium, had not better be continued in alternation. A good deal may be excused in the presence of such a dangerous malady, and we have not the heart to condemn any one who deems it proper to continue the alternate use of two drugs, more particularly in cases where the life of the patient might be jeopardized if the action of a single drug were allowed to continue For twelve hours and even longer. Alternating drugs does not improve our knowledge of their true action; hence this custom should be abandoned whenever such a thing is possible. In the vast majority of cases the further progress of croup will be stayed under the operation of one of the above-mentioned three remedies; if this fact is perceived, we have every reason to be satisfied with the treatment, and we must not be anxious to change the medicine until every symptom of the real croup-disease has disappeared. If Hepar and Spongia seem ineffectual, and the disease steadily continues to grow worse, we give lodium which we continue at least forty-eight hours unless symptoms of asphyxia manifest themselves before this period is passed. In most cases lodium will undoubtedly have a favorable effect. Only we must not indulge in the expectation of cutting the disease short. A result of this kind only occurs in a very small number of cases. Most commonly the pathological process continues to go on under the action of Iodine, after which it retrogrades, as is the case in every other inflammation. What is essential is that it should be kept confined within proper boundaries. Even if the dyspncea increases at first, this is no reason why the use of Iodine should be discontinued. Instead of Iodine, many physicians recommend Bromine; some successful cures with Bromine are reported, whereas others deny it all power over croup. We are not yet able to express a decided opinion on this subject. The symptoms indicating Bromine are the following: Cough having a croupy sound, hoarse, wheezing, distressing cough which does not give one a chance to speak, attended with sneezing and violent fits of suffocation; spasm of the glottis, whence the symptoms of asphyxia; moist respiratory rale, the breathing is at times wheezing and slow, at other times as if he would suffocate, and then again hurried, superficial, labored, distressed, painful and gasping. This combination of symptoms is furnished by Attomyr, but we would like to ask whether anything in this group points to Bromine? Moreover we confess that we consider a purely symptomatic treatment of croup inadequate, and Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. 125 that, if croup were to be treated according to mere symptoms, we would have to change the medicine as often as the symptoms change, which would be productive of a vast deal of harm. We are acquainted with the effects of the remedies to be employed, but which of them is the best adapted to the exigencies of the case, is best determined by practical experience. We do not mean to reject Bromine, but it is only inimild cases that we would substitute its use for that of Iodine. If, in spite of all treatment, the symptoms of asphyxia increase more and more; if the dyspncea continues to increase; if the agony and restlessness of the little patient become more distressing, and the symptoms of cerebral congestion more marked, two remedies remain from which aid may be expected, namely Phosphorus and Tartar emetic. The former is indicated if the cough has lost all resonance and force, and the mucous rale has ceased; or more especially if the croupous process has invaded the bronchia and the lungs have evidently become hyperxemic. Tart.ar emetic is indicated if the dyspncea and danger of asphyxia are occasioned by movable patches of membrane, the cough is indeed feeble and without resonance, but a mucous rale is still distinctly heard in the trachea. However it is not advisable to prescribe this remedy in large doses, for the favorable effect of the act of vomiting is very problematical. whereas the great depression caused by the vomiting is sure to follow. Nor is it at all certain whether any emetic at this advanced stage of croup can cause vomiting. Grain doses of the second trituration are sufficiently strong; as regards Phosphorus we would not dare give it below the third attenuation. In this place we will call attention to a few remedies that have no relation to the croupous exudation, but are important in other respects. The danger of suffocation depends in many cases upon a spasmodic closing rather than upon a mechanical disarrangement or an inflammatory infiltration of the rima glottidis. A condition of this kind is pretty certain to exist if the dyspncea sets in in single, pretty sharply detached paroxysms, the remissions between the paroxysms are quite considerable and no rales are heard in the larynx. If we designate this closing of the glottis as spasmodic, the designation is not entirely correct, because paralysis of the muscular apparatus of the larynx is undoubtedly the chief cause of the asphyxia, whereas a spasm of the larynx could not well be accounted for. If we consider that in the case of children the glottis forms an uniformly narrow chink whose sides incline obliqulely 126 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. towards each other from without inwards, and from below upwards, it is easily conceivable that, in case the sides are somewhat relaxed, they may be forced against each other during the act of inspiration, in consequence of which the glottis will either be very much contracted or even closed. These facts explain how children may die of croup without a membrane being seen after death, and why full-grown persons whose glottis. is wider and differently shaped, scarcely ever succomb to an attack of crouy. WeC can meet this paralytic condition by some remedies that are well worthy of our consideration: Cuprum, Moschus, Nux moschata, Ipecaceanhla, and Arvseniemn. Of all these remedies, Cuprum is undoubtedly the most important; its effect is in a measure confirmed by the effect of the Sulphate of Copper when administered as an emetic. Arsenicumn has shown its favorable effect upon dyspnoea in a most desperate case which terminated in recovery. The other three remedies have been strongly recommended by other physicians; we have no personal experience to offer in their behalf. If these remedies are to be used, they will have to be given in alternation with the true specifics for croup; the best mode of using them is to interpolate a dose every few hours. If the stage of asphyxia sets in in spite of this treatment,-which will not often be the case,-the question then occurs what will have to be the further object of the treatment. The glottis is paralyzed or its space encroached upon, together with that of the trachea, by membranes; the existing sopor shows that the poisoning by carbonic acid has aheady made considerable headway; the icy coldness of the skin is evidence that an independent reaction can hardly be expected any longer. The only remaining chance of saving the patient is by promoting the oxygenation of the blood. It would be absurd to prescribe for these apparent symptoms of cerebral congestions remedies like Opium, Belladonna, Hyoscyamus, etc., which will not have the least effect. Nor will the continued use of Phosphorus or Tartar emetic, in the absence of all reaction, produce the least result. Under these circumstances tracheotomy alone can afford help, and it would be just as criminal to leave the operation undone at this stage, as it would have been criminal to perform it at an earlier period. For a description of this operation we refer the reader to works on Surgery. We are decidedly opposed to the operation being performed before the stage of asphyxia has set in; this may be excusable in cases that are not treated homceopathically, for other Schools have no really specific remedies for croup. Laryngotracheitis Crouposa. 127 If but few patients are saved by this operation, it is not the fault of the operation, but of the period when it is performed. Without the operation all patients die in the stage of asphyxia; where the operation is performed, only some die, though it be the larger number. These results show that the operation is not only justifiable, but eminently necessary and important. However, in order that all possible advantages may be derived from the operation, it should not be delayed too long; otherwise the sopor might progress too far, or recovery might be prevented by an acute emphysema and oedema of the lungs; conditions that may lead to a fatal termination even after the cure of croup is successfully accomplished. [The reader may peruse with profit an article on tracheotomy in croup, by Doctor Talbot, of Boston, in one of the late numbers of the New England Medical Gazette. H.] If an improvement sets in, we first notice an abatement of the dyspncea; it is by changes of this kind that we can measure the probable chances of our final success. Nevertheless, the medicine which induces the favorable turn, had better be continued for some time longer, but at more extended intervals. To continue the use of the medicine is of importance, for the reason that, after a marked remission of the symptoms, the disease sometimes breaks out again with renewed violence. The cough sometimes retains for a long time its hoarse, barking sound; the aphonia likewise often continues for a long time. For the cough we administer Hepar, more especially if it is attended with mucous rale; if the cough is dry, Phosphorus is preferable. This agent is likewise most suitable for the subsequent hoarseness. The so-called torpid croup does not destroy life as rapidly as the preceding varieties, but is withal a very insidious disease. It is treated with the same remedies as those above mentioned, except that lHepar sulphuris very frequently deserves the preference. If croup results from a gradual working down of the diphtlb -ritic process from the pharynx to the larynx., it is always more dangerous than the primary form of croup, and, according to the reasons we have advanced when speaking of diphtheritis, requires to be treated with entirely different remedies. In diphtheritic croup Bromine may possibly deserve particular attention. We refer the reader to the chapter on diphtheritis. It is this form of croup that has given rise to the belief in the contagiousness of croup; it does, indeed,, seem to be a contagious disease. [Some cures have been 128 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. made of diphtheritic croup with Lachesis highly potentized; and also with Kali bichromicum. H.] External applications in croup are generally without any effect. Whereas some apply hot water to the neck, and cause watery vapors to be inhaled, or order hot arm-baths; others, on the contrary, prefer ice-water or ice itself, and others again resort to the wet pack. This deserves a preference over the other applications, because it most advantageously stimulates the functional activity of the slin. Upon the whole, however, it is our belief that the greatest advantage of these auxiliary means consists in diverting the attention of the family who are generally plunged into extreme agony. Whether the administration of drugs by means of vaporous inhalations is the most useful method, is still a disputed point. We do not see whether a medicine introduced into the human body through the respiratory organs, should develop its effects more surely or more penetratingly than when administered by the mouth. Moreover, this method is sometimes attended with difficulties, unless we do not mind filling the sick-chamber with vapors. This has the disadvantage that no fresh supply of pure air gets to the lnngs and that the medicine ceases to be under our control. The dyspncea is, moreover, easily increased by inhalation. Apparatuses for inhalation cannot be used, because the little patients are exceedingly restless and tossed about by their agonizing distress. At all events, the inhaling process has to be conducted with great care. We have no special remarks to offer on the subject of diet in this disease. On account of the dyspnoea, which renders deglutition exceedingly difficult, the greatest trouble is experienced in giving children the least quantity of nourishment; what nourishment is given, should be in a liquid form, and very strengthening. If the strength fails too rapidly, a little good wine proves an excellent stimulant. There is no real prophylactic treatment against croup, except a regular system of hardening children from the moment they are born, and bringing them up in all respects in accordance with principles of health. If a child with a suspicious habit of body is attacked with a croupy cough whenever it takes cold, and is generally inclined to have an attack of severe laryngitis, let it be kept in-doors during a keen North wind, or let it at least be protected by a sufficient amount of warm clothing. Whether Calcarea carbonica, Hepar or Phosphorus are capable of exerting a protective influence against croup, is not yet decided. After a first attack of Laryngotracheitis Chronica. 129 croup, a disposition to be again attacked generally remains. It is doubtful whether even such a disposition can be removed; the constitutional diathesis cannot well be remedied. 3. Laryngotracheitis Chronica. Chronic Laryngotracheal Catarrh. The chronic form of this catarrh is, like the acute, one of the most frequent diseases both with reference to affections of the respiratory organs specially, and with reference to all other diseases collectively. This disease befalls children only as an exceptional disturbance; if it does occur in childhood, it is almost always a consequence of a more malignant acute disease, especially of croup and diphtheria. Nor are older people frequently attacked by this disease; hence we say that nmiddle-aged persons between the ages of twenty and fifty years are principally liable to such attacks. Sex has an undoubted influence over the disease; for although women are much less exposed to the unfavorable influences which we shall mention by and by, this does not satisfactorily account for the extraordinary prevalence of the disease among the male sex. Regarding a special disposition, we refer the reader to what we have said in the first chapter of this section. Chronic laryngotracheal catarrh is seldom a primary, generally a secondary or consecutive affection. Primarily this form of catarrh is caused by the same influences as the acute form, a cold, continued talking, singing, the constant use of spirits, beer, exposure to marked differences of temperature. Secondarily it may represent a slow form of acute catarrh, which is the most frequent cause of the chronic form, especially if the individual had several acute at-.tacks in succession; or else it is a continuation of a catarrhal affection of the nose, fauces, buccal cavity; or it may result from the constant irritation caused by repeated ulcerations or adventitious growths; or finally it may be a manifestation of some constitutional disease. In this respect it sometimes accompanies syphilis or a mercurial dyscrasia; most commonly, however, it is a symptom of pulmonary tuberculosis, so that every catarrh whose persistence cannot be accounted for by any known cause, must necessarily excite the suspicion that the lungs are infiltrated with tubercular matter. In this affection the anatomical changes are so important for a proper understanding of the symptoms, that we premise a short 9 130 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. description of these changes. Usually the mucous membrane is darker than normally, sometimes the dark tinge is quite considerable; the membrane is more or less thickened and puffed up. It is traversed by a multitude of engorged vessels and studded with swollen follicles imparting to it a granular appearance. It is covered with a tenacious, gray, yellowish or transparent secretion. The subjacent tissues, cellular tissues, muscles, ligaments are swollen and softened. If particular circumstances prevail, the mucous membrane ulcerates at an early stage of the disease, but almost always after the disease has lasted some time. Most commonly we observe a simple erosion in the shape of a superficial exfoliation surrounded by a more intensely red border, but without any definite form. These erosions may change to more deeply-penetrating ulcers with blown or puffed edges which eat only in exceptional cases through the whole thickness of the mucous membrane. Another form of ulceration arises from the inflammation of the follicles; in which case small, deep, rounded ulcers form, which very readily penetrate the mucous membrane and propagate the affection to external organs. We observe moreover fungoid growths of single follicles,. even polypi; cicatrizations and contracting cicatrices, thickenings and callosities of the mucous membrane. Of special importance are the subsequent changes, especially cicatrices which may lead to dangerous accidents. The great differences of the anatomical lesions depending upon their nature, locality and extent, render it self-evident that it is impossible to draw a true and striking picture of laryngotracheal catarrh. Ience we shall have to confine ourselves to a delineation of the leading symptoms. The absence of almost every objective aid in establishing our diagnosis, is often seriously felt, nor is it certain whether the laryngoscope has as yet led to striking results, although we are willing to admit that this means of investigation has a bright future before it. The most important symptoms of the disease are: pain, alterations of the voice, cough, embarrassed respiration. The pain is scarcely ever very considerable, and if it is described as acute, we may be sure that ulcers have formed. It is scarcely ever continuous, but is excited by talking, singing running, sudden changes of temperature, and most easily by coughing. Sometimes it is a soreness, at other times the pain is stinging, burning, gnawing, and inclines to exacerbate towards morning. An annoying sensation is the feeling as if there were dust or a foreign body in Laryngotracheitis Chronica. 131 the throat, or the patients complain of a periodically returning tickling in the larynx. The voice is variously altered. We may lay it down as a rule that every persistent change in the voice points to chronic laryngeal catarrh. The hoarseness runs throughout its whole series of gradations, from simple roughness of voice to complete aphonia. It scarcely ever continues all the time in the same degree of violence; it may even disappear entirely for a while, and then be excited anew by some unusual exertion in using the organs of voice. Sometimes the hoarseness is only perceived during singing. However, it is not by any means a characteristic symptom of chronic laryngotracheal catarrh. A sudden cracking of the voice or an inability to raise the voice beyond a certain pitch, is often met with. Cough is a very common symptom in this affection. Sometimes it amounts to no more than a hawking occasioned by a titillation in the larynx or oppressed breathing; at other times it torments the patient for days, after which it often intermits for a while; sometimes it breaks out in regular paroxysms which most commonly set in in the morning after rising and abate again after small quantities of mucus have been expectorated. There is nothing characteristic in the sound of the cough, except that a rattling of mucus is most generally heard in the trachea or glottis, and that a dry titillating cough sometimes prevails by way of exception. The expectoration is never very copious except when it is mixed with mucus from the lungs, of a white or grayish color, firmly cohering and globular, sometimes slightly streaked with blood. If it has a purulent appearance, we may almost feel sure that the expectoration does not alone proceed from the larynx and trachea. The difficulties of breathing, an oppressed, wheezing respiration, and even an asthmatic dyspnoea are occasioned by a swelling and constriction of the glottis, hence do not show the degree of intensity, but the seat of the disease. These difficulties are of importance to a physician for the additional reason that they excite the most fearful apprehensions in the minds of most patients. This disease generally runs a protracted and even obstinate course. It is mostly determined by the existing anatomical lesions. A simple affection of the mucous membrane is easily cured; what renders the final result doubtful is, when the patients expose themselves to influences that rekindle the disorder as soon as it begins to mend. A simple ulcer is likewise within the reach of remedial influences, whereas the more deeply-penetrating ulcer and the fun 182 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. goid exerescences of the mucous membrane resist all treatment so much more obstinately as their diagnosis is more uncertain. It is only in very rare cases that laryngotracheal catarrh is dangerous to life, not immediately, but in consequence of some pulmonary affection that may have been superinduced by the difficulties which the air encounters in passing through the larynx. Laryngeal phthisis without tubercles is a very rare occurrence, in which case it most generally depends upon other dyscrasic conditions. The tubercular laryngeal catarrh will be described when we come to speak of tuberculosis; here we will only state that almost all dangerous and obstinate laryngeal catarrhs, especially if attended with emaciation or fever, are caused by tubercular infiltration. Treatment. We deal with an affection that may occur in the most diversified forms, complications and degrees of intensity, and which on this account alone renders the selection of a large number of remedies expedient. We could not possibly mention every drug that may be required for the treatment of this disease, and have confined ourselves to an enumeration of the more important remedies, referring the reader to a good Repertory as an indispensable auxiliary, if a remedy is to be chosen for a single symptom of characteristic value. Tartarus stibiatus and Antimonium crudum. The former is especially indicated when the acute form passes into the chronic, more particularly in the case of children and old people. There is a frequent desire to cough, attended with an audible rattling of mucus in the air-passages, a thick and white phlegm being brought up after a severe paroxysm of racking cough. Or the cough may set in in detached violent paroxysms accompanied with dyspnlea and ending in gagging and forcing up mucus. Both kinds are principally met with among children and old people. For hoarseness as an isolated symptom, Tartarus stibiatus may not be appropriate; Antimnonium crudum will be found preferable. The following symptoms indicate this remedy: the hoarseness is made worse by excitement and overheating; disposition of the voice to give out suddenly; sensation of roughness in the larynx, and as if a foreign body had lodged in it. Hepar sulphuris calcareum is particularly adapted to neglected acute catarrh, and is an indispensable remedy for singers and people who have to talk a good deal, but is likewise suitable in many cases of chronic catarrh. The following symptoms are the most essential: the larynx feels painful as if sore and burning, especially when the Laryngotracheitis Chronica. 138 patients cough or talk loud; hoarseness sometimes increasing for a short time to aphonia; feeling of dryness in the larynx, although the presence of mucus is distinctly perceived; a hoarse titillating cough with scanty expectoration and rattling of mucus in the trachea; hard, lumpy, yellow or greenish expectoration, very tenacious and sometimes tinged with blood. Hepar deserves particular attention in cases of chronic catarrh remaining after croup or measles, or in the case of individuals who had taken much Mercury. Spongia bears great resemblance to the former drug both symptomatically as well as in its general indications. It too is indicated after croup and measles, in cases of neglected acute catarrh, in the case of singers. It is particularly required for the cough with burning titillation in the larynx, which sets in more particularly at night or after loud talking. The cough has a barking sound, the mucus is hard to bring up, tenacious, yellowish, and the attacks are apt to be accompanied by dyspncea emanating from the glottis. lodium is one of the most important remedies in this affection. Among the general indications for Iodine we distinguish the fol. lowing: chronic catarrh of scrofulous and mercurialized individuals, or remaining after croup or other acute affections, or comrn plicated with chronic pharyngeal catarrh. Ths most prominent symptomatic indications are the following: Disposition to take cold, and long duration of the acute stage; the larynx is painful when pressed upon; burning, sore pains in the larynx confined to a definite spot, felt especially during cough; embarrassed respiration, wheezing inspirations causing real attacks of dysplcea especially at night; a good deal of hawking, with difficulty of bringing up tenacious mucus; a high degree of hoarseness, even aphonia; tickling in the larynx, frequently causing paroxysms of cough without expectoration, or else with scanty expectoration of a tenacious mucus sometimes mixed with streaks of blood. The general organism is very much affected by the disease. The presence of ulcers points more particularly to Iodine, which will again be referred to when. we come to speak of tubercular laryngitis. Manganum is an excellent remedy, although little has been said of it so far. It corresponds more especially to a catarrh accompanying an incipient, not a fully developed tuberculosis, but likewise to forms of catarrh not resulting from a dyscrasic origin, when the following symptoms are present: Slight hoarseness, rather a roughness of the throat, caused by an accumulation of lumps of hard 134 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. mucus in the glottis, and more particularly marked in the morning, accompanied by oppressed breathing, relieved by expectoration, so that toward noon the voice is perfectly clear; the cough only lasts while the mucus continues to adhere in the glottis; worse in the open -air, feels relieved by smoking. This kind of catarrh is very common among persons who use their organs of speech a good deal. We beg the reader to contrast Manganumr with Selenium which is much praised for these symptoms. Mezereum is recommended if the disease has a syphilitic origin and the symptoms point to ulceration of the larynx; among these symptoms the livid color of the pharynx and the ulcerated follicles on the posterior wall of this organ are prominent. Phosphorus has been found reliable in the most desperate cases of laryngotracheal catarrh. A tubercular origin of the affection is indeed a chief indication for Phosphorus, but this remedy likewise cures other forms of catarrh, more especially the chronic hoarseness of preachers or singers. The more important symptoms are: weakness and sensitiveness of the organs of speech, with sensation of dryness, burning, roughness, soreness in the larynx and trachea, more especially after using the voice more than usual; hoarseness, even aphonia, particularly under the operation of exciting emotions; constricted, wheezing inspirations; cough excited by the violent tickling and burning in the larynx, painful, with rattling of mucus, although scanty expectoration; hoarse, dry-sounding cough; sensation, when. coughing, as if a lump of flesh would detach itself from the throat; firm, yellowish expectoration, mingled with pus or streaks of blood. If, in addition to these symptoms, we have the general phenomena of a consumptive condition of the system, such as: fever, diarrhcea, emaciation, Phosphorus is indicated so much more decidedly. Experience having confirmed its practical value in chronic laryngeal catarrh, this remedy occupies a deservedly high rank among the remedies for this disease. Sulphur. The cases suited to the therapeutic range of this medicine, affect principally persons somewhat advanced in age, although they need not be what might be called old people. As a rule, Sulphur is indicated by the following symptoms: Chronic catarrhs of other portions of the mucous expanse, more especially of the intestinal canal, with signs of sanguineous obstructions in the abdomen; enlargement of the liver, hypochondria; catarrh arising from abuse of Mercury; sensitiveness to the open air and dampness in particular. Among the single symptoms a prominent characteristic in Laryngotracheitis Chronica. 135 dication is the cough which sets in in the evening shortly before and after retiring to bed, and is a dry, titillating, distressing cough; or the cough may break out in the morning, and stop during the day, or change to an ordinary moist cough, If tubercles are present, Sulphur has very seldom a good effect, nor does it act favorably in recent cases. Arsenicum album acts in many respects similarly to the preceding remedy. We shall revert to Arsenic when treating of pulmonary catarrh, to which we refer for the present. Arsenic, too, has great sensitiveness to cold and more particularly to damp air, likewise great nervousness. The hoarseness is not often considerable, and sets in at intervals; it is accompanied by a violent burning soreness of the throat. The cough breaks out in paroxysms with almost completely free intervals, most generally about midnight, resembles a paroxysm of whooping-cough and is accompanied by distressing dyspnoea. There is scarcely any expectoration, except that a morning-paroxysm of cough results in the hawking up of lumps of gray mucus. The constitution feels the influence of the disease. Arsenicum is more especially indicated by the circumstance that the paroxysms of cough are apt to break out when the weather changes. Next to Phosphorus, Carbo vegetabilis is the most important remedy in inveterate catarrh, but acts less favorably than Arsenic in the tubercular form of this disease. Here too, we have extreme sensitiveness to the open air, especially damp air. In consequence of loud talking, the hoarseness may increase to loss of voice; the patient complains of a feeling of great dryness in the throat, with soreness and a stinging pain, together with a copious secretion of a tenacious mucus occasioning constant and sometimes very painful hawking.' The cough is wearing, rough, with mucous rales, but only a scanty, greenish or yellowish, lumpy, tenacious expectoration, it sets in more particularly in the morning and is attended with dyspnoea. We will now mention a few more remedies in the following cursory series: For the simple protracted chronic catarrh representing an acute attack: Tartarus stibiatus, Hepar sulphuris cal., Spongia, Pulsatilla; and for the more acute intercurrent exacerbations principally Mercurius and Belladonna. The latter is sometimes eminently adapted to a spasmodic nocturnal cough, without expectoration. For catarrh complicated with ulceration, if not too old: lodium, 136 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. Hepar sulph., Manganum, Siicea, Calearea carbonica; for neglected catarrh: Phosphorus, Sulphur, Carbo veg., Arsenicum album. For inveterate simple catarrh: Sulphur, Carbo veg., Silicea, Arsenicum album. For polypous growths: Phosphorus, Calcarea carb., Silicea. For continued hoarseness and chronic catarrhs of singers, preachers, etc.: Manganum, Phosphorus, Carbo veg., Selenium, Argentum in older cases; in recent cases: Hepar sulph., Spongia. For catarrh caused by Mercury: iepar sulph., lodium, and if a syphilitic complication exists: Mezereum. For complete loss of voice, attended with catarrh: Antimonium crudur, Phosphorus, Carbo veg., lodium; if depending upon disturbed innervation: Cuprum, Opium, Causticum, Phosphorus, Ignatia, Sepia. The cure is often promoted and hastened by various dietetic and external means. Individuals, for instance, who have been in the habit of keeping their necks warm, and now take cold from every little exposure, may resort every evening to frictions with lard on the neck with the best results; these will diminish the disposition to take cold. The well known domestic remedy to wear around the neck a rough woollen bandage, is likewise to be commended. The most decided and reliable advantage, however, is obtained from the use of cold water, either by simply washing the neck with it, or by means of wet bandages around the throat. As a matter of course, too warm clothing has to be avoided. There is no better palliative for the distressing titillating cough, which is especially tormenting at night, than inhaling the vapors of warm water. We know from experience that thoroughly practised singers are seldom attacked with permanent hoarseness or pulmonary diseases. A methodical, cautious, uniform use of the voice in singing, especially if confined to the middle notes, is sometimes a better remedy for chronic hoarseness than any other means of treatment; if the vocal chords are morbidly relaxed, this use of the laryngeal muscles would be dictated by the principles of the movement-cure. Only in a case of tubercular hoarseness an experiment of this kind might prove hazardous. Talking in the midst of a noisy company, in a carriage, in rail-cars, etc., should be carefully avoided. CEdema Glottidis. 137 4. Edemeia Glottidis, Laryngitis Sub-mucosa. (Edema of the Glottis. By this name we understand a sudden infiltration of the submucous tissue of the epiglottis, and of the mucous lining of the larynx extending from the epiglottis to the rima glottidis. (Edema glottidis is more especially a disease of adults, and in most cases a secondary affection. Primarily it may result from severe burns, by hot food or corrosive substances, but scarcely ever, like common laryngitis, in consequence of a cold. Secondarily we do not often notice it in company with dropsical affections, but most commonly in company with affections that occasion the formation of ulcers or suppurating sores on the inner or outer walls of the larynx, like tuberculosis, typhus, variola, ulcerous laryngitis, perichondritis, croup, diphtheria, etc.; or it may occur in a few cases as a continuation of an ulcerous angina to the larynx, as in scarlatina. Sometimes the disease seems to assume an epidemic character; this may be nothing more than we observe, for instance, in epidemic scarlatina, which causes characteristically violent and usually purulent anginas. Considering the manner in which the disease originates, the most correct explanation seems to be that a suppurative process in the neighborhood of the glottis causes cedema in the same manner in which a chancre causes within a few hours an excessive cedema of the prepuce. Our statistical tables so far show that the disease attacks men much more frequently than women. Symptoms. The anatomical changes in edema of the glottis consist in a more or less considerable puffy swelling of the mucous membrane, more particularly at and close to the root of the epiglottis. This swelling may become so considerable that the swollen parts protrude behind the root of the tongue like a stuffed pad or sausage. Usually the color is not bright-red but pale, and, on cutting into it, the swelling discharges a serous or sero-purulent fluid. The phenomena of cedema glottidis sometimes develop themselves with an extraordinary suddenness, and at other times very slowly; moreover they are modified by the locality where they occur. In the course of one of the above-mentioned affections, hoarseness, pain and burning in the larynx set in. The hoarseness very speedily increases to complete aphonia accompanied by a cough which has all the characteristic signs of croupy cough. These symptoms are accompanied from the outset by a continually increasing dysp 138 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. ncea which, in severe cases, may rise to a fearful height. The inspiration, in consequence of which the puffed-up and infiltrated lips of the glottis are forced towards each other and towards the rima glottidis, becomes more and more prolonged, hissing and labored, and the patients very often have a feeling as if a foreign body were moving around in the larynx. If the infiltration remains moderate in quantity, the respiratory process may go on without life being in immediate jeopardy; a condition of this kind may continue unchanged for many days, although an exacerbation may take place at any time. However if the respiration is seriously impeded, all the symptoms, which we have described when speaking of croup as characterising a poisoning by carbonic acid, set in and the patients die in a state of sopor. There is no fever unless it was present previously; it is only in case the infiltration becomes purulent that the phenomena peculiar to the formation of an abscess, manifest themselves; on the bursting of the abscess the inspirations may suddenly be restored. In such cases an cedematous swelling of the neck in the region of the larynx can almost always be seen. The affection may last from twelve hours to upwards of a week. The most common termination is death by suffocation, and the prognosis is consequently that of inevitable death. It is important to notice the features which distinguish the disease from croup with which it is most easily confounded. Many cases of so-called relapses in croup are probably nothing else than cedema glottidis resulting from croup and becoming manifest after the croupy process had run its course. The distinguishing characteristics are: In the first place, the swelling itself which, in severe cases, is noticed at the root of the tongue; the appearance of the disease subsequently to and during morbid processes which are scarcely ever associated with croup; the occurrence of the disease among adults, whereas croup attacks children almost exclusively; the peculiar sensation as if a foreign body were moving about in the larynx. The prospect of a successful treatment is very slim, especially if the patient is a child. Our literature does not offer any positively successful cures of this disease, and, since it is one of the rarer kind, all we can do is to indicate the remedies which it may be necessary to use in a given case. We are acquainted with only one remedy which has oedema of the glottis among its physiological effects; this remedy is lodium. For particular indications we refer to our remarks in the chapter on croup. Another remedy which CEdema Glottidis. 139 offers some resemblance is Phosphorus; in this case, however, the resemblance is limited to a single symptom. If we consider the nature of the pathological process which results in the production of cedema glottidis, independently of the symptoms superinduced by the mechanical closing of the rima glottidis, we are more particularly led to three remedies that act similarly to the general disease, we mean: Apis mellifica, Lachesis, and Rhus toxicodendron. Lachesis especially has the peculiar serous infiltration of internal as well as external parts of the body which sets in without any symptoms that might properly be called inflammatory, and which reaches its full development in a few hours. However, since in this disease we cannot fall back upon experience for a positive knowledge of the curative action of drugs, it would be criminally indiscreet to depend exclusively upon internal treatment. In this disease, much sooner than in croup, success may be expected tfrom tracheotomy, for the reason that the trachea is not usually involved; only the operation should be performed so soon as the symptoms of poisoning by carbonic acid begin to manifest themselves; otherwise the paralysis of the respiratory organs might have progressed too far for the operation to be of any use. An incision into the visible swelling has some advantage and cannot do any harm. Compresses as hot as can be borne, may be applied to the throat, whereas cold applications can only prove injurious. We should not vforget that we have no inflammation to deal with, and it seems absolute folly to treat cedema of the glottis with copious depletions which are so generally recommended. [The following interesting case of cedema of the glottis occurred in the practice of Jacob Reed, jr., M. D., of this city, as reported by himself: "Marth 16th, 1867, evening. Called to see Miss B., set. 20, who had for some days "had a bad sore throat," and was reported as choking to death. "When seen, the patient was evidently suffering from an acute cedematous inflammation of the larynx, there being high fever, pain in the region of the larynx, difficulty of swallowing and breathing, voice almost inaudible, every effort at speaking causing great pain, inspirations prolonged and stridulous, being effected only by violent effort; there was but little cough. Frequent spasmodic exacervations of these symptoms rendered suffocation imminent. " Ordered inhalations of steam, medicated with Opium, cold pack to region of larynx, Aconite and Kali bichrom.; of the Aconite 140 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. three drops of the tincture of the root were given in a half glass of water, of which she took a teaspoonful every twenty minutes. " This appeared to afford relief which, however, proved but temporary as, upon paying my morning visit, I found the patient much worse in every respect. The leaden hue of the skin, with the intense anxiety of the countenance, showing that she had to fear the results of deficient aeration of the blood. "This condition of affairs rendering bronchotomy necessary, I returned to the office for the necessary instruments and assistance, but in the mean while ordered two drops of the tincture of the Aconite root to be given every ten minutes. " Upon returning, after the lapse of an hour, the patient was so far relieved as to render surgical interference unnecessary, and from this the convalescence was steady, although slow and imperfect. There remains;, after many months, a cough with hoarseness, owing to constitutional tuberculosis." H.] 5. Spasmus Glottidis. Spasmr of the Glottis. Spasmodic conditions of the glottis sometimes accompany other acute or chronic diseases of the larynx as severe complications. In this chapter we do not speak of these conditions, but of the purely nervous spasm of the glottis which occurs without any material alterations, and which is described in pathological treatises under the names of Asthma thymicum nKoppii, Asthma Millari, Asthma periodicum infantum, or Laryngismus stridulus. All these conditions are essentially alike. Spasm of the glottis affects pre-eminently children of a tender age; among adults it only occurs as an accompaniment of other pathological processes; or as an idiopathic disease it may attack females of exceedingly irritable nerves. Among children the larger number of those who are attacked by the disease, are boys; among persons of a more advanced age, the case is exactly the reverse. Ardent discussions have been carried on regarding the real cause of the disease; a retarded involution of the thymus gland, tuberculosis of the bronchial glands, a rhachitic affection of the occiput, the non-closure of the ductus Botallii, etc., have been accused as the exciting causes of the disease, until finally pathologists have concluded that the real cause of this peculiar spasm is as yet unknown, An hereditary disposition cannot be denied in many cases; not unfrequently the children of tuberculous mothers are attacked Spasmus Glottidis. 141 by the disease; so are children who are brought up by hand. Among adults, spasm of the glottis is undoubtedly a form of hysteria. Among children the disease occurs almost without an exception in the first year of their existence. SympTtoms and Course. The disease consists of paroxysms separated from each other by complete intermissions of various durations. The first paroxysm mostly occurs at night while the children are asleep, very rarely during a vehement crying spell. After sleeping quietly for a few hours, they are suddenly roused from sleep with a peculiar cry, as the parents describe it; or rather with a difficult, hissing inspiration of an unusually ringing sound; at the same time the faculty of breathing is either entirely suspended, or else the inspirations become rapidly more labored and in a few moments quite impossible. The children are lying as if dead, at most performing a few anxious movements with the arms; the face assumes a bluish pallor, the features become pendulous, the countenance looks bloated, the eyes are distorted and fixed. The breathing is entirely suspended. If the attack lasts any length of time, the skin becomes cool and the head is covered with a cold sweat. The pulse is of course very small and accelerated, and may even cease entirely. An attack of this kind which naturally enough fills the relatives with indescribable anguish, lasts a few seconds to several minutes, ending with an inspiration entirely like the one with which the attack commenced, which is followed by normal respiration, and, if the attack did not last too long, by perfect recovery; in the opposite case the patients feel anxious and languid, but only for a short time, after which they do not show any signs of discomfort. If an older child is attacked, the symptoms vary somewhat; the child makes great efforts to overcome the impediment to inspiration, and the loss of consciousness sets in more slowly. If the attacks return frequently and are very intense, clonic convulsions often supervene. The very first attack may terminate fatally, but this is not often the case: as soon as general convulsions set in, the danger increases greatly, likewise if the attacks follow each other in rapid succession; if the patients are not asphyxiated, they perish by inanition. The recurrence of the attacks is not governed by a fixed rule, not even in the case of the same individual. It is very rare that the disease is confined to a single attack, but a second attack sometimes does not take place until months have elapsed. The first attack almost always occurs during sleep; subsequent attacks may 142 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. take place in the waking state. The more frequently they occur, the more dangerous they become. Recovery mostly takes place gradually, with a gradual decrease of the intensity and frequency of the attacks; it may drag along for months and may only be apparent, since another attack may break out again after a short interval of repose. The prognosis is always more or less uncertain; neither the vigor of the little patients, nor the weakness of the first attacks is a guarantee against sudden death. The diagnosis is not always easily made, more particularly if the spasm sets in in the course of laryngeal catarrh or of some other affection of the larynx, or if the patient does not lose his consciousness, in which case a deceptive croupy cough may set in. The fact should be kept steadily in view that a spasm of the glottis can only be thought of, if all the other symptoms of a disease of the larynx are wanting. A spasm of this kind can never be converted into croup or catarrh. The sudden dyspncea without a sign of cough, the complete suspension of the respiratory movements, the subsequent complete intermissions constitute safe diagnostic marks in most cases. As regards treatment, it will have to be directed against the disease as a unit rather than against a single paroxysm which never lasts long enough to admit of medical aid in every case; hence the treatment will have to confine itself to a few not altogether unessential arrangements. In the first place the child has to be laid in a proper manner; the best posture is to one side, with the head slightly bent forward. A sponge dipped in hot water and applied to the region of the larynx sometimes renders as effectual aid in this disease as a warm cataplasm in a case of vesical spasm. Sprinkling the parts very forcibly with cold water, is likewise a very efficient remedy in some cases. For the totality of the pathological process we possess the following remedies which of course have to be given at long intervals: Ignatia amara has an eminently characteristic symptom, it is the dyspncea, the difficulty of drawing in breath, whereas the expirations are easy; such a difficulty is suddenly experienced about midnight. This remedy is very much praised, if the children suddenly lose their breath, which may be the lowest degree of spasm of the glottis; we have already stated under hysteria that Ignatia is likewise useful for many nervous complaints of females; but whether it will prove a proper remedy for spasm of the glottis, has not yet Spasmus Glottidis. 143 been verified. It may perhaps prove most appropriate if the spasm occurs as a symptomatic manifestation in croup, catarrh or whooping-cough. Ipecacuanha has been mentioned as a remedy; indeed the symptoms justify this recommendation. We should not, however, overlook the fact that asthmatic difficulties do not really occur in this disease. Relief is easily afforded if a remedy is given at the outset, but it does not last, and we cannot recommend a remedy as a specific unless it controls the whole disease. We admit, however, that Ipecacuanha may have an excellent effect, for the time at least, in a catarrh accompanying spasm of the glottis. The same remark applies to Belladonna. We refer to the few cases mentioned in iRckert which clearly show that Belladonna is only adapted to spasm of the glottis when occurring as a secondary symptom in other diseases. Veratrum album and Arsenicum album deserve our attention if, as is often the case, the disease attacks feeble children with marked symptoms of cerebral anaemia. Moschus is variously recommended in this disease, but we cannot see its homceopathicity to it. We are not acquainted with any decided cures that Moschus has effected in this disease, Hartmann's statement to the contrary notwithstanding. Sambucus is represented by Hartmann as one of the leading remedies; he has noticed its good effect in a striking case which, however, does not, in our opinion, represent a high degree of spasmus glottidis. According to Ilartmann, the following are the more important symptoms: The patient suddenly wakes from his slumber with his eyes and mouth half open, he has to sit up erect in order to catch breath; he can only make short, hissing inspirations, mingled with paroxysms of suffocation, during which he throws his hands about, and the face and hands look bluish and bloated, with dry heat all over, no thirst, an irregular, small and intermittent pulse; the patient cries at the approach of a paroxysm. All this occurs without cough about midnight. IHartmann commends Menyanthes trifoliata without having seen any curative results from this drug. We consider these indications very vague and of little practical value. The remedies above named are either appropriate only in a simple attack of symptomatic spasm of the glottis; or else they are recommended on account of their mnarked resemblance to a single paroxysm; Veratrum and Arsenicum form exceptions. In our 144 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. opinion, a successful treatment implies a special consideration of all the most trifling accessory circumstances without laying much stress on the particular paroxysm; and likewise a careful consideration of the etiological causes. Among these causes rhachitis, a deficient involution or hypertrophy of the thymus gland, swelling of the bronchial glands are undoubtedly the most frequent and most probable, and it is with particular reference to these etiological causes that we recommend the following remedies: lodium is undoubtedly a very excellent Simile, and is likewise adapted to all three above-named causal morbid conditions. With this remedy alone, given every other day at the fourth or sixth attenuation for four to eight weeks, we have cured five undoubted cases of spasm of the glottis, which evidenced their malignant nature by the fact that every subsequent attack was more violent than the preceding one. The patients were children not yet a year old, but only one of them showed an enlargement of the thymus gland. Supported by such striking curative results, we cannot be accused of hazardous speculation if we prefer this remedy to all others as long as the general organism has not become too much reduced. Cuprum was already mentioned under croup on account of its peculiar influence over the rima glottidis. It is particularly appropriate if, during the local spasm, general convulsions have supervened and the children have become very much prostrated. Among the significant symptoms indicating this remedy, one is particularly noticeable, we mean vomiting after the attack. Plumbum is very closely related to Cuprum in every respect, except that the general strength is still more reduced. The symptoms of a spasmodic closing of the rima glottldis are more distinctly marked in the pathogenesis of this drug than in that of any other. We are amazed that Plumbum should not yet have been recommended for this disease which, however, can only be cured by remedies that exert a deeply-penetrating, long-lasting influence over the whole organism. In this respect, Sulphur may deserve attention, although, we shall take the liberty of doubting the homceopathicity of its asthmatic symptoms to spasm of the glottis until this fact has been corroborated by experience. [We have cured more than one spasm of the glottis radically with nothing but the first attenuation of Aconite-root. H.] Several other affections of the larynx have been left out, for the reason that they are either not accessible to treatment and are, Ulcers of the Larynx. 145 therefore, only of a purely pathological interest to the physician, like laryngostenosis, for instance; or because they occur very rarely and mostly only as complications, like perichondritis. To devote a special chapter to hoarseness or aphonia, seemed to us inexpedient; for cases of this kind, if they present a peculiar character, a Repertory is the best guide. Nor have we devoted a special chapter to ulceration of the larynx. The therapeutic chapter of this affection is essentially the same as that of laryngeal catarrh, in which ulcers of the larynx occur as a complication with but few exceptions. [Ulcers of the larynx are of so many different kinds and differ so greatly as respects their origin and treatment that we have deemed it expedient to devote a special chapter to this subject. We transcribe the following from Kafka's late work: 6. Ulcers of the Larynx, Helcosis, seu Ulcera Laryngis. All ulcers of the larynx are accompanied by catarrh of the laryngeal mucous membrane; it attends them from the start and remains while they last. A number of morbid processes predispose to ulceration; if a laryngeal catarrh arises during the existence of the ulcers, we are required to diagnose the ulcers that are peculiar to the particular disease. It is only when a laryngeal catarrh is present that we are justified in inferring the presence of ulcers. Ulcers on the eptglottis deprive it of its elasticity, whence laryngeal ulcers so frequently give rise to the so-called "swallowing wrong." The sputa constitute another criterium for the existence of an ulcer in the larynx. The sputa are frequently streaked with blood, contain blood-disks or pus-globules, and are more particularly coughed or hawked up after eating or drinking. The ulcers occur most frequently on the posterior wall of the pharynx and on the laryngeal mucous membrane, in front of, and between the arytenoid cartilages. The local sym-ptoms occasioned by the ulcers, do not essentially differ from those of chronic catarrh; only they are more violent and persistent. They consist in hoarseness even to the degree of aphonia; in continual dyspncea, with labored, hissing, wheezing, panting respiration, especially after an exertion, such as a good deal of walking, talking, etc.; in cough which generally sets in in paroxysms, is always short and dry, and does not become loose till towards the close of the paroxysm; the sputa are scanty, in small lumps, not frothy, streaked with blood, purulent; in constant hawk10 146 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. ing occasioned by the accompanying catarrh and the quantity of mucus accumulating in the fauces; in various painful sensations and dryness of the throat; finally in swallowing wrong, as it is. called, and in the return of liquids during deglutition, if the epiglottis is the seat of the ulcer. The following kinds of ulcer are most frequently observed: 1) Catarrhal ulcers. They arise in consequence of chronic laryngeal catarrh, commence by the epithelium being detached, are flat, irregular, and often run together. 2) Aphthous ulcers. They emanate from the diphtheritic process; the mucous lining becomes infiltrated, is rapidly destroyed, and a small, generally round ulcer arises, which is surrounded with a red areola. They most commonly are present during pulmonary tuberculosis, and likewise occur on the pharyngeal mucous membrane. 3) Follicular ulcers. They are a result of the inflammation and ulceration of the mucous follicles, and form small, rounded, deeply penetrating ulcers. They generally break out in the pharynx, whence they spread to the larynx. If follicular ulcers in the pharynx are accompanied by constant hoarseness, the existence of such ulcers must likewise be suspected in the larynx. 4) Tubercular ulcers. They always accompany tuberculosis. Like tuberculosis they appear in two forms, as tubercular infiltration and as miliary tuberculosis. They are most commonly seated on the posterior wall of the larynx, less frequently on theepiglottis. During infiltration the infiltrated portion of the mucous membrane dies, leaving an ulcerated surface behind. During granular deposition, we first notice small, gray, little tubercles, which form little ulcers that not unfrequently run together and give rise to ulcerated surfaces of larger extent. Both these kinds of tubercular ulcers may spread in width and depth, invade the vocal chords and cartilages, and lead to perforations and destructions. The so-called laryngeal phthisis is only a partial manifestation of a general disease. Most frequently it is tuberculosis that leads to laryngeal phthisis. This form of causative relation can only be adopted as long as the phenomena of the laryngeal affection are perceived, while the tubercular process in the lungs is either arrested or has not yet broken out. As a rule, tuberculosis of the larynx is connected with tuberculosis of the lungs or other organs. In a case of continual hoarseness, we diagnose tubercular ulcers, provided we have become satisfied of the simultaneous existence of pulmonary tuberculosis. If the destructive process invades the Ulcers of the Larynx. 147 vocal chords, complete aphonia sets in. The painful sensations in the larynx and the painfulness to contact are seldom very considerable; the violent cough comes mostly in paroxysms and is frequently accompanied by vomiting and gagging; the sputa are often streaked with blood. The presence of emaciation, fever which sets in every day almost at fixed hours, night-sweats, muscular debility, a certain degree of anmeria entitle us, if the objective signs are still doubtful, to conclude with a high degree of probability that a tubercular disease is developing itself in the lungs; perfect certainty can only be obtained if the presence of tubercles in the lungs can be demonstrated. 5) Typhous ulcers. The typhous ulcer arises from a typhous infiltration of the mucous follicles and of the surrounding mucous membrane by necrosis; the ulcer is shaggy, irregular and surrounded by badly-colored borders. It is the same process as takes place on the intestinal mucous membrane. These ulcers are seated on the sides of the epiglottis, and on the mucous lining in front of, and between the arytenoid cartilages. They are mostly flat; but if they dip down to the subjacent tissues, they may expose the cartilage and by necrosis lead to perforation into the esophagus. The typhous ulcer usually breaks out in the second or third week. Hoarseness or a hoarse cough announce a localization of the typhous process. According to Dr. Maurice Haller the voice of the patient, as soon as the typhous process becomes localyzed in the larynx, is raised to a higher pitch; this higher pitch of the voice is not lasting, but it continues until the typhous process is terminated. The paroxysmal hoarse cough is mostly dry, the pains are slight. The typhous ulcers are dangerous on account of the frequently supervening cedema of the glottis, and on account of the perforation which may even take place during the period of convalescence (perichondritis). As soon as the typhous process becomes extinct, the ulcers in the larynx disappear. 6) Syphilitic ulcers. They almost always break out on the pharyngeal mucous membrane, whence they extend to the epiglottis and thence to the larynx. They are small, shaggy, with raised edges and a lardy base. If they penetrate to the subjacent tissues, they may cause necrosis of the cartilages. On healing they form cordshaped cicatrices whose contraction causes stenosis of the larynx and aphonia. The syphilitic character of the ulcers is diagnosed by the simultaneously-existing or a previous attack of syphilis. 148 Diseases of the Larynx and Trachea. 7) Lupous ulcers sometimes spread from the pharyngeal mucous membrane to the larynx, contracting the larynx and causing stenosis and aphonia. 8) Variolous ulcers arise by the spreading of variola pustules from the pharynx to the larynx where they change to small ulcers. Usually this process disappears as soon as the smallpox has run its course; in severe cases, however, the respiration is interfered with as in croup, and the symptoms of cedema glottidis may set in. Course, Terminations, and Prognosis. Catarrhal, aphthous, follicular, typhous and variolous ulcers depend upon the disease which occasions them; as soon as this disease is cured, the ulcers heal likewise. They may easily terminate fatally by the sudden development of edema of the glottis; or the destruction which they occasion, may lead to, premature marasmus, or they may result in death in consequence of pyaemia. Syphilitic ulcers can only be healed, if the cartilages have not already been destroyed, or stenosis has taken place. Tubercular ulcers often run a very protracted course; they may cause very little destruction, and yet they scarcely ever heal. It is only if the tubercular process is arrested in its course that these ulcers can be healed for a time. Lupous ulcers are generally incurable. Treatment. The ulcers are treated with the same remedies as the diseases from which they result. Catarrhal ulcers require Ilepar, Phosphorus, Iodine, Spongia, Pulsatilla. Aphthous ulcers require: Sulphur, Borax, Mercurius, Nitri ac., also flydrastis can. Follicular ulcers: Alumina, Plumbum acet., Argentum nitr, Cuprum sulph. Tubercular ulcers: Oleur jec. aselli, Calcarea, China, Iodine, Sulphur, Stannum, Silicea; the treatment is generally unsuccessful. Syphilitic ulcers require: Kali bichrom., Mezereum, Phosphoric acid, and the mercurial preparations: lercurius jod., Mercurius rub., Cinnabaris, and JMercurius corr., also Mllercurius sol. Stenosis has to be treated surgically by tracheotomy. Typhous ulcers require the remedies given for typhus., For variolous ulcers we recommend principally Tartar emetic, also, in form of a gargle, one grain to three ounces of distilled water. For the excessive cough caused by the ulcers, we recommend Sulphate of Atropine, second attenuation, ten drops in half a tumbler of water, a dessertspoonful every hour or two hours. Cannabis indica 2, given in the same manner, has likewise a soothing effect. For the diet and general management, we refer the reader to the corresponding diseases. H.] B. DISEASES OF THE LUNGS. The diseases of the lungs are some of the most important of the whole body, both on account of their frequency as well as on account of the disturbance of the most important function, the oxygenation of the blood. The importance of these diseases has induced pathologists for the last forty years to devote special attention to them, on which account this chapter may be regarded as the most complete and thoroughly cultivated in the whole domain of Pathology. Pulmonary diseases are of essential importance to a homceopath, for the reason that he has it in his power to watch them objectively throughout all their phases and, thus, to become *acquainted with the effects of his drugs beyond the possibility of deception. These diseases constitute most generally the battle-field upon which the struggle for supremacy between Homceopathy and her opponents has to be fought; a number of publications bearing upon this point have already shown that the importance and decisiveness of this struggle are fully appreciated. One point of importance has to be carefully kept in view. We cannot expect that our older Colleagues, who fancy themselves rulers in medical Israel, should acquire a thorough knowledge of all modern means of diagnosis; the thing is much too arduous an undertaking; but no young homceopath should shun the trouble of availing himself both in his practice and in his reports of cases of the most refined minutiae of an objective diagnosis. Unfortunately we cannot say that this is the universal rule. It is only by this means that we can convince our opponents with irrefutable arguments of the advantages of our System of Therapeutics. They brag of the exactness of their diagnosis and yet they have not as yet derived the least advantage from it for their own method of treatment. Here we have a point of attack, provided we prepare ourselves for the combat with arms that even the most redoubtable hero in diagnosis would stand in fear of, and provided we show at the same time that we do not study diagnosis as an intellectual entertainment, but as an addition to the science of Therapeutics, as a means to effect a cure of a given case of disease with more positive certainty. More than one homceopath has tried to cast a slur on phy(149) 150 Diseases of the Lungs. sical diagnosis as a subject of no importance to Therapeutics, because, as is alleged, we have no physiological pathogenesis to contrast with the results obtained by means of a physical exploration of the chest. This, however, is entirely incorrect, for in respect to a number of drugs we are acquainted with the material changes with which the physical symptoms correspond; but even if this were not so, the objective diagnosis would still remain invested with the highest importance, for the reason that it often interprets the frequently obscure symptoms and traces them to their origin, and likewise because it enables us to determine with reliable certainty the effect of the medicine we have administered in a given case. It is, therefore, our belief that there are not many homneopathic practitioners who do not attach great importance to physical diagnosis and declare it a thing of indispensable necessity. We should not have been able to refrain at the outset of this Section from expounding, as we have done at the commencement of our chapters on renal and hepatic diseases, the most important points in the diagnosis of diseases of the thoracic viscera, if we had been able to spare the necessary space for such an extensive undertaking. We should not only have had to deal with percussion and auscultation, but likewise with the measurement of the thorax, with spirometry, with the rhythm, frequency and fulness of the respiratory movements, the relation between inspirations and expirations, cough, expectoration, vocalization, etc. Any one who is acquainted with percussion and auscultation, must know that even the most necessary details in these departments are sufficient to fill a number of pages. Hence we take it for granted that every physician is fully posted in these branches of medical knowledge, and shall confine ourselves to interpolating particulars whenever necessary, while treating of the various affections; by pursuing this course we shall best fulfil the object of this work. 1. Hlyperemaia of the Lungs. Congestion, Plethora of the Lungs. Considering the extraordinary quantity of blood which, in comparison with other organs, goes to the lungs; considering the dilatability of the pulmonary parenchyma and of its enveloping membrane, we at once not only comprehend the possibility of pulmonary engorgements, but that this possibility is even very great; if we devote some space to a consideration of this subject, it is because Hyperaemia of the Lungs. 151 all pulmonary hypersemias, primary as well as scdondary, are of'the greatest practical importance. Pulmonary hyperaemia is of two kinds; it is an active hypersemia or active congestion when caused by an afflux of blood to the lungs; and a passive congestion when resulting from an obstructed efflux of the blood from the lungs.' Active hyperemia presupposes in most cases an increased activity of the heart, hence constitutes an essential symptom of all cardiac anomalies attended with increased functional activity of the heart, but may likewise be occasioned by a temporary excitation of the heart's action by violent bodily efforts, such as running, dancing, singing, lifting, ascending a hill; or by powerful mental emotions, or by substances which cause a sudden acceleration of the circulation, more particularly spirits, wine, beer, coffee; it may likewise occur as a symptom of a general plethoric condition of the system occasioned by the suppression of habitual hemorrhages. Pulmonary hypersemia is less frequently caused by irritants striking the lungs directly; very cold or very hot air, irritating gases, rarefied air, etc. Hence lively, sanguine, irritable individuals between the ages of twenty to thirty-five and forty years, during the prevalence of great heat or severe cold, or when residing on high mountains, are much more liable to pulmonary hypermemia than persons of different temperamenlts and living under different influences. Various morbid conditions of the lungs, especially tuberculosis, engender a strikingly great disposition to pulmonary congestions. Passive congestion is never a primary affection, but always a consequence of other morbid processes obstructing the return of the blood from the lungs. This result is more especially brought about by various anomalous conditions of the heart. In the proper place, passive congestion will be discussed more fully when we come to speak of the different pathological states of the lungs; in this place we shall speak of it only so far as may be necessary to discriminate between the two kinds of congestion, active and passive. Sympn.tonms and Course. The symptoms of pulmonary hyperaemia vary greatly, according to the condition of the lungs and the degree of engorgement. The lower grades of acute congestion only cause a sensation of oppression with shorter and more hurried breathing, at times passing away rapidly, at other times more slowly, or having remissions but being otherwise painless. In the higher grades the breathing suddenly becomes oppressed to an extraordinary degree, so that the patient seems on the point of suffo 152 Diseases of the Lungs. cation. The respiration is hurried, superficial, noisy; the pulse increases in frequency and fulness, the face looks flushed. Most commonly these symptoms are associated with a desire to cough, and the frothy sputa are tinged with blood. There is no pain if the lungs are otherwise sound, whereas tuberculous individuals experience a great deal of pain. In tlie highest grades of hyperoemia the dyspncea increases so rapidly and the sanguineous engorgement becomes so great that the patients die of asphyxia, sometimes so suddenly that an accident of this kind has been termed pulmonary apoplexy. The lesser grades of the affection generally terminate sooner or later in complete recovery, whereas in the higher and more protracted grades of the disease, cedema of the lungs may develop itself, which may continue for a long time, even after the hypercemia is entirely removed. It is questionable whether a simple hypermmia can ever pass into pneumonia, notwithstanding that pneumonia is very commonly initiated by symptoms of hypersmia. Passive hyperoemia has almost the same symptoms as the active form, great oppression of breathing, turgescence of the countenance, accelerated action of the heart. The resemblance is sometimes so great that passive hyperoemia is treated in the same manner as the active form, to the great detriment of the patient. In such cases a correct diagnosis can only be determined by the analnestic circumstances of the disease and a careful exploration of the condition of the heart; for passive hyperaemia never sets in without being preceded by considerable morbid derangements. Ilypostasis of the lungs or, in other words, an accumulation of blood in accordance with the law of gravitation, is scarcely ever any thing else than a partial manifestation of other diseases; it occurs almost exclusively among old people, and is generally destitute of any symptomatic appearances. The prognosis in acute congestion is almost always favorable; congestions caused by violent emotions are the least promising. A frequent repetition of the attacks is always a very bad sign; they show that either the heart is intensely diseased, or else that pulmonary tuberculosis is their exciting cause. Treatment. The main remedy for all active congestions of the lungs is undoubtedly Aconite. We are amazed that Hartmann should have omitted any mention of this remedy. Aconite is particularly appropriate in hypermmia depending upon cardiac affections, or indicating and accompanying tuberculosis; such indi Hyperamia of the Lungs. 153 viduals have a delicate skin, bright complexion and sanguine temperaments. Even a cursory review of its symptoms will satisfy any one that Aconite is homceopatic to acute hyperaemia of the lungs. If the disease was caused by a fit of anger, or vehement chagrin, or mortification, Aconite is indicated so much more fully. Belladonna has likewise many symptoms pointing to pulmonary congestion, but it is not so easy to determine the conditions for which Belladonna is indicated; they likewise occur less frequently. Belladonna is preferable if not only the lungs, but likewise the cephalic organs are involved in the congestion, and it is less depending upon cardiac disease than upon some other affection. Leading symptoms distinguished from those of Aconite are: turgescence of the cephalic vessels, with dark redness of the face, bluish redness of the lips, glistening eyes; anguish and restlessness; a constant dry, hacking cough, or else a spasmodic and dry cough. Nux vomica is an excellent remedy for certain kinds of pulmonary congestion, if the following conditions prevail: The attack is occasioned by sedentary habits, excessive mental efforts, the use of coffee, ardent spirits, in the case of sanguine, robust individuals who are free from cardiac disease; after a copious meal, in the night. The symptoms resemble those of Belladonna more than they do those of Aconite. -Digitalis purpurea is, in our opinion, inappropriate in an isolated attack, but is, on the other hand, indicated if the congestions occur very frequently or evidently point to tuberculosis. In such affections, however, there is every reason why the medicine should be given very cautiously. It is not absolutely necessary for the heart to be the starting-point of the disease or to be considerably involved in the pathological process, for uncomplicated, tubercular hyperemias of the lungs are likewise most easily relieved by Digitalis; Bryonia is the next best remedy to this latter drug. In very acute cases which may become dangerous to life by the premature supervention of an acute cedema of the lungs, no time should be lost unnecessarily by awaiting the effect of the first-named three remedies; if they act at all, they will show their curative influence after the very first dose. If they do not afford speedy relief, P]hosphorus should at once be used, or, in case of cardiac affections: Arsenicum. These remedies may suffice; after all, in most cases the selection of the proper remedial agent depends upon the nature of the case before us. We cannot refrain, however, from calling attention to ]Ferrum and Pulsatilla in the case of anaemic and tuberculous individuals, and likewise to Veratrum album and Sepia. [Veratrum 154 Diseases of the Lungs. viride, if given in comparatively larger doses, has often cured, without the use of any other remedies, hypermemia of the lungs as well as pneumonia. II.] We sometimes have great trouble to persuade such patients to desist from the frequent use of sanguineous depletions. It is true they afford a momentary relief, but in exchange they help the disease on its course, and are particularly dangerous to drunkards and to persons afflicted with incipient tuberculosis. There is scarcely any affection where it is as necessary to abstain from the use of coffee as pulmonary hyperemia, which is caused by the action of coffee not only directly, but likewise through an increased excitability of the functional activity of the heart. Frequent deep and protracted inspirations are exceedingly useful in regulating the action of the lungs. Vigorous, but not excessive bodily exercise is useful rather than otherwise; the good results of careful ascensions of mountains by tuberculous patients afford the best evidence that this statement is founded upon facts. 2. Pneumorrhagia, Pulmonary Hemorrhage. If we consider the delicacy of the pulmonary tissue and the quantity of blood which is collected in it, we have no difficulty in comprehending that one of the pulmonary vessels may readily tear, and must cause a more or less considerable hemorrhage. For this reason pulmonary hemorrhage is one of the most frequently occurring morbid phenomena which of itself is not so very important, because the bleeding scarcely ever amounts to an excessive quantity, and does not threaten life with immediate danger. Etiology. As we stated in the previous chapter, a high degree of pulmonary hyperaemia may easily result in effusion of blood into the air-passages. The effusion differs in quantity according as the affected lungs are naturally sound or otherwise morbidly affected. The causes of pulmonary hypermemia are therefore in a certain sense the causes of pulmonary hemorrhage. The main reason, however, why pulmonary hemorrhage is invested with such ominous importance to every layman, is the circumstance that it implies the existence of morbid conditions which result in the destruction of the pulmonary tissue, among which tuberculosis occupies the first rank. It is difficult to explain why the same influences should occasion pulmonary hemorrhage in one individual and not in another. We Pneumorrhagia. 155 know that sanguine, florid, irritable individuals are more liable to hemorrhages than phlegmatic and torpid persons; but we cannot decide whether this liability is owing to an accelerated flow of the blood, or to an excessive delicacy of the walls of the vessels. Diseases of the vessels themselves, atheromatous degenerations, aneurysms, etc., lead to the most profuse and most threatening hemorrhages. The not unfrequent occurrence of considerable pulmonary hemorrhages during pregnancy or after a suppression of the menses is difficult to account for. As regards age, it is self-evident that the age where the pulmonary activity is heightened and where the development of the pulmonary tissue is most active, is the age where pulmonary hemorrhages occur most frequently; this is the age between the years of fourteen and twenty-five. Whether one sex or the other is more liable, is not certain. Symptoms and Co urse. Pulmonary hemorrhage either takes place into the bronchia or into the pulmonary tissue. It is either copious or scanty, in accordance with which we have in the first place hemoptysis, the evacuation of small quantities of blood together with the sputa; next: pneumorrhagia, the evacuation of large quantities of blood; the formation of clots or sanguineous deposits, by which the tissue of the lungs is not destroyed and the blood is not discharged externally;. pulmonary apoplexy during which the blood is likewise effused into the pulmonary parenchyma, but with destruction of the tissue. These distinctions are, however, of very little practical use, and for practical purposes it is sufficient to distinguish hemoptysis and hemorrhage, according as a larger or smaller quantity of blood is expelled from the lungs. The formation of circumscribed coagula as well as apoplexy offer too many difficulties for a correct diagnosis in order to justify a therapeutic management based upon the latter. Of itself hemoptysis is not a very important disease. It often occurs without any disturbance of the constitutional equilibrium, after violent exertions, in consequence of unimportant catarrhs, very often in the case of pregnant females, and sometimes consists of mere streaks of blood mixed with the mucus, at times in small detached portions of pure blood. As was said before, tuberculous individuals are most commonly affected, on which account the chest should be carefully examined at every ever so trifling hemoptysis. Slight pulmonary hemorrhages are not unfrequent accompaniments of a chronic catarrh of the bronchial mucous membrane, as is so commonly met with in emphysema of the lungs. If the quantity 156 Diseases of the Lungs. of the expelled blood is somewhat more considerable, the hemorrhage is usually preceded by various indefinite phenomena, such as palpitation of the heart, oppression, sensation of heat in the chest, stitches in the chest, congestions of the head; these symptoms generally disappear again after the hemorrhage has set in. Pneumorrhagia is almost always preceded by a short preliminary stage. For several days previous the patients often feel excited, uncomfortable, oppressed on the chest, hot in the head, disposed to fainting fits; the pulse is somewhat accelerated, the beats of the heart are stronger. Real pains in the chest are seldom felt, and, if felt, are not attributable to the hemorrhage, but to the morbid conditions that gave rise to it. Shortly before the hemorrhage the symptoms of a violent pulmonary hyperaemia become manifest. While a feeling of increased warmth in the chest is experienced, the respiration becomes at the same time oppressed, after which an irritation and urging to cough are felt; with the first turn of cough a frothy, bright-red, pure blood is thrown up in various quantities, which is soon succeeded by a larger quantity attended with a cough like vomiting; or else the second hemorrhage may only occur after a longer paroxysm of cough. The patient has a distinct sensation that the blood is bubbling up in the chest; the rales can be heard even without the ear being applied to the chest. As soon as the hemorrhage sets in, the hyperemic symptoms abate at once, after which the patient feels very weak and experiences a disposition to faint. The fainting is not so much the result of the quantity of blood lost, but is more commonly owing. to the moral impression which every hemoptoe makes even upon the most robust individual. The disease is scarely ever limited to a single attack. After the trouble seems fully ended, generally in twenty-four hours, less frequently after several days, another attack sets in as suddenly as the former; a number of attacks may take place in this manner at indefinitely succeeding periods. In such a case anaemic symptoms may make their appearance; in severe cases the patient may even die of exhaustion. At first sight it may seem as though the diagnosis of pulmonary hemorrhage could not well be a difficult task. Nevertheless deceptions occur nowhere more frequently than in this disease, on which account we shall explain the distinctive signs of pulmonary hemorrhage a little more fully. Nosebleed, especially when the blood is discharged from the posterior nares or during sleep, is easily mis Pneumorrhagia. 157 taken for pulmonary hemorrhage, because the blood, the larger quantity of which is undoubtedly discharged into the pharynx, likewise gets into the larynx, where it causes a desire to cough which results in the expulsion of blood. At the same time blood is blown from the nose, and the posterior-superior wall of the pharynx is seen streaked with blood. If these signs are wanting, perhaps the circumstance that after the first bloody expectoration no more bloody mucus is brought up, may shed light on the nature of the attack. The absence of all local symptoms in the lungs is alone insufficient to justify the supposition that the hemorrhage is not pulmonary, but nasal. It is sometimes equally difficult to discriminate between hemorrhage from the lungs and stomach. In hoematemesis the gagging and vomiting likewise easily excites cough; moreover in hemorrhage from the lungs a quantity of blood, before any is coughed up, is sometimes swallowed and vomited up. As a rule, the following points may serve as diagnostic signs: In haematemesis the symptoms of an intense affection of the stomach are almost always present for some time previous, and these symptoms likewise accompany the attack itself. The blood is always darkred, even black, unless it should emanate from an artery. This could easily be determined by an exact diagnosis; whereas in pulmonary hemorrhage a bright-red blood is coughed up, although the blood that had first been swallowed and then vomited up, may likewise be black. A discriminative diagnosis is' the most difficult in a case of htematemesis of tuberculous individuals, or if the physician is called upon to give an opinion derived from the report and description of the patient or his attendants. If the stools are tinged black for some time, this symptonl should not be overlooked. It is likewise important to investigate the circumstance whether the blood was first coughed or vomited up. It is much more difficult and most generally impossible to determine the precise spot in the lungs whence the blood is discharged. If the blood emanates from the trachea or larynx, the quantity will not be as large, nor will it be as large in bronchial hemorrhage as when the hemorrhage proceeds from the cavern; but a perfectly sure diagnosis will always be very difficult, and it is our opinion that this is of very little consequence in a practical point of view. The prognosis is of particular importance to a physician for the reason that pulmonary hemorrhage is supposed to be such a frightful thing in the eyes of lay-people. We have already stated that the hemorrhage scarcely ever threatens life with immediate danger. 158 Diseases of the Lungs. Even copious and aid rapidly recurring hemorrhages destroy life only exceptionally. The result is different if the importance of the hemorrhage to the general organism is inquired into. The scanty expectoration of blood which many persons, even without being affected with pneumonia, raise during every acute catarrh of the respiratory organs, is of very trifling significance, although it is proper that a careful exploration of the chest should be instituted with a view of determining the presence or absence of tubercular deposits. No more attention need be paid to the slight hemorrhages.of pregnant or menostatic females, as long as no tubercular deposits are at the foundation of the bleeding. Persons afflicted with cardiac diseases, are very often attacked with pulmonary hemorrhage which, however, does not imply any particular danger. In general, however, we have to admit that in by far the larger majority of cases pulmonary hemorrhage points to the presence of tubercles in the lungs and to the progress of the tubercular disease; and that hence it is justly regarded as a dangerous symptom even if a physical exploration of the chest does not yet reveal the presence of any alarming disorganization. If the hemorrhage is very profuse, a return may indeed be apprehended, for a disposition to the disease remains, and cannot even be denied in cases where no tubercles exist. The meaning and importance of pulmonary hemorrhage in cardiac affections will be examined more fully when we come to treat of the affections of the heart. To these paragraphs we have to add a few remarks concerning internal pulmonary hemorrhage, we mean infarctions and apoplexy, which frequently complicates pneumorrhagia and determines its most disastrous sequele. Infarctions in the lungs have their foci. At times there is one, at other times several, varying in size to that of a walnut and even larger. They occur much less frequently near the periphery than the base of the lungs. Infarctions occur in the lungs as sharply defined dark-red or black spots of a granular appearance on their cut surface, without much firmness; a grumous, black fluid can be squeezed out of them. The surrounding parts are either cedematous or inflamed. In real apoplexy the infarcted spot is always of more considerable size, and the pulmonary parenchyma is partially destroyed. Infarctions mostly take place where the pulmonary circulation had met with considerable obstructions, hence in cardiac affections, less frequently in tuberculosis. Apoplexy arises by the laceration Pneumorrhagia. 159 of a larger vessel, either because the vessel is diseased, or in consequence of external violence. Symptoms. Smaller and detached infarctions may form without any marked disturbances; blood will not often be coughed up in consequence. Infarctions of larger size or greater number scarcely ever exist without a group of tolerably characteristic symptoms. The precursory symptoms resemble those of pneumorrhagia, and are scarcely ever wanting. The occurrence of internal hemorrhage is marked by a sudden oppression on the chest, sometimes attended with tolerably acute, but not always definitely localized pains. The pulse is always hurried and is always small and weak. A copious spitting of blood may take place, but it may likewise be entirely wanting, nor is it generally very considerable. Nevertheless important general symptoms soon make their appearance, such as fainting, pallor of the countenance, cold sweat; it is the appearance of such symptoms that justifies the supposition of internal hemorrhage, although very little blood is lost externally. Only in acute and severe cases death may result very suddenly; otherwise the final result is determined by other circumstances: whether, the extravasation is simply re-absorbed, which it takes weeks to accomplish; whether a reactive pneumonia or pleuritis sets in; whether the pleura is broken through and hemathorax is developed; whether the infarction terminates in inflammation, abscess or gangrene; or whether an oedema of the lungs of sufficient importance will result. It is very seldom possible that pulmonary infarctions can be diagnosed with certainty. Their occurrence, most commonly near the base of the lungs, renders them very seldom accessible to physical diagnosis; and if occurring near the periphery, they frequently develop uncertain symptoms. A circumscribed dulness not covering the extent of a pulmonary lobe, nor situated in the region where tuberculosis is usually localized or pneumonia exists, if the respiratory murmurs are either absent in that locality, or mucous rales are heard, of course suggests the supposition that infarctions may have formed. Of more value are the general symptoms, great dyspncea and oppression of the chest, with pallor of the countenance and syncope, even sopor, without an opportunity being given to account for these symptoms by the presence of other morbid processes, more particularly if these symptoms affect persons afflicted with heart-disease. It is easily conceivable that pulmonary infarctions must modify 160 Diseases of the Lungs. the course of pulmonary hemorrhage in a specific manner. The symptoms accompanying pulmonary hemorrhage will not suddenly disappear after the hemorrhage ceases, but the above-described sequele and anatomical lesions occasioned by the infarction will now step into the foreground together with all their characteristic phenomena. This circumstance has to be well weighed, lest the hemorrhage should be regarded as resulting from the pneumonia occasioned by the infarction, and we should be led to imagine that those sequele had only been covered up by the hemorrhage, and in reality represent the primary disease. The treatment has to aim in the first place at arresting the hemorrhage, and after that at removing the subsequently remaining consequences of the hemorrhage. We commence with indicating a number of medicines that have been practically tested in pulmonary hemorrhage which is of frequent occurrence, and add to this list a few general considerations of more than ordinary importance. Aconitum: If it were practically possible to draw a line of demarcation between active and passive pulmonary hemorrhage, we could not mark off the therapeutic sphere of Aconite more accurately than by saying that it is specifically adapted to the active form of pulmonary hemorrhage. This would, however, give rise to many errors, since many hemorrhages arising from an obstructed circulation, symptomatically resemble almost entirely an active hemorrhage. Hence the selection of the drug should be conducted very cautiously. In all active hemorrhages we meet with marked preliminary congestive symptoms; even while the hemorrhage is going on, symptoms of pulmonary hypersemia still continue to exist, and, as we stated in the preceding chapter, no remedy is more appropriate for such states of hyperemia than Aconite. Hyperlemia not only causing but likewise maintaining the hemorrhage, Aconite in this case effects a radical cure, and after its exhibition we sometimes see the hemorrhage arrested with wonderful rapidity. The following range of symptoms constitutes more particular indications for Aconite: The accident happens to animated individuals with a plethoric habit of body, bright complexion, disposition to palpitation of the heart, incipient tuberculosis; after a violent fit of passion, or severe exertion of the lungs. The blood is raised in small quantity, associated with a dry cough which is not violent, but torments the patient all the time; or else the blood is expectorated after a slight paroxysm of hacking cough, both in larger quantity and of a bright-red color. The patients are very restless, their coun Pneumorrhagia. 161 tenances are at first flushed and hot, the pulse and beats of the heart very much excited; they complain of a burning or stinging pain in the chest. After commencing with the Aconite, the symptoms of febrile excitement very soon abate, after which the hemorrhage likewise ceases in almost every case. As a rule, it is well to continue the use of this drug for some time longer at more extended intervals. Belladonna has already been mentioned in the previous chapter; it is one of the principal remedies for pulmonary hemorrhage, except that its indications are less positively defined. It is particularly applicable in the case of robust and plethoric individuals and for congestions towards the head, without any cardiac irregularities being complained of; also more particularly if the hemorrhage was the result of an incipient catarrh. A constant and tormenting desire to cough points to this remedy, the choice of which depends much more than that of Aconite, upon the general symptoms. In tubercular hemorrhage, this remedy has never had the least effect in our hands; on the contrary, it has been found very efficacious in vicarious menstrual hemorrhages and in those of pregnant females, or in the hemorrhages occurring at the critical age. Arnica enjoys a high reputation in pulmonary hemorrhage, which it deserves much less, however, than Aconite. Hartmann gives the following characteristic indications: The hemorrhage is caused by some mechanical injury, or by severe bodily exertions; the expectorated blood is dark-red and lumpy, and is raised without cough and without much special effort; attended with stinging, burning,. contractive sensation in the breast, rush of blood, palpitation of the heart and striking heat in the chest, loss of strength, fainting fits. A bright-red, frothy blood which is sometimes mixed with mucus and small clots, and which has to be hawked or coughed up, does not counter-indicate Arnica. In addition we have to observe that Arnica is particularly suitable for nervous, plethoric, not very robust individuals; the respiration is very much oppressed; during the bleeding, the patient is very much disposed to vomit; the patient is evidently tuberculous, or the heart may be somewhat affected; an attack is caused by every slight bodily exertion. Arnica is particularly suitable for young people. Digitalis purpurea which used to be a favorite remedy for haemoptysis in the hands of allopathic physicians, does not deserve the slight that is put upon it by homoeopathic practitioners. It affords distinguished aid in pulmonary hemorrhage depending upon ob11 162 Diseases of the Lungs. struction of the pulmonary circulation caused by heart disease, and is preeminently indicated if tuberculosis is present at the same time. The most essential indications for this drug which should be used much more frequently by homceopaths than is the case, are: engorgement of the veins about the head; a pale and livid complexion; coldness of the skin with cold sweats; irregular pulse and beating of the heart; extraordinary oppression of breathing apparently without any infiltration; great anxiety and restlessness or even a soporous condition with disposition to faint. Pulsatilla is recommended by practitioners for the bloody cough excited by menostasia, not so much on account of its direct action upon the bleeding lungs as with reference to the causal indication, suppression of the menses. It is likewise an excellent remedy in some forms of pulmonary hemorrhage in the case of phthisicky persons, where the selection depends more, however, upon the rest of the symptoms than upon the hemorrhage. Ipecacuanha will not often be found indicated where pulmonary congestions are evidently present. It is indicated by the following symptoms: Spasmodic, suffccative cough with shortness of breath, as in asthma, even unto vomiting; not too copious hemorrhage, the blood being very dark and mixed with mucus; pale or bluish-red complexion. In many respects Ipecacuanha acts very similarly to Digitalis, except that Ipecac. has none of the symptoms caused by obstructions in the pulmonary circulation. Ledum palustre has yielded some practical results in pulmonary hemorrhage. Its local symptoms, however, are so indefinite that the honceopathicity of the drug cannot possibly be determined by means of them. It is said to be most useful in case of obstructions in the portal circulation. Millefolium is much praised, although we have no very special indications for this drug. We find the following in Hartmann: "In almost every variety of hemorrhage, and likewise in pulmonary hemorrhage, Millefolium is an indispensable remedy, more especially in the case of robust and fleshy persons; the spitting of blood is unattended with cough, or the cough is very slight and is caused by the newly accumulating blood; at the same time there is a bubbling up in the chest, with a sensation as if warm blood were ascending in the throat, gradually increasing in intensity until blood is raised. More recently I have found that a condition of this kind yields to Aconite more promptly than to Millefolium of which we do not yet possess a sufficient number of reliable provings." Others Pneumorrhagia. 163 are of a different opinion; they recommend Millef. especially in incipient phthisis. Arsenicum album competes with Digitalis in some respects. We would give this remedy only if a high degree of weakness and irritability is associated with an extraordinary degree of cardiac excitability, together. with all its accessory ailments. It is only in exceptional cases that we shall be able to use it in phthisis. Phosphorus which was formerly a favorite remedy for pulmonary hemorrhage, is used much less by the homceopathic practitioners of the present day. We infer from its symptoms that only the lesser grades of hemorrhage are suited to its therapeutic range. Upon the whole no marked results can be expected from it; hence it ranks below all the other remedies mentioned for pulmonary hemorrhage. If it is to be used, the dose must not be too high, for even the fourth attenuation may still cause real, and therefore inconvenient medicinal aggravations. In addition to these remedies we might complete the list by mentioning a number of others; but let it suffice if we simply name the following: Nux vomica and Opium (for the pulmonary hemorrhage of drunkards), Drosera, 1yoscyamus, Cocculus, Staphysagria. Corresponding with our pathological data, the medicines may be ranged as follows: For hemorrhage from active pulmonary congestion: Aconite, Bellad., Millef., Nux vom.; from passive congestion: Digitalis, Arsenicum; if caused by mental excitement: Aconite, JNux vomica, Opium; by exertions: Aconite, Arnica; by mechanical injuries: Arnica, Bryonia alba; if depending upon tuberculosis: Aeon., Am., Putls-t., Millef., Ledum, Phosphorus; if depending upon heart dis, ease: Aeon., Digit., Arsen.; upon menostasia: Pulsat.; upon catarrh: Bellad., lyoscyam., Mercurius; upon emphysema: Arsen., -Digit., Carbo veg.; portal obstructions: Ledum palustre. Regarding the effect of pulmonary hemorrhage upon the organism, it is the same as that of all other kinds of hemorrhage, and has to be treated in the same manner; this effect will never be very extensive. The consequences of hemorrhage to the lungs themselves, which are the most to be dreaded, often require different remedies from those that might perhaps be chosen without regard to the local process. If extensive infarctions have become localized in the pulmonary tissue, and the restoration of health is retarded by them, our first choice may have to be Arnica, afterwards Bryonia, Digitalis and finally Phosphorus. Pneumonia depending upon 164 Diseases of the Lungs. infarctions, frequently requires, beside the above-mentioned remedies, Mercurius, and the supervention of cedema of the lungs; Arsenicum, Tartarus stib., and Phosphorus, Beside attending to the present attack and its consequences, we have likewise to try to neutralize the evident tendency to pulmonary hemorrhage. Although the general conduct and mode of living of the patient are subjects of the utmost importance in this particular, yet we are in possession of a few remedies which are capable, independently of meeting other functional derangements, of preventing the frequent return of the hemorrhage; these remedies are: Cale. carb., Ferrum, Sepia and Silicea, whose special indications we cannot well enumerate in this place. Carbo veg. and Conium are often likewise adequate to this purpose. The dietetic measures to be adapted in pulmonary hemorrhage and to meet a constitutional tendency to it, will suggest themselves without any advise from us. All we wish to say is that coffee and all other stimulants, even smoking, must be strictly forbidden. [The following medicines have likewise been found useful in pulmonary hemorrhage; for particulars concerning most of them we refer the reader to HIale's New Remedies, 2d edition. Erigeron canadense, when the blood is expelled in the shape of dark coagula; it is likewise recommended for passive venous hemorrhage generally. Hamamelis, recommended for passive venous lemorrhage, although it has likewise been found an efficient remedy in active arterial hemorrhage. Senecio aureus may be given for vicarious hemorrhage when occurring in the place of the menses. Trillium, in tincture or infusion, is an excellent remedy for pulmonary as well as uterine hemorrhage. Veratrum viride may afford aid in cases of hemorrhage resulting from uncomplicated, but severe pulmonary hyperaemia; the medicine has to be given in larger doses than usual. Scilla maritima is excellent in hemorrhage from neglected catarrh; the blood bubbles up with a pricking sensation at the place whence the hemorrhage proceeds. H.] 3. Bronchitis Acuta. Acute Bronchitis. Concerning the affections of the bronchial mucous membrane, we find in our pathological treatises, especially if we combine both the Bronchitis Acuta. 165 older and more modern treatises in one Series, such a large number of names and corresponding categories, that it is only with difficulty that we succeed in mastering them. If we would adopt such a complicated course, we should have to devote a number of chapters to what we intend to present in one. We need not hesitate to adopt this course, since every homceopath is well satisfied of the necessity to individualize his cases. We shall afterwards, when decribing the symptoms, have abundant opportunities for showing the most essential forms of bronchitis. Etiology. Acute bronchitis is one of the most frequent diseases of the human kind generally, and it is next to impossible to decide that a special age or sex is more particularly liable to it. Whereas it is not generally a dangerous disease when attacking middle-aged persons, it is on the contrary very dangerous to children and old people, and therefore constitutes one of the most important diseases of these two periods of hunan existence. It is undeniable that the first years of childhood are peculiarly predisposed to this disease. A predisposition of this kind likewise exists among persons of a more advanced age, and may almost always be attributed to the following circumstances: An effeminate mode of living, without adequate exercise in the open air, and not admitting of a free and easy respiration; constitutional diseases, even such as do not emaciate and debilitate the system, more especially scrofulosis and tuberculosis; irritability of the mucous membranes in consequence of frequent attacks of bronchitis; acute and chronic diseases of the lungs. The exciting causes cannot well be traced with positive certainty. A cold and consequent suppression of the perspiration is undoubtedly one of the most ordinary causes, but not quite as common as is generally supposed. The atmosphere doubtless exerts a powerful influence not only in consquence of rapid changes in the temperature, but principally through the changes in atmospheric electricity and, as modern investigations seem to have confirmed, through consequent changes in the amount of ozone in the atmosphere. This becomes so much more probable, if we observe that a large number of cases of bronchitis are not so much caused by a damp and cold, as by a dry and cold wind, such as prevails in our region of country in the summer-season, when the wind blows from the northwest and north. If the temperature of the wind were the main cause of the trouble, an east wind would cause bronchitis most easily, which is certainly not the case. An epidemic bronchitis spreading 166 Diseases of the Lungs. over a large tract of country and being even considered contagious, the so-called influenza or grippe, depends upon conditions which we designate as miasmnatic, but of the true nature of which we are as yet ignorant. Secondary bronchitis develops itself secondarily in persons afflicted with heart disease, emphysema of the lungs, or during the presence of acute exanthems, or various intensely acute constitutional diseases. Symptoms. We may dispense with a description of the anatomical changes occurring in bronchitis; all we need do is to remind the reader that hypercemia of the mucous membrane is always accompanied by a more or less marked swelling of the same; this statement is of essential necessity for a comprehension of various phenomena. In order to afford a general view of the disease, we will describe several forms of bronchitis which, however, are not essentially distinct from each other. a) The lighter form of bronchitis, generally designated as bronchial catarrh, frequently sets in without any fever; at any rate most generally it is scarcely perceptible; sometimes no fever at all is present or the fever is at most indicated by a succession of creeping chills. This form of bronchitis scarcely ever exists isolatedly, but is almost always attended with catarrh of the nose and larynx. After experiencing a feeling of malaise for several hours, and a marked sensation of languor, the patients are attacked with a dry and spasmodic cough attended with a raw or sore feeling on the chest; at the same time the breathing is somewhat oppressed and there is no expectoration at the outset of the disease. The appetite is less but not gone, the tongue is not always coated; the patients are able to remain up, but feel drowsy and often complain of violent headache. Very often the cough remains dry for a long time, but more frequently a tenacious, greenish-yellow scanty expectoration commences already on the second day, which it is very difficult to hawk up. Auscultation yields no particular results, percussion none at all. At the end of three to nine days, very rarely at a later period and then only if the patients neglect themselves, the expectoration becomes more copious, whiter, lumpy, and is raised more easily, the normal feeling of health is restored and, while the cough is gradually decreasing, the disease passes off. The attack seems so slight, that many patients go about as usual, but, by pursuing this course, expose themselves to relapses which are very apt to take place and beget a tendency towards the in Bronchitis Acuta. 167 flammatory form of bronchitis or else originate the consequences that will be more fully described in a subsequent paragraph. b) Bronchitis infammatoria, inflammatory or acute bronchitis. This form of bronchitis which is marked by much more violent phenomena, is not by any means a purely simple form of bronchitis of a higher degree of intensity. It does not ordinarily result from an existing catarrh of the upper respiratory organs, unless the catarrh is suddenly and violently increased by severe neglect; but most generally it occurs as a primary disease. It generally commences with a violent chill which is distinguished from the chill that initiates acute inflammations, by the circumstance that it is not followed by as high an increase of temperature and that there is a frequent recurrence of the chill, especially on motion. The patient feels very weary and languid, complains most generally of a violent headache, exhibits frequent changes of complexion, experiences a rheumatic drawing in tiie limbs and great restlessness and is scarcely ever capable of remaining out of bed. Very soon these general symptoms which do not point out more particularly the locality of the disease, are followed by a burning, sore pain in the chest under the sternum at every deep inspiration, which is felt more severely when coughing. The cough sets in at the same time as the pain is felt; it is more or less violent, sometimes spasmodic, at first dry but not hoarse, but very soon accompanied by the above-described expectoration. There is no dyspncea properly speaking, but the breathing is more labored, less full and hence somewhat more hurried. The pulse is accelerated, but it is only in the severer grades of the disease that it exceeds one hundred pulsations. In this form of bronchitis the digestive organs are always involved, the appetite is entirely gone, the bowels are constipated, there is seldom any vomiting. Percussion does not reveal any abnormal changes, but auscultation reveals a more or less prolonged expiration over the whole chest, less frequently a more prolonged inspiration, accompanied by wheezing. These auscultatory results are very much modified, if bronchitis becomes associated with a pulmonary emphysema, etc. as a secondary affection. Even in simple bronchitis, when not complicated with tubercles, the expectoration is easily tinged with blood, whereas raising a quantity of pure blood is a rare occurrence and always'points to a more dangerous and more deep-selted constitutional disease. All the phenomena, especially the cough, exacerbate in the evening and about midnight. The further course of the disease is governed 168 Diseases of the Lungs. by a variety of circumstances. The importance of bronchitis of any degree in the case of tuberculous patients will be more fully inquired into when we come to treat of tuberculosis; and when speaking of pulmonary emphysema, we shall likewise discuss more fully the acute exacerbations of an existing bronchial catarrh which likewise assume the form of bronchitis. In favorable cases uncomplicated forms of bronchitis terminate in four or five days, or exceptionally at an earlier period, in simple bronchial catarrh. The general symptoms moderate in intensity, the fever abates almost entirely, the expectoration becomes more profuse, more fluid, of a whitish-gray color and is more easily raised by the cough which is now much less painful. Instead of the dry wheezing, auscultation now reveals coarse rales. The patients do not often feel well again before the tenth day. If the course of the disease is le.s favorable, its different phases are either more protracted, or else other morbid conditions become associated with it. In the former case the dry, spasmodic, distressing cough may last beyond the seventh or even to the fourteenth day, after which the period of a more profuse secretion of mucus lasts equally long. Although this longer duration of the disease shows as a rule that it is of a secondary nature, yet a purely primary form of bronchitis may run an equally long course, an occurrence peculiar to old age. The course of the disease is still more unfavorable and threatening, if the inflammation of the bronchia spreads to the more delicate ramifications, or if pneumonia and an acute edema of the lungs supervene. The latter may set in with so much rapidity that the patient whom we had left comparatively comfortable, is found dead on our return, Generally this change develops itself more slowly and is at first recognized by a striking and rapid increase of the dyspncea. The patient's age exerts a greatly modifying influence over the course of the disease as well as over its danger to life. Of the bronchitis of children we shall speak hereafter. Among old people, or only somewhat advanced in age, the danger is quite considerable, and seems to depend more particularly upon the increased liability of the bronchial mucous lining to swell, upon the profuse quantity of the secretion at the same time as the respiratory process becomes feebler, and upon the consequently increased danger of cedema of the lungs. At the same time we should not overlook the fact that old people are scarcely ever without some degree of emphysema and that, where no emphysema is present, it is very apt to break out in an acute form. Bronchitis Acuta. 160 Hence the bronchitis of old people differs greatly from that which we have described in the preceding paragraphs. The disease originates in the same manner, only the febrile symptoms seem to be less violent. With the appearance of the rales in the chest, which are generally very prominent, the strength of the patient diminishes instead of increasing, and dyspncea rises to a high degree of intensity. The pulse soon becomes smaller and weaker, the skin becomes moist and cool, the tongue dry and brown, and the sensorium is powerfully affected by the disease: sopor, delirium and grasping at flocks setting in. In this manner the patient may succumb to the disease in a few days, the increase of the mucous rales and the decrease and final and total cessation of the expectoration constituting the most ominous signs of approaching dissolution. One of the most common terminations of bronchitis is chronic bronchial catarrh which succeeds the acute form the more rarely, the younger and healthier the individual. c. Bronchitis cctpillaris. We apply this name to an inflammation of the finest bronchial ramifications in the lungs. An inflammation of this kind frequently sets in as a continuation and still more frequently as a sequel of the inflammation of the larger bronchial tubes, and occurs much less frequently as an idiopathic primary disease. We here give only the symptoms peculiar to capillary bronchitis; the other forms of bronchitis suggest themselves to the reader, if he will simply associate the following description with a simple bronchial catarrh. This affection scarcely ever attacks middleaged persons; it is most apt to occur among children, and very seldom befalls old people. Capillary bronchitis commences like the acute form with the symptoms of a so-called catarrhal fever; but it is an insidious disease which, when occurring idiopathically, scarcely ever betrays its local focus by pain. At an early stage the patient is oppressed for breath, this oppression being determined by the extent of the portion of the lungs that is invaded; with a distressing cough without any expectoration at first, which, even if it should become very copious at a subsequent period, can only be raisedwith a great deal of difficulty. The breathing is accelerated, the inspirations being very much embarrassed and prolonged. Percussion yields no results; auscultation in this affection alone at first reveals a shrill wheezing which is afterwards mingled with fine crepitations and rales. If complicated with inflammation of the larger bronchia, the coarse rales of the latter are apt to disguise the more delicate 170 Diseases of the Lungs. rales in the finer bronchial ramifications, at any rate, the latter are heard much more indistinctly. The constitutional symptoms soon assume a serious and threatening aspect. The fever ordinarily increases, yet the skin is not dry, but inclines to perspire very profusely; the feet and hands are apt to feel cold, and the.face looks pale. The pulse soon becomes small and feeble, and the anxiety and restlessness of the patients generally increase in a corresponding ratio; the tongue is not unfrequently brown and dry. The paroxysms of oough sometimes become so severe that after each paroxysm the patients seem completely exhausted. In the case of a strong adult the pathological process seldom reaches a height where the respiration is impeded to the extent of inducing poisoning of the blood by carbonic acid. This is most characteristically revealed in the persons attacked by the supervention of cerebral symptoms, such as sopor, coma, delirium; in the case of adults these symptoms are of rare occurrence, in children and old people they are often met with. The capillary bronchitis of the latter is very much like the above-described inflammatory bronchitis, except that the typhoid character of the pathological process shows itself in the case of old people at a much earlier period, is much more intense, and the danger is much greater. This form of bronchitis at times runs a very rapid course and then generally terminates fatally, at other times the course is more protracted. Robust individuals may recover already in the second week, very seldom before this time, whereas a duration of one month is a very common thing. Sometimes the affection continues unchanged for weeks in all its severity, and the patients sink under the terrible paroxysms of cough rather than from any other cause. It is always a good sign if a quantity of fine, filiform sputa are expectorated. This is most easily found out by receiving the sputa in water, when these fine threads are most easily distinguished. Among old persons in whom this process resembles almost entirely an attack of pneumonia notha, death sometimes takes place on the third day, very rarely after the second week. Independently of the circumstance that the disease is of itself a dangerous malady, the simultaneously existing pathological disturbances and the possible and ready occurrence of threatening complications are likewise of great importance. Among the latter the pneumonia which develops itself in the neighborhood of the bronchial inflammation may result so much more disastrously, as the existing bronchitis Bronchitis Acuta. 171. alone determines a most damaging interference with the respiratory act. Acute cedema of the lungs is equally dangerous. Acute emphysema is of a less threatening character. The most important complication is the presence of tuberculosis. Many assert that bronchitis is very often the cause of tubercular deposits; others, on the contrary, are of opinion that bronchitis only excites the suppurative process in tubercular deposits. This is not the place for a further discussion of this subject. What is certain is that in tuberculous individuals capillary bronchitis is very apt to pass into a chronic form with a long-lasting, dry, paroxysmal cough. Relapses in capillary bronchitis occur much more easily than in any other form of this disease. d. Croupous bronchitis is characterized by an exudation on the free surface of the bronchial mucous membrane, which, in the larger bronchia, assumes the shape of a tubular lining, and stops up the smaller bronchial ramifications like a plug. It is most frequently a secondary disease, a result, and an almost always fatal complication of a croupous inflammation of the larynx and trachea; or else it may originate as a primary disease. As such the acute form occurs very rarely, but it does occur sometimes. In such a case it presents the picture of an acute bronchitis, but with aggravated symptoms. The fever is very violent, mingled with chills, the pulse is very frequent, the prostration is disproportionally great from the very beginning. The degree of dyspncea is determined by the fact whether the larger bronchia are alone affected or whether the smaller are involved in the disease. The cough is tormenting, the expectoration difficult, lumpy, tenacious, and, in water, assuming the form of fine tubes or arborescent ramifications. If a large portion of the bronchia is involved in this process, cyanosis, aedema of the lungs and death by poisoning with carbonic acid are the speedy terminations of the disease. The chronic form occurs almost exclusively in tuberculous individuals, and will be discussed more fully in the chapter on tuberculosis. Cases that seem idiopathic primary diseases, are likewise caused by a less extensive and hidden deposition of tubercular matter. The chronic form is distinguished by the violent cough that accompanies it. In this form of bronchitis the exudation is not secreted in the larger, but in the smaller bronchia, and is not only difficult to expectorate, but likewise acts as a most intensely irritating cause of cough. e. After having described the other forms of bronchitis, we here devote a few lines to a description of infantile bronchitis which, as 172 Diseases of the Lungs. regards its course and importance, differs most essentially from the corresponding bronchitis of adults. An inflammation of the larger bronchia, be it slight or severe, has almost the same phenomena in the case of children as in that of adults, except that the fever is much more violent and the breathing is in almost every case interfered with very considerably at an early period. The importance of this process in the case of children is much greater than in that of adults, for the reason that in the former it is apt to spread to the smaller bronchia, after which the children who at first gave no cause for alarm, suddenly appear attacked by a dangerous disease. Capillary bronchitis does not often occur as a primary affection; it is almost always the continuation of'an inflammation of the larger tubes. The symptomatic development generally takes place as follows: After the children have had for some days a simple catarrh, attended with severe fever, the breathing becomes more hurried and progressively more oppressed, and the children become more and more restless and anxious. Whereas a physical exploration of the chest had so far revealed nothing abnormal, the respiration, during inspirations as well as expirations, now becomes wheezing, more especially during an inspiration, accompanied or not by distinct vesicular murmurs. The cough continues to increase in vehemence, without anything being expectorated; or, if anything is raised, it is only with great. difficulty a small quantity of mucus which is swallowed again as soon as raised. The general organism, in such a severe disease, is of course correspondingly affected, The dyspncea now increases from hour to hour and soon reaches a degree of intensity that is in no respect inferior to the worst attack of croup, and becomes still more distressing in consequence of the unceasing efforts on the part of the children to obtain relief by coughing. The pulse becomes frequent and small, the skin on the extremities and head is covered with perspiration, the face is pallid or livid, becomes bluish during an attack of cough, the anxiety and restlessness reach the highest degree of intensity. If at this stage of the disease there is no improvement by an increase of the expectoration and a relief from the dyspncea, the disease presents the same picture as in the last stage of croup, only the hissing sound caused by the stricture of the glottis is wanting. The children become calmer, pallid and cool, they are lying in a state of unconsciousness or sopor, the respiration becomes very superficial, the paroxysms of cough abate more and more, and the children die comatose. This fatal termination some Bronchitis Acuta. 173 times takes place already in the first week of the disease, less frequently after the fourteenth day, provided no adventitious influence causes an exacerbation of the disease. Recovery always takes place slowly, the liability to relapses is very great; the strength does not easily return, and the cough sometimes continues for many weeks. The diagnosis is only difficult in the case of very small children; here the characteristic cough is almost always entirely absent, in general the reaction against the disease is either slight or nonapparent. The prognosis is the more doubtful the younger the patient. That dentition complicates the prognosis, cannot be taken for granted. The greater liability to the disease at this period is probably owing to the increased susceptibilities of the infantile organism. In describing the treatment of bronchitis, we commence with the treatment of the previously-described forms, in order not to crowd too much material into one chapter, although influenza and chronic catarrh really belong in this category of disease. These two forms, however, cannot well be treated from the same point of view as a simple acute bronchitis. Let us first consider the leading remedies for the more important forms of bronchitis, to which afterwards, when we come to enumerate the remedies for the different forms singly, the less essential forms can be added. We place Aconitum at the head of the list, not so much because we consider it as one of the more important remedies, but because it seems to have become a matter of routine to recommend it for incipient catarrh. We have on several occasions expressed our doubts concerning the propriety of recoimmending Aconite for catarrh. A common catarrhal fever is not the province of Aconite, and if we should be told that Aconite has moderated this fever in so many cases, we suggest that the improvement might likewise have taken place spontaneously without Aconite. How many catarrhs commence in the first twenty-four hours with a feeling of anxiety, a frequent pulse and an extraordinary rise of temperature, and yet run.their course afterwards without any fever. This should not be attributed to the action of Aconite. A remittent fever is least suitable to this medicine. Where the fever, as is often the case in acute bronchitis, is continuous, the skin is dry and the heat is not mingled with chilly creepings, Aconite is in its place. The symptomatic indications are most fully met with in the incipient bronchitis of children. If the objection is raised that the diagnosis may be doubtful at first and that hence Aconite ought to be opposed to the 174 Diseases of the Lungs. general febrile symptoms, we meet it with the assertion that in every attack of bronchitis the fever has at first a catarrhal, not an inflammatory type. Belladonna has among its symptoms all those that characterize the milder as well as the severer forms of bronchitis. In bronchitis setting in with a violent fever, it moderates the latter much more certainly than Aconite. When speaking of Angina we have had occasion to remark that we consider Belladonna a very efficient remedy in acute catarrh of the respiratory organs. The single diagnostic of a disposition to perspiration while the skin is very hot, constitutes a decidedly characteristic indication. Prominent symptoms, of which we only mention the local symptoms, are the following: A dry, continual, distressing and sometimes spasmodic cough; short paroxysms of cough, but very violent, especially towards evening; no expectoration, or else a yellowish, tenacious, blood-streaked, scanty expectoration. The respiration is oppressed, irregular, and hurried, especially while the patient is sleeping. Sensation of great fulness in the chest, without any real pain; determination of blood to the lungs. This shows that Belladonna is indicated in the lighter as well as in the severer and severest forms of catarrh, but ordinarily only in the first three or four days, very seldom at a later period. Mercurius corresponds with the whole course of a severe attack of bronchitis, even better than Belladonna. It is particularly adapted to children and robust adults,.but not so much to old people. There is a violent fever, the temperature is very high, there is great disposition to perspire without obtaining any relief from it; in contradistinction to Belladonna there is a constant alternation of chills and heat, with a remarkable sensitiveness to the most trifling changes of temperature. If the stomach and the digestive organs are likewise affected, the tongue has a thick yellowish coating, whereas under Belladonna there is only a thin whitish coating in the middle of the tongue; or if diarrhea is present, Mercurius is indicated so much more positively. The most prominent and most important local symptoms are: Feeling of dryness, roughness, and soreness down the middle of the chest, burning in the side; dry, violent and wearing cough, especially in the evening and until midnight, with tenacious, yellowish, sometimes blood-tinged expectoration, every paroxysm of cough is preceded by anxious oppression, dyspncea. Another characteristic which distinguishes Mercurius from Belladonna, is an unquenchable longing for icy cold drinks, although they always make the cough worse. Bronchitis Acuta. 175 Bryonia alba will not often be found indicated at the commencement of bronchitis; if indicated, it will most likely be in the case of old people in whom the catarrhal fever assumes at the outset the form of an adynamic disease. This remedy is most commonly suitable after the fever has been allayed by one of the previously mentioned remedies, and the expectoration begins to become loose enough to enable the patient to cough up mucus. The cough is violent, spasmodic; it is excited by titillation low down in the chest; by every irritating impression, especially by tobacco-smoke, after eating, in the afternoon and after midnight; the expectoration is scanty, yellowish and tinged with blood. When coughing, there is violent determination of blood to the head, turgescence of the face. Paroxysms of oppressed breathing, but no constant dyspncea. Spongia is characterized by a hollow, barking, dry, seldom moist cough, continuing all day, and likewise all night in long-lasting distressing paroxysms; at the same time labored, crowing, wheezing inspirations, sometimes accompanied by rales. The remedy is most appropriate for children, more particularly if the disease set in as laryngitis and gradually extended to the lungs. It is an excellent remedy in croupous bronchitis. Veratrum album is not often enough made use of in bronchitis. It is not suitable in the first stage, but on the passage into the second stage, if mucus is secreted in copious quantities which cannot yet be coughed up. This causes a constant titillation deep in the chest, with desire to cough, wheezing and coarse rales, but no expectoration, the distressing paroxysms of cough occur principally at night, with violent determination of blood to the head. The general failing of strength, the increased frequency or even irregularity of the pulse constitute additional indications for Veratrum, which is evidently suitable to old people rather than children. Tartarus stibiatus of all other remedies enjoys the largest sphere of action in pulmonary catarrh, and is preeminently characterized by a profuse secretion of mucus which it is difficult to raise, with or without fever. This range of action is distinctly pointed out by the not very numerous, but significant lung-symptoms of Tartar emetic. Hence both the lighter and severer cases are adapted to this drug, fine curative results of which are reported in our Periodicals. The lighter cases are not often met with among persons of middleage, more frequently among children and old people. In capillary bronchitis Tartar emetic is sometimes the only remedy from which help may yet be expected, only it must not be given in too small 176 Diseases of the Lungs. doses nor large enough to produce emesis. Symptoms of incipient poisoning by carbonic acid, such as sopor, delirium, coma with pallor and bloat of the countenance and an unequal temperature of the body are appropriate indications for Tartar emetic, so is cedema of the lungs when similar symptoms prevail. Profuse sweats without relief, disposition to vomiting and diarrhcea, paroxysms of a rattling cough ending in vomiting, likewise indicate Tartar emetic. All this shows that it is really the second stage of the catarrhal process which is adapted to the curative action of this drug which acts very similarly to Veratrum album. These two drugs differ principally in their phenomena of reaction which are very striking and active under Veratrum, but very feeble under Tartar emetic. Hence Tartar emetic will often be found useful after Veratrum. Ipecacuanha bears great resemblance to the two last-mentioned remedies. The most essential symptoms for this remedy are: Loud mucous rales in the chest with wheezing respiration, great dyspncea mostly in paroxysms especially in the evening and at night, convulsive suffocative cough during which the face becomes blue, sometimes ending in vomiting of mucus, or else dry cough in spite of the mucous rales, spasm of the glottis, convulsive twitchings, unequal temperature of the body, severe gastric ailments and intestinal catarrh, pallid or bluish and bloated countenance. Ipecac. is likewise suitable for a dry, spasmodic cough, but certainly not according to its physiological symptoms. The remedy is principally adapted to the bronchial catarrh of children; adults do not seem to be favorably affected by it, and its good effect upon old people is very questionable. The above stated symptoms show that the fine curative virtues of Ipecac. do not reside in its emetic properties, but in its specific adaptation to the bronchial disease. Allopathic physicians would soon become convinced of this fact, if they would give the remedy in doses small enough not to cause nausea. It cannot be denied, however, that the act of vomiting in suffocative catarrh may exert an expectorant and alleviating influence, and we could not find fault with a homceopath who, from this stand-point, were to prescribe massive doses of this drug. At any rate we know from experience that a smaller dose than a grain of the second trituration does not produce a reliable effect. Nux vomica is recommended for bronchitis, but we must confess that we have never witnessed any curative results from this drug in the acute form of bronchitis, however much we may value it in the lesser degree of laryngotracheitis. We shall scarcely ever dis Bronchitis Acuta. 177 cover a real symptomatic similarity between Nux and bronchitis; if existing, it will only be found to apply to the more trifling forms of the disease. Chamomilla may be found suitable for the bronchitis of children, not so much of adults; it is indicated if the larger bronchia are inflamed, with an urging to cough, the cough being excited or aggravated, by the least attempt to use one's voice. It is particularly violent at night, and accompanied by wheezing, and by coarse rales. Bad cases are not adapted to this medicine. Pulsatilla is only indicated in the lighter forms of inflammation of the large bronchia, if there is no fever or the fever is already passed. We shall revert to this remedy again under chronic bronchial catarrh, to which the reader is referred. Rhus toxicodendron seems to us very seldom indicated in simple bronchitis, but may prove of importance in the epidemic forms of this disease. On this account we refer the reader to the treatment of influenza. We have to recommend this remedy, however, in the first stage of the malignant forms of the bronchitis of old people. At an early stage already the symptoms resemble those of typhus; the danger is more particularly determined by the character of the fever which deprives the already exhausted frame of all power of reaction. Under these circumstances Rhus will be found eminently suitable, since it corresponds very strikingly with the exceedingly threatening constitutional symptoms. Hepar sulphuris calc. is most nearly related to Spongia in bronchitis as well as in laryngitis. A characteristic indication for Ilepar is a dry, spasmodic, barking cough with a wheezing sound over the whole thorax without any real mucous rales; it is a steady cough, only at intervals increasing to frightful paroxysms with danger of suffocation; it is excited by every attempt to draw a long breath, and only results in the expectoration of a yellowish, tenacious mucus. Hence Hepar is an important remedy in croupous bronchitis, likewise in the less acute or even chronic form of the disease; in capillary bronchitis its applicability is questionable. [We do not agree with Behr in this statement; we have used Hepar in this form of bronchitis with striking benefit, giving the third to the sixth attenuation. H.] lodium may be ranged side by side with Spongia and Hepar. However it is not by any means ahead of these agents, since it affects the larynx and trachea much more energetically than the 12 178 Diseases of the Lungs. bronchia. It has no particular symptoms that distinguish it from other remedies. Bromine has not been sufficiently proved to secure it a prominent place among the remedies for bronchitis. The recommendations of this drug by homoeopathic physicians are too vague and indefinite to deserve any further notice at our hands. Its practical results are exceedingly meagre and indecisive. Baryta carbonica is not much used in bronchitis, although it deserves some consideration in at least one form of this disease. We allude to the bronchitis of old people during its transition from the acute to the chronic form; there is a constant desire to cough, with loud mucous rales, yet the expectoration is very difficult and scanty. In such cases we have seen this remedy act with decided benefit. In bronchitis with threatening symptoms we should never depend upon Baryta carbonica, Arsenicum album is scarcely ever indicated in simple bronchitis; for particulars we refer the reader to the chapters on influenza and chronic bronchial catarrh. Phosphorus is not, in our estimation, a remedy for bronchitis unless the disease is complicated with other affections. IIahnemann himself pronounces Phosphorus not only not suitable, but even hurtful in this disease; this statement certainly rests upon practical observations, although it does not seem confirmned by the physiological data of the Materia Medica. In his treatise on Phosphorus, Sorge does not allude to this agent as a remedy for bronchial diseases. In our further considerations of pulmonary affections we shall frequently have occasion to revert to Phosphorus. On this occasion we will merely state that if cedema of the lungs or pneumonia should supervene during the course of bronchitis, Phosphorus will be found one of the chief remedies from which help may yet be expected. Let us now in conclusion consider the above-described forms of bronchitis in their relation to the remedies we have indicated to which a large number might be added, if we desired to present an absolutely complete list. To those who object to such a cursory review of remedies as favoring a tendency to dogmatic systemization, we reply that by this means a knowledge of the remedies is more easily obtained and an opportunity is afforded for mentioning a number of others that had been omitted in the preceding list. In the milder form, the so-called simple bronchial catarrh, no remedy is required, since it most commonly passes off without any Bronchitis Acura. 179 medication. Nevertheless, considering how easily this simple form may prepare the way for the more dangerous forms of bronchitis, it is advisable to get it out of the way as soon as possible. If fever is present, Belladonna should first be given, if not, Nux vomica. [Aconite or Mercurius may be required. H.] In the case of children, Belladonna is principally suitable, to which Chamomilla may be preferred under certain circumstances, especially if the children are very young. As soon as the cough is loose, Tartarus stibiatus or Pulsatilla may be required, less frequently Bryonia or Ipeeacuanha. These few remedies will almost always be found sufficient. In the inflammatory bronchitis of adults Belladonna will have always to be given first; Mercurius if the above-described symptomatic indications prevail, more particularly if gastric derangements or diarrhcea are present. If under the operation of these drugs the fever has abated and the cough has become loose, Stibium, Bryonia, Bromine, Hepar sulphuris, likewise Hyoscyamus or Conimum may be required. Bryonia deserves a preference if the trouble seems disposed to run a very protracted course, in which case Digitalis may have to be resorted to. It is not our object to indicate all the different cough-symptoms; they can be found in any good Repertory. If the inflammation spreads to the finer bronchial ramifications, Bryonia will still be found most appropriate. In cases with typhoid symptoms and violent fever, Rhus tox. may have to be given. If the dyspncea increases to a high degree, Veratrumn or Stibium, or according to some, Ipecacuanha may be indicated. For a supervening cedema of the lungs Phosphorus and Arsenicum are mostly required; Tart. stibiatus will seldom be found indicated; Carbo veget. may have to be fallen back upon. Iodium, Spongia and Bromium may be indicated in capillary bronchitis, also Ammnonium inuriat. and carbonicum, [also Hepar sulphuris. 11.] In the bronchitis of old people we have in the first place to moderate the fever, for which Aconite or even Belladonna will but seldom be found suitable; Bryonia and Rhus tox. may do much better. If there is but little or no fever, Tart. stib. will be found most appropriate. If bronchitis is complicated with emphysema, the whole group of symptoms is best met by Arsenicum, which is likewise to be resorted to, if the fever should become complicated with dyspncea. In the case of old people Phosphorus will not often be found suitable for the threatening terminal stages of bronchitis; Tart. stib. and Veratrum will be much better. We have reconl mended Baryta for light attacks during the stage without fever. 180 Diseases of the Lungs. The bronchitis of children tends greatly to assume the form of capillary bronchitis; for this reason it behooves us to watch an attack of bronchitis in children with the utmost care. At the commencement of the attack, the symptoms generally point to Aconite, not, however, with such perfect regularity as to admit of Aconite being regarded as an invariable specific. Belladonna often competes with Aconite in this disease, in the further course of which, even in slight cases, the same remedies may have to be used that suit the case of adults. In the more dangerous forms Mercurius may generally deserve a preference at the outset; it is indicated if by nothing else than the thick, yellowish coating of the tongue, and the frequent alternation of chills, extreme heat and exhausting sweats. If the symptoms increase in intensity, Spongia is indicated; if there is a violent, dry, suffocative cough, Hepar; if the cough sounds loose, and there are mucous rales but no expectoration, Ipecacaanha; for excessive secretion of mucus, with severe dyspncea and convulsive phenomena, Tartarus stibiatus may be required, but it will seldonm act with as much benefit as Ipecacuanha. Croupous bronchitis as a partial development of laryngeai croup does not require any other treatment than the latter. Even if bronchial croup should break out as a primary disease, which is seldom the case, lodium, Spongia7C, Hepar and perhaps Bromine would have to be used. In subacute and even chronic cases Arsenicum is one of the most efficient remedies to prevent and mitigate the paroxysms of cough, which, considering their violence, must be considered a very satisfactory result. In conclusion we call attention to a remedy which, so far as we know, has never yet been employed in bronchitis. We mean Opium. Latterly we have witnessed good results from Opium, which, doubtless, are not exclusively due to its palliative or narcotic action. We were led to its use by the description in an English Journal of a chronic case of poisoning with Opium, according to.which a spasmodic and dry cough is one of the most common phenomena of this agent. We have to revert to this remedy more fully when we come to treat of influenza and pneumonia. To judge by the physiological symptoms of Opium as we find them in the Materia Medica, and considering the energetic action of this drug upon the childlike organism, Opium must be an excellent remedy in the capillary bronchitis of children. The general management of the patient occupies a conspicuous place in this disease. It is unfortunately a wide-spread custom to Bronchitis Acuta. 181 endeavor to obtain an increase of cutaneous perspiration even in a case of incipient bronchial catarrh, without discriminating by what means this object is attained. We cannot encourage a proceeding of this kind. In lighter cases, where this proceeding seems to have had little effect, the question may be asked whether the case would not have turned out equally favbrably without sweat; the rapid recovery of patients who do not resort to such means, shows that exciting a perspiration is not absolutely necessary to a cure. In bad cases an artificial perspiration is decidedly injurious. The object is obtained more promptly and more safely, if the patients are kept in their teds with but little covering, and the temperature of the room increased to about fifty degrees F. At the same time water should be allowed to evaporate in the room, by which means the irritating urging to cough is very much diminished..If the mere act of sweating were beneficial to the patients, they ought to feel better in summer. It is well known, however, that the bronchial catarrhs of the hot season are more obstinate and distressing than those of the cold. However, if we are anxious to avoid all conflict with the inveterate habits of the people, perspiration can be excited by drinking in bed a glass of hot water and sugar with a few drops of lemon-juice in order to make it more palatable; children may drink a glass of very much diluted warm milk, sweetened with a little sugar. If these simple means do not excite perspiration, other means will not excite any either, or, if they do, it will be to the patient's prejudice. There is another powerful reason against copious perspiration. It considerably increases the disposition to take cold, which is anyhow very great, and causes exacerbations and relapses; rising to void the urine or evacuate the bowels may be sufficient to superinduce a fresh cold, nor will the patients after recovery be able to go out again as soon as they otherwise might, without apprehending a new attack, An effeminate mode of life which is one of the main causes of catarrh in healthy persons, is likewise the cause of frequent relapses. This remark applies to little children in whose case every thing is often done to render them unfit for the least exposure to open air. The general strength of the patients is the best indication whether they can safly be permitted to go out of doors; if they feel. strong again as usual, a little remaining loose cough need not deter them from going out, provided the temperature of the atmosphere and the weather generally are sufficiently inviting. In a case of tubercular bronchitis other considerations will have to govern the general management. 182 Diseases of the Lungs. In matters of diet, the instinct of the patient may safely be taken as a guide. In bad cases the functional activity of the digestive organs is completely prostrated, and there is no necessity of forbidding the use of any kind of food; whereas in the more unimportant cases the choice of food is of very little particular consequence. All we have to do is to see to it that the nourishment which is introduced into the stomach, does not cause any catarrhal irritation of this organ. As soon as the appetite returns, a simple, but nourishing diet is the best. As regards drinks, it may be well not to implicitly gratify the desire of the patients who have a great longing for cold water. Drinking cold water is apt to excite or increase the cough, whereas it is diminished and moderated by warm beverages. As a matter of course, whatever might irritate the lungs, has to be avoided, such as continued or loud talking, mental excitements, dust, smoke, dry heat, the use of coffee, spirits, etc. For further details we refer to the article on diet in the chapter on pulmonary tuberculosis. 4. Infltenza. Grippe. Influenza is not by any means a simple catarrh of the respiratory organs, though the anatomical changes indicate such a condition; but a peculiar, complicated and combined catarrh which in point of importance and treatment differs essentially from simple bronchitis. This instance shows most conclusively that it is wrong to undertake to determine the character of a disease by the anatomical lesions it occasions. The etiology of influenza is completely enveloped in obscurity. It is an epidemic disease which may prevail in any season, and is fiequently associated with other epidemic affections. Most commonly it spreads over a large extent of country and attacks anybody, although individuals who are affected with pulmonary diseases, more particularly tuberculous individuals, are most liable to its visitations. The most extensive influenza-epidemics have spread from east to west. We again call attention to the connection between influenza and the amount of ozone in the atmosphere. Symptoms. If latterly every bronchial catarrh with typhoid symptoms has been designated as influenza, this appellation is no more proper than it is proper to refuse this name to larger or sma ller epidemics for no better reason than because they do not come up either in extent or fatality to the epidemic of 1833. We apply the Influenza. 183 name grippe or influenza to every bronchitis invading a large surface of country and involving with marked symptoms of illness the whole organism, more especially the nervous system, attacking a number of individuals in the same epidemic with very similar symptoms, although these may differ ever so much in different epidemics. The phenomena referring to the respiratory organs are altogether those of an acute bronchitis, such as we have described in previous paragraphs, and which easily changes to the capillary form; they are accompanied by catarrh of the nose, larynx and trachea, and are distinguished by the obstinacy and slowness of their course, at times being very intense and at other times so completely disguised by the constitutional disturbance that they are easily overlooked. Influenza is generally preceded by a preliminary stage where the local symptoms of catarrh of the respiratory organs are still wanting, or are but imperfectly developed, whereas the patient complains already very much of an extreme languor, with nervous excitement, sleeplessness and loss of appetite, without or with only slight fever. As the fever increases, the local symptoms become generally more marked and more intense. At times a coryza is the only prominent symptom, at other times the mucous lining, from the nose to the finest bronchial ramifications, is inflamed. At the same time a violent and constant headache is complained of, which is commonly located in the forehead and is marked by all the peculiarities that so commonly characterize the headache in an incipient typhus. This headache is accompanied by rheumatoid pains in many parts of the muscular system, accompanied by a degree of debility that almost amounts to paralysis. After a gradual, very seldom sudden increase the disease reaches its full height. The catarrh is at times violent, at other times very slight. The fever is intense, but so plainly rermittent that the remissions sometimes appear like intermissions. The debility is excessive. The headache is agonizing, and is either complicated with sopor or with violent delirium. The digestion is entirely prostrated; the tongue is thickly coated white or yellow, at times it exhibits a sickly redness with disposition to dryness; nausea and even diarrhea are often present; the bowels are confined, diarrhcea is less frequent. The symptoms exacerbate in the evening and at night, the patient being very much distressed by the cough which aggravates the headache a great deal. Thus the more violent attacks of influenza simulate an acute typhus, milder cases a so-called nervous gastric fever. Death may take place in the second week amid 184 Diseases of the Lungs. symptoms of general exhaustion; sometimes it takes place at a later period in consequence of the peculiar secondary diseases which firequently break out as sequele of influenza. In the case of sound, robust individuals the disease mostly terminates its course in a fortnight, but always leaving an extreme weakness which may last for weeks. In the case of old people the danger is always great and recovery takes place very slowly. An abatement of the fever is always the surest sign of an improvement. The disease very often leaves very threatening results. If the patient had tubercles, their suppuration is an almost sure consequence of the bronchial affection, although we do not choose to hold to the opinion of many that influenza is itself capable of causing tubercular deposits. In opposition to this doctrine we might say that scattered tubercular deposits very often escape our notice. Influenza is very apt to leave in its track various affections of the respiratory organs, such as an obstinate hoarseness or even loss of voice and a long-lasting bronchial catarrh. The stomach likewise frequently remains disturbed, nor is a disturbance of the hepatic functions an uncommon event. Thus we see that the prognosis in influenza is uncertain, even if the disease sets in favorably at first, and the patient had been in the habitual enjoyment of good health. If the individual had pulmonary disease, or in the case of decrepit subjects, a fatal termination is not uncommon. The peculiar nature of the actually existing epidemic may likewise exert a great influence; whereas one epidemic scarcely destroys a single life, another epidemic, on the contrary, claims a great many victims. The reason why a description of the treatment of influenza is a difficult task, is the diversity of forms under which the epidemic appears. In influenza, as in other epidemics, remedies whose practical value had been tested by abundant experience, often have to be abandoned as unreliable, and other remedies have to be substituted in their stead. In influenza one or two remedies sometimes prove specifics in all cases, so that the epidemic might, after Rademacher's example, be conveniently named after the medicine that acts as its universal curative. To find out these remedies, persevering investigations are often indispensable, and we shall, therefore, confine ourselves to indicating the remedies whose practical value has been tested in a variety of cases. One of the most dangerous cliffs, on which our treatment so often strands, is the frequent change of remedies for the purpose of meet Influenza. 185 ing this or that symptom. The peculiar nature of the disease sometimes presses the local symptoms of an affection of the respiratory organs entirely into the background, whereas the symptoms of cerebral congestion, typhoid symptoms, or the symptoms of gastric or intestinal catarrh appear much more prominent. If, in such cases, we only direct our attention to the apparently most important complication, we shall often err in the choice of a remedy. It is only by weighing every circumstance of the disease that good results can be obtained by treatment; at the same time we are free to add that this task is not often easily accomplished, and that its accomplishment demands a persevering study of the Materia Medica. As a matter of course, such therapeutic investigations are very much facilitated by the presence of a prominent complication. In cases of cerebral hyperemia, we will, of course, search for other remedies than in cases with prominent symptoms of livercomplaint, or with violent diarrhcea or gastric catarrh. We repeat: let no one be content with the indications which we add to each of the following remedies. Guided by existing observations we only point out general landmarks, we do not give details. Aconitum is particularly suitable to children in whose case this drug often suffices to effect a cure, whereas, in the case of adults, other remedies may be required in connection with Aconite. It is suitable if the fever has the inflammatory type, or the bronchial affection tends to develop pneumonia, and the patient is tormented by a distressing, violent, dry cough. Aconite will probably never acqiTire the rank of a specific adapted to a number of cases. Regarding Belladonna we refer to the preceding chapter. It acts well in cases with violent congestions about the head and furibond or at least active delirium, as long as these symptoms have not assumed the characteristic appearance of adynamia. For particulars concerning Mercurius we likewise refer to the previous chapter. Invaddition we offer the following remarks. Mercurius is one of those remedies which, according to experience, are all-sufficient. as antidotes to some epidemics. Some reporters of cases even profess to have cut some cases of influenza short with this remedy. Special consideration is due'to the existing coryza, which often is a valuable diagnostic sign in contra-distinction to the Arsenic-coryza. Mercurius is, moreover, indicated by violent pains in the joints, angina, a sudden failing of the muscular strength, profuse sweat having a sour or foul odor and not afford 186 Diseases of the Lungs. ing any relief, thick coating of the tongue, severe gastric catarrh, diarrhoea. We add to these indications the following from Clotar Miiller's treatise on pneumonia: "' During epidemic influenza a kind of pneumonia occurs which is easily overlooked, because its subjective symptoms differ but little from the symptoms of the prevailing influenza. This form of pneumonia ordinarily sets in without much fever, its symptoms are not very violent and apparently of not much importance. Common symptoms are: a tearing and aching pain in the head, especially in the forehead, coryza, a slimy mouth and tongue, and dry lips; among other symptoms we distinguish the following: Loss of appetite, bad taste in the mouth, dry stools, urine mixed with a white mucus, a racking and dry cough, painfulness of the whole thorax, afterwards expectoration of frothy mucus, tearing pains in the joints, disproportionate weakness, tremulous nervousness, aggravation of the symptoms at night, with heat, sleeplessness at night, constant exhalations from the skin, or else copious and fetid sweat. On exploring the chest, we generally discover a not very considerable exudation. If overlooked or neglected the disease runs a very protracted course, sometimes occasions exhausting pulmonary blennorrhceas, or, if the exudation remains undissolved, phthisicky symptoms may be developed. These peculiar morbid conditions are very much abbreviated by Mercurius, so that a complete restoration of health takes place and, if the patients otherwise keep comfortably warm, no other remedy is required." Bryonia alba is very closely related to Mercurius and it will be found difficult to discriminate very precisely between their respective symptomatic indications. Some facts regarding this point have already been stated in the preceding chapter; in this place we will add a few other details. The affection in the respiratory organs is confined to the larynx, trachea, and bronchial tubes; the nose remains unaffected, whereas coryza is a significant indication for Mercurius. The fever is less violent, but more continued; if there is sweat, it is copious and constant; the tongue is white, but has no thick coating on it, the bowels are constipated. The symptoms exacerbate in the day-time, not at night. The disease has an adynamic character, with deficient reaction, whereas Mercurius has a very decided reaction.' Thus B1ryonia may be frequently suitable after Mercurius, but Mercurius is never suitable after Bryonia. The supervention of pneumonic symptoms does not contra-indicate Bryonia, a supervening affection of the pleura indicates this drug very positively. If influenza attacks tubercular lungs, Bryonia is Influenza. 187 always appropriate, and is always preferable to Mercurius. 3ryonia is one of those remedies that is calculated to become a specific for epidemic influenza. Rhus toxicodendron is another important remedy in epidemic influenza which often corresponds to the whole character of the disease. Rhus is in its place if the local affection is so disguised by the constitutional disease that we rather seem to deal with typhus complicated with a bronchial catarrh. The use of this remedy is suggested by great debility, a prostrate condition of the whole orghnism, symptoms of violent reaction, such as a rapid pulse, burning heat, dry skin and tongue, delirium, sopor. Among the local symptoms, the most prominent indication is a short, distressing, dry cough, mostly at night, and excited by motion and by every little cold current of air. Of Nux vomica, Hahnemann relates in his preface to Camphor that a very small dose often removes an attack of influenza in a few hours. We refer to the preceding chapter where we have expressed our doubts regarding the appropriateness of Nux; we have to repeat these doubts here in much more emphatic language. There are, of course, many who profess to have seen good effects from it even in influenza; but it is not so very easy to speak of curative results in this disease with positive certainty; as far as we ourselves are concerned, we never have been able to obtain any striking curative results with this agent. Phosphorus is of all other remedies most positively indicated in influenza by distinct and fixed symptomatic manifestations. It is suitable if, in addition to severe constitutional disturbances, the disease is chiefly localized in the larynx; it is likewise appropriate in influenza with tendency to develop pneumonia, or if the influenza attacks tuberculous individuals in whose case the medicine has to be given with great caution; and finally in cases complicated with severe intestinal catarrh. Among the secondary diseases, such as aphonia or hoarseness, it is particularly Phosphorus that is characteristically indicated. Arsenicum album is suited to an affection of the upper portion of the respiratory tract, the nose and larynx; it is less suited to bronchitis, except when it attacks individuals afflicted with emphysema. A violent coryza with copious watery, excoriating secretion, a burning pain in the frontal cavities; dryness and burning in the larynx and trachea, with hoarseness and a few violent paroxysms of cough are paramount indications for Arsenic. The constitutional 188 Diseases of the Lungs. symptoms are still more characteristic: excessive debility, with a rapid pulse, continual restlessness and sleeplessness, regular midnight exaceL'bations. Arsenicum is particularly efficient in cases where the conjunctiva is strikingly involved in the catarrhal process and where the disease has an unmistakable tertian type. Opium is only mentioned once in our literature for influenza; it was successfully given for paroxysms of a distressing and tight cough, the paroxysms being always followed by yawning. According to our own experience, Opium controls paroxysms of a dry cough with congestions to the head and chest, it drives the patients to despair and breaks out particularly in the night. Opium will seldom afford help at the outset of an attack of influenza, but will afford speedy and substantial aid if such a cough remains after the departure of the fever. Sabadilla is said to have helped in two epidemics, the symptoms of which we transfer from Riickert's "TKlinischen Erfahrungen': "Excessive drowsiness in the day-time; chilliness, especially towards evening; shudderings with goose-flesh, the chills creeping up from the feet towards the head; lachrymation, with redness of the eyelids; pressure on the eyes, especially when moving them or when looking up. Ieadache, especially frontal; sore tongue, thick yellow coating on the tongue, the pa.in extends as far as the throat; painful deglutition; sensation as if a piece of loose skin were hanging in the throat; bitter taste in the mouth; complete loss of appetite, with nausea; dryness of the mouth without thirst; constipation with flatulence; in some, brown frothy diarrhceic stools which floated on the water; yellowish and turbid urine; cough with vomiting, headache, sharp stitches in the vertex, pain in the region of the stomach; cough of a peculiar, muffled kind; many cough up blood; painful lameness in the joints, especially the kneejoints. All the symptoms get worse in the cold; they exacerbate about noon, but worse towards evening; flashes of heat in the face, with chilliness and coldness of the extremities; the flashes of heat in the face are mingled with chilly creepings over the back from below upwards at intervals of ten minutes; the skin is dry as parchment; restless sleep, full of anxious dreams; the cough appears as soon as one lies down." For the indications for Ipecacuanha and Veratrum album we refer to the preceding chapter; the latter is certainly an important remedy in influenza. In general the remedies, which we have recommended for simple bronchial catarrh, may likewise be required for influenza. Influenza. 189 In order not to indulge in too many subjective indications in a disease where practical experience plays a most important part, we transfer from Hartmann's Therapeutics the passage concerning influenza with slight additions of our own, which will afford us an opportunity for briefly mentioning a few important remedies. "Smelling of Camphor several times, as soon as the first symptoms of the disease became apparent, had the effect of suppressing the disease, but a few days later it broke out nevertheless, which was not the case in a subsequent epidemic where Camphor was given internally in the first attenuation and proved a sovereign remedy for the disease." Ilahnemann says in his preface to Camphor: In influenza, if the heat has already set in, Camphor only serves as a palliative, but as a valuable one, if given in frequent but more and more attenuated doses; it does not shorten the course of the disease, which is not very much protracted any way, but moderates the vehemence of the attack a great deal and conducts it, shorn of its danger, to the end. " If the thoracic organs were the chief seat of the inflammation, lAtex vomica always did good service if given after Aconite. ]lercurius solubilis or vivas, of which several doses were given every day, was particularly calculated to cure the disease or even cut it short in its very germ, if the following symptoms prevailed: the head, throat and chest were principally affected; there was a dry and racking cough which afterwards became loose and was attended with pleuritic pains;, the patient was troubled with profuse sweats which did not a.fford him any relief; there were symptoms of an inflammatory fever, dull pain, not very hard pulse. If the trachea was much irritated, and the irritation almost bordered on inflammnation, so that the intense pain made it impossible to speak, and the voice was very much altered, >Phosphorus was an excellent remedy." "Very often the disease broke out in the form of sporadic cholera; in such a case the catarrhal symptoms were unimportant, but the prostration was very prominent. Here Veratrum helped in every case. If an attack of this kind was followed by nervous symptoms, if the patient became delirious, had a wild and staring look, complained of great sensitiveness of the abdomen, and the pulse was full and hard, a few doses of Aconite were given with great benefit and the rest of the symptoms were removed by Pulsatilla, which likewise proved a remedy for the pappy and insipid taste that sometimes remained for a time, together with a mucous coat 190 Diseases of the Lungs. ing on the tongue and loss of appetite." We cannot yield our assent to this passage. The delirium occurring in influenza, and all the other so-called nervous symptoms, are always of a typhoid type and do not yield to Aconite, but require much rather Belladonna, Bryonia, Rhus, also Stranmonium and Hyoscyamus; after the exhibition of such remedies symptoms indicating Pulsatilla will not often remain. "An exceedingly distressing symptom in this disease was the violent, pressing frontal headache which, together with the accompanying cough and the loose and slimy expectoration was relieved by Bryonia, which likewise proved an excellent remedy, if the liver was enlarged and painful on contact, or during a coughing fit or a deep inspiration; if the cough easily ended in vomiting or caused a pain in the epigastric region, in which case Bryonia competed with iux, or if the pain was felt under the short ribs as if the parts had been bruised so that the patient, when coughing, had to press his hands against them; Bryonia likewise proved efficient if the influenza attacked old people with great distress in the chest and coldness of the limbs, in which case the disease often destroyed life by paralysis of the lungs; the Bryonia was given in alternation with Carbo vegetabilis." In such cases Tartar emetic may deserve attention. "If the cough was dry and spasmodic, if the headache became unbearable and was aggravated by walking, talking, bright light and by every least motion; if the look became staring and the patients were troubled with fancies whenever they closed their eyes, Belladonna always afforded relief, so that in a few hours already, this condition which seemed like an incipient meningitis, disappeared." "Rhus was indicated if the attack had been caused in consequence of the patients getting soaking wet, and they were greatly oppressed on the chest, anxious, they frequently drew involuntarily a long breath, were very restless and had to change their position quite often." "Sabadilea was given if the attack seemed like an inflammatory affection of the thoracic organs, with severe chills and external coldness." This indication corresponds but little with what was ~said concerning Sabadilla in a previous paragraph. "China relieved the cough that was excited by a rattling under the sternum as if mucus had accumulated there." This indication is of very little importance and of no particular value in influenza. Independently of the cough which cannot be regarded as Influenza. 191 a characteristic symptom, China will be found suitable if the disease assumes the character of a nervous fever or the appearance of pulmonary phthisis. "The alcoholic tincture of Sulphur was prescribed with good effect at the termination of the disease, after the fever had abated, the stitches in the chest were only felt indistinctly during a deep inspiration and. a violent coughing fit, and the patient complained of oppression on the chest as from a heavy weight." In general Sulphur is a valuable remedy for pulmonary affections remaining after an attack of influenza and not traceable to tubercular infiltration. "The spasmodic cough which remained for some time after an attack of influenza and sometimes tormented the patients for hours, was almost always relieved by one or more doses of Hfyoscyamus, in some cases by Belladonna; but if the coughing fit did not cease until a mass of frothy mucus with a yellowish purulent nucleus had been raised, Conium proved the main remedy; if the cough broke out after a meal and the food was vomited up in consequence of the cough, Ferrum aceticumr was found to be the specific remedy."'If the influenza left the patient with a troublesome cough and a gray, sweetish-salt expectoration, wheezing and rattling in the chest, Kali hydriod. proved an admirable remedy." This medicine is likewise excellent for the remaining hoarseness or even aphonia, but should not be given in too small doses. lodium itself is of no use for these symptoms, but may be resorted to in the febrile stage. "In cases of a previously-existing disposition to phthisis, which the influenza threatened to develop more actively, a few doses of Stannum in alternation with Carbo veget. were often sufficient to prevent the further spread of the tubercular disease." In the sequelhe of influenza Carbo veget. is very closely related to Phosphorus and Kali hydriodicum. "In some cases the influenza was succeeded by obstinate ophthalmia with ulcers of the cornea and violent photophobia, for which Arsenicum album seemed almost the only efficient remedy; repeated doses of Belladonna were likewise useful, but did not effect a per. manent cure." With reference to this long quotation we confess that Hartmann's indications seem to us rather vague and unprofitable; others may, however, not share our opinion. A number of other remedies that might be mentioned in this place, would be directed against the various complications such as 192 Diseases of the Lungs. pleuritis, pneumonia, hemopto6, diarrhoea, and more particularly against the sequelae; concerning the former, we refer the reader to the respective chapters on pleuritis, etc.; the sequelae will generally yield to the above-described group of remedial agents. The dietetic management depends a good deal upon the condition of the digestive organs. If the patient's appetite is good:, there is no reason why he should not be permitted the use of nourishing and substantial food. But if the long duration of the disease has caused great debility, a great deal of caution has to be observed in gradually increasing the patient's allowance, because the stomach very often continues for a long time in a condition of atony. The same caution has to be used in allowing patients the enjoyment of open air; the sensitiveness of the lungs often becomes excessive during an attack of influenza, and it behooves us to ascertain and moderate this condition of the lungs with proper care and discretion. There is no reason of considering influenza contagious as many do; and every measure tending to counteract this contagion, is an useless torture. The only preventive measure which we advise with a good deal of success, consists in avoiding all those exposures which are generally apt to cause catarrhs of the respiratory organs. [In epidemic influenza our physicians depend a great deal upon Tartar emetic which is regarded by many as a sort of specific for this epidemic. We cannot do better than by transcribing Doctor John F. Gray's interesting note on this subject from my Symptomen-Codex, published by W. Radde, INew York, in 1848. "In the first stage of influenza ((enerally of itself a fugitive state), I think it by very much the most strictly indicated, and on that account as well as from my own observations in many hundreds of cases, by very far the most efficacious means we can apply. The state against which I give it, is: lassitude with great sensitiveness to cold, with chilly feelings, headache, pasty tongue, inflammation of the throat (tonsils, arches of the palate or pharynx), short turns of nausea, achings in the bones, especially of the lower extremities, yellowness of the skin, slight hoarseness, more or less fever-heat and sweats. The Antimony often acts as a perfect remedy in the stage of incubation, especially in those cases which would of themselves close this stage by profuse watery diarrhcea with some vomiting and cramps.: * This stage, of which the angina faucium, the chills and the bone-pains, are the prominent sufferings, subsides of itself in twenty-four to forty-eight hours, and thie physician is very apt to be deceived as to the efficacy of his treatment. Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis. 193 The second or bronchial stage of the true influenza having been successfully managed by Phosphorus or Bryonia, with the aid of Aconite or ilyoscyamus, I complete the cure by a return to the Antimony; that is to say, when the air-passages are loaded with mucus, the cough being frequent and the expectorations copious. H.] 5. Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis. Whooping-Cough. We understand by this name a peculiar form of catarrh of the respiratory mucous membrane from the nose to the pulmonary vesicles, where the cough sets in in distinctly detached paroxysms. Etiology. Whooping-cough is an epidemic disease which sometimes occurs in the form of very extensive, and sometimes circumscribed epidemics, in which latter case the few cases of whoopingcough might even be designated as sporadic. So far the real cause of the epidemic has not yet been determined. It cannot be the peculiar nature of the wind, for the reason that the disease breaks out without the least regularity in disconnected portions of country; all we know is that the outbreak of an epidemic occurs more frequently in the spring than in the fall, very rarely in the summer. A connection with other epidemic affections, especially measles, and likewise with variola and sdrlatina cannot well be denied. Whooping-cough frequently precedes or succeeds epidemics of the last-named diseases, and in rare cases accompanies them. As regards the spread of the disease by contagion, opinions differ a great deal; a number of observers favor the doctrine of a contagium; on the other hand we should not overlook the fact that during an epidemic all the individuals of one place and the inhabitants of one house are exposed to the same influences. As for ourselves we have not yet been able to satisfy our minds that whooping-cough is contagious; yet we are willing,to admit that in its highest stage of development, this cough may give rise to a product which, when grafted upon susceptible organisms, may in its turn reproduce the disease. This is no idle question, as might appear at first sight, since it may lead to the adoption of measures that may prove exceedingly oppressive to a family having a number of children and The allopathist praises his atrocious lancet and heroic purgatives, and the homoeopathist his Mercurius, Belladonna or Nux, and the patient in either case thinks a wonder has been done for him; but the disease, if it be a real influenza, is not removed; it has only advanced a step beyond the process of incubation, towards the stadium of bronchitis, with its concomitant cough, dyspncea, fever-sweats and prostration. 13 194 Diseases of the Lungs. living in straightened circumstances. In spite of every isolation we have seen all the children of a family attacked by the epidemic. The immediate causes which determine the outbreak of the disease during an epidemic are the same as those that occasion an ordinary catarrh of the respiratory mucous membrane. A special predisposition to the disease has not yet been traced; if it seems an established fact that girls are more liable to whooping-cough than boys, the same relation holds true in all other spasmodic affections which attack girls more frequently than boys. Every trifling catarrh may, under the influence of the epidemic assume the form of whoop-. ing-cough. As regards age, children between the second and eighth year are more commonly liable. Children under one year are seldom attacked by whooping-cough, although we have seen a severe case of whooping-cough in a child of four weeks. Children upwards of eight years old are likewise seldom attacked; whereas, during an epidemic, adults are frequently attacked by a spasmodic cough in the place of the light catarrhal cough. Sympltoms and Course. In the management of whoopingcough the fact must not be overlooked that the anatomical changes it occasions are simply those of an ordinary catarrh, to which the changes which are determined by the not unfrequently-occurring complications, have of course tqbe added. The supposed changes in the vagus are altogether hypothetical, although certain changes have indeed been discovered in a few isolated cases, but not sufficiently numerous to enable us to build a reliable theory upon such post-mortem phenomena. In the majority of cases whooping-cough commences as an ordinary catarrh of the nose or of the larynx, trachea and bronchial tubes. This introductory catarrh which does not, properly speaking, form a component part of whooping-cough,. may break out in all degrees of severity and extent without this circumstance justifying a conclusion regarding the approaching attack. Hence the most proper course would be to regard this preliminary catarrh as connected with the epidemic only in so far as it furnishes a soil or a susceptible spot upon which the whooping-cough miasm can be grafted, and in which it can germinate. This is shown by the cases where the whooping-cough breaks out without being ushered in by a simply catarrhal stage, or where a simple catarrh exists for weeks before it is converted into whooping-cough. At any one period of this first stage, in a few days or even after the lapse of weeks either a harmlessly-sounding cough sets in, or else an actually-existing cough becomes more severe, and sooner or later assumes a paroxysmal Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis. 195 character which constitutes it whooping-cough. After this form of cough has reached its full development, the simple cough ceases entirely; only in a few instances violent paroxysms and simple turns of cough occur mingled together. A single paroxysm has the following characteristic symptoms: The children who had hitherto been bright and cheerful, shortly before the setting in of a paroxysm, become restless and anxious, or, if old enough, they complain of titillation in the larynx or under the sternum, or of oppression of breathing; it is very seldom the case that a violent cough sets in without any preliminary symptoms, which, after a short lapse of time, is succeeded by a wheezing and labored inspiration taking turns with the single paroxysms without admitting of a full expiration for the reason that all the respiratory muscles and more parti-;cularly the glottis are affected by the spasm. While the exertion to cough is constantly increasing and the spasm of the glottis is gradually abating, the children finally succeed in raising or vomiting up a more or less considerable quantity of a tenacious, white mucus, which terminates the attack. During the attack the children express great anguish and restlessness; in consequence of the impeded respiration the face and tongue become blue-red, the eyes weep, a watery mucus is discharged from the nose, even blood is spit up sometimes and flows from the nose to the terror of the parents. The vomiting either brings up mere mucus or the contents of the stomach. Involuntary discharge of stool and urine is a rare occurrence if the children are otherwise robust. After the termination of the paroxysm the children continue for some time in a state of confusion and languor, after which they play again as if nothing had happened. Only in the case of feeble or very small children the paroxysms are succeeded by real attacks of eclampsia, or else by a state of sopor or even complete catalepsy. In the above-mentioned case of the little infant only four weeks old, the cataleptic condition was so perfect and lasting that the patient lay for two minutes without pulse or breathing. Under such circumstances the intermissions are not free from morbid symptoms, whereas vigorous children seem perfectly sound between the paroxysms. These paroxysms sometimes set in quite frequently and at other times at more protracted intervals. Generally their frequency increases up to a certain point where the affection remains stationary for some time, after which it gradually decreases in violence. In the space of twenty-four hours the children may have upwards of thirty paroxysms of cough; they occur more frequently in the 196 ~Diseases of the Lungs. night, and at this time likewise last longer and are more intense. A paroxysm lasts seldom longer than three minutes; if the parents assert that the paroxysms last longer, they are deceived by the anxiety which the mother particularly experiences, to whom a minute may possibly seem a quarter of an hour. The paroxysm is excited by talking, eating, screaming, or by violent exercise, likewise by a violent fit of passion; the cough may likewise occur without any apparent cause, for instance, during sleep. The constitutional state of the little patients is variously affected by the cough, even if there are no complications. Strong children bear this cough for months, without losing flesh, or without their general well-being being interfered with. It may, however, be accepted as a rule that, if whooping-cough lasts longer than four weeks, children begin to lose their strength and flesh, and that this loss goes on increasingly in proportion as the cough lasts longer. Sickly'and very small children are speedily and threateningly affected by the cough, even if none of the foregoing complications are present. The children grow pale and languid, they lose their appetite, but are not often attacked with diarrhcea. The course of the disease is generally for several months; but when we come to speak of the treatment, we shall show that this period is considerably abbreviated in homeopathic hands. Of particular importance are the complications and sequele of whooping-cough, which alone constitute the dangerous features of this disease. The most frequent of these complications are inflammatory affections of the lungs. The catarrh of the respiratory passages, which was inconsiderable at first, invades the more delicate ramifications of the air-passages more and more until a more or less intense bronchitis sets in, which easily assumes the capillary form and becomes readily associated with pneumonia. This pneumonia almost always assumes the lobular form and can scarcely ever be determined by auscultation and percussion. The presence of such a pneumonia is suspected if the bronchitis steadily increases in intensity and the intervals between the paroxysms are no longer free from a hacking cough and a constantly increasing dyspnea. Even if bronchitis sets in violently at the outset, it' never changes all at once to capillary bronchitis and pneumonia, —which may, at the same time, serve as a proof that an incipient catarrh, which happens to exist before the whooping-cough, does not necessarily constitute the preliminary stage of this disease —but the signs of Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis. 197 this untoward change do not set in until the cough has lasted for days and even weeks. In such a case the little patient does not entirely recover from the attacks, he grows languid and feverish, has a short and dry cough, he does not wish to rise from bed, the pulse is hurried, the respiration becomes more and more incomplete, more hurried; he feels drowsy and tosses about. If these symptoms manifest themselves in the later course of the disease, they always augur danger and very commonly lead to a fatal termination. A severe bronchitis as well as lobular pneumonia very commonly lead to a more or less extensive deterioration of the pulmonary cells; if this deterioration is quite considerable, percussion yields an unmistakably dull sound, and auscultation yields bronchial respiration. But these symptoms must not be attributed to pneumonia, for in such a case their importance would be much less. Cerebral diseases are scarcely ever caused by the direct action of whooping cough; existing diseases of this kind may become fatally aggravated by the cough. The convulsions which often attack little children during the course of whooping-cough, are more correctly attributed to the influence of whooping-cough over the whole nervous system, and, on this account, may become lasting. The apparently violent congestions of the head during the paroxysms are of very little importance to the brain of a perfectly healthy child, but they prognosticate trouble, if the brain was diseased before the cough set in. Acute heart-disease is seldom one of the complications of whooping-cough. On the other hand, the development of tuberculous pulnonary affections is a very common thing. Usually, however, these affections existed before the cough set in, although many cases occur where the cough occasions the deposition of tubercular matter in individuals predisposed to this disease. Emphysema does not occur as frequently as is generally supposed. A deterioration of the air-cells is very often mistaken for e'mphysema. Post-mortem examinations have, however, frequently confirmed the fact that emphysema may set in very suddenly. Spasm of the glottis is a tolerably rare occurrence in whoopingcough, at least it does not occur in a high degree of intensity; if it does, it is always a very ominous complication which may suddenly terminate fatally. Beside the complications the frequently occurring sequelae may prove very dangerous to the patients. Among them we distinguish 198 Diseases of the Lungs. chronic bronchial catarrh, bronchiectasia, emphysema, deterioration of single parts of the lungs, with consequent malformation of the thorax, pulmonary tuberculosis, heart-disease, although the lastnamed rarely and then involving mostly the right heart; eclampsia, occasionally mental derangement, and lastly hernia which is of comparatively frequent occurrence. If the disease lasts a long time, complete marasmus is not an unfrequent occurrence; it is not attended with other morbid conditions and seems to result from the exhausted condition of the nervous system caused by the excessive paroxysms of cough. The prognosis is always uncertain. Although the cough does not endanger the lives of healthy children, nevertheless, the supervention of one of the above-mentioned complications at any period during the course of the disease may occasion death or a life-long infirmity; thus it happens that we often see vigorous and healthy children come out of an attack of epidemic whooping-cough like wretched invalids. We claim for Homceopathy the advantage that such pitiable results are scarcely ever witnessed under homceopathic treatment, except perhaps in the case of children with deteriorated and rickety constitutions. Treatment. We consider the homceopathic treatment of whooping-cough calculated to demonstrate the value of homoeopathic therapeutics to obstinate sceptics, and deem this a good opportunity for premising a few general remarks. Considering the extraordinary frequency of whooping-cough epidemics and the universality with which children are assailed; and considering moreover the greatness of the danger to which children are exposed during the prevalence of such epidemics and the insufficiency of the ordinary mode of treatment, it seems quite natural that extraordinary efforts should have been made to lay bare the causes of this disease. It is an' established fact that whoopingcough'is the.result of a noxa diffused through the atmosphere. But how is it that this noxa to which every body is exposed, engenders this peculiar cough only in the case of children? To adopt the theory of a specific affection of the vagus, does not harmonize with this exclusive invasion of the infantile organism whose pneumogastric nerves are certainly constructed in the same manner as those of adults; moreover this theory is not corroborated by the numerous post-mortem examinations. On such occasions these nerves were scarcely ever found altered, but most commonly un Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis. 199 changed. This hypothesis, like all other hypotheses that are not based upon the evidence of facts, has now been abandoned. Nevertheless since a theory of the pathology of this disease must necessarily have an important influence on the treatment, we cannot refrain from recording our views on this subject. During the prevalence of epidemic whooping-cough, violent and obstinate catarrhs are likewise very common among adults. It cannot well be denied that the quality of the mucus secreted at such a time differs from an ordinary catarrhal mucus; the former is very tenacious and glassy, ropy, firmly adhering to the mucous membrane, whereas ordinary mucus is lumpy and globular, and frequently causing even in the case of adults a peculiarly spasmodic cough. Now we would ask, are there not conditions in the infantile organism sufficient to account for the convulsive nature of the cough? It is a demonstrable fact that the urging to cough caused by the secretion of mucus, is much less in children than in adults, and so much less the younger the children are. Whereas an adult expectorates every little quantity of mucus by a voluntary attempt to cough, the child does not expel the mucus until the urging to cough has reached an extraordinary degree of violence. This fact is evidenced in the case of children who sleep quietly in spite of a rattling respiration and mucous rales in the trachea and bronchia that can be heard at a distance. The child only coughs if compelled to do so by the dyspncea and the urging is very great. This condition will necessarily give rise to a corresponding reaction, the cough will be so much more violent. Moreover the child has not sufficient strength of will to overcome the irritation which induces the cough; at any rate, this attempt is only noticed among larger children, and thus it is, that a violent struggle arises where an energetic resistance might have given rise to a moderate turn of cough. The evidence for this statement is derived from the circumstance that the older the children the less violent thecough. Again, robust children are attacked with less violent paroxysms than nervous children. Finally the spasmodic character of the cough is accounted for by the decisive disposition of the infantile organism to convulsive affections; this is likewise confirmed by the fact that among adults only such individuals are attacked by whooping-cough as exhibit a disposition to spasm, namely females. It is therefore our opinion that the peculiar form of whoopingcough can be explained by the child's evidently feeble reaction against the urging to cough, by the insufficient energy to control 200 Diseases of the Lungs. the irritation and urging, and by the disposition to spasmodic affections generally. These points, if applied to epidemic catarrh which not only causes the secretion of a peculiar mucus, but most probably determines essential changes in the irritability of the trachea and larynx, afford sufficient reasons for the paroxysms of cough which otherwise might appear inexplicable. In this manner a number of symptoms that otherwise would seem incomprehensible, can be made intelligible. The continual increase of the Violence of the paroxysms, for instance, for months at a time, cannot be accounted for by referring it to the simple action and development of the miasm, since we do not observe a similar feature in other mliasmatic affections, which are generally most intense at the commencement of their course. The continual increase of the whooping-cough can be easily accounted for by the increase of irritability in consequence of the cough, and by the decreasing amount of resistance. Chorea exhibits a similar feature in its course. Niemeyer advises to abbreviate the paroxysms by exciting the children to make an effort to control the cough. An advice of this kind. would seem foolish, if it could not be shown to harmonize with the explanation we have furnished. Our theory likewise accounts for the circumstance that the paroxysms' mostly break out at night during sleep, or that they are easily excited if, in addition to the irritation in the air-passages, another irritation is caused by crying or laughing. In making these statements, our aim has been to show that the spasmodic character of whooping-cough is not owing to the peculiar nature of the mniasm, but to that of the organism upon which the miasm acts. We may as well observe in this place that, in our opinion, whooping-cough does not commence until the convulsive stage has set in, and that the previous simple catarrh is not by any means a sign that the miasm has now begun to affect the organism. A glance at the Therapeutics of the Old School is in so far important as a comparison of results is best calculated to place the advantages of our own treatment in a more conspicuous light. Physicians as:well as lay-persons are apt to express the opinion that there is no remedy for whooping-cough, and that it has to run its course for months. Wunderlich, who generally tries to enumerate the medicines that may cure a disease and who is not apt to be in favor of a purely negative treatment, declares that any treatmnent is absolutely powerless in the spasmodic stage and that all Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis. 201 that can be done is to moderate the violence of the paroxysms by narcotics. In the case of children, however, the use of narcotics is attended with a good deal of danger for the reason that they are apt to develop dangerous cerebral congestions. No class of physicians knows how to appreciate such facts better than homceopaths who derive the most brilliant results from small doses of such drugs. We care not to inquire why, we simply state the fact that the ordinary treatment of whooping-cough is quite ineffectual; that both physicians and lay-persons have lost all faith in it; that the former give nothing for the cough, and the latter allow the cough to run its course without giving any medicine at all, and that both parties declare themselves satisfied if the cough gradually disappears in three to five months; that finally under this routinemanagement a number of children succumb to the disease or its consequences. Whether Oppolzer's treatment which essentially consists in keeping the children in the same temperature, is as successful as Niemeyer would have us believe, is very questionable to our minds. We doubt whether a majority of the little patients recover in the promised space of four to six weeks. In opposition to all this, Hollceopathy can boast of favorable and speedy results without having to resort to such a rigorous mode of living as Oppolzer recommends. By means of the treatment which we have now been in the habit of pursuing for a number of years, we have succeeded in restoring at least ninety per cent. of our little patients, provided we had charge of, them from the beginning, within the space of five and usually even four weeks, so far that all convulsive paroxysms ceased entirely, although a slight catarrh might have hung on for a short time longer. Yet among the large number of children whom we have had under treatment, there must have been a good many feeble and sickly ones to whom our statement applies nevertheless with equal force. The greatest merit, however, Homceopathy can boast of is, the freedom from secondary diseases which do not occur under homeopathic treatment and generally result from whooping-cough when it lasts too long. The malignant complications likewise, though not entirely excluded under homeopathic treatment, yet are comparatively rare occurrences. Before passing to the medicinal treatment of whooping-cough we have to offer some remarks about the preventive measures recommended for adoption during the prevalence of this epidemic and which impose such a heavy burthen upon families. The com 202 Diseases of the Lungs. munication of the cough by contagion is at most questionable; we know from experience that in families where an infected child was kept strictly isolated from the rest of the family, nevertheless one child after another was gradually attacked by the disease. We are emphatically opposed to all such methods of solitary confinement which we would not recommend under any circumstances. The only sure preventive is the early removal of children from the district where the epidemic prevails. Few, however, will consent to such a step previous to the general spread of the disease; and then a change of locality is of doubtful value, or is of use only in so far as the children exchange city-air and artificial city-customs for the pure air and the more natural mode of living in the country. Another preventive is to guard children against every possible exposure to catarrhal influences. It is certainly, true that a child scarcely ever has whooping-cough without first taking cold; but, on the other hand, this perfect freedom from exposure cannot possibly be secured unless we choose to deprive children of their most necessary nutriment, open air. We have already stated in a previous paragraph that we do not consider the catarrhal stage an essential ingredient of whoopingcough, although the treatment of this stage is of importance to the whole course of the disease. It may be considered a rule that the sooner and more completely the premonitory catarrh is cured, the shorter and less intense will be the course of the convulsive stage. Hence we have every reason, during the prevalence of epidemic whooping-cough, to treat the most trifling catarrh with becoming care and attention. The remedies to be employed for this purpose are the same as those that have been recommended in former sections for catarrh of the nose, larynx, trachea and bronchia, all of which may come into play, though Belladonna will probably be found the most efficient at the commencement. The much vaunted Drosera is of very doubtful value in this as well as in the subsequent stages. At this stage it is of course indispensable to guard children against further exposure and consequent increase of the catarrh, for which purpose they had better be kept in the room, in an uniform temperature. In the case of lively and quick children this proceeding is undoubtedly of difficult execution. For a goodly portion of our success in the treatment of whooping-cough we are undoubtedly indebted to the comparative certainty with which we succeed in controlling this first stage without impairing the general strength of the little patient. Even a violent bronchitis at the Tussis Convulsiva Pertussis. 203 commencement of the disease may not aggravate the symptoms of the spasmodic stage, which cannot be asserted of any other treatment. As soon as the peculiar paroxysms of cough show that the convulsive stage has set in, an entirely different series of drugs have to be selected. We feel some embarrassment in giving a description of the treatment of this stage inasmuch as we are conscious of a marked difference in this respect between our own views and those of most of our colleagues. Iartmann gives a number of remedies that may be useful in whooping-cough but are suggested by groups of symptoms that render a differential diagnosis between one drug and another impossible and nugatory. His symptomatic arrangements are supposed to be in accord with the law of similarity, but the practical efficiency of the treatment is sadly impaired by such a course. However in order to avoid even the appearance of partiality, we shall afterwards mention single remedies and their most essential indications. What are, in a case of whooping-cough, the characteristic indications which point most directly and positively to the correct remedy? This is an important inquiry. Is it the particular circumstances which, if the statement of the relatives may be believed, have caused the attack? We cannot accept a theory of this kind, notwithstanding that this chapter has been exhausted by the coarse symptom-coverers among us to the dregs. The same child has on the same day an attack of cough from laughing, crying, eating and drinking; this alone would require four different remedies. Shall we select a remedy in accordance with the specific symptoms of each particular paroxysm? In this respect we discover indeed symptomatic differences that ought not to be overlooked; but in ninety cases out of every hundred the paroxysms are mostly alike, and only differ from each other slightly in. intensity. Hence it is only in exceptional cases that the nature of the paroxysm will prove a sufficient guide for the selection of a drug. Can we depend upon the symptoms between the paroxysms for light in selecting a remedy? Here too we shall be disappointed, for where no complications exist, the apyrexia is generally free from symptoms; one child may at most feel the immediate consequences of an attack a little longer than another. In our opinion the simple, uncomplicated whooping-cough of healthy children does not present any salient points upon which the selection of a remedy could be based. Hence it will always be 204 Diseases of the Lungs. exceedingly difficult to select the right remedy from among a large number. We are supported by experience in believing that the number of remedies which are adapted to whooping-cough, is very small, for the reason that the characteristic effects of the whoopingcough miasm manifest themselves in almost every case in the same uniform manner: Excessive irritability of the respiratory mucous membrane with an extreme increase of reflex-action. By removing this increase, we cure whooping-cough, so that only a simple catarrh remains which would at most be distinguished by a somewhat more violent cough. That this is no hypothesis, but a fact, results from the decided effect obtained by exciting the energy of larger children; from the favorable influence of powerful external stimuli applied to various parts of the body as soon as the paroxysm threatens to set in, for instance the application of a sponge dipped in cold water to the pit of the stomach; from the circumstance that individuals who are not endowed with a marked degree of reflexaction, are not liable to attacks of whooping-cough, and finally from the abundant confirmations of experience. The remedy of which we make use for the purpose of moderating reflex-action, is Cuprum metallicum. By continuing the use of Copper for two or three weeks in the sixth attenuation, a few drops morning and night, commencing as soon as the spasmodic character of the cough becomres apparent, we have succeeded so well in the treatment of whooping-couglh that we have scarcely ever been obliged to resort to any other treatment. Many of our colleagues, on reading this statement, will of course accuse us of a crime against IIomBneopathy, of an attempt to perpetrate an extreme generalization. In spite of their censure we should have to continue our course, because it leads to success, and success cannot only be obtained in mild, but likewise in. malignant epidemics. That Cuprum is homeopathic to the disease, may be learned by a mere glance at the Materia Medica. Instead of metallic Copper, Hartmann recommends the Acetate, which, however, has not yielded us as satisfactory results. After what we have said, we deem a detailed description of the whooping-cough to which Cuprum is adapted, unnecessary. Be the attacks violent or comparatively slight, whether they occur at night or in the day-time, or whatever other differences prevail, Cuprumn will not fail us so long as no complications exist or the general condition of the organism does not greatly deviate from the normal state. Cuprum is really an antidote to the whooping-cough miasm. If the antidotal effect is Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis. 205 to be obtained, the use of this remedy must not be discontinued in a few days; in general, a frequent change of remedies in whoopingcough can only result in injury to the patient. We now pass to the other remedies for whooping-cough and expect to satisfy our readers that Cuprum is not regarded by us as the only remedy for this disease. Belladonna has probably been better tested as a remedy for whooping-cough than any other medicine. Experience, however, has shown that Belladonna does not so much act favorably upon the spasm as that it limits the catarrh and brings it more speedily to a termination. Belladonna occupies the first rank when the disease first breaks out, and at this stage its good effects are most decisive; but to continue its use in the convulsive stage, would be a mere loss of time. It again becomes an important remedy if fever sets in in the course of this stage, the patients become restless and after that too quiet, the apyrexia is not free from cough, in short if the catarrhal symptoms again increase and spread towards the bronchia. In most cases, however, all that Belladonna accomplishes- is to remove the threatening symptoms, after which the cough again sets in in all its vehemence. The congestive symptoms which may occur during a paroxysm, should never mislead one to employ Belladonna on this account. Drosera has been recommended as a specific for whooping-cough, and the most diversified indications for its use have been enumerated by our earlier writers. Hahnemann says that a globule of the thirtieth potency cures a species of whooping-cough, which probably never occurs in practice. Many physicians are of lHahnemann's opinion, although they may not have seen any great results from this drug; others, on the contrary, deny its vaunted efficacy. The dispute cannot be decided as long as the discussion revolves around unmeaning symptoms. It is certain that Drosera is not made much use of at the present time, and scarcely ever against the fully developed convulsive stage. Ipecacuanha is one of our best remedies in this disease; its indications are tolerably precise and unmistakable. If, instead of the usual tenacious and scanty mucus, a large quantity of simple catarrhal mucus accumulates, so that the cough is preceded and accompanied by loud rales; if every paroxysm of cough is attended with vomiting, not at the end, but at the commencement; if a paroxysm is excited by the ingestion of every trifling quantity of food or drink: Ipecacuanha deserves a preference over every other remedy. 206 Diseases of the Lungs. We shall scarcely ever meet with suitable indications for Ipecacuanha at the beginning of the attack; more frequently if the cough had already lasted for some time and had been neglected. We have scarcely ever had occasion to use this drug, if we conducted the treatment from the start. Tartarus stibiatus has an excessive secretion of mucus in common with the former drug, but is preferable if the strength had suffered a great deal and the stomach and intestines are affected with catarrhal symptoms, so that frequent and tormenting vomiting and diarrhcea set in. This remedy will have to be given for the complications rather than for the cough itself. On this acount we refer the reader to the last chapters. Veratrum album acts very similarly to the two last-named remedies. Here, too, we have an excessive secretion of mucus, rales between and during the paroxysms, a marked disposition to vomit water and mucus, and, at the same time, the patient is troubled with diarrhoea. In addition we have the symptoms of a catarrh approximating more and more a malignant bronchitis: anxiety, restlessness, a short and superficial respiration, pains in the chest, accelerated pulse with disposition to cool perspiration alternating with a burning heat, pallid countenance, sopor; the paroxysms become feebler, but the general condition of the system deteriorates more and more. Veratrum is calculated to become a specific in epidemic whooping-cough, if an intense intestinal catarrh sets in as a complication. Arsenicum album is no real remedy for whooping-cough, but of great value if the organism has become very much enfeebled by the long duration of the disease and the violence of the paroxysms. The patients become sensible for some time previous of the approaching paroxysm, become exceedingly restless, seem tormented by anguish; owing to their great prostration, stool and urine are passed involuntarily. Arsenicum deserves particular consideration, if the pulmonary tissue has become atrophied, or acute emphysema has set in. Cina. It seems to us absurd that this remedy should be recommended for whooping-cough, if helminthic symptoms either precede or accompany the attack; they will hardly influence the nature of the paroxysm. A better indication is, if the children become convulsed during a paroxysm, as if they had an attack of eclampsia; another indication is, if a gurgling noise is heard after every paroxysm from the throat into the abdomen. In some epidemics Tussis Convulsiva, Pertussis. 207 other physicians have employed this remedy with a good deal of success. Conium maculatum is said to be an excellent remedy, if the paroxysms set in principally at night, especially in the case of scrofulous and ansemic children. Ledgurn palustre is said to be the right remedy, if every paroxysm is preceded by a convulsive condition which is again succeeded by an exceedingly violent paroxysm. Numerous records of cures by this drug are not to be found in any of our publications. We might enumerate a pretty long list of remedies that have been used for whooping-cough; but we not only doubt their specific adaptation to the disease, but cannot refer to any practical demonstrations of their efficacy. These remedies are: Arnica, Hyoscyamus, Ignatia, Nux vomica, Lactuca virosa, Laurocerasus, Ambra, Sepia, Pulsatilla, Carbo vegetabilis, lodium, Spongia, China and others. Carbo vegetabilis deserves special consideration in cases where Arsenic might seem indicated, except that Carbo has a more copious secretion and expectoration of mucus. China is variously commended, but no available indications are given. This list of remedies would have to be increased a good deal, if we would include those that may be required to meet existing complications. In this respect we prefer referring the reader to their respective chapters, for it amounts pretty much to the same thing whether capillary bronchitis or catarrhal pneumonia sets in as a complication of whooping-cough or as a primary idiopathic disease. Unless the whooping-cough claims special attention on account of inherent features of a threatening character, it is our opinion that in all complicated cases the cough itself had better be ignored and the complication attended to above everything else. This course will facilitate the choice of a remedy and will prove advantageous to the patient. The whooping-cough will certainly disappear as soon as the catarrh is removed. Of particular importance and involving a good deal of danger is a combination of whooping-cough with tuberculosis, whether the latter was caused by the cough or existed previous to its occurrence. Naturally enough the paroxysm of cough irritates the diseased lungs in a most dangerous manner and invests the cure with immense dfficulties. In such cases Iodium and Silicea prove excellent remedies. The catarrh remaining after the convulsive stage is not distinguished in anything from an ordinary catarrh, provided it is not complicated with emphysema. If this is the case, a cure cn be 208 Diseases of the Lungs. expected from scarcely anything except the persistent use of vegetable charcoal; in the case of young people a cure is not only possible, but probable. The sequelse are too numerous to admit of an extensive notice in this place. If whooping-cough is treated homceopathically from the outset, they will scarcely ever happen, except perhaps tubercles which, however, are never engendered by whooping-cough, but are at most converted into centres of suppuration. As regards the characteristic whooping-cough marasmus, we have never yet come across it in our own practice. If the homeeopathic treatment only commences at a later stage of the disease, the prognosis of course differs greatly from the prognosis under full homceopathic treatment; for at that stage we often meet with structural changes which it may be difficult or even impossible to remove. Another important point is the patient's mode of living. In this respect physicians differ in their opinions more perhaps than in any other disease. As regards nourishment, it has to be of a nature not to cause any irritation of the stomach or intestinal canal that might exert a pernicious influence over the course of the cough. It is likewise an indispensable precaution that children should not be stuffed with food, lest a paroxysm should so much more readily occasion vomiting; it is a good plan to keep the children quiet after eating, in order to keep off an attack until the digestion is completed. If food is vomited up too easily and too often, a small quantity of Tokay will prove an excellent means of steadying the stomach. If opinions concerning the food and the beverages of patients cannot reasonably differ, they are so much more antagonistic as respects the balance of the management. We have already stated that Oppolzer, and with him a number of other physicians, prescribe a uniform temperature for the little patients, and even keep them in bed. By this means the catarrh is to be removed in the shortest possible manner. In one respect the usefulness of this proceeding may not admit of any doubt, but in other respects the general well-being of the patients is injuriously affected by it. In the absence of other efficient remedial agents, the usefulness of this confinement is undoutedly undeniable. Under homreopathic treatment, however, it becomes a useless deprivation. Of course the children should be kept in their rooms until the fever is passed; but if the whooping-cough sets in with a simple coryza, the children maywafely be allowed the use of the open air, of course with proper Tussis CConvulsivia,: Pertussis. 20 precautions. -As soon as the convulsive stage has set in, we enjoin1 upon the parents the duty of-sending the children every day.out of doors for a couple of hours, provided the weather is tolerably fair. We have never..observed any injurious effects from this proceeding, even in winter; the disease does not, on this account, last longer than five weeks, and..the' children retain a-fresh appearance ahd preserve their strength and regular appetite. Moreover ano.thel advantage should not be overlooked: the children remain in good spirits, whereas continued confinement in a room usually begets an irritable and headstrong temper which has the effeet of promoting the frequency of the paroxysms. Regarding a change of residence, we have already hinted in a previous paragraph our doubts of the propriety of such a measure. We have never known the children of country-people to be favorably affected by such a change, only city-children gain by it sometimes, and in their case it is not the removal from the influence of the whooping-cough miasm, but the healthier mode of living that produces the good results. -If citychildren are sent back to the city, no good effects are perceived. Indeed, such aids are not necessary. Many lay —people, even physi: cians, object to washing the children with cold water, or to allow them their usual bath. This, too, is an useless precaution, and may even become injurious for the reason that the skin is made unnecessarily sensitive and its functional activity is forced into an unwonted mode of action.: In conclusion we offer a few words regarding the dose of the appropriate remedy. In this respect the partisans of large and small doses are diametrically opposed to each other, some. regarding whooping-cough as an acute, others as a chronic disease. It may be possible to cure whooping-cough with the thirtieth potency;'we have never attempted such a thing; at all events low potencies are not necessary to effect a cure, nor is it necessary to resort to frequent repetitions of the dose. Our own experience has led us to prefer'the middle potencies, giving a dose morning and evening. A. frequent change of remedies should, be strictly avoided; rapid success can never be achieved&-by- such means.. [We would call atteintion to two remedies which Bsehr has omitted to mention, we mean Cofee and Mephiti s putorius. The.former, if given' in dcessertspoonful doses of a strong infusion, sweetened'with sugar and without:nilk, will have a tendency to shorten and'moderate the pairoxysms; the latter has been freqitently used by homceopathic physicians with good effect; Doctor.Neidarcd of 14 210 Diseases of the Lungs.. Philadelphia has reported a number of successful cases treated with Mephitis in our various Journals. H.] 6. Bronchitis Chronica. Chronic Bronchitis, Chronic Pulmonary or Bronchial Catarrh. In the majority of cases chronic bronchitis owes its existence to one or more attacks of acute bronchitis out of which it arises by gradual development. Even as thus arising as a secondary disease, the affection is exceedingly frequent, but this frequency is still more increased by the circumstance that it accompanies most of the material changes of structure in the lungs, particularly tuberculosis, bronchiectasia and emphysema, and that it likewise occurs as a complication of diseases of other organs. The latter occurs more particularly in diseases of organs that obstruct the return of the blood from the lungs, such as heart-disease and affections of the liver. As a primary disease, chronic bronchitis is more particularly met with among persons who are upwards of forty-five years old;.every chronic pulmonary catarrh of young people excites a wellfounded suspicion that it emanates from some other pulmonary disease as its source. Men are much more frequently afflicted with chronic bronchitis than women; children are seldom attacked. In Northern districts chronic pulmonary catarrh becomes much more frequent; in countries with a damp and cold climate it is almost endemic; it likewise prevails among individuals whose business confines them to damp and cool places. Persons who have to inhale a good deal of dust during their work, such as stone-cutters, millers and sculptors, are likewise exposed to frequent attacks of chronic bronchitis. Smoking is likewise a frequent cause of this disease. This use of tobacco causes chronic catarrh of the bronchial lining membrane much more frequently than one imagines, without any acute attack having preceded the chronic form. The symptoms and course of the disease are easily understood if we keep the anatomical changes which the bronchial mucous membrane undergoes, steadily in view. For this reason we will describe these changes before going any further. The bronchial mucous membrane is hypertrophied over a more or less considerable extent of surface; it is unequally raised up, is of a deep dark-red color and traversed by distinctly engorged vessels. It is covered by a massive layer of gray or even purulent mucus, of various thicknesses, or else the secretion is more scanty, but in that case very tenacious, transparent, ropy. The puffiness and thickening of the mucous mem .Bronchitis Chronica. 211 brane, as well as the infiltration of the, submucous and muscular tissues diminish the elasticity and occasion a consequent dilatation of the bronchia which is mostly diffuse, but may likewise be partial. Emphysema may likewise result from these anatomical changes. If a bronchial tube becomes closed anywhere, atelectasia of corresponding parts of the lungs takes place. True pus is seldom formed on the bronchial mucus membrane; hence ulcers, which occur so frequently in chronic catarrh of other mucous membranes, are seldom seen on the mucous lining of the bronchia. Considering our mode of living, and when affecting persons beyond the age of fifty, the milder cases of chronic bronchial catarrh do not present any marked symptoms. The patients cough a little, most generally in the morning, and after that they expectorate some, but assimilation is not affected by the disease, nor is the respiratory process interfered with, and the condition sometimes remains unchanged for years. The more violent cases, on the contrary, cause constant and most commonly increasing trouble. After the termination of an acute bronchial catarrh,-for chronic catarrh seldom sets in gradually without any preliminary acute stage,-cough and expectoration remain and continue with slight variations until made worse again by another acute attack. The cough is marked by two essentially distinct features. If the bronchial secretion is scanty, tenacious and firmly adhering, the paroxysms of cough occur less frequently, but in such a case the cough is mostly severely spasmodic and not unfrequently leads to gagging and vomiting. The paroxysms occur most frequently at night, less commonly in the day-time. After violent exertions, some of the above-described mucus is expelled; sometimes a little mucus is not hawked up till some time after the cough. If the secretion is more copious, the cough sets in chiefly in the morning-hours or after the use of warm food; it may continue for a long time, but is not spasmodic, for after a few energetic spells of cough, the mucus is detached and expectorated. Sooner or later the cough becomes associated with more or less violent oppression of breathing, which may even creep along without being perceived and corresponds with the increasing hypertrophy of the bronchial mucous membrane, a diminution of its elasticity and the copious quantity of the secretion. At first this oppression is only perceived by the patients when making an effort, during a rapid walk, going up hill; soon, however, it is felt even during an ordinary walk, even during rest, and causes a great deal 212 Diseases of the Lungs. of annoyance, In the higher grades of the disease, the patients are threatened during the paroxysm of cough with danger of suffocation; even between the paroxysms the nature of the existing affection is revealed at first sight by the elevated thorax and the con-sequent shortening of the neck. The most intense pain, however, is endured by the patients if an acute aggravation of the disease takes place. Under such circumstances they exhibit such a perfect picture of distress that it seems as though they could not possibly live longer than twenty-four hours. These acute exacerbations occur almost certainly once at least every spring and fall, even if the patients have not knowingly been exposed or have not even left their room. The structural changes, superinduced by chronic catarrh, render the disease, if it lasts any length of time, almost constantly unbearable. Emphysema which often is produced by, but seldomil engenders catarrh, usually accompanies the latter and occasions permanent dyspncea corresponding with the extent of the emphysema. I)yspncea is likewise occasioned by bronchiectasia and by the anomalous conditions of the heart excited by chronic catarrh. The worst is that the morbid conditions occasioned by the disease, in their turn feed and aggravate the exciting cause. In unimportant cases the physical diagnosis does not reveal any abnormal changes. The percussion remains normal as long as the catarrh has not given rise to any material changes such as atelectasia, emphysema, etc. In a violent attack, auscultation always yields abnormal results. If the secretion is scanty and auscultation is instituted immediately after, or during a paroxysm of cough, a loud inspiratory murmur is heard over the whole thorax and a prolonged and loud expiration with wheezing; rales are very seldom heard, or, if they are heard, the bullte are fine; between the paroxysms, the respiratory murmur may be normal over the larger portion of the thorax; crepitation or a fine wheezing is only heard in detached spots. If the secretion is copious, coarse as well as fine rales, with sibilant and buzzing sounds, are heard all the time, most loudly previous to a paroxysm of cough. In the beginning the general organism is not affected by the complaint; even tolerably severe forms of this disease are borne for a long time without any perceptible detriment. Very seldom, and only if the secretion is very profuse, emaciation gradually supervenes, in spite of which the patients may live, however, for many years. The greatest danger is:occasioned by theinfluence exerted Bronchitis Chronica. 213 by the impeded respiration over the circulation. The functions of the heart become abnormal; the deficiency of blood in the lungs and its imperfect aeration either cause passive hypersemias of the liver and a corresponding chronic intestinal catarrh, or disturbances in the functions of the spleen or kidneys, or passive hyperemia of the brain with its inherent dangers, so that it is not without reason that a raised thorax and short neck are designated as an apoplectic habit. If the catarrh has become an inveterate disease, it is apt to last to the end of life; but that such a noble organ as the lungs should be capable of bearing for so long a time even a severe degree of an apparently dangerous disease, is indeed remarkable., It is not marasmus the patient need d.read, but the constant succession of acute attacks which indeed are rarely immediately fatal, but may easily superinduce cedema of the lungs; most patients die of this disease amid symptoms of general dropsy. If an acute attack assunes the form of capillary bronchitis or pneumonia, the lives of such patients are indeed in extreme peril. In recent cases the prognosis is not altogether unfavorable so far as a cure is concerned; life is very seldom endangered by such a disease. The chances of course depend upon what structural changes have taken place, and to what extent. The worst omen is heart-disease, which almost always terminates in dropsy in a very short time. T reatment. Even under homceopathic treatment inveterate pulmonary catarrhs are very seldom cured; nor will this treatment ever succeed in effecting the retrograde metamorphosis of emphysema or bronchiectasia. But even though the homceopathic Materia Medica has only palliatives to offer against the totality of the disease, yet we are possessed of many more excellent means towards the limitation and complete cure of the exacerbations, and for the stoppage of the further progress of incipient alterations of tissue; and in this way we are able to afford a relief that may be called extraordinary if compared with what is accomplished by other methods of cure. Hence we earnestly advise every physician who treats chronic bronchitis, to keep these two last-mentioned points steadily in view, and never to lose sight of them in the effort to effect a radical cure. With a view of affording a general view of the treatment, we will first describe the chief remedies in a few short paragraphs. Tartarus stibiatus has already been mentioned when we treated of 214 Diseases of the Lungs. acute affections of the mucous membranes, but is perhaps of greater importance in chronic bronchial catarrh to which it is so characteristically adapted. In bronchitis with a violent, spasmodic cough, loud rales in the chest, a copious, white expectoration, dyspnoea occasioned by the quantity of the secreted mucus, Tart. stib. is a sovereign remedy; it speedily diminishes the quantity of mucus and thus affords much relief to the sufferer. Very seldom, however, a favorable effect will be witnessed in cases where emphysema has already set in; for this reason the remedy is better adapted to chronic catarrhs of recent origin, that had taken the place of the acute disease, than to inveterate cases. Pulsatilla is much more useful in chronic than in acute bronchitis, if the following symptoms prevail: Cough, principally at night, excited by tickling in the trachea, with copious expectoration of mucus; the mucus is mostly white, but frequently mingled with yellowish or greenish lumps that impart to it an oily, offensive taste. There must not be any emphysema, whereas the presence of tubercles as cause of the disease points to Pulsatilla. Pulsatilla is next to indispensable in the bronchial catarrh -of chlorotic patients which almost always, although not in every case, depends upon tuberculosis. If, in the case of children, an acute catarrh gradually changes to the chronic form, Pulsatilla is a remedy of the first importance. Sulphur is undoubtedly the most important remedy in this disease because it corresponds to the worst and most inveterate cases. If emphysema is present, this remedy may never yield any marked results; even its palliative effect is questionable. Brilliant results may, however, be obtained, in cases of chronic catarrh of long standing, if the mucus is secreted in large quantities, or is very tenacious, and the symptoms point to a decided thickening of the mucous membrane. An eminent indication for Sulphur is the excessive sensitiveness of the skin, so that every trifling change of temperature causes an exacerbation and that, even if the patient re"mains in his room, he is still powerfully affected by changes in the weather. Only this hyperiesthesia must not be caused by pulmonary tuberculosis, the tubercles at least must not be in a state of suppuration. What we have said shows that the symptoms may be distinguished in two series. The cough is either loose, the mucus easily detached, but only at times, so that at night, for instance, there is a good deal of dry cough, whereas in the morning and during the day the cough is moist, the expectoration is mostly Bronchitis Chronica. 215 white, compact, but mixed with a number of yellowish or greenish. lumps showing that the mucus had been secreted in the bronchia for some time before being coughed lup, it has a foul taste and even a bad odor, and the accompanying hoarseness and sensation of rawness show that the larynx and trachea have become involved in the pathological process. Or else the cough sets in in more violent paroxysms with considerable dyspncea, is dry and spasmodic, with wheezing in the chest; it occurs.most generally late in the evening and in the nighht, and it is only towards morning or after rising that a tenacious, glassy mucus is brought up after a slight coughing spell. The digestive symptoms and the condition of the liver which generally appears very much enlarged in chronic catarrh, confirm the selection of Sulphur. It has always seemed to us as if the triturations of Sulphur did not act as well in this disease as the attenuations prepared from the alcoholic tincture, and that, as a ~rule, the higher potencies act better than the lower. We do not insist upon this point, for a comparatively small number of observations'do not authorize the resort to apodictic assertions. Finally we have to observe that in the case of decrepit, and more especially old individuals, Sulphur seldom does any good. Nux vomica acts in many respects similarly to Sulphur and, ac-'cording to our experience is, like Pulsatilla,.more efficient in chronic than in acute bronchitis, if the following symptoms prevail: The cough sets in with particular violence between midnight and morning, is dry, spasmodic, very persistent and racking, so as to cause pains in the bowels; it is easily excited by a change of temperature, and is'associated with a continual titillation in the chest and trachea; only!in the imorning, mostly after, very seldom before risin.g, a loose Gcough sets in, with easy expectoration of a simple mucus. While coughing a sensatiom of soreness and roughness is sensibly felt down the middle of the chest. The condition of the digestive,organs greatly facilitates the selection of the right remedy. In contradistinction to Sulphur, Nux vomica is much better adapted to.comparatively recent cases without any serious complications and is otherwise more -particularly suitable for patients with vigorous:and otherwise sound constitutions. Phosphorus, although variously recommended for chronic catarrh, is, in our opiniont,'only.adapted to acute attacks of bronchitis setting in during the course of the malady, and when exceedingly acute and threatening. Particulars may be found in the chapter on acute pulmonary affections. i216 Diseases of the Lungs.'Belladonna, though not exactly a remedy"for chronic bronchitis, renders excellent service in the continued, distressing titillating cough, excited by a tickling in the throat-pit, by cold air and long'talking, without any or a very scanty, tenacious expectoration, and generally with a marked feeling of dryness in the respiratory organs,:exacerbating during the last hours before midnight. This form of chronic bronchitis is not very frequent. Calcarea carbonica is used in this disease much less frequently than {it deserves. It competes in some respects with Sulphur, but is,likewise fully adapted to emphysematous chronic catarrh, if the cough is dry and tormenting, sets in principally at night with a violent irritation in the respiratory organs, and if, after coughing for some time,.a tenacious and frothy mucus of a saltish or offensively sweetish taste is expectorated. We shall revert to this drug.when speaking of the catarrh of tuberculous individuals. Next to'Silicea it is the most important remedy in the so-called stone-cutter phthisis. Spongia is one of the principal remedies for chronic croupous bronchitis. The patients feel quite well for days; it is only occasionally that they cough once and then only very little; all at once, after an increasing shortness of breath, and excited by cold, a violent emotion or some other irritation, and attended with wheezing throughout the whole chest, a violent fit of spasmodic cough sets in, by which the distinctly-perceived murmurs in the lungs are continually increased, accompanied by a high degree of dyspncea which lasts for several hours and mostly occurs in the night; the cough is quite dry, or else there may be a scanty, frothy expectoration which sometimes has to be vomited up, and not till several hours' after, a glassy, hard, clear mucus of a globular or vermiform shape is easily hawked up in small pieces. Very commonly these symptoms point to tuberculosis, but not as a rule. Sepia may claim our attention in a similar cough as Spongia, but we must confess that we have never derived very striking results from its use. The numerous symptoms in the pathogenesis of Sepia which point to bronchial catarrh, give evidence that Sepia must be a remedy for this disease. Only it is difficult, owing to the multitude of symptoms, to present a characteristic group. The leading symptoms of the group are: Dry, spasmodic cough, or cough with a copious, saltish expectoration, which is apt to set in during the late morning-hours. Sepia is not adapted to bronchial catarrhs. accompanied with bronchiectasia, emphysema,, etc. -Bronichitis Chronica. 217,lodium is related to Spongia; perhaps it acts more readily thlan the latter; the paroxysms of chronic catarrh to which Iodine is adapted, occur irregularly during the. day; the expectoration is glassy and hard or tenacious, but shapeless; the paroxysms are always accompanied by a violent asthma which does not entirely cease during the intervals. lodium is probably never suitable in cases of old people. Lycopodium is suitable for old people, if emphysema and marked changes in the bronchial nucous membrane have taken place; there is, constant tickling in the throat, loud rales with scanty or unfrequent. expectoration of a gray color and saltish taste, nightly exacerbations. Manganum is suited to a spasmodic cough with difficulty of raising the phlegm; the cough is only in the day-time; only hard lumps are brought up after hard coughing, of a yellow or green color. Baryta carbonica has acted very favorably in several cases of catarrh of old people, with excessive secretion of mucus and difficulty of expectorating it, and with paroxysms of a spasmodic cough during the period immediately following midnight. Two days after using the drug the mucus generally decreased in quantity and the patients felt relieved. Silicea, although symptomatically indicated in many forms of' catarrh, yet has only proved efficient in our hands in a very severe form. We are often called upon to prescribe for the common stonecutter bronchitis which is such a common cause of death among this class of workmen. It is characterized by profuse secretion of mucus, great shortness of breath without any perceptible emphysema; this shortness of breath not only sets in after an effort, but without any cause. These people generally die of phthisis pituitosa, that is to say in consequence of an excessive secretion of mucus, associated now and then with distinct signs of bronchial suppuration. We have tried a number of remedies against this dangerous affection almost without effect, whereas Silicea has always acted with prompt benefit. We must add that we have never derived any advantage from alcoholic attenuations, but always from the higher triturations. Stannumhas been tried by us in many apparently suitable cases, without any result; we cannot recommend it, whatever others may say to the contrary. Senega is adapted to chronic bronchitis when accompanied by laryngotracheitis, but-likewise to chronic bronchitis without this; 218 Diseases of the Lungs. accompaniment; the cough has no. expectoration, or else the abovedescribed tenacious, glassy expectoration, especially troublesome at night, and excited by every exertion of the respiratory organs, or by fresh air. Bryonia alba is preferable in the acute form, and is very seldom adapted to inveterate chronic catarrh. It is particularly indicated by a spasmodic cough with a copious expectoration of yellowish mucus; the cough distresses the patient all the time and is so violent that it seems as though the thorax would fly to pieces; it is easily excited by smoke and dust. We have never seen Bryonia relieve a dry cough, or a cough with tenacious, scanty expectoration. Hyoscyanmus, of all the remedies here mentioned has the most precise and mIost prominent indications, which are indeed not often met with in chronic catarrh. The Hyoscyamus-cough is a nocturnal, spasmodic cough, excited by a recumbent posture and abating immediately after the vertical posture is resumed. This combination of symptoms occurs very rarely, but if it does, Hyoscyamus is the right remedy. Opium must not be overlooked. It is erroneous to suppose that the narcotic effect of Opium suspends the desire to cough only for a short time, for there are many forms of cough where Opium only exacerbates, but does not afford any relief, or affords relief only when administered in very large doses to be followed afterwards by an increase of the cough. In our opinion Opium is admirably hommopathic to a spasmodic, dr.y, paroxysmal, titillating cough which is especially tormenting at night, and has but a scanty expectoration. The fact that we have often cured a cough of this kind permanently by means of a few doses of Opium, entitles us to the belief that Opium is something better than a mere palliative in this affection. But we warn our readers against giving Opium, if the cough is attended with a profuse expectoration of mucus, since a decrease of the cough must necessarily lead to great dyspnea. Digitalis purpurea is mentioned here as a remedy for pulmonary tuberculosis to which chapter the reader is referred. A special indica.tion for this remedy are cyanotic symptoms in the face and the sensation of an excessive determination of blood to the lungs, by which the breathing is at times oppressed and suspended. Arsenicum album is one of the most important remedies for chronic bronchial catarrh. However, it will rarely be indicated in simple, uncomplicated, chronic, bronchial catarrh, but so'much more frequently if emphysema has taken place, and if the symptoms which Bronchiti# Chronica. 219 we have indicated as peculiar to Digitalis, prevail. The cough is always attended with more or less considerable asthmatic distress which does not entirely cease even during the intervals between the paroxysms; the cough is excited by a severe tickling in the trachea or under the sternum, by cold air and more particularly by changes in the atmosphere; it breaks out particularly in the middle of the night, has a dry and wheezing sound, and it is only with difficulty that a frothy and occasionally a tenacious, white mucus is raised. The symptoms indicating Arsenicum are only occasionally met with among young people, and only rarely among old ones. If the remedy acts favorably, it does so speedily; if Arsenic does not improve the case in the first eight days, no favorable change need be expected front the further use of this drug. Arsenic acts with particular benefit, if the catarrh has become associated with heart disease, though, in such a case, a radical cure can no longer be expected. Carbo vegetabilis ranks with Arsenic in curative power. The symptoms of both drugs are very much alike. Carbo likewise acts best in old and neglected cases, with emphysema and hypertrophy of the mucous lining, the circulation of the lungs and heart as well as of the head and abdominal viscera is very much impeded; the patient is very sensitive to cold and to the direct action of irritants upon the lungs; the symptoms exacerbate at night, but the expectoration differs from that of Arsenic: Carbo affording help only if the expectoration is profuse, not when scanty. At times the expectoration consists of mere lumps of mucus; at other times it is purulent, or yellow and green, sometimes having a bad taste and a pungent odor, suggesting the possibility of an approaching pulmonary phthisis. If the larynx is very much involved, Carbo is indicated so much more. The drug must not be expected to act immediately, because patients for whom Carbo is suitable, are generally very much reduced and the lungs are so deeply implicated that a rapid improvement has become impossible. Beside the remedies we have named, a number of other drugs may be ranged in this category; they are only of secondary importance, and we confine ourselves to giving their names: Ipecacuanha, Antimonium crudum, Conium maculatum, Hepar sulphuris, Niactrum muriaticum, Cuprum, Kali carbonicumn, Ambra, also China, and Ferrum. A bird's-eye view of the therapeutic indications may facilitate the selection of the particular remedy appropriate in a given case. Starting from the mucous secretion which accompanies the 220 Diseases ofthe Lungs. cough, we have two principal kinds, one with copious, and the other with scanty or no expectoration. The remedies for the first kind, are: Bryonia, Tartarus stibiatus, Pulsatilla, Calearea carbon., Lycopodium, Mananurm, Silicea, Sulphur, Stannum,? Baryta carbon.:, Carbo veget., Digitalis, China, _Ferrum, Antimonium crudum, Ambra., For the second kind, the remedies are: Nux vomica, Belladonna, Spongia, Iodium, Senega,.Hyoscyamus, Opium, Hepar sulphuris, Arsenicuwn, and, in so far as this second kind appears in the form of a spasmodic titillating cough:,Belladonna, Seneya, lyoscyamus, Opium. For chronic bronchitis of recent origin, when arising from the. acute form, the following remedies are particularly appropriate: Bryonia, Tartarus stihiatus, Puisatilla, Suulphur, Nux vomica, Bella-. donna, Hepar sulphuris, Ipecacuanha; if remaining after measlecatarrh: Pulsatilla; if after whooping-cough: Cuprum, China,: Ferrum, Arsenicum, Hepar.. Among old people, chronic bronchitis requires: Tartarus stibiatus, Lycopodium, BaryftGa.: Carbo vegetabilis. In their case only a palliative effect can be obtained, that is to say a limitation of the mucous. secretion; we cannot expect to accomplish more by continuing the exhibition of these remedies. For the so-called stone-cutter phthisis the leading remedy is Silieca, next Galcarea earbonica, Carbo vegetabilis. Tartarus stibiatus: will seldom.domuch good, although the symptoms may seem to. indicate this remedy. It is, however, indispensable that the respiratory organs be no longer compelled to inhale the stone or flour-dust,. or the dust and delicate fibres of the wool. The best protectioni against this exilosure is a moist sponge tied in front of the mouth and nose, or a thick woollen mask around the nose and mouth, which is continually kept n;oist. By adopting this course we have often succeeded in restoring stone-cutters who seemed irretrievably lost so as to enable them to resume their work and attend to it permanently. The difficulty is that such patients dread the derision of their fellow-laborers and that it is next to impossible to overcome this obstacle. If the catarrh has either originated or is accompanied by organic heart-disease, a cure cannot well be thought of. Arsenicurn, tarbo vgetabilis, Lycopodiumt, Tartarus stibiatis may be tried, but the most efficacious remedy'is ucndoubtedly Digitalinr, about -1-t or,- of a grain per day, and administered at intervals. Persons who do not smoke, will derive much relief for their asthmatic distress from ~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~..... BronchitisChronica. 221. moderate sriokiig. Old women know this well; they are very apt to smoke a pipe for the sake of easing their lungs. For the passive cerebral congestions, with which organic diseases of the heart are so often associated, and likewise'for the cedema of the lungs originating in a similar cause, Digitalin is likewise the best palliative; Arsenic or Carbo vegetabilis are much less frequently productive of any good results. If the disorganizations have progressed too far, it is no longer possible to save the patient, and all we can do is to palliate his sufferings. In"the intercurrent: acute exacerbations, mostly of a threatening character and which, if the mucous membrane is considerably hypertrophied, cause extreme anguish and dyspnoea, and a blue-redc or livid bloating of the face, the -choice is between Bryonia, IJer-' curius, Phosphorus, and Arsenicum. These exacerbations are of a' threatening import, for the reason that they are most apt to'cause edlema and paralysis of the lungs. But even in lesser grades of' chronic bronchial catarrh the exacerbations cannot be treated with' sufficient care, because they so commonly increase the chronic trouble and originate bronchial changes of structure. Old people are more particularly exposed to danger, from this source; during the transition-periods of the seasons they have to use great'caution in exposing themselves to the deleterious influences of atmospheric changes... In obstinate cases of chronic bronchial catarrh, if the patients are otherwise young and vigorous, we are forced to suspect the presence of tubercles, which will almost always' be discovered on' exploring the chest. For the remedies to be employed under these eircumstances, we refer to the chapter on tuberculosis. The general management of the patients cannot be made to conform to fixed general rules, but has to be adapted to the circumstances of the patient. The uncomplicated chronic bronchial catarrh of young and vigorous individuals does not require any particular caution; above all, the patients' must'not use any excessive care lest the acute exacerbations should occur so much more easily.' With ordinary caution the patients may safely go out even if a tolerably high wind should be blowing; they should never be' encouraged- in the use of an inhaler. An inhaler -is only admissible if every acute bronchial catarrh portends danger, as in tuberculosis, in which case attention has, of course, to be paid to wind and tem-, perature. A measure of precaution, which is too much neglected, is the use of water-tight, warm shoes' or boots; for nothing is more. 222 Diseases of the Lungs. apt to, give a cold which reacts upon the respiratory organs, than damp feet. We do not mean to advocate the use of India-rubber shoes which afford poor protection, for the reason that they prevent the proper action of the skin. On the other hand, double leather-. soles with woollen stockings afford the most certain protection, without any incidental disadvantages; this foot-gear is doubly necessary to those who are troubled with sweaty feet. It is upon such apparently trivial circumstances that the success of our treatment sometimes depends, In the case of children our measures of precaution have to be more complete than in the case of adults; even if a physical exploration does not reveal any abnormal changes, yet, in their case, the conditions which give the first impulse to tubercular disease, are much more easily developed. For persons of an advanced age, it becomes imperatively necessary to guard against exacerbations and to submit to measures which would spoil young people and make them morbidly sensitive; we must not forget that the human body, after reaching the age of sixty, can no longer be prevailed upon to change its habits, dispositions or susceptibilities. IHere it becomes,necessary to provide as much as possible for an uniform temperature and for a supply of clothing corresponding with the deficiency of animal heat; by attending to these' things, many have succeeded in prolonging their lives for years. These general rules for different ages are not suitable for all individuals, and we must not insist, from preconceived notions, upon adhering to a. regimen that may be prejudicial to the patient. Many young people cannot undergo the process of hardening, many older persons, on the contrary, do not feel well unless they go out in every kind of weather; one child is kept in the house for weeks and yet the catarrh of this little patient does not abate in the least, whereas it gets well very speedily if the child is allowed to be all day in fie open air. These differences have to be found out while the patient is under our treatment. Pure air which is the normal food of the respiratory organs, is of course an essential requisite for the cure of all pulmonary diseases. This circumstance is very much overlooked in the management of bronchial catarrh, for the reason that the influence of vitiated air is not so readily perceived and does not cause the patient any immediate discomfort. We know that- the continued inhalation of dust will give rise to pulmonary catarrh; will not the Bronchitis Chronica. 223 same cause operate in feeding the catarrh that already exists?' Let the patient, therefore, avoid dust and smoke, and let old people especially have their attention directed to the injurious effects of living in a room filled with tobacco-smoke. Wollen carpets in the rooms of such patients are objectionable, because the inhalation of the fine dust which detaches itself from the wool, may cause violent paroxysms of cough. Even lighting the rooms with gas is prejudicial to many persons, and does everybody some harm. The patients are not always aware of the fact that it is to the gas that they are indebted for some of their worst paroxysms of cough. [We think that these precautions are exaggerated; carpets, if kept clean and free from dust, have many advantages over bare floors, and oil or kerosene irritates the airpassages a great deal more than pure gas. H.] As a rule food has no great influence over the course of the disease. Knowing, however, that the digestive organs become easily involved in the morbid process, we are bound to protect them with. becoming care. It is only if the disease causes emaciation, that a nourishing diet is indispensable and that the cautious and moderate use of. fat is quite proper, whereas farinaceous articles of diet should be restricted as much as possible. In the case of children especially the proper diet has to be prescribed with great definiteness; despite the prejudice that milk overloads the system with mucus, milk ought to constitute their chief nourishment; for chronic catarrh is really met with only among children with diseased constitutions, and it is in their case especially that the deleterious influence of catarrh upon the constitution is best perceived. In conclusion we will add a few words regarding the use of particular places, the climate of which is supposed to exert a beneficial influence over the health of invalids. We do not deem it advisable to remove patients from their habitual home and climate so long as they may be able to recover their health at home; moreover a warm climate is not very favorable to uncomplicated bronchial catarrh. We may be able to do much better in our immediate neighborhood. The sojourn in mid-mountain woodlands is not only a palliative, but very often a genuine curative remedy for even very serious pulmonary diseases. This statement has been verified to us during the last years of our practice by so many irrefutable proofs that we do not intend to send away a single patient who has not first tried the influence of mountain-air in his own neigh 224 Diseases of the Lungs. borhood. This air stimulates the lungs sd powerfully that the result leads us to infer that even an existing emphysema may: decrease under its agency, at the same time as the whole body seems to become invigorated by the change. More recently the results obtained by a sojourn in artificially compressed air have claimed the attention of the profession. Our own investigations and the results we have been able to achieve in our own practice, have satisfied us that this method of treatment has a distinguished future before it; we cannot with sufficient force urge upon our professional brethren the importance of acquiring a thorough knowledge of these new methods. We cannot undertake to recommend particular spas for the reason that the curative virtues which are claimed for them are not expressed with a, sufficiently definite scientific precision. The predilection of lay-people for the spas of Ems and others is undoubtedly very great, but the benefit derived from them is very questionable and is very frequently owing to the fact that the warm water which is drank early in the morning, promotes the solutions of the mucus, but probably no more so than plain warm water would have done. [Bsehr has included in the article on chronic bronchial catarrh a peculiar form of cough which is often described in pathological treatises as dry bionchial catarrh or -Catarrhus bronchialis siccus; tussis spasmodica or tussis titilans, spasmodic or titillating cough. A special chapter has been devoted to this subject in Kafka's Therapeutics, which we transfer to this work, together with such remedies as have not been mentioned:by Bahr. We designate, says Kafka, by this appellation a cough. that sets in in paroxysms during which a titillation or tickling is continually felt in the-trachea without any perceptible definite catarrhal affection of the bronchia. After. the paroxysm the respiration, ingenuine cases of such a cough'is again perfectly normal., The appearance of the cough in paroxysms, the absence of a; desire to cough and of any perceptible catarrhal process in the bronchia between the paroxysms, stamp this form of cough as -a neurosis of the trachea. The primary idiopathic titillating cough is independent of any disease of the mucous membrane of the bronchia; it is a disease during the course of which no sort of anatomical changes can be perceived in the mucous membrane of the trachea. In the secondary form of. titillating cough we observe an hyper Bronchitis Chronica. 225 semia and hypertrophy of the mucous membrane which is readily seen by inspecting the fauces provided the titillation is located in that region. At the same time the mucous membrane is generally dry. The hypertrophy frequently spreads from the pharynx to the larynx and glottis, in consequence of which dyspncea and spasm of the glottis frequently set in. If the hypertrophy extends to the more delicate bronchial ramifications, their contraction may cause asthmatic disturbances in the process of respiration. If the titillation continues for a time, a muco-albuminoid substance, mingled with lumps of gray mucus, the sputum margaritaccum of Laennec, is secreted and is coughed up without any rhonchus in the bronchia being heard. Etiology. This form of cough is more frequently met with among children and women than among men. Primarily it is most commonly occasioned by irritants that affect directly the peripheral nerves of the bronchial mucous membrane. The inhalation of cold or damp air, an intense cold, a sudden change of temperature, cold winds, a draught of air, acrid gases or vapors, smoke, dust, very cold beverages such as ice-water, too long or too loud talking, especially during a walk or run; crying, screaming, singing, shouting, loud reading, especially if mixed up with a good deal of talking; exertions of the windpipe by the use of windinstruments, whistling, by the blow-pipe, dancing, springing, etc., contribute greatly to the development of this form of cough. It is likewise excited by fits of passion, chagrin, loud quarrelling, a sudden fright or surprise, etc. Sympathetically, this cough may attack hypochondriacs, hysteric women, children during the period of dentition, girls during the menstrual flow. Secondarily this cough often supervenes during coryza, influenza, measles, acute or chronic bronchial catarrh, emphysema, tuberculosis. Synmptoms. The primary titillating cough generally sets in suddenly and without any preliminary symptoms; it occurs most frequently at night after one has laid down or during the first part of the night. The patients may spend the whole day or evening without being seriously troubled by the cough. Suddenly, after going to bed or being on the point of lying down, the patients are attacked by a violent irritation and desire to cough which does not allow them a moment's rest and prevents them from sleeping. The' irritation is either experienced in the fauces, or in the larynx, throat-pit (in the region where the trachea bifurcates), or in the 15 226 Diseases of the Lungs. middle of the sternum or in the epigastrium; the irritation seems like a tickling and usually causes in the fauces a sensation as if little worms or insects were crawling about there; in the larynx and trachea a sensation of roughness is experienced, or as if the throat were irritated by dust, the vapors of Sulphur or Phosphorus, or by feathers or hairs; the titillation is sometimes so violent that it causes a spasm of the glottis. If the irritation is seated in the middle of the sternum, the patients experience a sensation of oppression on the chest and a more or less violent degree of dyspncea which may even increase to asthma. The irritation in the epigastrium "is sometimes very violent, causing considerable contractions of the diaphragm and an upward pressure of the abdominal viscera, which may result in nausea or vomiting. It is on this account that this form of cough has been dubbed " stomach-cough." The cough is dry, continued, racking, not hoarse; sometimes it has a hollow sound; at times, if the titillation is located in the larynx, it is a dry cough; if spasm of the glottis supervenes, the inspirations are labored or accompanied by a peculiar panting sound, owing to which this cough is sometimes confounded with Asthma Millari (spasm of the glottis). A titillating cough most generally sets in in single turns, sometimes two or three short paroxysms in succession; the subsequent inspiration is rendered difficult only if the glottis participates in the attack or if asthmatic symptoms supervene. Lighter grades of this cough are soon appeased; more violent attacks may continue for several hours or even the whole night. The patients are very much excited by the continual irritation and desire to cough; the face becomes flushed, the temperature of the body increases, the pulse is accelerated, a warm perspiration breaks out in the face or over the whole body; sensitive women and delicate girls are so violently shaken by the cough that the urine spirts out involuntarily during an attack. After the dry cough has lasted for some time, a muco-albuminoid substance is usually secreted, mixed with a little saliva and containing here and there detached lumps of a gray, pearly mucus (sputum margaritaceum), which the most careful auscultation is unable to discover by the presence of rhonchi in the bronchia; that part of the trachea, where this little lump adheres, is stopped up and the respiratory murmur at this place is entirely absent; but as soon as the little lump is expelled, the normal respiratory murmur is again heard in this place, whereas the obstruction may again Bronchitis Chronica. 227 occur at some other spot. Percussion, at every point of the thorax, elicits a proper resounance. The expulsion of this little lump is sometimes a sign that the cough is going to terminate which, when violent, sometimes ends in vomiting. After the paroxysm is over, the patients feel very languid, soon, however, fall asleep and wake with little or no cough; they remain almost entirely or altogether free from cough during the day, the respiratory mucous membrane likewise remaining unaffected, until at bed-time or. in the first hours of the night they are again attacked by a paroxysm of cough. The secondary form of titillating cough either supervenes during the course of acute catarrhal diseases, such as coryza, influenza, measles, acute bronchitis, and, in company with these diseases, runs an acute course, or else it accompanies, as a chronic cough, chronic bronchial catarrh, emphysema or tuberculosis. Even when associated with these diseases, the titillating cough is recognized as the result of a constant irritation which is felt, for a longer or shorter time, at different hours of the day as well as night, or even during the early morning-hours, and finally ceases and is replaced by a common catarrhal or tubercular cough which always has a catarrhal expectoration; whereas the titillating cough is generally dry, or is attended with only a trifling expectoration. The titillation is only experienced at the places indicated by the patient to whom it is a source of real distress. Sometimes this titillating cough sets in with a sort of typical regularity. Course, Terminations and Prognosis. The primary titillating cough generally runs an acute course, more especially if it was caused by a cold, by excessive exertions of the respiratory organs or by epidemic influences. The fever which accompanies it, is sometimes so violent that a speedy localization in one or the other part of the respiratory apparatus may be apprehended. This is particularly the case with children who are unable to explain themselves regarding the seat of the trouble. However the subsequent course of the symptoms, particularly the free intervals which often last for hours, and the return of the continual titillation after the cessation of these free intervals, soon disclose the true nature of the cough. Very frequently it sets in with but slight or even without any febrile motions, and the attacks continue until the causes or their immediate effects are removed. Sometimes only one or several attacks occur, sometimes they continue for several 228 Diseases of the Lungs. days, even from eight days to a fortnight, and they break out on the least provocation. Most generally this titillating cough occurs in an uncomplicated form; sometimes, however, especially in the fall, winter or spring, during the prevalence of cold winds or in very cold weather, or when the weather is cold and damp, wet or foggy, or during the prevalence of an epidemic, the cough combines with one of the above-mentioned acute catarrhal diseases, and with them assumes an epidemic form and runs a similar course. This disease always terminates in recovery; only when complicated with other diseases, these complications may superinduce threatening symptoms. If the primary titillating cough lasts a long time and is very intense, emphysema or hernia may set in and may continue to the end of the patient's life. Treatment. In treating this cough we have to aim at appeasing the existing paroxysm and preventing its return. In the treatment we have to be guided by the exciting causes, the seat of the titillation, the phenomena developed by the cough in the general organism and more particularly in the organs of respiration, the consensual symptoms of the diaphragm, stomach and the upward action of the abdominal viscera, the circumstances by which the attacks are either meliorated or aggravated, the period when they set in, and the complications. Above all we have to keep an eye on the causes that excite the titillating cough. To this end cold and damp localities, or localities containing acrid gases, vapors, dust or smoke, have to be abandoned, and every exertion of the respiratory organs by talking, reading, singing, blowing, etc., has to be avoided. The patients have to avoid with great care every sudden change of temperature, sudden cooling, draughts of air, cold or damp air, cold drinks, and every violent mental excitement; nor should they go out in windy, foggy, snowy or rainy weather. The room which the patients inhabit, must be kept at a uniform and moderate temperature; even in the night the temperature should not fall below 40~ or 450 Fahr.; according to our experience, a lower degree of temperature in a room easily excites or exacerbates the cough. Light cases of titillating cough, even if complicated with fever, do not require any medicinal treatment. A free perspiration by means of warm tea, warm lemonade, etc., and confinement in bed Bronchitis Chronica. 229 until the perspiration has ceased, is generally sufficient to restore the normal condition in the shortest possible space of time. If the fever is severe, attended with dryness of the fauces and larynx and with a continual dry cough provoked by an unceasing titillation in the fauces or larynx; if the disease is the result of a cold, surprise or an excessive effort of the respiratory organs; if it is aggravated by excessive warmthk of the room, by talking, drinking cold water; if the paroxysms set in in the forepart of the night during the first sleep, and if they are complicated with coryza, influenza, measles, acute bronchial catarrh, we give Aconite 3 in solution, after which the patient transpires profusely in two or three hours and all the symptoms improve. Even in cases without fever or complications, Aconite acts with promptitude and efficacy, if the previously described symptoms are present. If a troublesome feeling of dryness is experienced in the mouth, pharynx and trachea, attended with a continual titillation in the fauces and on the posterior wall of the larynx; if there is a sensation in the throat as if dust had been inhaled; if the cough is so; violent that spasm of the glottis or asthmatic symptoms with flushed face, and heat of the head set in; if the nerves become irritable and sensitive to light and noise; if the disease has been occasioned by exposure to a draught of air, or by sudden fright or cooling off suddenly while the skin was covered with perspiration; if the paroxysm breaks out at the time when the patient wants to retire at night, and is made worse by talking, drinking or crying, Belladonna 3 is to be given, whether a fever is present or not, or whether the cough is complicated with coryza, influenza, measles, acute bronchial catarrh, hysteria or hypochondria, or not. For these symptoms Belladonna is always preferable to Morphine or the water of Laurocerasus; but it should be given in the form of tincture, the extract being less reliable. If the titillating cough attacks teething children; if their mouths are hot and their gums red and swollen, with much saliva and redness of one cheek; if they start during sleep and are very peevish when awake; if the bough continues uninterruptedly after they have been put to bed, and if it is dry and short, we give Charmomilla 3. The same remedy is given if the cough is complicated with coryza, bronchial catarrh, when coarse rales and an audible rattling of mucus are present; or for cough accompanying influenza and acute intestinal catarrh, if the children cry violently previous 230 Diseases of the Lungs. to an evacuation, draw their legs up, and the passages look greenish or like stirred eggs. This remedy is likewise applicable in the case of sensitive women, if the titillating cough is caused by the inhalation of cold or damp air, by fits of anger, and is attended with a high degree of nervous erethism, and if the tickling in the trachea is associated with a constrictive sensation in the chesti; if the cough is experienced at bed-time and torments the patient without ceasing. In our hands a single dose of Chamomilla has often sufficed in a vast number of cases to calm this cough, to quiet this cough during the night, which often keeps children, girls and women especially during the menstrual period, from sleeping. Similar symptoms and complications likewise indicate Mtercurius sol. aIahn., especially in the case of teething children; it may likewise be used if the cough has a hollow sound, the titillation is experienced under the upper third of the sternum; if the cough had been caused by a cold, breaks out in nocturnal paroxysms, the patients perspire a great deal without being relieved by it, and if, after the attack, there remains an unconquerable disposition to stretch the limbs. Conium 3 is used by us, if the titillation is felt in the middle of the sternum; if the cough is caused by exposure to rough weather and the paroxysms occur at night; if the cough is dry and so violent that it causes vomiting; if the use of acids and of salt food, or drawing a long breath make the cough worse; if during the cough the chest is spasmodically constricted and if, after the subsidence of the paroxysm, the patient complains of stinging pains in the head and a painful sensitiveness of the abdominal muscles. It deserves particular consideration in influenza, measles, acute bronchial catarrh and in the case of hysteric patients. Rhus toxicodendron 3, for tickling and a feeling of dryness in the throat, down the trachea; the symptoms abate for a while after a swallow of warm tea or water and sugar, but soon reappear again in the same degree; accompanied by tearing pains in the extremities, especially if they set in at the same time as the cough in consequence of the patient being exposed to the influence of a damp and cold air, or getting soaking wet; the paroxysms occur in the night, attended with complete sleeplessness; the cough is complicated with coryza and frequent, spasmodic sneezing, or in cases of influenza with typhoid symptoms. If the titillation and cough have set in after a walk in keen and cold air; if the tickling is chiefly felt in the larynx or extends Bronchitis Chronica. 231 down to the bronchia: if the cough is dry and so violent that it causes a spasmodic constriction of the throat and chest, and a more or less violent degree of spasm of the glottis, with an expression of anxiety in the face, cold sweat on the forehead and extremities, and the patients have more and more a cyanotic look; if the violence of the cough causes vomiting, and the paroxysms recur typically, we give Ipecacuanha 3 with decided benefit. If the titillation is felt in the throat or pit of the stomach; if the cough is caused by rapid walking, running, mortified feelings or insulting treatment; if it is attended with dyspncea and vomiting of the ingesta; if the attack sets in in the morning-hours and is aggravated by talking or eating, we give Natrum muriaticum 6, likewise if coryza is present, with entire loss of smell and taste, or if the cough is complicated with emphysema.and tuberculosis. In the case of emphysematous women the titillating cough is usually attended with spirting out of the urine. This remedy is likewise valuable, if the titillating cough breaks out typically, or in the case of hypochondriacs or hysteric females. We prescribe Ignatia 3 for a dry, constant, titillating cough which sets in more particularly at bed-time; the irritation is seated in the throat-pit, as from the inhalation of fine feather-dust, or the titillation is felt in the larynx or even in the epigastrium; the cough is of a preeminently nervous character and is caused by depressing states of the mind, or by humiliating treatment, grief, care; the cough is worse in the open air, after eating or drinking coffee. The disease may be primary and idiopathic, or attended with coryza and bronchial catarrh. Ignatia is particularly to be commended for hysteric women and for children inclined to spasms. Ammonium carbonicum 3 is indicated by titillation in the larynx and a sensation in the trachea as of inhaled feather-dust, attended with dyspncea; the paroxysms occur at night and are followed by a high degree of exhaustion; the cough is made worse by talking and open air; complicated with coryza, influenza and acute and chronic bronchial catarrh. Acidum benzoicum 3 for a titillating cough caused by a cold, attended with a stinging sensation in the middle of the sternum which is worse during a deep inspiration; the cough is accompanied by asthmatic complaints and rheumatic pains in the joints. Rumex crispus 3 is recommended by Kafka, if the titillation proceeds from the throat-pit or the middle of the sternum, attended with a sensation of soreness in' the trachea; if the cough sets in at 232 Diseases of the Lungs. bed-time or after the patient has laid down, and is caused by the action of dry, cold air, especially in the winter-season; it deserves especial attention in bronchial and laryngeal catarrh. Doctor Carroll Dunham of New York has published a long and interesting article on the subject of Rumex crispus in the second volume of the Amer. IHom. Review, page 530, to which we refer the reader for full and correct information concerning the therapeutic uses of this drug in affections of the larynx, trachea and bronchi. Graphites 6 for titillation in the larynx, with a feeling of soreness and burning in the throat; for nocturnal paroxysms of cough, with hard pressure on the chest; it is particularly u'seful in cough with chronic coryza or in the case of individuals who are at the same time attacked with a scrofulous eczema, or in the case of women when they have their menses. We prescribe Zincum metallicum 6, if the titillation is located' in the region of the sternum; if the cough is dry and exhausting, with. stitches in the chest and oppression of breathing; if the respiration is labored and talking is quite an exertion, the attack takes place at night and deprives the patient of sleep; deserves particular attention for the cough of hysteric women and during the menses. Kali carbonicum 6 is indicated by a dry titillating cough, with stinging in the larynx, pains in the chest, choking, violent headache, exhaustion after the attack which commonly sets in at night; is useful for titillating cough during the menses and in a case of incipient tuberculosis. We have seen a very violent, acute titillating cough cured very speedily by means of a decoction of Senega; the patient was a lady and had contracted the cough during an ascension of the Rigi. This remedy is appropriate for cough, if the titillation is seated in the larynx, and the cough is attended with roughness in the throat and oppression on the chest; if the cough is made worse by the breathing of fresh air, and if the patient has to sneeze frequently and continually until the head feels heavy and giddy, without any coryza being present. It may be used during an attack of influenza and acute bronchial catarrh. These remedies have enabled us to control every attack of primary titillating cough, no matter of what kind. (We remind the reader of the propriety of referring to the chapter on chronic bronchial catarrh for the other remedies not mentioned in this extract from Kafka.) Even in the secondary form of this disease these remedies have Bronchitis Chronica. 233 always been found sufficient in our hands. In the titillating cough of tuberculous individuals, especially in the last stage of the disease, the best tried remedies sometimes remain without effect; in such a case we resort to empirical remedies from motives of humanity, such as Cannabis inclica 2, Atropin. sulph. 2, or Morphium acet. 1. (The Spirits of Turpentine on sugar and the Balsam of Copaiva likewise on sugar, or the alcoholic solution of the balsam have been found useful in chronic titillating cough.) The selection of the proper remedy is often a very difficult matter, especially in the case of children who are unable to indicate the locality of the titillation or to furnish a proper account of their subjective sensations. The difficulty is likewise great in the case of hysteric females, because the consecutive, consensual and reflexphenomena succeed each other with remarkable rapidity, and are exceedingly diversified. In such cases experience has taught us to pay exclusive attention to the objective phenomena which, to this end, have to be investigated with great correctness and interpreted with an enlightened knowledge of their character and meaning. After we have obtained an exact objective picture, we shall have no difficulty in picking out the remedy best suited to the case. Having hit upon the remedy adapted to the present case by an arithmetical process as it were, we may rest assured that every subsequent paroxysm will yield to it. We exhibit the remedy during the paroxysm most commonly in solution, mixing four, six or eight drops in half a pint of water and giving one or two dessertspoonfuls every quarter or half an hour, or every hour. Triturations like those of Mercurius sot. or Hepar sulph. are likewise ordered every half hour or hour in about grain-doses. After thetermination of the paroxysm we continue the same remedy every two or three hours until the cough has entirely ceased. In order to prevent the return of the cough, we give two doses of the same drug every day, for some time longer. The patient's attention should be directed to the necessity of observing the dietetic and general hygienic rules which we have fully explained in previous paragraphs. In a case of secondary titillating cough, we first stay,the paroxysms and afterwards continue the treatment of the primary affection, such as coryza, acute or chronic bronchial catarrh, measles, influenza, emphysema, tuberculosis, for which we refer the reader to their respective chapters. If the titillating cough occurs typically, we give, according to the symptoms, Arsenicum, Ipecac., Nux vom., Natrum muriat.; if 234 Diseases of the Lungs. these remedies prove insufficient, we give Chinin. sulph. 1, and in obstinate cases Chinin. arsen. l, of which remedies we prescribe a dose every two or three hours during the apyrexia. While the titillating cough lasts, the food should be salted or spiced as little as possible; mild nourishment containing a good deal of saccharine matter, is best. Even such articles of diet as contain a good: deal of starchy matter, such as potatoes, chestnuts, peas, lentils, etc., should be avoided. Rancid fat, acids, cold and heating beverages are likewise hurtful. Individuals who are liable to attacks of titillating cough, should observe the same precautions as those who are suffering with acute bronchitis, or are liable to attacks of this disease. II.] 7. Bronchiectasia. Dilatation of the Bronchia. We should not have mentioned this affection if it were not of particular importance to the correct appreciation of chronic bronchial catarrh. A dilatation of the bronchia is of two kinds, a uniform or diffuse dilatation and a sacculated form. The former is always a consequence of an inflammatory acute or chronic disease of the bronchial mucous lining in which the elastic and muscular tissues have become involved, in consequence 6f which these tissues have lost their elasticity to a greater or less extent. This alteration of the bronchia is rarely confined to a small portion, but most commonly reaches over a large extent of the bronchial tubes. The sacculated form is caused by the closing of delicate bronchial ramifications above which it is located; this closing leads to atrophy of the pulmonary parenchyma and thus assists in restoring the space for a dilatation of the bronchia; or the dilatation may be a consequence of the closing of bronchial tubes occasioned by atrophy of the corresponding portion of the lungs. Diffuse bronchiectasia, if not too prominently developed, is of no particular consequence; if occasioned by an acute attack, it is curable; but if resulting from chronic bronchitis, it may be difficult to repair the disorder. It has the same phenomena as chronic catarrh, or chronic catarrh in conjunction with emphysema which is scarcely ever absent. Sacculated bronchiectasia is much more important, because it easily leads to suppuration and gangrene of the mucous membrane, Emphysema Pulmonum. 235 and very frequently presents the picture of pulmonary phthisis, and generally modifies quite extensively the results of percussion and auscultation. Atrophy of the lungs superinduces retractions of the corresponding intercostal space, which, however, are not often observed at the apex of the lungs; the'percussion-sound is dull, auscultation does not reveal any vesicular murmur, but bronchial respiration' or else consonant murmurs, pectoriloquy, wheezing, coarse rales. The diagnosis is somewhat complicated, depending rather upon the absence of general symptoms of tuberculosis than upon the presence of any directly observed phenomena. In a case of severe chronic bronchial catarrh, bronchiectasia may be suspected with a tolerable degree of certainty if the expectoration has a very fetid odor. Otherwise the symptoms here are likewise the same as in chronic -bronchial catarrh, very often associated with the phenomena resulting from the presence of emphysema which is very apt to supervene on such occasions. Of course the treatment cannot aim at restoring the elasticity and contractility of the bronchia; hence it cannot be directed against the bronchiectasia,' but the physician has to make the cure of the accompanying catarrh the chief object of his attention. Even a dilatation caused by an acute catarrh, if it should have been correctly diagnosed, does not require any special treatment. If we once have become satisfied of the presence of bronchiectasia, we feel convinced that the existing bronchial catarrh cannot be entirely cured, and we refrain from instituting fruitless experiments; at the same time as we may obtain light concerning the proper remedies to be prescribed which, of course, can only aim at a palliation of the symptoms. For all that, though bronchiectasia is an undesirable complication, yet it does not necessarily render the prognosis in a case of bronchitis more doubtful. Such patients may live to an old age, even if affected with sacculated bronchiectasia, if the expectoration is decidedly purulent, and has a foul odor. 8. Emphysema Pulmonum. Emphysema of the Lungs. Two essentially different kinds of emphysema have been described, an interlobular arising from the passage of air into the pulmonary connective tissue, and a vesicular representing an entirely different process, namely a dilatation of the air-cells. We have only to deal with the latter form. Emphysema very commonly arises in consequence of processes in 236 Diseases of the Lungs. the lungs by which a portion of this organ is rendered inaccessible to the respiratory process; it may accompany atrophy or infiltration of portions of the lungs; it most commonly accompanies changes of structure which at the same time superinduce a diminution of the volume of the lungs. This form of emphysema can scarcely be regarded as anything morbid and will never become an object of treatment; it is termed vicarious emphysema. Vesicular emphysema has an entirely different origin and is of much higher importance; in a practical point it is essential that this origin should be known. We do not deem it necessary to recite the different theories regarding the origin of emphysema; we simply give what we consider the most correct explanation. Emphysema may be caused by morbid conditions of the air-cells which impair their elasticity more or less. This defect may arise in cases of violent bronchitis, pneumonia, etc., in which case the air-cells are affected similarly to the bronchia in diffuse bronchiectasia. This accounts for the frequent occurrence of emphysema in chronic bronchial catarrh. Emphysema may likewise have another and different mode of origin. In consequence of an excessive but otherwise entirely normal exercise of the respiratory functions; or in consequence of the respiration being obstructed by organs situated outside of the thorax, the air-cells may become dilated to such an extreme degree that little by little they lose the power of resuming their former size, precisely in the same manner as an India-rubber bag that is often and excessively dilated, loses its elasticity. In the former manner emphysema occurs principally in catarrhs of the bronchial mucous membrane, more especially in chronic catarrh with marked hypertrophy of the mucous membrane, and in an almost normal manner in old age where the walls of the aircells, like most other tissues, lose their elasticity more and more. In the second manner, emphysema is caused by excessive exertions in running, dancing, lifting, playing on wind-instruments, obstructed expiration by affections of the larynx, the closing of bronchial tubes, paralysis of the diaphragm, owing to which the expiratory act is performed in an incomplete manner; by occupations which leave one part of the lungs in a continual state of inaction Very frequently both modes of origin combine, which is really always the case if chronic catarrh is sustained by lesser degrees of emphysema; at the same time chronic catarrh being an obstacle to respiration, and diminishing the elasticity of the aircells, always increases the existing emphysema. Emphysema Pulmonum. 237 ience the more special etiological causes determining the existence of emphysema are: catarrh of the mucous lining, especially chronic catarrh; various other affections of the lungs, whooping-cough, playing. on wind-instruments, excessive bodily exertions, croup, stenosis of the larynx, paralysis of the diaphragm, tumors of the abdominal viscera, heart-disease, etc. Emphysema may take place in every age, but occurs more particularly among persons beyond the age of fifty. Men are more liable to it than women, probably for no other reason than because they are more exposed to the causes producing it. Some individuals evidently inherit a disposition to the disease. Thin individuals contract the disease more easily than fleshy and robust persons. The symptoms of pulmonary emphysema very naturally result from the anatomical changes it occasions. Some of the air-cells are excessively distended; hence, owing to their inability to contract sufficiently or at all, they no longer participate in the respiratory process, and consequently give rise to phenomena of dyspncea. These are increased by the circumstance that the distended cells compress other neighboring cells and withdraw them from the process of respiration. The impeded respiration occasions passive hyperaemia of the lungs which again causes chronic catarrh, a deficiency of the heart's action, sanguineous engorgement of the abdominal viscera, the vessels of the head, and finally, in consequence of an abnormal composition of the blood, exudation of serum from the vessels and consequent dropsy. These changes do not develop themselves all at once, nor do they all occur in the same sick individual; hence emphysema presents various groups of symptoms which we deem it unnecessary to delineate in this place. We prefer giving a more detailed description of the more prominent characteristic features of the disease. Pulmonary emphysema runs an exceedingly chronic course, and the changes it occasions occur almost imperceptibly under the guise of a light chronic catarrh, but after some time progress with double rapidity since the existing emphysema necessarily originates additional emphysematous disorganizations. Patients may feel tolerably well for years, when suddenly the dyspncea begins to increase steadily and imprints the true picture of emphysema upon the patient. A physical exploration does not reveal at all times distinct phenomena. If on percussion, the pulmonary murmurs are heard beyond the liver and heart, we may safely conclude that emphysema 238 Diseases of the Lungs. is present; this circumstance,, however,'occurs only in high grades of the disease. Auscultation usually reveals only the symptoms of chronic catarrh which is in reality'never absent, and moreover a very feeble, scarcely audible vesicular respiration which, owing to the extreme respiratory efforts of the patient, is indeed quite characteristic. If the emphysema has reached a high degree of development, the thorax assumes the shape of a tub. - The ribs owing to the excessive action of the inspiratory muscles, retain the position which they assume during the act of inspiration, and thus it is that the upper portion of the thorax is dilated whereas the lower portion retains its normal width. -Owing to the excessive inspiratory efforts the cervical muscles become very prominent, and the drawing up of the thorax gives to the patients their characteristic short necks. The influence upon the heart results more especially in abnormal changes of the right heart. Owing to the obstruction of the circulation in the lungs, the right heart is engorged with blood and finally permanently distended. It is only in the higher grades of emphysema that the heart is pushed out of its place. The effect upon the left heart is not constant. The change in the right heart explains various other phenomena of the circulation, the throbbing in the pit of the stomach, the venous hypertemia of the thoracic viscera, the engorgement of the veins of the neck and head. From the deficiency of respiratory action and of the functional activity of the heart results a change in the composition of the blood which fluid finally assumes an intensely venous character. Usually the pulse is uncommonly small and feeble, frequently irregular or intermittent. What torments the patients most, is the dyspncea. If the catarrh is moderate, the dyspncea is bearable, but it increases by every circumstance that interferes with the breathing, even by moderately filling the stomach, flatulence, but most permanently and most threateningly by an acute bronchial catarrh. It seems almost impossible that the patients should be able to bear this torture longer than a few days, and yet but few die of an attack of this kind. The most common cause of death is dropsy resulting from the above-described anomalies of the circulation. It most generally develops itself gradually, very seldom to a high degree, because ascites and cedema of the extremities are most commonly associated with cedema of the lungs. The whole duration of the disease may be thirty, forty and more years. Emphysematous individuals, if pursuing a regular mode Emphysema Pulmonum. 239'of life, may live to a high age in spite of all apparent danger. The contstantly occurring variations in their state of health are not occasioned,by an increase or decrease of the emphysema; but by an increase or decrease of the accompanying chronic catarrh. On this account summer and a dry and cold winter-air are most favorable to the patients, whereas the transition-periods from one season to another cause them frequently or almost regularly a violent distress; they commonly feel half a day in advance every approaching atmospheric change. If we expect to effect a complete restoration of the patient, the prognosis is very bad; as far as longevity is concerned, it may be said to be very favorable. If emphysema has developed itself so far as to enable us to diagnose it, a retrograde metamorphosis can scarcely ever be thought of; all we can expect is to diminish the extent of the disease. The chances of a long life are mostly determined by the condition of the heart; as long as the heart preserves its normal state, we have nothing to fear. The renal functions likewise deserve our attention, since their condition generally first enables us to prognosticate the termination in dropsy. If we mean to indicate a treatment of emphysema, we shall first have to inquire how far this disease can at all be treated. The elasticity of the air-cells is gone, they have become distended to such an extent that they cannot possibly recover their normal size; in many instances the walls of adjoining cells have disappeared, and cavities have formed in their places. Is it, under such circumstances, possible to restore the elasticity of the air-cells? From our stand-point this question, which a fanatical homceopath from the stand-point of his dogmatic faith, not from that of practical observation, may rashly answer in the affirmative, has to meet with a decidedly negative answer. Even if we admit that slight degrees of emphysema can be compelled to retrograde, by what method of investigation, what objective or subjective symptom will we be enabled to diagnose a trifling emphysema, and to demonstrate the fact that the improvement we had aimed at, has been achieved? After an emphysema has become evident to the senses it must have acquired an extent of development which renders a retrograde metamorphosis an impossibility. In our opinion a radical cure of emphysema of the lungs cannot be thought of, nor can any direct treatment be instituted; in other words, we declare this disorganization an incurable malady. In saying this, we do not mean to assert that every treatment of emphysema is futile and useless; on the contrary, a physician can 240 Diseases of the Lungs. benefit his patients very essentially in two different directions.'In the first place, a certain prophylactic treatment can be instituted, which of course cannot aim at preventing the disease altogether, but stayingits further spread. Let every intense chronic bronchial catarrh be treated with the utmost care, especially in the case of old people and individuals disposed to shortness of breath, and let every contrivance or circumstance that might interfere with the respiratory functions, be avoided, more particularly tight clothes, continued stooping, violent bodily exertions. At the same time let the patients guard as much as possible against catarrh of the respiratory organs. That this cannot be accomplished in the most efficient manner by confinement in the room, by warm clothing, or in general by excessive care, has been shown by us in a previous paragraph. Suitable clothing does not mean very warm clothing; on the contrary, this is least appropriate. Strict attention to temperature, wind. rain or dryness of the atmosphere should be paid by every emphysematous individual; no one ought to dress more in accordance with changes in the temperature and weather than persons suffering from emphysema. Wearing flannel next to the skin, is undoubtedly beneficial, for the reason that extreme respiratory efforts easily excite a profuse transpiration even during a slight bodily exercise such as walking. Wearing flannel is indispensable, if the weather where the patient resides is habitually damp and cold. Much smoking is decidedly prejudicial, although we do not mean to assert that tobacco causes emphysema. The circumstance that the blood of such patients does not receive a sufficient quantity of oxygen, suggests the propriety of advising them to avoid localities where the air is vitiated by crowds. Secondly we are obligated to try to meet the affections which inevitably accoimpany emphysema. At the list of these affections we place catarrh of the bronchial mucous membrane. Be it the primary catarrh as an exciting cause, or only a secondary affection, we should by all means endeavor to moderate or remove it, using for this purpose the remedies that have been recommended for acute and chronic bronchial catarrh. Some among these remedies are more valuable because the catarrhal symptoms in their pathogenesis, with which emphysematous individuals are most usually afflicted, have been confirmed by abundant practical applications. For the chronic form of catarrh we select: Carbo vegetabilis, Arsenicum, Tartarus stibiatus, Baryta carbonica, Silicea, Ipeeacuanha, Lycopodium. The three first named again deserve the preference; any one Emphysema Pulmonum. 241 who uses them in suitable cases, must be amazed at the improvement they achieve with so much promptitude. For particulars we refer the reader to the previous chapter, giving the following hints for these three remedies: Tartarus stibiatus, if there is a copious secretion of mucus which can only be raised with difficulty and then only scantily; Carbo vegetabilis, if a quantity of mucus is secreted and expectorated; Arsenicum, if the secretion of mucus is but scanty. In addition to these remedies we recommend Causticum and Digitalis; the former, if the action of the diaphragm is feeble, and the latter, if there are organic changes of the heart. These remedies will never achieve very striking nor very rapid results, on which account the frequent change of remedies should be condemned as an improper proceeding; such a proceeding simply tends to retard a favorable change still more. Sulphur has never effected in our hands any perceptible improvement. Acute attacks of catarrh during the course of emphysema rank among the most severe affections, although more in appearance than as really dangerous to life. The main remedies for such an attack are: Bryonict, Mercurius, A rsenicum, Phosphorus, Tartarus stibiatus, also Cannabis; the last named acts only as a palliative. Bryonia and Mercurius are best suited when the febrile and general constitutional phenomena are most marked; the other three remedies, if the local symptoms are most prominent. While attending to the thoracic organs, the condition of the abdominal viscera likewise claims our attention. It will scarcely ever be possible to do anything for the passive, almost mechanical hyperlemia of the liver. An intestinal catarrh with constipation of the bowels and flatulence is exceedingly distressing on account of the increased dyspncea it occations. Lycopodium is indispensable for this condition of things; Cocculus is much less frequently applicable, but from Nux vomica which seems to be so frequently indicated, we have never derived the least benefit. As a matter of course, such a morbid condition of the digestive organs demands the most minute dietetic precautions which are unfortunately but too often neglected by the patients. Farinaceous food or flatulent vegetables should not be used il any considerable quantity, whereas nourishing food with a little wine is very much to be commended. By adhering to a proper diet patients can save themselves many distressing hours, for nothing increases their dyspnea more than an interference with the movements of the diaphragm. As regards the most important affection which accompanies 16 242 Diseases of the Lungs. emphysema, we mean a change in the functions as well as the shape of the heart, our remedies are either powerless, or else their influence is, indeed, trifling. The exciting cause being permanent, the abnormal results, of course, cannot be removed. Digitalis is best calculated to palliate the distress, whereas Arsenic, Lycopodium and other remedies almost always leave us in the lurch. In one case Natrum muriat..relieved the truly frightful cardiac distress. In conclusion we will make mention of an agent that exerts a decided influence over emphysema, we mean the pressure of the atmosphere. More recently we have become enabled to increase or diminish this pressure ad libitum to suit the condition of our patients; both the decrease as well as the increase of this pressure exert a wonderful effect upon emphysematous individuals. A diminished pressure of the atmosphere is procured by causing our patients to reside on high mountains. JBy this change the affection is improved in an uncommon degree, almost without an exception and in a very short time, the catarrh becomes less and the patient very soon gains in flesh. Any one who has resided on high mountains, must have experienced the great ease with which the act of respiration is performed, and what a pleasantly stimulating effect mountain-forests have upon the organism. Not only must the greater ease in breathing feel very pleasant to the patient, but the quality of the inhaled air must likewise afford a pleasant stimulation to his weary frame. Be this as it may, the best thing emphysematous individuals can do for themselves in the summer, is to live on high mountains. How it happens that an increase of atmospheric pressure likewise exerts a beneficent effect upon emphysematous individuals, we are unable to decide, nor do we deem it essential to entangle ourselves in hypothetical speculations on this subject. That this effect is produced, is not only corroborated by- experience, but likewise by the apparatuses contrived for the inhalation of compressed air. But few of such apparatuses are as yet in use, but we feel confi-,dent that in every large city an apparatus of this kind will sooner or later be introduced, and we deem it so much more our duty to direct the attention of our Colleagues to artificial contrivances of this kind, as our Materia Medica is utterly destitute of remedial agents for this disease, and the most we can do is to palliate the patient's distress. More detailed information concerning this subject may be found in the Essays of Dr. Vivenot, Jr., in Vienna, who has published several of them. The essential effect of inhaling Pneumonia. 243 compressed air for several hours is a decreased frequency of the number of respirations and the pulse. The relief obtained by emphysematous individuals must be owing to the circumstance that the inspirations become fuller and more oxygen is supplied to the lungs. We trust that all who have an opportunity of testing this method, or otherwise observing its effects, will take the trouble of directing their attention to it. 9. Pneimonia. Inflammation of the Lungs. By pneumonia we understand the effusion of a fibrinous exuda-tion on the free surface of the pulmonary cells. This form of pneumonia is termed croupous in opposition to the interstitial and catarrhal form, the first-named of which, however, is the only one that is, strictly speaking, entitled to be classed among inflammations of the lungs. On account of its frequency and the importance of the affected organ, pneumonia is one of the most important diseases. To the homceopath it becomes so much more important on account of circumstances which we shall endeavor to explain at the commencement of the paragraphs devoted to the therapeutics of pneumonia, although this proceeding may render us liable to the charge of inconsistency in not avoiding, according to promise, every species of polemics. But in the present instance the dispute about the first rank must be settled and is, therefore, unavoidable. Etiology. An affection like pneumonia, which has at all times and more especially during the last decades, since the introduction of a physical exploration of the chest and the development of pathological anatomy, commended the fullest attention and the most careful investigation on the part of all physicians, must necessarily have led to the most diversified views concerning its origin. To avoid prolixity we shall only mention the most important etiological causes. The two principal kinds of pneumonia are the primary and the secondary form. Primary pneumonia may occur at any age, but attacks more especially individuals between the ages of twenty and forty years, very rarely children in the fi'rst years of infancy. No constitution is exempt from the liability to an attack; if a robust and plethoric constitution is generally regarded as more susceptible, it is, most probably, because robust men are more frequently exposed to the exciting causes of pneumonia. This circumstance is most likely the 244 Diseases of the Lungs. reason why men are so much more frequently attacked than women; the occupations pursued by men expose them more fully and more frequently than women to the deleterious influences productive of pneumonia. Infants at the breast, and children who have not yet passed through the first period of dentition, are seldom attacked with croupous pneumonia. The nature of the country does not seem to exert any palpable influence; for pneumonias occur in a level country as well as on mountains, in sunny districts as well as in exposed places. The seasons, on the contrary, exert a decided( influence. Our statistical tables show to a demonstration that the transition from cold to warm seasons is the most fruitful source of pneumonia; the transition from warm to cold seasons is less productive of this disease, winter still less and summer least of any. That there must be other causes at work than the mere temperature, is self-evident. The great changes of temperature in April and May being at the sanie time attended with the most marked changes in the electric conditions of the atmosphere, it is concluded not without reason that these conclusions are correct, and that electricity exerts a powerful influence as one of the exciting causes of pneumonia. The influence of electricity likewise accounts in the most natural manner for the frequent occurrence of epidemic pneumonia which, though not always very extensive, yet is often very intense, and which, owing to the peculiar course it takes, has often very characteristic features. We doubt very much whether a mere cold is such a frequent cause of pneumonia; it unfortunately is very convenient to attribute pneumonia to it. In the absence of other constitutional predispositions it is only a very violent cold that is capable of causing pneumonia; even in such a case we would not regard the cold as a cause of the disease, unless it had taken place no later than eighteen hours before the commencement of the disease. Mechanical injuries, more especially a violent blow or kick, may likewise give rise to pneumonia; noxious agents acting directly upon the lungs, such as irritating gases, excessive cold or heat, may likewise excite the disease. A real predisposition to pneumonia will very seldom be met with; but it cannot be denied that the treatment of pneumonia with debilitating drugs, more especially by sanguineous depletions, always leaves" an increased disposition to similar attacks. In the case of tuberculous patients a disposition cannot well be shown, they are more easily attacked with bronchitis. It likewise seems an established fact that individuals with a preeminently arterial habit are more liable than others, and that, Pneumonia. 245 for instance, emphysematous individuals with venous constitutions are not often attacked with pneumonia. Secondary pneumonia is frequently an exclusively consecutive affection, originating in the spread of inflammatory affections to the lungs. It is particularly met with among children, much less frequently among adults, and occurs as a complication of all possible acute diseases, particularly exanthems. Pyemmia is one of the most frequent causes of secondary pneumonia. In chronic affections it is always a very dubious undertaking to show their connection with intercurrent pneumonia. Pathologico-anatomical Czhangjes. We give a description of these changes, because they facilitate a comprehension of the apparent symptoms. For the sake of facilitating a methodical arrangement of the pathological changes, the pathological process has been divided into three different stages which, however, are not so rigidly distinguished from each other in reality, and often run a parallel course. The first stage is that of bloody infiltration. On opening the thorax the affected part of the lungs does not collapse; the pleura covering this part is usually opaque, the elasticity at this part is more or less completely lost, and the color is sometimes much darker. On cutting into the lungs, only a feeble or no crepitation is heard. The cut surface is of a strikingly dark redness, usually in sharp contrast with the sound portion; on pressing upon it a dark-red or brownish, viscid, tenacious fluid is squeezed out. The tissue is dense. The weight of the affected portion is much more considerable than its normal weight, and in water this portion immediately sinks to the bottom of the vessel. The second stage comprehends the period when the process of exudation is completed, and is generally designated as the stage of red hepatization. The affected portion feels dense and hard; the pleura over it has almost always lost its lustre and is thinly covered with exudation. It exhibits all the signs of the first stage pointing to a deficiency of air. The cut surface has the same color as in the first stage, or more usually it has the color of rust. When the light impinges upon it, the cut surface shows distinct granulations which are still more apparent on the surface adjoining the thorax and are caused by the firm exudation-plugs in the pulmonary cells. In spite of its density, the pulmonary tissue is much more easily torn. The transition into the third stage does not, properly speaking, constitute part of the normal course, for by the normal course the 246 Diseases of the Lungs. resorption and exudation of the infiltration proceeds from the second stage. This third stage is designated as the stage of gray hepatization and purulent infiltration. The cut surface now has a gray color with a yellowish tinge, mingled with red or brown spots which often impart to it a mottled appearance. The granular appearance has disappeared or still exists very feebly. The tissue is quite friable. On pressure a turbid liquid is discharged from it consisting in most part of pus corpuscles. Gray hepatization of course arises from the red; the hsematin is more and more decomposed or reabsorbed, on which account all transitions of color are commonly noticed, from a dark brown-red to a yellowish, rusty or gray color, and if the purulent transformation is perfect, to a strawcolor. The third stage may still be succeeded by the formation of abscesses, gangrene of the lungs, thickening of the exudation; we shall speak of this more fully hereafter, as well as of the less frequently occurring deviations from the general anatomical changes. As regards the extent of the pathological process, in croupous pneumonia a whole lobe or at least a large portion of a lobe is cornmonly attacked; less frequently a lobe is attacked on both sides, still less frequently all the lobes together. If only one side is affected, it is most commonly the right lungs, less frequently the left. If only isolated, detached lobules are infiltrated in consequence of the pneumonic process, the inflammation is not usually a simple croupous pneumonia, but almost always of a secondary character. Symptoms and Comrse. As yet we are not acquainted with any disease which, in the absence of any particular complications, runs its course in such fixed and stable forms as pneumonia and adheres as fixedly as this disease to definite critical days. In the chapter on the therapeutics of pneumonia we shall show how far the formerly customary treatment of this disease has been influenced by the discovery of a fixed typical course. Pneumonia begins almost without an exception with a chill which is usually very severe and is in many respects of great importance. It is from this chill that we date the commencement of the disease and by it we determine the critical days. Moreover this chill which is sometimes of very long duration and is immediately succeeded by, but never alternates with fever, is in no other disease of such a peculiar nature, so that it may almost be considered pathognomonic, more especially if we consider that as soon as the chill sets in, the muscular strength vanishes so that the patient finds it almost Pneumonia. 247 impossible to stand erect. We will now first describe the course of pneumonia in the case of a robust and sound individual, and will append to it the description of various deviations. As soon as the chill which almost always lasts several hours and scarcely ever only a few minutes, is over, a violent, dry fever-heat sets in, and the pulse becomes more or less accelerated, fuller and more tense, but very seldom exceeds the number of 100 beats. The temperature is always raised a few degrees. The face which during the chill has an almost cadaverous appearance, now becomes flushed, sometimes only on one side; the cheeks are bright-red, the eyes injected, and very commonly some headache is felt, and the patient generally feels thirsty, but is very seldom disposed to vomit. The appetite is at once gone, and owing to the intense fever, all the secretions are suspended. The patient feels more exhausted than he really is. This condition which is as yet free from all local symptoms, may last longer than twenty-four hours, but in such a case the local symptoms appear at an earlier period; in rare cases they precede the chill. The patient complains of unceasing stitching pains which he generally points out with tolerable accuracy as existing at the affected spot, very seldom far removed from it; they are aggravated by every unusual exertion of the respiratory organs, especially by coughing, and they sometimes increase to a high degree of intensity. The pain usually sets in associated with a short and at first dry cough, the respiratory movements are much less full and more frequent in number. The breathing is not only painful and accelerated on this account, but the violent fever likewise occasions an increased desire for breath which cannot be gratified and causes great restlessness and anxiety and a marked activity of all the other respiratory muscles which are not usually very seriously taxed in performing the respiratory movements. These exertions are generally so striking that pneumonia can be recognized from this very fact, more especially from the flapping of the alse nosi during an inspiration. Vocalization is of course altered, feebler and shorter, and frequently interrupted. Soon after the cough has begun to set in, the patient begins to expectorate; this expectoration is important as a diagnostic sign. It is scanty, very tenacious, and usually intimately mixed with blood from the commencement, which imparts to it the color of rust, or brick-dust; this color is scarcely ever absent in the case of young, robust individuals. At this stage the physical symptoms,have so far advanced that they render the diagnosis perfectly 248 Diseases of the Lungs. certain. During the first days the fever gradually increases, showing but slight morning-remissions. Considering the high degree of temperature, the pulse is not so very frequent, scarcely ever -exceeding 120 beats; however, in proportion as the parenchyma becomes more infiltrated, the fulness of the pulse decreases considerably. The end of the inflammatory infiltration generally designates the period when a change takes place in'the symptoms. The infiltration is seldom completed on the third day, sometimes not till the seventh, even still later. After this, the pains almost always cease, the breathing becomes more tranquil, the fever is apparently less, the pulse remains unchanged, the constitutional symptoms do not mend very perceptibly. The local as well as the general symptoms may remain unchanged in intensity, until a change takes place in the disease. Such a change seldom takes place before the fifth day, and, according to Traube, sets in on the odd days, which is denied by others. This critical change is very often preceded by the breaking out of herpes labialis which almost always authorizes the expectation of a favorable turn. Previous to the critical change, the intensity of the symptoms either rises to a great height by a gradual increase, or else it is often the case that after two to four quiet days a violent fever again rages for twelve to eighteen hours, after which the disease decreases very suddenly. This reappearance of the fever is most easily accounted for by the exudation of serum which is required for the reabsorption of the exuded fibrin. In uncomplicated cases the disease decreases with an uncommon suddenness and rapidity, sometimes in a few hours, and it is difficult to understand how the dyspncea can decrease so rapidly since, as a rule, a copious expectoration does not occur and is sometimes entirely wanting. This shows that the exudation of serum which is alone capable of removing the exuded fibrin by a process of reabsorption, is chiefly concerned in disembarrassing the respiratory functions by the removal of this exuded material. In simple pneumonia, without abnormal deviations from a regular course, the socalled sputa cocta are only met with in small quantity and not by any means as a general rule. Convalescence takes place so rapidly that oln the fourteenth day every trace of the disease has generally disappeared. As we shall see presently, the mode of treatment exerts a great influence in this respect. In order to establish the diagnosis of pneumonia with perfect certainty in all dubious cases, it is absolutely necessary to resort to Pueumonia..249 a physical exploration of the respiratory.organs. We discuss this subject separately from the other symptoms of the disease, in order to afford a clearer and more connected view of the whole. Pneumonia does not alter the shape of the thorax, or so little that no stress need be laid upon this symptom; nor are the intercostal spaces altered any more than the general capacity of the thorax. Very commonly, however, a more distinct vibration of the thoracic wall, corresponding to the diseased portion of the lungs, is perceived when the patient is talking. The most important positive signs are yielded by percussion which informs us with tolerable certainty whether a larger portion of the lungs is infiltrated or not. We speak, of course, of croupous pneumonia, for it is this alone that causes the infiltration of a considerable portion of the lungs, most commonly of a whole lobe. In the incipient stage of pneumonia, the sound either remains unchanged, or is only changed very slightly; hence, immediately after the occurrence of the chill, no changes can be discovered. But in proportion as the hyperenmia increases, the percussion-sound becomes more tympanitic, sometimes to such an extent that one might be led to believe, a piece of intestine had been struck. Hence, the tympanitic sound is really characteristic in pneumonia, and is only less marked, if the thoracic walls are very thick, or if the diseased portion of the lungs is separated from the thoracic wall by a normal layer of pulmonary parenchyma. In croupous pneumonia, this is very seldom the case. The more complete the infiltration, the more completely the air escapes from the lungs, and the more empty the sound becomes unless a layer, from which the air has not yet escaped, lies over the diseased portion of lungs On the sides of this normal layer, the dulness often first changes to the tympanitic and further on to the normal sound, the tympanitic sound is sometimes heard even in the non-affected portion of the lungs, most likely owing to the accompanying hypersemia. A change in the infiltration is revealed by percussion if resolution takes place, in which case the tympanitic sound most commonly returns for a short time and soon after gives way to the full sound. The results of auscultation are equally valuable as diagnostic signs. At the commencement of pneumonia, the normal respiratory murmur is very often quite feeble, much less frequently increased. As soon as infiltration begins to set in, and the air is still able to circulate in the inflamed portion of the lungs, we perceive, especially during an expiration, the crepitation that is so rarely absent that it can almost be regarded as characteristic in 250 Diseases of the Lungs. pneumonia. It is less audible, if a co-existing bronchial catarrh hides it by rales. With the completion of the exudation, when the percussion-sound becomes empty, every murmur caused by the circulation of the air in the air-cells, necessarily ceases, and a bronchial respiration takes place, associated in the non-affected portions of the lungs with a more or less increased vesicular respiration corresponding perhaps with the necessary increase of the respiratory efforts in these portions. In the same manner as the air in the bronchia, when reaching the ear through the pulmonary parenchyma, sounds more loudly, so does the sound of the voice give rise to intense bronchophony and pectoriloquy, while the voice greatly increases the vibrations of the thorax. The resolution of pneumonia is indicated by rlaes. In the cells they are necessarily very fine, and on this account are sometimes described as crepitation, and sometimes are veiled by co-existing coarse rales in the bronchia. They often continue for a long time. This most simple course of pneumonia is often modified by various trifling deviations which are of importance to a homceopathic physician and the more frequent of which we will now proceed to point out. In the case of children, the invasion of the disease is often marked by convulsions, such as may occur in other acute affections; in the case of adults' spasmodic symptoms are seldom witnessed. A very severe intestinal catarrh sometimes constitutes the stage of invasion. In such a case the vomiting only lasts until the infiltration is completed, whereas the diarrhcea often continues throughout the whole course of the disease.> In the case of children, as well as of old people, very seldom in the case of adults, pneumonia throughout its whole course is sometimes accompanied by such prominent cerebral symptoms that a physical exploration alone is capable of establishing the diagnosis upon a perfectly reliable basis, for even the cough in such cases is often wanting. These cerebral derangements are said to accompany the inflammation of an upper lobe much more frequently than those of a lower lobe. The patients sometimes remain unconscious during the whole course of the disease, which need not run a prolonged course on this account. Cerebral derangements of a lighter grade, a light delirium, mostly of a merry nature, sleeplessness or sopor, are very common occurrences. These happen most frequently in the case of drunkards. The tongue does not exhibit any regularly-occurring changes, at times it is quite clean, sometimes very much coated, at times humid, at other times quite Pneumonia. 251 dry. The last-mentioned appearance is not very promising; it is especially ominous if the balance of the symptoms impart to the affection a dubious character. The appearance of a slight icterus after the completion of the infiltration is very common, nor is it of any particular importance; but if icterus sets in together with symptoms of gastro-intestinal catarrh, it always indicates an unwelcome complication which threatens to delay the course of the disease. As a rule the skin remains pretty dry during the whole course of the disease; profuse or exhausting sweats occur much less frequently. The symptoms specially appertaining to the lungs, vary considerably. The cough which is usually not very violent and occurs in single short turns, may assume a spasmodic character when, on account of the increase of pain, it becomes a source of great distress to the patient. It rarely is entirely wanting, or is quite dry. It is particularly old people who sometimes do not cough at all. The frequency of the respirations is sometimes but inconsiderably increased, and it is the insufficient depth of the inspirations that reveals the character of the disease. The pain varies more than any other symptom; in the case of old people it is generally very slight; in their case the admixture of blood in the sputa is generally missing. In the case of young and vigorous individuals the resolution of the infiltration generally takes place very rapidly, sometimes in a single day, but it may likewise be more protracted, without on that account a transition into the stage of gray hepatization having necessarily taken place. Thus we find that the fever decreases on the ninth day and that the patient generally feels a little better; but there is no sudden decrease of all the abnormal phenomena, no immediate, but a scarcely perceptible, dragging commencement of convalescence. We seldom notice this condition of things in the case of robust men; it occurs quite easily among weakly persons and after an exhausting method of treatment. Sometimes, after convalescence has begun, an exacerbation with progressing infiltration sets in, in which case the fever is very apt to assume an asthenic character and the appearance of typhus, yet the course of the disease need not necessarily be very much protracted or unfavorable. But almost without an exception, important complications exist in such cases; such a form of pneumonia is very seldom the result of epidemic influences, but most generally of an exhausting treatment. Among the complications we notice more particularly pleuritis, bronchitis, peri- and endocarditis, all of which, without an exception, exert a disturbing influence over pneumonia. 252 Diseases of the Lungs. Experience has shown that the seat of pneumonia is of great importance as regards the probability of a normal termination. As a rule pneumonia of the right side is much more favorable than that of the left, pneumonia of a lower lobe lighter than that of an upper one, which is apt not to terminate in resolution and to assume a tubercular form. Inflammations of the left upper lobe are especially obstinate and deviating fiom the normal course; they occur the least frequently, The deviations of the infiltration are very essential, since the deviations in the course of the disease are mostly founded upon the former. One of the most common deviations is the tardy resolution of the infiltration. It occurs rarely in uncomplicated forms of pneumonia, but is a very common event if carditis supervenes during pneumonia. In such cases the deficient energy of the circulation seems to constitute the sole obstacle, for a purulent metamorphosis is not necessary to lead to such a result. We shall refer to this afterwards in treating of chronic pneumonia.!No resolution of the infiltration need take place even for years; in one case, that of an apparently healthy man we discovered after a number of years over one or two pulmonary lobes, especially at their posterior border, marked bronchial respiration and a perfectly empty percussion-sound. Or else the infiltration may remain in some portions of the lungs, disappearing entirely everywhere else, and the patient may enjoy perfect health. If the infiltration remains, but changes to a tubercular deposition, the phenomena of the disease change entirely. We not only meet with this change in individuals who had been previously affected with tubercles, but likewise in individuals of whom we positively know that up to the time when they were attacked with pneumonia, they had enjoyed perfect health. On the critical days the fever indeed decreases, but some of it remains, and the patients are not able to recover their strength, or only slowly and imperfectly. There remain a dry and hacking cough and an imperfect fulness of the respiration, and sooner or later the symptoms of tubercular phthisis supervene, which in such a case usually runs a very rapid course. We should not, however, in every case of tardy reabsorption, infer a tubercular metamorphosis and express a prognosis corresponding with such a change. It often takes months before such a metamorphosis can be diagnosed with perfect certainty. The most important, most frequent and at the same time most dangerous change of the infiltration is the transition into the stage of gray hepatization or purulent metamorphosis. It must always Pneumonia. 253 be apprehended if pneumonia continues beyond the ninth day with considerable febrile motions, and, unless we examine the symptoms very accurately, a progression of the pneumonia alone may deceive us for a short time. Upon the accession of this purulent metamorphosis the fever always assumes a marked adynamic character, and the process henceforward bears a striking resemblance to typhus. The fever increases very considerably, the number of pulsations frequently exceeds that of 120 beats which is the normal number for adults in a case of pneumonia, and at the same time becomes small and feeble. Not unfrequently the burning heat is mingled with short chills. The tongue which, even in a violent case of pneumonia, seldom becomes dry previous to the stage of purulent metamorphosis, resembles the tongue in typhus, and the supervention of delirium makes the resemblance to typhus still more striking, so that on first seeing the patient an error in diagnosis is quite easy, especially if diarrhcea is present. It is only the physical exploration of the chest, together with the previous history of the disease that affords certainty in such a case. Percussion does not yield exclusively an empty, but likewise a tympanitic sound. Auscultation reveals beside bronchial respiration, more or less extensive, consonant rales. The air passes through a fluid,but the general condition of the patient shows that no process of reabsorption is going on; this is likewise evidenced by the expectoration which is at times pure pus, at other times mixed with blood and has often a very offensive odor. If the pathological process takes this turn, life is always in great danger. Recovery always takes place very slowly, with frequent variations between worse and better days, and is frequently protracted for months. Death sometimes takes place already in the second week and at other times at a much later period. It sometimes sets in quite suddenly, while cedema of the lungs is supervening, and sometimes slowly in consequence of general exhaustion associated with the formation of abscess or gangrene, neither of which, however, can be diagnosed with reliable certainty during the lifetime of the patient; for foul sputa are no sure indication of gangrene, and an abscess cannot be recognized with positive certainty until it begins to discharge and the patient raises a quantity of purulent matter. / Another, not less important, but much less frequent form of the exudation-metamorphosis is chronic pneumonia. That a chronic, non-tubercular process of infiltration can take place in the lungs, cannot well be doubted; but it is a rare occurrence, and a reliable 254 Diseases of the Lungs. diagnosis cannot often be established in such cases. Hence, in this place, we simply speak of chronic pneumonia resulting from an acute attack. It exhibits essentially all the so-called metamorphoses of pneumonic infiltration, except in a less acute form, and, on this account, with less immediate danger to the preservation of the organism. Either we notice a simple infiltration at some particular spot, which had remained after an acute attack and which either does not affect the organism or else keeps it in a long-lasting state of debility, with disposition to a renewal of an attack of acute infiltration. Most likely it is owing to these remnants of nonabsorbed exudation, that individuals who have had one attack of pneumonia, are so often liable to being attacked a second time. Or else only part of the infiltration remains consolidated; in one or several portions of the lungs we hear bronchial respiration; at the same time another portion of the infiltration undergoes the process of resolution, and cough with purulent expectoration sets in, in consequence of which the general organism necessarily suffers. Although fever is not always present, yet it is rarely ever absent, in which case it has more or less the character of hectic fever; hence the patient has a sick, yellow-gray appearance, and very speedily shows signs of considerable emaciation. If the exudation dissolves, and the pulmonary parenchyma is involved in this process of disorganization, an abscess forms distinguished from the abovementioned abscess by nothing but the slowness of its course, for years sometimes pass away before the abscess finds an outlet through the bronchia. Several abscesses may form, but such a thing is not often the case. Where several abscesses form, the tendency to gangrene and ichorous dissolution is very commonly present. But the organism need not necessarily show severe signs of sympathetic suffering either from the presence of an abscess or that of gangrene. The patients look like tuberculous individuals in whose case the pathological process makes slow progress. They are not robust, but without fever, and emaciate very slowly, At various intervals which sometimes last for months, some fever generally sets in, the patients are attacked by great prostration, they have to lie down, and after this condition which is most easily brought about by a slight catarrh, has lasted for a short time, they suddenly discharge after coughing and gagging an enormous quantity of foul, badlycolored pus succeeded for a few days by a moderate expectoration that has likewise a very foul odor. At the same time the exhaustion continues to increase until the pus has been completely evacu Pneumonia. 255 ated, after which the strength returns very rapidly, but not to the same degree as before the breaking of the abscess. A cure is possible, if the suppurating portion of the lungs is not too large and the strength is not too much reduced. Death either takes place in consequence of hectic fever or of the supervention of some acute process. Finally we must mention a termination of pneumonia which is of rare occurrence and exceedingly troublesome, we mean the evacuation of the pus through the walls of the thorax. This has occurred twice in our practice. The patients were young men, and the right lower lobe was inflamed. Although the profuse suppuration at first occasioned great exhaustion, yet both were completely restored. Having said all we intended concerning croupous pneumonia, we will now add a few remarks concerning interstitial and catarrhal pneumonia. Catarrhal pneumonia is scarcely ever a primary disease, but generally arises in consequence of the inflammatory process spreading fiora the bronchia to the pulmonary cells. It is almost without an exception confined to single lobules, and on this account the name of lobular pneumonia has been given to it. There may be many such scattered centres of inflammation, without the percussion-sound being altered in consequence; nor do they occasion bronchial respiration, so that it is scarcely possible to diagnose them with positive certainty. All we know is that capillary bronchitis is very apt to superinduce lobular pneumonia. Like capillary bronchitis, this form of pneumonia is preeminently a disease of infancy, and it has to be treated in the same manner as the worst kinds of bronchitis. Interstitial pneumonia is of no particular importance to us, because it does not require any special treatment; on the other hand it is of importance with respect to prognosis and as regards the diagnosis of other affections to which it resembles. It is always a secondary complication. The process is quite like the process in cirrhosis of the liver, on which account it has been termed cirrhosis of the lungs. An exudation takes place into the -onnective tissue of the lungs; this exudation first changes to connective tissue and afterwards to cicatrizing, shrivelling firm tissue, by which the air-cells become compressed, and a condition arises which is designated as induration of the lungs. Since this process may likewise set in as a consequence of croupous pneumonia, interstitial pneumonia is likewise a special form of the so-called chronic pneumonia. Its most important result is atrophy of the pulmonary 256 Diseases of the Lungs. tissue with caving in of the thorax and the development of sacculated bronchiectasia in consequence of which chronic bronchial catarrh assumes such a peculiar form. Inasmuch as in pneumonia the prognosis depends more evidently than in any other disease upon the treatment that happens to be pursued, we have assigned to it a place in the section on the therapeutics of pneumonia. Treatment. We have already stated at the commencement of this chapter that the treatment of pneumonia is well calculated to show the advantages of IIomoopathy over other methods; hence it behooves us to devote some attention to the modes of treatment adopted by other Schools. In the first place we have to consider the expectant method which Hoioceopathy has in truth created; for it is the success of homceopathic treatment which could not well be denied, although homceopathic doses were supposed to be equivalent to nothing, that emboldened the partisans of active treatment to try the treatment of diseases without any violent interference. We confess to our inability to comprehend a purely expectant treatment of pneumonia, for no conscientious physician will stand by quietly in a case of pneumonia, and allow the disease to run its course fiom beginning to end without doing something for his patient. This may do in cases of simple pneumonia, if the patients are otherwise endowed with sound health, and the disease runs a perfectly normal course; but what is to be done in regard to the more or less threatening deviations from the normal course? Will the physician remain idle? We do not believe it. But if we take the expectant method in a less rigorous sense of the term; if we allow the use of some mild adjuvants, the statistical tables of this method become at once vitiated. We admit, however, that this method of treatment leads to much more favorable results than tht usual treatment with sanguineous depletions and a mass of powerful remedial agents. The medicinal treatment of pneumonia is effected by means of a legion of remedies, which every physician admits are not so much given for the pneumonia, but for the inflammatory fever, or for single symptoms. The only remedy which years ago was used as a specific for pneumonia, is Tartar emetic. The use of this remedy as a specific has, however, been abandoned, for the reason that it was found impossible to determine the kind of pneumonia to which it was specifically adapted instead of using it indiscriminately for all kinds. Every homceopath is able to explain how it happened Pneumonia. 257 that Tartar emetic effected a cure in some cases of pneumonia, and proved a specific remedy even in whole epidemics, and yet left the physician in the lurch in so many other cases. The use of this drug in large doses has only yielded unfavorable results in respect to the whole duration of the disease. The other medicines invogue are almost exclusively given for single symptoms of the whole group. Such medicines are mostly used as are supposed to have a depressing influence over the fever, such as Digitalis, Quinine, Veratrine, etc. We do not mean to say one word against these remedies, for we are well aware that under certain circumstances each one of them has its value as a remedy for pneumonia. But we cannot help giving utterance in a few words to our doubts regarding the propriety of prescribing these remedies, for the fever in pneumonia. Fever in any disease is the manifestation of a reaction on the part of the general organism against a disturbance set up in its interior. Hence, fever is no disease of itself, although it is a necessary attribute of many diseases. At all events, pneumonia remains what it is, even if no fever should supervene. Hence, even if it were possible to combat the fever, in combating this fever we would not combat the disease. We even go so far as to maintain that, if the fever could be removed without the disease being acted upon at the same time, the treatment is sometimes without effect, and is usually hurtful and never of any use. For after the organic reac; tion has been depressed or even suspended, the morbid disturbance is either prolonged or does not disappear at all. In suppressing the fever, the natural curative agent would likewise become inoperative. It is different if Digitalis is given in order to diminish the impulse of the heart and depress the heart's action, and by this means to lessen the pressure in the pulmonary vessels. But in such a case Digitalis should only be given at the beginning of pulmonary hyperemmia, or might at most still be continued at the commencement of hepatization, which, however, is not done. In order to obtain a normal process of reabsorption, an undiminished action of the heart is indispensable; its decrease may afford momentary relief to the patient, but cannot act favorably. Such an exhibition of palliatives may not always be hurtful and may not interfere with the course of the disease: it is certain, however, that this kind of treatment cannot be made the foundation for a true system of theralpeutics in pneumonia. A somewhat complete review of the common treatment of pneumonia would oblige us to exhibit the whole of the so-called anti17 258 Diseases of the Lungs. phlogistic apparatus, from Calomel to the most harmless neutral salt. Inasmuch as the use of these drugs is based upon the same idea, they can be dispatched with the same arguments. A general antiphlogistic treatment is just as absurd as the exhibition of Quinine for the fever in pneumonia; the real disease is not met. It is not such a difficult thing to depress the organism by the copious use of cathartics and other remedies until an active reaction becomes impossible; of course, the theory has been complied with, the inflammatory fever is gone, but an adynamic fever has taken its place; and even if this is not the case, there is scarcely any doubt that the conquest of the local disease will not take place more rapidly. At one time Chloroform-inhalations made a great noise, but seem to have been abandoned by modern practitioners. Todd's method of prescribing spirits, is nearly related to these inhalations. How happens it that Englishmen have not long ago stoned this destroyer of all faith in antiphlogistic treatment! A proof how much pneumonia can endure without undergoing any essential modifications in its course, is cold-water treatment. Even Niemeyer is favorable to this method of treatment, but he is utterly unable to give any reasons for it; his only argument is that it helps. From a physiological stand-point we should reason in this wise: The wet bandage, frequently repeated, diminishes the amount of blood in the cutaneous vessels, hence superinduces in the interior of the organism a sort of engorgement, and at the same time acts as a stimulant, for it is followed by an increase of reaction; how can such an agent be said to act as a curative in a case of pneumonia? We consider this mode of reasoning correct. Pneumonia being attended with pain, Opium has been made use of very liberally; this is all that can be claimed in its favor. In conclusion we have to consider the chief remedy, we mean blood-letting. It constitutes the apple of discord in modern medicine, and because homceopathic practitioners have discarded it, even in pneumonia, they have been called murderers. How much has been said and printed on the subject of pneumonia, both pro and con, more especially after a physician had dared to treat a pneumonic patient without bleeding, in spite of which he obtained wonderfully favorable results. This change in the treatment of pneumonia would have caused less astonishment if physicians had paid some attention to Homceopathy during the last fifty years. Formerly pneumonia and blood-letting were as intimately united Pneumonia. 259 as the arm and hand. This is very different at the present time, and since we only deal with the present, we shall content ourselves with considering the modern developments of this question. Wnnderlich and Niemeyer are sufficiently authoritative to permit us to present their views as the ruling opinions of their Schools. Niemeyer gives three indications for a course of general depletion. First' Appearance of the pneumonia in a vigorous, healthy, young man, the temperature being over 92 0 Fahr., and the pulse over 120 beats.-Second: Collateral hypersemia of the uninflamed portions of the lungs.-Third: Symptoms of pressure on the brain accompanying the pneumonia. Wunderlich gives the same indications, except that he adds to number one, that the patient should be bled on the first and second, or on the fourth and fifth day, not on the third, rarely after the fifth unless hyperemnia should still exist. The effect of bleeding, according to Wunderlich, is as follows, Niemeyer not attributing to bleeding a positive influence over pneumonia, but only a general influence or an influence over particular symptoms. In the first place, venesection is said to shorten the course of the disease and to achieve the termination in recovery more rapidly and more completely. We ask any physician who has ever watched the course of pneumonia treated with blood-letting, whether this is true. We admit that immediately after the bleeding the fever abates quite considerably; but in twenty-four hours already the fever returns even worse than before. Every homceopath knows that pneumonic patients who are treated with blood-letting, even in accordance with the above indications, seldom finish their convalescence in a few days, but remain weak for several weeks. Even if we admit that Wunderlich's favorable prognosis is sometimes realized, yet, supported by our own experience, we cannot help affirming that the favorable change more frequently disappoints than meets our expectations, and that it is very often illusory. Secondly, venesection affords the patient as sensation of relief. This is not always the case, but it is so commonly; but we would ask whether a mere sensation of the patient is more important than the regard for the general course of the disease, and whether the physician is not perpetrating a piece of quackery if he resorts to bleeding as a means to impress the patient with his power, when he must be well aware that the effect of this remedy passes away in a few hours, and the patient feels necessarily more exhausted than before. 260 Diseases of the Lungs. Thirdly, the pulse decreases in frequency after bleeding; this can be accounted for, but it is not true that the former frequency does not return. It does return. but the quality of the pulse is altered; the pulse is feebler than it was. Fourthly, the temperature declines, but the same thing happens as with the pulse. This mania of depressing the chief febrile symptoms, has been commented upon by us in our review of the remedies that are used for such a purpose; we need not repeat our criticism in this place. Fifthly, venesection moderates the dyspncea and thus prevents acute emphysema. That this is not the case, can be affirmed by every homceopath; acute emphysema is a very rare occurrence in pneumonia and, if it does occur, it must have been the result of improper treatment. Sixthly, venesection, by moderating the pulse and the temperature, prevents nervous exhaustion and acute consumption. Itow this is to be brought about, is an enigma which physiology does not solve. Nor does Wunderlich account any more explicitly for the possibility of such a process. A few other points seem to us too unimportant to be mentioned here in detail; we shall interpolate them in our subsequent remarks. Against the above-enumerated statements we will add to our previous remarks the following counter-propositions. It is rather hazardous to declare an individual to whom we are called as a physician, positively robust and healthy up to the time when we are called. Every physician must have been deceived in this respect, and deceptions of this kind, if occurring in pneumonia, cannot lead to pleasant results. There are individuals who are very thin and pale and yet enjoy the most perfect health; on the other hand, we see weak persons who apparently look stout and florid. By what exact diagnostic signs are individuals suitable for the first indication, characterized? Again we generally notice that robust men seldom have a pulse of over 120 beats, whereas such a pulse is very commonly met with in the case of weak persons. Why should not the latter be equally favorably affected by venesection? Have they a relatively less quantity of blood? The answer is that they do not bear venesection as well as robust persons who can bear a few venesections in pneumonia without any great disadvantage, whereas weakly persons cannot bear them. Where is the boundary, and how do those Pneumonia. 261 fare who occupy the line and in whose case we do not know whether they belong to one class or the other? Blood is only to be taken from robust individuals. Since bloodletting is reputed one of the most powerful remedial agents, this phrase must be intended to mean that the pneumonia of robust men is much more dangerous than that of weakly persons, or that robust individuals find it more difficult to conquer the disease by the amount of strength on hand. This mode of reasoning is certainly not logical. The reaction of a robust man must naturally be more energetic and prompt than that of a person weakened by exposure, and that the strength of a vigorous person is capable of bearing a great deal more than that of a debilitated individual. Why should the more intense fever of vigorous persons entail more danger? We are at a loss to understand the anxiety caused by the presence of febrile symptoms; we admit, however, that the quality of the pulse is an excellent index of present danger, but not the number of the beats, or at least only to some extent. Every homceopath can testify that collateral hypermemia in pneumonia does not very frequently occur in a threatening form. If it exists, its intensity may be diminished by venesection; but this would be followed by the bad consequences to inflammation that will soon be enumerated. In such a case the question still is, which pathological process is worse, the hyperaemia which is a transitory condition, or the pneumonia which is liable to such unfavorable terminations. If, as is often the case, hyperoemia sets in after a venesection, it is very questionable whether the venesection is not in a great measure the cause. The phenomena of cerebral hyperaemia are, at all events, the worst indication. They may be very marked and persistent, but they do not imply the presence of danger, and still less frequently of so great a danger that it has to be met by such an energetic remedy as blood-letting. Let no one imagine that our views on blood-letting which are so directly antagonistic to those of other physicians, are mere vague assertions. No true homceopath will ever bleed either in pneumonia or in any other disease; hence only a homoeopath is able to judge what course pneumonia takes with or without bleeding. In the case of vigorous individuals, the course of pneumonia frequently remains unaffected by mild blood-letting, but full convalescence is always retarded by it. To many vigorous individuals, and the less vigorous the more so, venesection is decidedly injurious 262 Diseases of the Lungs. and superinduces one or the other unpleasant consequences that will be enumerated by and by. Niemeyer accounts for the rapid sinking of strength by the anemic condition which is occasioned by a profuse exudation associated with an increase of waste by the fever, and a diminution of the supply; it is his opinion that most patients succumb to this acute marasmus. If this be so, nobody can comprehend how a sanguineous depletion and consequent increase of the loss of animal fluids can act favorably, and every body must see that the necessity of first repairing the waste, delays the complete restoration of strength. The apparently or momentarily favorable effects of blood-letting scarcely ever last longer than twenty-four hours, and are very frequently succeeded by the transition of the fever to the adynamic form, or by an increase of the symptoms; the French method of excessive venesections has occasioned these results. The exudation is never arrested by venesection, much less cut short or entirely prevented, but the possibility of cedema of the lungs is considerably aggravated by it. This results fiom the circumstance that the inflammatory exudation and the loss of blood diminish quite considerably the plastic portions of the blood, and that hence the blood contains much more serum and becomes'much more disposed to serous exudations. The resolution of the exudation is delayed, or is incomplete, or else it takes place by purulent dissolution, or not at all. If Wunderlich lays so much stress upon a diminution of the fever, that is to say of the pulse and temperature, we admit that a decrease of the fever on the critical days implies a disappearance of the local processes. Nevertheless it is not unfrequently the case that the exudation remains in spite of the defervescence; we have abundant evidence of such a fact. In such a case the re-absorption goes on slowly and uniformly, or else by fits and starts; but the patients scarcely ever recover their health very rapidly, but they remain for a long time feeble, although without fever. This result has only occurred to us after sanguineous depletions or, which deserves particular notice, after complications with inflammatory affections of the heart. The same remark applies to cases where remnants of exudation are left behind, not including the cases of tuberculous individuals in whom it is difficult to decide whether we have remnants of exudation or tubercles before us. The setting in of gray hepatization, the purulent dissolution of the exudation may sometimes be owing to peculiar constitutional or external atmospheric Pneumonia. -268 circumstances; indeed pus may form as the result of any inflammation; in such cases it is not likely that blood will ever be drawn, except perhaps in a case of pneumonia that runs its course under atmospheric influences and when one of the above-mentioned indications may indeed come into play. But if we mean the primary, uncomplicated pneumonias of persons who had hitherto enjoyed a vigorous and sound constitution, no pus will ever show itself under a strictly homeopathic treatment, but not very unfrequently after a debilitating, more especially after a depleting treatment. In view of the observation that the pneumonic exudation can be re-absorbed in a few hours under favorable circumstances, and seldom requires more than a few days for such a purpose, we must suppose that every reduction of the patient's strength, more especially by sanguineous depletions, causes a decrease of the reactive energy, consequently a diminution of the reactive exudation required for the business of re-absorption, and hence again a misdirection of the organic activity in the removal of the exuded fibrin. A proof for the assertions here made is furnished by the pneumonias that are associated with severe intestinal catarrh, in whose case the resolution takes place more or less abnormally. We account for this phenomenon simply by the excessive loss of animal fluids, on which account we consider the systematic use of purgatives in pneumonia as hurtful as bleeding. The tubercular metamorphosis of the exuded fibrin, if the patients were otherwise free from tubercles, has to be attributed to treatment. It is well known that tubercles and anaemia are closely related to each other, hence it is not difficult to suppose that an artificially excited anemia may favor the formation of tubercles. All the cases known to us, where the pneumonic exudation had this termination, had all been treated with bloodletting. These remarks show that chronic pneumonia is very commonly a consequence of debilitating treatment. We again call attention to the fact that carditis as a complication of pneumonia is apt to occasion a malignant metamorphosis of the exudation. In such a case it is not so much the perverse quality of the blood, whose influence we are, however, not disposed to deny, but the diminished energy of the circulation that exerts a disturbing effect upon the course of pneumonia. This is an additional proof how unphysiological is the theory of depressing the pulse in pneumonia. The observation that individuals who have had one attack of pneumonia, are easily liable to a renewed attack, will scarcely ever 264 Diseases of the Lungs. be made by a homoeopathic physician. If such frequent recurrences of pneumonia are witnessed even under homceopathic treatment, the former attacks had always been treated with depletions; we account for this susceptibility most naturally by the circumstance that the exudation had not been completely absorbed. After this excursion into the therapeutic domain of the Old School, the length of which we beg the reader to excuse on account of the importance of the subject, we now enter upon a consideration of the prognosis of pneumonia. We might on this occasion avail ourselves of the existing statistics, if they were not calculated to mislead, and, on the side of Homceopathy, not sufficiently numerous. On this account we confine ourselves to short statements; if any one should feel disposed to doubt their correctness, we advise him, before pronouncing judgment, to first treat a few dozen cases of pneumonia homceopathically. An uncomplicated pneumonia, no matter whether the patient is robust or weakly, always terminates in recovery under homceopathic treatment, at the same time as an abnormal dispersion or alteration of the infiltration occurs very seldom. We can substantiate the correctness of this statement by upwards of two hundred and fifty cases of pneumonia from our own practice and that of other physicians. Accordingly pneumonia is one of the least dangerous diseases to a homceopathic physician. On the contrary, Wunderlich calls it one of the most frequent and most dangerous diseases that can befal man; in saying this he does not quote figures, but must have been lead by numerous deaths to make such a statement. Among the complications, carditis, intestinal catarrh, bronchitis and tuberculosis promise the least chances of a successful treatment. We have shown above why the first two complications present such ominous difficulties, although even in such cases we have never had to deplore a single loss. Bronchitis is dangerous on account of the dyspncea being extremely aggravated by this complication; and a co-existing tuberculosis becomes dangerous on account of the probability of the metamorphosis of the exuded fibrin into tubercles, or of the hastening of the suppuration of existing tubercular depositions. Whether the seat of the inflammation exerts a peculiar influence during the presence of these complications, is not quite certain, but we may take it for granted that an inflammation of the apices, which are the most common locality of tubercular depositions, terminates in suppuration much sooner than an inflammation of any of the other lobes. It is frequently inconceivable why the pneumonic process should leave Pneumonia. 265 tubercles intact, whereas in other cases it leads directly to phthisis. We are almost without any data for a correct interpretation of these differences, and for this reason alone complicated pneumonias of this nature should be strictly excluded from all statistical tables. We shall have to revert to this subject when speaking of pulmonary tuberculosis. Whenever pneumonia meets with morbid conditions in the respiratory organs, its course generally deviates from the normal line, and its process is much more destructive. This remark applies principally to pulmonary emphysema, to stenosis of the larynx, to chronic heart-disease, especially of the right heart. The more these or any other affections aggravated the breathing before the supervention of pneumonia, the more dangerous they become to life on account of the existing dyspncea. As regards constitutional conditions not of a morbid kind, old age and pregnancy are of particular significance with regard to the prognosis. Old people are often troubled with chronic catarrh and emphysema, to the presence of which the danger in pneumonia is principally to be attributed. For all that, we ought not to despair too soon; we can point to three old men between the years of seventy-eight and eighty-three, all of whom had chronic catarrh, and whom we cured of pneumonia after a somewhat protracted, but otherwise entirely favorable treatment. Pregnancy is exceedingly dangerous, the more so the more advanced it is. Whether the danger is owing to the obstructions in the respiration occasioned by the distended abdomen, or likewise to the altered composition of the blood, we are unable to decide. If a miscarriage takes place, which is not unfrequently the case, death is almost unavoidable, on account of the excessive exhaustion. Such cases likewise afford a striking picture of the effects of venesection, for it is evident what a deleterious effect the loss of blood exerts upon the parturient woman, whereas parturition ought to diminish the dyspncea and consequently lessen the danger. In order to meet objections, we will state that we do not overlook the occurrence of two important processes going on in the organism simultaneously with pneumonia and that it is to these double functions that we attribute in a great measure the fatal termination. Our opinion of the success of homeopathic treatment in complicated cases of pneumonia is to the effect that it is most commonly and preeminently favorable, especially when contrasted with other methods of treatment. We do not even except tubercular pneumonia. Thus we are able to assert without extravagance that 266 Diseases of the Lungs. pneumonia does not appear a very dangerous disease to a homceopathic physician, and that the disease may be considered comparatively devoid of danger, if we consider what an important organ the lungs are, and how intensely they are affected by an inflammation. We pursue the same course on this occasion that we have pursued in regard to all other important pathological processes, and premise a list of the most important remedies. Aconitum. All homceopaths admit the excellence of this remedy in pneumonia; their views only differ as regards the boundaries of its appropriate sphere of action in this disease. We cannot examine these views any further, since this would lead us too far. For particular information on this subject we refer to Miller's essay on pneumonia in the first volume of the Vierteljahrsschrift. According to Miuller's arrangement, the following are the most prominent Aconite-symptoms in pneumonia: Intense fever preceded by af chill, with burning heat and dryness of the skin, quick and hard pulse and a deep, sometimes bluish redness of the face; accelerated, labored, incomplete respiration with restlessness, anxiety and palpitation of the heart; stitches in the chest during a deep inspiration and during motion, or dull pressure and weight on the chest, dry and racking cough, with a small quantity of a tenacious, slimy, blood-streaked or rusty expectoration; recumbent posture on the back; dullness and pain in the head; great thirst; scanty and red urine; evening exacerbation of the symptoms. The thorax is less movable, it is less depressed during an expiration; in other respects we have the physical signs that have been indicated for the first stage. By comparing toxicological post-mortem phenomena with these symptoms, we shall be able to determine the period up to which Aconite is suitable in pneumonia, with much more precision. Both in Miiller's cases of poisoning by Aconite as well as in the cases, whether acute or chronic, which we ourselves have collected in the last ten years, the lungs were in every instance found engorged with blood, but in no case was a trace of croupous exudation to be seen. Although we do not expect that in our physiological experiments a drug that is said to be a specific remedy, will reproduce all the objective signs of the corresponding pathological series, yet the constancy with which a simple engorgement occurs as a post-mortem symptom of Aconite-poisoning, is remarkable. Experience has moreover satisfied us that this condition is the true therapeutic sphere of action for this agent. When speak Pneumonia. 267 ing of pulmonary hyperaemia, we stated that in active pulmonary congestions Aconite is the leading remedy. In pneumonia the stage of red hepatization implies a most perfect hypernemia; hence we consider Aconite best adapted to this stage where its specific curative virtues have been exquisitely confirmed by a multitude of the most favorable practical observations. On this account we do not, however, consider Aconite indicated in every case of pneumonia unless all the other symptoms correspond. Among these symptoms we distinguish more particularly the following: The disease attacks individuals with an active circulation; it is caused by a cold; according to many, by exposure to a dry, cold wind; it attacks robust individuals up to the age of sixty to seventy years, less frequently beyond this period where the characteristics of old age begin to creep along; there are no directly antagonizing complications, among which we number more especially an intense intestinal catarrh. Aconite alone will scarcely ever cure pneumonia, much less cut it short. On this account its importance in pneumonia should not be underrated. No one who has watched the striking effects of Aconite, will ever doubt its great virtues in this disease. Aconite diminishes the vascular excitement and reduces the pulmonary hyperaemia more brilliantly than the most copious bleeding; Moreover it diminishes the exudation to some extent and promotes in a corresponding ratio the favorable course of the disease. This favorable change which affords such great relief to the patient, sets in within twenty-four hours in almost every case. But as soon as the percussion-sound over the inflamed portion of the lungs becomes empty, as soon as the breathing becomes bronchial, Aconite in our opinion, which is shared by many, ceases to be indicated. There are, however, exceptions to this general statement. We stated in a previous paragraph that an excessive, collateral hyperemnia is one of the most common indications for venesection. This indication is specific for Aconite. If the exudation is completed; if the dyspncea remains nevertheless considerable and out of proportion to the size of the inflamed portion of the lungs; if the sputa are thin, frothy and tinged with a bright-red blood, Aconite is decidedly appropriate and, even if it leaves the infiltration unchanged, relieves the extreme distress of breathing speedily and surely. Aconite is likewise indicated, if the pneumonia progresses by fits and starts, which is very seldom the case under homceopathic treatment. According to our previous remarks, Aconite will very often be indicated in the subsequent course of the disease, if it had been 268 Diseases of the Lungs. treated in the first place with the antiphlogistic apparatus of the Old School. In tubercular pneumonia Aconite has an admirable effect at the commencement of the treatment, the same as in the pneumonia of otherwise perfectly sound individuals. Belladonna is, in our opinion, improperly commended in pneumonia. Toxicological appearances only show a more or less considerable engorgement of the lungs with dark blood. The pathogenesis of Belladonna does not point very strikingly to an inflammatory process in the pulmonary parenchyma, and, in a case of croupous pneumonia, we should find it very difficult to select Belladonna in accordance with its physiological symptoms. On the other hand certain anomalies in the symptomatic appearances of the disease point so unmistakably to Belladonna that no one who is acquainted with the pathogenesis of this drug, can hesitate to prescribe it. These anomalies refer principally to the manner in which other organs have become involved in the pathological process; it is more especially the cerebral hyperemia that points to Belladonna. Inasmuch as Aconite may likewise be required by the same series of symptoms, we establish the following distinctions in favor of Belladonna: A dark-red, bloated and hot face, with evident turgescence of the veins; stupefying headache; drowsiness with delirium; sopor; convulsions. In such cases Belladonna is prescribed on account of the danger that threatens the brain, the pneumonia being left unnoticed for the time. Another series of cases that are frequently adapted to Belladonna, are the pneumonias arising from or accompanying acute bronchitis. In such cases Bronchitis is generally much more dangerous than pneumonia, and it is of importance that the former should be attended to with more particular care. Not unfrequently whole epidemics run a course of this kind, and they generally show typhoid symptoms from the commencement. In the case of very old people Belladonna is usually preferable to Aconite at the outset, likewise in the pneumonias of drunkards. In both kinds the symptoms have generally a typhoid character from the beginning. [During this first stage of hyperenmia, both of the lungs and brain, Veratru?n viride is given with great success. It has been found sufficient in hundreds of cases to effect a radical cure of the disease. I-.] Bryonia alba is, like Aconite, indispensable in Pneumonia. The toxicological appearances described in the Viennese reprovings show that Bryonia is capable of occasioning exudations in the lungs. The pathogenetic symptoms do not furnish one constantly Pneumonia. 269 recurring picture of the disease, but can be made available in various directions. This is evidenced by the different views entertained concerning Bryonia, all of which, however, are founded upon physiological provings. These indicate most commonly an acute pulmonary affection, with violent stitching pains, where pleuritis is manifestly indicated by a variety of secondary symptoms, on which account the remedy is very warmly recommended for pleuro-pneumonia. There are, however, numerous other symptoms which refer to the pleura much less than to the lungs; and it is upon these symptoms together with the general constitutional phenomena that the employment of Bryonia in pneumonia is founded. We find it inexpedient to enumerate the symptoms referring to the homceopathicity of Bryonia in this disease; moreover it is indispensable that such an important remedy should be known and remembered in its integrality. Nor do we deem it necessary to comment upon trivial differences of views in the use of this agent, since most of them harmonize in all the main points. Accordingly Bryonia is particularly indicated after the fever has abated and has no longer a decidedly inflammatory character, whereas the local process has reached its completion and appears to rest. This is the period when red hepatization is fully developed. The patients have passed through the excitement and constant restlessness of the first stage and are lying in a state of exhaustion but quietude; or they are in a condition when it is not quite certain whether the fever may not assume the character of adynamia. The skin now begins to show some moisture, a valuable indication for Bryonia. If Bryonia is given at this period, the inflammation generally runs a rapid and favorable course, and the remedy need not be left off until all the morbid symptoms have disappeared. However, if the resolution of the exudation is too tardy, and delays, may be, beyond the ninth day; if symptoms of a purulent dissolution make their appearance, Bryonia will be of no further use, even if the symptoms should still indicate this drug. In pneumonia running a normal course, such as we have depicted at the commencement of this chapter, we have never had occasion to use another remedy after Bryonia. As regards deviations from the normal course and from the ordinary symptoms, Bryonia is particularly adapted to cases where the tongue is covered with a thick white fur, the stomach is completely inactive and the liver is engorged and somewhat painful. But we have never obtained any good results with this drug when diarrhea was present, which 270 Diseases of the Lungs. we regard as a positive counter-indication. In addition to these statements we have to direct attention to another indication, we mean pneumonia complicated with bronchitis, for which we recommended Belladonna in a previous paragraph. As we said before, pnenmonias of this kind are generally epidemic, with the character of adynamia and typhoid appearances, without, on that account, taking a decidedly unfavorable turn, and are more particularly distinguished by the presence of a marked gastric catarrh. In Hanover we are just now in the midst of such an epidemic, and we become every day more and more convinced by experience what a splendid remedy Bryonia is, which has proved such an indispensable resource to the homceopathic physician in so many other epidemic diseases. If, guided by more recent observations, we have to deny in opposition to IHartmann, that dry and cold weather causes the kind of pneumonia to which Bryonia corresponds, we feel on the other hand bound to give prominence to another of his indications, namely the rheumatic and bruising pains in the muscles of the chest and back. In conclusion we wish to state, as evidence of the healing powers of this drug, that we scarcely ever notice under its administration a copious secretion of the so-called sputa cocta, and that the re-absorption of the infiltration takes place with very little, or perhaps without any expectoration, or, judging from the stand point of pathology, taking place in its most perfect form. Mercurius is one of those remedies that is mruch more recommended than employed in pneumonia; we opine that this is an oversight. It is true an uncomplicated pneumonia has scarcely ever indications pointing to Mercurius; but they occur so much more frequently in complicated cases. We will not endeavor to show that Mercurius causes inflammation of the lungs in the healthy, and what special symptoms point to pneumonia. This can be learned from the Materia Medica. We are acquainted with one mercurial preparation which, in a case of poisoning, caused a fully developed pneumonia, we mean Mercurius corrosivus, to which we desire to call attention, thinking that a similar case may occur some time as a natural disease where this agent may prove curative. If, in addition to the existing physiological symptoms, we consider the whole manner in which Mercury affects the organism, its recommendation as a remedy for pneumonia seems perfectly justified. We cannot, however, agree with Muller, if he assigns Mercurius to the more chronic forms of pneumonia after the dis Pneumonia. 271 ease has run beyond the properly inflammatory stages. The third stage is undoubtedly adapted to Mercurius, but it is not the only one. Muller has the following more special indication for the third stage: The hepathization of a portion of lung continues and the critical sputa are entirely wanting; the cough is dry, not frequent and very rough and fatiguing, with violent irritation and urging to cough; the dyspnoea remains unaltered, the fever is rather continuous and lentescent, with profuse and exhausting sweats, the urine is scanty and dim, the color of the skin sallow, grayish; the patient is troubled with gastrointestinal catarrh. Under these circumstances Mercurius is indicated so much more, if the disease is seated in a scrofulous, or generally dyscrasic organism. Nor can' we agree with Muller when he asserts, in contrasting Mercurius and Sulphur, that the latter is indicated under similar circumstances as Mercurius, if the symptoms are more violent and tumultuous. We will afterwards account for our dissenting opinion. There are two forms of pneumonia where we consider Mercurius as a leading remedy. One is pneumonia complicated with bronchitis. Miller mentions this form; we have quoted his statements in our chapter on influenza, page 185. This form of pneumonia is almost always an epidemic disease; having at this very time had frequent opportunities in this district of testing the curative virtues of Mercurius in an affection of this kind, we cannot deem a short description of our epidemic superfluous. Under the modifying action of a widespread influenza, that is to say of catarrh accompanied by a deep irritation of the nervous system, the nose, larynx and trachea become affected with a slight catarrh which seems quite trifling for a few days; suddenly the fever becomes more violent, the catarrhal secretion ceases, dyspncea sets in, together with a spasmodic, generally nocturnal cough, without any, or with a yellow-green, blood-streaked expectoration; the pulse is upwards of 120; in the case of a lady of upwards of fifty years, the pulse had 150 beats; it is small, has very little resistance, the skin is burning-hot, at times covered with copious perspiration, the tongue is yellow and very soon becomes dry, the sensorium is blunted, there is violent headache, the patient lies in a soporous condition, with light delirium; he has a great desire for cold drinks, after which the cough easily breaks out again. At the same time the patients do not complain of pain, and scarcely ever of pain in the affected side, on which account a. careful exploration is very apt to be neglected. Such an exploration shows extensive hepatization, that 272 Diseases of the Lungs. is to say, complete dulness of sound with rales, and attended with bronchial respiration. This condition resembles typhus to such an extent that we do not wonder at hearing many physicians assert that influenza has changed to typhus. That this affection is of a serious character, is apparent from the fact that under allopathic treatment numerous deaths have taken place within a few weeks, and that even young and robust individuals have succumbed to the epidemic. We three homoeopaths so far have not lost a single patient and, without having had any previous understanding on the subject, we have all of us commenced the treatment with Mercurius as the best and principal remedy. These'favorable results have been obtained in an affection which, in opposition to Miiller's statements, is attended with an exceedingly severe fever. The selection of Mercurius in broncho-pneumonia may be justified by its admirable action in bronchitis; for it cannot be denied that the greatest danger proceeds from this quarter and that, after the removal of the bronchial symptoms, the remaining pneumonia is comparatively insignificant. A third form of pneumonia, which is particularly adapted to Mercurius, is the catarrhal form or lobular pneumonia which has an entirely different meaning from the former. As soon as we have reason, in a case of bronchitis, whooping-cough, etc., to suspect the formation of small foci of exudation, Mercurius will first commend itself to our judgement as a remedial agent, and we shall have before our eyes an image of epidemic influenza, such as has been described in preceding paragraphs. In tubercular pneumonia we have never noticed any good effects from Mercurius. What mercurial preparation deserves a preference, we do not dare to decide. In the present epidemic we use Mercurius solubilis; although we do not object te the Sublimate by way of experiment, yet I-ahnemann's preparation is so excellent in this disease that one hesitates to experiment with any other drug. As regards dose, we have found the third and fourth triturations the most useful; higher attenuations are of no use whatever. Phosphorus. Fleishmann, of Vienna, the passionate advocate of Phosphorus in pneumonia, went so far as to assert that a pneumonia which cannot be cured with Phosphorus, cannot be cured homeopathically. Hie has been bitterly assailed for making this statement; yet we must admit that the period when Phosphorus ought to be administered in pneumonia, can easily be inferred from his arguments. We understand the case as follows. A simple Pneumonia. 273 croupous pneumonia in very many cases runs to a favorable termination without any medicine, and, even if not indicated, Phosphorus, when given in a very small dose, will not interfere with the normal course of the disease; but if deviations from the normal course take place, Phosphorus will most generally prove the correct remedy. We cannot, in this place, discuss the various views concerning this important remedy, and, for particulars, we refer the -eader to Sorge's treatise on Phosphorus, where a full expose of these views may be found. On the other hand, we cannot altogether share the opinions which Sorge has expressed in his brochure. Supported by at least a hundred and fifty cases of pneumonia, not one of which terminated fatally in our hands, we are bound to assign to Phosphorus a much larger sphere of action than Sorge seems willing to allow. Sorge only allows a therapeutic sphere for Phosphorus corresponding to its physiological action upon the lungs as far as this action has been determined by actual experimentation; we fancy, however, that this sort of exclusiveness will compel us to treat many cases of disease without Similia, and it is our decided opinion that practical trials, based upon suggestions derived from the Materia Medica, ought to have great and decisive weight. Among the symptoms of Phosphorus we find but few prominent kinds of pains, except vaguely localized stitches, a more or less marked embarrassment of the respiration, a bloody, mucosanguinolent, or sanguineo-purulent, badly-colored, difficult expectoration, and a decided exacerbation of the symptoms towards evening and during the night. Adding to this the post-mortem results: Severe hypernemia of single lobes, more or less extensive, hepatized portions of the lungs, and, according to Bibra, distinct tuberculization of the exuded fibrin, we are abundantly authorized to believe in the homceopathicity of Phosphorus in pneumonia.. To these local symptoms the general symptoms of Phosphorus have, to be added, these two are mostly full of meaning, but we shall have to leave their more particular examination to the reader's own judgment. Backed by the pathogenetic effects and by numerous practical, indisputable observations at the sick-bed, we recommend Phosphorus in the following more special cases: If pneumonia sets in at the outset with the symptoms of adynamic fever and bears a close resemblance to typhus. Here Aconite would not even be suitable at the beginning of the treatment, Belladonna would do better, and Rhus toxicodendron still better, but even in twenty-four hours the symptoms will change so as to 18 274 Diseases of the Lungs. indicate Phosphorus, but even if the indications for Phosphorus should not be perfectly precise, let no precious time be lost with other medicines. If pneumonia sets in as a partial manifestation of typhus, or if it has to be regarded as the exclusive localization of the typhoid process in the lungs. Pneumonias of this character leave us in doubt whether they are inflammations modified by the ruling typhoid type, or whether they are genuine typhus. We are disposed to incline to the former opinion as long as no signs of abdominal typhus are present. If pneumonia does not set in with the characteristics of genuine typhus, but modified by the ruling epidemic. This condition is mostly met with in pneumonia setting in during epidemic influenza, and in general in all cases of epidemic pneumonia, but we have to observe at the same time that, according to our most recent observations, Phosphorus is so much less appropriate, the more fully and prominently bronchitis co-exists as a complication of the pneumonic inflammation. If, after red hepatization is completed, on the third or fourth day of the disease, the fever increases instead of abating, the prostration becomes very great, the tongue dry, the sensorium blunted; in short, if phenomena set in, which lead us to suspect the supervention of an abnormal course of the disease. If a purulent dissolution of the infiltration is evidently approaching; in such a case Phosphorus is, in our opinion, indicated only during the first twenty-four or forty-eight hours, and is no longer indicated if the suppuration is under full headway. Altogether, under such circunstances, Phosphorus is much less reliable than in the previously-mentioned conditions; but we have to observe that, whenever Phosphorus is employed in proper season, suppuration will scarcely ever take place. If pneumonic infiltration supervenes during the presence of bro:chitis, assuming the form of lobular pneumonia. In such a case, however, Phosphorus is not the principal remedy, at any rate, it should not be given at the outset. If pneumonia is accompanied by marked and threatening hypereinia, together with signs of adynamia, or if, after one lobe has become hepatized, the pneumonic process continues to spread from one portion of the lungs to the next. If pulmonary edema becomes apparent, as manifested by the above described symptoms. It is a very dangerous condition of Pneumonia. 27&5 things and the least significant manifestations of oedema have to be carefully watched. Phosphorus is possessed of extraordinary curative powers against cedema, and it alone is almost always sufficielnt to subdue this complication. If pneumonia attacks tuberculous individuals, it is, with some exceptions, a distinguished remedy. Tuberculosis must not yet have: assumed the form of phthisis, the patients must not manifest any great disposition to hemorrhage, and their strength must not yet have become too much reduced. Among the complications, the presence of intestinal catarrh points very forcibly to Phosphorus. We stated above that this complication leads most easily and speedily to collapse, for which alone Phosphorus is such an excellent remedy. On the other hand, it is our opinion that a prominent gastric catarrh almost counter-indicates' Phosphorus. The very common and sometimes threatening complication with hyperemia of the liver and slight icterus is a decisive indication for Phosphorus. To these indications we have to add a few considerations which are, in our estimation, additional recommendations for Phosphorus. One of them is the patient's age. Neither very young, nor very old individuals are best calculated for the favorable action of Phoshlorus, nor are individuals with exhausted constitutions; robust, middle-aged persons are most susceptible to the restorative action of this agent. We should never employ Phosphorus in pneumonia running the above-described normal course; but the patient should be visited at least twice a day, for the symptoms sometimes undergo a most remarkable change in twelve hours, and the right period when Phosphorus ought to be given, is easily missed. If pneumonia is complicated with a higher grade of pleuritis (for it is almost always associated with some of the lighter grades of this disease), Phosphorus is, in our opinion, much less appropriate than other remedies, and we feel unable to accede to the opinion of some homceopatic practitioners who regard Phosphorus as peculiarly suitable to pleuritis. In the third stage, Phosphorus is apparently appropriate, but we deem it proper at this stage to recommend other remedies more urgently. In chronic pneumonia we have never seen Phosphorus do any good. Regarding the dose, we desire to state that we have never seen an aggravation caused by ten or tweve drops of the third attenuation in two ounces of water, given in dessertspoonful-doses; but that the second attenuation is very easily succeeded by the production of primary symptoms, especially 276 Diseases of the Lungs. an increase of hyperemia, even hemorrhage, more particularly in the case of tuberculous individuals. As far as higher attenuations are concerned, we confess that we have never witnessed any effects from any above the sixth. [Some years ago we had an opportunity of witnessing avery beautiful and striking effect of Phosphorus. Some time during the summer, late in the evening, we were summoned by a farmer who complained of a severe stitch in the side. The patient was of a consumptive habit of body, forty-five years old; we found him lying on the sofa, with a high fever, short and panting breathing and a dry, racking cough with very scanty expectoration. It being very late, we made a rather hurried examination, and being satisfied that we had a case of pleuro-pneumonia before us, we prescribed Aconite 2, and left him with the promise of an early morning-visit. Next morning we found our patient worse, if any thing. Fever very high, skin dry, like parchment, complexion very sallow, dull headache, considerable thirst and extreme exhaustion. The cough was no longer dry, but muco-sanguinolent sputa were raised in some quantity. The patient complained of exquisite soreness at one spot in the left lower lobe of the lungs. The balance of the organ seemed to be in a state of hypermmia; percussion still yielded some resonance, very little dulness anywhere, except in the left lobe. Prescribed Bryonia. Saw the patient again in the middle of the day; he was steadily failing. Saw him again in the evening and found him in a state of sopor, grasping at flocks, picking at the bedclothes, and raising profuse quantities of a yellow-green pus having an exceedingly unpleasant odor. The pus was discharged from the first-named sore spot. The soreness now had reached a very high degree; the least pressure upon this spot caused the patient to moan; the cough was very short and the patient seemed to dread it; his tongue looked like parched leather, his complexion bad a dark-brown icteric hue; the delirium was constant, bland; pullse about 140. It was evident that we had a large cavernous abscess before us, and that unless we succeeded in effecting a favorable change very soon, our patient would be a dead man in a very short time. We now put him on Phosphorus 3d trituration. Half an hour after taking the first powder, a favorable change manifested itself. The medicine was continued through the night every hour or whenever the patient should wake. Early in the morning we found him with a moist skin, pulse down to 85, breathing much improved, symptoms of a general resolution apparent, passed water freely, the Pneumonia. 277 urine being thickly cha-ged with decayed mucus; no headache, sputa muco-purulent, without any bad odor; the region of the abscess no longer sensitive, only a little sore but over a smaller surface. Continued the Phosphorus every two hours. In a fortnight after our first visit, the patient was able to resume his labor; every morbid symptom having disappeared. H.] Sulphur. The symptoms which this agent causes in the respiratory organs are too numerous and varied to enable us to detach some of them from the whole list; the remedy has to be studied in its totality, more especially with regard to the respiratory organs for which it is of such extraordinary importance. If Miller says that the writers on sulphur agree in their views concerning the action of this agent, we cannot altogether agree with him, since the existing differences in their opinions are somewhat striking and of essential importance. The importance of this remedy must be our excuse, if we examine some of the details with more minuteness. In the first place and very generally Sulphur is recommended for pneumonias in dyscrasic individuals. Some authors mention psora by name, others undoubtedly had it in their minds. Is the existence of psora founded in reality? According to our own experience, we cannot admit this, especially in tubercular pneumonia where sulphur exerts curative effects only in very few cases. For this reason we believe with Miiller that the indications for sulphur are chiefly set up a priori, and we cannot forbear taking this opportunity of again calling attention to the unprofitable part that psora has played in Homceopathy. Nor can we give. our assent to the proposition that Sulphur should be given in the third stage when a purulent dissolution of the infiltration is already far advanced. Practical experience is against this proposition which is likewise contradicted by the results obtained in inflammations of other organs, where the completion of a purulent transformation constitutes a positive counter-indication to Sulphur. Hartmann likewise talks of a latent dyscrasia where the apparently best indicated remedies remain without effect; but we would ask how it happens that there are pneumonias almost all of which sometimes act in this manner in the same year among all those that are attacked by this disease? Of what use is it to at once jump at the doctrine of a latent dyscrasia? The same position is occupied by Watzke when he recommends Sulphur in pneumonia consequent upon the suppression or retrocession of an exanthem. With the access of almost any very acute inflammation exanthems disappear almost without an excep 278 Diseases of the Lungs. tion either for a time or for ever, which is of no more imFortance than the cessation of a coryza after the supervention of an inflammatory process. The more serious affection does not tolerate the simultaneous presence of a less serious one. Metastasis under such circumstances cannot be appealed to, nor can a definite influence over the course of the whole disease be determined beforehand. We transcribe Muller's chief indications: In the second and third stages of pneumonia, especially when the inflammation is deep-seated and extensive, Sulphur deserves particular consideration as an independent remedy. If after the removal of the first vascular excitement which generally results from the supervention of the exudation, an exacerbation of the febrile and other symptoms sets in again ~after the lapse of one to three days, as is frequently noticed in cases where no dispersion takes place, and the disease runs its course through the second and third stages, Sulphur is best calculated to meet this exacerbation, if characterized by vascular excitement, dyspnea and intensity of the thoracic symptoms, and not by the so-called nervous symptoms, for which Phosphorus, Bellado onaf, Bryonia, ulus toxicodendron and other remedies are indicated. Ience Sulphur must be indicated by extensive hepatization and suppuration (second and third stage) where not the nervous, but the synochal syrptoms prevail, resembling those that indicate Aconite in the first stage of the disease. VWhat we have to object to Muiller's views is that we do not believe Sulphur ever meets synochal febrile symptoms. If we advance our own views concerning the indications for Sulphur, it is not so much in the expectation of uttering anything new, but of uniting existing opinions in one general series. In our opinion Sulphur is indicated, if pneumonia passes through its first two stages without any great deviations from the normal course, or without any striking changes, and then remains stationary without the supervention of any typhoid symptoms, such as occur in pneumonias to which Phosphorus is specially adapted. It is a period of anxious expectation to a physician, because he cannot decide whether re-absorption or a purulent dissolution of the exudation will take place. The patients do not seem extremely ill, the fever may be intense or may have commenced to abate; in this condition the disease has often continued for weeks. This is most frequently observed in penumonias treated with venesections. Now is the period for the exhibition of Sulphur, and it is astonishing with what magical rapidity the organic reaction is sometimes kindled by this agent. It makes no difference whether Pneumonia. 279 the individual is otherwise diseased or not, whether dyscrasias, psora, tubercles are present or not. A deficiency of reaction and a simultaneous absence of such symptoms as point directly to the destruction of the organic powers, constitute in our opinion the best indications for Sulphur. But if suppuration has really set in, we feel disposed to doubt the curative virtues of Sulphur. The same relation obtains in chronic pneumonia; if it exists with symptoms of dissolution, Sulphur is most commonly capable of super-inducing the re-absorption of the atonic exudation, whereas in pulmonary abscess this remedy is altogether ineffectual. It is, however, conceivable that Sulphur may still have a beneficient effect in purulent decomposition. Suppuration frequently sets in on a limited scale, gradually invading the infiltrated portion of lung, and it is thus conceivable that Sulphur may occasion the normal re-absorption of the remaining firm exudation. From this point of view we agree with Wurmb when he advises not to delay the employment of Sulphur too long. The fifth or sixth day is generally the best time for this medication. After what we have said*, we do not deem it necessary to institute special comparisons between Phosphorus, Mercurius and Sulphur. The relative position of these three remedies can be defined in a few words: All three are only suitable in a second stage; Sulphur in the absence of all signs of reaction; Mercurius, if there is a good deal of vascular excitement, and Phosphorus, if the reaction is excessive, and is necessarily followed by adynamia. Tartarus stibiatus. It is well known what extravagant praise was bestowed, not very long ago, upon this drug as a remedy for pneumonia, and how soon it has been abandoned. These frequent changes in Old-School Therapeutics can only be accounted for by a homcepath who is acquainted with the fact that there are no general but only individual specifics, but that these latter, when applied to a large number of similar cases of disease, are very apt to be regarded as general specifics. Tartar emetic is undoubtedly one of the most important remedies in pneumonia, but only when it deviates from the normal course. We again forbear quoting symptoms and confine ourselves to the well established indications which the symptomns had first suggested. In uncomplicated pneumonia Tartar emetic is scarcely ever indicated in the first stage, not even at the beginning of the second stage. The sphere of action of this drug commences with the resolution of the exudation. If the resolution takes place rapidly, and the re-absorption is slow, the dyspnlcea 280 Diseases of the Lungs. generally becomes quite considerable, because the lungs are unable to remove the copious contents from their cells. If great dyspnoea is present, and a spasmodic cough with expectoration that affords some relief; if the infiltrated portion of lung yields a tympanitic, not altogether empty sound, and loud and coarse rales over a large surface, Tartar emetic will have a fine effect. This termination of pneumonia is generally characterized by a sinking of the temperature with an increased frequency of the pulse, great anxiety and restlessness with copious, cool perspiration, cerebral congestions with a livid or at least a strikingly pallid complexion. In contradistinction to Phosphorus, the indications for Tartar emetic point to a deficient reaction; hence it is more suitable for old people than for vigorous and young persons. We doubt whether this remedy will ever be found appropriate in the stage of purulent dissolution. Among the complications it is particularly bronchitis that points to Tartar emetic. Here we meet most commonly with the above described condition, an excessive crowding of the bronchia, with insufficient ability to remove the secretion. It is this species of pneumonia, which is so apt to set in in an epidemic form, that has given rise to the commendations with which Tartar emetic has been honored as a remedy for pneumonia with unquestionable propriety; for in this kind of pneumonia the remedy displays extraordinary curative powers. It deserves particular attention in the more dangerous forms of bronchitis in the case of children, in pneumonia as a complication of whooping-cough, in pneumonia when supervening during the presence of emphysema. Not ohly by bronchitis, but likewise by an intense catarrh of the stomach is Tartar emetic indicated in pneumonia, and in this respect it may be properly given after Bryonia. We should never lose sight of the fact that when a large quantity of mucus accumulates in the lungs, the expectoration is difficult, but that, when it does take place, great relief is afforded. Regarding the dose, physicians agree most remarkably in the case of this remedy; so far as we know, a higher trituration than the third is not advised by any physician. The second trituration in grain-doses is probably the most appropriate, since it never gives rise to nausea. Hepar sulphuris calcareum. We are amazed that this remedy is so little or rather not at all mentioned in the therapeutics of pneumonia; we would urge physicians to try Hepar in this disease. In making this request we are supported by several really brilliant cures, one of which we will relate very briefly. A boy of six years, Pneumonia. 281 who had enjoyed good health up to that time and was otherwise of a robust constitution, had been treated for pneumonia by an allopathic physician for upwards of eight weeks, without recovering; he was allowed to languish in a diseased condition until a rapidly increasing curvature of the thorax set it. Twenty weeks after the first commencement of the pneumonia, the parents sought our advice. The child was exceedingly emaciated, had a slight hectic fever, was constantly troubled by a sometimes spasmodic cough, with a purulent and fetid expectoration, diarrhoea, loss of appetite. The right side of the thorax had caved in quite considerably, the left was abnormally bulging; on the right side the percussion-sound was perfectly empty, with intense bronchial respiration and slight rales. We diagnosed pleuro-pneumonia of the right side, with absorption of the pleuritic exudation, but continued presence of the pneumonic infiltration in a state of purulent dissolution. After various ineffectual remedies, the child was finally put on Ilepar, 3d trituration, with such excellent success that in eight days already the caving in of the chest was considerably less. In about four weeks the right lung had almost been restored to its normal condition, and the curvature of the thorax had entirely disappeared so that the child now looks perfectly straight and thoroughly sound and healthy. A secondpneumonia, with which the boy was attacked four years after the former, was radically cured in seven days. Since then we have often made use of Hepar and have arrived at the following results: Iepar is preferable to other remedies after the third stage has set in, provided the general symptoms are comparatively mild, a lentescent fever is present and the suppurative process does not extend over a large portion of lung. It will act so much more powerfully the younger and more vigorous the children are. In pneumonia complicated with bronchitis there is scarcely a better remedy after Mercurius than Hepar. The above described case shows that chronic pneumonia is the best sphere for the therapeutic action of Hepar. In a case of pulmonary abscess, Hepar effected a cure as far as the restoration of this patient was possible. Rhus toxicodendron. Mtiller's statements regarding this remedy in his Essay on Pneumonia seem to us so appropriate that we feel called upon to transcribe his remarks: " Hahnemann's recommendation of Rhus tox. as a remedy for the typhus that devastated the hospitals during the war of 1813, and the consequent employment of this remedy in nervous and gastric fevers, and in typhus, seems to have secured for it a predetermined part in the treatment of 282 Diseases of the Lungs. pneumonia. It seems certain that nothing in the present pathogenesis of Rhus entitles this agent to a place among the remedies in the ordinary pneumonias of a lighter grade, and that the local chest-symptoms of Rhus have scarcely any relationship to this disease. What stamps it a remedy for pneumonia, are its general typhoid symptoms arising from a depression of the cerebral functions. These symptoms are undoubtedly very marked, placing the drug ahead of Belladonna and Bryonia, assigning it even a place by the side of Phosphorus and Arsenicur. Since these nervous symptoms occur in all three stages of pneumonia, Rhus need not be rigorously assigned to a definite stage, although the typhoid depression of the sensorium, as manifested by the symptoms of Rhus, is more particularly a characteristic of the later stages, and may not so much result from an obstructed circulation as from a deterioration of the blood in consequence of the purulent dissolution of the exudation and other causes; on which account Rhus may be nore adapted to this stage, whereas Belladonna and perhaps Bryonia correspond rather to the cerebral symptoms occasioned by simple stagnations in the circulation and by cerebral congestions. Among the symptoms indicating Rhus, the following would, therefore, be the most characteristic: Loss of strength, sopor, hardness of hearing, subsultus tendinunm, unconscious discharge of stool and urine, dryness and heat of the skin, dry, hard and sooty tongue. (Why Dr. Wurmb does not expect any marked effects from Rhus or any other remedy in purulent infiltration of the lungs, is difficult to comprehend; at any rate, this condition of the lungs does not legitimate doubts any more than any other condition; he seems to regard this stage as more unfavorable and dangerous than it really is, nor does he seem to consider that in every case of pneumonia, which is not cut short in the first stage, a purulent decomposition and resolution is the normal and almost the only favorable course.) Among the local symptoms one at least seems to deserve a more prominent place, it is a dyspncea peculiar to Rhus and occasioned by distention of the pit of the stomach; however, even in this respect, it will only compete with other remedies, especially with Nux vomica and Phosphorus. Kreussler's recommendation of Rhus in case miliaria break out, attended with a general aggravation of the whole condition of the patient, is in our opinion, founded in nothing else than the marked tendency inherent in Rhus to cause exanthems, some of which resemble miliaria; nor can it be denied that it is in pneumonias complicated with miliaria, that the above Pneumonia. 283 described nervous symptoms are most apt to prevail. Rhus might likewise be principally recommended for pneumonia occasioned by exposure to wet and cold, provided the power of Rhus to cure such catarrhal diseases, and which is now generally believed in, had a sure basis; it is evident, however, that this view has not been suggested by physiological experimentation, but rests upon an empirical basis; moreover, the definition of catarrhal disease is evidently too vague and indefinite to deserve very serious consideration. It might be replied that the reputation of Arnica in contusions has no better foundation; but here the case is a very different one. The virtue of Arnica in removing the consequences of contusions and blows, is not the result of empiricism, but a knowledge thereof has been obtained by physiological provings and could not have been obtained but for the circumstance that the symptoms occasioned by external injuries, are definite and fixed in their characteristic manifestations, and that their correspondence with drug-symptoms can very readily be established. The consequences of a cold, on the contrary, are not circumscribed within such narrow and precise limits, but are of the most diversified kind and meaning, so that, if we know a cold to be the cause, the connection between cause and effect can readily be suspected, but cannot, as in the other case, be inferred with perfect certainty from the existing symptoms." To this expose we will add a few remarks. When speaking of Phosphorus, we stated that Rhus might be found indicated above every other remedy in cases of pneumonia setting in from the commencement with adynamic fever. We repeat this statement in this place. If in the first two days the diagnosis wavers between typhus and pneumonia; if the local process commences at the outset as if modified by a general deterioration of the mass of blood, Rhus will be found indicated, although, we have never seen the disease cut short by this remedy. In pneumotyphus Rhus ranks next to Phosphorus to which it may even be regarded as superior. Whereas Phosphorus is less adapted to pneumonia complicated with bronchitis, Rhus, on the contrary, is in its place in such circumstances, as we have latterly learned to know from abundant experience. Bronchitis is attended with a scanty secretion of mucus, it precedes pneumonia by a few days; the pneumonia itself supervenes almost imperceptibly and is only recognized by the increasing dyspncea which becomes unbearable by exposure to stove-heat, and is accompanied by a characteristic dry and tormenting cough, by which sleep is disturbed particularly after midnight. As a rule, attention had better 284 Diseases of the Lungs. be paid to Rhus in epidemic pneumonia where it often renders excellent service. Arnica. The value of this medicine has in some respects been impaired for having been so universally accepted as a remedy for the consequences of contusions and other mechanical injuries. Its use has almost been confined to this range, as the use of Aconite has been limited to inflammatory fever. But if our provings reveal such a. decided, and we might almost say such a specific relation to definite organs, and more especially to the lungs, we must suppose that Arnica will prove an excellent remedy in pneumonia. In the. first place, then, in pneumonia this remedy deserves a preference over any other in all cases where the disease is occasioned by mechanical injuries. We likewise recommend Arnica in cases where the pneumonic infiltration is associated with a marked tendency to hemorrhage. This coincidence generally occurs only in the case of plethoric individuals with sensitive and irritable nerves, for which Arnica is said to be preeminently suitable, and in whom the blood has undergone a peculiar alteration resembling the alteration in typhuls, for which Arnica, if the results obtained by our provings can be accepted as reliable, is likewise a proper remedy as long as the strength of the patient is not in a sinking condition. Under these circumstances it competes with Belladonna, for Arnica has likewise symptoms of marked cerebral congestion. For this reason we commend Arnica in cases of pneumonia complicated with symptoms of meningitis. The first stage furnishes the most characteristic indications for Arnica; the second stage, and still less the third will scarcely ever afford a suitable sphere for a display of the curative virtues of this drug. China will never be found suitable in pneumonia without any decided deviations; it may often be indicated for some of these deviations, but more on account of its general effect upon the organism, as on account of its specific action upon the lungs. Its recommendation for bilious pneumonia is suggested by theory rather than founded upon practical results; a slight degree of icterus is such an ordinary accompaniment of severe pneumonias that it cannot be regarded as an important complication; and if the stagnation in the liver is more considerable when the right lung is inflamed, the reason is simply because the circulation in the liver is obstructed by the impeded circulation in the lungs; as soon as the pneumonic infiltration is removed, the hepatic circulation will resume its normal course. To judge from the results obtained by Pneumonia. 285 means of our physiological provings, China is best suited where the course of pneumonia has been interfered with by sanguineous depletion, especially if hectic symptoms have set in with marked prostration of all reaction, or if, during the subsequent course of the disease, the threatening pulmonary symptoms become associated with hypermmia of the liver, icterus, intestinal catarrh, violent distress in the stomach. For this reason China may be ranked among the principal remedies for chronic pneumonia, but its action is of limited extent, and it is scarcely ever the only remedy sufficient to effect a cure. Without doubt it often helps to kindle a reaction which is a necessary preliminary to the curative action of other drugs. Whether intermittent pneumonia can be reached by China, is not yet settled; this recommendation is very much like the OldSchool recommendation of China for all typical or intermittent paroxysms. In pulmonary abscess it can only be depended upon for its general, not for its local symptoms. Carbo vegetabilis. Few remedies in our Materia Medica exert such a marked and energetic action upon the lungs as Carbo; and will still prove efficient even in the most desperate cases. We cannot here transcribe the number of symptoms referring to the respiratory act, but we would urge upon every physician the propriety of making himself thoroughly acquainted with them in the Materia Medica. The general tendency of Carbo is to extinguish the reactive energies of the organism and to develop, at the same time, a tendency to decomposition and decay. From this stand-point the relation of Carbo to pneumonia can most easily be explained and accounted for. It is the third or suppurative stage that presents a symptomatic picture for the employment of Charcoal. The patients seem listless, covered with a profuse and cool perspiration, the pulse is very rapid and small, without resistance; the tongue is dry, yet the patients do not seem very thirsty; they pass foul, decaying diarrhceic stools; their breath has a foul odor, decubitus threatens to break out; the respiration is superficial, a loud rattling is heard in the chest, yet, in spite of the distressing cough, the patient does not raise the least particle of any thing. All the symptoms point to incipient paralysis. A bloated countenance, with injection of the facial veins, is a striking indication for Carbo. Such conditions are apt to set in among older people, to whom Carbo is an important remedy generally. If pneumonia assumes a chronic form; if abscess and gangrene set in; if the sputa become fetid and badly colored, no remedy is likely to afford the least help, if Carbo fails us. Of 286 Diseases of the Lungs. course, an immediate improvement must not be expected; the character of the disease renders such a thing impossible. Among the complications, Carbo is indicated by every process that interferes with the pulmonary circulation. Hence, we find it such an excellent remedy in the pneumonia of emphysematous individuals, where it is undoubtedly preferable to Arsenic; likewise in pneumonia complicated with defects of the right heart; and finally in pneumonia where tie inflamed lung is suffering from chronic catarrh. In such cases the chances of a favorable termination are sometimes exclusively confined to the employment of Charcoal. It is likewise excellent in cases of pneumonia complicated with acute bronchitis. In such cases it is principally the dry and spasmodic cough, attended with mucous rales in the chest and occurring chiefly at night, with soreness and a burning pain, that.points to Carbo, and makes it a valuable remedy in the malignant forms of influenza, especially of older people. The resemblance of Carbo to China is very great, extending even to the presence of bilious symptoms; nevertheless, in a given case, the selection is not so very difficult, provided the above-described general range of action is kept in view. From Tartar emetic to which Carbo bears likewise a great deal of resemblance, this drug is best distinguished by the circumstance that with Tartar emetic the expectoration is possible and affords relief, whereas Carbo has but a very slight expectoration which, moreover, affords no relief. Lycopodium is recommended by Hartmann, if the patient feels very nervous, without heat in the head or flushes on the face, with circumscribed redness of the cheeks, great weakness, perspiration which does not relieve, redness and dryness of the tongue, frequent urging to cough with a little grayish expectoration which is raised with difficulty, after which the rales in the chest are not diminished in the least, and the dyspncea is very striking. These symptoms seem to us very vague, and we doubt whether such a group has ever been seen in practice. Adding to the above the statements of other physicians, we assert that Lycopodium is only suitable in pneumonia after the acute symptoms have all passed away, whereas hectic symptoms have taken their place. Hence Lycopodium is very closely related to Carbo veget., even the local drug-symptoms are very much alike. As distinctive signs we point out under Lycopodium a deficiency of the symptoms denoting a general decomposition, the absence of colliquative symptoms ih other organs, especially in the intestinal canal, and the absence or Pneumonia. 287 lesser degrees of passive congestion, and finally the copious expectoration which affords no relief. In pulmonary abscess Lycopodium may be tried, but it is not a leading remedy. Regarding Opium, Miiller, after quoting the scanty, literary material, has the following: "Despite the poverty of the homceopathic literature, Opium can be assigned a place in pneumonia with tolerable certainty. Excluding all acute inflammatory conditions of the lungs, Opium can be given with great success for paroxysmal obstructions of the respiration and for suffocative paroxysms that are occasioned by various disturbances of the pulmonary and cardiac functions (hence also in the course of a pneumonia where no resolution has taken place,) as well as when general cerebro-spinal affections are complained of. The following symptoms are especially characteristic: These symptoms originate during, or are aggravated by sleep; absence of pain, except a constrictive sensation on the chest; labored, rattling respiration, or very slow, almost imperceptible, even suspended breathing; sudden blueness of the face; staring, immovable, half-closed eyes; somnolence before or after an attack; trembling, twitching and jerking about the whole body, or else rigidity of the body, general coolness of the skin; irregular, intermittent pulse, constipation. Many give moreover the following symptoms as indications for Opium: Bad effects of fright and fear, likewise of wine-bibbings and ailments incidental to old age; general insensibility of the nervous system and deficient reaction after certain medicines." We do not consider these indications sufficiently clear and definite to be of much practical use in the treatment of pneumonia; for this reason we add a few detached observations, because we regard Opium as a really important remedy in pneumonia. That Opium causes pneumonic infiltration, is evident from a case of poisoning of a child of three months which is reported by Boyd-Mushet in the Med. Times and Gazette, March 20, 1858. It is remarkable that it is precisely in the case of children that the not simply narcotic effects of Opium are so prominently developed, on which account it is our opinion that it is only in infantile pneumonia that Opium ought to be exhibited, more especially in cases where the pulmonary inflammation is absolutely disguised by symptoms of cerebral congestion and oppression. In such cases the similarity between the pathological group of symptoms and those of poisoning by Opium is exceedingly great. Particular attention is due to the cyanotic color of the upper parts of the body with a slow, stertorous respiration which must evidently be regarded as a 288 Diseases of the Lungs. sign of paralysis proceeding from the brain. In old age a similar picture of pneumonia is not unfrequently met with. In general we account for the well-founded recommendation of Opium in cases where all medicines are ineffectual and where considerable cerebral symptoms are generally present, by the circumstance that the medicine brings the central nervous system back again to its normal activity and consequently secures a normal reaction. In the pneumonia and in many other diseases of drunkards the excellence of Opium is accounted for by a similar train of argumentation. It now remains for us to mention a few remedies that have been recommended for pneumonia, but have neither been made use of very frequently, nor are they to be regarded as genuine and radical curative agents in this disease. Nux vomica is not by any means an important remedy for pneumonia. This is our opinion as well as Muiller's. Although we do not expect to see the therapeutic sphere of every remedial agent that we present as such, specifically marked out by pathologico-anatomical appearances, yet it must indeed seem strange that Nux vomica, of which we possess such a vast number of fatal cases of poisoning, has never yet occasioned a single decided hyperemia, much less infiltration of the lungs. This one circumstance is a positive argument againt the employment of Nux in pneumonia. We do not even find the remedy indicated in pneumonia complicated with bronchitis; for such a bronchitis will greatly differ from that which comes within the curative range of Nux. In the pneumonias of drunkards Nux may influence the general disease, but it is exceedingly doubtful whether the local disease will ever be reached by it. For this reason we cannot recommend INux for practical trials either 6 priori, nor upon the ground of experience. To Pulsatilla the same remarks apply as to Nux. Of late years Pulsatilla has not been employed in pneumonia, and if the former success of this drug in pneumonia is appealed to, we beg leave to suggest that in those days the certainty of spontaneous cures of pneumonia was not nearly as well established as it is now. It is more especially in the pneumonia of ansemic and chlorotic individuals that Pulsatilla is principally recommended; in such cases it is evidently the general spasmodic condition of the organism, not the local affection that has been had in view. Cannabis is considered by IHartmann a very valuable remedy in the subsequent course of the pneumonia, if the disease affects principally the lower portion of the thorax, or is localized in the left Pneumonia. 289 lung; if palpitation of the heart, oppression under the sternum with dull shocks in the region of the heart, frequent singultus, coldness rather than warmth of the whole body, with increasing heat of the face, are complained of as accompanying symptoms. It is in asthenic pneumonias that, according to Hartmann, the remedy deserves particular attention. It seems to us that these indications are not only vague, but useless. The symptoms of Cannabis do not by any means point to an inflammatory process in the lungs, but seem to result from the powerful action of Cannabis upon the heart. The remedy not having been employed to any extent in pneumonia, there do not seem to exist sufficient reasons why its use in this disease should be recommended. Senega, according to its pathogenesis, is to some extent a remedy for pneumonia, but its therapeutic value in this respect is very much diminished by the accompanying remark that the painful sensations which Senega occasions in the thorax, are more particularly felt on the outside. In other respects Senega is particularly adapted to diseases of the respiratory mucous membrane, and, for this reason, to pneumonias complicated with bronchitis. Striking practical results by means of this drug have not yet been published. Hyoscyamus. Toxicological post-mortem appearances determine the relation of this drug to pneumonia better than all its pathogenetic symptoms. The lungs exhibit marked hyperemia,but they are filled with a black, fluid blood, and are infiltrated with serum.. If, in addition to this, we consider that Hyoscyamus has no intense pains and that the cough is more particularly dry and breaks out at night, we have a right to declare that an ordinary pneumonia does not come within the curative range of this agent. On the other hand we consider Iyoscyamus, even with reference to its cerebral symptoms, a valuable remedy in hypostatic pneumonia when supervening during the course of other chronic affections; in pneumonia complicated with typhus; in the pneumonia of old people and when acute. cedema of the lungs sets in. A violent delirium should always direct our attention to Hyoscyamus. As an intercurrent remedy, Hyoscyamus is often admirably useful in a nocturnal, spasmodic, dry cough, such as frequently occurs in pneumonia during the prevalence of influenza. Arsenicum album. HIowsoever much we may be disposed to regard Arsenicum as one of the most prominent remedies for pulmonary affections, yet it does not appear to us that it occupies a prominent 19 290. Diseases: of the. Lungs. rank among the remedies for pneumonia. Among- the large number of toxicological post-mortem appearances, a; decided fibrinous. infiltration of the pulmonary parenchyma has, never been noticed,, but always only a marked hypersemia and. oedema. This circumstance could not possiblyQccur, if Arsenic were possessed. of a specific power to excite an inflammatory action in the lungs.. In; an uncomplicated case of pneumonia we should. therefore never resort; to Arsenic. On the other hand, cases occur where: the. accessory symptoms indicate Arsenic so. thoroughly that they entirely overshadow the fact of pneumonia; in such a case it is not prescribed: as a pneumonic remedy. Wurmb gives the following more specific indications: Rapid and disproportionate prostration; tendency to colliquation and dissolution; marked periodicity of the more prominent. symptoms; aggravation during rest and in. a recumbent. posture, with excessive.restlessness and anxiety,, and prevalence of the burning pain. It is at all events strange that Arsenicum should. be.so seldom mentioned in our literature as a remedy for pneumonia, whence we infer with tolerable certainty that it has. only been: found useful as an intercurrent remedy and not, even then in a very striking manner.. In. our. own. opinion, Arsenic should be resorted to, if gangrene of the lungs develops itself with very marked signs: of reaction; in the pneumonia.of emphysematous patients and when complicated with cardiac.affections;, if oedema of the lungs sets in all at.once, with passive hyperaemia. of the lungs as not.unfrequently occasioned by defects of the right: heart; and. finally in hypostatic pneumonia. Sepia and Silicea. both by their local as well as general: symptoms are important, remedies in excessively slow, purulent, as well as in true chronic pneumonia., The large number of important symptoms does not. permit us to detach the most prominent, from the series. These.drugs, have to be studied.throughout.. We likewise call attention.to Cuprum. which, certainly deserves-more particular attention. in. lentescent. pneunomic conditions. than. has hitherto been devotedto it... We.have the records of a, case..of poisoning by Copper where: an abscess. in. the.. lungs was: found., An. observation of, this kind; should be. treasured' up with so much. more care as. our Materia: Medica, offers. few, if any,. similia. for, such.a disorganization. For the sake of completeness, we mention the names of a:.few. other, remedies..which, so far, as present experience goes,.,are. of subordinate. value:. Squilla,. Zincum metallicum, Acidurn phosphoricum and nitricum,,Kal. i nitricum.and..Iali..carbonicrtm,, Camnhora,.Jodiu;, Pneumonia. 291 Spongia; Digitalis purpurea, and'others. We have often given it as our opinion that too large a number of medicines for one class of diseases produces' confusion and complicates the selection of' a remedy; we have perhaps given too large a number of remedies in the present instance; our excuse must be that we consider pneumonia more-'important than any other disease as affording the best illustration of the efficacy of homceopathic treatment. A condensed review of these remedies may not' be superfluous in order the better to enable the physician in a given case, to hit on the specifically adapted agent; we shall adhere as- closely as possible to the definitions we have presented' at the commencement of' this chapter. In the first stage of pneumonia, Aconite is the chief remedy adapted to a vast majority of all the cases. If severe cerebral congestions are present, Belladonna is indicated together with Aconite (also Veratrum viride). If pneumonia is occasioned by mechanical causes, Arnica is given, which likewise corresponds to a co-existing cerebral hyperaemia. If' the fever assumes from the outset the character of adynamia,.Rhus is preferable, very rarely Phosphorus in the first place. Complications that will be stated by and by, may alter the choice of the remedial agent, so that other remedies may be required at the outset of the disease. In the second stage Bryonia is the most essential remedy as long as the course of the disease remains normal and no exceptional changes set in; it likewise corresponds to the very common but slight co-existing hyperemia of the liver. If, side by side with the infiltration, the congestion continues as collateral hyperemia, Aconite is in its place; in such cases the: alternate use of these two drugs may seem indispensable. If the reabsorption delays without' the general symptoms changing-alarmingly for the worse, Sulphur becomes the most important remedy. If the symptoms assume a typhoid character, Phosphorus should be given at once; in a few: cases Rhus may be indicated. Tartarus stibiatus requires to be given, if the resolution of the infiltration takes place very speedily, but the reabsorption is very slow, and hence it becomes necessary to promote expectoration. If we are called upon at this stage to treatf a pneumonia that had been managed with sanguineous depletions;, Phosphorus, Sulphur and China mray be suitable remedies. In the third stage Phosphorus is commonly-useful only at the commencement, and here competes with Mercurius; Phosphorus; and perhaps also Mercurius, are counter-indicated by excessive 292 Diseases of the Lungs. prostration. The last-named drug may come into play, if the disease exists in dyscrasic, especially in scrofulous individuals. If the suppurative process goes on without any marked febrile symptoms, assuming rather the form of a slowly-progressing hectic condition entirely confined to the lungs, Sulphur is often calculated to bring about a favorable termination; however we place more confidence in Hepar sulphuris. In such circumstances lodium may likewise be prescribed with great propriety. If purulent dissolution takes place, and the whole organism seems to be affected by this change in a threatening manner, China deserves our first consideration, next to which we may compare Lycopodiurm, Sepia and Silicea. Pulmonary abscess, whether acute or chronic, requires the above-named remedies; in a case of chronic abscess, we would likewise depend in some measure upon Carbo vegetabilis and Cuprum. Gangrene of the lungs is always a very threatening change, and a cure can scarcely ever be expected. Carbo veg. and Arsenicum, and perhaps also Lycopodium, are probably the only remedies by means of which a favorable change can be wrought. To what circumstances Terebinthina owes its recommendation for gangrene of the lungs, cannot well be explained from the homceopathic stand-point, this remedy will most probably exert a more specific curative effect when administered by inhalation than when conveyed to the diseased organ by the stomach. On account of their general action more than on account of their special relation to the lungs, the mineral acids, more especially Acidun phosphoricum and nitricum, deserve particular attention during the whole course of the third stage, but only as intercurrent remedies. The following constitute particular forms of pneumonia with reference to the circumstances which either occasion or accompany the attack, although they cannot be considered as complications. Pneumonia of children assumes most commonly the form of lobular pneumonia, the more so the younger the individuals. In simple croupous pneumonia no other remedies are required than in the case of adults, although we would call attention to two remedies in such cases, namely Mercurius and Opium. The former is rarely suitable for adults in the second stage, on the contrary, it is often serviceable to children and is usually preferable to Bryonia. Opium is a very excellent remedy for the severe cerebral hyperoemia with which children are so often attacked. This condition of the brain very often makes Belladonna superior to Aconite even at the beginning of the pneumonia. Very seldom the symptoms in the case of Pneumonia. 293 children will point to Phosphorus which is aptly replaced by Mlercurius or even by Iepar sulphuris. As a general rule, a simple uncomplicated pneumonia is neither a very important nor a very dangerous disease to the infantile organism; but it can easily be made so, especially by sanguineous depletions and cathartics. In the case of children the momentary effect of a debilitating treatment is greater; in the case of adults it is less instantaneous than persistent. In old age pneumonia is almost always associated with catarrh of the bronchia, and hence much more dangerous. Simple pneumonia not unfrequently sets in with symptoms that call for Belladonna rather than Aconite; sometimes Bryonia is indicated. by the symptoms from the very beginning. Here too the co-existing cerebral symptoms often call for Opium and fyosciamtus. The reabsorption is usually trifling; a crisis generally takes place by copious expectoration, and although Sulphur may be perfectly appropriate for a few days, the copious, but difficult expectoration requires without any further delay the exhibition of Tartar emetic, or Carbo vegetabilis or Lycopodium, also Baryta. WAe would not advise Phosphorus for the reason that all signs of an excessive reaction are wanting. The greatest danger to old people is the acute cedema and the paralysis of the lungs by which the cedema is often speedily followed. In order to obviate this event, the patient should be put on a nourishing diet and have a little stimulating wine given him, whatever the antiphlogistic theory may say against it. As far as medicines are concerned, help may be expected from Tartar emetic, Arsenicum, Digitalis, perhaps also from liyoscyamus and Squills; even Veratrum album may have to be used in some cases. As a measure of precaution, which is of great importance to the patient, he should not be allowed to remain lying on his back too long at a time, but should be directed to change his position quite frequently, and to keep the upper part of his body in a more or less vertical posture, lest hypostasis shouJd set in, which might otherwise easily occur. Hypostatic pneumonia cannot, properly speaking, be regarded as inflammation; it represents a peculiar hyperaemia of the lungs depending upon a paralytic weakness of the circulatory and respiratory organs. It only occurs as a part of other pathological conditions, on which account no special treatment can be assigned to it. Lobular pneumonia is likewise a co-existing and very serious 294 Diseases of the Lungs. complication of bronchitis, not an idiopathic affection, and it is still more difficult to point out for tit a treatment based upon experience, for the reason that we.are not in the possession of any means for obtaining.an exact diagnosis. Knowing, however, that whooping-cough easily leads to lobular pheurnonia, and the results of our treatment being uncommonly satisfactory,.we may assert with good reason that we possess real remedies for.this daugerous disease which will prove efficient in cases that did not originate in whooping-cough. If lobular pneumonia sets in with a.decisive increase of the fever, or with a more violent fever generally, Belladonna will very often be found ssuitable, but still more frequently Xereurius. If the signs of cerebral hypersemia prevail, we have in Opium.a remedy that indeed.does not cause the whole process to retrograde, but exerts an exceedingly curative influence by'preparing the road for other more direct remedial agents. Ipecacuanha should be mentioned here side byside with Opium, because it likewise causes marked.hyperemia of the brain, but not sufficiently violent to cause sopor:; convulsions, an.exceedingly spasmodic cough with suffocative,paroxysms and asthmatic complaints which even remain after the cough; loud:mucous rales'in the chest, coldness of the.extremities and heat of the head are the chief indications. Still.more important for this kind iof pneumonia is Veratrum album, a remedy which, in the form of,an alkaloid Veratrine, has found grace even iin the Old School. Its most essential indications are: dyspncea with slight rattling of mucus,, dry and.spasmodic cough;accompanied by marked cerebral congestions, a hurried and small pulse, cold skin and cold sweat, together with excessive debility. This group of symptoms may sometimes require the use of Veratrum album in croupous pneumonia. Moreover Phosphorus, Tartar emetic,.lyoscyamus and Cuprum deserve to be mentioned in this place,; in general, all the medicines that have been named under,bronchitis, deserve attention in lobular pneumonia. The consecutive.diseases have to be regarded with special care..,Arapid termination in recovery is comparatively rare in lobular pneumonia; the patients yemain feeble for a long time, hack.a good deal or have. to pass through frequent and severe paroxysms of cough.; the assimilating functions are sufferiing, although diarrhoea need not necessarily be -present;.physical exploration reveals more or less distinctly a icatarrhal condition of the most delicate bronch:ial ram1ifications. In such a ease it would be a decided mistake to leave the further.course of the disease to Nature, as it is -perfee.tly proper to do with Pneumonia. 295 the remains.of most other acute affections. In such cases Sul-:phur shows an extraordinary persistence of:penetrating action; we advise, however, the use of high attenuations at protracted *intervals. This action of Sulphur is most easily accounted Tfor'by the supposition, that the pneumonic.exudation which, as was said above, takes place progressively from one portion of lung to the next adjoining, still exists either entirely or iin part, keeping up the patient's illness, and that it is this exudation which iis reabsorbed'by the aid of this drug. Calcarea earbonica likewise'has often -a very excellent effect in this protracted course of the disease, especially,if slight febrile motions or even hectic fever with intestinal catarrh;supervene, or if infantile organisms are attadked. As for RHepar sul2phuris we have not yet had:an -opportunity of trying this remedy in a pathological condition of this kind, but we deem it essentially,adapted to it.and worthy of a-trial. We shall discuss typhoid pneumonia when we come to'treat of:the'typhoid process generally. Typhoid pneumonia is a partial manifestation of typhus, scarcely ever an idiopathic disease. The inflammatory processes in the lungs depending upon tuberculosis will likewise be discussed in the chapter on tuberculosis. T;he pneumonia of drunkards is almost always characterized by.peculiar.phenomena depending upon sympathetic cerebral and,ca-rdiac irritation and a deficiency of reactive power. The cerebral symptoms mostly point:to Opium, much less frequently to Nux vomica. In the second stage Tarta'rus emeticus occupies a prominent part, Phosphorus is less frequently useful, although it might seem so reasoning -from analogy in other forms of pneumonia. If Tartar emetic is ineffectual,'arbo veget.:may still be of eminent use. Belladonna and Hyoscyamus are on;a par with Opium, whereas.Digitalis and BJhus deserve our commendation in the second stage. Regarding Ammnonium carbonicumn we have no experience of our own to offer, but we consider this medicine worthy of a trial. Sulphur will be found of little use in this form of'pneumonia, whereas Arsenicumn album may render good service in the same circumstances *that we have pointed out for Sullphur in sirple pneumonia. [Can-:nabis sativa and the _Bromide of Potassiaum may be important remedies in this form of pneumonia..H.] Epidemic pneumonia either presents a characteristic group of symptoms, or else it has the peculiarity of not yielding to remedies that are apparently the most suitable, and of seeming disposed to.run a perverse course. In namintg the Adifferent'remedies we have 296 Diseases of the Lungs. had in many respects regard to these exceptional characteristics. To hit the right remedy for epidemic pneumonia, the most persevering investigations in the domain of Materia Medica will often be found indispensable. According to present experience, Bryonia, Rhus, Belladonna, Ml rcurius, Hepar sulphuris, Phosphorus and Tartar emetic are the medicines that we shall have first to select from in epidemic pneumonia. It is more particularly the complications of pneumonia that render the treatment difficult and the result doubtful. They determine in a great measure the selection of the remedy, and, on the other hand, present great difficulties in finding the true remedy for the reason that they often present a very confused group of symptoms. The most important complications are the following: Pleuritis of a higher grade of course complicates the course of pneumonia in an eminent degree, in the first place because of itself it is a severe affection, and in the second place because it interferes with the process of reabsorption in the lungs. We shall refer to this complication when treating of pleuritis. Bronchitis as a complication is perhaps equally important as pleuritis, and requires a more careful selection of the remedy than pneumonia itself; for a normal course of this disease can only be expected after the bronchitis has been moderated. In selecting a remedy, those have to be considered first that are suitable to both affections at once, but more particularly to the catarrhal process. From the reasons stated, and from our remarks concerning Aconite in the chapter on bronchitis, we shall commonly find that this medicine, which is such an excellent remedy for pneumonia, is generally ineffectual in pneumonia complicated with bronchitis. H-ence we consider the very usual recommendation of Aconite as a remedy against the totality of the febrile motions as unfounded, and, in our opinion, its employment would imply a loss of time,,without being of any advantage to the disease. At the commencement of the disease, the best medicine to be prescribed, is Belladonna, less frequently Mercurius. It is impossible to indicate characteristic distinctions of both remedies, for the reason that both have too many points of resemblance. In a given case these distinctions can be pointed out with more facility. A few valuable symptoms are: violent, remitting fever with sweat, for Belladonna; remitting fever with profuse, strong-smelling perspiration, mingled with creeping chills, for Mercurius. The latter has a thickly-coated tongue, the former a thickly-coated tongue, with free borders. Mer Pneumonia. 297 curius has intestinal catarrh, Belladonna constipation. Belladonna can only be employed for a few days, especially in the case of adults, whereas its use can be continued longer in the case of children. After Belladonna, Bryonia is generally suitable, which, in this complication, is undoubtedly one of the most important remedies. Mercurius sometimes corresponds alone with the course of this pathological process, especially in the case of adults, until nothing remains to be done but to accelerate the reabsorption of the pneumonic infiltration. For such a purpose, remedies like Sulphur and elepar sulphuris will have to be chosen, one of which, we mean Hepar, is eminently serviceable. Rhus toxicodendron is particularly useful, if the catarrh is dry, and malignant fever-symptoms manifest themselves. The indications for Tartar emetic have been given above; it is only in rare cases that this remedy will be found indicated at an early stage, it is more commonly indicated in the subsequent course of the disease. This is likewise true with regard to Carbo veget. Of other remedies that may come into play, we mention Nux vomica, Hyoscyamus, and Senega, perhaps also Pulsatilla and Veratrum. Chronic bronchitis and emphysema as complications of pneumonia are no less dangerous than acute Bronchitis. Previous to the acute attack setting in, the respiratory movements had become very much embarrassed, and these embarrassments are enhanced by the access of pneumonia, since the habitual expectoration of mucus is most commonly suspended as soon as the pneumonia commences. At the outset of such inflammations, if the fever is very acute, Bryonia and Mercurius are indispensable; Rhus will rarely ever appear suitable. Sometimes the symptoms indicate Tartar emetic from the start, or at any rate in one or two days; in affections of this kind, Tartar emetic often renders eminent service, provided the practitioner is not afraid of giving a sufficiently large dose. We have always found the second trituration necessary but sufficient. Veratrum album deserves attention in such a case, especially if marked cerebral symptoms are present, together with a rapid sinking of strength and marked febrile motions, the pulse being at the same time very changing. Phosphorus, which often seems indicated in such pneumonias, as well as Sulphur, will scarcely ever be of much use. In the further course of the disease, whether it shows a very slow and gradually progressing improvement or else an aggravation of the symptoms, Carbo veget. is a medicine of great importance which sometimes afords help even in desperate 298 Diseases of the Lungs. cases. IBut not:too much must be expected in a short time, because the.course of the disease is always verymuch'protracted. LZycop.odium may come into;play, although we cannot recommend it.fr.om npersonal experienceo.Nor,have we derived much benefit from the use of.Arsenicurm "Which -apparently seems indicated in such cases,; at any rate it is much inferior to Carbo..The tardy. reabsorption of the infiltration is not specially accelerated by.Sulphur, probably because the'conditions are wanting w-xhich favor the action,of this drug, namely a sufficiency of reactive (power and a free action of the remaining respi ratory channels;; )Siicea, on the contrary, promnotes the course of the disease in a striling manner. If the symptoms of passive h.yperamia.of -the'brain -are -very marked, the most prominent.remedy is Digitalis which may have to.b.e given at the commencement as well as a.t any other period in the course of the disease; it either removes or moderates the threatening symptoms of an imperfect returni of blood from the brain. If pneumonia supervenes during whooping-cough, it.is generally lobular,.and as.such has to be treated with -the same remedies that have been advised for the more malignant forms of this disease..Among them we mention;more particularly Tartarus.stibiatus, Cuprum, rercurius, Veratruwm album, Ipecacuanha. Owing to the uncertainty of diagnosing this pathological complication, it is very'difficult to hit upon the most available remedy. No less malignan't,than lobular pneumonia is croupous pneumonia, if supervening dur-.ing whooping-cough. In such circurmstances the.course of the dis~ease will scarcely ever be normal. Nervous phenomena set in at an early period, the infiltration remains undissolved for a long timee,..and a long il1ness may be expected t1without.doubt,, during -vhich the lives of tthe children are in the greatest danger.;In the case of a-child of eight months, which terminated favorably, Tartar emetie had the best -effect, and next to it;Veratrum -and Ipecacuanha, whereas lfepar sulphuris, Phosphorus., Sulphur, and other medicines apparently had not the;least influence <over the disease. If we ever should have another similar case to treaty, we should give two remedies in alter-nation,l one for the'whoo.ping-cough,,.and the other for the pneumonia. It is true, after the inflammation has.set in, the paroxysms of cough become less frequent and less violentl, but they cause a horrid -distress to the patient and they do -not exert a go.od influence over the'disease. It might be well,.in such'circumstances, to try to subdue the paroxysms.by means of Cuprum. We do not mean to be understood as though we regarded these few Pneumonia. 299.remedies as the only ones.suitable to this complication; they are the only remedies that have done:us any good.in such.cases. Beside,these remedies all those that have been recommended in previous:paragraphs for whooping-cough complicated,with.acute bronchitis,;may have to be employed, and for -the sequelae or secondary diseases.another class.of remedies may come into play,, which it is impossible.to enumerate in this place..Pneumonia complicated with influenza, has to be treated accordLing to the same rules that have been Jlaid down for.epidemic ipneumonia..Cerebral.hy permia is a serious complication, although more freiquently'in appearance than in reality. Most commonly it can only.be regarded as a disturbing symptom. But if,;owing to its inten-,ity, it should develop paralytic plhen(omena,.sopor and,coma, or if the patient is far advanced in.age, this hyperaemia will require.particular attention -and.treatment. Among children it is of much less importance. It has to be treated with Belladonna, Opium, lyos-,;yamus, Veratru m,.Digitalis, Tartarus stibiatus. The first three of these remedies are more suitable for children, the last three for old ipeople. In the acase of these cerebral phenomena we have to.b.careful in.determining whether they originate in pure hyperrmia,,or depend:upon the process going on.in the'lungs, and a conse-.quent alteration of the blood, and, therefore belong to the category.of typhoid snyptoms. In the latter case, quite.different remedies jha-e to be used, such as,: Phosphorus, Mercuri-usR, Rhus tox., and gthers. Sometimes a mistake is not easily avoided, especially mi.eases where the disease had c a typhoid.aharacter from.the beginmiing. The importance of cerebral lhypervemia is likewise to be,ieasured by the locality of the pneumonie process; it is,of much iless.consequence if it arises from an inflammlation of the u;pper lobes, for in such a case it cain be readily.and directly accounted for tby a disordered:circulation, whereas, when th.e lower lobes are in-'flamed, the hyperlemia appears more in the light of an idiopathic ~disease whose connection wvith the fundamental inflamrmation is;not easily explained. Affections of the heart, whether they existed as.lcronic affections previous.to the oc.currence.of pneumonia,, or whether they occur as acute.affections during the course.of pneumonia., constiBtute most threatening complications. If,.chronic affections of the heart are present, the dyspncea is etremely:aggraxiated by their presence., in -active as well as passive hyperaemia of te brtain.sets 300 Diseases of the Lungs. in much more readily, and the resolution of the exudation is much retarded and is rendered much more doubtful by such a complication. The selection of a remedy likewise becomes so much more difficult, since we cannot determine the degree of attention that the heart-symptoms may legitimately claim. Tartarus stibiatus, Digitalis, Veratrum album, Cannabis sativa, Sulphur, correspond most fully with both orders of symptoms; Lycopodium, and Carbo vegetabilis may likewise be included in the list. At all events, such complications render a most thorough investigation of our Materia Medica indispensable. Acute diseases of the heart, if considerably far advanced, constitute very dangerous complications, since they always interfere with the normal course of pneumonia. Of much more importance than that of bronchitis is the treatment of this complication, since the heart-disease has to be removed before the cure of pneumonia can be thought of. We therefore refer the reader to the therapeutics of diseases of the heart. Hepatic hyperemia is a very ordinary accompaniment of pneumonia, and is generally the most severe, if the lower portion of the right lung is affected. On account of the presence of icteric symptoms, a form of pneumonia, termed bilious pneumonia, has been adopted by pathologists; but it is our opinion that hepatic hyperemia is too natural a consequence of an obstructed pulmonary circulation to deserve a very large share of attention. Quite recently we attended a man who had all the symptoms of a violent hepatitis, and yet was in reality attacked with nothing but a pneumonia of the right side. This combination is in the first place met by Belladonna, afterwards _Bryonia, and JMercurius, and finally Phosphorus and China are the most suitable remedies. The hepatic symptoms only require special attention, if the flow of bile is completely suspended and the gastro-intestinal catarrh is kept up and aggravated by this stagnation of the biliary current. Gastro-intestinal catarrh in a higher or lower degree is an almost constant companion of pneumonia. If violent, it contributes greatly towards impressing a typhoid character upon this disease. Gastric catarrh alone is not very important, although the modification of the symptoms superinduced by the catarrh, may render the exhibition of Bryonia or Mercurius, Veratrum or Tartarus emeticus indispensable at the very commencement of the attack. Chronic pneumonia, which we will class in the same category as lentescent pneumonia, has very different symptoms and requires different remedies. If it consists mainly of the pneumonic infiltra Pneumonia. 301 tion, without any other marked morbid manifestations, the consistent use of Sulphur is alone calculated to bring about a cure. But if the infiltration is partially firm and partially dissolving into pus, without the general organism being perceptibly disturbed, we first recommend Hepar sulphuris, and after that Silicea or Sepia; and, in case of great prostration, China or Carbo vegetabilis. A very rapid improvement must not be expected from any of these remedies, on which account hasty changes in their employment must be avoided. Cuprum, Lycopodium and even Arsenicum may come into play, especially if the formation of an abscess threatens. Not one of these remedies, however, is a guarantee of success, and we, therefore, again call attention to the use of compressed air. We have witnessed most strikingly favorable results from the use of compressed air within the space of four weeks, results that would astonish any body who witnesses them. A similarly favorable effect is produced in chronic pneumonia by a sojourn on high mountains. In conclusion we have to devote a few words to diet for the purpose of scattering the prejudices which still prevail in reference to this subject both among physicians and laymen, although, not by any means to the same extent as formerly. Pneumonia being very generally regarded as the result of a cold, the fear of increasing this supposed cold is so great that at the very outset of the attack the windows are hermetically closed, and the patients are not only covered warm, but are kept in an artificial temperature of 650 to 750 Fahr. This shows to what erroneous measures a wrong and arbitrary hypothesis may lead, and how these measures in their turn afford sustenance to the hypothesis. The absurd method of keeping the skin too warm, makes it so sensitive to the least exposure that every draught of air must necessarily cause aggravations in the patient's condition. We cannot warn with sufficient urgency against such management. Let the temperature of the room be kept at an uniform point of 500 to 550 Fahr., rather less than more, and, if this degree of heat has to be reached by keeping a fire in a stove, let a vessel with water be kept on the stove in order that the dryness of the heat may be modified by the vapors ascending from the water. The patient should, moreover, be lightly covered with woollen blankets. This course will render the burning fever-heat more tolerable; at any rate, we enjoy the comforting assurance that the heat has not been unnecessarily increased. A copious perspiration during the course of pneumonia is never an agreeable circumstance. No less censur Gangra-na. Pulmonum. 303 recommence the process- of digestion,. the catarrhal affection: of this organ-must; of course. be made much.worse. than it was in consequence of the pneumonic process;. this conduct is reprehensible and; should by all. meansbe avoided.. The avidity with which children drinkl cold; water during their fever, is abundant evidence that it is: in harmony with the wants of the infantile organism. Special cautions in regard to diet are only required by the. presence of a complicating intestinal catarrh. When the patient may again go' out in the open air; will depend. upon the weather, and likewise upon, the fact, which has to be well ascertained by a careful exploration of the chest, that the pneumonic infiltration is completely reabsorbed. In this respect the superiority of homceopathic treatment is likewise apparent, for it scarcely ever leaves the lungs so sensitive to open air that from its action upon this organ any untoward consequences need be apprehended. 1O.. Gangi'aena' Pulsonuaim G-angrene of the Lungs. (According to Kafka.) [This morbid process is distinguished from other similar processes in the organism by the circumstance that putrefaction associates itself with the death of the mortifying parts. Anatomical, Characteristies. Pathologists distinguish two kinds of gangrene; of the lungs, circumscribed and diffuse gangrene. Circumscribed gangrene occurs most frequently. Detached portions of pulmonary parenchyma of the. size of a hazel or walnut, are transformed into a tough, brown-green, humid, horribly-smelling scurf which: is sharply circumscribed' and surrounded by cedematous tissue. The. sphacelated portion of lung which is at first tolerably firm, soon dissolves into an ichorous fluid. It occurs most frequently at the periphery of the lungs and in.the lower lobes. If a, bronchial trunk opens into the, gangrened portionof lung, the ichor often runs into the. former, causing an intense bronchitis. Gangrened scurfs may likewise form on the pleura., After-softening, the gangrenous ichor runs into the pleural cavity, causing, a severe pleuritis; if the- gangrened portion of lung communicates with a bronchus, pyopneumo-thorax may-result, and, if the vessels become corroded, hemorrhage from the lungs may take place., If 304 Diseases of the Lungs. interstitial pneumonia develops itself round the gangrened scurf, the latter is enclosed in a capsule as it were, and a cicatrix is formed; this termination is exceedingly rare. Diffuse gangrene frequently affects whole lobes of the lungs; the parenchyma forms a decaying, blackish, fetid tissue, which is soaked with a blackish-gray, horridly-smelling ichor. The process is not circumscribed, but extends to the surrounding, cedematous or hepatized parenchyma. If the gangrene invades the pleura, this organ becomes involved in the process of destruction. The patients succumb to constitutional prostration. Metastatic abscesses and embolia in the different organs are not unfrequently the consequences of gangrene. Etiology. Diffuse pulmonary gangrene sets in, although rarely, at the height of pneumonia, if all renewal of the blood and the nutrient process have entirely ceased in the inflamed lungs; pneumonias arising from the clogging up of the air-tubes in consequence of the intrusion of particles of food, are very apt, owing to the putrefaction of these molecules of animal matter, to terminate in gangrene. Circumscribed gangrene of the lungs may be occasioned by sanguineous clots compressing the bronchial arteries; the putrid contents of bronchiectatic caverns may give rise to putrid decomposition of the pulmonary parenchyma. Diffuse gangrene of the lungs in the case of drunkards or of individuals whose constitutions are broken down by misery and starvation; the occurrence of pneumonia in the case of insane persons, without any foreign bodies having become lodged in the bronchia; and gangrene of the lungs setting in in the course of severe asthenic fevers like typhus, measles, smallpox, puerperal fever, etc., are difficult to account for. Symptoms. A characteristic symptom of gangrene of the lungs are the cadaverous, blackish-gray, liquid sputa, and the cadaverous odor of the breath which, in some cases, precedes the sputa for a few days. The stench is often so horrid that neither the patient nor his attendants can bear it. The sputa, like the foul expectoration from bronchiectatic caverns, separate into three layers, namely, a superficial froth, a fluid, middle layer, and a thicker sediment at the bottom. The sputa contain elastic fibres, dark-brown masses resembling tinder, with a blackish tint, and soft plugs containing fat-acicule. Diffuse gangrene in consequence of pneumonia manifests itself Gangrsena Pulmonum. 305 by sudden collapse, a high degree of debility, a small and- irregular pulse, and by cerebral symptoms, with which phenomena the characteristic sputa and respiration soon become associated. If diffuse gangrene sets in without pneumonia, we perceive from the start symlptoms of adynamia resembling the phenomena that generally.accompany septicemia with chills, stupor, delirium, singultus, etc. Circumscribed gangrene sonfetirnes cannot be recognized until the gangrenous ichor has passed into the bronchia and is expelled by the mouth. Some patients bear this severe disease without much distress; their constitutional condition is not very much disturbed; they have no fever, walk about, attend to some light, domestic employment, and the disease often drags along for months. If the gangrened portion of lung does not communicate with a bronchus, and has become isolated as within a capsule in conse-.quenee of secondary inflammation, the cadaverous odor may be altogether wanting. To infer the presence of pulmonary gangrene alone from the cadaverous odor, would be an exceedingly superficial mode of ieasoning, since this symptom may likewise occur in bronchiectasia and when tubercular caverns are present. The physical signs during this morbid process are not very important. In diffuse pulmonary gangrene consequent upon pneumonia, percussion at first yields a dull or tympanitic sound; auscultation reveals indistinct respiratory murmurs or rales; in the subsequent course of the disease percussion reveals cavities in the lungs, the same as in the case of tubercular caverns, and auscultation reveals bronchial respiration and cavernous sounds. Circumscribed gangrene is very difficult to recognize by physical exploration. Course, Termination, Prognosis. As has already been stated, even when affected with circumscribed gangrene, patients may seem apparently well for a long time, even for months, until hemorrhages set in sooner or later, which exhaust the strength, or else the patients perish in consequence of subsequent asthenia or tabes. However, a radical cure is not impossible; in such a case the fetor of the sputa gradually disappears; they gradually assume a yellow color and a purulent consistence, and, as soon as the gangrenous focus has become encysted, it dries up and the sputa cease.entirely. This favorable termination may set in in consequence of 20 806 Diseases of the Lungs. an acute inflammation, or if the gangrenous process takes place in a bronchiectatic cavity or in some cavern in the pulmonary parenchyma. Pulmonary gangrene arising in consequence of cachectic conditions, by hunger, poverty, misery, long-lasting diseases, etc., is mostly diffuse and almost always terminates fatally. Diffuse gangrene arising from any source, is almost always fatal. Treatment. If, during the course of pneumonia, the patient's breath begins to spread a bad odor, we should at once think of the termination of pneumonia in gangrenous destruction. If large portions of the pulmonary tissue are destroyed, the externally-perceptible signs of this gangrenous decay become apparent, such as: great debility, collapse, delirium, sopor, decubitus, unquenchable thirst, fetid diarrhcea, etc., and death takes place in consequence of utter exhaustion of the vital power. If pulmonary gangrene does not set in with rapidly developing and threatening phenomena; if the gangrene is limited to a definite locality; if the strength of the patient is sufficient to bear up against such a violent attack, and symptoms of adynamic fever set in, we give Arsenicum 6, or China 3 to 6, six, eight or ten drops in half a goblet of water every two hours. If the course is more protracted, Carbo veget. 6, or Camphor 3 to 6, or Kreosoie 3 to 6 may render efficient aid. The last named remedy is likewise useful as an external application for the purpose of neutralizing the fetid odor of the breath and sputa. The horrid odor is likewise said to be neutralized by means of pulverized charcoal scattered in the spittoon; the best neutralizer is probably the Permanganate of Potash. In obstinate cases Secale cornutum 3 to 6 may prove useful, especially if hemorrhage sets in accompanied by collapse, rapid prostration, coldness of the extremities, exhausting diarrhea, delirium, vertigo, sopor. If this remedy does not produce an improvement, Ergotin 1 may be tried, which acts with more power and intensity. Skoda recommends inhalations of turpentine, one drachm to two drachms of hot water, two to four times a day. Niemeyer thinks that these inhalations are only of use if the gangrene sets in in the neighborhood of bronchiectatic caverns. Next to the internal remedies we must not forget suitable dietetic measures. To maintain the general constitution, we have to place the patient upon an invigorating diet and feed him on generous wines, Hock or Claret, good ale, provide for adequate ventilation CEdema Pulmonum, Hydrops Pulmonum. 307 of the sick-room, frequent fumigations with vinegar, purification of the air by means of Chloride of lime or Permanganate of Potash, and sprinkling the bed-linen, floor, etc., with vinegar or a solution of the Chloride of lime, Kreosote or Permanganate of Potassa. H.] it. (Edema Pulmonum, STydrops Pulmonum. (Edema of the Lungs, Dropsy of the Lungs. This consists in a serous transudation into the pulmonary cells and into the finer bronchial ramifications. Anatomical Characteristics. We distinguish an acute, rapidly-developing cedema of the lungs, and a chronic cedema. Sometimes the cedema extends over a large surface, even over both lungs; at times it is merely local, circumscribed. In the acute form of cedema the lungs are very much engorged, the parenchyma is very tense, so that an impression with the finger is at once effaced again; on the cut surface a fine-frothy, reddish or even dark-red, dim and not quite thin serum flows out, containing a good deal of albumen; the air seems to be entirely expelled, and the pulmonary tissue is easily torn. In the chronic form of pulrnrnary cedema the lungs are not in a state of hypersemia, but pale'and tough, an impression with the finger remains; the serum is much less frothy, not at all so in the higher grades of the disease; it is of a yellowish-pale color, fluid, clear and contains but a small portion of albumen. Gradually the air leaves the pulmonary cells altogether; these cells and the fine bronchial ramifications are filled with a serous fluid. On opening the thorax, the cedematous lungs do not collapse, they are puffed up and heavy. The larger the quantity of serum in the cells, the more air is expelled from them. Etiology. CEdema of the lungs is generally only a secondary disease, arising in the course of other morbid processes. Acute cedema, which is also designated as serous pneumonia or hydro-pneumonia, most commonly results from catarrhal fluxions or congestion. It sets in most frequently in the course of acute bronchial catarrhs, bronchial croup, acute exanthemata, such as measles, scarlatina, smallpox, etc., in the course of typhus; pulmonary cedema may set in in consequence of collateral congestion in the course of pneumonia, pleuritis, pneumothorax, emphysema, etc. Chronic cedema of the lungs most commonly develops itself in consequence of passive hyperomia in the course of diseases of the -308 Diseases of the Lungs. left auriculo-ventricular orifice, and hypertrophy of the right heart; in the course of pu'monary tuberculosis, carcinoma of the lungs, Bright's disease, infiltration of the bronchial glands, etc., chronic cedema of the lungs is almost always complicated with cedema of the lower extremities, or with hydrothorax, ascites. In such cases an apparently trivial cause, such as a cold, a physical exertion, a sudden outburst of passion, etc., is sufficient to give rise suddenly to a very general cedema of the lungs of which death may be the speedy result. Acute cedema most frequently sets in during the death-struggle in the most diversified diseases. S2ymptoms. The first important and striking symptom is the dyspncea; it may attain a very high degree, is most commonly. associated with the sensation of an oppressive weight under the sternum which does not abate by any change of position; at the same tinme the expression in the countenance is one of anxiety, and the mobility of the thorax' is less, in consequence of which the patients at times sit up erect, at other times rest on their arms and again stretch their heads forward, in order to facilitate the breathing. The cough is spasmodic, the expectoration is exceedingly profuse, of a frothy-serous consistence, sometimes pale and at other times dark-red; moist rales are heard in the whole chest; cyanosis shows itself first in the face and afterwards on the extremities. Gradually the;sensation of suffocation increases in violence, the expectoration becomes less, the rattling becomes louder and is heard even at a distance; little by little, in consequence of the poisoning of the blood by carbonic acid, the patient becomes soporous, he is no longer able to cough up the sputa, because the muscular apparatus is semi-paralysed; the cough is less frequent, the breathing becomes more and more superficial and shorter. Finally -collapse sets in, the cheeks become livid, a rattling is heard in the trachea, and the patients die of asphyxia. If the cedema is extensive, and the air has been driven out of a large portion of the lungs, the percussion-sound is muffled or tympa.itic; as long as air remains in the cedematous portion, the percussion-sound remains unaltered. The local or circumscribed cedema on percussion frequently yields no alteration of the sound; if the cells are entirely filled with serum, the percussion-sound may be dull and empty; if situated at the apex of the lungs, this condition of the cells may be confounded with tuberculous infiltrations. Auscultation generally reveals all sorts of rales, except conson.n rales, CEdema Pulmonum, Hydrops Pulmonum. 309 The symptoms of acute cedema of the lungs sometimes set in with so much rapidity and violence that one symptom seems to chase the other. If acute cedema sets in in consequence of collateral congestion in portions of lung that had hitherto remained free from the existing pneumonia, pleuritis, etc., new febrile motions generally appear, accompanied by a more or less high grade of dyspncea and fine rales in the recently-inva.ded portions of the lungs which, unless speedily counter-acted, are soon succeeded by the above-described signs of pulmonary cedema. In chronic edemla the above-described symptoms develop themselves much more slowly, and they are variously modified by the primary disease. Generally the cedema is complicated with cedema of the extremities, sexual organs, serous transsudations into the pleura or peritoneum; percussion yields a dull sound in the lower portions of the lungs. Course, Termination, Prognosis. Acute cedema generally develops itself with more or less rapidity, and if the symptoms are very violent, may soon terminate fatally. This is most frequently the case, if henomena of collateral congestion set in during the course of inflammatory processes in the lungs, pleura, heart, etc. This termination was designated by the ancients as apoplexia pulmonum serosa. In such cases the highest degree of dyspncea very speedily develops itself; amid a constantly-increasing anxiety and restlessness the patients soon become cyanotic, cough a great deal, and expectorate a quantity of frothy serum, more or less tinged with blood; suddenly they become quiet; sopor and tracheal rattling set in, and they die very suddenly of asphyxia consequent upon poisoning of the blood by carbonic acid. Chronic cedema of the lungs generally runs a slow course, and often has remissions; sometimes life is suddenly terminated by an acute effusion. It the constitutional vigor is well preserved, chronic cedema can be removed more easily than an acute attack which is generally very dangerous; for this reason the prognosis, as far as danger to life is concerned, is more favorable in a case of chronic than acute cedema. Treatment. In all diseases in the course of which acute pulmonary cedema may set in, the supervention of a sudden dyspncea with a characteristic cough and sputa, deserve our most serious attention. If a more or less violent fever supervenes during the 310 Diseases of the Lungs. dyspncea, we at once give Aconite 3, every quarter of an hour, or every half hour or hour; the result is generally favorable. At any rate the exhibition of this drug secures us the advantage of moderating the violence of the cedema, and giving the physician time to arrange a suitable course of treatment. As soon as fine rIaes are heard, and the dyspncea is increasing, even without any sputa, we give at once Phosphorus 3, continuing this remedy even if a copious frothy serum, tinged with blood, is expectorated. This remedy sometimes has a brilliant effect; often in a few hours the whole trouble is ended. If the cough is strikingly spasmodic, we very soon perceive a bluish color of the lips and tongue; in such a case there is great danger on account of the capillary engorgement that threatens to set in. In such a case we give lpecac. 3; if no improvement has taken place in a few hours, we prescribe Arsenicum 3, or Lachesis 6. We have seen very fine effects from these remedies. If coarse rales are heard over the whole chest; if the characteristic sputa are very copious; if soon after the expulsion of the sputa rales are again heard with equal force and distinctness; if cyanotic phenomena are becoming manifest, and a high degree of dyspncea and suffocative anguish torment the patient, we give Tartarus ernet. 3, or Veratrum 3 every quarter of an hour. The result of these agents is of course very doubtful, on account of the air having already been in a great measure expelled from the cells owing to the vast extent of the cedema. If the strength begins to fail; if the cough grows less and the expectoration is more difficult, we again try Phosphorus which we now use as a restorative. Very frequently Phosphorus induces an increased desire to cough, with more copious expectoration and momentary relief; soon after all the former symptoms set in with more threatening intensity, and the patients are in danger of being suffocated by the mucus. This is the moment when an emetic may produce a marvelously favorable effect. Let not the use of an emetic be delayed until the strength is entirely exhausted and the patients have sunk into a state of sopor. As long as a certain degree of reactive power remains, we need not hesitate to give Ipecacuanha at the rate of five grains per dose, or Emetin, half a grain per dose, every five minutes, until mucus is vomited up in copious quantities, after which many patients begin to improve. As soon as we notice the first signs of drowsiness, we give Ammonium carbonicum 1 to 3; this remedy may prevent poisoning of the blood by carbonic acid. Asthma. 311 A collateral congestion setting in during the course of pneumonia, scarlatina, pleuritis, carditis, etc., may become associated, beside the above-mentioned febrile and catarrhal pneumonia, with such a violent determination of blood to the brain, that cerebral apoplexy may be apprehended. In such,a case we employ Belladonna or Glonoine, [also Veratrum viride in large doses, no less than five drops of the tincture every half hour, H.], together with applications of ice to the head; if these remedies have no sort of effect, we do not hesitate, as a last desperate resort, to bleed the patient. [We do not believe that under the use of Aconite, Belladonna and Veratrum viride, in appropriate doses, the necessity for bleeding will ever occur. H.] If there is insufficiency or stenosis of the mitral valve, we give Pulsatilla or Kali carb. If cedema of the extremities, genital organs, etc., is present, we resort to Arsenicum, Lachesis, Digitalis. For serous effusions in the pleura or peritoneum we give according to the prevailing symptoms Arsenicurm, Helleborus, China, Scilla, Sulphur, [also Apocynum cannabinum, II.], but without much hope of success. II.] 12. Asthma. Under this name so many and such diversified pathological conditions have been comprehended from time immemorial that it would be difficult to write a treatise on this disease corresponding with the definition of asthma entertained by former pathologists. If we omit the various conditions that develop asthmatic phenomena which have not generally the peculiar characteristics of nervous paroxysms, the etiology of asthma can be reduced to the following points: in the first place the affection is purely idiopathic, developing neither any special pathological alterations, nor traceable to any particular exciting causes. The patients are attacked at indefinite, much less frequently at regular periods. Asthma is likewise met with as a partial manifestation of other nervous affections, especially of hysteria and hypochondria, in which case it has likewise to be regarded as a primary afiection occurring in peculiar circumstances. Finally asthma may be caused by topical impressions; we see asthma result with comparative frequency after exposure to Copper, Arsenic, Iodine, Lead, and to the dust of Ipecacuanha. The most heterogeneous circumstances are assigned as the exciting causes of this disease; whether rightly or wrongly is difficult to decide in view of the utter absence of regularity in 312 Diseases of the Lungs. the occurrence of the paroxysms. It is certainly a supposable case that the attacks can be excited by the direct action of irritants upon the lungs, more especially by vapors and dust; but it is strange that this irritation does not seem controlled by any law. Intense emotions are undoubtedly one of the most frequent causes of asthma. Of undeniable influence is the condition of the atmosphere in a thermometrical as well as barometrical point of view; the attacks are most easily excited during a high state of the thermometer and a low state of the barometer. Electricity likewise plays an important part in regard to asthma, for the attacks are very apt to be. excited previous to severe thunder-storms. Regarding a predisposition to asthma, it is certain that the male sex is most liable to it, and that most cases of asthma occur between the age of pubescence and the age of fifty. Constitutional influences seem almost null, thin as well as corpulent, feeble as well as robust individuals being attacked. In many cases we have undeniable evidence of the hereditary character of the disease. Symptoms antd Course. Asthma consists of a series of paroxysms separated from each other by intervals which at first are absolutely free from all symptoms of' the disease. Hence, we have to consider first the paroxysm itself, and subsequently its effect upontthe general organism. The attack either sets in with distinct precursory symptoms, among which great exhaustion and an increasing oppression of breathing are the most common; or else, the attack sets in at once with great violence. It is remarkable, although it cannot be accounted for upon physiological principles, that the attack generally sets in at night, most frequently in the evening, scarcely ever in the day-time. This feature is, however, peculiar to all purely nervous affections, the cause of which may be the circumstance that the activity of the nervous system is constantly increasing towards night. Very often the patients are roused from sleep when the attack sets in like an attack of night-mare. They experience a constrictive sensation on the chest, with inability to draw a long breath; this sensation increases in proportion as the patient makes an effort to overcome it, and often leads to terrible dyspncea during, which he strains every muscle that can aid him in performing the act of respiration. At the commencement of the attack the cervical muscles are put upon the stretch, whereas the thorax is less called into requisition. This is owing to the fact that the expirations are less complete than the inspirations, in consequence of which the Asthma. 13 lungs gradually become filled with air to such an extent that the edge of the liver is felt considerably below its normal line. During the attack percussion yields a normal sound, whereas auscultation reveals before the paroxysm, and always immediately after its access, in the place of the vesicular respiratory murmur, wheezing, hissing, and occasionally rattling sounds, that sometimes are loud enough to be heard at a distance. That the patients look pale and sometimes have a bluish or livid appearance; that a cold perspiration breaks out on them; that the temperature of the skin is lower than usual; that the beats of the heart are much feebler and increase in frequency; and that the urine is frequently discharged involuntarily, is easily accounted for by the extreme dyspncea. After the attack has lasted one to four hours, or even longer, its decrease manifests itself by a return of the vesicular respiratory murmur, and by a diminution of the wheezing and hissing sounds. The sensation of tightness sometimes disappears quite suddenly and at other times very gradually; a cough sets in accompanied by the expectoration of a small quantity of mucus; or violent eructations, or vomiting, with emission of flatulence, may take place, after which the patients often feel well again, except a lassitude that may continue for days. In other cases the paroxysm does not cease altogether, but abates for a longer or shorter period, which remission is again succceeded by a full attack of asthma, until, after several remissions and exacerbations, which may continue for weeks, a complete intermission takes place. The course of such a disease varies according as the paroxysms set in at longer or shorter periods. In proportion as the disease lasts longer, the intermissions become shorter, the paroxysms increase in intensity, and structural changes in the lungs and heart take place which, in their turn, promote the disease. Emphysema, chronic bronchial catarrh, dilatation of the heart are very common results of asthma, which are easily mistaken for causes of the disease. A single paroxysm, no matter how violent, is not of itself dangerous, provided the paroxysm does not develop preexisting conditions of apoplexy into a full attack. In the long run, however, asthma always becomes dangerous in consequence of the lesions which it occasions, and which are so much more certain, the more violent the single paroxysms are. The termination of this affection cannot be determined beforehand. In many cases the paroxysms decrease at a more advanced age and finally disappear altogether; or else, they are replaced by 314 Diseases of the Lungs. pulmonary emphysema and its consequences. It is difficult to promise an early and complete recovery, for the paroxysms recur sometimes after the lapse of years. Death is a very unfrequent termination of this disease. The prognosis, so far as the preservation of life is concerned, is very favorable; as far as a cure is concerned, the result of medical treatment must be considered uncertain. In contrast with Old Physic, which has no remedy for asthma, Homoeopathy call at least boast of having achieved some brilliant results. The treatment has to aim at controlling the present paroxysm and at curing the disease. Respecting the possibility of shortening the paroxysm, it is doubtful whether, in view of the uncertainty how long an attack will last, any medicine can be relied upon for the accomplishment of such a result. If the paroxysms'only last a few hours, it is immaterial whether we give any medicine; as regards paroxysms that have remissions and exacerbations before a complete intermission takes place, it would, of course, be desirable to relieve them. Our own experience compels us, however, to confess that, in this respect, we have no very brilliant results to brag of. The same remedies that seemed to have a good effect in one attack, did nothing at all in the next, although the symptoms seemed precisely the same. If we are called to a case, we give a little medicine to quiet the relatives, but for a cure we depend solely upon the treatment during the intervals. However, in order to avoid the appearance of a purely subjective exclusivism, we will mention some of the remedies that are most commonly used at the beginning of the attack, at the same time referring to the remedies that will be mentioned by and by, and which may likewise be used for a single paroxysm. Belladonna, when the attack is accompanied by congestion of the head and an affection of the larynx, in the case of plethoric individuals, children and females of an irritable disposition. Aconite, in the case of plethoric, active individuals, with severe cerebral hyperaemia, after mental excitement, the face being very much flushed. Chamomilla, when the attack is caused by a severe fit of passion, with flatulence, particularly for paroxysms of hysteric asthma, or for children during the period of dentition. Nux vomica, for attacks caused by nervous excitement, spirits, much eating, hysteria, hypochondria, inhalations of dust, with con Asthma. 315 gestions to the head, distention of the abdomen, especially of the stomach, improvement by a change of position, night-mare; the attack is preceded by signs of congestion of the chest. Pulsatilla, for asthma caused by the vapors of Sulphur, by uremia, menstrual disturbances and hysteria, with copious vomiting of mucus, which affords relief, vertigo, sudden prostration with palpitations of the heart. Moschus, for asthma without cough, with a violent feeling of constriction in the throat as if the glottis were involved in the attack, in the case of hysterical, hypochondriac, irritable individuals. We might extend this list by adding other remedies; but since we believe that the indications for their use are mostly illusory, we will content ourselves with mentioning their bare names. Cannabis, Colchicum, Tartarus stibiatus, Cocculus, Staphysagria, Nux moschata, Veratrum, Opium, Phosphorus, Nitri acidum, etc. Many of these remedies owe their use to the mistaken notion that a catarrh or any other affection of the respiratory organs with asthmatic symptoms is real asthma. The remedies from which most may be expected during the attack itself, are Belladonna, Cannabis, Moschus, and Opium. Opium especially sometimes renders substantial aid without it being necessary to employ large doses on this account. H-orphia, 2d trituration, two or three grains at a dose, exerts a sufficiently powerful effect, and if this dose is not sufficient, the remedy can only do harm. A copious secretion of mucus always counter-indicates Opium. Cannabis likewise only palliates by virtue of its narcotic properties, and hence will have to be given in a more massive dose; this remedy is altogether unreliable. As we said before, we have no great confidence in the use of any remedy during the paroxysm which we compare to an epileptic paroxysm for which very little can be done by treatment. Nevertheless we should not remain idle spectators during an attack, since it is often possible to relieve the patient by all sorts of external applications. It is important, for instance, to regulate the patient's posture. Some people will not allow him to leave his bed; yet it is of great importance and affords great relief to the patient, if every respiratory movement is brought into play, as much as possible, by a change of position. For this reason the lower extremities should not be kept in a horizontal position, but should be placed vertically, and pressed against any object in order to facilitate the action of the dorsal as well as abdominal muscles. All tight clothing should 316 Diseases of the Lungs. be removed; if the patient is in his senses, he attends to this without being told. The temperature of the room must not be kept too low, for the reason that the paroxysm always excites a profuse; perspiration; nor should it be too high, and, above every thing else, the air should be kept sufficiently moist. If we are called to a patient who has had a number of attacks, we shall find that he keeps every thing on hand which, by its direct action upon the lungs, may relieve a paroxysm; nor can it be denied that relief is often procured by such means during one and even several paroxysms. They are generally powerful domestic stimulants, such as the smelling and inhaling of the spirits of Ammonia; inhalations of the spirits of Turpentine or of Camphor evaporated on hot water; the inhalation of the fumes of burnt nitre-paper, feathers and Sulphur. We have tried the last remedy in our own case. That in such cases it is not the specific action of the inhaled substance, but the local stimulation that affords relief, is evident from the circumstance that the effect is only palliative and transitory and that inhalations of Chloroform, which have a direct narcotic effect, are scarcely ever borne by asthmatic individuals. Substances that are used for smoking, constitute another series of remedies. In this case, however, we deal with thoroughly homceopathic remedies, such as Tobacco, Iodine, Stramonium, Ilyoscyamus. Tobacco can, of course, be useful only to persons who do not smoke, ladies, for instance, to whom we recommend for such purposes the small paper-cigarettes used by Russian and Spanish ladies. Smokers, on the contrary, mix the cut leaves of Stramonium or Hyoscyamus with their tobacco, sometimes with surprising effect; or they smoke Iodine-cigarettes. The use of these remedies is justifiable, because they afford relief to the patient, nor should they be discarded until we have better remedies to recommend in their stead. Very often we accomplish our purpose with the inhalation of simple vapors of water. The method of introducing appropriate remedies directly into the respiratory organs by means of an inhaler, has not yet been satisfactorily verified as a superior proceeding. The main-point in the treatment of asthma is to meet the disease in its totality. As a matter of course, the selection of the remedy is not only governed by the symptoms between the paroxysms, but likewise by the paroxysm itself and by the constitution of the patient, and it is this indispensable consideration of so many and such varied conditions that renders the selection of the proper remedy exceedingly difficult. In the subsequent paragraphs we Asthma. 317 only furnish short indications for the selection of the most important remedies, since it is impossible to present these indications with anything like a satisfactory completeness. Arsenicum album is undoubtedly the safest remedy for asthma; it not only corresponds to the simple spasmodic, uncomplicated asthma, but likewise to the secondary forms of asthma which owe their existence to the most diversified affections of a more primary character. Arsenic is even used a great deal in domestic practice and is highly commended by Old School practitioners. This remedy likewise shows very strikingly how the constant physiological effects of a drug can be employed with mathematical certainty as remedial agents when employed according to the law of similarity. In slow arsenical poisonings, asthma always occurs without an exception. We dispense with the enumeration of individual symptoms, since every somewhat violent attack of asthma corresponds to Arsenic. Nor can we particularize the cases where asthma occurs as a mere symptom, since in such cases the selection of the remedy is chiefly determined by the character of the primary affection. We will state, however, that, in the asthmatic paroxysms of tuberculous patients, Arsenic has always left us in the lurch. It is principally indicated by the following symptoms: The paroxysm always sets in towards midnight or shortly after; it seems to be governed by a tolerably fixed type, although asthmatic paroxysms occurring without any typical regularity do not exclude Arsenic; it reaches its acme with unusual rapidity. The more the patients seem on the point of suffocating; the more painful and distressing their restlessness; the more wheezing and louder their respiration, the more Arsenicum will be found appropriate. Accessory circumstances are: sudden access of a high grade of collapse with lividity of the countenance, cold perspiration and a very frequent and small pulse; palpitation of the heart; distension of the abdomen con sequent upon the attack; involuntary emission of the urine; unconquerable dread of death; the paroxysm is excited by changes of temperature, atmospheric influences, talking or laughing, going up stairs. The consequences of the attack remain for a long time, among which excessive debility and nervousness are most prominent. When given during the paroxysm, Arsenic sometimes exerts a magical effect, so that the patients fancy they have received Opium; although Arsenic does not by any means help in every case, yet it had better betried in every case that we are called upon to treat. During the apyrexia, the remedy had better be 818.Diseases of the Lungs. administered at long intervals and in the higher attenuations, although the success which Old School practitioners have obtained with Fowler's solution justifies the conclusion that massive doses are likewise conducive to a cure. The danger is that massive doses may affect the stomach injuriously. Whether Arsenic possesses specific antidotal powers against asthma caused by other metals has not yet been determined. Cuprum is likewise one of the substances which, in cases of slow poisoning, develops asthmatic symptoms. However, it has not proved of such decisive practical value as Arsenic, for the reason that it has not the significant indications of this agent. In our opinion, Cuprum is indicated by the following symptoms: The remedy is suitable to individuals with nervous, irritable, enfeebled constitutions, who are, moreover, disposed to spasms, whereas Arsenic is suitable rather to vigorous and plethoric persons; or it is suitable to children, especially if the paroxysms set in at night, or in consequence of exerting the respiratory organs, as for instance, after a coughing fit; the paroxysm very speedily reaches the acme of its intensity; other muscular bundles are involved in the convulsive attack; the attack is accompanied by a constant hacking, which aggravates the asthma; the attack terminates by vomiting; pallor of the countenance, with cold perspiration. The apyrexia is not perfect, but a slight degree of dyspncea remains, or violent paroxysms of an almost dry cough set in, which likewise end in vomiting. The action of Copper in whooping-cough is evidence of its general adaptation to spasmodic affections of the lungs. We have never known Cuprum to be of any use for the paroxysm itself, so that we now limit the use of this drug exclusively to the intervals between the paroxysms. As regards Plumbum, it has not yet been sufficiently tried either physiologically or practically to present clear indications for its use in asthma. Nevertheless, the affections of workers in lead show that they are very commonly affected with a violent asthma. Upon the whole, it bears great similarity to the copper-asthma, from which it is not so much distinguished by its local as by its general symptoms. We recommend the remedy more especially in the severe paroxysms of tuberculous individuals, and likewise for the form of asthma, which is accompanied at the outset by a profuse accumulation of gas in the bowels. lodium is likewise one of those agents which, among its symptoms of slow poisoning, numbers asthma as one of its constant phe 820 Diseases of the Lungs. adapted to the complicated forms of asthma. We confine ourselves to mentioning their names: Ipecacuanha, Belladonna, Lycopodium, Bovista, Lactma virosa, Bryonia, Pulsatilla. Lobelia inflata is more adapted to emphysema than to asthma. Opium sometimes affords striking benefit in paroxysms that occur during sleep. In a variety of cases we have witnessed remarkably favorable results from the use of Digitaliie. With this remedy alone we have radically cured frequently-recurring paroxysms of asthma of less protracted duration; in inveterate cases all that we have been able to accomplish with this agent, has been to diminish in some cases, although to a considerable extent, the intensity and frequency of the paroxysms. It is, therefore, with a good conscience that we can recommend this medicine for further trials in asthma, provided the following circumstances are kept in view: The asthma is altogether a primary affection, it is the purely nervous form, a genuine spasm of the bronchia; in such a case Digitaline will have the best effect as long as no catarrh, emphysema or structural change of the heart supervenes. Iigitaline is, however, suitable even if these complications exist, to which it is, indeed, preeminently adapted, more especially to structural alterations of the right ventricle. A high degree of sanguineous stasis in the veins of the head, especially a violent throbbing-pressing headache during and after the attack. Palpitations of the heart, especially if the attack is preceded by them. The asthma attacks irritable individuals with weak nerves, more particularly persons who have been guilty of sexual excesses. We do not simply mean persons who had been addicted to self-abuse, for we have known a married man who contracted asthmatic attacks in. consequence of excessive sexual intercourse, and who was decidedly benefitted by Digitaline. The influence of Digitaline over the male sexual organs is extraordinary, and, in thils case, we effected a truly radical cure, as is likewise evident from what we stated when speaking of the diseases of the male sexual organs. The influence of Digitaline over the female sexual organs, especially in its bearing upon the nervous system, is so difficult to define that we are as yet without any decided data regarding this matter. VWe always administer this remedy in the second or third trituration, giving never more than one grain of the former in the morning before breakfast, never at night, for the reason that sleep is generally disturbed by Digitaline. Nor is it necessary to give a dose every day; a dose every two or three days is sufficient. These precautions are important to avoid medicinal 322 Diseases of the Diaphragm. 1. Diaphragmitis, Inflammation of the Diaphragm. [It consists in an inflammation of the serous covering of the diaphragm, either on its thoracic or abdominal side. This inflammation is never an idiopathic disease, but always occurs in the course of pleuritis (pleuritis diaphragmatica), or in the course of peritonitis (peritonitis diaphragmatica). According to the statement of older authors the following phenomena are characteristic of diaphragmitis: continued, violent fever; burning, stinging, tearing and contractive pains all over the diaphragm, the pain encircling the body like a hoop; during an inspiration the pain is felt lower down, during an expiration higher up; it is aggravated by coughing, talking, and by every motion of the patient, rendering a deep inspiration impossible; the breathing is hurried, anxious, superficial; it is performed with the thorax, while the abdominal muscles remain passive; distressing singultus, vomiting of a green substance, great difficulty of swallowing, some-'times hydrophobia, delirium, spasmodic laughter, finally collapse, etc. From the presence of these symptoms in the course of a pleuritis or peritonitis we may conclude that the diaphragm is involved in the inflanmmation. Idiopathic diaphragmitis has not yet been met with. The intensity of the symptoms is generally extreme; a physical exploration yields no result. The course of the disease is generally very acute, the prognosis very unfavorable. The etiology is the same as that of pleuritis or peritonitis. The'treatment is likewise the same as that of pleuritis or peritonitis. It is only if out-of-the-way symptoms exist that they have to be met -by special remedies. The most troublesome symptom is the distressing singultus. For this symptom we recommend Belladonna 3, especially if complicated with difficulty of swallowing, risus sardonicus, delirium and vomiting. If, in a few hours, this remedy does not afford the desired help, we give the Salphate of Atropine 3, or Hyoscyamus 3. Bryonia. 3 is an excellent remedy, if the inflammation proceeds from the pleura and is attended with considerable dyspnea, violent pains during respiration, difficulties of swallowing, cerebral irritation. If the vomiting is a prominent symptom, as is generally the case when peritonitis is present, we resort to Belladonna, A ux vomica,'Veratrum. In obstinate cases we have recourse to Opium. A very disagreeable symptom is the spasmodic laughter, for Singultus, Hiccup. 323 which we recommend: Belladonna, Tlyoscyamus, Ignatia and Cu2rum metallicum 6. 2. Singultus, H]icculp. This is owing to a spasmodic contraction of the diaphragm, during which the air is drawn in through the contracted glottis with a shrill and short sound. The hiccup either originates in the nervous centres, as during a general erethism, neuroses, especially in the case of hysteric and hypochondriac patients; or when accompanying cerebral diseases, such as cerebral anaemia consequent upon long-lasting, exhausting diseases or upon considerable losses of blood and other animal fluids, as well as upon violent psychical impressions, such as fright, anger, etc. Or else, it is simply a reflex-phenomenon, as during diseases of the pleura and pericardium. Consensual singultus may occur during diseases of the stomach, liver, pharynx, intestinal canal, etc. In the case of children it often occurs in consequence of a cold, or acid stomach. Singultus occurring during cerebral ansemia consequent upon chronic diseases, such as carcinoma, Bright's disease, tuberculosis, etc., or upon exhausting diseases, such as typhus, cholera, or upon pleuritis with profuse exudation, likewise upon pericarditis and upon exhausting diarrhcea, is always a very dangerous symptom that may continue for days and finally increase to convulsions. Treatment. A passing hiccup is scarcely ever noticed; only if it lasts too long and becomes too severe, medical treatment may have to be resorted to. In cases of simple hiccup it may be arrested by stopping the breathing for some time, or by drinking a little cold water, by fixing one's attention upon a certain object, such as: holding a key in one's hand, by a systematic crossing of the fingers of both hands; by a sudden surprise, or such domestic remedies as eating a little sugar, magnesia, ice, etc. Infants who have taken cold, have to be warmed, after which they should be put to the breast; if their stomachs are acid, we give them Calcar. 6 or NTux vom. 6; if they are affected with intestinal catarrh, we give them Chamomilla 3, or Rheum 3. A domestic remedy that is frequently made use of, is calcined Mlagnesia, as much as will cover the point of a knife morning and evening. 324 Diseases of the Lungs. In one case, where not one of these remedies would help, a teaspoonful of recently prepared lime-water removed the spasm. If the singultus is intense and lasts a long time, we have to select remedies that correspond to the co-existing pathological conditions or to the exciting cause. For the nervous singultus of hysteric or hypochondriac individuals, we give according to the symptoms: lNux vomica, Ignatia, Belladonna and fyoscyamus, Nux moschata and NTatrum muriaticum. For singultus consequent upon a fit of chagrin, we give: Chamomn., Ignatia, Paulsatilla. For singultus occasioned by diseases of tne stomach and liver: Bryonia, Nux vomica, Pulsat., Natrum muriaticum and Sulphur. For painful singultus caused by inflammation of adjoining organs: Belladonna, Hyoscyamus, Atropine, Opium 1 or 2. In a case of consensual singultus consequent upon spasm of the Esophagus, accompanied by nausea, Veratrum 3 has rendered us good service. We. are much less successful in the selection and use of remedies for singultus occasioned by exhaustion of the vital forces and cerebral anaemia. In such cases we have succeeded in relieving the patient by Ammonium carbon. 3, Phosphorus 3, and in desperate cases by Moschus 1. As external remedies practitioners recommend: laying grated horse-radish upon the epigastrium, dropping ether upon the pit of the stomach, painting this region with the oil of chloroform, one drachm to two drachms of almond-oil, and in desperate cases the inhalation of ether or chloroform. 3. Hernia of the Diaphragm. Accidents of this kind originate in rupture of the diaphragm occasioned by traumatic causes, or in strangulations of the thoracic or abdominal viscera in the natural openings of the diaphragm. They occur more frequently on the left than on the right side. The phenomena in the thoracic range are: dyspncea, cough, pain in the chest, singultus, suffocative paroxysms, fainting fits. ^ On the side of the abdominal organs we notice vomiting, colicky pains, obstinate constipation, sometimes symptoms of ileus. If the strangulation is partial, the symptoms appear slowly and disappear equally slowly. If the constriction is very violent and Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 325 sudden, the symptoms set in with equal violence, and life may be in the greatest danger. The worst symptoms are those of ileus, which we meet with Nux vomica 3 and Opium 1. Tepid baths, and in severe cases frictions or inhalations of Chloroform are excellent adjuvants. H.] D. DISEASES OF THE PLEURA. 1. PleuritisPleleurisy. Inflammation of the Pleura. Inflammatory affections of the pleura are not by any means rare occurrences; yea, the frequent adhesions of the lungs to the thorax revealed by post-mortem examinations, show that pleuritic affections are not only very frequent, but that they run their course unobserved. The more trifling inflammatory phenomena are without any practical value, nor do they ever constitute an object of treatment; for this reason we here treat only of the more acute forms of pleurisy with copious exudation. Pleurisies of this character are scarcely ever really primary diseases; in the majority of cases they are of a secondary nature. The etiology of primary pleuritis is somewhat obscure, unless the disease is caused by some direct and mechanically acting agency. A most frequent cause is said to be a violent cold; but the case is here as in pneumonia, the connection is taken for granted rather than proven. The more frequent occurrence of pleuritis during peculiar states of the weather justifies the conclusion that atmospheric conditions exert a decided influence upon the origin of this disease. To designate such inflammations as rheumatic, is in so far justifiable to some extent at least, as acute rheumatisms occur epidemically at the same time. As a rule, primary pleuritis may, like peritonitis, be regarded as a rare disease. On the other hand, pleuritis as a complication or secondary affection, is exceedingly frequent. All inflammatory pulmonary affections, even hyperaemia of more than ordinary extent, if occurring near the surface of the lungs, develop pleuritis which ia generally confined to a very limited space, but may likewise be very extensive and violent. Inflammatory affections of the heart, more particularly of the pericardium, may lead to pleuritis. Acute 326. Diseases of the Pleura. rheumatism and peritonitis, and likewise acute exanthemata, easily result in the development of pleuritis. Among chronic affections the following may occasion the disease: Pulmonary tuberculosis, pulmonary abscess, suppuration of the vertebrae and ribs, Bright's disease. The occurrence of pleuritis during the stage of convalescence in severe acute affections, in pymemia and generally in diseases characterized by marked signs of a septic condition of the blood, is a remarkable fact which does not admit of any further explanation. Like peritonitis, so pleuritis is superinduced in its worst and most extensive form by the intrusion of foreign substances into the pleural cavity, most commonly by the effusion of pus fiom a superficial cavern or fiom a suppurating bone. Symptoms and Cou)rse. The peculiarity of certain phenomena in a case of pleurisy can only be understood by an anatomical analysis of this process, on which account we premise a concise sketch of the same. By pleuritis we understand the deposition of an exudation upon the free surface in the cavity of the pleura. As in every other inflammation so we find here, at the outset, an hyperiemic condition of the cellular tissue situated under the pleura. This hyperMmia occurs most generally in striae or clusters, scarcely ever over a large extent, and very frequently exhibits small ecchymosic spots. It is from these hypersemic centres that the exudation proceeds over the free surface. According to its constituent principles the exudation is generally distinguished in four different forms which, however, cannot be rigorously separated from each other, but commingle in various ways. The first form is the so-called plastic form, where a small quantity of a highly fibrinous exudation is deposited upon the free surface of the pleura as a pseudo-membrane which, by coalescing with the membrane on the opposite side of the pleura, causes both sides of the pleural cavity to adhere without any further complications. This process occurs very commonly in pneumonia, but likewise on other occasions with so few symptoms that it is placed beyond the reach of therapeutic definitions. The second form is the sero-plastic form. The exudation consists of fibrin with which a more considerable quantity of serum is commingled. This form has the exuded membranes of the first form, but they are generally more extensive and thicker, and the pleural cavity contains an exudation of a yellow-green serum which sometimes weighs several pounds and in which more or less copious flocks of coagulated fibrin are seen floating. The copiousness of Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 327 the plastic exudation increases the tendency to adhesions which are sometimes so extensive that they enclose the exuded fluid as within a capsule or sometimes as within a net consisting of a number of meshes and cavities. The third form is the purulent exudation, empyema or pyothorax. In this form the effusion may consist of mere pus, or serum may be mixed up with it in greater or less quantity. This form either characterizes an uncommonly acute pleuritis, as it is often observed in pysemia, and where pus forms in a very short time; or else this third form is gradually developed from the second form in consequence of the solid constituents of this form being converted into pus. The further changes occurring in this form are absorption which is, however, scarcely ever as complete as in the other forms and generally leaves callous thickenings behind, or else enclosure of the fluid within a capsule which is a very common event, or finally invasion of the parts surrounding the suppurating process. In consequence of this invasion the pleura is perforated and the pus is discharged through the thoracic walls into the abdominal cavity or even into the bronchia. Recovery from such an accident is a very rare event. The fourth form, where scarcely anything but serum is effused, occurs very rarely, but is important for the reason that this serous exudation generally exceeds all others in quantity, exerts the most violent pressure upon the lungs and heart, and that its reabsorption is on this account exceedingly difficult. The hemorrhagic exudation does not constitute, strictly speaking, a distinct form, because a somewhat considerable effusion of blood in any of the above-described four forms may determine an hemorrhagic exudation. The ichorous dissolution of the exudation only takes place during the severest prostration of the organism as a consequence of general decomposition, less frequently if the pleural cavity comes in contact with atmospheric air. It is absolutely impossible to draw a permanently and universally true picture of pleuritis; the symptoms characterizing an attack of pleuritis, vary greatly in intensity as well as extent; many symptoms are sometimes entirely wanting, whereas in other cases they are most prominently present. However inasmuch as the symptomatic differences of pleuritis are mostly depending upon the quality of the exudation, we subjoin a superficial sketch of these differences and shall discuss essential details in subsequent paragraphs. The plastic exudation exists seldom as an idiopathic affection; 328 Diseases of the Pleura. it generally accompanies other diseases, more particularly pneumonia. Inasmuch, however, as it is scarcely ever, even when existing as an idiopathic disease, accompanied by violent fever, we may suppose, that even where it exists as a complication, it does not contribute much to an increase of the fever. On the other hand it is precisely this form that causes the most violent pain which is very much increased by every somewhat more expansive movement of the thorax and of the body generally, more particularly by coughing, and which very fiequently renders even percussion painful. After the lapse of at most a week the pain disappears again entirely; but the physical signs, of which we shall treat by and by, sometimes remain for some time after. It is more especially the sero-plastic exudation that furnishes the picture of an idiopathic acute pleuritis. Like all other more extensive' inflammatory processes, it almost always sets in with a severe chill followed by considerable increase of the pulse and temperature, attended with headache, intense thirst, loss of appetite, and almost immediately an intense pain in the inflamed region of the pleura. The pain generally decreases in proportion as the effusion increases in quantity. As the exudation increases the breathing of course becomes shorter, and a distressing cough sometinies sets in, with a thin expectoration which is tinged with blood, but is not to be regarded as a sign that pneumonia or bronchitis has supervened, but most commonly depends upon no other cause than the hyperwemia of the non-affected part, which hypermmia is a necessary consequence of the pressure caused by the exudation, and for this reason does not show itself at the outset of the disease but only in its subsequent course. In favorable cases the termination in recovery may commence with the second week, and may lead to a complete restoration of health; or else, the process of reabsorption takes place very slowly, imperfectly, and the patients remain for a long time in a sickly, lentescent condition, where they are threatened with renewed attacks and exacerbations. The third form, empyema, often develops itself, as was stated above, from the second form. That pus is forming, may be inferred from the circumstance that the fever does not abate, on the contrary, that in the subsequent course of the disease, and without any increase of the exudation, the fever increases in violence, mingled with chills, or assuming the character of an hectic fever, with a constantly increasing prostration of stren th. If the purulent exudation is a consequence of pyaemia, of a septic state or a general dissolution Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 329 of the blood, the exudation may originate and run its course without pain; it only aggravates the previously existing morbid phenomena. The course of the disease depends essentially upon the fact whether the exudation is re-absorbed or enclosed within a sac, or finally whether it escapes from the cavity, and in Twhat direction. The fourth form, where the exudation is chiefly serous, usually imparts to pleuritis a sub-acute or even chronic character. This form is very insidious, because it so often develops itself very gradually and without pain, and even commences without fever which does not generally supervene until at a later period. At first the patients only complain of lassitude, they lose their appetite, have a sickly appearance. Gradually the respiration becomes more oppressed and labored, but not by any means to a degree that might lead the patients to suspect th'e presence of a pulmonary disease. The quantity of the exudation occasions a displacement of the thoracic and abdominal organs. Recovery from such attacks always takes place slowly; it is only exceptionally that absorption takes place very rapidly amid a profuse diuresis. Among the symptoms of pleuritis there is not one that could be pointed out as characteristic of the disease. It is true that in most cases of acute pleuritis we have the peculiar pain, but it varies exceedingly in character and intensity. At times the pain is simply a sensation of tenseness and constriction; at other times the pain is a seated, localized, stitching pain; at other times again the pain is spread over the whole side of the thorax, and is of a tearing or burning kind. Not unfrequently there is no pain at all; this happens more particularly in the most insidious cases. Because there is no pain, this is no reason why an exploration of the chest should be omitted. In genuine pleurisy there is very seldom any cough, especially at the commencement of the disease; if cough sets in at a later period, it may be occasioned by simple hyperemia, or by pneumonic infiltration. A.t all events it causes the patient a good deal of distress, increases his pain to an extraordinary degree and complicates the course of the disease, since every additional obstacle must necessarily, in view of the existing dyspncea, imply an additional account of danger. The symptoms presented by other organs cannot be determined beforehand. Most generally it is the action of the heart, especially that of the right heart, which -is altered; if any considerable amount of exudation is present, the beats of the heart become irregular, stronger and more rapid, the more so the more the heart is pushed out of its place by the effused fluid. A 330 Diseases of the Pleura. displacement of the liver is attended with pressure in the right hypochondrium, and slight symptoms of jaundice. Neither the intestinal canal nor the kidneys are involved in all cases. The brain becomes slightly engorged, if the effusion is copious and the circulation is interfered with. The position of the patients deserves particular notice, more especially as contrasted with their position in pneumonia. Pleuritic patients almost always lie on the painless and unaffected side, whereas, if the effusion is not attended with pain, they prefer lying on the diseased side. Very seldom the patient wants to lie on his back; if he does, the trunk has to be elevated a good deal. All these objective as well as subjective symptoms, which we have described, are not sufficient to establish a reliable diagnosis. If a reliable diagnosis is at all possible, it will have to be based upon the results of a physical exploration, which is even more important in this disease than in pneumonia, for the reason that pleurisy often remains such a latent disease that the. objective phenomena alone can shed light upon its existence and true character. In pleurisy with simple fibrinous exudation or moderately extensive empyema percussion reveals nothing abnormal. As soon, however, as the quantity of the effused fluid becomes more considerable, it compresses the lungs, and a tympanitic sound is heard over the whole area filled by the fluid. If the whole or only a portion of the lungs is completely compressed, the sound is entirely empty, and the boundary of the effusion is indicated by the tympanitic sound. A dull sound is almost without an exception returned by the lower portion of the thorax, provided the effusion is sufficiently copious. A mistake may occur if the effusion is scanty and the lung is infiltrated as in pneumonia, or if the lower portion of the lung firmly adheres to the costal pleura and the lung can neither be pushed backwards nor upwards by the effused fluid. In pleuritis a change of position occasions very seldom a change in the dulness of sound. Generally the upper boundary of the exudation is formed by solidified exudation which resists all displacement. If a change of position induces a change in the level of the fluid, it is perfectly safe to infer the presence of an excess of serous effusion. In pleuritis with plastic exudation auscultation reveals nothing abnormal at the commencement of the disease, sometimes not even during its whole course. The friction-sounds of the rough surfaces of the pleura, which, owing to the proximity at which these sounds Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 331 are heard, cannot well be confounded with pulmonary murmurs, are not generally heard until the exudation has existed for some days, because the exudation requires this period of time to become sufficiently solidified for the production of those sounds. The pleuritic friction-sounds are wanting, if the effusion is very copious, but are often heard towards the termination of the disease, when absorption of the fluid takes place. If present, they constitute an infallible sign of pleuritis. Even if the exudation is scanty, the respiratory murmur is weakened, because the patients are afraid of drawing a full breath. If the exudation is copious, the respiratory murmur is often entirely absent at the lower portions of the thorax, whereas higher up bronchial respiration is heard more or less distinctly, and is more especially marked near the vertebral column. Bronchophony and vegophony are often heard together. In the free portion of the compressed lung, and generally likewise in the non-affected portion, the respiratory murmur is heard more loudly, and the symptoms of a more or less considerable catarrh are present. Very seldom palpation discovers any peculiar changes during the presence of plastic effusion. A difference between the sound and the inflamed side is often noticed as far as the fulness of the respiratory movements is concerned, but the friction of the rough surfaces of both pleural laminse against each other is perceive.l less frequently even by the touch. If there is a good deal of effusion, the thoracic wall over it does not vibrate from the voice, whereas this vibration is generally stronger at the borders of the exudation. A view of the thorax shows very significant changes. During the presence of a plastic effusion, especially while the pains continue, the respiratory movements are much less distinct, and the patient mostly bends over to the affected side. If the exudation is copious, the affected half of the thorax enlarges in size; the intercostal spaces expand, and even become entirely effaced or bulge beyond the ribs, and the respiratory movements are either very slight or else entirely suppressed. In measuring the thorax, the increase in its dimensions enables us to determine with great correctness the presence of a copious effusion. Another important diagnostic sign are the displacements of the heart and liver occasioned by the presence of a large amount of effusion; the return of these organs to their normal localities is evidence of the fact that the effusion is decreasing. As regards the course of pleuritis, we have already stated in pre 332 Diseases of the Pleura. vious paragraphs, all that is needful to observe on this subject. As a general rule, this disease comes less than any other within the possibilities of a reliable prognosis. It may have a scarcely perceptible beginning and, in its progress, assume a most malignant form; or else, from an exceedingly malignant and acute disease at the outset, it may run its course rapidly and completely to perfect recovery. These results cannot be determined beforehand; on this account, pleuritis has to be treated with great care, and every thing calculated to favor the progress of the disease, or to induce relapses, has to be carefully avoided. The terminations of this disease are likewise various. Thp plastic form always leads to adhesions which, however, are seldom very extensive and do not interfere with the subsequent enjoyment of good health. It is usually the case, however, that afterwards the patients, during unusual bodily exertions, or during every trifling catarrh, complain of pain in the locality where the adhesions exist; this pain is, however, without any sort of importance. If the exudation is very copious, it may obstinately resist every effort of the organism to reabsorb the fluid and, by this means, a liability to relapses may be established. Or else pus may form; even then, a complete reabsorption may doubtless take place, but the pus likewise readily escapes externally, or into the lungs and abdominal cavity. In the former case, a thoracic fistula most commonly sets in, which generally terminates fatally in consequence of slow consumption, and very seldom heals in a very short time. The escape of the pus into the lungs and abdominal cavity is likewise dangerous, and holds out little hope of a complete recovery. An excess of serous exudation generally shows very little disposition to become reabsorbed, and very usually terminates fatally after a lingering period of suffering. Death scarcely ever takes place suddenly in consequence of asphyxia; most commonly it takes place in consequence of one of the above-mentioned changes. As important consequences of pleuritis, we have in the first place to keep in view the displacement of important organs which, during a long continuance of the exudation, is very apt to become stationary. A dislocation of the heart may become particularly pregnant with disastrous consequences. Next we have malformations of the thorax and consequent malformations of the vertebral column. Such malformations result if the lungs, which the effused fluid had compressed, are unable to expand again to their former size. If the mualformation had not lasted too long, the prospect of a complete Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 833 cure is not entirely unfavorable. An important consequence is the very common appearance of tubercles after the reabsorption of the pleuritic effusion. To establish a prognosis in the higher grades of pleuritis is always a very hazardous thing, since unfavorable complications too readily annihilate the best founded hopes. As long as no pus has formed, we need not let our spirits flag; even empyema, if the patient has kept up a tolerable supply of strength, very often admits of a cure under homceopathic treatment. All complications, however, which diminish still more the breathing capacity of the lungs, are decidedly unfavorable to a successful treatment of the disease. In the front rank of such complications, we have pneumonia, whether it sets in simultaneously with pleuritis or supervenes during the course of the latter disease. Here the pleuritis interferes with the normal course of pneumonia, and the pneumonia prevents the rapid absorption of the pleuritic effusion. Even an ordinary catarrh, acute as well as chronic, is a serious matter, for the reason that it very much adds to the possibility of the supervention of acute cedema of the lungs. Inflammatory affections of the heart as well as chronic heart-disease constitute dangerous complications in pleuritis as well as in pneumonia. We need scarcely state that pleuritis arising from morbid alterations of the blood, from pyemia, etc., is exceedingly unpromising. It is sometimes impossible to arrive at a reliable diagnosis of pleuritis, more especially if the effusion only consists of coagulable lymph. The more the serous exudation preponderates, the more reliable becomes our diagnosis. What is of particular importance is to distinguish pleuritis from pneumonia with which, however, only the acute form of pleuritis with sero-plastic exudation, and which is of much less frequent occurrence, can be confounded. Pleuritis is diagnosed from the absence of the characteristic sputa of pneumonia, the different form of respiration, from the absence of all vocal vibrations which are considerably increased in pneumonia, from the dulness at the lower parts of the thorax with sharply defined boundaries. Bronchial respiration is an unreliable diagnostic sign; however it is to be observed that in pleuritis bronchial respiration is the weakest in the region where the dulness is the most marked and complete, whereas the reverse is the case in pneumonia. The dislocation of the heart and liver, the projection of the intercostal spaces and the expansion of the affected side taking place only after the exudation has become very copious, cannot be re 334 Diseases of the Pleura. ferred to at the outset of the attack as distinctive signs of pleuritis in contra-distinction to pneumonia. Nor is pain a safe indication of pleuritis; not only is the pain often absent, but a violent local pain may sometimes be characteristic of pneumonia. What is most difficult is a correct diagnosis of pleuro-pneumonia, since in this affection it is often very difficult to correctly determine the measure of the pleuritic effusion. Cases of this kind have such varied symptomatic manifestations, according as pleuritis is a primary or consecutive affection or a simple complication, that we do not deem it expedient to dwell upon them any further. To indicate the treatment of pleuritis is not very easy if we mean to present it in a complete shape. Pleuritis being very seldom an idiopathic disease, we have to take into account so many accessory, causative and consecutive conditions, and the importance of pleuritis has withal to be placed in the foreground with so much care, that an exhaustive description of the treatment would become a very extensive task. For this reason we confine ourselves to the most important points in the following paragraphs, referring more particularly to pleuritis with copious exudation. The following are the leading remedies that may have to be resorted to in the treatment of this disease: Aconitum. Regarding this drug we cannot communicate any thing better than Wurmb's statement in the twelfth volume of the Hygea, which we transcribe from Riickert's Annals: " If the plastic elements prevail in the pleuritic effusion, or if, as the phrase goes, the disease has a marked inflammatory character; hence, if, as is usually the case, the disease sets in with violent febrile phenomena, no remedy deserves to be more frequently used at the outset of the disease than Aconite. We have never known Aconite to act upon the effusion itself; however, inasmuch as the curative process only commences after the fever has ceased, and inasmuch as it is consequently of importance that, the fever should be removed as speedily as possible, and Aconite surpasses in this respect all other remedies, it is quite natural that the treatment should be commenced with this agent. Having observed that Aconite helps speedily, if it does help, I do not wait long for the result, and at once resort to another remedy, if I do not soon perceive a favorable change showing a decrease or a cessation of the fever. It is difficult to say how long, after giving Aconite, an improvement ought to be waited for; as a rule, however, we need not wait too long, since an improvement is often perceived already in a few hours; the fever abates, the stitch Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 335 ing pains and the dyspnea abate or disappear entirely, etc. The exudation still remains the same, but the circumstances of the patient now are such that Nature alone will be sufficient to conmplete the cure or will only require very little assistance for such a purpose. On the other hand, if the fever still continues, although in a slight degree, nothing further can be expected from Aconite and in order to prevent the disease from assuming a chronic form, other remedies will have to be chosen, especially such as act upon the exudation itself, among which I place Sulphur at the head of the list. If the effusion is more of a serous character, or hemorrhagic or purulent, Aconite will not do much for the fever, if any still remains. If, in a case of pleuritis with plastic effusion, the patient's carelessness or indiscretion brings on a relapse, the antifebrile power of Aconite will prove much less efficient than the first time; and, if repeated attacks take place, Aconite will do less and less for the fever, and finally, will prove entirely powerless." We have to dissent from the preceding remarks in one particular, namely, regarding the effect of Aconite upon the fever; it is our opinion that the remedy exerts its effect by diminishing the hypermmia, by which means the pains are abated and the effusion is limited. Aconite is, moreover, a distinguished remedy at the outset of pleuritis supervening during the presence of tuberculosis, or for pleuritis complicated with pneumonia. It is without any effect if pleuritis is occasioned by marked decomposition of the blood, or by the onward spread of peritoneal inflammation, or by the escape of pus from the lungs or from carious ribs. Here Aconite cannot be depended upon even at the outset, if the fever is ever so intense. As regards waiting for a change after the exhibition of Aconite, we should never wait longer than twenty-four hours. Bryonia alba is of all remedies more frequently used than any other in pleuritis and concerning which all physicians entertain an equally favorable opinion. Although we cannot help believing that many reported cures were due to the spontaneous efforts of Nature, and that the removal of a violent pleuritic pain has very often been mistaken for a recovery from a severe attack of pleurisy, whereas the pain alone is no adequate criterium of the extent and character of the pathological process. Bryonia could not possibly have been so often supposed to cure, if real cures had not been effected by this agent. Almost all practitioners agree that the period for the exhibition of Bryonia is the time when the fever has abated. In fixing this period, the comparatively rare form of pleuritis is thought 336 Diseases of the Pleura. of, that sets in as an acute disease and runs a similar course. Here Aconite is undoubtedly indicated first, and afterwards Bryonia. In a very large number of cases, however, Bryonia may be exhibited at the outset; they are the cases where the fever is not very high and the pain is severe but not intensely acute. We do not undertake to explain the action of Bryonia in such cases. It is certain that it has a very beneficial effect and generally accornplishes a speedy cure. Whether it acts directly upon the exudation and hastens its absorption, may be questioned; it is pretty well established, however, that under its influence the exudation scarcely ever progresses, and that the pains rapidly subside. A slight nonfebrile, although very painful pleuritis, is rapidly controlled by Bryonia. Bryonia is likewise appropriate in the severer forms of a purely plastic pleuritis; in the first stage of the sero-plastic form it is the main remedy. If the exudation becomes purulent, the use of Bryonia is more questionable. If pleuritis complicates tuberculosis, the symptoms which very seldom point to Aconite, commonly indicate Bryonia. On the contrary we deem Bryonia indicated so much less, the more copious is the exudation; its sphere of action ceases if the inflammatory process is arrested and the effusion neither increases nor is reabsorbed. In pleuro-pneumonia Bryonia, after Aconite has been permitted to act for a short period, is almost an absolute specific. It is scarcely less specifically indicated in cases where bronchitis and pleuritis coexist. Arnica. Hartmann's indications either occur very rarely in pleuritis, or else they are so little characteristic of pleuritis that they may be said to point to any form of this disease. Nevertheless, our Materia Medica Pura contains a sufficient number of symptomatic indications upon which the choice of Arnica can be predicated with great precision. Among these indications we range the stitching pain in the lower part of the chest, which is aggravated by pressure, motion and cough, shortness of breath, a continual day, hacking cough, or else a painful cough with expectoration of a frothy and bloody mucus. This last-mentioned symptom is particularly valuable, for it indicates Arnica in cases of pleuritis accompanied by hyperaemia of the non-affected side. We do not limit this remedy to the few cases of pleuritis occasioned by mechanical injuries. The excellent effect of Arnica in certain kinds of exudation is likewise verified in pleuritis, if the exudation is rather serous than plastic, or is copiously mixed with blood. In purulent pleuritis we should scarcely ever think of resorting to Arnica. An existing Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 337 hyperaimia of the brain comes within the curative range of this drug as much as pneumonia within that of Belladonna. Old exudations are not acted upon by Arnica as positively as exudations of recent origin. Digitalis purpurea. Wurmb writes concerning this drug: "There is a great difference between pleuritis serosa occasioned by an increased activity of the secretory functions, and hydrothorax occasioned by mechanical obstacles. This difference remained unknown to physicians who had been in the habit of confounding these two diseases, until more recently pathological anatomy directed our attention to the. differences in the pathological appearances and a stethoscopic examination corresponding with these pathological appearances succeeded in clearing up the diagnosis. It is because these two different diseases have been confounded by physicians, that some of them report such favorable results from the use of Digitalis in watery accumulations in the pleural cavity, whereas others, on the contrary, report nothing but utter failures. An enlightened physician will certainly not expect any thing from Digitalis in hydrothorax occasioned by mechanical obstacles, such as an insufficiency of the valves of the heart; nor will he, on this: account, entertain a less favorable opinion of the curative virtues of Digitalis, which renders such excellent service in pleuritis serosa where this remedy is really in its place. Dr. Fleischmann has noticed the best effects from Digitalis in pleuritis serosa, and I believe I may very properly recommend this remedy so much more urgently as I attach the highest value to the experience of this able practitioner. I prescribe this medicine in the first attenuation; higher attenuations have never shown any curative powers in this affection." If Wurmb recommends Digitalis only for chronic pleuritis serosa, we do not think he has done this remedy full justice. Its frequent employment by Old School practitioners, of course, in large doses, although only intended to depress the fever, is said to be crowned with good results in so many cases that it might likewise seem proper for us to experiment in the same direction. Most physicians are as yet deterred from pursuing this course by the idea that this remedy is not adapted to acute affections. This opinion is certainly erroneous and unfounded. It is particularly in pleuritis, for which we certainly do not possess too many remedies, that Digitalis deserves special attention on account of its specific relation to the rheumatic process. If this process spreads to the pleura, or if pleuritis is from the start a rheumatic disease, no rem22 338 Diseases of the Pleura. edy is next to Bryonia better adapted to this form of pleuritis than Digitalis. Hepar sulphuris calcareum.'No more than we were guided in our first trials with Hepar in pneumonia by the few corresponding symptoms of this drug, has Wurmb been guided by the symptoms alone when he says of Hepar: "To my knowledge, Hepar has never been employed in pleuritis, yet few remedies render such eminent service in this disease as Hepar. If the effusion is rather of.a plastic. nature, and if the disease has lasted for some time, or if a slow, lontescent course is to be apprehended from the commencement of the attack, I know of no better remedy than Hepar. Under its use I have seen copious exudations, which had already existed for a long time, disappear in a comparatively and incredibly short period of time, nor have I ever observed a case where, under such circumstances, it did: not exert some influence upon the exu. dation. A complication with pericarditis or bronchitis demands its exhibition so nmuch more urgently; if the effusion is rather more serous, Hepar is of little use." We share this opinion, adding at the same time that empyema, provided it is not too old, is above all calculated to substantiate the favorable action of this drug, and that the evident passage from the sero-plastic to the purulent form of pleuritis points more especially to Hepar. Squilla maritima is much more talked about than actually used in pleuritis. We believe, however, unjustly, for the physiological effects of this drug show that it is in special rapport with the pleura and likewise with the lungs. Squilla is decidedly one of the medicines that it is proper to try in the treatment of pleuritis. It is more particularly adapted to pleuro-pneumonia, and is more especially indicated by a copious exudation of serum and even in serous pleuritis where the curative action of this drug manifests itself by a profuse diuresis. In former times Squills enjoyed a great reputation in this disease, and have fallen into disuse in the old system of medicine probably for no other reason than because the medicine did not help in every case, because its more special indications were either not sought or physicians did not know how to seek them.:We do not regard Phosphorus as a direct remedy for pleuritis although, having been mentioned as a remedy for pneumonia, it is very likely that it may be of some use in peripneumonia, in which case, however, the pleuritic exudation will be very scanty. On the other hand we deem it proper, from more general reasons, to direct Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 839 attention to this drug in cases of pleuritis caused by or complicateA with, pysemia or septicaemia, and constituting from the start a state of purulent infiltration. Mercurius is recommended by few physicians for pleuritis, and yet it is perhaps more appropriate in this disease than in pneumonia. We know from our Materia Medica Pura that quicksilver causes a number of symptoms pointing to pleuritis; hence its homceopathicity to this disease cannot be gainsayed. Moreover analogy justifies the conclusion that Mercurius has just as good an effect in pleuritis as in peritonitis, because we know that Mercurius acts upon definite systems rather than upon single organs. As in pneumonia so in pleuritis, Mercurius is indicated, if the exudation inclines from the start to change to pus, or if this tendency is imparted to it at a later period without, however, a special tendency to decomposition manifesting itself along with it. The following symptoms constitute essential indications: violent fever with frequent chills followed by a burning heat and exhausting, foul-smelling perspiration; considerable thirst; marked gastric catarrh with slight icteric symptoms; intestinal catarrh. In pleuro-pneumonia likewise, if the exudation is somewhat copious, Mercurius is one of the best remedies. In subacute empyema. we do not consider Mercurius an appropriate remedy. Several reports in our literature'show that Mercurius has often rendered distinguished services in epidemic pleurisy, both if the character of the disease was intensely rheumatic, or when the disease was complicated with bronchitis. Old School experience, according to which mercurial ointment is employed in exudative pleuritis with an advantage that cannot even be denied by the dogmatic adherents of the expectant method, can likewise be appealed to as an additional recommendation for the use of Mercurius. Helleborus niger has not as yet been exhaustively proved; its local symptoms point, however, unmistakably to a pleuritic affection. Practical trials have led several physicians to recommend this remedy for the serous exudation in pleuritis, to which it is undoubtedly more adapted than to hydrothorax. Arsenicum album is not, in our opinion, a remedy belonging in the category of anti-pleuritic medicines. Its exhibition in pleuritis as well as in pneumonia is determined by the general rather than the local symptoms. Wurmb expresses himself much more favorably concerning this drug in the following words: "In serous: effusions Arsenic is probably the most important remedy; my confidence in 340 Diseases of the Pleura. this agent is so great that I doubt the possibility of curing a case where Arsenic does not effect the least improvement, as may possibly be the case with hemorrhagic effusions which defy all interference of art. The cases where Arsenic does not afford any relief, are not very frequent, whereas this medicine alone effects a number of cures or changes the form of the disease so that the cure can easily be completed by other remedies. The beneficent effect of Arsenic generally first shows itself by a change in the distressing asthmatic symptoms; afterwards dropsical swellings that may already have set in, together with the febrile motions, disappear, and lastly the absorption of the effusion itself is effected." We dare not decide whether Wurmb still adheres to these statements that were written down a good many years ago. Sulphur holds the same relation to pleuritis as to pneumonia. Its employment depends more upon inferences drawn from its general effects than upon a rigid application of the law of similarity; its use is moreover substantiated by a vast number of practical successes. Iere, too, we first transcribe Wurmb's views which seem to us strikingly correct in the main points: "In a case of seroplastic effusion Sulphur is powerless; if a plastic effusion has existed for sometime, Sulphur is less efficacious than Hepar; on the other hand, in pleuritis plastica, after first giving Aconite, or even without Aconite at the very outset of the attack, Sulphur is a truly. specific remedy. If the fever is not sufficiently violent to require the use of Aconite, I commence the treatment at once with frequently repeated drop-doses of the tincture of Sulphur which is generally sufficient to remove the disease in a short time. If the fever runs high, and Aconite which seems indicated, does not very soon effect an abatement of the febrile symptoms, I at once resort to the administration of Sulphur and so far I have not yet had the least cause to regret this course of proceeding. If pleuritis is complicated with pneumonia, if the disease has already lasted a few days and the stage of hepatization has already set in, Aconite cannot do the least good although the fever may seem to indicate it; everything, on the contrary, may be expected from Sulphur." This very warm recommendation which is indeed substantiated by practical results, seems to be liable to several objections. In the first place it is evidently too general. Taking the physiological effects of drugs and their applications in practice as our guide we are indeed authorized to draw conclusions far beyond the rigid boundaries of similarity; but Wurmb's mode of reason Pleuritis, Pleurisy. 341 ing would lead us to general, not individual specifics, and our -therapeutic opponents show us every day where the former would lead us. In the next place we are of opinion that all more violent febrile symptoms preclude the use of Sulphur, no matter whether the febrile phenomena arise from reactive endeavors of a more intense but normal character, or from reactive efforts that are excessive and incline to adynamia. Again, the symptoms of an incipient purulent metamorphosis are decidedly antagonistic to Sulphur. Finally, we think that Sulphur is adapted to every form of pleuritic exudation except perhaps an exudation dependinguponsepticemia, because this agent is more than any other capable of stimulating the absorption of the plastic exudation. We know that in all more copious, even serous exudations, a thick plastic deposit very often lines the surface of the pleura, causing almost without an exception adhesions at the boundary-lines of the inflammation and enclosing the fluid as it were within a capsule. This newly-formed capsule is undoubtedly the cause why the.fluid is not reabsorbed. Hence we see an exudation continue for weeks without change, after which it disappears very rapidly for the reason that the plastic fluid has disappeared and the pleuritic effusion is again undergoing a normal process of absorption. In such cases we have a right to expect a great deal from Sulphur because it materially hastens the disappearance of the plastic exudation. lodium deserves to be mentioned, because Old School practitioners have employed it in so many cases externally for the purpose of bringing about the absorption of the pleuritic effusion, which has often been accomplished with undeniable success. From its general effect as well as from its influence upon single organs we are justified in concluding that Iodium can be used for the absorption of a plastic pleuritic exudation, and that, indirectly, it may likewise, like Sulphur, aid in the removal of a serous effusion. Beside the remedies we have named, many more have been recommended for pleuritis. But these recommendations are either based upon indications that we cannot accept as valid, or upon practical results where the diagnosis appears' more than doubtful, or finally the remedies are recommended upon purely speculative grounds, and we, therefore, content ourselves with simply mentioning their names; they are: Rhus toxicodendron, Nux vomica, Tartarus stibiatus, Carbo vegetabilis, Sabadilla, Spigelia, Acidum nitricum. For reasons mentioned at the beginning of this article, we do not deem it expedient to give a cursory view of the various remedies 342 Diseases of the Pleura. in apposition with the various forms and stages of pleuritis. The general management of an acute case of pleuritis is the same as in pneumonia. Here, too, the fear of relapses, the frequency of successive returns of the effusion, and our anxiety for a complete absorption of the exudation, should admonish us that suitable precautionary measures must not be abandoned too soon. The consequences of pleuritis are of importance in two respects. In the first place, remaining adhesions of the two pleuras may cause great anxiety on account of the violent pain which such adhesions may occasion in subsequent diseases of the respiratory organs, and may likewise lead to the use of incorrect remedies. Another consequence emanating from the suppurative process, is much more important, and requires the application of direct therapeutic measures. In a case of thoracic fistula, the above-mentioned remedies have to be applied to in the first place; beside these we have moreover Silicea, Lycopodium, Ferrun, CUhina, and more particularly Calcarea carbonica and pAosphorica. Under the use;of these drugs, each in accordance with the corresponding pathological indications, we need not all at once despair of a cure, as Old School practitioners indeed have to do with their means of treatment. 2. Hlydrothorax, Dropsy of the Chest. Hydrothorax in the pleural cavity represents the same process as ascites in the cavity of the peritoneum. On this account we would pass this process over in silence if a few points did not make a more special allusion to it desirable. Hydrothorax is either originated by all the various circumstances that cause an engorgement of the veins in the lungs, or else it is a symptom of general dropsy and depends uponl an altered composition of the blood. In no case is hydrothorax a primary affection, but is occasioned by heart-disease, defects of the lungs, more particularly a high degree of emphysema, in which case the dropsical effusion is sometimes an isolated condition without any co-existing oedema in other parts; or hydrothorax is caused by affections of the spleen, kidneys, liver, etc., in which case it most generally constitutes the final development of general dropsy. If hydro:thorax arises from a sanguineous stasis in the lungs, its symptoms, independently of the results of a physical exploration, are scarcely ever of a nature that will enable the physician to infer B44 Diseases of the Pleura. the case. The excessive apncea which generally sets in all at once, and is attended with symptoms of the most marked interference of the circulation; the great expansion of the intercostal spaces of the affected side; the very full percussion-sound which changes its location with the posture of the patient and is generally associated, with the metallic tinkling, without any respiratory murmur being audible; the amphoric resonnance and the metallic tinkling during auscultation. render the diagnosis certain beyond all reasonable doubt. That a cure of this dangerous condition is possible, is undoubtedly an established fact; but such cures are extremely rare. But it is likewise certain that medicinal treatment is utterly powerless in such cases. [This statement is too sweeping. It may be necessary to puncture the chest-walls for the purpose of relieving the patient from the excessive dyspncea and the displacement of the viscera. Otherwise palliative treatment by means of stimulants for the purpose of overcoming collapse, diminishing the dyspncea and relieving the pain, is not only proper, but indispensable. Small doses of Morphia and alcoholic stimulants, even pure alcohol, may be of great use. If the subsequent reaction is of an inflammatory character, with heat of the skin, a hard and strong pulse, soreness and pain of the affected side, the same treatment is to be pursued that has been indicated for pleurisy. H.] NINTH SECTION. Diseases of the Organs of Circulation. A. DISEASES OF THE HEART. The diagnosis of diseases of the heart as well as an intelligent appreciation of the phenomena characterizing and occasioned by these diseases, presupposes a correct knowledge of the physical properties as well as the physiological functions of the heart. Nobody will expect us to dispatch such a vast subject in a few brief paragraphs; on the contrary, we shall take it for granted that a physician is possessed of this knowledge, and confine ourselves, by way of introduction, to a few practical statements of particular importance. Starting exactly from the mesian line of the thorax, the heart is situated about one-third to the right and two-thirds to the left of this line, behind the sternum and the cartilages of the right and left ribs, namely between the third and fifth on the right, and the third and sixth on the left side. The upper border of the heart is situated between the sternal margin of the right and left second intercostal space; the apex of the heart in the fifth left intercostal space close to the inner side of the nipple, or behind the cartilage of the left sixth rib close below the nipple. The anterior surface of the heart is mostly covered by the right and left lung, so that only a portion of the anterior surface of the right ventricle is in contact with the thoracic wall, within a space which is bounded on the right by a line from the sternal extremity of the sixth right rib to the sternal extremity of the left fourth rib; superiorly and on the left by a line curving in an upward direction and drawn from the sternal extremity of the left fourth rib to the left nipple; inferiorly by a line from the nipple to the insertion of the right sixth rib. It is only within this space that percussion returns complete dullness. (345) 346 Diseases of the Heart. The various sections of the heart which it is important to know when exploring this organ, are situated as follows: The right auricle is situated farthest to the right, almost entirely to the right from the mesian line, from the sternal margin of the second right intercostal space to the insertion of the fifth right rib. The right ventricle, from the right auricle towards the left, occupies almost the whole of the anteriorly visible side of the heart. The left auricle is situated to the left of the mesian line behind the origin of the large vessels, so that it is almost entirely covered by the latter. The left ventricle is situated posteriorly behind the right; only a narrow portion of its wall, when seen in front, constitutes the left boundary of the space occupied by the heart. The orifices and valves of the heart are situated as follows: the left auriculo-ventricular opening with the mitral valve close to the sternal margin of the second left intercostal space, and partially close above, partially below the cartilage of third left rib. The left arterial orifice with the semilunar valves of the aorta immediately next to and to the right of the left auriculo-ventricular opening, below the sternal articulation of the third rib on the left side and the sternum. The right auriculo-ventricular opening with the tricuspid valve on a line drawn from the sternal margin of tihe third intercostal space of the left side to the sternal articulation of the fifth costal cartilage on the right side. The right arterial orifice with the semilunar valves of the pulmonary artery close to the sternal margin of the second intercostal space on the left side. From its origin the aorta courses to the right and from before backwards, and the pulmonary artery to the left and from before backwards. The impulse of the heart is felt within a space not altogether an inch wide, close below and to the side of the left nipple in the fifth intercostal space. Of particular importance to an exploration of the chest are the following points: Never percuss with the plessimeter, always with the finger; if exact results are to be obtained, the chest should be percussed with firm as well as light taps. Auscultation should be instituted with the stethoscope for the reason that it can be more exactly applied to a smaller portion of the chest-wall. If the results of two different explorations are to be compared, the explorations have to be instituted in the'same position of the individual. When percussing the chest, it should not be struck at one time during an inspiration, and at another time during an expiration, but uniformly Carditis. 347 during one or the other. If murmurs exist in the lungs which make it difficult or impossible to hear the cardiac murmurs, or make them appear less distinct, we sometimes succeed in hearing these murmurs by requesting the patient to stop his breath. The heart should never be explored immediately after bodily or mental exertions or excitements, but, if possible, while the patient is in as quiet a state as possible; it is even well not to examine the patient until some time after a quiet conversation has been had with him; many become considerably excited by the act of exploration. Regarding the number of heart-beats, it is to be observed that it is smallest while the patient is in a recumbent posture, and highest while he is standing up, and that the difference between these two numbers increases correspondingly with the patient's loss of strength. A single exploration of the heart is not sufficient to base our diagnosis upon. This precaution is too often overlooked in practice. 1. Carditis. Pericarditis, Endocarditis, Myocarditis, Inflammation of the Heart, Pericardium, Endocardium, Substance of the Heart. We include the three above-mentioned anatomically-distinct forms of an inflammatory process in the heart in one chapter, because they generally not only occur associated together, but likewise because their treatment is the same in all essential particulars. Inflammations of the heart occur more particularly between the age of pubescence and that of full manhood, or between the ages of fifteen and forty years. Men are more frequently attacked than women. Although it may be sufficient to say that this somewhat unaccountable fact is undeniably substantiated by statistical data, yet some light may perhaps be shed upon it by the circumstance that most cases of this disease originate in acute rheumatic attacks, and that the peculiar occupations of the male sex expose its members more severely to acute rheumatic diseases. Primary inflammations of the heart constitute some of the least frequent affections, and where they do occur, their causes are generally wrapt in obscurity. They are said to be occasioned by colds, excessive muscular exertions, abuse of alcoholic stimulants, mechanical injuries of the heart, etc. We likewise know that carditis may be occasioned by various poisons which will be mentioned hereafter. Generally inflammations of the heart are consecutive or secondary 348 Diseases of the Heart. affections arising either by a continuation of the inflammatory process from the lungs and pleura to the heart; or in consequence of the heart becoming involved in affections of more remote parts, especially of the kidneys, and likewise of the stomach and spleen; or else, they may result from the operation of constitutional diseases. Among the latter acute rheumatism occupies the first rank, for there is not a case of intensely-acute articular rheumatism that is not, at the same time, accompanied by al inflammatory affection of the heart. We mention, moreover, scarlatina, variola, measles, typhus, and two other affections which are so apt to occasion an inflammation in every serous membrane, we mean pysemia and puerperal fever. As regards chronic constitutional affections, it.cannot be shown that they act as exciting causes in inflammations of the heart. Like all other inflammatory affections, inflammlations of the heart sometimes occur in such numbers that we feel disposed to trace their origin to telluric or atmospheric influences. Etiologically the various forms of cardiac inflammation are distinguished so far as this, that myocarditis occurs least frequently as a primary disease, but generally develops itself out of one of the other forms, both of which occupy the same rank in all other respects. An exact knowledge of the anatomical changes occasioned by cardiac inflammation is not only essential to an intelligent appreciation of the single symptoms, but likewise to a knowledge of the possible consequences of such inflammations. We can here only indicate the main points. Pericarditis has all the characteristics of an inflammation of other serous membranes. It is very seldom diffuse and is most commonly limited to single spots. The pericardium at first looks injected, opaque, sometimes spotted in consequence of slight extravasations, it is loosely-adherent and easily torn; at a later period the pericardium appears covered with coagulable lymph, which may be disposed as a delicately-organized membrane, or may have the appearance of granulated fragments of exudation. An effusion into the cavity of the pericardium is scarcely ever entirely absent, but may vary considerably both in quantity and quality. It may -be from a few ounces to several pints. The exudation either consists of plastic lymph, or of plastic lymph and serum, and is not unfrequently nixed with blood, or hemorrhagic; it very seldom consists of nothing but serum. The exuded fluid may undergo the following essential changes: A complete absorption may take place and Carditis. 349 the patient may recover entirely. Or else, the fluid portion may be absorbed, and the plastic portion may be transformed into connective tissue giving rise to a membrane of more or less thickness. Or else, the effused fluid may be transformed into pus, which is either absorbed or may assume an organized consistence. The more plastic the exudation, the sooner adhesions of both surfaces of the pericardium take place; they generally show the most firmness at the base of the heart, but frequently consist only in threadlike attachments and again cause large portions of the pericardium firmly to adhere to the heart. The exudation is the more copious, the less fibrin it contains; the hemorrhagic exudation occurs more especially in great abundance. Endocarditis is almost without an exception met with in the left ventricle. It attacks less frequently than pericarditis large portions of the endocardium; most commonly it is limited to single spots and has its chief locality near the valvular apparatus of the left heart. The inflamed portions of the endocardium lose their brilliancy, have a dim-white, grayish or reddish-gray appearance; it is puffed up and easily torn and detached. This exudation into the tissue of the endocardium may be associated with exudation upon its free surface in the shape of fine fringes upon which fibrinous deposits are apt to form. Further changes are: Either a complete cure by absorption, which is a rare occurrence, or else inconsiderable thickening of the exudation not materially interfering with the functions of the heart. Or else, indurated deposits may occur on the valves, containing calcareous matter. The most important consequences are those resulting from the breaking down of the exudation. The softened endocardium tears, thus giving rise to laceration of the chordae tendinese or of the valves themselves, and becoming chiefly instrumental in originating numerous defects of the valves; or the tearing of the endocardium on the sides of the ventricle may give rise to acute aneurysm of the heart, in consequence of the muscular substance not being able to resist the constant pressure of the blood. The purulent decomposition on the free surface, during which the broken-down exudation is continually carried along by the current of the circulation, easily results in the plugging up of single arteries or in the formation of metastatic abscesses, especially in the spleen and kidneys. The purulent infiltration of the muscular tissue of the heart occasions the same changes as the next form, myocarditis. Myocarditis generally occurs in conjunction with one of the 350 Diseases of the Heart. other two forms. It is never diffuse, but always limited to isolated regions, sometimes in the interior of the muscular tissue, at other times more on the internal and external surface of the heart. It is most commonly located in the wall of the left ventricle and in the ventricular septum. The inflamed parts first show a dark redness, even ecchymoses, afterwards the affected fibres decay, being transformed into a reddish-gray detritus; or suppuration sets in leading to the formation of abscesses in the heart.'This inflammation admits of a perfect cure, which is not very uncommon, if the inflammation is not too extensive. In the other case a partial cure may take place by the insulation and inspissation of the pus, in consequence of which callous indurations and calcareous concretions may result. If the pus escapes into the cavity of the ventricle, an acute aneurysm of the heart, or, according as the pus escapes in certain localities, valvular defects may arise, or, as in purulent endocarditis, metastatic abscesses and plugging of the blood-vessels may take place. If the abscess is located in the interventricular partition, it may lead. to a communication between both ventricles. Perforation outwardly results in pericarditis. Symptoms. The fact that inflammations of the heart occur almost only as complicating and consecutive affections, and the characteristic peculiarity of the symptoms occasioned by these inflammations, render it not only difficult but almost impossible to draw even a moderately-correct and striking picture of the disease. In the following paragraphs we shall, therefore, confine ourselves to furnishing detached details, first, the symptoms that can be observed without any physical exploration, and afterwards the physical signs. If, by pursuing this course, we are not afforded an opportunity of furnishing a perfectly coherent description of inflammations of the heart, on the other hand, we avoid the much more serious mistake of either describing these pathological conditions incorrectly or delineating fanciful pictures of disease. All these forms of cardiac inflammation not unfrequently run their course with such inconsiderable signs of disease, or even so entirely without any symptoms, that the patients either do not consult a physician at all or that, in case carditis supervenes during the existence of other affections, the physician does not suspect the heart-disease unless he institutes a very rigorous examination. We ought even to take it for granted that many cases of carditis escape the most minute physical exploration, since we so frequently meet Carditis. 351 with remains of which not a trace had been discovered during the life-time of the patient. Carditis setting in most commonly during the course of some other disease, its commencement is very seldom marked by a chill, generally it is even impossible to determine from the patient's own statements where the disease has precisely begun. Only pericarditis commences very commonly with shooting, more or less violent pains in the region of the heart. Most generally the patients complain of an intense feeling of illness and great anxiety, which they describe as proceeding from the pit of the stomach. If the inflammation has fully set in, the following symptoms are perceived in different combinations and degrees of intensity: Extreme feeling of illness not corresponding with the affection that the patient was already suffering with, and not suspending muscular power. Lassitude with constant restlessness, weariness, yet the patient is unable to sleep. Alteration of the expression of the countenance; this symptom is often sufficient for the attentive observer to suspect the presence of carditis: the face generally becomes more pallid, seldom turgescent, the features assume an appearance of tension, the eye has a shy, wandering expression, and, what is characteristic of this disease, the lips tremble a little while the patient is talking, at the same time the speech is somewhat hurried and jerked out as it were, which is not owing to the dyspncea. The posture of the patients has no particular significance; they do not by any means lie steadily on the left side. Headache, which is sometimes of a violent kind, is a usual companion of carditis, whereas severe cerebral symptoms, such as delirium, sopor, coma, are rare occurrences, except in very bad cases which bear great resemblance to the typhoid process. The patients are restless, appear anxious without being conscious of it themselves; in severe cases the anxiety and restlessness become extreme, the patients manifesting an extreme sensitiveness to all psychical impressions. If fever was present, it is very seldom increased by the supervention of carditis, the temperature is less than when most other vital organs are inflamed. Chills occur very frequently, but they do not last long and are not succeeded by a burning heat. There is very commonly an excessive disposition to profuse perspiration which has generally a peculiarly musty odor. At the beginning of the attack the pulse generally becomes more rapid, fuller, harder, and has a peculiar tension; afterwards it remains more rapid, but becomes small, feeble, and inclines to be irregular. In some cases, on the contrary, the pulse 352 Diseases of the Heart. is remarkably slow; in a case of pneumonia with pericarditis and endocarditis, that came under our observation, the pulse had sunk to forty-two beats in the minute. We likewise notice that in the same case the pulse is sometimes very rapid and at other times slow. Upon the whole, the character of the pulse is of no special value as a diagnostic sign. Sometimes the patients complain of severe tearing pains in the left shoulder-joint, or in the whole of the left arm; rheumatic pains may even be experienced in other parts of the body. The digestive organs are not influenced by carditis in anything like a constant manner. The respiration is very usually disturbed, dyspncea of the most varied degrees setting in. At the outset of the attack the respiration is quick and short, but, when requested to do so, the patients are able to draw a long breath. Cough is not a usual symptom; at times it is dry and tearing, at others attended with expectoration of mucus and blood. The secretion of urine is almost always considerably less, the urine is saturated, depositing urates; sometimes albuminuria is present. It is further to be observed that, if carditis supervenes during a preexisting disease, recovery from the latter is much more tardy. Other characteristic symptoms are: Marked interference with the circulation; cedema of the face, ankles; cyanotic phenomena in the face; passive hypersemia of the brain. Increased dyspncea. Accompanying disturbances of the spleen and kidneys. The profuse secretion of mucus is apt to result in the development of miliaria, which has given rise to the most erroneous views concerning metastases. If miliaria breaks out about the time when cardiac inflammation is about to terminate fatally, and the miliaria disappears again with the fatal termination, death has been laid to the retrocession of the exanthem which thus became invested with a peculiar significance. The truth, however, is that what takes place with other exanthems, likewise takes place in the case of miliaria: all these eruptions disappear at death in consequence of the sudden decrease of the vital turgescence. All the above-mentioned phenomena may be present during every form of cardiac inflammation. We will now proceed to designate the most common symptoms characterizing each form of the disease. Pericarditis.: The disease sets in with a chill; rapid increase of the frequency of the pulse; pains in the region of the heart, which may likewise spread towards the back and shoulder, and are increased by a change of position, a deep inspiration and pressure on Carditis. 853 the pit of the stomach; palpitation of the heart which is exceedingly distressing to the patient. Dyspncea sets in in a few days, after the exudation has become more profuse. Continued singultus is a not unfrequent symptom. The symptoms of endocarditis are much more vague. It always approaches in an insidious manner, without pain, or only with a disagreeable sensation of pressure and constriction in the region of the heart. On the contrary the action of the heart is almost always tumultuous, more rapid and generally irregular, assuming the form of palpitations. The pulse, however, does not diminish in frequency. The respiration is accelerated, but dyspnoea is scarcely ever complained of during the first days of the disease. A violent headache, delirium, typhoid phenomena, swelling of the spleen and nephritic pains only set in in the subsequent course of the disease. Myocarditis is not distinguished by regularly-occurring symptoms. Its supervention during one of the other forms of the disease may be suspected if the pulse becomes suddenly weaker and the action of the heart generally exhibits signs of excessive weakness. Even rupture of the myocarditic spaces does not furnish a clear picture of the pathological process. There is no pain, but very commonly an intense feeling of anxiety which may be accounted for by the rapidly diminishing power of the heart to propel the blood. In contrast with these changeable, exceedingly inconstant morbid phenomena, we have the physical signs which are so much more important since they are much less apt to deceive and are very commonly sufficient for the establishnent of a correct diag. nosis. At the commencement of periearditis, the shock of the heart is stronger and is felt over a somewhat larger surface. Friction-murmurs are heard at an early period of the disease, very seldom not till a few days have passed. They vary a great deal in intensity, they are heard first and loudest at the base, do not follow the rhythm of the sounds of the heart, very often differ according to the position of the patient, and are heard more distinctly if the stethoscope is pressed against the chest, but not too hard. If the exudation remains scanty and chiefly plastic, the friction-murmur likewise continues to be heard, whereas, with the accumulation of larger quantities of serum or other fluid, the murmur grows feeble,and finally, especially at the base, disappears altogether. The distension of the pericardial sac by the exuded fluid occasions the fol23 '54 Diseases of the Heart. lowing phenomena: The intercostal spaces on the left side become effaced or even bulge, the shock of the heart cannot be felt, but in its stead we sometimes notice an undulating motion. Percussion returns a larger extent of dulness within a triangular space, with its base downwards. On auscultation, the sounds of the heart in a recumbent posture are only feebly audible, whereas if the patient stoops forward, they are frequently heard very distinctly, at any rate much more distinctly than in the former position. At the commencement of the disease, a feeble systolic blowing murmur is often noticed in the region of the mitral valve, likewise in the region of the aorta, or a double aortic murmur. Occasional throbbing of the veins of the neck. If the left lung is compressed by profuse exudation, a tympanitic resonnance or even dulness results. The first consequence of a decrease of inflammation is that the dulness becomes less in extent; after which the friction-murmurs again become audible, and may yet continue for some time. An important diagnostic sign of pericarditis is that while the area of cardiac dulness increases in size, the sounds of the heart become less audible, and the impulse of the heart diminishes in force. The physical diagnosis of endocarditis is much more difficult than that of pericarditis. Since the sounds of the heart constitute the most important criterium by which the presence of endocarditis can be determined, it is of the utmost importance that the anatomy and functions of the normal heart should be correctly known, otherwise valvular defects that had already been existing for a long time, might be mistaken for consequences of the recent endocarditis. On this account we should guard against a hasty diagnosis, and explore the chest once a day or at least as often as may be convenient. As long as the valvular apparatus has not been invaded by the endocardiac inflammation, the disease may remain completely obscured. Although a bad case of endocarditis, with formation of abscess, metastatic phenomena, etc., may exist without any valvular disease, yet a physical exploration does not reveal the existence of such inflammation by any positive sign. At the outset, the impulse of the heart is generally stronger and felt over a larger extent; it is likewise more tumultuous, yet the pulse is not unfrequently strikingly small. Endocarditis attacking almost exclusively the left ventricle, the first changes are noticed in the region of the orifices, one of the first changes being an increased ringing or tinkling of the first sound. With the increase of the pathological process, Carditis. 355 with the softening or.partial disorganization of the valves, or in consequence of their incapacity from any other cause to close the orifices, a murmur is heard, most distinctly at the apex of the heart, side by side with, or in the place of, the systolic murmur. Friedreich calls attention to the fact that the diagnosis can often be more securely established by the circumstance that this murmur changes its intensity, duration, etc., more or less rapidly or slowly. Diastolic murmurs from disease of the aortic valves, or from excrescences upon the auricular surface of the mitral valve, are, upon the whole, rare occurences. Of essential significance is the increased intensity of the second sound of the pulmonary artery, which is heard soon after the murmurs, and the increased extent of the cardiac dulness which almost sets in simultaneously. It is hardly possible to indicate the variations in the cardiac murmurs with anything like absolute correctness, since they must necessarily differ correspondingly with the various changes resulting from the disease. Myocarditis is not recognized by any fixed physical signs; if such are present they belong to the accompanying endocarditis and pericarditis. The participation of the muscular structure of the heart in the inflammation is more particularly inferred from the great weakness of the pulse co-existing with a tumultuous action of the heart. This pathological change can only be conjectured; it can never be verified with positive certainty. The course and terminations of cardiac inflammations show the greatest differences in degrees of intensity as well as in other respects. In describing these particulars we shall follow a very summary course, since particular terminations will have to be dwelt upon afterwards. Our object will be best accomplished by considering the three forms of cardiac inflammation each by itself. Pericarditis of a middle degree, if attacking individuals of an otherwise sound constitution, is not a very dangerous disease, but generally terminates in complete or almost complete recovery. After exudation is completed, the patients are confined for a few days or weeks without being very sick, unless they are prostrated by some previously-existing disease, strength gradually returns to them, the friction-murmurs that had disappeared, again become audible, or the existing murmurs become less distinct. Termination in recovery never takes place rapidly or suddenly, and the friction-murmurs sometimes remain distinctly audible for months, during which period the patients continue to retain their suffering and feeble appearance. In acute affections where rapid changes take place, peri 356 Diseases of the Heart. carditis sometimes disappears very rapidly. Most commonly, however, we shall find that the supervention of cardiac inflammation during a primary affection imparts a lentescent character to the latter'. If the exudation is very copious, it may only be partially absorbed, the patients incline to shortness of breath, palpitation of the heart, and relapses easily take place, chiefly for the reason that the patients do not take proper care of themselves. These relapses either have an acute or chronic character, in which latter case they give rise to a condition which is described as chronic pericarditis. It is very seldom that fibrinous pericarditis suddenly terminates fatally. On the contrary, if the exudation is purulent or hemorrhagic, a fatal result may take place very suddenly, and is generally determined by paralysis of the cardiac functions which leads to acute cedema of the lungs. An excess of serous exudation most generally results very speedily in softening of the muscular tissue of the heart, consequently in cedema of the lungs and general dropsy, this end is to be apprehended if the cardiac dullness, which persistently remains the same, extends over a large area and the pulse becomes very small and increases in frequency. A copious emission of urine only seldom occurs as a critical change. Adhesions of the pericardium are of subordinate importance, although of frequent occurrence. Very commonly pericarditis results in more or less considerable hypertrophy of the heart. The quality of the exudation cannot be determined with certainty from the course of the disease, although this very desirable knowledge would exert a great influence upon the prognosis. As a rule it is safe to take it for granted that a purulent or septic exudation only occurs as the result of a general dyscrasia or in consequence of pyvemia or puerperal conditions. Endocarditis always runs a tedious, sub-acute and even chronic course. Of itself the disease very seldom leads rapidly to a fatal'termination, and, if it does, it is always in company with exquisitely typhoid symptoms. The commencement of the disease is mostly uncertain; hence its duration cannot well be determined, so much less since the affection, in cases where it is diagnosed with positive certainty, had already developed valvular disease. A complete cure is possible, if the valves have not been invaded; but we likewise deem a cure possible provided the valvular alterations do not consist of loss of substance or solutions of continuity. A partial cure is still possible if the valvular changes do not materially interfere with the functions of the heart. The most common ter Carditis. 357' mination of endocardltis is the development of valvular disease which gives rise to chronic ailments and a slow decay of the organism. If these valvular defects arise from such lesions as cicatrices in the substance of the valve, they may not manifest themselves until after the endocarditis has terminated without any apparent anomalies of the valvular apparatus. Purulent endocarditis often results in speedy death in consequence of the diseases which it develops in other organs, more especially by plugging up important arteries. Myocarditis generally runs a latent course; but if it is extensive; if an abscess forms within the parietes of the heart, it may result very speedily in a fatal end; if it coexists with the other two forms of cardiac inflammation, the former becomes the chief cause of death. A combination of the three forms of cardiac inflammation impresses a different character upon the course of the disease. A pericardial inflammation alone can be very rapidly reabsorbed, whereas, if it is associated with endocarditis, the course of the former is always retarded by such a combination and a complete cure is rarely ever effected. The hypertrophy which usually results even if no complicating disorders are present, is greatly increased by the valvular deficiencies; paralysis of the heart consequent upon serous infiltration of the muscular tissue of the heart, is likewise considerably facilitated by a complication of cardiac disorders, especially by valvular disease, and the reabsorption of effused fluid from the pericardial sac must necessarily be interfered with by the deficient action of the circulatory organs. Less prejudicial, although always sufliciently ominous, is the influence of pericarditis upon endocarditis. The more impeded the movements of the heart, and the greater the effort this organ is called upon to make, the more easily valvular lesions will occur. rWhat we have said must show that the prognosis of cardiac inflammations must be exceedingly uncertain. In a case of complicating pericarditis, the prognosis is most favorable, if the coexisting disease is not characterized by septic phenomena. In all other cases and forms the sequelae which are almost sure to occur, forbid the assurance of a favorable prognosis, and although Homceopathy achieves much more satisfactory results than the Old School, yet it cannot boast of infallible success. Cardiac inflammation occurring in connection with chronic dyscrasias, more especially tuberculosis, is almost certain to terminate fatally, yea, may be regarded 358 Diseases of the Heart. as the terminal and necessarily fatal result of a constitutional disease. Treatment. Although we can boldly assert that the home.opathic treatment of cardiac inflammations has so far resulted much more favorably than the treatment of these diseases in accordance with the principles of the Old School, yet we do not mean to affirm that we possess a large number of reliable indications for the use of our drugs, or even a number of such drugs as we might term cardiac remedies. We ought to accomplish a great deal more than we do; yea, in the treatment of heart-affections we are much less successful than in the treatment of diseases of the respiratory or digestive organs; nevertheless our successes are decidedly greater than those of the Old School, were it for no other reason than because we have abandoned so many therapeutic follies that even the modern physiological School is guilty of. We should be carried too far, if we would indulge in special statements bearing upon this point, subsequently we shall find opportunities for offering various remarks on this subject. We must, however, even here, protest most emphatically against heart-affections being treated by bloodletting either by physicians of the Old or New School. We would enter this protest even if we had no other reason than because every bleeding diminishes the functional power of the heart and the regularity of its action. Let us at the outset dwell a little more fully upon the reasons why the therapeutic chapter of heart-diseases in the domain of Homoeopathy is as yet so incomplete and so ill-conditioned. In the numerous honceopathic publications bearing upon this subject, the reason is given that our provings are deficient in symptoms corresponding with the signs elicited by a physical exploration of the condition of the heart. This is undoubtedly a great defect which cannot be remedied by re-provings were they conducted with ever so much energy and devotion. Nobody will probably want to poison himself so thoroughly as to produce distinct cardiac murmurs. The only light we can obtain in this direction is by a careful study of accidental cases of poisoning and by means of extensive experiments on animals. It is strange that in cases of poisoning a careful exploration of the heart before and after death has been omitted. If the possession of objective physiological symptoms of heartdisease is still the object of an unfulfilled desire, we must go to work and discover a method of arriving at a knowledge of the true Carditis. 359 remedy without such symptoms. It is our opinion that the only method is the practical experiment, by which we mean that our medicines ought to be applied in accordance with our existing, vague, unreliable and insufficient indications, and that the results should afterwards be registered in accordance with the most careful physical diagnosis. This has not yet been done, and this is the reason why the homceopathic treatment of cardiac affections is so much more defective than that of any other class of diseases. A pneumonia and even a pleuritis can be recognized with tolerable certainty without percussion or auscultation, but the special form of an affection of the heart, and sometimes the existence itself of an affection of the heart cannot be determined without resorting to a physical exploration of the chest. Now we ask, in how many reports of heart-diseases contained in our literature have the requisites of a physical diagnosis been complied with? And how far, in the presence of such glaring defects, do these reports deserve to be credited? In passing these remarks we do not mean to cast a slur upon the labors of our homceopathic veterans who could not possibly be acquainted with our present means of diagnosis; we deem it so much more necessary to point out these defects in order to stimulate the efforts of our rising physicians to acquire this indispensable and highly useful knowledge. It is from these points of view that we request the reader to consider the following statements, and to excuse the defects he may discover in them. One or the other remedy may perhaps have been omitted, but we have stated more than once that we consider an enumeration of too many remedies embarrassing rather than useful to the practitioner. The following are the main remedies in cardiac inflammations: Aconitum. We have already shown in several paragraphs of this work that great abuse is made of Aconite by being given contrary to the homceopathic law in inflammations of various organs and other febrile affections. This admirable remedy deserves to be pointed out so much more emphatically in cases where it is truly homeopathic, and where its curative virtues have been so often and so brilliantly verified. There is no doubt that the lungs and the heart are the main organs upon which Aconite exerts its chief influence; whatever objections may otherwise be raised against their method of proving, Schroff and Van Praag have earned our thanks for having shed more light on the relations which Aconite holds to both the lungs and the heart. We here only relate the 360 Diseases of the Heart. symptoms pointing to cardiac inflammation, as developed by a deeply-penetrating and protracted poisoning. At first the beats of the heart become more rapid and more violent, and this increase lasts so much longer the less excessive the quantity in which the experimental dose was taken. At the same time the respiration is extremely accelerated, the temperature is increased, a feeling of sickness is experienced, and all the symptoms of a more or less considerable cerebral hypersemia set in. The pulse is hard and strong. The pain in the cardiac region is not a constant symptom, but was often felt. In the further course of the proving the beats of the heart become slower, sometimes to a great extent; or else they remain quick and grow feeble, irregular, they seldom remain vehement. On the contrary, the pulse changes to a feeble and small pulse, not synchronous with the beats of the heart, intermitting or unequal; the temperature is lower while the number of respirations increases rather than decreases. This last circumstance alone would be sufficient to stamp Aconite as a cardiac remedy, for slowness of the pulse and a simultaneous and considerable decrease of the number of respirations are phenomena that only occur in diseases of the heart. As to the symptoms developed in the organism generally, we do not mention them in this place; they embrace all those that always accompany cardiac inflammation. These physiological results have been confirmed by practice in a most striking manner. In every pericarditis and endocarditis, whether primary or secondary, Aconite is the first and most important remedy whenever the inflammation sets in with febrile phenomena. We consider this remedy indicated even if the fever is moderate or is altogether wanting. Aconite is not only indicated at the cormencement of the disease, but in many cases during its whole course, more especially in rheumatic cardiac inflamnlations, as long as the organic alterations do not result in paralytic or cyanotic symptoms. We would rather treat a case of cardiac inflammation with nothing but Aconite, than a case of pneumonia. Of course, we must not, as is the custom with homoeopathic routine-practitioners, limit ourselves to synochal fever as a paramount indication, but keep the whole series elicited by a thoroughly-penetrating proving in view. It is in this manner only that the full therapeutic raInge of this great remedy can be determined. Digitalis purpurea has been and still is regarded by many as inappropriate in acute diseases and more especially in acute cardiac inaflammations. We cannot sufficiently protest against this view Carditis. 361 which has a tendency to restrict the usefulness of a drug that may exert such a beneficent influence over disease. If Digitalis were more frequently and more rationally used in acute heart-affections, we should be much less frequently called upon to employ it in chronic heart-disease. Since I have devoted, for years past, special attention to the use of this drug, I have found it much more frequently applicable in the treatment of disease than in former times, and I am now prepared to assert most positively what I was then only able to announce in rather dubious language, that Digitalis is.an excellent remedy in acute affections of the heart, more particularly in pericarditis. Digitalis is not so much adapted to inflammations setting in with very violent symptoms, but to inflammations approaching in an insidious and scarcely observable manner, more especially without any local pain, but with a rapidly increasing embarrassment of the respiration. We should take a very one-sided view of the action of this drug, if we were to regard the irregularity and slowness of the pulse as the chief criterium for its application, since a rapid and very weak pulse constitutes an equally reliable indication. Even a violent excitement of the functional activity of the heart, as generally occurs' at the commencement of cardiac inflammation, is in characteristic accord with the first symptoms of poisoning by Digitalis. Among all the various forms of cardiac inflammation, we consider the rheumatic form best adapted to Digitalis, and likewise if it is associated with a copious effusion of serum; less, however, to pericarditis i'f the friction-murmurs continue unchanged from the beginning of the disease. The sooner these murmurs disappear, the better is Digitalis adapted to the case. In endocarditis it seems almost impossible to indicate special heart-symptoms requiring the use of Digitalis; in such cases the constitutional symptoms will have to determine our choice. In myocarditis the doubtful character of the diagnosis will render it an especially difficult task to point out indications for the use of Digitalis that have been confirmed by experience; one circumstance speaks in favor of Digitalis which is, that in myocarditis the action of the heart is most suddenly weakened to an extraordinary degree. Among the general symptoms the following invite more particular attention to the use of Digitalis: Rapidly-increasing dyspncea, with occasional symptoms of acute congestion of the chest; inflammation of the pleura or lungs; bronchitis; chronic catarrh of the bronchia; expectoration mixed, not streaked with blood; spasmodic cough. Livid, turgescent face with blue lips; headache, vertigo, delirium, 362 Diseases of the Heart. sopor. Vomiting at the commencement or during the course of the disease; hyperremia of the liver, slight icterus, catarrh of the kidneys. Excessive feeling of illness, not corresponding with the perceptible symptoms; great anxiety, but without any continual restlessness. Aggravation by the slightest motion. A drawing-tearing pain in the left shoulder. Veratrum album is one of the choicest cardiac remedies, although this place has not yet been assigned to it by homceopathic practitioners; the stage of functional excitement of the heart is still more apt to rapidly change to a state of paralytic weakness; the pulse becomes very irregular, generally extremely rapid, small and feeble; this change takes place although the alvine evacuations may not be by any means excessive, so that the heart-symptoms have to be regarded as the effect of direct action, not as resulting from a highly acute anaemia. Veratrum-is our first choice in acute cases, if the following general symptoms are present: Violent dyspncea; constrictive sensation in the throat; constant short, dry, hacking cough. Bluish complexion, with an expression of deep prostration; sopor, stupefaction, excessive dulness and tightness of the head. Vomiting and diarrhcea. Considerable diminution of the urinary secretion. Convulsive motions, more particularly of a clonic character. Cool, dissolving perspiration, with icy coldness of the extremities. So far we have no clinical records confirming the homcoopathicity of Veratrum to heart-disease. Arsenicum album is frequently mentioned as a chief remedy in cardiac inflammations; we confess, however, that we have never seen any good effects from it in acute affections. It is a remarkable fact that among the large number of cases of poisoning by Arsenic, post-mortem examinations have never yet revealed a single symptom that might lead us to infer that Arsenic exerts a specific inflammatory action upon the heart. This shows that the heartsymptoms, which Arsenic occasions so constantly and exquisitely, have to be accounted for in a different manner than by means of an inflammatory process. Clinical experience leads us to trace these symptoms to dissonances of the cardiac nerves, or else to regard them as secondary symptoms. Myocarditis presents many points of resemblance to the symptoms of Arsenic, and it is more especially in this disease that we should try Arsenic, were it only for the reason that Arsenic exerts an intensely-paralyzing effect upon the muscular tissue of the heart. This effect of Arsenic determines its relation to the other two forms of cardiac inflammation. IHence Carditis. 363 we consider Arsenic indicated in the cases where Veratrum seems indicated, if the pulse very speedily loses its fulness and strength, and an excessive state of debility sets in at an early period. This is most generally the case with cachectic individuals, and Arsenic is one of the most essential remedies in most cachexias. Among secondary heart-diseases, chronic pericarditis is the only one where Arsenic would be appropriate, if a copious exudation is present. In valvular disease, we have never obtained any decided improvement by Arsenic; it only acts as an uncertain palliative. Spigelia is an important remedy in heart-affections, but its provings have to be greatly improved. In accordance with what is published of this drug, Hartmann gives the following symptomatic indications: Undulating motion of the heart; indistinct beats of the heart running into one another; when laying the hand upon the heart, tumultuous beating of the heart in a recumbent as well as in a sitting posture, not synchronous with the radial pulse; spasms of the chest, suffocative complaints; tremulous sensation in the chest and temples; increased by motion; tearing sensation in the chest, when raising the arms over the head, and when touching the pit of the stomach; purring murmur during the beats of the heart; stitches in the region of the heart; pulsations of the carotids with a tremulous motion; great dyspncea at every change of position; bright redness of the lips and cheeks, changing to pallor during every motion; the impulse of the heart raises the four last true ribs, the sternum and xiphoid cartilage, and displaces the dorsal vertebrae; audible beating of the heart, causing a pain that is felt through to the back; cutting pains from the heart to the shoulders as far as the head and arms; excessive dyspncea, with a pressingcutting pain in the abdomen, at the insertion of the ribs; arthritic pains and stiffness of the joints; dull stitches where the beats of the heart are felt, and recurring with the measured regularity of the pulse; the beats of the heart can be felt through the clothes, with anxious oppression of the chest; scraping in the throat, affection of the tracheal and bronchial mucous membrane; the beats of the heart are not synchronous with the pulse; purring murmur. As respects this enumeration, it is to be observed that these symptoms for the most part are not the result of physiological experimentation, but clinical symptoms observed upon the sick, and hence are of less value to us. At any rate these symptoms do not contain the symptoms of sero-plastic, nor of serous pericarditis. On the other hand we distinctly recognize in this complex of symptoms both the 364 Diseases of the Heart. purely plastic pericarditis as well as incipient' endocarditis. But upon what basis are we to prescribe Spigelia in cases where the disease is painless and has scarcely any symptoms? This shows that it is a great mistake to lay too much stress upon sensations of pain, which is not by any means a constant companion of cardiac inflammation. What invites more than all these theoretical statements to the use of Spigelia in heart-affections is the fact that it has been so often and so variously employed in practice with decided advantage. -According to practical experience, Spigelia is particularly adapted to rheumatic pericarditis, likewise to sero-plastic pericarditis during its whole course, especially if the patient complains of an intense local pain, and the affection is evidently characterized by all the signs of cardiac inflammation; and to rheumatic endocarditis in its incipient stage, or to endocarditis generally before marked valvular changes have taken place. Nitrum has so far commanded too little the attention of practitioners, nor are we in possession of any decided clinical testimony. Nevertheless we have every reason to recommend Nitre in cardiac inflammation, more particularly if it sets in in company with active pulmonary congestions, or as a symptom of Bright's disease, or associated with acute rheumatism. A striking participation of the kidneys in the pathological process going on in the heart, points urgently to the employment of Nitre. Phosphorus is not usually numbered among the cardiac remedies, nor can it be denied that its relation to the heart is not by any means constant. But if the post-mortem examinations of individuals who had been poisoned by Phosphorus, so often reveal lesions about the heart, especially where death did not take place immediately after the ingestion of the poison, it seems as though we could not deny the fact that Phosphorus exerts a direct action upon the heart, and that the cardiac phenomena which Phosphorus occasions, are not merely of a sympathetic or secondary nature. The main post-mortem appearances as far as the heart is concerned, are: the muscular tissue is flabby and easily torn; opaque appearance and interstitial distention of the endocardium; bloody infiltration which in certain circumscribed spots penetrates the whole thickness of the muscular tissue. If, in addition to this, we consider the very feeble, small and exceedingly frequent pulse; the frequent observation that the sounds of the h(art either frequently disappear or are replaced by murmurs, it seems to us that Phosphorus has more claims to be regarded as a remedy for cardiac Carditis. 365 inflammation than most other medicines, more especially in cases of secondary origin. We cannot deny, however, that the indications upon which its homceopathic application has so far been based, appear to us totally erroneous. In our opinion the following are the true indications suggested by physiological experimentation: Phosphorus is exclusively suitable for inflammation of the endocardium and the muscular tissue, never for pericarditis. The constitutional symptoms would lead us to recommend Phosphorus in endocarditis associated with Pneumonia, where it has rendered us the most signal service on two occasions, we mean against the cardiac inflammation, not against the pneumonia, for we have already stated when treating of pneumonia, that, when pneumonia is complicated with cardiac inflammation, the presence of the latter constitutes an absolute obstacle to the absorption of the pneumonic exudation. In the next place Phosphorus takes the precedence over every other medicine in cardiac inflammations when occurring as complications of such processes as lead us to infer a dissolution of the blood, like scurvy, puerperal fever, malignant exanthematous diseases, typhus, etc. Finally we possess few remedies that embody in their pathogeneses as plain a picture of nephritic and cardiac inflammation, as Phosphorus. And lastly Phosphorus is almost the only remedy of which we are sure that it occasions an infiltration of the muscular tissue, and that on this account it becomes a highly important remedy in myocarditis. We are not in possession of any clinical material to prove the correctness of these statements, but, with a view of substantiating them more fully, we will call attention to one circumstance. Phosphorus is employed by most homceopaths in pneumonia as well as in other inflammatory and exanthematic diseases with the best result, whenever- the inflammation assumes a nervous or rather a typhoid type. In a vast majority of such cases a strict examination would undoubtedly show the presence of cardiac inflammation, for it is this that most frequently imparts all at once a typhoid character to pathological processes that generally run an ordinary course. It is our belief that Phosphorus has often cured cardiac. inflammations without the physician being aware of it. Finally we have to point out a symptom which most decidedly indicates Phosphorus, we mean the dilatation which develops itself during endccardial inflammation with such surprising rapidity. After all these remarks we do not deem it necessary to criticise the indications offered by other physicians, for they are almost all of them vague and indefinite. 366 Diseases of the Heart. Colchicum autumnale seems to us to be improperly ranked among cardiac remedies. We are in possession of a large number of both rapid and slow cases of poisoning, but in no case does a post-mortem examination show more than a quantity of bloody coagula in the right ventricle and the vene cavse; only in one case the endocardium was found ecchymosed, and there was a complete absence of pericardial fluid. All the heart-symptoms are of a. secondary nature and are founded in the excessive losses of fluids occasioned by Colchicum. Although Colchicum is highly praised for rheumatism of the heart; this may be owing to the general curative powers it manifests in acute rheumatism, though not by any means in avery striking or constant manner. According to Miuller, Colchicum is more suitable as a remedy for pericarditis than for endocarditis. Hartmann's indications are utterly meaningless. One important point has to be well kept in view in selecting Colchicum, it is this: that Colchicum causes an extraordinary increase in the secretion of uric acid. It is precisely this circumstance which invests this remedy with importance in heart-affections during an attack of gout. Bryonia alba is, next to Aconite, regarded by many homceopathic practitioners as the main remedy in pericarditis with sero-plastic effusion. In this case the exhibition of the drug is evidently not based upon the symptoms in the Materia Medica Pura, for the heart-symptoms in the pathogenesis of Bryonia are mostly unmeaning or at least very vague. The analogy of pleuritis and pericarditis has doubtless led to the use of the drug; nor do we intend to dispute the propriety of such a conclusion, since Bryonia has such an excellent effect in all inflammatory affections of serous membranes, and is altogether indispensable in acute rheumatism. We likewise admit that the pathological picture developed by the supervention of pericarditis during pneumonia or pleuritis, generally corresponds very fully with the pathogenesis of Bryonia. We would limit the use of Bryonia to such cases; for uncomplicated pericarditis we undoubtedly possess more suitable remedies. Cannabis is undoubtedly one of the remedies that has a direct action upon the heart, but we do not yet know what is the precise nature of this action. More recently a number of investigations have been instituted concerning the nature of Indian hemp (haschisch), from which we have extracted the following group of cardiac symptoms: Violent palpitations of the heart, sometimes without any anguish, and sometimes attended with perfect agony or the most frightful restlessness; pulse small and sometimes inter Carditis. 367 mitting fora minute, from 100 to 120 beats; constriction of the pit of the stomach; paroxysms of anguish; the beats of the heart are scarcely perceptible and extremely weak; fear of death, which is felt every time the pulse intermits. To judge by these few symptoms, which always set in after large doses of Cannabis, this drug would seem to be a powerful cardiac remedy; yet all secondary circumstances being considered, we shall find that this is not the case. The incipient exaltation of the heart's action coincides with great exaltation of cerebral action which is attended with phenomena of congestion. The cerebral exaltation very soon changes to extreme depression, even partial paralysis, (for instance of the nerves of the senses, skin,) and this depression is likewise accompanied by symptoms of diminished action of the heart, the latter lasting precisely as long as the cerebral depression. From this connection we can infer almost with certainty that the heartsymptoms do not arise from disease of the heart itself, but from a functional change in the brain. Otherwise it would be inconceivable how such marked alterations of the functions should pass off so speedily and without leaving a trace behind. Our opinion that Cannabis cannot be relied upon as a remedy in cardiac inflammations, is confirmed by the circumstance that the clinical trials that have been instituted with this remedy, have not in any respect substantiated the recommendations with which this medicine has been honored. Opium might claim the privilege of being considered a cardiac remedy with as much propriety as Cannabis; but in its case the cardiac symptoms are likewise secondary results of a primary functional change in the brain. If one of these two remedies were to be employed in heart-affections, it would be in cases of endocarditis where the brain is very much involved; this scarcely ever happens in pericarditis. Lachesis. It is a remarkable fact that the opinion of practitioners concerning this agent are diametrically opposed to each other. Many pretend to have effected extraordinary cures with this agent; others have always used it without any benefit. The reason of this is undoubtedly that one preparation was reliable and another was not; for that the serpent-poison has a powerful effect, is shown by every fresh bite of the reptile. Every case of poisoning by the bite of a serpent shows that this class of poisons exerts a specific action upon the heart. We have an unusual increase of the frequency of the pulse which becomes feeble and small, or intermittent; there is 368 Diseases of the Heart. pain in the region of the heart, the pain being sometimes intense; palpitations'of the heart, fearful anguish, bloody expectoration with constant hacking cough, marked- symptoms of cyanosis, icy coldness of the extremities, with cold perspiration, retention of urine; paralytic sensation in the whole left side of the body, or a violent pain in the left shoulder'and left arm, etc. Post-mortem examinations have always shown the heart more or less affected. The endocardium in the region of the valves is infiltrated and easily torn; ecchymoses cover its internal and external surface; exudations in the muscular tissue of the heart. According to these symptoms, Lachesis must prove a good remedy in very acute cases of endocarditis, not in pericarditis. As a matter of course, our clinical trials must be instituted with a good preparation, which ought to be readily obtainable, since the poisons of the different kinds of Viper act equally upon the heart. The fact that the blood is speedily decomposed after the Lachesis trigonocephalus has inflicted its bite, deserves special consideration. This circumstance'indicates Lachesis very pointedly in typhus and acute exanthems. [Bsehr has omitted the mention of Naja tripudians as a remedy for heart-disease. We are indebted to Dr. Russell, of England, for a proving of this snake-poison. Dr. Hughes, in his late Manual of Pharmaco-dynamics, confirms the therapeutic value of this agent in diseases of the heart. "To quiet," says he, "chronic nervous palpitation, to aid in the restoration of a heart recently damaged by inflammation, and to assuage the sufferings of chronic hypertrophy and valvular disease, it was ranked by Dr. Russell as the chief remedy: and I think I can confirm his estimate." I1.] Sulphur is not classed by us among the cardiac remedies, although its pathogenesis contains a number of symptoms referring to the heart; nevertheless, we consider it valuable for reasons that we have already stated when treating of inflammatory processes in former chapters. No remedy is better able than Sulphur to effect *the reabsorption of an exudation that had already existed for a time, and in our opinion this proposition applies to all inflammatory processes. In a case of pericarditis, where uncommonly loud friction-murmurs and a rubbing of the pericardial surfaces against each other, that could even be felt by the hand, had already existed for upwards of three months, these symptoms disappeared entirely after Sulphur had been given for a fortnight. We only recommend Sulphur for pericarditis, especially the plastic form of the disease, after the inflammatory stage proper has run its course. In endo Carditis. 369 carditis there is generally no exudation to be removed; for its severe consequences are limited to losses of substance which it is dificult to replace. lodium likewise deserves attention where all that remains to be done, is to remove the exudation. Indeed, we cannot afford to overlook a single remedy of this kind, considering the small number of those that can be of any use in this direction. Besides, however, the pathogenesis of lodium contains a number of useful symptoms referring to cardiac affections. If we would here furnish an exhaustive list of our cardiac remedies, we should have to add a considerable number to those already described, more particularly if we were to include all the remedies referring to the remote consequences of cardiac inflammation, to'which we have devoted a separate chapter under the heading of "Valvular Diseases." Many remedies among them we do not regard as cardiac remedies and consider their employment governed by peculiar complications. Such remedies are: Belladonna, Pulsatilla, Tartarus emeticus, Mercurius, Rhus, Arnica. Other remedies have not yet been sufficiently investigated in their relations to the heart, such as: Bismuthum, Laurocerasus, Acidurn oxalicum. The effects of the last-named remedy upon the heart are certainly worthy of a careful study. In order to facilitate the study of these drugs we here furnish a synoptical view of each drug, with reference to the special cardiac conditions, with which it is in therapeutic accord. In, pericarditis, if setting in as a primary affection, Aconite will always be the best remedy to commence the treatment with. How long this remedy is to be continued, will depend upon the course the disease takes, more especially upon the course of the existing exudation. As soon as a copious exudation has set in, both the pains and the fever generally abate, after which some other remedy may be chosen with great propriety. Bryonia, Spigelia, Digitalis, and likewise Nitrum may now claim our attention. Bryonia and Spigelia may be given when loud friction-murmurs are heard, and the patient complains of continual pain, the area of cardiac dulness is somewhat enlarged, and the pulse is accelerated and not weakened; Nitrum may be resorted to, if the lungs are intensely congested, and there is a good deal of cough with bloody expectoration. Digitalis, if the cardiac dulness is rapidly extending over a larger area, the friction-murmurs disappear very rapidly and collapse sets in, the pulse being either very quick and feeble, or else 24 370 Diseases of the Heart. very slow or intermittent. Veratrum album acts similarly to Digitalis. These two remedies, in connection with Arsenicum, are most generally adapted to the violent dyspncea with cyanotic symptoms. After the true inflammatory stage has run its course, the absorption of the plastic exudation is promoted by Sulphur and perhaps Iodine, and of the serous exudation by Arsenicum, Digitalis, and perhaps also by Tartarus stibiatus and Colchicun. In the secondary or complicating pericarditis, the following remedies are of importance: For acute rheumatism, with increase of fever: Aconite; if rheumatism sets in without any special symptoms: Digitalis; if pains are present: Spigelia, moreover Colchicum, Tartarus stibiatus, Rhus, Mercurius. If complicated with pneunmonia: Aconite, Iodine, Phosphorus, Bryonia;-if with pleuritis: Bryonia, Spigelia, Digitalis, also Nitrum. In the malignant forms of pericarditis supervening during the presence of pysemia or other septic forms of disease, Arsenicum, and above all, Phosphorus, will prove the most important remedies. Pericarditis, complicated with acute exanthemata, requires principally: Aconite in the case of measles; _Rhus toxicodendron in scarlatina and measles; Mercuriis and Tartarus stibiatus in small-pox; Ammonium carbonicum in scarlatina; it is questionable, however, whether the cardiac inflammation had not rather be treated first without reference to the exanthem. It is only in rare cases that primary endocarditis will be of a nature to require Aconite exclusively. The chief-indication here is the quality of the pulse; as long as the pulse is hard and full, Aconite is undoubtedly suitable. We have shown above that Aconite may be indicated during the whole course of the disease. After Aconite, Spigelia may be required, Digitalis less frequently; Nitrum and Veratrum album may likewise have to be given. In very acute cases Lachesis, Veratrum album, or Arsenicun, may often be required from the first. If the brain is greatly disturbed: Veratrum album, Cannabis, Opium. In rheumatic endocarditis with complications: Aconitmn, Colchicum, Spigelia, less frequently Digitalis; if co-existing with pneumonia or pleuritis: Phosphorus, Veratrum album, Nitrum, also Bryonia; with typhus: Phosphorus, also RhAts toxicod. and Arsenicum, Opium and Cannabis; with nephritis: Phosphorus, Nitrum, Arsenicum, Colchicum, also Cantharides; when acute exanthems are present, the same treatment as for pericarditis: In myocarditis we would depend upon Phosphorus, Arsenicum Carditis. 37i and _Digitalis; we likewise call attention to the importance of Plumbum in this disease. [Of Kalmia latifolia which has likewise been recommended as a cardiac remedy, we have no reliable clinical reports worth mentioning. Cactus grandiforus is the last important cardiac remedy which has been introduced to the profession by Doctor Rubini of Naples. It seems to be particularly adapted to the organic defects consequent upon acute- cardiac inflammations, especially rheumatic endocarditis. HIypertrophies and valvular deficiencies seem to come more particularly within its curative range. In the cases where we have tried it, we have seen better effects from it in the tincture than in the attenuations. The case of hypertrophy of the right ventricle reported in the May number 1866 of the British Homceopathic Review, presents a very fair illustration of the curative effects of Cactus in heart-discase. It is likewise recommended for chronic nervous palpitation. According to Dr. Hughes, the feeling as if the heart were grasped and compressed as with an iron hand, is very characteristic of Cactus in these cases of nervous palpitations. If this be so, it rivals Digitalis which causes this feeling in a most marked manner. See my Materia Melica. H.] If the three forms of cardiac inflammation occur together, our chief attention should, in our opinion, be first devoted to pericarditis, the presence of which always favors the progress of the other two forms of inflammation and retards their retrograde metamorphosis. Dietetic and hygienic measures are of the utmost importance in cardiac inflammations, especially if the disease runs a rather latent course, which might throw the patients off their guard and even make them believe that a little exercise will hasten their cure. Our chief attention should be directed to avoid every thing that might have a tendency to stimulate the heart's action; hence mental as well as bodily exertions are entirely out of place. This point must never be lost sight of, even if all signs of inflammation have disappeared, especially in a case of endocarditis. The stomach being generally involved in the cardiac disturbance, the patients generally reject all kinds of nourishing food; but even if this should not be the case, the most rigid diet should be advised as a matter of precaution, at least at the beginning of the disease. This is all the more advisable since cardiac inflammations do not of themselves exhaust the system. Coexisting affections, of course, may 872 Diseases of the Heart. render dietetic modifications; necessary. As soon as the febrile symptoms have been subdued, a more invigorating diet may be advised. However, if in the case of other inflammatory affections we have not hesitated to recommend a glass of wine or beer during convalescence, we would with equal emphasis advise a:gainst the use of these stimulants in convalescence from cardiac inflammations. The smallest quantity of such stimulants has a tendency to excite the functional activity of the heart. This remark applies even to malt-beer, which contains a sufficient amount of carbonic acid gas to excite the circulation in many persons. The fact that cardiac inflammation often runs a latent course, is undoubtedly the reason why, in such circumstances, stimulants often have an injurious effect upon convalescent persons, and so greatly predispose the mlinds of physicians against their use. The severe diet observed during the period of convalescence should be pursued some time after, for the reason that the inflammation very often leaves remains that escape our observation and entail a tendency to relapses or to organic alterations, such as hypertrophies and valvular diseases, that can only be prevented by the utmost care from increasing to a fatal termination. 2. Slypertrophia Cordis. Hypertrophy of the Heart. By this name we designate a condition of the heart, where its volume is considerably enlarged by the increased thickness of its muscular tissue, and by a more or less considerable distention of its cavities. The formerly current forms of hypertrophy of the heart are no longer accredited before the tribunal of modern pathology. An increase of the size of the heart by adventitious formations within the tissue of the heart, is no longer regarded as a genuine form of hypertrophy. This disease is caused by conditions which sooner or later determine an increased activity of the heart, on which account hypertrophy is generally to be regarded as a secondary or consecutive affection. Since the whole heart does not become hypertrophied at once, but the hypertrophy generally begins with one particular cavity, we find that hypertrophy arises from the following pathological changes: IHypertrophy of the left ventricle: stenosis and insufficiency of the aortic orifice, stenosis of the aorta itself, aneurisms of the aorta, Hypertrophia Cordis. 373 atrophy of the renal parenchyma, amputation of the thigh and consequent ligation of the femoral artery. The same causes most commonly lead to hypertrophy of the left auricle and stenosis of the mitral orifice. Right ventricle: Stenosis and insufficiency of the orifice of the pulmonary artery; insufficiency of the mitral valve and stenosis of the left auriculo-ventricular orifice consequent upon the obstruction offered by this insufficiency to the complete emptying of the pulmonary veins; diseases which restrict the capacity of the lungs and considerably diminish the lesser circulation, such as emphysema, atelectasia, tuberculosis, pleuritis, caries of the vertebrae, curvatures. Hypertrophy of the right auricle alone scarcely ever takes place; on the other hand this auricle always participates in the hypertrophy of the ventricle. Every attentive observer must have noticed that primary hypertrophy arises in consequence of hereditary disposition without any apparent cause; or it may develop itself in cases where a peculiar mode of living stimulates the heart to a constant and severe action, as may take place in consequence of severe manual labor, continued running, excessive gymnastic exercises, fencing, abuse of strong coffee, wine, beer, spirits; or finally, hypertrophy may arise if the heart is kept in a constant state of tumultuous action by strong psychical impressions, hence in the case of individuals with intensely sanguine temperaments. Hypertrophy of the heart may occur at any age between the years of fifteen and forty. Males are decidedly more liable to it than females, especially to hypertrophy of the left ventricle; this, however, is probably owing to the circumstance that men are more frequently exposed to the causes giving rise to such structural changes. The anatomical changes consist in a thickening of the walls of the heart and of the inter-ventricular partition, in a more or less considerable dilatation of the cavities, very commonly in a darker color of the muscular tissue, in displacements of the heart and changes in its external shape. If the hypertrophy is general, the heart assumes the shape of a triangle with obtuse angles; if the left ventricle alone is hypertrophied, the heart becomes elongated and somewhat conical, and the apex is turned more towards the left side; if the right ventricle is hypertrophied, the shape of the heart becomes more rounded, its diameter in breadth is longer, and the heart approximates more to the right side. The base of the 874 Diseases of the Heart. hypertrophied heart generally reaches a little below the normal line. Symptoms and Course. Only two forms of cardiac hypertrophy can be described symptomatically, because they alone occur as primary diseases, we mean hypertrophy of the whole heart and that of the left ventricle; whereas hypertrophy of the right ventricle is almost always of a secondary character, and its symptomatic manifestation is essentially depending upon the nature of the primary disease. So far as hypertrophy of the right ventricle is concerned, we shall therefore have to confine ourselves to indicating the general consequences of this disorganization. Whereas primary hype:trophy of a certain grade always represents a really morbid condition of the heart, secondary hypertrophy can at the commencement only be regarded as an endeavor of the organism to restore the disturbed equilibrium. This is the reason why the lesser degrees of this structural change exist without any morbid symptoms, or are only accompanied by disturbances, such as are called forth by accidental stimu'.ations of the heart's action. The more frequent and violent such stimulations and the longer their duration, the more they contribute to increase the existing hypertrophy and to complicate it by the production of valvular disease and dilatation of the cardiac cavities. In moderate hypertrophy of the left ventricle, without any marked dilatation, the arterial blood is driven with increased power into the arteries of the systemic circulation and likewise through an increased frequency of the contractions of the heart. The impulse of the heart is stronger and generally visible, and extending over a larger area, so that it can be felt even in the fifth and sixth intercostal spaces, and even beyond the nipple. A larger extent of dulness is not always traceable on account of the overlapping portions of lung. While in a state of rest, the patients generally feel well, they complain at most of a slight feeling of pressure in the praecordial region. Every rather violent and continued motion, every mental excitement not only causes a troublesome and even distressing palpitation of the heart, but along with it an oppression and feeling of anxiety in the chest, a sensation as if the clothes were too tight, dyspncea. The increased excitement in the arterial circulation gives rise to congestions of the head, the face looks flushed, the eyes glisten and are injected, the margin of the lids often looks as if inflamed, there is buzzing in the ears, vertigo, etc., the congestion is less frequently met with in the tract of the aorta Hypertrophia Cordis. 875 descendens, because the situation of the arteries it supplies renders them more yielding to its impelling power. A high grade of hypertrophy of the left ventricle scarcely ever exists without valvular defects, most generally stenosis of the aortic orifice; it very soon becomes associated with dilatation of the left ventricle. As long as the mitral valve remains intact, such a hypertrophy is characterized by the same phenomena as those described above, only in a more intense degree, and with shorter, or without any intermissions. But if, owing to the excessive dilatation, the mitral valve is no longer sufficient to close the auriculoventricular orifice, the consequence is that the more forcible expulsion of the blood into the aorta becomes associated with a stasis in the lesser circulation and more'immediately in the function of the right ventricle, in consequence of which the whole heart becomes hypertrophied in the most dangerous acceptation of this term. The impulse of the heart is perceived over a large extent by the eye, ear and touch; it is even heard without the ear being applied to the chest; the concussion of the thorax is extreme; the dulness extends further on to the left, and is returned over a larger area, the heart descends below its normal line, the ribs even bulge. The sounds of the heart are either muffled, or else ringing, and, if the valves are diseased, murmurs are heard. Other symptoms can easily be inferred by any one who considers that the arteries are extremely engorged, and that the lungs are in a state of hypervemia. All these conditions will be dwelt upon more fully when we come to treat of valvular anomalies. The phenomena emanating from the hypertrophied right ventricle, are very frequently entirely disguised by those of the affection which had given rise to the hypertrophy. Anxiety, dyspnea, oppression, palpitation of the heart, may be caused by pulmonary affections alone. Simple hypertrophy merely results in a greater accumulation of blood in the lungs, and a consequent catarrhal affection of the lungs, with hemorrhage, hyperoemia of the lungs. The physical signs are: Increased extent of dulness on the right side, even beyond the right border of the sternum; pulsation in the pit of the stomach, perceptible raising of the lower border of the sternum; accentuation of the second sound of the pulmonary artery. Hypertrophy with dilatation may be very considerable wthout superinducing any serious derangements. It implies a sort of uniform compensation of functional power, and the patients only per 376 Diseases of the Heart. ceive a dirturbance of equilibrium if they undertake to undergo severe bodily exertions. In hypertrophy with dilatation the heart often thumps very violently, without causing the patient any great trouble; the impulse of the heart often raises the head of the auscultating physician, and is felt over a much larger extent; the cardiac dulness is returned over a longer and wider area; the sounds of the heart are stronger and more sharply accentuated, and have very often a metallic ring. The course of hypertrophy is more especially determined by the consequences resulting from it to the general organism. Under favorable circumstances such patients may live to an old age provided they live within the bounds of moderation, prudence and frugality. If other morbid dispositions exist, the cardiac disease may give them a fatal start. Cerebral as well as pulmonary apoplexy of young people is preeminently a consequence of cardiac hypertrophy. If hypertrophy coexists with, or is depending upon aneurism or an atheromatous condition of the vessels, it acts both as a compensation to the obstructed circulation and as a cause of the rupture of the vessels. We should always bear in mind that \imple hypertrophy is not, of itself, a dangerous condition, but that it becomes dangerous as soon as valvular defects arise. We, therefore, refer the reader to the chapter on valvular diseases where all these complications will be explained and accounted for. Professor Niemeyer furnishes the following excellent diagnostic details: For eccentric hypertrophy of the left ventricle: Visible pulsation of the carotids; loud systolic murmur in the large arteries, full pulse which is visible even in the smaller arteries; increased impulse of the heart, felt much higher up from the apex; the apex of the heart reaches lower down than normally; larger extent of dulness from the apex upwards; increase of the sounds of the heart in the left ventricle and in the aorta, and sometimes a metallic ringing.-For the hypertrophy of the right ventricle: Stronger impulse of the heart, extending to the sternum and sometimes even to the left lobe of the liver; displacement of the apex outwards, scarcely ever at the same time downwards; greater extent of cardiac dulness in breadth, increase of the sounds of the heart, in the right ventricle and in the pulmonary artery, the second sound of which is most important.-For hypertrophy with dilatation: The arteries and the pulse as in hypertrophy of the left ventricle; the impulse of the heart is considerably stronger and extending more in length and breadth; the apex of the heart points Hypertrophia Cordis. 377 lower down and outwardly; cardiac dulness is felt over a larger area in every direction; all the sounds of the heart are louder. The prognosis becolhes in the long run unfavorable, for the reason that the disorder bears within itself the conditions of growth. Treatment. That cardiac hypertrophy is a curable disease as long as the disorder is not too far developed, is admitted on all sides, although the chances of a cure are not very great. Most pathologists, however, doubt whether a cure can be effected by the direct action of medicine. Before indicating the drugs that require to be used in the treatment of this disease, it may be well to offer a few suggestions that may be of importance in conducting the treatment. If hypertrophy is a necessary and compensating consequence of other morbid conditions, it would be wrong, by removing the hypertrophy, to disturb the equilibrium which the hypertrophy had restored. Fortunately, this is not well possible; nevertheless, attempts are too readily made to depress the apparently excessive energy of the left heart more particularly, and it is this proceeding which we consider injurious. In such circumstances all we can and should aim at, would be to remove the primary pathological cause, and, if this is not possible, to leave the condition intact and at most to treat a few incidental troublesome symptoms. The physician will have enough left to do in supervising and regulating the patient's mode of living, and in controlling intercurrent conditions that might result in an increase of the disorder. If the hypertrophy is a primary disease, either congenital or imperceptibly acquired, there is still'a prospect of the disease being overcome, provided the physician is made aware of it in time. As long as the body continues to grow, we deem it possible to remove the hypertrophy, or at least to reduce it to scarcely perceptible dimensions. For this reason, it is of the utmost importance that, if there is the least suspicion of heart-disease in the case of children or growing people, their hearts should be examined with the utmost care. Young people addicted to the practice of onanism, are very apt to be afflicted with hypertrophy of the heart; when excited by such a cause, the disease can undoubtedly be arrested or even completely removed.' In our opinion the following points ought to determine the treatment of cardiac hypertrophy. In the first place, if possible, the cause should be acted upon. This will be difficult if the circulation is obstructed by some mate 378 Diseases of the Heart. rial obstacle, such as an aneurism, an atrophied kidney, constriction of the aorta, valvular defects. A possibility of this kindhowever, exists, in the case of young people* if the hypertrophy is caused by onanism, premature mental exertions with their necessary attendant consequences of nervousness, excitability, chlorosis, anemmia. The remedies adapted to this purpose are numerous and have already been mentioned in the chapter where the corresponding pathological diseases were treated of. A second causal indication requiring particular attention is the patient's mode of living. The dietetic management has to aim at two objects, in the first place the avoidance of every thing in the patient's mode of living that might aggravate the disorder; and secondly to surround the patient with influences that will have a direct tendency to ameliorate his condition. As regards the first point, spirits, coffee, strong spices, the excessive use of salt, very substantial and more particularly fat food will have to be avoided. The patient should be governed by the nature of his business in the quantity of food he consumes. Overloading the stomach is very hurtful; frequent and small meals are preferable. A person afflicted with cardiac disease should never go to sleep immediately after dinner, or go to bed with a full stomach. Every bodily motion occasioning a sensation of increased action of the heart, is too great a tax on this organ; all mental excitement is likewise strictly to be avoided. As regards the second point, we would call attention to the fact that we very often succeed, by changing the patient's mode of living, in avoiding or diminishing the violent congestions of the head. A business that compels the patient to lead a sedentary mode of life, or exposes him to much excitement, should be abandoned. If icy coldness of the lower extremities is accompanied by heat of the head and a flushed face, this trouble might perhaps be remedied by rapid walking which, by exciting the action of the heart, would, on the other hand, prove a source of mischief, whereas gymnastic exercises with the feet alone might often render the best service, without causing palpitation of the heart. An exhaustive development of these rules would occupy too much space in a work of this size. What we have said will suffice to show in how many ways a patient with heart-disease claims our attention. In the third place, it is a matter of essential importance that all morbid conditions as well as isolated symptoms, which occasion an increased action of the heart, should be remedied as speedily as Hypertrophia Cordis. 379 possible by appropriate remedies.. Here, too, all we can do is to simply mention the leading remedies that we may have to resort to in meeting complicating disorders of this kind, the most important of which we will now proceed to point out. Palpitatiofis of the heart, that is to say: a very violent increase of the action of the heart setting in without any fixed order, with irregularity of the beats of the heart, and always of short duration, are generally met with only in the case of very irritable, nervous individuals. We have obtained the best success in such cases from the use of Digitalis or Digitalin, which we recommend as the best remedies to begin the treatment with. The paroxysms being short, we cannot expect to do much for a single paroxysm, on which account the remedy has to be continued for a time at rather long intervals. Ferrumn may likewise be tried, of course very cautiously, especially if the affection is complicated with tuberculosis and chlorosis. Pulsatilla and China may be classed in this category, but we cannot speak in their favor from personal experience, In one case we have seen good effects from Argentum nitricum and Piatina. Sepia may prove useful to women, but will not do much in the case of men. Palpitation of the heart is one of the most common and most distressing complaints in cardiac hypertrophy, but is at the same time so intimately connected with this disorganization that it is impossible to apply to it remedies that will have an infallibly curative effect. If the palpitation takes place at altogether irregular intervals, or if it only lasts a short while, or even if it continues all the time, we advise the remedies that will be found indicated in the following chapter, and which may be given with a view of treating the whole disease, not merely a single symptom. If the paroxysms set in frequently, or at definite periods, or last some time, we have remedies that have a decidedly soothing effect. If the attack is excited by severe mental labor, by the abuse of coffee or spirits, or by some unpleasant emotional excitement, Nux vomica may'be resorted to; with this precaution that it as well as the remedies to be named hereafter, must not be given in strong doses. If the palpitation attacks robust, full-blooded, excitable individuals with bright complexion, disposition to changes of color in the face, glistening eyes, injected conjunctiva, headache, stinging or shooting pains in the pracordial region, Aconitum is the most appropriate remedy. It is likewise suitable for palpitation caused by a sudden or intense emotion, and more especially if the individual is afflicted 380 Diseases of the Heart. with tuberculosis. Arnica is indicated very nearly by similar conditions. If the palpitation is excited by a fit of anger or vexation, in the case of very nervous persons and children, we give Chamomilla. If excited by a violent fright, or if attended with sopor and restlessness, the face being livid or pallid, we give Opium in a very small dose. Coffea is indicated by nocturnal palpitation of the heart, with great weariness and a constant change of position, with a peculiar anxiousness, after too copious a meal, or after imbibing ardent spirits. Chlorotic individuals require Pulsatilla. If the patients do not smoke, or to female patients, smoking often affords rapid and essential relief, and constitutes one of the best palliatives. Little paper-cigarettes are best adapted to such palliative purposes. If any one should be disposed to doubt the homolepathicity of this drug, let him read one of the many published essays on the effects of tobacco. Pulmonary hyperelmia or rather pulmonary congestion does not occur very frequently, but is very distressing. If emanating from the left heart, Aconitton will most generally relieve it completely. Belladonna has never seemed of much use in this complaint; Arnica and Cannabis may do some good. [Likewise Veratrum viride, H.] If the pulmonary congestion is traceable to the right heart, Digitalis generally proves a sovereign remedy to which Belladonna, Pulsatilla, Carbo vegetabilis are essentially inferior. Cerebral congestions which are sometimes excessive, are likewise frequent accompaniments of cardiac hypertrophy, especially hypertrophy of the left ventricle. Here, too, Aconite is one of the most efficient remedies. We prefer Opium if the head feels excessively constricted, the complexion is dark-red, and the anxiety and restlessness extreme. We should never resort to Belladonna in such a case. If the congestion originates in hypertrophy of the right ventricle, Belladonna is sometimes useful; Digitalis, however, affords relief more efficiently and promptly. The characteristic headache accompanying hypertrophy of the heart, and resembling hemicrania, can scarcely ever be relieved. If such a headache is attended with, and perhaps caused by, hypersemia, the remedies which we have indicated previously, will have to be depended uponi. If the headache is unaccompanied by congestive symptoms, we advise Digitalis, Arsenic or Spigelia. In the fourth place we must try to meet the hypertrophy by all proper remedies. We are aware that to many the abatement and still more the cure of an hypertrophy of the heart seems an im Dilatatio Cordis. 381 possibility; indeed we ourselves should not feel anxious to rashly and unhesitatingly promise a favorable result from our treatment. Nevertheless we have often found that, after using proper remedies, the dangerous phenomena consequent upon hypertrophy of the heart became less, and that in young individuals the hypertrophy yielded so far as to become inaccessible to the usual means of diagnosis. Hence we would, by all means, advise to treat such a case, were it only to make the patient believe that he is taking something, and thus to keep him from using strong and generally deleterious drugs, or to continually remind him, by the use of a little harmless medicine, of the necessity of avoiding every kind of excess and even the least violation of the rules laid down for him by his medical adviser. The medicines which we deem the best adapted to such purposes, are almost all of them metals or inorganic substances, no vegetable drugs. At any rate, we have never obtained any permanently good results from a vegetable drug. We recommend Arsenicum, Aurum, Argentum, Cuprum, Plumbum, Platina and Ferrum. It would be useless to undertake to assign to each of these remedies definite limits in the treatment of hypertrophy; we only recommend in general terms Arsenicum, Plumbum and Ferrum for hypertrophy of the right ventricle, and the other remedies, including likewise Arsenicum, for hypertrophy of the left ventricle. In a given case, the selection of the remedial agent will have to be governed by the nature of the existing general symptoms. Sulphur, Nairum muriaticum and Petroleum may be added to our list of metals. If we desire to obtain good effects from our drugs, we must guard against too strong and too frequently repeated doses, and against changing the remedy too often. Considering the mischief which is so often done by the abuse of large doses of Digitalis, we repeat with decided emphasis that the effect of this drug in hypertrophy of the heart is never permanently curative, but only palliative, and that, if it is given for sleeplessness, it will act so much more like Opium, the more it is homceopathically indicated by slowness of the beats of the heart. S. Milatatio Cordis. Dilatation of the Heart. We mention this condition here so as to avoid incurring the reproach of incompleteness and rendering the pathological statements in other numbers unintelligible. As regards treatment, the 382 Diseases of the Heart. treatment of dilatation of the heart coincides with both hypertrophy and fatty degeneration. Dilatation of the heart may arise, if the heart or the respective ventricle or auricle is exposed during diastole to an increased pressure of the inflowing blood which overcomes to a certain degree the resisting power of the walls of the heart. Inasmuch, however, as the blood flowing in during the diastole of the heart is driven by a proportionally feeble vis a tergo, it is easily understood why the thick walls of the left ventricle and auricle are. so rarely dilated, and why this dilatation is so much more commonly met with on the side of the right ventricle and auricle. Since, in such circumstances, the ventricle makes greater efforts to free itself from its contents which have become excessive, a dilatation is almost always succeeded by hypertrophy, giving rise to eccentric hypertrophy. In another series of cases the cause of dilatation is not an increased pressure of the' blood, but a diminished energy of the muscular structure of the heart, and here we meet with a genuine dilatation without any compensating, consecutive hypertrophy. This diminished energy of the muscular structure of the heart either originates in exceedingly debilitating constitutional diseases, such as typhus and a high degree of anemnia; in which case dilatation of the heart is merely a symptom of these pathological processes whose disappearance generally implies a complete disappearance of the dilatation; or else this defect originates in a disease of the muscular tissue itself, most generally fatty degeneration, less free quently serous infiltration, such as may take place during inflammation of the muscular tissue of the heart, in which case this form of dilatation and fatty degeneration become more or less identical. From these reasons we have deemed it unnecessary to devote a special chapter to the treatment of dilatation. 4. Adipositas Cordis. Fatty Degeneration of the Heart. Fatty degeneration either consists in an abnormal increase of the normal quantity of fat about the heart, or in the adventitious formation of fat within the muscular tissue of the heart. In the former case, the fatty heart proper, the disease can be traced to all those causes that determine a general increase of fat; hence fatty heart is generally met with among persons inclined to grow fat; fatty heart is likewise the result of an excessive use of Adipositas Cordis. 383 ardent spirits. On the contrary and in defiance of all physiological explanations, a fatty heart is.sometimes, although rarely, met with in cachectic individuals or in persons tainted with a constitutional dyscrasia. The second kind, fatty degeneration of the muscular tissue, not unfrequently results from the former. Other more or less reliable causes of this disorganization are: All pathological processes that impair the assimilative power of the muscular structure of the heart, myocarditis, adhesions of the pericardium, largely developed hypertrophy of the heart, valvular defects, more particularly obliteration or degeneration of the coronary arteries.-All other causes that result in morbid fatty metamorphoses in other organs.Pyscrasia of drunkards. In fatty heart, the normal quantity of fat covering the sulcus and apex of the heart, etc., is sometimes increased to such a degree that the whole heart seems surrounded by a thick cushion of fat. The layer of fat deposited on the right side of the heart, is always more considerable and is formed sooner than on the other side. Not unfrequently the fat dips into the interstices of the muscular fibres, impairs their nutrition and either results in atrophy or a fatty degeneration of the muscular tissue. In fatty degeneration which affects more particularly the left heart, as the other form, fatty heart, affects more particularly the right heart, the affected parts of the heart have a pale, yellowish color, are flabby and easily torn. Commonly the degeneration is confined to striated portions of the muscular tissue, is apt to affect the columnae carnese, and, if very extensive, is always accompanied by considerable dilatation of the heart. The single muscular librils, when seen under the microscope, are seen filled with fat-globules, and have lost their transverse striae. Ayjnptoms and GCourse. The lesser grades of fatty heart and fatty degeneration of the heart may run their course without any morbid phenomena; there may even exist a considerable deposition of fat, and yet the general health of the patient may be perfectly sound. Morbid symptoms may not take place until the pressure of the fat causes atrophy or fatty degeneration of the muscular tissue. The first symptoms of this disease consist in functional deficiency of the heart: peculiar feelings of weakness, "dyspnea from the least exertion. In addition to this we have disposition to vertigo, fainting fits or paroxysms resembling syncope and sometimes even apoplexy. Except a distressing sensation of pressure the patient does not experience any pain. In the higher grades of 384 Diseases of the Heart. this disease the skin becomes cool, disposed to perspire profusely, it assumes a pale and sickly appearance, cedenma sets in, and the excessive weakness of the circulation may result in dropsy. The physical signs are the following: Increasing weakness of the impulse of the heart; feebleness of the sounds of the heart, especially of the first ventricular sound; increased extent of cardiac dulness, only in far advanced cases; blowing murmurs in the region of the orifices, owing to the circumstance that the diseased columnae carnede no longer permit the valves to completely close the orifices; easily compressible, soft, unresisting pulse which may show every possible irregularity and is often extremely slow. This affection only runs an acute course if the fatty degeneration sets in rapidly and very extensively in consequence of inflammatory processes; otherwise the disease runs a very chronic course and depending upon the following conditions. If the fatty degeneration affects an hypertrophied heart with valvular disease, dilatation and finally paralysis of the heart result, or else rupture of the heart takes place. This may likewise result from a less extensive fatty degeneration, after partial dilatation has occurred. The disease is very commonly characterized by marked remissions or even complete intermissions. I)eath takes place, although not in a majority of cases, either by general marasmus with dropsy, or by cedema of the lungs or paralysis of the brain, or, which is most commonly the case, very suddenly by acute anaemia of the brain, rupture or paralysis of the heart. In treating this disease, we have to aim in the first place at arresting its progress by the avoidance of every hurtful influence generally and every dietetic indiscretion in particular; next, at stopping the paroxysms of distress as soon as possible; and finally at effecting a retrograde metamorphosis of the disorganization. In a curative point of view, the dietetic treatment is really applicable only to fatty heart, not to fatty degeneration. There is no doubt that we are sometimes able to remove an excessive tendency to fatness, and most probably to influence by similar proceedings, the excessive deposition of fat about the heart. In this respect, the extraordinary efficacy of the KIarlsbad springs is so well known that we could not help censuring a physician who would refuse to send his patients to Karlsbad from no higher motive than a fanatical adherence to a therapeutic system. Unfortunately the fat which had disappeared under the influence of Karlsbad, but too often and rapidly returns even in an increased quantity after the Adipositas Cordis. 385 patient has gone back to his home. This is sometimes and perhaps most commonly the patient's own fault; but not unfrequently it is the fault of the improper dietetic instructions emanating from the physician. We should be led too far, if we were to go into full particulars regarding the diet; all we shall do is to present the following general propositions to the reader's attentive regard. The production of fat is owing to an excessive supply of food, the supply considerably exceeding the waste. The quantity of fat produced will be so much greater the more the supply consists of substances that are known to make fat, principally animal and vegetable fats and starch-containing food. Beer generally promotes the formation of fat either directly or indirectly. Meat, if constituting the chief article of diet, scarcely ever makes fat. These few points suffice as general dietetic directions. I.et the supply and waste be properly balanced by bodily and mental occupation, and let whatever excess remains be done away with. The patients should principally use lean meat, not starch-containing vegetables or fruit, and but little bread and wine; and they should be directed never to overload their stomachs as so many people do from mere habit, not from necessity. By pursuing such a system of diet and hygiene, the patient will be able to do without a resort to Karlsbad. -Starvationcures are the more condemnable in the case of such patients, the more the heart has already become diseased. At the same time, it must be admitted that there are many persons who, most generally in consequence of abnormal changes in the functions of the liver, deposit such quantities of fat, even under the simplest and most cautious diet, that it seems impossible to suggest any further changes in this respeet. Fatty degeneration may sometimes, but assuredly only in rare instances, have its primary origin in a constitutional tendency to fatness; otherwise we are unacquainted with any other cause of this disease that might suggest special dietetic preventive rules. If the presence of the cardiac disease is substantiated beyond any doubt, the patient's mode of living has to be regulated with a view of preserving his strength as much as possible. Substantial nourish, ment, so far from being forbidden, should be recommended; the moderate use of wine is generally attended with the happiest results. In the case of drunkards, spirits should be withdrawn gradually, not all at once. A sudden and complete abstemiousness might lead to dropsy; indeed the frequent occurrence of such an event should be a warning to us. The prostration which follows every consider25 386 D.iseases of the Heart. able exertion, admonishes the patient never to use his strength to the point of exhaustion. This precaution likewise applies to mental efforts. The frequent paroxysms resembling syncope or simulating apoplexy are very apt to lead to the adoption of measures which, by depressing the strength, are at the same time calculated to aggravate the patient's condition for the reason that these cerebral phenomena do not depend upon anaemia, but hypermemia. Venesection is of course out of the question; patients with whom we are not yet sufficiently acquainted, should have their attention directed to the pernicious consequences of blood-letting, lest they should feel disposed to resort to it without the advice of a physician. Of the intercurrent morbid phenomena these pseudo-apoplectic paroxysms and those resembling angina pectoris deserve most attention and should by all means be met by some appropriate remedy. In the former, Camphora will be found most efficient, more particularly on account of the rapidity with which it acts, Beside Camphora we may try Veratrum album and Pulsatilla. As soon as a fainting sensation' cones over the patient, he must be laid in a horizontal position, with the head on a level with the rest of the body. If the syncope lasts.too long and life seems to be endangered by it, Ammonium carbonicum and even Ether may be resorted to without fear. In paroxysms attended with an increase of the heart's action, Digitalis is the most homceopathic and therefore the most efficient agent, provided it is given in a small dose. Opium, Cannabis, Laurocerasus may likewise be administered with some chances of success. The disease in its totality will have to be acted upon both by.means of medicines that exert an influence over the excessive formation of fat, such as Ferrum, China, Calcarea, Arsenicum, and likewise by such medicines as are in special rapport with the heart. First in rank we have undoubtedly Digitalis whose pathogenesis presents the most striking image of excited and yet powerless, extremely irregular action of the heart. Whether it is of much or any use in adiposis, we. dare not either affirm or deny; but in fatty degeneration its influence is as great as that of any other remedy. Of course, the dose has to be proportioned to the quantity of reactive power with the utmost care. Iodium is likewise of considerable importance. It has an extreme tendency to palpitation of the heart during the least motion, improved by a horizontal posture; it has the peculiarity inherent in inflammatory exudations to undergo an abnormal. metamorphosis; it has a disposition to an abnormal Adipositas Cordis. - 87 deposition of fat. Ilence lodium is one of the few remedies that corresponds to the morbid process in question in every direction. On a former occasion we have already once denied the power of Arsenic to influence structural changes of the heart; we here repeat this statement, although it is undoubtedly true that the pathogenesis of Arsenic has ma.ny symptoms which, when detached from their connected series, can be referred to fatty heart. We have two other remedies which we cannot recommend with sufficient emphasis in heart-disease generally and more especially in fatty degeneration, we mean Cuprum and Plumbumr. Both remedies act similarly, except that the action of Plumbum is more persistent and penetrating. We would only use either of them in cases of uncomplicated fatty degeneration. Since their provings.do not contain a single heart-symptom, we will indicate those that may be found in cases of poisoning. Cupram has: Pulse irregular, small, easily compressible, intermitting, accompanied by excessive muscular debility; the beats of the heart are scarcely, or not at all perceptible; the sounds of the heart are indistinct; dyspncea, feel ing of anxiety, disposition to faint. Plunbumrn has: The impulse of the heart is very feeble, or even imperceptible, intermitting; sounds of the heart indistinct; palpitations attended with excessive dyspnoea; pulse very soft, easily compressible, intermitting; irregular, fifty to sixty in the minute, less frequently over a hundred, after which it is scarcely perceptible; heart flabby; sudden paralysis of the heart; fainting fits during every exertion, also attended with slight convulsions; extreme muscular debility and oppression from the least motion; despondency and dread of death; nightmare; cedera of the skin. As for Sulphur, we should not expect any favorable effects from it in these disorganizations; its pathogenesis does not indicate it in this disease, nor can it be referred to it by a process of analogy; for even if fatty degeneration were to. be regarded as the expression of a perverse metamorphosis of some inflammatory exudation, we cannot show from analogy in other organs that Sulphur is capable of antagonizing a metamorphosis of this kind. Aurum, on the contrary, is a remedy well worthy our attention, more particularly if the heart-disease causes great depression of spirits; usually the local symptoms are insufficient to legitimate the choice of this agent; and clinical testimony is entirely wanting. 388 Diseases of the Heart. 5., Anomalies. Abnormal Conditions of the Orifices of the Heart; Valvular Diseases. Although every alteration of the orifices might be designated as an abnormal condition, yet, in pathology, this term is applied in a therapeutical aspect to such alterations only as really interfere with the functions of the heart. In view of our powerlessness in the presence of such disorganizations, nobody will find fault with us for only mentioning the most essential characteristics of these disorders. The etiology of these abnormal conditions of the orifices is very obscure, and in very many cases no definite cause can be assigned to them. All influences that occasion acute endocarditis, may likewise be considered as causes of valvular diseases; among these causes rheumatism occupies the most prominent rank. This applies particularly to anomalies affecting younger persons. Among persons of a more advanced age it is the still obscure process of chronic endocarditis, the atheromatous deposition and degeneration which affects the valves as well as the arteries. Other causes which, however, are extremely rare, are: Dilatation of the heart, external pressure or a severe strain, excessive exertions, ruptures. Sex does not seem to have any influence in this direction, except that repeated observations have shown that women are more frequently affected with anomalies of the venous, and men more frequently with anomalies of the arterial orifices. Beyond the age of twentyfive a liability to every kind of anomaly sets in, which seems to increase in proportion as persons grow older. Corresponding with the prevalence of endocarditis, acute as well as chronic, in the left heart,it is only exceptionally that orificial anomalies are met with in the right side of the heart. The following are the more particular alterations to be met with in the different orifices respectively: a. Insufficiency of the Mitral Valve. During the systole the mitral valve closes the ventricle more or less imperfectly against the auricle, either because its lappels are shrunk or torn, or the tendinous chords and the coulmnse carnee are abnormally altered. Hence, during the systole blood regurgitates into the auricle. This causes a gradual dilatation of the Anomalies. 389 auricle, the flow of blood from the pulmonary veins is impeded, the vessels constituting the lesser circulation, become engorged with blood, finally, the right heart is overcrowded with blood, giving rise to eccentric hypertrophy and, as an ultimate result, causing a stasis in the peripheral veins. If the insufficiency is but little, the left ventricle remains unchanged; the higher degrees of insufficiency lead to dilatation and hypertrophy of this ventricle. Physical signs: Greater extent of cardiac dulness in breadth; impulse of the heart stronger and over a larger area; undulatory movements of the right ventricle. Systolic murmur, most distinct at the apex, sometimes like a purring murmur; second sound of the pulmonary artery louder, sometimes so loud that it can be felt;,pulse either normal, or, if the insufficiency is considerable, very much weaker, sometimes irregular. The consequences of this anomaly to the whole organism are: hyperaemia of the lungs; sanguineous clots in the lungs; catarrh of the bronchial mucous lining; haemoptoe; dyspncea; emphysema; hyperoemia of the brain, liver, spleen, kidneys, stomach, with chronic gastric catarrh; subsequently cedema and serous effusions in the different regions attacked by hypermemia. The prognosis of this affection, of itself, is not entirely unfavorable. Although a cure is scarcely ever possible, yet patients may, with care, live to an advanced age. This depends upon the compensation established by the right ventricle and auricle; as long as this compensation is sufficient, the patients are not in any very great danger. But if an increase of dyspncea, a stasis in the peripheral circulation, or cedema show that the compensation is incomplete, an approaching termination of the patient's sufferings may be safely prognosticated. The prognosis is still worse if valvular insufficiency becomes associated with stenosis of the left auriculoventricular orifice, as is most frequently the case. Before speaking of the treatment, let us dwell a little further on the stenosis of the left auriculo-ventricular orifice. b. Stenosis of the Left Auriculo-ventricular Orifice. A constriction of this orifice interferes with the passage of the blood from the auricle into the ventricle, so that a portion of the blood remains behind in the auricle. This result is superinduced by the following anatomical changes: The valves are thickened, especially at their insertion or base, or their segments or lappets are more or less completely soldered together or variously distorted in shape, or the chorda tendineve may 390 Diseases of the Heart. be contracted, shrunk and deprived of their elasticity, so that the valves are drawn down into the ventricle, and their segments assume a funnel-shaped appearance. In this way., an ostium naturally large may be reduced to the condition of a mere slit or to the diameter of a goose-quill or pea. The consequences of stenosis are the same as those of insufficiency of the mitral valves: Imperfect emptying of the left auricle, stasis of the blood in the pulmonary vessels, overcrowding of the right ventricle followed by eccentric hypertrophy as a means of compensation, which may increase to such an extent that the tricuspid valve becomes insufficient to close the right auriculo-ventricilar orifice. The left ventricle receives a smaller supply of blood-; hence, the flow of blood through the arteries becomes less active, the pulse grows very small and feeble. In the course of time the capacity of the ventricle becomes reduced and its walls become atrophied. These changes do not take place if the stenosis is associated with conditions in the aortic system inviting increased exertions on the part of the left ventricle. Even in more remote organs the stenosis results in the same phenomena of stasis as are consequent upon valvular insufficiency, and generally more rapidly and niore extensively. This lesion is characterized by the following physical signs: Cardiac dulness very extensive, in breadth, owing to the often extraordinary distention of the right ventricle; the impulse of the heart is heard over a more extensive area both to the left and to the right, even as far as the right sternal border, and powerfully shakes the thoracic wall; the precprdial region is sometimes arched; the flapping of the tricuspid valves is sometimes sensible to the hand; diastolic purring is very commonly perceived at the apex of the heart. Auscultation returns a diastolic murmur at the apex of the heart, and the first sound is considerably feebler; or if the stenosis is associated with valvular insufficiency, a murmur is heard instead of the sound. The aortic sounds are weaker, the sounds of the pulmonary artery, especially the second sound, are considerably stronger. From what we have said, the subjective symptoms may be readily inferred. The patients always suffer more from stenosis than from valvular insufficiency; the untoward consequences set in sooner and more intensely, and hemorrhages of the most varied kind accompany stenosis much more commonly. Accordingly the prognosis is of course much more unfavorable, since in the long run a compensating equilibrium cannot possibly be nmai-itained. Anomalies. 391 The treatment of these two anomalies can never aim at a conlplete cure. Even if we were to concede the possibility of curing orificial defects that had but recently arisen from an attack of acute endocarditis: yet these defects do not become an object of treatment until they have existed for a long time without being noticed. Hence we shall have to confine ourselves in any event to a purely symptomatic treatment, and even then shall have to abandon all hope of achieving any permanent improvement. In selecting a remedial agent for these abnormal conditions, we have to limit our choice to remedies characterized by insufficiency and weakness of cardiac action, not allowing ourselves by an occasional appearance of functional excitement of the heart to be ledto the adoption of remedies that are only adapted to an augmentation of cardiac activity. However, the mischief which an improperly selected remedy might do, would only be of a serious nature in case disproportionately large doses of the remedy were given; for the loss of time which a mistake of this kind might involve, would be of very little importance considering the slow course which such disorganizations generally run. In other respects the selection can never depend exclusively upon the cardiac symptoms which are almost always the same, but will have to' be determined by the locality and quality of the consecutive affections. In the following series of remedies we mention after each remedy the main consecutive or secondary symptoms requiring its use. Digitalis purpurea clainms undoubtedly the first rank. No remedy corresponds by its physiological symptoms more fully than Digitalis with the group of pathological phenomena evolved by disease of the mitral valves. In the heart we have the deficient action of the arterial half, with increased action of the venous half; the tumultuous movements of the heart in spite of its diminished energy; the irregularity of the rhythm, etc. All the other organs likewise exhibit the most significant phenomena. The urinary secretion is considerably less. We have passive hyperemia of the brain with its consequences. We have likewise pulmonary hypermenia, sometimes as a passing congestion, and at times in the form of a chronic bronchial catarrh with hemorrhage, dyspncea. There is hyperlneia of the liver, even to the extent of giving rise to icteric phenomena. VVe have symptoms of intestinal and gastric catarrh; moreover a tendency to serous effusion. In short, the whole complex of the pathological phenomena points to Digitalis as our first choice in the treatment of these disorganizations. Digitalis is even indicated by 392 Diseases of the Heart. the peculiar pneumonia which is not unfrequently favored and even excited by the stenosis of the left auriculo-ventricular orifice. Only lot the remedy be administered in a small dose; this is of paramount importance. Even if large doses seem to agree at the beginning, yet in the long run they exert a decidedly pernicious influence. We advise the use of Belladonna in all cases where Aconitum seems indicated by the symptoms. In this kind of disorder Aconite never exerts a favorable influence. Belladonna is especially indicated by the paroxysmally increasing pulmonary hyperemia and the headache which sometimes reaches a terrible degree of intensity. It is less frequently efficacious in the resulting hepatic derangements. Pulsatilla cannot be numbered among the prominent remedies; we would at most employ it in the higher grades of bronchial catarrh. Veratrum album competes with Belladonna as far as the affected organs are concerned; yet there are symptomatic differences. It is suitable for cerebral and pulmonary congestions setting in with pallor and coldness of the outer skin, or with a decidedly cyanotic tinge. Opium, in small doses, in the case of drunkards is a main remedy for celebral hyperpemia, less for the respiratory difficulties. In such cases it often acts with wonderful rapidity and completeness, although the effect does not last. Tartarus stibiatus is indicated by bronchial catarrh with profuse secretion of mucus, and by a gastric catarrh the symptoms of which may be compared in the Mat. Med. Pura. Arsenicum which seems indicated much more frequently than it really is, has only shown a decisive effect in our hands against the sleeplessness which is a not uncommon symptom in these disorders; it has never seemed to be of any use in affections of the respiratory organs for which it seems such an excellent remedy if these affections are not occasioned by valvular defects. Nor does it ordinarily seem to have any effect in dropsical difficulties. The remedies we have named so far, are in general adapted only to overcoming single ailments either acute or subacute; to this list we will add the following: Phosphorus, Squilla, Secale cornutum, lodium, Ammonium carbonicum. Another series of drugs has to be opposed to chronic secondary affections which, although necessary consequences of the cardiac disorganizations, very often admit of a diminution, or at least of an arrest of the symptoms. Anomalies. 393 China and Ferrum here occupy the first rank; the former more especially, if the anaemic phenomena which are an inevitable consequence of the deficient activity of the left ventricle, are associated with frequent paroxysms of passing congestions of the brain, and if the hepatic functions are greatly interfered with. Ferrum is indicated rather by a tendency to pulmonary congestions and to hemorrhage from the bronchia, by prominent symptoms of gastric catarrh, and, like China, by enlargements of the spleen. Ferrum is not very suitable to old people; China, on the contrary, is eminently so. In chronic ailments Arsenicum deserves more attention than in acute complaints. It may be tried in liver-complaint as well as in renal affections; sometimes it renders good service, but more frequently it leaves us in the lurch. Baryta carbonica has already been mentioned in the bronchial catarrh of old people; we likewise recommend it, if the catarrh is occasioned by valvular deficiency. Carbo veget. may still afford help, if every other remedy had left us in the lurch. This remedy embodies in its pathogenesis all the consequences of the anomalies here treated of: a disposition to atonic hemorrhage; the anemic symptoms in cyanosis; edematous swellings, pulmonary cedema; passive hyperemia of the brain, lungs, liver, spleen; chronic bronchial catarrh in every stage, pulmonary hemorrhage; gastric catarrh. There is scarcely another remedy that represents so clearly a definite morbid condition. Clinical results have substantiated the truth of this similarity. Beside these remedies, those that have been named for fatty degeneration may likewise be ranked here, especially Plumbum, Cuprum and Aurum. For single symptoms: Lycopodium and Natrum muriaticum are particularly efficacious. The last-mentioned remedies likewise embrace within their curative range, if help is at all possible, the last link of this series of consecutive disorders, namely: local and general dropsy. The mode of living has an influence upon the final result that must not be underrated. Bodily motions and exertions are regulated without the least difficulty; proper dietetic precautions are easily violated. Inasmuch as the whole tendency of the anomalies, of which we have treated, is to change the blood to venous blood, since the interference with the lesser circulation only admits of an imperfect oxygenation of the blood: our whole aim should be to furnish the patient with such nourishment as will not require the S94 Diseases of the Heart. assistance of the pulmonary circulation, and likewise in an easily assimilable form on account of the gastro-intestinal canal being generally very much disordered during the presence of these anomalies. Hence, fat food and starch-containing substances have to be avoided, whereas good meat and beef broth should be recommended as chief articles of diet. The use of wine which seems to be counterindicated by the tumultuous action of the heart, is not only very useful, but even necessary, especially in the case of old people. We likewise call attention to the inhalation of compressed air whichdeserves particular recommendation in this disease; a great deal depends upon rendering the act of respiration easier to the patient by furnishing him a larger supply of oxygen, which is accomplished by this proceeding. c. Insfficiency of the Aortic Valves. The semilunar valves are no longer sufficient to effect a complete closure of the aorta during the diastole of the heart. This may be owing to a shrinking, laceration, rigidity, adhesions and distortions of the valves. Disorganizations of this kind very seldom result from mechanical force or from acute endocarditis, but commonly from chronic endocarditis and from atheromatous degeneration. On this account aortic insufficiency is generally met with in older persons. Insufficiency results in a regurgitation of the blood during the diastole of the ventricle from the aorta into the ventricle. In consequence of this overcrowding, the ventricle becomes abnormally distended; hence, if the valves are insufficient, the left ventricle becomes more distended in consequence of this anomaly than from any other. The increase of the ventricular contents invites an increased contraction of the muscular fibres, thus giving rise to eccentric hypertrophy which becomes the more excessive the greater the valvular insufficiency. If at the same time the left auriculoventricular orifice is normal, the insufficiency shows no further consequences in the lungs, nor does it react upon the right ventricle. On the other hand, the consequences are visible in the arterial system; the arteries, being exposed to a considerable increase of pressure or a force acting a tergo, dilate and, in the further course of the disease, very commonly undergo an atheromatous degeneration. The objective symptoms of aortic insufficiency are generally very plain as soon as the affection has acquired a certain degree of importance. Corresponding with the extensive hypertrophy of the left ventricle, the cardiac dulness extends over a much larger area, Anomalies. 395 more to the left side and even as far as the seventh intercostal space. Palpitation discovers a much more forcible and more extensive impulse of the heart, which sometimes shakes very violently the whole of the anterior wall of the heart; a purring murmur is not unfrequently heard at the upper end of the sternum, and a peculiar whir or buzz during the systole of the heart. Auscultation returns over the ostium of the aorta, at the place of insertion of the third costal cartilage, a diastolic murmur which is most commonly heard as far as beyond the sternum and vanishes the more completely the more the ear approximates to the apex of the heart. The second aortic sound is at times entirely absent, or else is faintly audible at the commencement of the murmur. The first aortic sound is either normal or associated with a murmur. The sounds of the right ventricle are normal, the second sound of the pulmonary artery is at most somewhat louder. The changes in the arteries yield the following exceedingly characteristic phenomena: The pulsation of the arch of the aorta is sometimes felt in the jugular. The carotids pulsate so strongly that their vibrations are distinctly seen and that the whole neck and head are sometimes shaken by the motion. A distinct murmur is likewise easily heard in the carotids in the place of a feeble'second sound. The arteries at the periphery are dilated and pulsate visibly. The pulse is large, hard, and bounds against the finger in a peculiarly short and rapid manner; sometimes it vibrates, especially under soft pressure. The subjective symptoms differ greatly according as the insufficiency is more or less considerable or the hyl;ertrophic compensation.more or less complete. As long as the hypertrophy equilibrates the insufficiency, the patients feel quite well and do not even complain of palpitation, no matter how much more forcible the impulse of the heart may seem. But as soon as the compensating equilibrium is disturbed by an excess of hypertrophy, constitutional derangements begin to become manifest. These consist at first in more or less violent congestions especially in the brain which, if accompanied by considerable atheromatous degeneration of the arterial walls, easily result in rupture of the vessels and apoplexy. Attacks of vertigo, luminous vibrations before the eyes, highly flushed face with a violent throbbing sensation, throbbing headache, sleeplessness, etc., if occurring during insufficiency of the aortic valves, are always unwelcome phenomena which show that the compensating equilibrium which Nature had set up, is disturbed. In other organs, likewise, we notice a tendency to bloody extravasations, especially 396 Diseases of the Heart. from the genital organs of young women. If the opposite takes place in the course of the disease; if the hypertrophied ventricle is unable to compensate the valvular insufficiency, which is apt to be the case if a process of fatty degeneration is at the same time set up in the muscular tissue of the ventricle, the morbid picture assumes an entirely different aspect. The vessels which had been very much dilated previously, now receive too scanty a supply of blood, and, in consequence of having lost their elasticity, are not even able to completely propel this smaller quantity; hence, symptoms of cerebral anaemia supervene, and even in the veins the blood courses more slowly. At this stage, the discharge of blood from the left auricle is likewise interfered with, and all the consequences of stenosis of the mitral orifice develop themselves in this case, although in a less degree and less rapidly. This shows that the prognosis of aortic insufficiency depends greatly upon the equilibrium between the action of the heart and impediments to the circulation. As soon as this equilibrium is disturbed the danger increases the more, the more considerable the disturbance. The older the patient; the greater the probability of an extensive atheromatous degeneration of the arteries, the more seriously is the patient's life threatened which generally ends with a sudden attack of apoplexy. If symptoms of disturbance in the pulmonary circulation supervene, the final catastrophy is undoubtedly at hand. If valvular anomalies at other orifices are simultaneously present, our previous remarks will of course undergo considerable modifications. As regards treatment we may refer to our statements when speaking of hypertrophy, since it is hypertrophy that invests valvular deficiencies with threatening danger. The general conduct of such patients has to be regulated with much more care than in simple hypertrophy, for the reason that every unusual exitement of the action of the heart may result in what is so much to be dreaded, a rupture of the vessels. Every sort of bloodletting is exceedingly pernicious; even now this is sometimes recommended by physicians, or resorted to by the patient without the physician's advice, for the purpose of preventing or removing intercurrent congestions. d. Stenosis of the Aortic Orifice. The aortic orifice is constricted and does not admit of a free passage of the blood. The narrowing is occasioned by a thickening Anomalies. 397 of the semilunar valves consequent upon endocarditis, which incapacitates the valves from adjusting themselves to the walls of the aorta. This constitutes an insufficiency the force of which is in inverse ratio to stenosis. The necessary consequence of an impeded emptying of the left ventricle is an increased activity of its walls to propel the blood, hence hypertrophy. It is to be observed that, if stenosis is the only difficulty, the hypertrophy does not become eccentric, or at least only very little so, whereas, if insufficiency is present at the same time, hypertrophy becomes associated with dilatation. Stenosis does not exert a marked influence over the other parts of the heart until the hypertrophy is no longer sufficient to keep up the compensating equilibrium. In such circumstances the pulmonary circulation is disturbed, the right ventricle becomes hypertrophied, but never in such a high degree as from stenosis of the left auriculo-ventricular orifice. The influence of stenosis upon the motion of the blood through the arteries is manifested by the incompleteness and feebleness of the arterial current. The objective symptoms of this disorder are: All the symptoms which have been previously indicated as characterizing a considerable hypertrophy of the left ventricle. Auscultation over the aortic orifice usually returns a loud systolic murmur which frequently reaches a good ways laterally and downwards, disguising the sounds of the heart more or less, and being most commonly audible even in the arteries of the neck. The first sound of the aorta is absent, the second sound is generally feebler, more indistinct, or likewise replaced by a diastolic murmur if the stenosis is complicated with insufficiency. The sounds of the right side of the heart are normal. As long as the stenosis is properly compensated by hypertrophy, the pulse is indeed somewhat small but hard, and only becomes small and even soft after the compensating equilibrium is disturbed. The pulse generally constitutes an excellent means of obtaining a correct judgment of the condition of the heart. In cases where the stenosis is completely equilibrated by ventricular hypertrophy, the subjective symptoms are generally of no importance; the patient may feel quite well, only his countenance is somewhat pallid. If the compensation becomes insufficient, symptoms of a deficient supply of blood to the brain and of real anaemia first become apparent, after which symptoms of stasis in the lesser circulation and in the veins slowly show themselves. 398 Diseases' of the Heart. It is impossible to indicate a definite mode of treating this stenosis, for the simple reason that the character of this anomaly varies too much and that it is always complicated with other abnormal alterations. As long as the patients feel well, medicine is useless or even hurtful; the stenosis cannot be cured and all that the medicine might possibly accomplish, would be to disttrb the functional cardiac equilibrium. If the compensation becomes insufficient, we have to resort to the remedies that were recommended for fatty degeneration: Veratrum, Iodium, Arsenicum and especially -Digitalis, and with reference to the deficiency in the process of sanguification: Ferrum, Calcarea carbonica and China. If symptoms of venous stasis make their appearance, we have to choose such remedies as have been recommended for mitral stenosis. The regimen to be pursued differs of course from that recommended for aortic insufficiency, since in view of the deficient supply of arterial blood the process of assimilation is of course rendered more difficult. Hence our chief aim should be to give the body a chance to make good blood, by furnishing it a supply of easily digested and nourishing food and an abundance of fresh air. Even the use of wine need not be forbidden; on the contrary, it is often to be recommended, both in order to promote the process of digestion and as a direct stimulant for the heart. If the stenosis is at the same time associated with insufficiency of the semilunar valves, the treatment becomes much more difficult, because it is often difficult to decide, the consequences of which of these two anomalies ought to be met first. Generally one anomaly will probably be more marked than the other, in which case the. course to be pursued in the treatment is naturally indicated. The combinations of valvular diseases of the left heart, as they generally present themselves, complicate the treatment by presenting difficulties for which it is, however, impossible to arrange definite therapeutic rules and practical applications of drugs. Since conditions of this kind fortunately never require the immediate intervention of remedial agents, there will always be time enough in a given case to consider what treatment had better be pursued, and what remedies are most adapted to the case. Any special presentation of the symptoms characterizing such combinations is not called for, since anybody may construct such a series in his own mind. Palpitatio Cordis 399 e. -Defects of the Orifices and Valves of the Right Heart. They occur so seldom, especially as isolated affections, that we will condense all we may have to say on the subject, in a few brief remarks. Insufficiency of the tricuspid valve is the most frequently occurring defect on the right side of the heart, and originates in the same morbid processes as insufficiencies in the left heart. Its consequences are: eccentric hypertrophy of the right ventricle and stasis of the blood in the veins of the systemic circulation. If the anomaly is considerable, it gives rise to venous pulsation. Defects of the mitral valve and of the consequent excessive eccentric hypertrophy of the right ventricle may lead to a so-called relative insufficiency of the tricuspid valve which is of special importance to a proper diagnostic appreciation of the whole condition, for the reason that, on the appearance of this insufficiency, the stasis in the venous system reaches an extraordinary degree, and dropsy is eminent. The diagnosis is determined by a systolic murmur which is most distinctly audible in the region of the tricuspid. valve. The treatment has to be conducted in accordance with our remarks on mitral insufficiency, since the consequences are entirely the same as those of the latter ahomaly. The rest of valvular diseases as well as stenoses are exceedingly rare; no special remarks can be offered regarding their treatment. 6. Nlervous Palpitation of the Heart. Palpitatio Cordis. Palpitation of the heart, by which we mean a momentary, more or less continuous increase of the frequency and strength of the beats of the heart, is not only met with in a large number of morbid conditions beside the cardiac affections of which' we have treated in the preceding numbers, but likewise in persons of sound health, after violent mental and bodily exertions. This is not the kind of palpitation that we wish to consider in this article, but those detached paroxysms of increased cardiac activity which set in without any demonstrable alterations in the substance of the heart, and without any definite exciting cause. The etiology of this affection, as far as regards a knowledge of the physiological connection between cause and effect, is exceedingly obscure. All that we know is, that this palpitation frequently, but 400 Diseases of the Heart. not by any means constantly, sets in after strong emotions either of an exciting or a depressing kind; that it may result from all such circumstances as weaken the nervous system and consequently render it more irritable, such as anaemia, chlorosis, onanism, venereal excesses, excessive mental exertions; that it may likewise result from certain nervous affections, such as hypochondria, hysteria, spinal irritation, softening; that it may likewise result from the condition which is designated as general plethora; and that it finally may occur as a reflex effect of certain morbid conditions, especially of the abdominal cavity, such as helminthiasis, cholelithiasis. The symptoms of this affection vary in the main in two directions, according as the increased action of the heart is only felt by the patient, or is likewise perceptible as an objective phenomenon. In neither case is the paroxysm preceded by distinct symptoms; it arises all at once after a trivial exciting cause, or even without any evident reason. Paroxysms where the patient alone is conscious of the palpitation, are by far the worst and attended with the greatest distress. The heart feels as if it were hanging loose, trembling or falling down, without any external change being observable; the single beats even are feebler rather than stronger. At the same time the patient experiences a fearful anguish and restlessness, and with every new paroxysm imagines that his death is at hand. The face is pallid, covered with a cold perspiration, the eyes stare, the extremities are cool, the consciousness sometimes seems to vanish for a time. The pulse is always small, compressible, sometimes intermitting. Paroxysms of this kind seldom last for a long time, perhaps only a few minutes, seldom longer than an hour. Paroxysms of the second kind are characterized by an externally perceptible increase of the cardiac activity, the impulse of the heart is a good deal stronger, the beats succeed each other more rapidly, the patient experiences a painful throbbing in all the arteries, the pulse is full and hard, and even in this case not unfrequently unrhythmical. The face is turgescent, highly flushed, the eyes glistening and staring, the body is at times cool, at other times hot. The patients complain of headache, buzzing in the ears, luminous vibrations before their eyes, dyspncea which interrupts speech and obliges them to sigh frequently, and of vertigo which may even be very violent. Nothing abnormal is perceived at the heart, only the sounds of the heart are considerably stronger. These paroxysms at times are only of short duration, at other times they continue for hours. The course of this affection varies; often it is very obstinate, at Palpitatio Cordis. 401 other times it disappears together with the complaint occasioning it. Very seldom the paroxysms show any regularity. If the affection is incidental to the period of evolution, it generally disappears of itself and gradually. The affection is not a very serious one, provided life is not directly threatened; this could only be the case if other complaints should assume a dangerous character in consequence of the abnormal increase of the heart's action. The disorder being a source of torment to the patient, the physician must necessarily desire to free him from it completely. We can certainly promise a cure unless the palpitation depends upon an otherwise incurable affection. The diagnosis must never be based upon an examination instituted during the paroxysm, but should be derived from the condition of the patient during the free intervals. As regards treatment, it is of importance that the previously established distinction between subjective and objective palpitations should not be lost sight of, if possible. Cases do occur where the objective increase of the heart's action is associated with subjective palpitation, although not always to the extent that the patient's distress and lamentations might lead us to suppose. For this reason the remedies contained in each of the two following series respectively ought not to be considered as belonging to either of them exclusively, but we have resorted to this arrangement simply with a view of facilitating' the selection of the appropriate remedial agent. Another point deserving special consideration in selecting a remedy, are the influences which excite the attack and the affections, if any, of which the palpitation constitutes a particular or the most distressing symptom. We can neither afford time nor space to dwell upon this point more fully, since this would lead to repetitions, and the appropriate remedies are, moreover, specially mentioned when the different pathological processes are treated of. In treating the palpitation of a chlorotic female, for instance, our first endeavor will certainly be to find a remedy that shall correspond with the totality of the chlorotic symptoms. We do not wish to incur any censure if we mention the following remedies very briefly; it is our opinion that in a difficulty, which is so entirely local, the suitable remedy can be juAt as easily found in the Materia Medica as if we here compiled a repertory of all the remedies bearing upon such a case. For the sake of completeness 26 402, Diseases of the Heart. we should likewise have to indicate the various accessory circumstances, which would plunge us into a maze of details. For the objectively perceptible palpitation, which is particularly characterized by congestive symptoms, we recommend the following remedies: Aconitum in the case of robust, plethoric, young individuals, likewise in the case of persons with excitable temperaments andwho are subject to rushes of blood from every trifling emotion; likewise in the case of tuberculous individuals, where pulmonary congestions and palpitation of the heart exist together. Aconite is not indicated unless the column of blood is in a general state of excitement and increased movement. The action of Aconite is not governed by any particular time of day, but it is particularly suitable if the paroxysms occur more habitually towards evening. The movements of the heart are stronger, more rapid, but not by any means irregular. Spigelia: The action of the heart is increased, but it is irregular both in rhythm and impulse, which is more like an undulating motion; the paroxysms occur at indefinite periods, but more especially in the morning; the patient's temperature is unequal, the extremities are cold to the touch; Spigelia is indicated for palpitations arising from worms. Arsenicum: The heart beats much more forcibly and rapidly, seldom irregularly or indistinctly; the paroxysms occur principally at night during sleep, or about midnight, and are attended with excessive anxiety and restlessness; the skin does not feel cold, but burning hot; at most the extremities may feel cool. Arsenicum is particularly suitable if the paroxysms set in with typical regularity, or more particularly at the time of the menses; it is likewise suitable for chlorotic and asthmatic individuals, and for drunkards. Ferrum is adapted to chlorotic and anaemic individuals, if the palpitation is attended with frequent changes of color in the face, and if the face looks flushed at the beginning of the paroxysm; it is likewise adapted to tuberculous individuals, likewise to individuals with excitable nerves, or with nerves rendered irritable by excessive excitement; it is adapted to females more particularly if the menses are scanty and the patients are suffering with uterine catarrh. Nitrum as well as Acidum nitricum are characteristically distinguisl ed by violent, but short-lasting pulmonary congestions without any real pain, they either precede the palpitation, or else set in simultaneously with it. Palpitatio Cordis. 403 Fux vonica deserves particular consideration, if the palpitation is occasioned by irregularities in the digestive process, never lasts long, is attended with cerebral congestions or nausea; also if the palpitation is caused by abuse of spirits, in the case of drunkards; or if caused by abuse of coffee, or depending upon spinal irritation. Platina, if the palpitation is attended with menstrual irregularities or retention of the menses; likewise if it is attended with a good deal of sexual excitement. Belladonna is indicated under similar circumstances; it may likewise prove suitable for palpitation generally. Phosphorus, Veratrum album, Aurum, Argentum likewise belong in this category. In the second series we class the remedies that have a debilitating influence over the action of the heart, which the patient imagines is only excited momentarily or transitorily by these drugs. Pulsatilla, if the palpitation is excited by the least irritation, is attended with great anxiety which seems to be out of all proportion to the slight objective symptoms; there is a rapid change of color in the face, the patient feels chilly; if the palpitation is relieved by motion, especially by exercise in the open air, or by a little pleasant social entertainment; if the palpitation rouses one from sleep at night. Pulsatilla is excellent in chlorosis if the nervous symptoms prevail, and is likewise suitable for palpitation during the menses. China: Palpitation of the heart, with external coldness, soft and small pulse; after losses of animal fluids; in the case of individuals with great nervous prostration, hypochondriacs, persons addicted to self-abuse. Camphora, for irregular palpitation, with unusual oppression of the chest evidently not arising from determination of blood, with very feeble pulse, general coldness of the body. Ignatia, Sepia, Asafoetida, Nux moschata have very similar cardiac symptoms; they all have a small and weak pulse during the palpitation and a variable irregularity of the heart's action. They are chiefly adapted to hysteric palpitation of the heart. In hypochondria where the heart's action is as frequently disturbed as in hysteria, the main remedies are: Natrurm muriaticumn and Lyco2podium, moreover, Cocculus, Aurum, and Nux vomica. Cannabis is next to Digitalis the surest remedy for palpitations 404 Diseases of the Heart. occasioned by self-abuse and by an erethic weakness of the male organs. Chamomilla and Opium are regarded as specific for palpitation caused by fright. [Also Aconitum. H.] A third'series is composed of drugs that may be classed indiscrinlinately in one or the other of these two series. Digitalis is here the most important remedy. We have given its characteristic symptoms on former occasions, and here again point out a marked excitement of cardiac action associated with evident weakness of the muscular tissue, and likewise the irregular movements of the heart. Digitalis is the surest remedy for palpitation caused by self-abuse, in general for palpitation arising from some cause in the male sexual sphere. Coffea. The palpitation is at times strong and visible, at other times is only felt by the patient; a characteristic symptom is great restlessness with weariness, yet the patient has no sleep, more particularly after a copious meal and late in the evening. Every one who drinks coffee, has experienced the good effects of coffee in this direction after a copious meal. For evening-palpitations Coffea generally affords relief to such only as do not use coffee as an habitual beverage. As a rule, the excitement of cardiac action occasioned by coffee is not associated with an increase of temperature or flushed face, even if the patients experience a sensation of increased warmth. Calcarea carbonica is an excellent remedy, not for a single paroxysm, but for the affection generally. It is particularly adapted to chlorotic females, without pallor of the face, and with great tendency to rush of blood; it is especially adapted to children and young women, whose habitual palpitation it very often cures without the aid of any other drug. Sulphur likewise is eminently useful in obstinate cases, where it often effects a radical cure. It holds the same relation to male persons of a somewhat advanced age, that Calcarea does to women and children. Whether in a given case the treatment ought to be conducted with reference to the single paroxysm or to the whole disease, is sometimes difficult to decide. If the palpitation is excited by definite causes every day, or at least very frequently, the best course to be pursued is, not to prescribe for the single paroxysm, but to continue the suitable remedy at somewhat extended intervals and for some time, as we do in other chronic cases. This Angina Pectoris. 405 course has, of course, to be pursued if the palpitation is caused by some other pre-existing affection. If the paroxysms occur at indefinite periods and continue for a long time, the patient must have his medicine always handy, for it is of the utmost importance, with a view to shortening the existing paroxysm, that the remedy should be taken as soon as possible after the commencement of the attack. Or else a suitable remedy may be prescribed for the special paroxysm, and afterwards another medicine for the disease generally. The diet and mode of living that have to be recommended, vary according to the origin of the trouble, but can easily be inferred from the nature of the case. We should, however, strenuously guard against the mistaken notion that invigorating nourishment, vigorous bodily exercise, even gymnastics or the use of wine must be avoided by those who are liable to palpitation, of the heart. This disorder is but too frequently symptomatic of great weakness, hence requires invigorating nourishment and a strengthening mode of living. If the palpitation arises from sexual disturbances, cold sitz-baths of a moderately low temperature and not persisted in too long at a time, will prove excellent auxiliaries. General cold baths very seldom agree with a patient thus afflicted, nor do cold shower-baths. 7. Angina Pectoris, Stenocardia. This upon the whole very rare affection has not yet been accounted for in such a manner that any explanation that has been given of it, might not be objected to for a variety of reasons; nevertheless all attending circumstances justify the classing of this disease among the neuroses. Whether the cardiac plexus is the seat of this disease, or not, cannot be determined with any degree of certainty. The etiology is obscure and vague; we only know from statistical data that males are infinitely more subject to this disease than females, and that fat individuals, or such as incline to make fat, are principally attacked. Persons beyond the age of forty are mostly liable to the disease, and they generally belong to the higher classes. Its frequent combination with cardiac anomalies, especially with atheroma or ossification of the coronary arteries, does not justify the opinion that the disease.originates in such disorganizations, for it is known to occur without any material alterations of the heart. All exciting causes are very often entirely absent; but Angina Pectoris. 407 ordinarily they are separated by days, months and even years. Many doubt the possibility of curing this disease; we, however, believe in the absolute possibility of the contrary, although a violent paroxysm may suddenly terminate in death. It is questionable whether the disease ever changes to some other form of heartdisease, for the reason that the heart-disease most likely was already in existence when the angina first broke out. The prognosis is decidedly bad, if the angina is associated with organic heart-disease, and likewise in the case of older individuals, whereas the purely nervous form in the case of young persons very possibly admits of a cure. We must always keep in mind that this insidious disease sometimes remains quiescent for a long time before it suddenly breaks out again in all its former, or with an increased violence. Treatmenat. A treatment for a single paroxysm cannot well be arranged; we might even inflict injury if we would violently interfere with the position the patient may have selected instinctively for his relief. Even the use of local applications, especially severe cutaneous irritants, to which we might feel tempted, may prove dangerous; in no case is the people's rule, not to touch anl individual seized with a nervous spasm, more appropriate than in angina pectoris. Such precepts as may be found in every therapeutic treatise, are unpractical, for the reason that the attack does not last long enough to test their clinical value. This remark likewise applies to the use of remedial agents which we might not even be afforded sufficient time to procure before the attack is ended. If the attacks last long enough, we may try Arsenicum, and next to Arsenic Laurocerasus and perhaps Ignatia. We have a number of remedies that seem homceopathic to the disease, but we confess that our clinical records are exceedingly scanty and unreliable; in view of the great rarity of this disease, the scantiness of our clinical cases cannot well surprise us. The only case which we have ever been called upon to treat in our own practice, and which had already been going on during a number of not very violent paroxysms, we have cured with not very often repeated doses of Digitalin, 2d and 3d trituration. The patient has now been free from the disease for the last six years. It was a purely nervous angina pectoris. It would not be safe to recommend a remedy upon the strength of a single experiment, if the symptoms and the whole therapeutic range of the drug did not correspond with the disease. Whether Digitalin and the Tincture 408 Diseases of the Heart. of Digitalis would have an equally favorable effect in angina peetoris accompanied with heart-disease, we are unable to decide. Hartmann recommends Digitalis and bases his recommendation upon the ground of practical experience in the use of this drug. Next to Digitalin Arsenicum undoubtedly promises the most successful results in the treatment of this disease. Ilartmann has the following remarks: "Not only the'actual paroxysms, but the disease generally finds in Arsenicum its appropriate remedy, provided the disease is not complicated with structural changes of the heart and the large arteries, or other extensive disorganizations. It is indicated if the patient can only breathe very gently with his chest stooping forward, and if the least motion causes a complete loss of breath; if oppression arid stitches in the praecordial region are associated with anxiety and a fainting sort of weakness; if the breath gives out even while the patient is getting into bed, and it takes him a long time to recover his breath; if the paroxysm is excited afresh by a simple change of position in bed. In my opinion, and according to the experience I have had, Arsenicum is the chief remedy, more especially if the angina is a pure neurosis; its curative power is of course problematical, if the angina is complicated with disorganizations which we can never expect to cure and where we can only exert a palliative influence. In this respect no remedy can be more certainly relied upon than Arsenic." We will add a few suggestions bearing upon the dose. There is not the remotest doubt that in purely nervous affections Arsenic, if given in a low trituration, either does not show any curative effect at all, or else causes severe aggravations. Our urgent advice therefore is that in angina pectoris only the higher attenuations should be used, both for the actual paroxysm as well as during the intervals. Although the frequent occurrence of angina pectoris in conjunction with atheromatous degenerations of the larger vessels and the heart itself, suggest all the different remedies of which mention has been made in the paragraph on fatty degeneration, yet we call particular attention to Plumbum; for particulars we refer to what we have stated at the end of the fourth chapter. We have not a word of commendation to offer in favor of Sambucus, Augustura, Lactuca virosa, Veratrum album, Asafcztida and Sepia, which are likewise recommended by Hartmann. Our dissent is of course based upon theoretical reasons, but Hartmann has no clinical proofs to offer any more than we have. Asa Angina Pectoris. 409 fxtida and Sepia might be tried if the angina seems an hysteric affection. Regarding the dietetic treatment but little can be said. If the causes which give rise to an attack, are well known, they have to be carefully avoided. That the mode of living exerts otherwise a decided influence, cannot well be maintained. Nor can we expect much good from a course tending to a general invigoration of the nervous system, for most patients of this kind are in general men of robust constitutions. All that the patient can do, is to observe a regular, quiet and prudent mode of living and to avoid every thing that might excite the heart's action. TENTH SECTION. Derangements of single Systems. A. DISEASES OF THE BONES, MUSCLES, AND ARTICULATIONS. 1. Ostitis, Periostitis, Pott's Disease. Inflammation of the Bones and Periosteum. Inflammations of bones occur in every age, less frequently, however, before the second and after the fiftieth or sixtieth year. In most cases they originate in mechanical injuries or mechanicallyacting deleterious influences, they are less frequently owing to the extension of inflammation from the soft parts. In the great majority of cases the mechanical is associated with a constitutional cause, very frequently the latter existing alone. Among the constitutional diseases it is more particularly scrofulosis, tuberculosis, syphilis and hydrargyrosis that give rise to ostitis. Very often it is very difficult to trace the cause with anything like certainty, especially so far as an inflammation of the substance of the bones is concerned, because it generally develops itself with scarcely perceptible symptoms and in a very insidious manner, hence too long a period of time may have elapsed since the cause first began to act, to permit of the disease being traced to a definite origin. Bones that are but thinly covered by soft parts, are particularly exposed to inflammation from mechanical causes; inflammation arising from more dynamic or constitutional causes may attack any bone; nevertheless inflammations of the mastoid process, of the inferior maxilla, of the vertebrae, the bones of the hands and feet and of the ribs, occur most frequently and are of particular importance. Periostitis occurs more particularly on the fingers, on the bones of the lower extremities and on the skull-bones. The symptoms and course of ostitis differ very remarkably in extent as well as intensity. It is very often found that at the 410 Ostitis, Periostitis. 411 outset the disease is entirely without any symptoms until the disease is finally revealed by the process of suppuration. It very seldom runs an acute and rapid course; this is generally the case, if the inflammation attacks the outer surface of the bone and the periosteum. In such a case the intensity of the pain depends upon the extent of the inflammation; the fever is high, delirium sometimes sets in, slight chills are common and the patient very soon begins to lose his strength. Cases of this kind, which run a rapid course, always terminate in suppuration, and the artificial removal of pus is in most cases a matter of absolute necessity. After the pus is evacuated, a cure does not always take place immediately; the bone divested of its periosteum becomes more or less carious before a cicatrix has time to form. If the periostitis runs a slow and somewhat chronic course, the inflammation of itself is not very painful; but very violent pains can be excited by contact; here too the exudation may be transformed into pus, but is likewise apt to result in osseous growths and to form extensive flat or tuberous bony indurations. If the inflammation is located in the interior of the bone, the latter is generally distended in its whole length, is not very sensitive to pressure, but the patient is tormented by paroxysms of peculiar dull boring pains which, even in the absence of any specific cause, are particularly apt to set in, and to become aggravated at night. These pains are usually felt for some time before the bone commences to swell; they interfere with the mobility of the limb more or less, generally the less the more remotely they are felt from the articulation. Ostitis of this central character always runs a chronic course. Its terminations are suppuration or ossification of the exudation. The pus is seldom reabsorbed, nor does it often become transformed into a tubercular mass; most generally it escapes outwardly and, unless the disease is cured, caries and necrosis result. The ichorous dissolution of the exudation generally determines a more rapid course of the disease. If one of the large bones is invaded by the suppurative process, death almost always results, although in some cases not till the patient.has.lived through years of suffering. An important diagnostic symptom is the presence of albumen in the urine; it almost always occurs if the suppuration is extensive and augurs very badly for the final result. The importance of inflarmations of bones varies a good deal. Age exerts a characteristic influence; whereas children and young 412 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. people generally recover from such inflammations, even if these should last a long while, unless they originate in inveterate, consti tutional maladies; older persons, especially when on the other side of forty, generally fall victims to such inflammations. Children very often recover when the second period of dentition sets in, or when they enter upon the period of pubescence. The seat of ostitis is of no small importance; inflammation of the bones in the upper part of the body is less dangerous than inflammation of the pelvic bones, or the bones of the lower extremities. It is likewise important to determine whether the inflammation is so located that vital organs may become involved; on this account inflammations of the skull-bones and ribs are more threatening on account of the danger of meningitis or pleuritis resulting from them. What renders the prognosis in every case of non-traumatic inflammation doubtful, is the uncertainty concerning the transformation and extent of the exudation.- Sometimes the inflammatory symptoms disappear entirely for a time, and then suddenly reappear again from some cause or other, or without any cause; or else, in one portion of the bone the inflammation runs a favorable course, and then all at once takes a new start either continuously in the tissue of the bone or in separate portions. Every inflammation involving more than one bone, renders the prognosis so much more unfavorable. Among the terminations of ostitis we have to mention two of particular importance, caries and necrosis. Caries represents a process where the purulent transformation of the inflammatory exudation involves the destruction of the bony substance; hence it always implies a loss of substance of bone. It occurs more particularly in scrofulous and tuberculous, but may likewise take place in perfectly healthy individuals. It most commonly involves the spongy portion of the bones. The symptoms of caries vary greatly like those of ostitis. In rare cases, if the pus has no escape or the carious portion of bone is very small, it may remain a latent disorganization. In other cases the pus finds an outlet outwardly, and the rough surface of the bone can be felt with the sound; the detached particles of bone can even be discovered in the pus between the fingers and certainly under the microscope. But if the carious process takes place deep in the interior of the bone, the pus may gravitate downwards, may form fistulous canals and finally break forth in some remote locality. The disease always runs a chronic course, sometimes extending Ostitis, Periostitis. 413 through a series of years, unless, owing to the presence of some other disease, a radical transformation into ichor brings about a rapid termination. Terminations: Recovery by means of granulations, resulting in a firm, tense, retracted cicatrix, or else death amid symptoms of slow, hectic consumption, or in consequence of the inflammation extending to other vital organs; in less frequent cases bones continue to suppurate for years without the organism being much affected by the loss. After the bones are healed, the destructive nature of caries, in case the loss of substance is great, very often leaves deformities and other derangements depending upon the nature of the bone affected. Among these deformities the most important are: Cyphosis in caries of the vertebrae, and impaired mobility of the lower extremities from caries of the head of the femur. The prognosis is very doubtful. If the patients are otherwise sound, and the pathological process is limited in extent, a cure can be depended upon with tolerable certainty; otherwise it is, after all, questionable whether the disease will not sooner or later result fatally. If the carious process takes place very near the serous covering of important viscera, we have at all times to expect an extension of the inflammation to these parts. Necrosis is the gangrenous destruction of a bone or part of a bone. It is a frequent consequence of ostitis attended with sclerosis, and a frequent accompaniment of caries. It is a well known fact that Phosphorus may cause necrosis of the inferior maxilla. A medicinal treatment of necrosis is of course out of the question, except in so far as secondary ostitis may be present; all that can be done, is to remove the necrosed portion of bone. Treatment. The frequent occurrence of ostitis in individuals whose constitutions are tainted with some constitutional dyscrasia, invites a careful inquiry into the presence of such a constitutional taint, even though not manifested by any outward signs; and, in the second place, to employ such remedies as not only correspond with the constitutional affection, but likewise aim at remedying the local disease. A mere comparison of symptoms will scarcely ever answer the purpose, for the reason that the localities may differ too much; it is only for a few definite localizations of ostitis that we possess real similia. In general we advise therefore that the general, not the local symptoms be taken as our guide; on this account we mention the following remedies with a few short comments. Mercurius is a medicine of whose specific and almost constantly '414 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. definite relation to the osseous tissue we may always rest satisfied. It is indeed suitable in most cases of ostitis and periostitis provided they do not originate in mercurial poisoning. It is particularly indicated by: Violent bone-pains, distention, swelling, redness of the integuments, and in general by the more acute symptoms of the disease. However, we do not mean to deny its usefulness in chronic cases of ostitis, and even in caries. The infantile organism is more rapidly and certainly affected by Mercurius. The dose had better be as small as possible; the slow course of the disease would seem to point to small doses and given at comparatively long intervals, as preferable to large doses of this agent. Mezereum antidotes Mercurius in the bone-range; this alone shows that both remedies must be homceopathic to ostitis. lezereum is particularly adapted to periostitis, less to ostitis, and is particularly appropriate at a period of the disease when no complete suppuration has yet set in. With this remedy we have cured an inflammation of the tibia, where a portion of the bone, several inches in extent, was considerably and painfully distended; the patient was a boy in whom there could not have existed the remotest suspicion of some specific cause. We cannot point out a special locality for Mezereum; according to Hartmann, it is particularly the superficially situated bones to inflammatory conditions of which Mezereum is best adapted. [T.his may have been a case of scrofulous rheumatic inflammation;.in the course of our practice we have cured quite a number of such cases by means of Aconite, Belladonna, the Iodide of Mercury, likewise Iodine and Iodide of Potassium. II.] Acidum nitricum is indeed chiefly indicated in mercurial ostitis, [and in ostitis originating in syphilis and abuse of Mercury, H.]; yet this recommendation must not be understood too literally; for this agent may likewise be of use in other forms of ostitis, especially of the lower extremities, and in periostitis generally. Phosphori acidum is generally preferred to Acidum nitricum in. non-mercurial ostitis; it is indicated in the inflammatory boneaffections of children, especially in inflammations of the vertebrae, if there is an evident disposition to caries and ichorous dissolution. In fully developed caries with symptoms of slow hectic fever, Phosphori acidum is one of the most important remedies. Phosphorus is inferior to Phosphori acidum for the reason that the latter acts more specifically and more penetratingly in chronic affections. In other respects the therapeutic sphere of both rem Ostitis, Periostitis. 415 eclies is very similar; we would accord the preference to Phosphorus, if consumption with unceasing colliquative diarrhcea has set in. Staphysagria is indicated, if the ostitis runs its course with severe pains, and the bone and its periosteum are affected at the same time; in the case of scrofulous individuals; if the facial bones or those of the legs and feet are involved. Manganum is recommended by Hartmann for painful periostitis, and for inflammation of the articular extremities of the bones. Baryta carbonica is eminently adapted to a slow and almost painless scrofulous inflammation of the bones of the extremities, after suppuration has begun to set in. Aurum is, like Nitric acid, an exquisitely anti-mercurial medicine, and hence deserves special attention in cases of mercurial ostitis. It has likewise an excellent effect in non-mercurial ostitis with caries, and violent pains, especially at night. Aurum is a specific remedy for inflammatory ulceration of the nasal bones and facial bones generally. In affections of this kind we prefer Aurum muriaticum to the common gold. Silicea is one of the most important remedies in caries from any cause and at any age, as soon as the inflammatory stage has run its course; it is adapted to every constitution, but may not have a very favorable effect in acute ichorous suppuration. We must not forget that Silicea acts very slowly; we recommend small doses at long intervals. Sulphur, in our hands, has never had a permanent effect in caries, nor have we ever been able to effect with'it a return towards recovery. It can at most be of use only in the latter stages of the disease, not at the beginning. Calcarea. This agent is not so much indicated in uncomplicated ostitis, as in ostitis depending upon scrofulosis; in our opinion it does not act directly as a curative, but by virtue of the favorable change it effects in the scrofulous disease. On this account its use should be deferred until the suppurative process is fully established. We will not decide whether Calcarea carbonica or phosphorica is preferable; we consider it a wrong theory, however, to employ the Phosphate of lime because it is a constituent of bone. In caries of the vertebrae Calcarea is superior to any other drug; often at least, it arrests the destructive process. For further comparison we recommend: Hepar sulphuris, lodium, Kali bichromnicum, Graphites, also Rhus toxicodendron and Lycopodium. Rhus is particularly recommended for periostitis. The 416 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles and Articulations. use of Aconite, Bryonia and Pulsatilla as recommended by Hartmann, seems to us to involve a loss of time; we do not consider these drugs adapted to ostitis. On the other hand, Belladonna is appropriate in the ostitis of scrofulous children with florid complexions. 2. Rhachitis. Rickets. We treat of this affection here, instead of deferring it to the chapter on constitutional anomalies to which it really belongs, because it is exclusively localized in the bones. The causes of rhachitis are upon the whole involved in obscurity. It is certainly not correct to describe rickets as a consequence of scrofulosis, for not all children who are afflicted with rickets, are scrofulous: With respect to rickets the following are established facts: Rhachitis can only be diagnosed with reliable certainty between the first and second period of dentition; it is preeminently an affection of the lower classes, and more particularly of children that were brought up by hand; sometimes it seems hereditary. The almost constant coincidence with more or less intense digestive disturbances justifies the inference that the main cause of this disease is an abnormal condition of the assimilative functions. Symptoms and Course. Manifest symptoms of rickets are with few exceptions preceded for some time by precursory symptoms. The children are afflicted with diarrhcea which is at first more slimy and afterwards watery; they lose their appetite or, which is still more common, they have perverse tastes, craving black rye-bread and potatoes; the abdomen is distended, the complexion sickly, the desire to move about is less, and yet, intellectually, the children are more matured than their age would seem to indicate. This lack of disposition to move about, which is particularly prominent in the case of children tht'had already commenced to walk about, is the first suspicious symptom which is very soon, and sometimes almost immediately followed by pains in the bones and articulations. That these pains exist is evident from the cries which the children utter, whenever an attempt is made to have them move about. This circumstance is often interpreted as naughtiness, more especially since the children already commence to cry at the mere approach of their parents whom they suspect of an intention to make them move about. Soon the characteristic changes in the articular extremities of the bones Rhachitis. 417 become manifest, more particularly, on account of the thin muscular covering, at the lower articulations of the radius and ulna, at the lower articulation of the tibia, and at the sternal extremities of the ribs. These articular extremities are enlarged, sometimes unequally bunchy, separated from the shaft by a more or less deep fold of integument. The disease is almost always accompanied by emaciation, especially of the lower extremities, which causes the swelling of the articular extremities and the distention of the abdomen to become still more prominent. The painfulness of the articulations is generally very great, scarcely ever hardly perceptible; hence not only the pain, but direct weakness seem to be the cause why children absolutely refuse to walk. In the further course of the disease all those changes take place which depend upon the softness of the bones. The lower extremities bend outwardly, if the children attempt to walk, whereas they remain straight, if children are attacked who are not yet able to walk and have to remain extended in a recumbent posture. The lone often looks as if bent at an angle. The ribs are pressed in and the sternum protrudes, giving rise to the so-called chicken-breast. The upper extremities are less crooked, but bent a great deal more, if the child crawls about on all fours. The vertebral column at times assumes the form of cyphosis, at times that. of scoliosis or lordosis; the form of the pelvis is likewise altered. The closing of the fontanelles and sutures delays for several years. It is remarkable that the rickety bone does not show any disposition to inflammation with suppuration and caries; nor is such a bone as liable to fracture as a bone normally constituted. The consequences to the general organism which are sometimes inconsiderable even with fully developed rhachitis, consist in impediments to. the respiration owing to a narrowing of the thorax and deficient mobility of the ribs, with chronic catarrh of the air-passages.. Excessive emaciation, with greatly distended abdomen. Delayed, irregular, sometimes perverse dentition. Great tendency to spasm, especially eclampsia, sometimes setting in in consequence of the least pressure on the fontanelles. The affection always runs an exceedingly chronic course, sometimes extending over many months. The disease may heal spontaneously at any stage of its development; we see this in cases where no physician had been employed, and where the true character of the disease can be inferred from the still remaining articular swellings. The first sign towards an improvement is the restoration 1 2 418 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. of a normal digestion. The articular swellings seldom disappear very rapidly; the curvatures never disappear entirely, but usually diminish very materially. The common termination is in recovery; if death results, it is mostly in consequence of the supervention of other complaints, and is the result of actual marasmus only in cases where the patient is utterly neglected. So far as danger to life is concerned, the prognosis is extremely favorable, whereas the curvatures may give rise to many secondary affections in after-life; a rickety pelvis, for instance, may materially interfere with the process of labor. The treatment of rachitis has to be, above all, strictly prophylactic or hygienic. It is certain that in almost all cases the disease depends upon abnormal assimilation, and hence first manifests itself by disturbances in the assimilative sphere. On this account we often succeed in arresting the development of the disease, if we see to it that the children are properly fed, kept clean, their 1kin is well washed and rubbed, and they have an abundance of fresh air. A compliance with these dietetic rules is a primary duty not only at the commencement, but likewise in the further course of the disease. It is moreover of great importance that the children should be prevented from moving about, and more particularly from sitting, since they avoid motion anyhow. By pursuing this course, very considerable curvatures are often very much improved, their further increase is checked, and the development of new curvatures is prevented. The most appropriate position is a recumbent posture upon an uniformly stuffed, not too hard mattress with a slightly raised pillow, or no pillow at all. Sea-weeds or fine chips, corn-husks are excellent material for the stuffing, likewise on the score of cheapness, since such patients generally belong to the poorer classes. Concerning the diet, we have already stated our views when treating of the intestinal' catarrh of children, and shall refer to this subject again in the chapter on scrofulosis. The medicines which we require for the cure of rickets, are few in number, but so much more reliable in their effect. After attending to the main requisite for a cure, namely the regulation of a suitable mode of living, the next business in order is to remove the intestinal catarrh as soon as possible, for which purpose the most rigid diet is often insufficient. All the medicines that have been recommended for the intestinal catarrh of children, may be called into use, but Calcarea carbonica undoubtedly heads the list. It is Rhachitis. 419 well known that the partisans of the Rational School account for the use of this agent in rickets upon chemical grounds, namely as a compensation for the excessive loss of the salts of lime in the urine. This excretion of the salts of lime is not the cause, but an effect of the disturbed nutrition of the bones, nor is it borne in mind by "rational" physicians that substances like lime, when given in their crude shape and in a massive cose, have no effect, or even act injuriously. On this account the use of such agents is soon discontinued again. 7Nevertheless Calcarea is the surest remedy for rhachitis, and we can present it to our opponents as a striking illustration of the efficacy of small doses. When given in the higher attenuations, it shows curative effects very promptly, even if there is no change in the mode of living; we have noticed this on many occasions. We have never witnessed such rapid results from the lower triturations; hence we advise everybody to first, try the sixth and higher attenuations before resorting to the lower attenuations and triturations. The diarrhoea often ceases after the first dose, and this change implies a positive victory over the disease. Having almost constantly succeeded with the Carbonate rf Lime, we scarcely ever venture to change to the Phosphate or Acetate. A copious, watery, sour-smelling diarrhcea is the surest indication for Calcarea. A second remedy which is likewise extremely beneficial in every suitable case, is Arsenicur. As regards the dose, we apply to it the same remarks that we have to Calcarea. The Arsenic-diarrhcea is less copious, less watery, of a foul smell as of decomposing matter, attended with a good deal of flatulence, hectic fever, great restlessness, sleeplessness, also vomiting, loss of appetite, whereas Calcarea is characterized by a great craving for certain inadmissible kinds of food. Sulphur is seldom indicated in rickets. Its chief indication is seldom present, namely a slimy or muco-purulent diarrhcea, with discharge of pure bile or a copious admixture of bile. It is asserted by many that a few doses of Sulphur administered previous to Calcarea, renders the effect of the latter more reliable and prompt; we have no experience of our own to offer on this point. These three remedies are sufficient to a cure in by far the larger number of cases. For other remedies we refer the reader to our chapter on intestinal catarrh. [In this disease the continued use of small quantities of Cod-liver oil is decidedly appropriate. H.] 420 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. 3. Enchondroma. Pcedarthrocace; Spina ventosa. Enchondroma represents a disease of the bones where cartilaginous substance is formed within the hone, in consequence of which the substance of the bone is more or less destroyed. The causes of this affection are quite obscure; assigning scrofulosis as the origin of the disease, does not shed much light on the subject. It occurs most commonly among children and during pubescence. The enchondroma is most commonly located in the metacarpal bones and in the phalangeal bones of the fingers, much less frequently in the bones of the feet, but may likewise occur in other bones and organs. It either commences without any pain, or else with indefinite sensations in the affected bone, very seldom with marked pains like ostitis. The swelling of the bone is generally the first symptom. It seldom spreads uniformly over the whole bone, but has mostly a spherical or conical shape. The swelling is of slow growth; the soft parts by which it is covered, retain for a long time their normal appearance, until finally, after the swelling has reached a considerable size, the skin reddens and breaks in one or more places. The sound now penetrates into the opening without any difficulty, and is easily passed around in the swelling which is commonly found to consist of a very soft, spongy mass. There is very little discharge from the opening, very seldom any pus, but rather a serous liquid resulting in the formation of a crust that closes the opening. At this stage pains are generally entirely absent. The disorganization runs a very chronic course. If adults are attacked, the general organism is much affected by the disease; in the case of children a cure may be promised with perfect safety. For this disease we do not possess any specific, properly speaking, but have to select our remedies in accordance with the rules of analogy. Practically Silicea has so far yielded the best results, next to which we rank Graplites. Besides these two, the following remedies are recommended: Calcarea, Staphysagria, Mezereum, Cuprum, Sulphur, Ledumn palustre. There is no clinical experience recorded with these agents. We should always bear in mind, in treating a case of this kind, that enchondroma can never be cured with external means, and that the knife never need be resorted to. Psoitis. 421 4. Psoitis. Inflammation of the Psoas-muscle. Of inflammations of muscles this is the only one that is proportionally of frequent occurrence, and is of very great importance. If psoitis sets in as a primary disease, its causes are involved in great obscurity; excessive exertions, a cold, rheumatism, etc., are assigned as probable causes, most likely because no better causes are known. Mechanical injuries seldom result in psoitis. Secondarily psoitis may supervene during inflammation and caries of the lumbar vertebrae. At first, the disease is often quite painless and develops itself very slowly; sometimes, however, it sets in in an acute form. In such a case the patient experiences a sudden or rapidly increasing violent pain in the lumbar region, which he finds it difficult to define; it often radiates upwards or downwards; as soon as the pain is felt, the motion of the limb is interfered with, especially flexion and rotation inwards. Under such circumstances a violent fever is always present, the pulse being remarkably rapid. The patients lie with their thighs semi-flexed and somewhat turned inwards. Pus forms sometimes rapidly, and at other times slowly, and sometimes in such profuse quantity that its first appearance is indicated by creeping chills. The fully-formed abscess can be reabsorbed, which is, however, seldom the case; or else, it bursts in the lumbar region, the pus escaping inwardly and immediately threatening life; or the pus burrows downwards following the course of the psoas-muscle until it finds an outlet, generally on the anterior surface of the thigh, rarely posteriorly by the side of the vertebral column. The pus thus forms a fistulous canal, which is always the case if the lumbar vertebre are carious. If suppuration sets in, the course of the disease is always slow; it is only in rare cases that the inflammation does not terminate in suppuration; the organism may become involved in consequence of a profuse suppuration gradually consuming the patient's strength, or in consequence of the escape of the pus into the abdominal cavity, or of the inflammation communicating itself to the vertebrae. For these reasons the prognosis is always doubtful. The treatment is not surgical, except in so far as it may be necessary to open the abscess. IIomceopathic physicians have a higher duty to perform. In the first place we have to try to scatter the inflammation before suppuration sets in; even if this 422 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. cannot be accomplished in all cases, it is at all events certain that the spread of the inflammation can be prevented by appropriate internal treatment. For this purpose we commence the treatment if a violent and continuous fever is present, with Belladonna, especially if the fever is accompanied by copious perspiration and every motion aggravates the pain extremely. Rhus should be given if the fever consists of a burning, dry heat, with intense thirst, if the trouble seems to have originated in a cold and the pains are worse at night, and when the patient is lying down. If these two remedies do not effect an improvement, anq the fever is mingled with chilly creepings, the pulse becomes very much accelerated, and the skin is at times burning-hot and at other times drenched in perspiration, we should at once give Mercurius, which is the only remedy that can arrest the suppurative process, if such a result can at all be accomplished. If an abscess forms, we give Hepar sulph. in order to promote the suppuration; for the main point now is to evacuate the pus as rapidly as possible and by this means to heal the sore as soon as the pus is discharged. Hartmann names a number of drugs, such as Bryonia, Nux vomn., Pulsatilla, Cantharides, etc., without any practical testimony, and, in our opinion, without practical value. Staphysagria may be tried if the disease runs a slow course, without much fever. After the abscess bursts and the patients are free from caries, we advise the continued use of Hepar sulph., by which means a rapid termination of the formation of pus is most speedily effected. If the opening becomes fistulous, we must be prepared for an exceedingly tardy recovery. If the pus is of good quality and the patient preserves his strength, Silicea, and next to it Sulphur, are most calculated to promote a cure, although we confess that we have never seen any decided effect from their employment. If the pus becomes watery, sicklylooking, acrid; if the strength begins to fail and hectic symptoms set in, we still may succeed in arresting the bad turn by Phosphorus, China, Ferrurn, or by Calcarea carbonica. If the smell and the general quality of the pus show that the continuance of the purulent discharge is due to caries of the vertebrae, we can scarcely expect any change from any medicine and the patient must be prepared to die of slow consumption. 5. ]Lumbago. This affection being commonly regarded as rheumatism of the dorsal muscles, it ought to have had its place assigned to it in the Lumbago. 423 chapter on rheumatism; however, inasmuch as we have several reasons for questioning the rheumatic nature of this affection, we will describe its character and point out its treatment in this place. The affection is supposed to originate more particularly in a cold attended with a severe exertion. That this explanation is improbable, is evident from the circumstance that lumbago is commonly an isolated affection, not attended with catarrh and extensive rheumatic symptoms; yet, if a cold were the real cause, this would be a very strange localization, so much more as scarcely a trace of fever is present with the attack. The difficulty arises suddenly almost without an exception; it is rarely preceded by vague pains in the lumbar region. The patient, while stooping, or making an attempt to raise anything or to rapidly turn about, suddenly experiences a fearful, racking pain in the back, which makes it almost impossible for him to raise himself again, and which may even be so intense that he tumbles forward as from a blow. The pain continues, is fearfully increased by every movement of the trunk and even the extremities, even by coughing and sneezing; it is suspended for a short time while the patient is lying quiet, but then returns again and compels him to make a painful attempt to change his position. Sometimes walking is utterly impossible, or else the person has to walk with the trunk rigidly erect, or stooping forward, with an unsteady gait, because the least misstep causes a horrid pain. No constitutional disturbances are experienced unless they are occasioned by the excessive pain. If the afeection is left to itself, it lasts at least three days, but may continue for several weeks, after which the pain leaves gradually, mostly with great tendency to relapses. We do not see upon what ground Hartmann proposes so many remedies for a strictly local affection. In all cases the symptoms are alike and differ only in degrees of intensity. On this account two or three remedies have always sufficed in our hands for a cure. Tartar emetic, second or third trituration, a dose every three or four hours, helps more rapidly than any other remedy. In twenty-four hours the pains generally disappear, except a little stiffness. Rhus is preferable if the lumbago originates in a sudden cold and the pain, so far from being mitigated by rest, is, on the contrary, aggravated. Arnica is indicated if the attack is caused by a severe exertion. Beside these three remedies we have never been obliged to employ any other; it is only in order to be complete that we add 424 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. the medicines mentioned by Hartmann: Bryonia, Nux vomica, Sulphur, Ledum, Pulsatilla, Rhododendron, Colchicum, China. Kneading and pounding the affected locality is of undoubted use, so is the application of humid warmth. This application is made by dipping a towel in cold water, wringing it well, folding it four to six times and then applying it to the painful locality, after which a dry cloth folded together several times, has to be laid over the wet compress, and a hot flat-iron pressed upon the whole, so that the heat penetrates through the whole and imparts to the skin an intense sensation of warmth. These applications only palliate, but never remove the pain entirely. [We have cured numbers of cases of lumbago by rubbing a moderately strong liniment of the tincture of Aconite-root upon the back, and at the same time giving the first or second decimal attenuation of Aconite-root internally. H.] 6. Progressive Mluscular Paralysis. The origin of this very peculiar affection is involved in great obscurity. We are not acquainted with any really constant cause of this disorder, and such causes as have been assigned to it, a cold, excessive exertions, hereditary descent, are at all events doubtful. What is certain is, that men are more particularly liable to this disease. An essential characteristic of this disease consists in a gradual atrophy of one or more muscles attended with fatty degeneration of the affected part. It first invades the muscles of one hand, especially the right, less frequently those of the arm, shoulder or face, and never those of the lower extremities; and even when invading the inuscles of the hand, it almost always first affects a limited portion of them, after which it gradually spreads further. Generally it sets in without pain, seldom with an intensely acute pain, and almost imperceptibly, the affected muscles losing more and more their functional power and at the same time becoming atrophied. Not till the atrophy is complete, does the palsy reach its acme; until then the muscles retain their sensibility, reflexaction continues and the sensitiveness to the electric current is preserved more or less. The affection may remain confined for years to the starting-point without making headway, but this is a rare circumstance. It more frequently happens that the muscular affection gradually spreads Progressive Muscular Paralysis. 425 from one muscle to the other, successive portidns of the body become involved in the paralysis, and, after having suffered for years, the patient finally perishes if the muscles of deglutition and respiration become paralyzed. This disease can be distinguished from ordinary nervous paralysis by the circumstance that in progressive muscular atrophy the susceptibility to the electric current remains intact for a long time. With scarcely an exception, the prognosisis unfavorable, especially if the disease rapidly progresses from the start. As for the treatment of this disease, we are as yet unacquainted with reliable specific remedies. It is characteristic of this disease never to invade the muscular fibres of the heart, so that fatty degeneration of the heart and muscular atrophy seem to be very distinct diseases. In the therapeutic range we can only recommend Plumbum and Cuprum, both of which have paralysis with emaciation; but it is not certain whether the emaciation is not altogether the consequence of the palsy. At all events Plumbum is more appropriate than Cuprum. Arsenicum may likewise give rise to expectations of success. Beside these three remedies we still recommend Sulphur, Causlicum and Lachesis. Gymnastic exercises, with a careful avoidance, however, of all active exertions and a strict limitation of the exercise to passive motions, and likewise a resort to electricity by induction, or faradisation, are said to have occasionally yielded favorable results, and to have effected an arrest of the palsy and even an increase of muscular volume. [This disease is also described by English pathologists as wasting palsy. Doctor William Roberts, of Manchester, published the first systematic treatise on this subject, in 1858. In France, the disease has been described by the name of " atrophie musculaire progressive," or "paralysie graduelle du mouvement par atrophie musculaire." There are several other forms of progressive paralysis, one of which is described as progressive locomotor ataxia or the ataxie locomotrice progressive of Duchenne. We transcribe the following description of the disease from Aitken's Science and Practice of Medicine: c' Pains like rheumatism first attract attention, rather than failing power. Paralysis of the sixth or third pair of nerves, giving rise to temporary diplopia, with unequal contraction of the pupils, are early symptoms; and another distressing harbinger of the disease is incontinence of urine, associated with spermatorrhcea during the night, with a great proclivity to sexual congress, which is no mere impotent desire but results in effective sexual intercourse. In the 426 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. erect posture, the muscles may sustain a heavy weight; and general paralysis does not supervene after these extremely anomalous symptoms until a period of months or even years. There is tlien a gradual and progressive loss of the power of co-ordination in the acts of volition. An awkward, unsteady gait is the earliest indication of such progressive paralysis." "At first the feet are moved in a slatternly manner, the heels lounging on the ground before the toes; and then, as the disease advances, they are thrown involuntarily to the right or left without purpose, and without the power of restraining their irregular movements..... The act of turning round is performed with great difficulty. The sensation of the feet is apt to become blunted during this period of the disorder, so that the patient feels as if he were always walking on a soft carpet, and is therefore so much the more insecure.... The bladder and rectum are also frequently implicated.... but electro-muscular contractility is retained throughout the whole disease (see Meryon, Medico-Chirurgical Transactions, vol. 35, page 194). The duration of progressive ataxia is from six months to ten or even twenty years. If the patient is put on his legs with his eyes shut, and his feet close together, it is seen that, although he has the muscular power, he has not the muscular sensibility to preserve his body from falling, or to guide him in taking even a few steps forward with his eyes closed. He will reel and tumble about like a drunken man (see Trousseau, Meryon). It is a disease of middle age and affects males rather than females; and is apt to be hereditary." I1.] 7. Inflammation of Joints. The articulations composed of a number of essentially different tissues, are variously exposed, both by their functions and their situation, to inflammatory affections which differ greatly in their natures, for the reason that several of these tissues may be attacked together and in various combinations. Moreover, an articular inflammation, wherever it may be located, is always of special importance, on account of the organism falling such a ready victim to its consequences. Homceopathy has given abundant evidence that it is possessed of means to modify the course of these inflammations and to impress upon them a favorable change. It has no specific remedies for articular inflammations generally, but for each special form thereof. We call attention to this point, because we cannot dwell upon every special form of articular inflammation and request the reader to select the proper remedy for himself in a given case. Inflammation of Joints. 427 Among these inflammations we single out the following as the most important: a. Coxalgia, Coxarthrocace, Inflammation of the Hip-joint. This inflammation, the chronic form of which is designated as luxatio spontanea or "voluntary limping," cannot be traced to any definite cause. It affects principally children and young people during the first years of pubescence. Its extremely frequent occurrence during the years fourteen to seventeen, and in persons of rapid growth, leads us to infer that a rapid growth of the bones constitutes a disposition to this inflammation, and that an exertion, a cold or other scarcely apparent circumstances simply act as exciting causes. A connection between this disease and some constitutional affection cannot be traced with any positive certainty. Acute coxarthrocace sets in suddenly even with a violent chill, like all other acute inflammations, with which severe pains are associated. The patient locates these pains at times in the small of the back, at other times more in front, very seldom in the hipjoint; they are extremely acute, tearing, burning, stitching, shooting, aggravated by every motion of the lower extremities, not altogether, and sometimes not at all, relieved by horizontal posture. At the same time a high fever accompanies the pains, the pulse being not unfrequently upwards of 120; this circumstance distinguishes the disease from lumbago with which it is easily confounded. Amid symptoms of this kind which may become sufficiently intense to simulate typhus, the following objective phenomena become manifest in one, two or more weeks: The affected hip and the buttock of the same side swell, so that the fold between the nates is much deeper; the thigh is somewhat rotated outwards and slightly drawn up towards the abdomen; the knee is half bent; extension and rotation of the thigh are very painful, nor can these movements be executed completely. Walking is not entirely impossible, but can only be performed with the greatest pain. It is very seldom that an improvement begins at this point; as a rule an extensive suppuration sets in, amid frequent chills and burning heat of the skin. After this, a short intermission seems to take place in the further development of the disease, until the abscess reaches the skin and bursts. This may take place posteriorly, laterally or in front. After the pus is discharged, the patient feels much better, and then worse again, provided the suppuration becomes very profuse and continuous. Upon the whole, the prospect 428 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. of a speedy closure of the cavity is very slim; most generally fistulous openings result. The articulation itself is variously affected according as one or the other tissue is most involved. If the inflammation was originally located in the bone, this is partially destroyed together with the acetabulum, and caries is the result; if the inflammation emanates from the fibrous tissues or from the synovial membrane, the bones may remain intact. Thus the terminations of the disease are: Very rarely a complete. and rapid restoration; long-lasting suppuration with final recovery and a total or partial destruction of the articulation; long-lasting suppuration with caries which may end in hectic fever and death. The prognosis. is always very uncertain. Chronic or subacute coxarthrocace presents a very different group of symptoms. The disease commences with vague symptoms in the hip-joint resembling rheumatic pains and alternately exacerbating, remitting, or even intermitting for some time. These pains may be absent and in their stead the patient may only complain of a stiff joint which is more especially felt during motion. Sensible pressure on the hip-joint generally causes more or less pain, and the thigh is usually rotated outwards to some extent as soon as the disease commences. With such trifling symptoms it may go on for some time, before more serious changes become manifest. The pains increase in intensity and cause the patient to limp, the thigh is slightly flexed and turned inwards, being at the same time, however, rotated outwards. Almost without an exception a more or less violent pain is at the same time felt in the knee, very generally surpassing the pain in the hip-joint in intensity. The affected limb becomes elongated, its muscles become relaxed and flabby, the glutei muscles of the affected side become depressed, the gluteal fold is much deeper, the trochanter is somewhat turned outwards. In the further course of the disease suppuration supervenes, the pus escaping on the outside and destroying life by caries and hectic fever. A cure at this stage is a rare occurrence; or else no suppuration sets in and the head of the femur and the acetabulum adhere together; or finally the head of the femur slips out of the acetabulum, in which case adhesions occur with a greater or less degree of immobility of the thigh, or with suppuration outwardly. It may take several years before the disease exhausts the different phases of this course. The prognosis is always doubtful, and, so far as a final cure is concerned, generally very unfavorable. The younger the individuals the more hope we may entertain of a final Inflammation of Joints. 429 cure; the older the patient the greater the danger of hectic fever succeeding the suppuration. Although the number of homceopathic remedies for coxarthrocace is but small, yet the success with which they are used in this disease, is a source of pride to our practice. In view of the almost positive certainty of a correct diagnosis in most cases of hipdisease, the clinical results that have been obtained in the treatment of this disorder, may be regarded as absolutely reliable testimony. In the following paragraphs we give the treatment of the different varieties of coxarthrocace and their stages. At the outset of acute coxitis with violent fever and accelerated pulse Belladonna or Rhus tox. may be required, but only as long as no pus has yet formed. For the distinctive symptoms of both drugs the Materia Medica may be consulted. If the symptoms are not very violent, Bryonia may deserve a preference. If symptoms of suppuration have plainly set in, no remedy can cdmpete with Mercurius which of itself is capable of moderating and even arresting the suppurative process. Only if the abscess threatens to break, we advise a resort to lepar sulphuris. After the bursting of the abscess, the selection of a remedial agent will depend upon the constitutional symptoms. If the patient gains in strength and the symptoms point to a rapid healing of the sore, Calcarea carb. renders excellent service in so far as it promotes the nutritive process. Acidum phosph. is likewise appropriate under such circumstances. If the suppuration is profuse, and a laudable pus is discharged, the continued use of Sulphur will bring about a diminution of the secretion or, if Sulphur should fail us, Silicea will achieve this result. If the pus becomes thin, smells badly and the patient loses strength, we have to select in accordance with the constitutional symptoms: Phosphorus, Acidum phosph. and nitric., Calcarea carbon. and phosphor., Arsen., Lycopodium. We have a few remedies which, when given at the outset of chronic coxitis, have often succeeded in decidedly arresting the further progress of the disease. Rhus tox., if the pains are chiefly felt during rest, affect the whole thigh, and the lameness is very great. Belladonna in the case of young, robust, plethoric individuals, if the pains are severe, limited to circumscribed localities and set in more particularly towards evening and after exercise. Arnica, if the disease is traceable to some mechanical injury, with a burning and frequently shifting pain which causes a great deal of restlessness. Colocynthis for very severe and constant pains resembling 430 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. ischias and increasing or decreasing independently of external circumstances. Even in the second stage of the disease, Colocynthis is still indi-, cated, and is very much commended by physicians. If we are satisfied that suppuration has set in, Mercurius will of course be our choice, more especially in the case of scrofulous individuals. Calearea carbonica and Hepar sulphuris are likewise variously recommended at this stage. If pus is formed and the abscess has burst, the same treatment has to be pursued as in a case of acute coxitis. The following remedies are recommended in isolated cases, and may be investigated more particularly in the Materia Medica: Conium, Lycopodium, Pulsatilla, Petroleum, Digitalis purpurea, Aurum. The rest of the treatment may be condensed in the following points which it would lead us too far to account for by a special train of reasoning. The patients should not remain in a state of absolute rest, on the.contrary, they had better move about by means of crutches. If pus forms, warm poultices may be applied; they not only promote the formation of pus, but very often favor its reabsorption. Only if carious destruction of the joint has taken place, the patients will have to remain quiet lest spontaneous luxation should result; in such circumstances a suitable extensionapparatus may be resorted to, which will have to be applied, however, with a great deal of caution. The diet should be at all times plain and strengthening; the use of fat is to be rigidly prohibited. b. Gonacrthrocace, Tamor Albus Genu, Gonitis, Inflammation of the Knee-joint. This is one of the most frequently occurring inflammations of joints; owing to the exposed situation of the knees, this might indeed be expected. -Its etiology is no less obscure than that of the inflammation of any other joint; it is certain that a mechanical injury is the least frequent cause of this inflammation. Very often gonarthrocace seems to be the expression of a constitutional affection. As regards age, young people are indeed more disposed to this disease, which is likewise, however, met with after the twentyfifth year of age, and occurs, it appears, more frequently among females than males. A simple inflammation of the knee, to which the name of tumor Inflammation of Joints. 431 albus should never be applied, and which is generally the result of some mechanical injury or of excessive use, is an unimportant affection as long as the inflammation is confined to the integuments. It is scarcely ever attended with fever, is never ushered in by a chill, and runs its course within a few weeks. However, inasmuch as we can never be sure whether such an unimportant disease may not result in the more dangerous tumor albus, it ought to be managed with all due precaution. Tumor albus never runs an acute course, at most subacute and usually very chronic. While using tlie joint, the patient complains of pain and impaired mobility; in more rapidly progressing cases the temperature of the joint is higher than usual. If the inflammation emanates from the soft parts, the pains are generally less than when the bones constitute the starting-point. Sometimes the knee swells rapidly, at other times more slowly, and most slowly if the bones receive the first shock of the disease. In the latter case the knee preserves its form for a long time, whereas in the other cases the swelling soon modifies any former shape of the knee. As the swelling increases, which generally has a very white appearance, it grows progressively softer, elastic, and finally shows symptoms of fluctuation. The cutaneous veins become very much enlarged. The pains generally increase with an increase of the swelling. Sometimes not till after the lapse of years, and, in a few cases, after that of weeks, distinct fluctuation is perceived in one or more places; here the skin reddens, breaks, and a pus which is mostly thin and mixed with flocks, is discharged. In spite of this evacuation of pus, the swelling remains almost unchanged. The suppuration in a case of tumor albus is generally very tardy. The openings may close for a short time, after which they generally open again, so that, in a fortunate case, suppuration may cease after many months, and the swelling may grow smaller, but the joint remains stiff and thick, and the leg somewhat bent. A cure of this disease is witnessed only in the case of young people. If the case terminates less favorably, the suppuration gradually superinduces hectic fever, and finally ends in death. The prognosis is always bad, for no one escapes from such an attack without some permanent injury; the difference in favor of young and robust individuals is that death needs not be apprehended in their case, which is generally sure to occur in individuals of upwards thirty years of age. Treatment. We cannot boast of possessing many similia for 432 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. gonarthrocace whose clinical value has at the same time been tested by an abundance of practical observations. Moreover, it is unfortunately a difficult matter to select a remedy for a given case in accordance with the symptomatic records of the Materia Medica. The simple, rapidly terminating and benign inflammation of the knee, without any affection of the bone or any marked tendency to suppuration, readily yields to Arnica, if the trouble originates in a mechanical injury. If the trouble proceeds rather from internal causes, Belladonna will generally be found sufficient, if there is much pain, and Bryonia, if both pain and swelling are considerable; Conium, Pulsatilla or Rhus toxicodendron will be required less frequently. [We think Pulsatilla is not sufficiently appreciated by Baehr; we know of no remedy that has a more specific relation to the synovial lining of the cavity of the knee than Pulsatilla; hence in gonitis, if the inflammatory process is primarily and chiefly located in the synovial membrane, Pulsatilla is undoubtedly the leading remedy. In chronic gonitis of this character we should depend chiefly upon Silicea, higher attenuations, with intercurrent doses of Pulsatilla. H.] If tumor albus begins as a subacute disease, with severe pains, slight febrile excitement, rapid increase of the swelling, Bryonia is the main remedy as long as the inflammation is confined to the soft parts; if the trouble is primarily located in the bone, if the pain is excessive, although the swelling is only slight, Mercurius will have to be employed. In the case of young and robust individuals Belladonna is preferred by many physicians, even if the bones are affected primarily. If the swelling progresses without much pain, Conium is indicated. Beside these remedies the following deserve attention at the outset: Ledum for severely-stitching nocturnal pains; Mezereum for nocturnal, tearing pains; Rhus tox., if the pain is very much increased in a recumbent posture; and Lycopodium. We shall seldom be able to arrest the swelling with these remedies; as a rule, it will progress to the stage where we have to dread the advent of suppuration. At this stage a favorable change may yet be effected by one of the following remedies: Mercurius, Iodine, Hepar sulphuris, Sulphur. Their special indications cannot well be stated a priori, because. they generally result from the constitutional symptoms which the disease happens to have evolved; all we can here say is that Mercurius and Sulphur are more adapted to very hard and not very extensive swellings; Iodine and Hepar sulphuris to large and soft swellings, with symp Inflammation of Joints. t433 toms of fluctuation. If pus forms notwithstanding, and the abscess bursts, a remedy has to be selected, with reference to two conditions, namely: whether the suppuration threatens to speedily superinduce consiumption, or whether the patient's strength bears well up under it. In the former case Calcarea carbonica and Phosphorus will have to be given; in the latter, Silicea, Graphites and Baryta; Arsenicum mray likewise be of eminent use in the case of scrofulous individuals. External applications are not always appropriate in this disease. Poultices are injurious'if they increase the pains; in most cases they not only relieve the pain, but likewise exert a favorable effect upon the reabsorption of the pus in the diseased joint. An uninterrupted recumbent posture is to be avoided as long as the patients remain capable of moving about; only the diseased limb must not be used for a walk. A moderate and constant pressure by a starched bandage is only borne if the bones are not too much diseased; it has the double advantage of antagonizing the swelling and protecting the limb during motion. It has the best effect, if the abscess has already broke, for, in such a case, the bandage most decidedly promotes the course of the suppurative process. Amputation is only advisable if the joint is utterly disorganized and the constitution begins to show signs of failing under the constant pain and loss of fluids. c. Inflammation of the Tarsus. The inflammation is either seated in the bones or wher6 they articulate with those of the metatarsus; or else in the articulation of the tarsus and tibia, or in both localities at the same time. Here, too, mechanical injuries are rarely the cause of the inflammation. An inflammation of the metatarsus is particularly met with. among children and during the age of pubescence; an inflammation of the tibio-tarsal articulation occurs more frequently among adults. The symptoms are most commonly the following: At first a pain is felt in walking, particularly during certain positions of the foot; in a state of rest the pain subsides almost entirely. Gradually the joint begins to swell, the swelling increasing more and more and gradually extending over the whole foot; at the same time the pains increase, become continuous, and walking is entirely out of the question. At last the pus finds an outlet in one or more places. In favorable cases the suppuration now decreases, the strength 28 434 Diseases of the Bones, Muscles, and Articulations. keeps up, the fistulous openings close, although sometimes not till years have elapsed. Or else, the swelling continues to increase even after the bursting of the abscess, the foot becomes completely distorted, and hectic fever is the unavoidable consequence. The course of the disease always exceeds one and even more years, until the pus escapes outwardly. At all times life is in danger even in the case of children; adults succumb almost always with scarce an exception. A peculiar form of tarsal inflammation is a flat foot. Sometimes it affects already small children, although it is only slightly developed at that age; it mostly shows itself after pubescence, most generally among males if they suddenly grow up in height. Every time after the foot is perseveringly used, violent pains are experienced in the joint, which becomes stiff after walking, with inability to stand upon the affected limb. On the inside a little swelling is perceived under the malleolus. Little by little the foot loses its arched shape, the os naviculare is turned downwards, away from the heel, and the patients generally walk on the inner edge of the foot. The malformation of the foot may become very considerable, and may materially interfere with its use. Sometimes the trouble does not cease spontaneously until after the patient is thirty years old. This form of inflammation which, under similar circumstances, may likewise occur at the knee, never results in suppuration. The treatment involves difficulties for the reason that we are entrusted with it at too late a period, and likewise because we can never expect to accomplish a rapid success. At the outset of the inflammation we may still hope to accomplish something by means of Staphysagria, Ledurm, Sabina, Ruta, Mezereum; but it is only in few cases that we succeed in preventing suppuration. If the bones are the starting-point of the inflammation, Belladonna and Mercurius are preferable to the previously-named remedies. Suppuration generally sets in slowly and amid signs of an apparent improvement which, however, should not deceive us. Suitable remedies are: Calcarea carbonica, and especially IJlepar sulphuris, besides which we have Graphites, if the metatarsus is likewise involved. If the abscess bursts on the outside, the same remedies have to be employed that have been recommended for tumor albus under similar circumstances, to which Aurum may still be added. Poultices are out of place in an affection of such slow growth. The Arteries. 435 abscess should never be lanced; a tight bandage scarcely ever agrees with the patient's feeling of comfort. For fat foot Staphysagria and Graphites seem to us to be the best remedies; their effect is, however, questionable, for the reason that in all the cases that we have had to treat, we have always resorted to a firm bandage, most generally a starched bandage, in order to afford the joint the necessary support; indeed we have often cured this disorder radically by means of such a bandage. Shoes firmly laced beyond the ankles, and with only moderately high heels, are indispensable. Articular inflammations of the upper extremities are less important, because they are less dangerous to the organism. Suppuration is borne for years without any great inroad upon the general health. The remedies to be employed are mostly the same as those mentioned for inflammations of the lower extremities; other remedies can be found in the Materia Medica, which is so much more practicable as the disease does not require any immediate medicinal interference. B. DISEASES OF THE ARTERIES, VEINS, LYMPHATICS, AND LYMPHATIC GLANDS. 1. Diseases of the Arteries. The various diseases of the arteries are, indeed, of a very high pathological value, but of very little importance in a therapeutic point of view, for the simple reason that they cannot be treated medicinally. Arterial inflammation, mostly only a symptom of other diseases, is scarcely recognizable with positive certainty, even in the case of larger arterial trunks. Of course, an inflammation of the larger arteries is highly interesting, because the closure of an arterial trunk near the heart may give rise to cardiac hypertrophy. 436 Diseases of the Arteries, Veins, Lymphatics, etc. Aneurisms are not exactly pathological diseases, but consequences of other influences. We do not see how medicines are to,accomplish anything in such cases, either in the uniformly developed arteriectasia or in the aneurism resulting from partial laceration of the vessel. It is only the disturbances which such arterial lesions cause in the heart, that suggest the propriety of medicinal interference, and we regard it as downright absurdity to recommlend redicines for the cure of aneurisms, as has indeed been done. [There is no reason why Aconite and _Digitalis should not be tried for aneurisnm. We know of a case of aneurism of the subclavian artery that was to be operated on by a celebrated Professor of one of the Philadelphia Colleges. Previous to the operation the patient was placed on the alternate use of tolerably large doses of Aconite and Digitalis, for a week. When the patient presented himself for t he operation, the aneurism had so far disappeared that the Professor was unable to trace it and concluded to wait; what became of the case afterwards, I am unable to say. II.] 2. Diseases of the Veins. a. Phlebitis. Inflammation of Veins. Phlebitis, the correct diagnosis of which is a recent triumph, is, so far as its consequences are concerned, one of the most important of all known morbid processes. The veins of the lower extremities and.of the cavity of the skull are particularly liable to inflammation, besides all the veins whose sides do not collapse, such as, above all other veins, those of the gravid uterus. The causes of phlebitis are: Direct injuries of the vessel; coagula arising from impediments to the circulation occasioned by dilatation of the vessel; introduction of foreign substances resulting in a decomposition of the blood. This last-named explanation is applicable to phlebitis which sets in in an epidemic form in limited localities; or else the disease may arise secondarily from inflammatory afiections of neighboring parts, or of remote parts, but lying in the tract of the vein; or from puerperal conditions, pyemia, suppurations of bones, especially caries of the bones and ossicula of the ear. The symptoms of phlebitis vary according to its extent and intensity. The most intense forms of phlebitis originate in pymmia, to which we therefore refer; in this category belongs especially epidemic phlebitis, where the local process is rapidly extended through the whole organism. The less intense cases very usually Veins. 437 set in with a chill recurring either irregularly with more or less frequency or otherwise, or else setting in typically, like an intermittent paroxysm. The diseased vein is often indicated by a seated, circumscribed, burning pain, but is quite often altogether painless. The chill is succeeded by a feeling of illness, usually so, severe that it is entirely out of all proportion to the objective symptoms. The pulse is accelerated and very much reduced in volume, the digestion is interfered with, a tendency to perspire Bets in, the tract of the vein becomes cedematous. If the circulation in the vein is restored, all these symptoms may disappear as rapidly aS they came. If pus forms in the vein, the inflammation gradually ascends towards the heart, and the picture of pysemia becomes more and more marked. If the vein remains closed, cedema develops itself beyond the closure and, if a collateral circulation can be established, may last only a short while, or else remain permanent. In such a case lassitude, chills at irregular intervals, irregular flashes of heat sometimes continue for weeks. The terminations of phlebitis depend upon the changes going on in the inflammatory exudation. If no purulent decomposition takes place, life is not exactly in danger; if pus forms, it may be carried along with the current of blood, and a most malignant phlebitis may suddenly arise notwithstanding the trifling character of the symptoms at the outset of the inflammation. It is in this manner that lying-in women and persons that had been operated upon; often perish quite suddenly although not a single symptom existed at first that could have given rise to the least apprehensions of danger. The prognosis is uncertain. If the chills recur but seldom and with increasing weakness, the danger is less; whereas frequent chills, prostration and sopor, the supervention of icterus and petechiae, are decidly ominous signs. Treatment. Phlebitis is one of those diseases that can scarcely ever be treated in accordance with the rules of a rigorous symptomatic similarity, and where, if we do not mean to commit grave mistakes, we have to keep constantly and clearly in view the whole internal process not manifested to the senses by a single symptom. Thus a purely symptomatic similarity can only have a secondary value, and the drugs whose special action upon the veins we have become acquainted with from cases of poisoning, necessarily occupy the first rank in the treatment -of this disease. Their number is not great, and a portion of those we shall name, is still very little 438 Diseases of the Arteries, Veins, Lymphatics, etc. correctly known, and, what is worse, the clinical applications of these drugs are still exceedingly unsatisfactory and insufficient. Among these remedies we distinguish: the serpent-poisons, the poison of the honey-bee, Curare, Secale cornutum, Phosphorus, Mercurius and Arsenicum. Of all these, Phosphorus is undoubtedly the most important remedy, corresponding with the most diversified forms of phlebitis, from the most trifling form to that accompanied by icterus and petechiae. Apis is particularly indicated, if the veins of the cavity of the skull are inflamed; it is less homceopathic to phlebitis of the lower extremities. Lachesis and Secale, as well as Arsenicuu, are particularly indicated by the heart-symptoms, the anxiety, dyspncea, etc. Mercurius is especially appropriate if the phlebitis remains more localized and is attended with external inflammation and suppuration. We do not dwell upon these remedies more in detail, because they will have to be referred to again under pyaemia. In lighter cases the following remedies have been found practically useful: Bryonia, Staphysagria, BRhus toxicodendron; Bryonia if the inflammation was not very painful, but attended with marked constitutional disturbances; Rhus tox., for local symptoms radiating from the inflammatory centre like erysipelas; Staphysagria, for phlebitis of the lower extremities. [Belladonna and Hamamelis virg. are eminently useful in phlebitis; we have cured a very severe and threatening case of inflammation of the femoral vein, where the inflammation spread rapidly as far as the hip, by means of tolerably large and frequently repeated doses of Belladonna, without the aid of any other remedy. I-.] The subsequently remaining and very prominent cedema of the parts which lose their normal circulation in consequence of the obstruction of the vein, cannot be removed by treatment. It does not disappear until the collateral circulation is restored, which it sometimes takes years to accomplish; the uniform pressure of a bandage, if it can be applied, may, if it does not effect a cure, afford at least a good deal of relief. b. Phlebectasia. Varices; Dilatation of Veins. In most cases the causes of these very frequent dilatations can be determined with perfect certainty; in other cases, however, they are involved in obscurity. These are the cases where the disease cannot well be traced to some mechanical obstruction in the circulation of the blood. At all events, these cases are the least frequent. But even in cases where mechanical causes undoubtedly Veins. 439 co-operate, they cannot be regarded as the sole cause of the disease, since individuals who are exposed to the same deleterious influences remain free from any such trouble. Hence, the existence of a peculiar predisposition in the walls of the veins, or else the subsequent supervention of a morbid change in those walls, will have to be taken for granted. The most frequent causes are: Obliteration of the vein owing to which the portion beyond the obliterated vein dilates in its whole extent; dilatation or contraction of the venous trunk, which has the same effect as obliterations, only in a less degree; every pathological change that interferes with the flow of blood to the heart, such as dilatation of the right ventricle, affections of the liver, emphysema, tumors compressing the vein, tight clothing. In all such cases, phlebectasia is of a secondary character; it may likewise occur as a primary disease in a manner that we have not yet been able to account for, in the case of men who have to be continually in a position that interferes with the reflux of the blood, persons for instance who have to be continually in a sitting or standing posture. In a sitting posture, the dilatation of the vessels can often be accounted for by the pressure exerted upon the abdominal viscera in the stooping posture; in the standing posture, on the contrary, the dilatation is entirely owing to the circumstance that the vertical position of the body embarrasses the course of the blood onwards through the veins. In very many cases another influence exists of whose mode of action we have no definite idea, namely bad nutrition and living in damp, unwholesome dwellings. That these circumstances are of importance is shown by the frequent occurrence of varices on the lower extremities among the lower strata of the population, more particularly among weavers and washerwomen. Every vein in the body may become dilated; dilatitions occur most frequently in the veins of the rectum, lower extremities and spermatic cord. We will briefly dwell here -upon varices of the lower extremities. They occur more frequently among women in whom the cause of the dilatation is traceable to the impregnated uterus, whereas primary dilatations are decidedly of more frequent occurrence among men. What we have said just now concerning the originating causes of dilatation is particularly applicable to this form. At first one of the larger cutaneous veins of the leg is most commonly affected, whence it does not usually extend to the thigh, but involves very regularly the larger as well as the more minute veins of the foot, especially the veins situated around the ankles 440 Diseases of the Arteries, Veins, Lymphatics, etc. where they give rise to a considerable swelling covered with a bluish net of both delicate and coarser vessels. In most cases these varicose veins are painless. In other cases the leg pains for a short, time, after which the pain again disappears. Very often the pain is felt while a portion of the skin assumes a bluish redness, swells and becomes quite hard; the pain increases continually, finally the skin suddenly breaks at the place of infiltration, without this lesion being caused by mechanical injury as most of these patients fancy, and an ulcer of the size of a pea forms, which is at first round and provided with thin, somewhat undermined edges. Without proper management and hygienic precautions the pains increase all the time; the ulcer spreads, its edges gradually swell, the surrounding skin becomes hypertrophied, the ulcer secretes a watery and sometimes exceedingly fetid fluid, and its base has a sickly color. If the same mode of living is continued, during which walking hurts only a little, but standing hurts a great deal, the ulcer may spread over the whole surface of the leg from the ankle to the calf, and may even penetrate to the periosteum. Ulcers below the ankle and on the anterior portion of the foot are of rare occurrence. The fetor of the ulcer increases in proportion as the ulcer spreads over a larger surface. In one of our cases, during the summer-season, a crowd of worms of half to three quarters of an inch in length, were seen in the ulcer whenever the dressing was removed. Persons go about with such ulcers for years, and it is inconceivable that the constant drain of their vital fluids does not result in speedy emaciation. If a fever or some other constitutional disease breaks out during the existence of the ulcer, it seems to heal spontaneously, in which case the disease is very commonly, but improperly, regarded as the consequence of the healing. If the paients are so situated as to be able to remain at once in a recumbent posture, the little sores heal very speedily, but break open again very easily if the person has to stand a great deal, so that' the existence of such ulcers at any previous period leaves a constant liability to their returning again at a subsequent time. In the higher walks of life, where every measure is taken from the start to prevent the formation of ulcers, a peculiar cutaneous affection is witnessed in their stead. The skin assumes a very dark and bluish color, and scattered and violently itching pustules form very frequently, or else the skin peels off in scales, leaving the surface moist. This form of the varicose affection is by far the most malignant and distressing. Veins. 441 With an entire change in the mode of living the varicose ulcers may heal of themselves, but this is undoubtedly a very rare Occurrence. Treatment. Painless varices, without ulceration, cannot be regarded as an object of treatment, nor do we believe that anybody can imagine the feasibility of removing them by means of medicines. If pains are felt, and the subcutaneous cellular tissue becomes infiltrated, it would seem as though medicines might be useful; at any rate we have seen a rapid improvement take place after the use of Sfaphysagria, Lycopodium and Graphites. These are the only remedies which we can recommend as long as the ulcers are painful. Of other remedies, of which we have had abundant opportunities of trying a large number, such as Sulphur, Sepia, Silicea, Mercurius, Aurum, Rhus tox., etc., we have never perceived the least effect. [Hamamelis virg. is frequently used by American physicians. H.] If the ulcer has become atonic, even the three first-named remedies are no longer of any use, and a mechanical treatment is the only treatment that can prove of any use. These three remedies are likewise the only ones that we can recommend for the peculiar cutaneous affection, but we must confess that they too will often leave us in the lurch. Our main resource in treating these varicose disorders are external or mechanical means. The dilatation of the veins being chiefly a passively mechanical change, it is evident that moderate compression by means of a good bandage will moderate and finally remove the varicose dilatation altogether. If individuals with marked varicose dilatations constantly wear a bandage, they will never be troubled with ulcers nor with any other cutaneous affection. Existing ulcers heal very rapidly under a carefully-applied bandage, so much more rapidly if we first cover them with strips of adhesive plaster and a layer of cotton wadding over these, so as to protect them from all contact with atmospheric air. By pursuing this course we have never known ulcers of any size or of upwards of twenty years' standing to remain uncured; but we have never shunned the trouble of applying the bandage ourselves. The longest time it has taken us to heal these ulcers, is six months. In this case the ulcer was about a quarter of a square foot in size, the subjacent periosteum was considerably infiltrated, the skin was hypertrophied from the toes to the knee as in a case of exquisite elephantiasis, and had the appearance of an enormous wart. All these deep-seated alterations vielded to the exclusive use of the bandage. If the excessive 442 Diseases of the Arteries, Veins, Lymphatics, etc. sensitiveness does not admit of the immediate application of a bandage, the patient must be kept for a short time in a recumbent position with his leg raised; in such a case warm cataplasms afford a good deal of relief. 3. Diseases of the Lymphatic Vessels and Glands. a. Lymphangioitis and Lyrnphadenitis Acuta. Acute inflammations of lymphatic vessels occur so seldom alone; lyinphangioitis especially occurs so seldom without inflammation of the lymphatic glands, that we will treat of both these conditions together. These inflammations exist very seldom as primary diseases; even if they seem to be of this character, yet a careful examination shows even in such cases that the inflammation is a secondary occurrence. Secondarily the affection most commonly supervenes during the course of pathological processes that depend upon some special infection, such as syphilis and variola, or during the course of diseases depending upon or occasioning septic processes, such as puerperal fever and typhus. Any, even ever so trifling suppuration on the skin may inflame the adjoined lymphatic vessel and its glands; sometimes this may not take place until the primary suppuration has healed, so that the inflammation in such cases may seem to have originated as a primary disease. We may finally observe that some constitutions show a striking predispositon to inflammations of lymphatic vessels, whereas others are scarcely ever attacked by them. Lymphangioitis, so far as it is an object of observation, if the inflamed vessel is situated near the periphery, sets in suddenly, sometimes after an injury of the primarily inflamed parts, and appears like a fine, sharply circumscribed, rose-colored cord which is very sensitive to contact, and interferes with the free motion of the limb. This lasts very seldom longer than two days. Sometimes even a few hours after the appearance of the red cord, at times not till hours have elapsed after its disappearance, one or more of the lymphatic glands in relation with the inflamed vessel begins to swell, becomes painful, and very speedily shows an inflammatory redness. It is more particularly the inguinal, axillary and posterior cervical glands that are liable to becoming thus inflamed. Sometimes no kind of pain is felt at the commencement, which may not set in until the swelling of the gland has reached a very high degree and Lymphatic Vessels and Glands. 443 suppuration has begun to make its appearance, owing to which circumstance we feel very much disposed to regard such inflammations as primary. After the gland has reached the size of a hazelnut to that of a hen's egg, the pain may disappear again without the gland having softened, and the swelling may very gradually go down again and the gland return to its former size, or else one portion of the gland may resume its normal condition, and the balance remain indurated. Most commonly, however, the inflammation terminates in suppuration, the pus escaping outwardly and leaving the skin round the opening undermined, a closure of which generally takes place very slowly. We have occasionally noticed a very peculiar form of lymphangioitis, more particularly in the case of women, and about the head. With this inflammation a violent fever breaks out very suddenly, accompanied by tearing pains in the scalp and nape of the neck. The abatement of these pains is attended with the simultaneous appearance of several nodes and hard cords about the head, which, however remain seldom longer' than forty-eight hours. After a short interval of ease another attack takes place, and this may be going on in this manner for several weeks. We have never been able to trace such an occurrence to any definite cause. The treatment has to be in conformity with the exciting cause. Of syphilitic inflammations of the lymphatic glands we shall speak in the further course of this work. If the inflammation is caused by the introduction of poisonous substances into a wound, the best remedies are Ammonium carbonicum, Acidum nitricurn and muriaticum, and likewise Apis; the last-mentioned agent more particularly in cases running a rapid course. If an important constitutional derangement supervenes during the local affection, Arsenicum and Rhus tox. are likewise indicated. In such cases remnants of inflammation usually remain, that have to be treated precisely like any other case of chronic lymphangioitis, of which we shall treat hereafter. If the inflammation of the lymphatic vessel is not caused by a specific virus, the first requisite of the treatment, if suppuration or inflammation is still present, is to direct our chief attention to this condition of the gland as the starting point of the whole disease, in order, by this means, to deprive the pathological process in the lymphatic system of its nutriment. If the inflamed vessel and its gland are very painful, and no suppuration has yet taken place, a few doses of Belladonna are frequently of much use; this treat 444 Diseases of the Arteries, Veins, Lymphatics, etc. ment, especially in the case of children, will sometimes secure the retrogression of the inflammatory process. If the gland is very much swollen, Mercurius is the only remedy capable of still preventing suppuration. In many cases, where fluctuation is already distinctly perceptible, and a raisedoand very red spot shows the point where the pus will escape, Mercurius still effects a cure. As a rule we hold that it is best to give Mercurius at the onset, more particularly in the case of individuals in whom every little wound is disposed to suppurate. If the suppuration progresses unceasingly in spite of all treatment, Hepar sulphuris undoubtedly hastens the suppurative process, but is only suitable until the abscess begins to, discharge. Considering the circumstance that Mercurius so very often acts favorably even in cases where pus has already begun to form, we may sometimes be disposed to doubt the propriety of giving Iepar. We may be guided by the rule that, if the cellular tissue round the gland is very much inflamed, and suppuration cannot be prevented, Hepar should be given at as early a period as possible; if the gland alone is inflamned, the use of IHepar should be postponed as late as possible. The subsequent suppuration need not be assisted by treatment as long as the pus has a healthy ap-. pearance and shows a normal consistence. If the pus becomes thin, assuming the consistence of serum, Sulphur at protracted intervals is appropriate to this condition. On the other hand, if the suppura.tion proceeds sparingly, and the bottom of the ulcer is filled in with whitish flocks of cellular, tissue, which, when touched with the sound, show the consistence of lard, we advise decidedly the employment of Iodine. As regards the other consequences of such. an inflammation, they coincide entirely with chronic lymphangioitis. In the above-mentioned form of lymphangloitis of the head neither Bryonia, nor Belladovna, Rhhus tox. or Mercurius has been of the least use to us; Apis showed a marked eflect, so that no more paroxysms took place. As regards external applications, we do not deem them. necessary, although they need not be rejected, for they very often alleviate the pain and enable the patient to enjoy longer intervals of rest. But we only recommend warm poultices which not only favor absorption on the one hand, but promote suppuration on the other. We are not in favor of any premature lancing of the abscess; the abscess should only be lanced, if, owing to the depth at which the gland is situated, the spontaneous escape of the pus meets with Lymphatic Vessels and Glands. 445 diffibulties, or if the pus can be distinctly seen shining through the integuments. b. Lymphadenitis Chronica, Chronic Inflammation of Lymphatic Glands, This affection either develops itself out of the acute form, or else it is a primary disease depending upon constitutional peculiarities, such as characterize scrofulosis; or else, in infectious diseases, it takes the place of an acute inflammation. Chronic lymphadenitis sometimes occurs as a phenomenon of marasmus with typhoid characteristics. Childhood and the period immediately after pubescence furnish most cases of this disease. If chronic lymphadenitis develops itself out of the acute form, the swollen gland either remains unopened, or else, if the pus had found an outlet on the surface, the opening closes again at. an early period, and the gland which had been reduced in size by an incomplete' suppuration, remains as a firm and hard swelling that gradually becomes quite painless but may continue to grow by subsequent turns of inflammation and finally suppurate. In cases where chronic lymphadenitis sets in as a primary disease, it first attacks only one gland, but soon invades a number. The swelling is generally without pain and takes place very gradually; most commonly such swellings reach a much larger size than in acute lymphadenitis. The swollen gland may remain unchanged for years, after which it may gradually disappear spontaneously, the:swellings that had originated in childhood, commonly disappearing immediately after pubescence; or else further degenerations of the gland may take place. It is a common occurrence for a torpid glandular swelling that had remained painless for a long time, to suddenly become painful, and to inflame and break. Such a swelling always discharges a thin, badly-looking pus, the swelling decreases very slowly in size, the bottom of the abscess is filled with a whitish, elastic, lardaceous substance. Very commonly several openings exist at the same time. The suppurative process is always very slow, and, if the patient is unfavorably situated in life, may develop an hectic state of the system; or else the sore may heal with a badly-colored, radiating, retracted cicatrix, under which remnants of the indurated gland are very commonly still felt. It often happens that after one gland is healed, another adjoining gland swells and passes through the same process; this may be the course 446 Diseases of the Arteries, Veins, Lymphatics, etc. of the glands for years. An affection of this kind is at a later period very generally followed by tuberculosis. There is another form of lymphadenitis where the glands are likewise swollen and where a row of such swellings extends along the tract of a lymphatic vessel, but the glands are soft and fluctuating, generally painful even if not red. There is not always an escape of pus, in consequence of which the swelling rapidly discharges and heals to return again in some other locality; absorption sometimes takes place in spite of the evidently considerable'accumulation of fluid. We have noticed a phenomenon of this kind in the case of a child one year old which was affected with an intense anemia and-we state this incidentally-exhibited the peculiarity that blowing murmurs were heard over the whole extent of the skull-cap; in this case the whole body was covered with thesewellings; they fluctuated, became inflamed, disappeared and then showed themselves again in other places. The child died of hydrocephalus at an age of eighteen months. Another chronic form was observed in the case of a man fifty years old. In this case the swellings appeared in company with the symptoms of a general marasmus, every swelling broke, but was perfectly painless, and the patient's strength was rapidly consumed by the suppurating process. The most ordinary localities for chronic lymphadenitis are the neck and the upper extremities including the axilla, much less frequently the lower extremities, without mentioning the nonsuppurating glandular swellings in the abdominal cavity. The manner in which the swelling originates, is of considerable importance in a therapeutic point of view, exclusive even of specific glandular swellings to which no reference is made here. If the swelling remains as a rest of acute lymphadenitis, Sulphur is a sovereign remedy to disperse the swelling. This agent will seldom leave us in the lurch, and compel us to look for other remedies, such as Aurum, Iodine, Silicea, Calcarea earbonica. For a primary glandular swelling Baryta is one of the most efficient remedies; in many cases this agent alone has enabled us to avoid the suppurative process and to effect a complete absorption, especially of glandular swellings on the neck. Conium has never shown any marked effect. If suppuration has set in, lodium and Calcarea carbonica render the most reliable aid. Beside these two remedies we mention Graphites, Sulphur, Phosphorus, Silicea, Kali bichromicum and likewise Aurum, not the metallic Gold but the Ischias. 447 Muriate. We should never lose sight of the fact that a rapid disappearance of the swelling is among the impossibilities. If the swellings constitute the expression of an intense hectic constitutional affection, Calcarea deserves a preference among children and Arsenicum among adults. In such cases a cure is a thing of very doubtful possibility. In other respects the treatment is very plain. If the patient's mode of living is improper and the constitution is likewise tainted, the first thing to be done towards a cure is to regulate the diet and to prescribe an abundance of out-door exercise. This is more effectual than medicine. We are acquainted with a family where the children, three in number, were all of them suffering with extensive lymphadenitis in consequence of occupying an unhealthy dwelling in town and being restricted to an improper diet. The youngest child succumbed to hectic fever and marasmus, the other two children who were sent into the country, have regained their health and have grown stout and fresh, although both, at the time when they moved out of town, were afflicted with at least a dozen glandular abscesses. We ought not to omit mention of the Iodine springs of Hall which are an admirable remedy for these glandular abscesses. Unfortunately most of our patients are too poor to visit these springs, and the bottled water is not by any means what it should be and leaves a good deal to be desired. C. DISEASES OF THE NERVES. The nervous system as immediately connected with the brain and spinal cord, having been considered in a previous chapter where all its general morbid alterations were treated of, it remains for us here to devote a few paragraphs to two other abnormal conditions of the nervous system. We did not deem it expedient, from many reasons, to treat of all the different neuralgias generally in one chapter. 1. Isehias. Neuralgia of the ischiadic nerve constitutes one of the most frequent, and at the same time one of the most distressing forms of 448 Diseases of the Nerves. neuralgia. Its causes are generally involved in uncertainty; a cold, excessive exertions, abdominal affections, stagnation of habitual -hemorrh~ages, etc., are mentioned as such causes, but it is difficult -to trace a distinct connection between these two orders of phenomena as cause and affect. It is of course true that ischias attacks healthy and robust individuals much less frequently than persons of a sickly'frame. At times the affection commences very suddenly, at other times the pain arises gradually from sensations that resemble a slight attack of rheumatism. The pain is generally located between the isehium and knee, so that the course of the nerve can be determined very exactly by the pain. It is very seldom that the pain radiates upwards, more generally downwards below the knee as far as the foot, on the internal or external surface of the leg. We distinguish two kinds of pain; either the pain is constant, somewhat remittent, but never entirely intermittent, and usually following very exactly the tract of the nerve without the patient being able to define the quality of the pain; or else peculiar tearing-darting pains may supervene, resembling electric shocks, setting.in paroxysmally and being excited by motion or by making a wrong step, sneezing or coughing. At the same time one or more places in the course of the nerve are generally sensitive to pressure. Although the pain does not seem to exacerbate at definite periods, yet all patients complain that it is worse in bed, and that this exacerbation is sometimes so great that they dare not go to bed. Inasmuch as the pains are very much increased by an extension of the leg, by pressure or by the nerve being put on the stretch, the patients generally keep the limb slightly flexed, using it as little as possible during a walk or for the performance of any other motion. This is generally the cause why the diseased limb, after the ischias has lasted for some time, grows thin, although the emaciation may likewise be caused by a gradually-developing paralysis. The diagnosis being sometimes extremely difficult, it is important to know that ischias always attacks only one limb. In ischias antica the pain follows the tract of the crural nerve; this form of ischiadic neuralgia is very scarce, nor is the pain near as acute as in ischias postica. This disorder runs a chronic course. The attack is supposed to at first set in with a fever, but these are exceptional cases. A spontaneous cure only takes place with a gradual'abatement of the pains, but not till months have elapsed. The general health is very Ischias. 449 much disturbed by the constancy of the severe pains and by the sleeplessness; the appetite becomes impaired and the bowels are torpid. The treatment of this affection constitutes one of the shining features of Homeopathy, not so much because we cure every case of this kind as because our opponents admit that they have no means of doing anything for this disease and have to let the patient suffer for months; whereas we homceopaths never fail of a cure in the course of a week or two at latest. Yet even we ought not to boast of being absolutely certain of success, for the reason that this affection has but few symptoms, and only a few of them are entirely local; hence the selection of a remedy is always invested with difficulties, and a successful result is often defeated on this account. However, in order not to wrong Homceopathy, if no cure is effected, or is effected very slowly, we call attention to the fact that ischias sometimes depends upon causes that cannot be removed, such as exostoses in the pelvic cavity. The four leading remedies for ischias, the effect of which has been verified in many instances, are: Colocynthis, Rhus tox., Arsenicum and Lycopoditon. Colocynthis is more particularly adapted to recent cases, the pain sets in suddenly in all its fierceness, it is a constant pain, becoming intolerable only in paroxysms excited at once by cold and motion; at the same time a feeling of numbness is experienced in the whole extremity. - Rus tox. is very seldom adapted to quite recent cases, but comes into play in the further course of the disease, if the following symptoms are present: Stinging or burning-tearing pain, increasing during rest, and alleviated only for a short time by motion; heaviness, lameness and even actual paralysis of the affected limb; frequent paroxysms of cramps in the calves.- Lycopodilum in more chronic cases, the pain is chiefly a burning or fine stinging pain, with complete intermissions, aggravated by rest and somewhat alleviated by motion, with lameness of the extremity, disposition to painful muscular twitchings; especially if the bowels have become very much constipated in' consequence of the distressing affection. -Arsenicum, if the pains are marked by complete intermissions, break out with typical regularity, exacerbate every night even to an unbea.rable degree of intensity; they are a burning-tearing distress, seem to be seated "close to the bone, are increased by vigorous, and alleviated by gentle movements, excited at once by cold, and momentarily moderated by warmth. At the same time the patient feels: sick, the paroxysms 29 450 Diseases of the Nerves. are characterized by an extreme restlessness and an inability to remain long in the same position. These four remedies do not, however, constitute the whole of our curative means for ischias; they only correspond with the most frequently-occurring forms. Other important remedies are: Chamomilla in recent cases, for a drawing-tearing pain which becomes intolerable at night and is especially aggravated by the warmth of the bed. Arnica for a burning-tearing, or stinging-tearing pain, with a numb and bruised feeling in the affected limb, with great sensitiveness to any kind of touch; for the ischias of lying-in females. Pulsatilla for a drawing pain which is worse at night, compels the patient to move the diseased limb continually; the pain is much improved by movement, and is sometimes increased by warmth, not by cold; the cause of the attack is menstrual suppression.- Carbo vegetabilis in protracted cases; the symptoms are like those indicated for Arsenic. Causticumn for ischias antica and for the paralysis caused by ischias. - Ferrum; the pain is at first increased by motion, but improved by the continuance of motion, more particularly suitable for worn-out individuals with extremely irritable nervous systems. We might mention a number of other remedies, but those we have named will suffice. In special cases a suitable repertory may be consulted. We do not advise the employment of external applications; they generally weaken the patient still more. The vaunted application of strips of fly-blister is very seldom of any use; if it is, it is most probably because its action is in homceopathic rapport with the symptoms. We may not often be obliged to send a patient afflicted with this neuralgia to the springs; if this should be necessary, we would recommend Teplitz and Sulphur springs. 2. Neuralgia IntercostIlis. Intercostal Neuralgia. This species of neuralgia is still more frequent than ischias; it attacks principally females, and occurs very seldom before the age of pubescence, and subsequently to the critical age. The physical constitution does not seem to influence this-affection; nor can it be traced to definite causes. This affection succeeds very frequently. an attack of herpes zoster; it much less frequently precedes this exanthem. The intercostal nerves of the left side, and more par Neuralgia Intercostalis. 451 ticularly the nerves between the sixth and eighth intercostal spaces are most frequently attacked. As in ischias, so in intercostal neuralgia, the pain is very seldom felt all at once in all its intensity, but most commonly develops itself progressively; it is generally located in one intercostal space, is at times tearing, at other times lancing or jerking, and always mingled with a burning sensation; every more violent movement of the thorax excites or aggravates the pain. A characteristic peculiarity in this affection is that three spots are uncommonly sensitive to contact; namely one spot close to the vertebral column, in the middle of the intercostal space, one half way between the sternum and vertebral column, and a third spot towards the front, close to the sternum or mesian line of the abdomen. These points are very seldom missing; they are well known to the patients, and the extreme sensitiveness of these points, which is very much increased by the least attempt at percussion, easily suggests the presence of inflammation. This suspicion is set at rest by the circumstance that hard pressure is generally borne without trouble. The affection is unaccompanied by fever, its course is mostly chronic and may last for years. The more gradually the pain arises, the more obstinate it is as a rule. The paroxysms of syncope, palpitation of the heart, dyspncea and the like, which are often caused by the intensity of the pain, are very apt to mislead one in the diagnosis. In treating this affection we shall find it difficult to hit upon a remedy, if we depend upon the symptoms in the Materia Medica. In selecting a remedy, we may lay great stress upon the circumstance that the pain is semi-lateral and likewise that the kind of pain, the time of its appearance and other features, are characteristic indications. The favorable results which have so far been obtained by the use of Palsatilla, Rhus toxicodendron, Arsenicum and lezereum, speak very much in favor of these drugs. [Cimicifuga racemosa is likewise excellent. H.] Mezereum is undoubtedly the chief remedy, and is especially indicated if the neuralgia sets in after zoster. The general indications, as stated above, are easily verified by corresponding symptoms in the Materia Medica. The following remedies are indicated a priori, although they have been very little used in practice: Rcanunculus sceleratus, Rhododendron, Ledum and Spigelia. Many circumstances speak in favor of the latter, more especially the efficacy of Spigelia in neuralgia of the trigeminus. We will here repeat the advice which we have repeat 452 Diseases of the Skin. edly given on former occasions, namely not to give too large closes which are apt to superinduce homceopathic aggravations; nor to repeat the dose too frequently, for the reason that a favorable effect is never obtained very suddenly. D. DISEASES OF THE SKIN. IN treating of diseases of the eyes, we have pointed out several inconveniences which render even an approximatively satisfactory arrangement of the therapeutics of ophthalmic diseases a very difficult task. In regard to cutaneous affections, it is likewise all but impossible to present them from the stand-point of homceopathic Therapeutics. In order to render such a presentation profitable, it would have to be very extensive and take in a good deal that is purely hypothetical. The space that is allotted to us, is too limited for such a purpose. For this reason we have confined ourselves to the most essential points, and have only stated practically verified facts. Before; however, passing to the consideration of the special cutaneous affections, we deem it proper to briefly expound the reasons why cutaneous diseases are a sore point in the homceopathic Materia Medica. Cutaneous diseases are not, like the affections of other organs, spread over several parts of the body; they only offer us a single symptom, namely the cutaneous efflorescence, as'a means of diagnosing the cutaneous disease and selecting the appropriate remedy. This symptom is of course accompanied by a variety of general symptoms, but we would go too far if we were to allow these variable companions of the cutaneous affection to decide the selection of the remedial agent; at all events these accessory symptoms are only of secondary importance. Hence we only have ONE objective symptom of disease, but where do we find a corresponding symptom in the Materia Medica? The leading symptoms of our drugs are, moreover, indicated in such a superficial and vague manner that their true meaning can hardly be deciphered from such a text. In making this assertion, we expect to incur the censure of those who deem it a crime even to think of the possibility of amending the Materia Medica. Well, we will endeavor to pocket the censure, but we desire to be convicted by logical evidence. Until then we Erythema. 453 shall stick to our text that it is impossible to treat cutaneous diseases with certainty if we take the Materia Medica for our guide. We will now consider another expedient which might be resorted to in this case, as it is in other cases, for the purpose of supplying or covering up the defects of our Materia Medica, we mean the practical result, the experience gathered ex usu in morbis. But what else do we meet with in this direction but endless confusion? If our literature exhibited the richest treasure of really useful practical observations, it would either have to be left untouched, or else the use of it would involve a great deal of trouble or expose us to numerous mistakes. For the last fifty years, cutaneous diseases have constituted an arena for those who were anxious to subserve the purposes of Science by manufacturing names or making an ostentatious display of their erudition. In this manner we have obtained a brilliant nomenclature which, however, is unintelligible to those who have not devoted years to its study. This circumstance has reduced the value of clinical cases almost to zero. In the presence of so much uncertainty and want of clearness in our Materia Medica and of confusion in the department of cutaneous diseases in the literature of our School, a therapeutical arrangement of cutaneous diseases is certainly a hazardous task. Many preliminary labors are required before we can think of perfecting a tolerable system of therapeutics of the cutaneous diseases; above all, we recommend uniformity in our nomenclature, coupled with a rigid precision in diagnosis. The febrile exanthemata which have been excluded from the following list, have been transferred among the constitutional diseases, for the reason that their importance is determined by the accompanying derangements of functions rather than by the form of the exanthem. The series in which the special forms are successively presented, has been arranged in accordance with the pathologicoanatomical changes; we have simply avoided the custom of distinguishing special sub-divisions in each form. 1. Etrythema. Erythema occupies a middle rank between hypermmia and inflammation of the skin; it is easily confounded with a benign *form of erysipelas. Its causes are: Mechanical injuries of the skin; the influence of a high temperature, of various medicinal agents; continual moist 454 Diseases of the Skin. ening of one part of the skin by urine, liquid stool, perspiration, tears and even the constant use of moist compresses; constant irritation of the skill by rough clothes. In the case of children, erythema seems to be likewise caused by hearty and fat food. Erythema seldom occurs as a wide-spread affection, to which the designation of "epidemic" might be applied. Chronic erythema breaks out chiefly in the face, and more especially on the nose; its causes sometimes seem to be purely local, and at other times constitutional. Erythema is characterized by a more or less diffuse redness of the skin, not separated from the normal redness by sharply-drawn outlines, assuming a yellowish, not a white tint under the pressure of the finger, and continuing for some time and, finally, terminating in desquamation. These characteristics belong to all forms of erythema. Erythema caused by external irritants, most generally breaks out on the scrotum, at the anus, between the thighs, in the axillse, face, and in the deep integumentous folds of fleshy persons, or at the place where the irritating cause exerts its influence. After the cause ceases to act, the erythema generally disappears of itself in a few days. If the irritation continues, the epidermis may become detached (intertrigo), and ulcers may form, or the skin may even become gangrenous, as in decubitus. Erythema arising from internal causes, is almost exclusively located on the dorsal surface of the hands and feet, where it is never absent, even if other parts are likewise affected. At first the place exhibits a redness, and in a feiw days darker-colored papules of various sizes spring up, which remain even for some time after the diffuse redness has disappeared; the affected spot likewise retains a yellowish tint for some time after. In particular circumstances subsequent crops of this eruption break out on its borders, by which means the affection runs a very protracted course. This form of erythenla is gelerally attended with a little fever, and at the diseased spot a darting-burning pain is generally experienced. The former variety, on the contrary, has no fever as long as the erythema is of the simple kind, whereas the intertrigo of sensitive children may be attended with fever. The second variety, without any subsequent crops, lasts from one to two weeks. In treating the first variety, all that it may be necessary for us to do, is to remove the exciting cause. In some individuals the disposition to erythema is so great, and it leads so easily to more serious consequences that we are led to suspect behind the local Erysipelas. 455 irritation the existence of some constitutional disposition. This is particularly the case with the intertrigo or soreness of children. Since this soreness is often caused by improper diet, the first thing to be done is to regulate it with care; if the soreness continues in spite of this change, a few doses of Mercurius vivus or solubilis will cure the trouble very speedily. If this remedy should fail us, Lycopodium will effect a cure. Among local applications, finely pulverized starch is the best and most harmless; frictions with grease must be avoided, they are very apt to give rise to the formation of pustules. For erythema from internal causes, Mercurius is likewise a specific remedy, if the redness is intense, the red spot raised and sensitive, and the erythema is accompanied by fever. Rhus tox. has always proved ineffectual in such cases. If the erythema is confined to the leg, Mezereum is the more appropriate, the more the affected spot itches and burns. Ledum likewise deserves our attention; so does Staphysagria; this remedy is especially indicated if the erythema is seated on the upper extremities. We advise Lycopodium, if the eruption runs a protracted course in consequence of successive crops breaking out for a time, 2. Erysipelas. Erysipelas proper is altogether a primary affection the cause of which it is difficult to trace in every case. The disease occurs almost exclusively between the age of pubescence and that of sixty, and is of less frequent occurrence among old people than among children. Atmospheric influences are generally regarded as the cause of erysipelas, but this theory is not justified by the evidence of fact. All we know positively is that erysipelas often sets in as a sporadic disease, and that sometimes it breaks out in the form of a limited epidemic which never assumes a very extensive range and has given rise to the erroneous view'that erysipelas is a contagious disease. It is a characteristic feature of this disease that every new attack of erysipelas increases the patient's liability to other attacks, which only becomes extinct at an advanced age. The cause of successive attacks of erysipelas is very often to be found in violent emotions, gross errors in diet, and in colds, more especially in the action of severe cold upon a heated skin. We have known a lady who was several times attacked with erysipelas simply, because she suddenly went from the kitchen-stove into the cellar. The origin of wandering erysipelas is involved in complete 456 Diseases of the Skin. mystery; it is to be observed that it inclines to set in previous to the age of pubescence. Traumatic erysipelas is regarded by many persons as a simple form of dermatitis. It arises in consequence of injuries if suppuration ensues, or even at the start, soon after the infliction of the injury; or it accompanies suppurating inflammatory processes, such as gum-boils. It may be looked upon as an excess of reaction against the inflammation from which it proceeds. Erysipelas neonatorum is altogether a form of traumatic erysipelas. The intro-: duction of septic substances undoubtedly exerts a prominent influence over the origin of this disease. This circumstance likewise accounts for those cases of erysipelas that supervenes during typhus and other constitutional diseases as a malignant complication or as a terminal disease. Symnptoms and Course. True, or the so-called exanthematic erysipelas really only breaks out in the face, whereas erysipelas on other parts of the body is, properly speaking, erythema. The appearance of the exanthem upon the skin is generally preceded for a few hours or even days by a preliminary stage consisting of' a severe fever with marked gastric symptoms, with which symptoms of cerebral hyperemia, and more especially a violent headache, sometimes become associated at an early period. During a first attack these precursory symptoms are scarcely ever absent; but they do not usually occur with a return of the disease. While the fever is on the increase, the face feels hot and tense, and sometimes rheumatic pains in the nape of the neck are complained of, a vivid redness breaks out at a certain circumscribed spot in the face, which spreads rapidly and causes a burning pain. In proportion as the redness becomes more intense, the swelling likewise increases and the skin assumes a glistening appearance. Erysipelas generally breaks out on one cheek, whence it spreads to the nose, the eyelids, forehead, ears, less frequently to the lips, and scarcely ever to the chin. Within two or three days, and sometimes in thirty-six hours the erysipelas reaches its acme at the spot where it first appeared, amid febrile symptoms which are sometimes exceedingly severe, attended with a foul-smelling catarrh of the mouth, vomiting, and most generally delirium; these symptoms, however, are not constant, whereas the headache and soporous stupefaction are exceedingly annoying. The face is now very much swollen, the features are disfigured to such an extent that they are no longer recognizable, the redness has a bluish and even brown-red tint, and vesicles Erysipelas. 457 of various sizes sometimes spring up upon the inflamed surface, which always indicate an intense degree of illness. The inflammation decreases very rapidly; the redness disappears after the existing vesicles had dried up previously and had become transformed into thin and fiat crusts, and very soon desquamation commences first in large patches and afterwards in very small scales. But inasmuch as the disease never terminates with its first appearance, and usually spreads over the whole head, we find erysipelas in full bloom close to the original spot in process of healing, and find the redness gradually diffusing itself into this spot, whereas it forms a sharp contrast with the surrounding normal parts of the face. In this manner erysipelas gradually wanders over the whole face, even beyond the ears, invading a portion of the nape of the neck, and spreading over the forehead and the hairy scalp. In this latter case the patients suffer severe local pains, even after the fever abates. The intensity of the fever, as it first breaks out at the commencement of the disease, does not keep pace with its gradual progression. Whereas at one spot the inflammation runs its full course in five to six days, yet, on account of its progressive appearance in different localities, the whole course of the disease lasts from ten days to a fortnight. The process of desquamation may last much longer, and the most severely affected parts often exhibit for a long time a yellowish tint with signs of serous infiltration. Deviations from this course are not unfrequent. The whole face may be covered so rapidly that it would seem as though the exanthem had broke out all over at once. These are cases of intense virulence, where one ear, however, commonly remains uninvaded. Moreover, the inflammation may communicate itself to the cerebral meninge; generally, however, this does not take place until the local process has reached its height. In such a case the redness very soon assumes a dingy and livid look; the skin becomes lax and wrinkled, a most violent delirium sets in, and coma and death speedily supervene. This course has been mistaken for a metastasis of erysipelas; whereas in such a case the same changes take place as in other similar cases, namely that, with the appearance of a violent disorder, the previously-existing lesser disease abates and disappears. Erysipelas seldom becomes associated with diseases of other important organs. Attacks of erysipelas succeeding the first attack are very apt to show deviations from the normal course. These attacks are very seldom preceded by precursory symptoms, the less so the more frequently the attacks have occurred. Nor is 458 Diseases of the Skin. the fever as severe, the swelling is less, and the spread of the disease over the face takes place more slowly. It not unfrequently happens that in subsequent attacks the patients are not obliged to lie down and that their appetite remains the same as in their normal condition. Subsequent attacks are more like erythema than erysipelas. The frequency of the attacks differs greatly in different individuals; sometimes there are several attacks in a few weeks and, after a short time, cease entirely; or months and even years intervene between the attacks; in such cases a spontaneous cessation is much less frequent. Among the consequences of true erysipelas the following deserve particular mention: Swelling of the skin, especially that of the lids, nose and lips; the swelling is mostly cdematous, the epidermis having a pale look and being.disposed to the formation of comedones; if the attacks are very frequent, the swelling may reach a considerable degree of thickness, and is very obstinate. Loss of the hair, which almost always falls out if the scalp had been intensely affected by the disease; in most cases the hair grows again, but there are exceptions to this rule.-Sub.cutaneous abscesses in the lids, lips, ears.-Severe catarrh of the external neatus, with obstinate hardness of hearing. Catarrh of the conjunctiva, which is generally very obstinate.-Disposition to neuralgia of the trigeminus. Wandering erysipelas, or erysipelas ambulans or erraticum, attacks the face less frequently than the extremities. On one of the extremities an erysipelatous spot appears which heals exactly like the above-described spots, only there is very little tension and pain, and the general organism is not so much involved. From this spot the erysipelas spreads towards the trunk; the spot which is attacked next, being either in close contact with the first, or else all subsequent spots being more or less remote from each other. Symptomatic erysipelas, as an accompaniment of inflammatory processes, is of no great importance, except when it covers a large extent of surface and depends upon septic causes. Generally it disappears of itself as soon as the cause that occasions it, is removed. If it is very intense, it may result in suppuration or gangrenous destruction of the skin. If the erysipelas sets in in the course of serious, constitutional febrile diseases, it is always a bad omen. In such cases the redness is never very vivid, rather dingy, having a bluish tint; the swelling is not excessive and yet Erysipelas. 459 the disposition to form blisters is very great; these blisters do not always dry up, but often become transformed into badly-looking ulcers which are apt to become gangrenous. The fever accompanying this form of erysipelas, always increases to a high degree, but speedily assumes the character of an adynamic fever, the pulse becomes very small and frequent, the temperature increases considerably, the cerebral phenomena become very marked, and sopor and coma set in at an early period, and death sometimes takes place so rapidly that life becomes extinct already on the third day after the appearance of the inflammation. Erysipelas neonatorum generally sets in in the first week after the birth of the infant, very seldom after the first month. It almost always proceeds from the umbilicus, on which account it has been traced with great probability to the consequences of an improper inanagement of this organ, more especially to a purulent inflammation of this organ which can easily be accounted for by bad management.-As a rule the erysipelas spreads from the umbilicus over the abdomen, the sexual organs, thighs, less frequently over the thorax and back. The redness is not very vivid, the swelling, on the contrary, is very considerable. The children are exceedingly restless, feverish, and incline greatly to spasmodic affections and sopor. The dermatitis is very apt to become associated with peritonitis. Death is the most common termination. Treatment. In speaking of the efficacy of a medicine for erysipelas, it is in the first place important to inquire whether the course of the erysipelatous inflammation is shortened by the medicine. It is well known that erysipelas of the face, if the whole face is covered with it, never disappears, spontaneously under nine days, and that the course is limited to five or six days if only one side of the face is invaded; this last-mentioned circumstance has often led to the supposition that a case had been cured by medicines, whereas the cure was altogether spontaneous. In a first attack of primary erysipelas it is very seldom the case for only one side of the face to be affected. At all events, we should be very guarded in claiming curative virtues for some of our remedies for erysipelas, and should only believe after repeated and successful trials in the treatment of analogous cases' that they were cured by means of drugs. Simple, smooth erysipelas of the face, as long as fever is present, is best combated by Belladonna, and, under this treatment, generally runs its course in six days. Nevertheless, although Belladonna 460 Disease of the Skin. responds completely to the symptoms of violent cerebral hyperermia, yet it is not suitable for the meningitis which may supervene, during the course of erysipelas. Iere Rhus tox. is preferable. This remedy is generally more particularly adapted to the higher grades of the disease, more especially if copious vesicles spring up upon the inflamed skin, if the fever, although intense, yet assumes an adynamic type, if the tongue becomes dry and the nervous excitement is superseded by a soporous stupefaction. Even the color of the affected part affords a decisive hint for the selection of one or the other drug; Belladonna is indicated by a bright-red, and lRhus tox. by a bluish or yellowish-red tint.-If we may credit recent reports concerning Apis mellifica, this remedy is preferable to either Belladonna or Rhus tox. Apis is said to be a specific remedy not only for smooth, but likewise for vesicular erysipelas, and to be suitable even if the brain is affected. We have not yet had an opportunity of verifying the pretended virtues of this drug in our own practice. A special indication for Apis is an inflammation of the mouth and fauces accompanying erysipelas. Although these remedies are sufficient in all ordinary cases, yet other remedies may be required to meet exceptional deviations from the normal type. For the excessive cerebral phenomena, while the exanthem is still out and hence no meningitis had yet set in, Ammonium carbonicum and Camphora are important remedies; Opium likewise is often an important intercurrent remedy, when the patient is lying in a state of sopor. True erysipelas, especially erysipelas of the face, very, seldom terminates in gangrenous destruction; if this should be the case, Arsenicum album, Carbo vegetabilis and Secale cornutum would have to be administered. An incipient suppuration cannot be cut short by lMercurius; it is much better to at once give Hepar sulphuris aid thus to promote the suppurative process. For the erysipelas of old people Lachesis is said to be superior to either, Belladonna or Rhus tox. Here too we would advise to keep an eye on Ammonium carbonicum, [also on Arsenicum. H.] For erysipelatous attacks without fever, we have never found either Belladonna or Rhus tox. suitable; they are not homceopathic to this condition. On the other hand we cannot recommend Lycopodium with sufficient emphasis, and if the local process is strikingly marked, iepar sulphuris, were it for no other reason than because, both these remedies prevent the frequent return of the disease. In such cases Borax may be a reliable remedy which Bcenninghausen recommends for erysipelas on the left side of the face; for it is only 462 Diseases of the Skin. the character of the disease in whose soil the erysipelatous inflammation has taken root. In a practical point of view, it is best to regard erysipelas neonatorum as a form of phlebitis and to treat it with the remedies that have been recommended for phlebitis. HIence we are in doubt whether Belladonna will ever be capable, as Hartmann thinks, of arresting the mischief; in the place of Belladonna we should at once give Meircurius or lepar sulphuris, and, if icterus has supervened, Phosphorus or Bryonia. Wandering erysipelas is generally a very obstinate disease, for which it is very difficult to select remedies from the Materia Medica. Graphites has furnished practical evidence of its curative powers in this disease, whereas Palsatilla, Lycopodium and C(occulus are unreliable. As regards other points in the treatment of erysipelas, we desire to deprecate the common practice of resorting to an excess of warm covering which can at most only increase the intensity of the inflammatory process going on on the skin, as well as the disposition to relapses by superinducing an extreme sensitiveness of the skin. Theie is neither use nor reason in covering the inflamed skin with cotton wadding, nor is there any reason why the patients should not remain in a uniform temperature, without any extra amount of covering. [It is well known to every physician and nurse that the distressing itching and burning of the inflamed skin is very much relieved by sprinkling a thin layer of fine flour or pulverized starch upon it. In erysipelas of the extremities I have likewise resorted to a weak watery solution of the Sulphite of Soda as an external application. The effect has been to blanch the skin, alleviate the itching and burning, and, in conjunction with proper internal treatment, to shorten and moderate the course of the disease. Traumatic erysipelas of the face, in the case of habitual drunkards, is very apt to involve serious consequences, especially under allopathic treatment. If the inflammation invades the meningse, which it is inclined to do, death under this treatment is all but certain. Some years ago, a case of traumatic erysipelas occurred in our city, which speedily terminated fatally under Old School treatment. The patient, a very stout man, had been on a bender for a day and a night, and was very much under the influence of liquor. A fall Erysipelas. 463 on his face lacerated the skin near the left temple. Erysipelas set in, and he died in two days. Inasmuch as I may not have another opportunity in the course of this work, of offering the present remark, I desire to avail myself of the present chance. Delirium tremens is the ultimate result of alcoholic poisoning. Can such a condition be removed in every case with such small doses as we are in the habit of using -in our practice? This is questionable. In my opinion there are cases where we cannot do our patient justice without treating him with large doses of the proper antidote. We remember a case of delirium tremens where the patient complained of vermin crawling over his bed and hands. Arsenicumn 30 cured him entirely. In other similar cases this treatment utterly failed. A stout young man had drank thirty-nine glasses of whisky on a wager in one night. We found him cold and the skin dry and husky like parchment. HIe felt numb all over. Pulse scarcely perceptible. IIe was in great agony of mind and expected to be utterly paralyzed. lie was unable to sustain his own weight. I gave him six globules of Nax vomica 30, in half a cup of water, a dessertspoonful every five minutes. The patient sank visibly under this treatment. Being satisfied that Nux was his remedy, I now mixed five drops of the strong tincture in six tablespoonfuls of water, of which mixture I gave him a dessertspoonful every five minutes. After the second dose he began to perspire. The perspiration seemed to be pure alcohol; he was literally drenched with alcohol. He had to be changed seven times during the night; next morning he felt quite well, except a little weak. I have treated a number of cases of delirium tremens with variable doses. Upon the whole, small doses have not proved very effectual in my hands. Doctor Reed, Jr., of this city, has treated a number of cases; proceeding upon the principle of curing the patient as speedily and effectually as possible, he treated his patients irrespective of dose. A few of his cases will show that delirium-tremens patients sometimes bear unusually large quantities of medicines. To illustrate this fact I will take this opportunity of relating a few of the cases which he has related to me from his note-book. G. L., forty years of age, a butcher and confirmed drunkard, precipitated an impending attack of delirium by falling and breaking three ribs; he suffered but little from pain or prostration. The tremor was severe, but the case was remarkable in the character of the delirium, and as showing the immense quantity of Opium necessary to overcome the obstinate wakefulness. 464 Diseases of the Skin. For two days the delirium was evidenced by the most delightful visions, he saw angels hovering over his bed, and held delightful interviews with the saints. Not being properly watched, he at night escaped from the house, and after the lapse of some hours returned to relate how he had been upon another Mount of Beatitude, having held sweet converse upon a neighboring sand-hill with our Saviour and the Blessed Virgin, returning after the holy interview much edified, to demand more whiskey. Iis hallucinations were all of this religious character, and this before the Opium had been given. Within twenty-four hours there was given him in divided doses at least three ounces of Laudanum, he being carefully watched for the result, and it was only after the last half-ounce dose of the quantity stated, that he showed any effect from the drug. This effect, however, was agood and in all respects natural sleep, lasting thirty-six hours and followed by an entire relief from all the synptoms of his disease. C. C., laboring under his fourth attack of delirium tremens, under the care of a Doctor who had treated him in the old-fashioned way, with Opium and Digitalis, had passed seven nights without sleep. On visiting the patient on the morning of the eighth day, I found him quietly brushing the vermin from his clothing, and occasionally ordering the nurses to clear the room from the strange animals which were in every corner, and under every chair. His pulse was fair, tongue but lightly coated, skin moist and warm, appetite good, face somewhat flushed. The attack, and all former attacks had commenced with severe vertigo. His eyes were injected, bowels loose, owing to purgatives. I ordered rest from all medicines, strong soup, and oysters with an abundance of Cayenne pepper through the day; at 8 o'clock at night I administered one drachm of the Bromide of Potassium to be followed, if necessary, every hour by one half the quantity. The dose had to be repeated but once, a quiet sleep being obtained for twelve hours. Five months subsequently C. C. again suffered for the fifth tile, and for three days I used every endeavor to obtain sleep. The Bromide which had before acted so effectually, failing entirely. On the fourth night, however, sleep was obtained after the use of large doses of Opium and Tartar emetic,; recovery followed. immediately. An habitual drunkard of great capacity, having already suffered from many attacks of delirium tremens, after, according to his Roseola, Rubeola. 465 own and his friends' accounts, abstaining from food for some weeks(?), subsisting entirely upon liquors of which he took a great variety and an incredible quantity, was attacked with a very severe form of delirium tremens. The prostration was extreme, the tremor excessive, but the delirium bland, the chief hallucination being that the ceiling was about to fall and crush him, rendering it necessary for him to jump from the bed and hop around the room with as great activity as his weak condition would allow. His tongue was heavily coated, pulse small and irregular, skin moist, the forehead being constantly bedewed with a cold, clammy sweat. His voice was feeble, husky and tremulous, he had had no sleep for three nights. The treatment was directed principally to sustaining his strength, but all efforts to obtain sleep were for fifty-two hours unavailing. At the end of this time two boluses containing each one scruple of Cayenne pepper, were given, and within two hours the patient was quietly sleeping, the skin, feet and hands for the first time being warm. After fourteen hours of quiet sleep, he awoke with a desire for something to eat, and from this made a fair recovery. During the treatment Digitalis acted very satisfactorily in ten-drop doses of the tincture in strengthening the heart's action. A tailor of intemperate habits, aged about forty, after a protracted debauch became delirious, imagining that he was pursued by demons. I was first called owing to his having jumped from a third story window. His fall having been broken by a shed, he sustained no severe injuries. He complained of seeing horrible phantasms, struggling with his attendants that he might escape from them. However, he answered intelligibly to inquiries, complaining of pain in the head and stomach; his tongue was heavily coated, face pale, pulse small and quick, skin dry but cool, had eaten nothing for some days, and had had no sleep for two nights. I prescribed the tincture of Nux vomica, three drops every half hour. Upon calling within three hours, I found the patient sweating profusely, relieved from pain in the head, and from the phantom which had been troubling him. Under the use of supporting measures his recovery was rapid and uninterrupted. H.] 3. Roseola, Rubeolse. This exanthem is characterized by spots of the size of lentils and of a bright-red color, more or less scattered and rarely appearing 30 466 Diseases of the Skin. in groups; they are not attended with fever, or else the fever is very slight, and does not result in any perceptible desquamation. Roseola sometimes accompanies severe catarrh, in which case the exanthem lasts at most twenty-four hours; if it is preceded by a slight catarrhal stage, the exanthem disappears at the latest on the third day. In this last shape roseola sometimes appears epidemically, but not over a large extent of country, in which case the eruption looks very much like a mild form of scarlatina to which it is related like a sort of transition-link. In the same house we have seen two children laid up with the mildest form of roseola; another child, on the contrary, was attacked so violently that it seemed perfectly justifiable to diagnose scarlatina, so much more as distinct desquamation took place, and a slight degree of cedema was noticed over the whole body. Roseola never involves any danger. The disorder may originate in catarrh or in a marked change of temperature, as a rule it is owing to such atmospheric conditions as favor epidemic diseases. A species of roseola which is apt to supervene during the course of dangerous constitutional diseases, more particularly of typhus, does not belong in this category Owing to the trifling character of this disease, the employment of medicines is generally unnecessary; if catarrhal angina is complained of, a few.doses of Belladonna may be administered. The fever is scarcely ever sufficiently severe or generally of a character to require Aconite. [A few doses of Aconite are very serviceable in this eruption, even if the fever is ever so slight. H.] If this exanthem is confounded with a mild attack of scarlatina, the poor patients suffer from such a mistake in consequence of being kept in the room for an unnecessary length of time; we shall dwell upon such a proceeding more fully when treating of scarlatina. 4. Urticaria. Nettle-rash, Hives. Blotches or wheals may be caused by the direct action of irritants upon the skin, such as extreme heat alternating with cold (ladies at a ball often expose themselves to such influences), mosquito-bites, flea-bites, bed-bug bites, bee-stings, the stings of gad-flies, contact with nettles and other plants; or else by the action of irritating substances which, after being introduced into the stomach, react upon the skin. This, however, is not generally the case, but the Urticaria. 467 result of peculiar idiosyncrasies, as from strawberries, raspberries, crabs, oysters, etc. Urticaria proper is for the most part depending upon individual predispositions which it is impossible to account for with any certainty; a very common exciting cause is gastric catarrh from indigestion, and likewise catarrh of the female sexual organs, chronic as well as acute. In acute constitutional diseases blotches sometimes break out, but they are not of any special significance. Urticaria very commonly commences with febrile symptoms sometimes of a considerable degree of intensity, and which may continue during the whole course of the eruption. It is a question, however, whether the urticaria does not result from the fever instead of the fever from the urticaria. Generally the digestion is very much affected, symptoms of cerebral hypersemia are less commonly present. The appearance of the exanthem is generally immediately preceded by great restlessness and an oppressive anxiety. In other cases the eruption comes out suddenly after a short feeling of indisposition, without any fever. Amid a burning and violent itching of the skil a diffuse redness or rather large red spots, without sharp outlines, make their appearance, upon which soon after risings or elevations start up, of a white or red color, but more generally with white tops. Their size varies from a quarter of anl inch to one inch in length and breadth; most commonly they are isolated,'less frequently they appear in clusters on the same spot. The warmth of the bed seems to promote their appearance. A single wheal does not remain out very long; it disappears even in a few hours, without leaving a trace, but other wheals may break out in other places, by which means the whole process may be very much protracted. The localities where the exanthem most commonly breaks out, are the extremities, and the anterior surface of the trunk, less frequently the face. The urticaria from gastric causes likewise originates in this manner, except that it scarcely ever lasts longer than twelve hours; on the other hand, its first appearance is often attended with an intense fever, anxiety and restlessness. Even the urticaria caused by the stings or bites of insects, is often attended with fever. A first attack generally superinduces an increased disposition to the disease; this disposition increases in proportion to the frequency of the attacks, and may continue for years under the designation of chronic nettle-rash. In such circumstances the fever is less with every new attack, whereas, on the other hand, the most trifling 468 Diseases of the Skin. error in diet, the least cold may excite a new crop of wheals. In the case of women the eruption often seems to have some connection with the menses. In chronic urticaria the wheals are always scattered, and the surrounding redness is trifling or entirely wanting; the wheals generally look red. This chronic ur'ticaria is a very obstinate disorder, but often remains uncured for the reason that the constitutional anomaly in which it originates, is not regarded. A single attack, if not very violent, does not require any treatment; medicines may have to be resorted to on account of the constitutional symptoms, not for the exanthem. For decided symptoms of indigestion, Pulsatilla may be given; for a severe gastric catarrh, Antimonium crudum. If the fever is intense, Rhus toxicodendron is a chief remedy; the severe rheumatic pains, which sometimes accompany the eruption, require Bryonia, the acompanying diarrhcea, aulcamara. If the affection becomes obstinate, and new wheals continue to break out, or if a first attack is soon followed by a second or third, the speediest possible interference with suitable remedial agents is eminently proper. The selection will have to be chiefly determined by the constitutional symptoms. If no such symptoms are present, and if every attack is occasioned by the most trifling changes of temperature, without fever or any other derangement, Urtica urens is a very excellent remedy. This remedy is likewise appropriate in cases of urticaria complicated with renal and urinary difficulties. In the case of children, Calcarea carbonica is suitable for urticaria without any constitutional symptoms. Of the Balsamum copaivce, which is recommended by many physicians, we have no special indications, and should, therefore, not use it until Urtica urens had been tried in vain. If the urticaria breaks out with the menses, Pulsatilla may be given if the menses are scanty, Belladnna if they are profuse. If a chronic uterine catarrh is the cause of the eruption, Apis is an excellent remedy, which may be associated with Lycopodium. It is not necessary to mention more remedies for such a trifling affection, the different combinations of which it is, after all, inexpedient to point out. [We have almost always succeeded in controlling our cases of urticaria with Aconite and Ipecacuanha. H.] In habitual urticaria the diet plays an important part. In the first place, if the skin is excessively irritable, we have to aim at hardening it; this object is more easily reached by vapor-baths than by cold bathing and cold ablutions. In the next place the diet itself has to consist of simple articles; fat, spirits, acrid and stimulating spices have to be avoided. Miliaria. 469 5. Miliaria. Rash. Miliaria is mostly a secondary, symptomatic affection; as a primary and more particularly as an epidemic disease it is a rare occurrence among us. Symptomatic miliaria may break out during the course of all kinds of severe acute diseases. Primary, epidemic miliaria runs its course after the fashion of all other acute exanthemata. The eruption is preceded for one to three days by febrile symptoms characterized by the presence of rheumatoid pains in the limbs, frequently shifting from one locality to another; excessive perspiration, great anxiety and oppression, and finally by peculiar prickling, burning pains in the skin. Afterwards small vesicles break out, first on the neck and subsequently on most other parts of the body; they are of the size of milletseeds or lentils, are seated upon a red base, and at times are filled with a clear, at other times with a dim fluid.-Miliaria rubra and alba.-These vesicles generally spread in clusters.-The violent symptoms of constitutional disturbance disappear with the breaking out of the vesicles which separate in bran-shaped scales within five to seven days. Inasmuch as the same period of time is required for every new crop, the duration of the disorder may be protracted to a fortnight and longer. The usual termination is recovery, except in epidemic miliaria where the disease sometimes assumes a malignant type and frequently results fatally. Symptomatic miliaria is regarded by some as a symptom of the highest import, whereas others view it as resulting from the action of certain external influences, and not deserving any special attention. We are decidedly inclined to share this opinion. Symptomatic miliaria generally attacks individuals who perspire a great deal from excessive covering, as in the case of lying-in women, rheumatic patients, likewise in cases of measles and scarlatina if mismanaged in the old fashion, and in other febrile or even non-febrile affections. Except in acute rheumatism, we shall always find that miliaria is caused by excessive external heat. This circumstance will easily; account for the symptoms preceding the eruption, such as restlessness, anxiety, dyspncea, even delirium; the bad management still rendered worse by the anxiety caused by the appearance of the exanthem, explains why miliaria may give the disease a bad turn. That our explanation is founded, is evident from the fact that miliaria is scarcely ever seen in hospitals, but is a very common occurrence in private practice, and that it never breaks out on 470 Diseases of the Skin. patients who are constantly kept in a mean temperature under a moderate amount of covering. In view of the frequently dangerous character of primary miliaria, medical treatment in all such cases is indispensable; the rare occurrence of the disease has not yet, however, afforded sufficient opportunities of positively determining the remedies that are inl specific curative adaptation to it. The most suitable remedy which corresponds with the whole course of this pathological process, is.Aconitum, more particularly if the eruption is not so much accompanied by anxiety as by great nervous excitement. If there is much anxiety and restlessness and a burning feverish heat, Arsenicum is the remedy; if the patient is lying in a listless condition, with typhoid symptoms, Bryonia is best suitable. Mercurius may likewise deserve attention in this disease, and if the patient perspires to excess, Sambucus. Regarding the propriety of instituting a treatment for symptomatic miliaria, it is our opinion that it is unnecessary and that all efforts to prevent the appearance of miliaria by medicinal agents, are of very doubtful utility. Moreover, the selection of a remedy in all acute diseases depends rather upon the more important symptoms of the disease than upon the appearance of the vesicles. Nevertheless, in order not to slight the views of our Colleagues, we mention the remedies recommended by Hartmann for this exanthem: Ipecacuanha (for the precursory symptoms in diseases where the miliaria may be expected to break out); Bryonia (under similar circumstances); Arsenicum (for restlessness and anxiety); Aconitum (for violent rush of blood); Belladonna (for accompanying congestive symptoms of the brain); Coffea, Chamomilla, Valeriana.Ilartmann further remarks: "Chronic miliary eruptions which partially disappear in one spot in order to reappear sowewhere else, and cause a good deal of itching and burning, are most safely and reliably removed by such antipsoric remedies as Mlezereum, Clematis, Sarsaparilla, Staphysagria, Arsenicum, Ammonniura carb., Sulphur, and Carbo vegetabilis." 6. Pityriasis. Dandruff, Dandriff This exanthem consists in an exfoliation of the skin either in thin scales, or in larger patches; it may be unaccompanied by any other cutaneous symptoms and the exfoliating skin may to all appear Pityriasis, Dandruff, Dandriff. 471 ances be perfectly sound; or else, the process may be accompanied by trifling local or more extensive symptoms of hyperaemia of the cutis. According as the skin is unchanged or looks red under the scales, the affection is designated as pityriasis simplex or rubra. The causes of this affection are very obscure; in some cases the disease can be traced with some certainty to a derangement of the functions of the liver and of the female sexual organs. Pityriasis rubra, when spread over more extensive portions of the skin, not unfrequently sets in with slight febrile motions which may break out at every renewed appearance of the exanthen. On portions of the skin, which itch and burn very fiercely, large red spots of indefinite and irregular shapes make their appearance. Accompanied by a peculiar feeling of tension, the cuticle on these spots very soon begins to exfoliate. The eruption first manifests itself on the trunk, and only invades the face if exceedingly severe. The almost inevitable itching may cause a moisture to ooze from the otherwise dry spots on the skin. This itching which is absolutely agonizing, very commonly interferes with sleep. The affection is very obstinate, but at the same time one of the rarer forms of cutaneous diseases. Pityriasis, confined to isolated spots, is much less frequently of the character rubra than a general pityriasis; it is most commonly met with on the hairy scalp, in the palms of the hands, on the soles of the feet, and in the face. The itching is much less distressing, but is still very violent on the hairy scalp. By scratching the skin until it tears, a moisture is secreted from the irritated spot, resulting in the formation of superficial scurfs and crusts and agglutination of the hairs. In treating a case of general pityriasis, we must not forget that we are dealing with a very chronic affection which never promises rapid success, and where it would be consequently improper either to make a frequent change of medicines, or to repeat the dose too often. The most important remedies are Graphites and Arsenicun, with which it is most likely that a cure can be best effected. The good effects of Lycopodium are questionable, and Sulphur,in spite of its symptomatic similarity, scarcely ever acts with sufficient persistence. In partial pityriasis we never depend upon Arsenicum, whereas in pityriasis capitis Graphites renders excellent service. Beside these remedies we may compare the following: Sepia, Thuya, Calcarea carb., Ledum pallustre, also Phosphorous. Sepia is particularly 472 Diseases of the Skin. indicated in the case of females, if the spots break out in consequence of menstrual irregularities, or at definite periods of the year. 7. Psoriasis. Scaly Tetter. This is pre-eminently an affection of the male sex; in the case of females it is never attended with sexual disorders. It attacks individuals between the seventh and fiftieth year, and occurs most frequently in the cold season. It cannot be traced to constitutional derangements, since persons who are afflicted with this disease, otherwise enjoy the most perfect health. With the appearance of some constitutional disease, the psoriasis disappears at once, but returns again as soon as the disease is removed. Psoriasis begins in this wise: at various, more or less numerous, scattered spots, the detached epidermis forms a small, white rising -psoriasis punctata. These spots gradually spread from every point of the periphery until they reach the size of drops-psoriasis guttata; on removing the scales, we find the skin underneath slightly red and bleeding. In proportion as the circumference continues to expand, the original spot becomes cleansed of its scales, and a ring forms surrounding a healthy-looking skin-psoriasis annularis; in the further progress of the exanthem, this ring opens, losing its roundness-psoriasis gyrata-and finally disappearing altogether. All these stages, or most of them, coexist side by side in almost every case of this disease. Psoriasis is not attended with itching, or at most only at the commencement, but in no case if it has become an inveterate disease. It may remain stationary, though breaking out in new places, or it may intermit in its manifestations for months and even years. T'reatmett. In selecting our remedies, we must not overlook the fact that psoriasis is not an itching eruption. This seems to have been ignored by many practitioners; Hartmann's delineation of the disease is especially untrue to Nature. The selection of remedies is rendered particularly difficult by the circumstance that the patient enjoys perfect health, and that on this account we are without any co-determining symptoms. It is wrong and unscientific to try to get symptoms out of a patient by persistent questioning and to hunt them up even among his ancestors in order to realize our dreams about reliable remedies. For this reason we content ourselves with giving merely the names of the remedies that have Ichthyosis. 473 already been employed in this disease with some advantage, or that may seem adapted to further trials. We arrange the series in accordance with the practical value of each drug: Sulphur, Phosphorus, Sepia, Petroleum, Calcarea carbonica, Acidum nitricum and phosphoricum, Arsenicum and Tellurium. Among external remedies the only application which is never hurtful and usually efficient, is the vapor-bath accompanied by frictions with castile soap, or, if the affection has already existed for a long time, with brown soap. Cold bathing is of decided use, although its effect may not be perceived immediately. 8. Ichthyosis. Fish-skin, Porcupine Disease. According to Hebra, ichthyosis is an hereditary or, at any rate, congenital disease, never acquired; where acquired ichthyosis is spoken of, the eruption has been mistaken for psoriasis or some other cutaneous disorder. It occurs most frequently among males, 30 that even in its hereditary descent the disease is confined to the male branch of the family, leaving the female branch intact. Ichthyosis is characterized by an hypertrophied condition of the papillae of the skin, with excessive development of the epidermis; the function of the sebaceous follicles seems to be entirely extinct. This disease does not show itself plainly until after the first year of infancy unless the children are frequently and carefully washed. Until then the patients only show a remarkably harsh and tough, dry skin which often has a deep-yellowish tinge. The scales never form in the face, nor on the flexor-surface of the joints or on the scrotum; they form most copiously on the extensor surface of the arms, thighs and legs, and on the knee. In this affection the skin is not infiltrated; where the scales are seated, the skin has a natural color. In the lesser grades of the disease the scales are thinly scattered over the skin; in the higher grades they form a thick, horny covering exhibiting cracks and furrows in all directions and, on account of the dirt which adheres to them, having a dingy-brown color. Scales that fall off, or are picked off with the fingers, are constantly replaced by new ones. The disease is considered incurable; it does not endanger life. Treatment. We are not acquainted with a single case of cure of this disease by means of homceopathic remedies; nor have we, ever had an opportunity, in our own practice, of trying the effect 474 Diseases of the Skin. of homceopathic treatment. In our part of the country the disease. is of very rare occurrence. If we had a case to treat, we should in the first place depend upon Silicea, Sulphur, Calcarea carbonica and Lycopodiuln; and in the next place upon Arsenicum, Auram and Petroleum. Knowing that cleanliness and attention to the skin generally can keep the disease at a very low stage of development, we urgently recommend the daily use of warm baths and frictions with castile soap, likewise vapor-baths. If we desire a speedy removal of the scales, we have to rub the affected portions of the skin with oil a few hours before bathing. 9. Lichen, Strophulus. Tooth-rash. This exanthem appears in three distinct forms, as strophulus, lichen simplex and agrius. Strophulus is in reality nothing else than lichen simplex in the first period of dentition. It is caused by a continued irritation of the skin, or is a consequence of bad nutrition, catarrhal irritation of the intestinal canal, or else it seems to be exclusively occasioned by the process of dentition. Beside the derangements which such causes necessarily occasion, the appearance of this eruption seems very seldom preceded by fever and restlessness. On one or more places, sometimes only in the face, and at times over the whole body, scattered papule or pimples break out which either have a reddish or else a natural color like the rest of the skin. If the children are sufficiently advanced in age, they show by their manner that the papulae itch, especially in the bed. A single papule heals in three to four days, but successive crops of papulae are apt to occur, protracting the whole process for weeks. Lichen simplex arises from similar causes as strophulus; it may likewise be occasioned by a high degree of temperature and occurs in every age. Its appearance is very seldom preceded by distinct fever. The papule come out unperceived, mostly in the face, have the same color as the skin or look a little redder; they generally form clusters and itch pretty severely; the destruction of their tops by scratching gives rise to very small scurfs. Single papule disappear within ten to twelve days; this form of lichen may likewise be protracted by successive crops for months, so that the originally acute disorder may assume a very obstinate, chronic form. Lichen agrius often represents a higher degree of the former, but Lichen, Strophulus. 475 it may likewise break out as a primary disease. Its appearance is always preceded by febrile symptoms which sometimes do not entirely and speedily disappear even after the eruption is fairly out. The pimples are surrounded by a red halo and cause a burning pain. The unavoidable scratching not only increases the cutaneous hyperemia, but likewise changes the eruption to that of eczema. The pimples sometimes, tlough seldom, scale off already in ten days to a fortnight, and without leaving any alterations. New crops of pimples generally break out in rapid succession, in consequence of which the skin becomes infiltrated to such a degree that even long after the disappearance of the pimples the skin remains hard and callous, and even chappy. Lichen agrius constitutes one of the more obstinate exanthems; if the whole body is covered with it, the eruption may even involve danger to life. In such a case the patient emaciates very rapidly and a general cachexia is the consequence. Treatmnent. Strophulus, if unaccompanied by other derangements, does not require any special treatment; the most that is required is that every attention should be paid to cleanliness and to the clothing of the children. If it sets in as a consequence of other morbid conditions, the medicines administered for the latter will likewise remove the strophulus. Nor is lichen simplex, when it first breaks out, of sufficient consequence to require medical treatment. If it is spread over a considerable portion of the skin, and the itching is intolerable, Staphysagria or Mercurius may be given. If it increases to lichen agrius, or becomes chronic, the medicines indicated for this form of lichen will have to be used. [Aconite is an admirable remedy to control the hyperaemia of the skin and to afford material aid in removing this distressing eruption. H.] In a case of lichen agrius Mercurius is most appropriate to the paroxysms of acute exacerbation [also Aconite, H.], and next to it Rhus toxicod. and Staphysagria. Cocculus is likewise recommended. To eradicate the disease, other remedies are required, such as: Graphites, Lycopodium, Arsenicum, Sulphur, also Nitri acidum or Conium; the selection of a particular drug depends a good deal upon its homceopathicity to the accompanying constitutional symptoms. External applications, even baths when indulged in too freely, most generally prove injurious. 476 Diseases of the Skin. 10. Prurigo. According to Hebra, genuine prurigo is only met with among the lower classes; it never shows itself previous to the second period of dentition, and gradually disappears again after the fiftieth year. Sex does not exert any modifying influence over the disease. Bad nourishment and want of attention to cleanliness and the condition of the skin generally, are the main causes of the disorder. The first symptom of prurigo is a violent itching as from the sting of an insect; at the itching place a small induration is soon after perceived, which rapidly rises above the skin in the shape of a papula. The color is the same as that of the adjoining cuticle. If pricked, this pimple discharges a small quantity of a clear fluid. New pimples keep constantly breaking out, whereas the former ones, owing to the scratching, impart a changed appearance to the skin. The top of the pimple or papule being lacerated by the scratching, a small quantity of blood oozes out, which dries up on the pimple and forms a small dark scurf, a number of which may be seen on the skin of persons afflicted with prurigo. As the disease lasts longer, the papulse and crusts increase in size, and not unfrequently the effused fluid suppurates, causing pustules which form larger crusts and, by running into one another, undermine portions of the skin, and give rise to lymphangioitis and swelling of the lymphatic glands. In this manner prurigo assumes an exceedingly variegated appearance. If the scurfs and crusts fall off, they leave colored marks which, by their number, impart a spotted appearance to the skin. At the same time the skin usually becomes hypertrophied, especially in the folds of the larger joints. The lesser grades which occur among young persons, are generally confined to the lower extremities, and are designated as prurigo mitis; the more fully developed form as prurigo formicans. The disease remits in the summer or fall; in the winter and spring it generally reaches its acme. The consequences to the general organism are less severe than the constant and distressing itching, which is worse in bed, would lead one to suppose. Nutrition is not perceptibly impaired. On the other hand, it not unfrequently happens that the disease becomes so intolerable as to drive persons to suicide. The higher grades of the disease have a peculiar disposition to rapid effusions of serum, especially into the pleural cavity and the meningle; in this way many patients fall victims to the disease, or become mentally de 478 Diseases of the Skin. well as differential diagnosis of each case. We have already shown in previous chapters that a careful examination of prurigo is calculated to annihilate the whole theory of psora and the itch-metastases, and it is time that this stain should be removed from the fair escutcheon of Homoeopathy. 11. Aene. Stone-pock. Acne is situated in the sebaceous follicles of the skin; it depends upon the quality of the sebaceous secretion, and is not, or at least very seldom, determined by the narrowness or closure of the excretory duct. If the sebum secreted by the follicle is too thick, it naturally reaches the surface with more difficulty, solidifies near the external opening, and closes the follicle by means of a plug which has generally a black color. These blackish points are called comedones, or acne punctata. In certain circumstances the disease may not progress any further; on some portions of the skin, as for instance on the nose, this condition becomes habitual. Under other circumstances that will be stated below, the glands thus closed show a disposition to become inflamed. That this is not alone owing to the pressure of the sebum upon the follicular walls, is shown by the circumstance that in persons of a more advanced age the comedones scarcely ever inflrame, or that they enlarge to the size of small burs9e without any symptom of inflammation whatsoever. The inflamed follicle either changes to a snmall pustule, discharges and sometimes forms small scurfs, or else the inflammation does not terminate in suppuration, the follicle retains for a time the shape of an indurated, somewhat painful and red papule, and gradually the exudation is reabsorbed. If the inflammation is severe, if the irritation is increased by the pressure and friction of the clothes, the subcutaneous cellular tissue becomes involved, giving rise to a furuncle of a larger or smaller size. These different changes or processes come under the designation of acne simplex. This form of acne appears principally in the face and on the neck, on the back, buttocks, thighs, less frequently on the chest, sometimes on the skin of the penis and scrotum. No other consequences are involved in this affection, except that the places of the acne-pustules remain red for some time. Considering that a number of follicles sometimes become diseased while others are at the same time in full bloom, the face must become considerably disfigured. Acne scarcely ever makes its appearance except between the age Acne. 479 of pubescence and the twenty-fifth or thirtieth year. After this period, a few single follicles may become inflamed, but not a whole number together. Males are more subject to acne than females. All the circumstances connected with this eruptionshow that acne has its essential origin in the sexual sphere. In corroboration of this statement we will allude to the circumstance that on many ladies a few acne-pustules break out during the menses, and that almost every individual who is addicted to onanism, is afflicted with an excessive breaking out of acne. We do not mean to say that acne only breaks out in the faces of onanists. Among the young people of the city acne seems to be general, whereas among countryyouths it is comparatively a rare disease. If a predisposition exists, acne may be developed under the operation of a variety of causes, such as overheating, washing a heated skin with cold water, partaking of boiled and roasted or fried fat, more particularly the fat of geese; indigestion, the excessive use of wine or spirits. Among us, for instance, acne prevails in the winter-season, because so much pork or gooseflesh is eaten in winter; jews are likewise troubled with acne, for the reason that they replace the fat of swine by goose-fat, and for the additional reason that they are generally fond of very fat eating. It follows from these remarks that the first thing to be done when treating a case of acne is to prescribe a careful and appropriate diet. This task, however, is very difficult of accomplishment, for the reason that acne-patients generally enjoy the sensation of perfect health, and that a rigid diet, if only persisted in for a short time, effects very little improvement in the disease. The next point is to see to a proper management of the skin generally. Cold bathing and washing is of no use; on the contrary, the trouble seems to get worse in consequence. For acne on the trunk, frictions with soap and the use of the flesh-brush in a vapor-bath are the best remedy; for acne in the face the following proceeding is better than all cosmetics: Every morning, or, if the patient has to leave his home early in the morning, then every evening, the face should be gently rubbed for a few minutes with a soft piece of flannel moistened with warm water and greased over with soap, after which it is washed with warm water, and subsequently again with water that is almost cold. The best soap for such a purpose is the so-called Venetian soap made of vegetable fats. By means of these washings the disorder is reduced to its minimum proportions. The formation of pustules is, moreover, best prevented by the comedones 480 Diseases of the Skin. being squeezed out. The nails must not be used for such an operation, but a small watch-key, the opening of which must neither be too narrow nor angular, is placed upon the spot so that the black point of the comedo is exactly encompassed by the opening of the key which is firmly and vertically pressed upon the skin. This had better be done previous to washing. By resorting to such simple proceedings, the face can be kept tolerably clean. A treatment of acne with internal remedies is undoubtedly possible, but likewise superfluous in most cases. In very bad cases we have derived very satisfactory results.from Arsenic, but a cure has never been achieved. Hartmann and others likewise recommends: Cantharides, Sulphur, Staphysagria, Antim. crudum, J)uleamara, Mezereum, Natrum muriaticum, Acidum nitricurn, apsicum, Sepia, etc. In our opinion, however, internal remedies need not be resorted to as long as a non-medicinal external management will accomplish all that can be desired. 12. Sycosis, IMent:agra. Barber's Itch. This is exclusively a disease of the male sex, and occurs about the age of twenty-four or twenty-five years, when the hair of the beard grows thick and hard. If persons wlo do not shave are attacked by it, which is a very rare occurrence, its causes are very obscure. In' cases where the beard is shaved, the eruption may be caused by bad or irritating soap or by a dull razor, and, although generally so frightfully obstinate, yet may, under such circumstances, heal spontaneously even without much loss of time; all that need be done is to omit shaving the affected parts. Dirt and snuff likewise seem to occasion sycosis. The disease generally sets in, like herpes labialis, with a sensation of burning, heat and tension; most commonly we first notice on the chin a small cluster of isolated, red tubercles of a pretty large size, each of which is perforated by a hair. Some of these tubercles in a few days change to pustules, break and form dark crusts, without the infiltration which forms the little tubercle, disappearing on that account. In spite of all care, and generally in consequence of continued irritation, the number of tubercles increases slowly but uninterruptedly, the former ones growing larger; the skin upon which they are seated, becomes more and more infiltrated; after breaking, the pustules change to ulcers; deep, ulcerated rhagades and finally bulbous infiltrations of a pale-red color are perceived. Sycosis, Mentagra. 481 The patients do not complain of much pain, but their ugly appearance fills them with anxiety. The disease is extremely obstinate and may last for years. It is true that it not unfrequently abates in severity, and at times even disappears altogether; but it breaks out again with renewed fierceness, and in such a case in more than one spot simultaneously. Its first appearance is almost always on the chin; it is here that the disorder exists most commonly in its fiercest intensity, but it likewise invades every other bearded portion of the face, and in severe cases even the eyebrows. Treatment. Although sycosis, when it first breaks out, sometimes heals spontaneously, yet a spontaneous cure, after the disease has existed for some time, is a rare event, and the higher grades of the disease obstinately resist every attempt to cure it. However, we have seen cases where a mentagra of many years' standing permanently disappeared after an attack of typhus. In treating this affection, success depends upon commencing the treatment as early as practicable. The first and most important measure is to investigate and remove the cause of the disease. We would not advise the use of internal remedies until we are satisfied, after having pursued this course for a short time, that it leads to no satisfactory result; otherwise we might easily be deceived regarding the effect of our remedies. We have cured three cases of this disease permanently and radically with Graphites 4th and 6th trituration; two of these cases had lasted for several years, and two of these patients, moreover, never shaved. This statement shows that Graphites deserves our attention in sycosis. Aciduvm nitricurm is another remedy that is often very useful; its symptoms' bear the greatest resemblance to this disease. However, we ought to state that we have never achieved a cure with this remedy alone, although the cases improvec considerably under its influence. We make the same remark of Aurum muriaticum. Silicea, Oleander, Carbo animalis, and a few other remedies, are indicated by the; symptoms, but we have no clinical evidence to adduce in their favor. Hartmann mentions a few other remedies; but it is evident,. from a perusal of his description of sycosis, that he classes under this denomination all sorts of heterogeneous eruptions. We must not omit to mention a few external remedies that may be of great use. In recent cases of mentagra it is undoubtedly of use to pull out the single hairs that perforate the tubercles. This being a painful proceeding, it must be carried out gradually. However, it is of very little, if any, use if the whole cutis is hyper31 482 Diseases of the Skin. trophied and infiltrated. Among the caustics Acidum nitricum occupies the first rank, probably because it is eminently homceopathic to the disease. Aurum muriaticum is likewise a good caustic in some cases. Hebra advises to pull out the hairs before cauterizing; this proceeding undoubtedly increases the effectiveness, but likewise the painfulness of the cauterizing process. Hebra's mode of treating this disease deserves being mentioned so much more as he professes having cured every case by means of it. First the hairs are pulled out, anld afterwards a paste of Sulphur, Glycerine and Alcohol is rubbed upon the diseased skin every morning and evening. A cure is very rapidly effected. Sulphur is the only medicinal ingredient in this case. We shall revert to the external application of Sulphur in the next chapter. All other external applications of corrosive substances, except Nitric acid, are utterly condemned by Hebra. 13. Acne lRosacea, Gutta Rosacea. Copper-nose, Bottle-nose. Acne rosacea is an exanthem consisting of tubercles with some disposition to suppurate, suppurating tubercles; and, moreover, of continual venous hyperaemia. It almost always commences at the tip of the nose, whence it spreads over the dorsum of the nose and over both cheeks, finally over the forehead and the rest of the face. First we notice an erythematous spot of small extent, painless, and distinctly traversed by dilated cutaneous veins. Upon this erythematous base single tubercles start up, which sometimes suppurate at an early period, but likewise spread in size after the pus is discharged..New tubercles keep constantly forming, new erythematous spots keep constantly breaking out, the skin becomes more and more hypertrophied, the veins become more and more varicose, the isolated little blotches change to large tubercles, cracks and deep rhagades, and even ulcers make their appearance, and the face looks very much disfigured in consequence of this extreme development of the nasal exanthem. At first the affection has remissions, but the dark redness never disappears entirely; at a later period the disorder keeps growing all the time. Abuse of wine and spirits is the cause of the disease in by far the larger number of cases; but it likewise breaks out on individuals of very moderate habits and where the disease cannot be traced Lupus..483 to any apparent cause. Among women the disease is of rare occurrence and most generally associated with menstrual anomalies. The disease is not often seen previous to the twenty-fifth year; its most frequent occurrence is after the fortieth. Overheating the system and immoderate drinking are very apt to cause a renewed outbreak.of the disease. It is exceedingly obstinate and, in its higher grades, is considered incurable. Hartmann recommends the following remedies for this disease: Carbo animalis, Kali carbonicurn, Arsenicum, Veratrum album, Cannabis, Acidum nitricum and phosphoricum, Thuya, Phosphorus, Euphrasia, Silicea, Ledum,.Ruta, Aurum, Kreosotum, Sepia, Petroleum, Plumbum, Sulphur, Acidum sulphuricum, Capsicum, Clematis, Psoricum. We cannot be blamed for not attaching any sort of importance to so many remedies for a morbid condition that is so characteristically marked by definite and unvarying symptoms, and so little involves the general health. Among the above-mentioned remedies, Carbo animalis, Arsenicum, Acidum nitricum, Aurum, Sepia and Sulphur are the only ones that promise partial success in the treatment of this disease; Carbo animalis and Arsenicum in the case of drunkards, and Sepia in the case of females. The treatment is always protracted and the results uncertain or imperfect, for the redness most generally remains. More recently we have witnessed a marked improvement after the following.treatment: We mix two drachms of the washed flowers of Sulphur with two ounces of distilled water, and after vigorously shaking this mixture, we cause a linen rag to be dipped into it and have the affected parts of the face moistened with this rag every evening before bed-time, allowing the liquid to dry upon the skin, which is washed clean again in the morning. By means of this simple proceeding the tubercles are made to disappear in a surprisingly quick period of time, and the redness likewise becomes less intense. The success of this proceeding never fails, and this instance again shows what an excellent effect the external application of a specific remedy will sometimes have, whereas the internal use of this same specific would either have no effect whatever, or else develop its curative results in a very tardy manner. 14. LInpis. Wolf, Jacob's Ulcer. Lupus is preeminently a disease of the lower classes; it occurs more frequently in some parts of the country than in others, but it 484 Diseases of the Skin. attacks individuals indiscriminately any where, without distinction of sex. Lupus has not yet been known to occur previous to the tenth and after the fortieth year; it is most frequently seen between the tenth and twentieth years of age. It is said to result from scrofulosis and congenital syphilis; this, however, is problematical, the more so since lupus likewise attacks persons of sound health and vigorous constitutions. It is never infectious. In describing this disease we will distinguish four different forms, namely: Lupus exedens, hypertrophicus, exfolians and non exedens. Lupus exedens commences with the formation of a few, rarely of a number of dark-red or brownish spots, or of dark, small papules resembling acne and seated upon a cuticle rendered smooth by infiltration. The spots slowly enlarge in size, the papules never increase rapidly in number; some even, which are situated in the centre of the affected spot, disappear, but are immediately replaced again by new ones starting up at the circumference. The epidermis on the affected spot continually exfoliates in small scales. After the papules have lasted for an indefinite length of time, and while the cutaneous hyperlemia and infiltration are increasing, the tops of the papules ulcerate and become covered with scurfs which are constantly growing in size and thickness and hide somewhat funnel-shaped ulcers that gradually unite in one and destroy the skin over a large extent of surface. The healing of the sore always commences in the centre, while the ulcerative process is being renewed at the periphery; this constitutes the lupus serpiginosus.. Lupus exedens is chiefly located in the face, but not unfrequently spreads to the neck and ears, and may likewise break out on other parts of the body. If the lupus is situated on the nose, it not unfrequently happens that the ulceration destroys the integuments, cartilages, and even bones. This seems to be a particular form of lupus that sometimes commences on the mucous membrane of the nose. Lupus exedens is the most frequently occurring form of lupus. Lupus hypertrophicus likewise breaks out more especially in the face; the papules increase to the size of large tubercles and the subcutaneous cellular tissue becomes strikingly hypertrophied, absorbing the tubercles in such a manner as to give rise to a prominent, deep-red elevation of the skin, which is soft to the feel and at whose periphery new papules keep constantly forming, some of which suppurate but never to any considerable extent. After a Lupus. 485 time a retracted cicatrix may be seen, traversing the diseased surface. Gradually the affection may invade the larger portion of the face, the ears, and may even spread below the chin; it is most commonly associated with considerable eversion of the lids. Lupus exfolians, which Hebra is unwilling to regard as a form of lupus, begins, like the former species, with a dark-red, superficially infiltrated spot upon which very flat or no papules are seated, and where the epidermis is constantly passing through a process of exfoliation. This spot never heals spontaneously, neither does it increase in size, the only alteration it exhibits, is a more marked paleness of the skin. It is more particularly seen among females, is easily confounded with naevus, from which it may be distinguished by the circumstance that this form of lupus does not break out until persons have reached an advanced age, whereas noevus is a congenital affection. Lupus non exedens commences like lupus exedens, except that the papules and tubercles do not ulcerate, but become dissolved and are reabsorbed, leaving a retracted cicatrix with atrophy of the skin at the affected spot, which looks like the scar from a burn. The different forms of lupus are exceedingly chronic; it is a rare event for lupus exedens to pass through its stage of ulceration rapidly and as it were subcutaneously. The disease is not painful, nor does it impair the general health; but it may easily bring on a very severe attack of conjunctivitis and by this means endanger the visual power. Treatment. In view of the great obstinacy of this affection, the first requisite towards a successful treatment, both on the part of the physician as well as the sick, is a good supply of patience, in order to give the remedies a fair chance to develop and exhaust their full effect. As far as particular remedies are concerned, we are still without a sufficient number of clinical cases to enable us to point to certain remedies as specifically adapted to lupus; on which account it is extremely desirable that every case of lupus should be made public in our Journals. Lycopodium is efficient in lupus exedens, if the disease has not yet existed too long, if the ulceration does not penetrate too far into the tissues, and if the disorder attacks feeble individuals of a sallow complexion. In lupus exedens as in acne rosacea, both of which conditions have a great deal in common, Graphites is one of the most important remedies; Graphites is particularly suitable for nasal lupus with deep-seated ulceration. Next to Graphites we recommend Aurum, more partic 486 Diseases of the Skin. ularly A urumn muriaticum. This remedy has' sometimes a surprising effect; it is indicated if the lupus starts from the Schneideiian membrane, or if it spreads from the skin, gradually invading the Schneiderian membrane, the bones and cartilages. In such cases Acidum nitricumn or Sepia are likewise suitable. Calcarea carbonica is adapted to lupus in the case of scrofulous individuals. For lupus hypertrophicus at an advanced stage all remedies prove ineffectual. At the commencement of this disorder we may recommenld Conium, Baryta, Graphites and Sulphur. Lupus exfolians is no less obstinate than the previous variety, and it is very difficult to pick out suitable remedies for this disease in our Materia Medica. We may try Arsenicun, next to which Sulphur, Phosphorus, Kali bichron,, and perhaps Thuya. Lupus non-exedens does not require any other remedies than lupus exedens. Other remedies for lupus are: lodium, Carbo animalis and vegetabilis, Silicea, Alumina. The usefulness of external applications is sometimes evident, but not unfrequently questionable; cauterization sometimes does a great amount of injury. In a case of lupus hypertrophicus, cauterization is especially a proceeding of doubtful propriety; like carcinoma, it usually grows so much more rapidly afterwards. If cauterization is insisted upon, it should be done with the pointed extremity of a stick of the Nitrate of silver; it is important to remember that only the little tubercles must be cauterized, not the whole of the diseased surface. All liquid caustics irritate the infiltrated skin still more, and make the disease worse than before. Cod-liver oil in large doses has sometimes an excellent effect; it might perhaps be sufficient to improve the constitution by good and substantial nourishment; for cod-liver oil is only useful to patients whose assimilative system has been very much impaired. 15. Helrpes. Tetter. All forms of herpes are characterized by the formation of little vesicles, clusters of which are seated upon an inflamed, red epidermis; the vesicles of one cluster breaking out simultaneously and running an acute course. In obedience to the habitual nomenclature as well as on account of differences in the treatment, we will consider the main forms each by itself. Herpes. 487 a. Herpes Facialis, Facial Herpes. This form of herpes accompanies a large number of febrile and chronic diseases without exerting any specially modifying influence over their course; except in pneumonia where this form of herpes is said to constitute a decidedly favorable omen. As an idiopathic exanthem it seems to manifest itself when indicating the commencerfient of a catarrhal affection, provided the catarrhal irritation is uot very intense. A first appearance predisposes most decidedly to relapses. Herpes facialis (also hydroa febrilis, herpes phlyctmenodes) most generally breaks out on the lips, less frequently on the cheeks, forehead, ears, eyelids. A tension, burning, and a marked sensation of swelling are experienced at a certain infiltrated spot, where the vesicles start up amid slight febrile motions and an unusual feeling Of lassitude. In the face they are always of a tolerably large size, but there are not many of them clustered together, they incline to run into one another; the cuticle of the spot where they are located does not show a very vivid redness; sometimes they are pitted or cleft. They contain a clear liquid which soon becomes dim and changes to a rather dark scurf that soon falls off, leaving for some time a red, somewhat infiltrated spot; burning pains likewise remain for some time. One attack does not render any treatment necessary, because it does not alter the course of the vesicles that are already out. But if new crops break out in rapid succession, at definite intervals, it may be well to give Hepar sulphuris or Arsenicun in not too frequently repeated doses. Bryonia is an excellent remedy if each succeeding crop of vesicles is accompanied by fever and great lassitude. If the affection is very obstinate and inveterate, Graphites may be given for it. [Aconite is better than any other medicine, if the eruption is acute, attended with fever; by using Aconite, the inflammation is speedily subdued, and the vesicles dry up, leaving small scurfs that fall off in a few days. II.] b. Herpes Prep tialis. This is principally located on the prepuce, although it not unfrequently appears on the scrotum, penis, and on the female sexual organs. It bears a very close resemblance to herpes facialis, the single clusters are small, the vesicles iot very numerous, and pro 488 Diseases of the Skin. portionallv of some size. It breaks out without any symnptonms of general disturbance; its appearance is accompanied by the burning peculiar to all forms of herpes. If the vesicles are seated on the outer skin, superficial, bright-yellow scurfs form on the fifth day; if seated on the inside of the prepuce, instead of vesicles we may have superficial ulcers which occasionally become covered with thin scurfs. The causes of this aftection are unknown; what is positively known is that syphilis does not modify the course or character of this form of herpes; its frequent association with balanorrhcea has led this to be regarded as the cause, whereas the reverse is true, that herpes is the cause of a more copious secretion of smegma. Herpes preeputialis acquires its importance from the fact that it is easily mistaken for chancre, especially by lay-persons who had been infected with chancre previously, and are now living in constant dread of constitutional syphilis. By fixing one's attention to the following points, the diagnosis becomes quite easy: herpes always consists of several vesicles seated close together upon an infiltrated base, in a case of chancre we scarcely ever see the primitive vesicle which is moreover completely isolated. If properly guarded, herpes very soon becomes covered with a scurf, the syphilitic ulcer never. The use of treating herpes proeputialis that is fully out, with a view of shortening its course, is very questionable; we have thought, however, on some occasions, that this course is abbreviated, if the proper remedy is administered. The main point is to counteract the tendency to relapses which is just as great in this form of herpes as in that of herpes facialis. Hepar sulphuris meets both these indications, provided its use is continued for some time after the disappearance of the efflorescence. Ilartmann, on the contrary, recommends the red precipitate and nitric acid. Caladium seguinum is likewise indicated, but more in the herpes pudendorum than in the preputial herpes of males. If balanorrhea is present, a frequent' and careful cleansing of the parts is of course indispensable. c. Herpes Zoster, Zona, Shingles. This form is characterized by the development of clusters of vesicles, of which there are generally several, along the tract of one or more spinal nerves, assuming on the trunk the shape of a zone or belt, but on the extremities breaking out in a more irregular form. The etiology of this exanthem is involved in obscurity, but every Herpes. 489 physician of extensive practice must have noticed that at certain periods of the year several cases break out simultaneously or soon one after the other, as though epidemic influences were prevailing. Zoster commences almost without exception with rheumatic pains in the parts where it is to break out, and is often attended with great lassitude and fever. The preliminary pains are not unfrequently like inflammatory pains. At the origin of one or more nerves, in company with a violent and painful burning, an efflorescence breaks out, after which papules arise, next, clusters of vesicles with tendency to run into one another. These vesicles remain out for four to six days, after which they change to flat scurfs. But inasmuch as a new cluster may arise after the first, and these successive crops may continue even after the first vesicles are entirely healed, the whole process may last even three weeks. It is very seldom the case that scratching or the friction of the clothes will cause a superficial ulceration. There maybe no pain during the continuance of the efflorescences, except the slight burning attending the successive breaking out of new crops of vesicles; but the greatest distress to the patient is the burning itching which is especially severe in bed. After the falling off of the crusts all pain is gone, or the peculiar itching may perhaps continue for some time, or finally- and this is not by any means a rare occurrence intercostal neuralgia of a very obstinate type may set in, apparently the more readily the less scantily the herpes was out on the skin. Treatment. Although zoster is an entirely typical form of disease, and we have no certain sign whether our medicines have diminished the number of vesicles, and abbreviated their course, yet it is certain that intercostal neuralgia sets in much less frequently when zoster is treated with appropriate remedies, which alone is a sufficient reason why zoster should never be allowed to run its course without proper medicinal treatment. The remedies indicated by Hartmann, namely: Jlercurius, ihus, Caustic'umn, Graphites, Sulphur, Arsenicum, Acidurm. nitricum and Euphorbium, with the exception of Rhus and EtEphorbiwu do not correspond with the general features of the disease. So far as Rhus is concerned, we know positively that the remedy is usually given without any benefit, although its symptomatic similarity would seem to recommend it, and as regards Euphorbium, we have no clinical evidence of its curative influence in this disease. Hercurius sometimes seems to prevent the breaking out of new clusters of vesicles. Mezereum is a remedy that renders excellent service in sonme respects and which 490 Diseases of the Skin. we cannot recommend with sufficient warmth, since intercostal neuralgia very seldom occurs after its use. We likewise suggest Oleum crotonis for experimental trials. The treatment of the subsequent neuralgia has been discussed in a former chapter. d. Herpes Iris and Circinnatus. Both these forms being essentially identical, we describe them together. Herpes iris consists of a larger vesicle or bulla which is not unfrequently filled with a blood-tinged liquid, and is surrounded by a wreath of smaller vesicles round whose external border another and larger wreath may form. The course is the same as that of other herpetic vesicles. The efflorescences first appear on the dorsa of the feet or hands, spreading on the extensor-surfaces from below upwards, and the new clusters of vesicles appearing either in the same relative position as the vesicles of herpes generally, or else again assuming the form of herpes iris. This form of herpes most frequently occurs among women and children. Herpes circinnatus which comes out in the same manner as herpes iris, is distinguished from the latter by the circumstance that the central bulla is missing, and that only the wreath of vesicles is present. Essentially both forms represent a form of herpes zoster on the extremities, so much more as they are sometimes succeeded by a peculiar pain which is not quite as severe as intercostal neuralgia. This affection which is altogether of rare occurrence, scarcely ever requires any other remedies than those that have been indicated for zoster. 16. Eczema. Eczema is one of those exanthems that has given rise to an immense amount of confusion. In the following sketch we reproduce essentially the views and statements of Hebra who enjoys the undisputed merit of having first cleared up this pathological process. The causes of eczema are either external irritants acting directly upon the skin, or else substances that affect this organ through the general circulation into which they had been absorbed, or finally constitutional influences. Heat, for instance, causes the so-called baker's itch; and heat, intense cold, salt-baths, mercurial frictions, Croton-oil, etc., a number of medicinal agents taken internally, fat food or food giving rise to an unusual deposition of fat, scrofulosis, Eczema. 491 affcctions of the female organs of generation, varices, and in general all kinds of stasis in the venous system, and a number of other similar circumstances and influences uniformly occasion eczema. Among the direct cutaneous irritants we distinguish: neglect in attending to the skin, vermin, friction by the clothes, continued rubbing of a part, for instance between the thighs when riding on horseback, and by continued walking. The reason why eczema has given rise to so much confusion is, because its various modes of origination were not properly considered, and an eye was only had to the various modifications which the appearance of an eczematous part undergoes in consequence of the formation of crusts or scurfs, scratching, dirt, hair of the body, etc. The typical form of eczema is obtained by rubbing Croton-oil upon the skin. Upon a red surface a number of vesicles or pimples shoot up which, if carefully guarded, heal in a few days leaving the affected portion of the skin injected. If the vesicles are not protected, if they are scratched or rubbed against by the clothes, the vesicles break, and crusts form, beneath which, if the irritation continues, the exudation continues likewise; or else the exudation may be so copious that no crusts can form, il which case the affected part always looks red and moist. If the irritation continues, the eczema spreads to the adjoining parts; scratching even communicates it to remote parts; beside the vesicles, pustules form likewise, the so-called eczema impetiginoides, and the original form of the exanthem is totally altered. Three modifications have been distinguished more particularly. First the eczema simplex. Upon the cuticle, having a natural color, small vesicles spring up irregularly, without forming any definite clusters; they gradually grow in size, break, discharge a moisture, heal by desquanation, then reappear again at the same place, and, favored by circumstances, pass into the following forms: Eczema rubrum; upon an injected and infiltrated spot, vesicles or small pimples spring up whose tops are filled with a watery moisture. After the bursting of the vesicles, desquamation ends the process.Finally eczema impetiginoides which is by far the most common. form of eczema, consisting of vesicles and pimples or papule, some of which change to pustules ending in the formation of crusts; hence this form is properly speaking a combination of eczema and impetigo. According to their locality we have several strikingly characterized forms of eczema, among which we distinguish the following: 492 Diseases of the Skin. Eczema of the face (crusta, lactea, crusta serpiginosa, porrigo larvalis, melitagra) is almost always of the impetiginoid form, it may invade the whole face at once, in which case it usually spreads to the ears; or else, it may remain confined to single localities, especially the cheeks and chin. As a rule, the skin is seldom, and only inconsiderably, infiltrated. This form chiefly attacks children. Eczema of the hairy scalp is likewise generally of the impetiginoid form; it makes the hair look and feel like felt, is very apt to spread a foul odor and to give rise to the formation of vermin, and is strikingly disposed to migrate beyond the hair, especially in the nape of the neck. This form of eczema is more particularly met with among adults. Eczema of the male organs breaks out on the penis in an acute form as eczema simplex; on the scrotum, on the contrary, it develops itself in a very chronic form as eczema rubrum. The last-mentioned form causes a horrid itching, and is generally maintained by a dilatation of the cutaneous veins on the scrotum. It is almost always confined to the scrotum, and is one of the most obstinate cutaneous affections. It is very seldom attended with the formation of pustules, but is very apt to lead to hypertrophy of the scrotal integuments. Eczema of the legs (salt-rheum) really depends almost exclusively upon varicose veins, more especially upon dilatation of the small cutaneous veins, whereas the larger vessels may continue in a perfectly normal condition. This eczema is extremely obstinate, itches most horridly, generally exacerbates in the spring and fall and is a species of eczema rubrum with occasional formation of pustules and an infiltration of the skin that makes it almost look like elephantiasis. Eczema has a peculiar tendency to attack correspondingly situated portions of the skin, even though the morbific irritation originally only acted upon one side of the body. Eczema seldom runs an acute course; the extremely acute form of "eczema universale" is very rare; on the other hand, it not unfrequently commences as an acute exanthem, with slight fever, but very soon assumes a chronic character. All the different forms of eczema itch more or less; scratching, which it is impossible to avoid, is a main cause of the onward spread and the protracted course of the disease. Every kind of eczema mray heal and does heal spontaneously, provided the chief requisite towards a cure, Eczema. 493 namely rest in a horizontal posture, is attended to. Eczema of the leg and scrotum is the least promising of any. Treatment. There is no cutaneous affection the cause of which is more easily discovered than that of eczema; nor is there any cutaneous affection where the removal of the cause is more essential to the success of our treatment. How the causal indication can be satisfied in every case, is difficult to determine owing to the diversity and number of the noxious influences giving rise to the eruption. Above all, local irritants giving rise to eczema, must be removed. In most cases eczema gets well of itself after the cause is removed; however, this is not always the case. Not unfrequently, after the exanthem has lasted for some time, the cutaneous disease acquires such a power of independent existence that a germ of inherent development has become ingrafted upon it. Eczema arising from constitutional causes, is of less frequent occurrence than any other. In the next place we have to aim at removing the cause, which is the chief promoter of the spread of eczema, namely scratching. In some cases it is impossible to prevent scratching, not only in the case of children, but likewise in that of adults; the itching is too intense and the scratching may be indulged in by the patient while he is sleeping, when the scratching cannot always be prevented in the long run. Under such circumstances it is a good plan to protect the hands by means of gloves or linen-bags and to remove the possibility of the nails being used; for there is no doubt that the laceration of the exanthem with the nails may transfer the eczema to other parts of the body by a regular process of grafting. In other cases scratching may be prevented by appropriately covering the eczematous part; on the leg, for instance, by applying suitable bandages, and in the case of children by covering the head with a calf's-bladder from which the mucous lining has been removed, and beneath which the exanthem sometimes heals with wonderful rapidity. Finally, we will name a few external applications, after the use of which the itching abates with more or less certainty. We ought to state that the greatest amount of irritation, which superinduces the itching, proceeds from the fully-developed crusts, whereas a moist eczema itches much less. Hence, the great object is to limit the formation of crusts as much as possible, or to prevent their excessive adhesion and desiccation. This object is reached by frequent ablutiot with cold or tepid water. We are aware that these are dreaded by many physicians and lay-people, but without 494 Diseases of the Skin. any adequate cause if proper care is used. A shower-bath is still preferable to washing; but the water must not have a fall of more than two feet, nor should the temperature be below fifty to sixty degrees. For eczema of the body tepid baths with frictions with soap are eminently to be commended. Liquid fats are excellent means of softening the crusts. By moistening them with almondoil, they break up into little fragments and can be removed more easily. Glycerine renders the same service. We must be careful, however, not to apply the oil too often, nor too much of it, otherwise it might result in the formation of pustules. Twelve to sixteen hours after the application of the oil the parts ought to be washed with soap. If very thick crusts are to be speedily removed, the surest means is the use of warm cataplasms which, however, must not be applied too long at a time, for the reason that cataplasms are likewise apt to lead to the development of pustules. Ointments, no.matter what they are made of, can never be of any use, but are generally hurtful. Regarding the medicinal treatment of eczema, we find a large number of medicines indicated in the books, most of them accompanied by all sorts of the most subtle and refined indications, which are not only of no practical use, but are not even substantiated by the symptomatic record of our Materia Medica. This subject afiords us another opportunity of satisfying ourselves of the injury resulting -from an inappropriate and vacillating nomenclature which positively defeats all the good that could be done by the accumulated records of clinical experience. Moreover, it is impossible to furnish reliable indications for every drug; the causative as well as the accompanying secondary phenomena are too varied and yet claim our chief attention, for the reason that the selection of a remedy that meets the cause of the eruption, is often exclusively determined by an investigation and knowledge of these phenomena. For this reason we have confined ourselves to merely naming the medicines, accompanying some of them by practical hints, and referring to the Materia Medica for special information, to obtain which the chronic nature of the exanthem affords abundant time. In order to facilitate the search of proper remedies we have associated them with the chief forms of eczema, each according to its locality. Eczema in the face, which chiefly attacks children, is often made to dry up in a few days by means of Oleum crotonss, third trituration. This remedy shows its curative action so much more cer Eczema. 495 tainly, the more recent the cutaneous affection; moreover, it is most appropriate in eczema rubrum, and is so much less adapted to the case, the more nearly the eczema assumes an impetiginoid form. If the disorder is of long standing, and hence more inveterate and more extensive, Lycopodium often acts with surprising beneft. Next to this remedy comes Sulphur. For crusta lactea proper Borax is recommended; Mercurius and Lycopodium, and likewise Hepar sulphuris are more reliable. [I have cured the most horrid cases of crusta lactea with Aconite and.Belladonna. It.] From Viola tricolor we have never obtained the least sign of a curative effect. For eczema impetiginoides the remedies we have just named, are likewise useful, but we have a much better selection among the following: Mercurius, Ilepar sulphuris, Antimonium crudumn, Cicuta virosa, Baryta. The last-named remedy has a specific action in cases where the eczema is accompanied by swelling of the lymphatic glands, and generally in the case of impoverished, scrofulous individuals. [We once cured a baby that had been vaccinated with impure vaccine, of a horrid attack of Crusta serpiginosa, by means of a single pellet of Arsenicum 200. On the third day after vaccination a black pustule broke out on the arm, which grew very rapidly to the size of a big potato and was filled with a foul-smelling corrosive ichor. An ugly-looking sore formed wherever the ichor touched the skin. In the course of twenty-four hours the face, neck and upper arms looked like one mass of blackish, dark-brown ulceration. This disorganizing process spread almost visibly. The eyes could no longer be seen. The sides of the face and neck, ears and part of the scalp were covered with this horrid crust. The mother likewise had become infected. One pellet of Arsenicurn 200 was placed upon the child's tongue at night. Next morning the sores had not spread any further, and those that existed were perfectly dry; they fell off in two days, and in a week after even the traces of the ulcers could no longer be seen. H.] If eczema is exclusively seated on and behind the ears, it is very obstinate; hence, the remedies must not be changed too often. The best remedies are: Mercurius, Iodiun, Kaci bichromiculm, Baryta, Sulphur. Eczema of the hairy scalp, both when confined to the scalp and when the face is invaded by the exanthem, either runs its course rapidly, more especially in the case of children, and generally in the form of eczema impetiginoides; or else it assumes the form of 496 Diseases of the Skin. eczema rubrum, most commonly in the case of adults, its course in such a case being very chronic. For the former acute form the best remedies are: Hepar sulph., Oleander, Lycopodium, Sulphur, Staphysagria, lMercurius (when a tendency to acute lymphadenitis prevails), Baryta carbonica (when attended with a painless or, at any rate, not acute inflammatory swelling of the lymphatic glands), Borax, Clematis, and, according to Hfartmann's urgent recommendation: Dutlcamara. For the obstinate eczema of adults we cannot recommend with sufficient emphasis Arsenicum and Graphites. With Arsenicum alone we have several times removed an exceedingly humid and horridly itching eczema in the space of six to eight weeks. Quite recently we have cured eczema of seventeen years' standing with Graphites, the patient being otherwise in a state of perfect health. She had to continue the remedy for over six months in the fourth to the sixth trituration, but even the excessively hypertrophied ears finally resumed their normal shape. We do not mean to deny the possible adaptation of Sulphur, Lycopodium, or even Phosphorus, to this disease, but we are obliged to confess that we have never derived the least curative effect from either of these remedies. Children passing through the second period of dentition are often attacked with an eczema that is' confinec to the lower border of the hairy scalp on the occiput, between both ears, and which, after being once cured, is apt to break out again, and is always accompanied by glaandular swellings of considerable size. Hartmann recommends Dulcamara for this eruption; we have used for it with perfect success: Rhus toxicod., Calcarea carbonica, Oleum crotonis. Eczema on the scrotum occurs in very few cases as an acute impetiginoid eczema; for such cases no medicine surpasses Croton oil in efficacy, beside which we call attention to Caladium seguinum, Rhus toxicod. and Hepar sulphuris. In cases of chronic eczema great patience is required not only on the part of the physician, but likewise on that of the patient; it is an exceedingly obstinate affection. The remedies to be employed in such cases are: Sulphur, Arsenicum, Lycopodiumn, Nitri acidum, also Graphites, Petroleum, Thuya and Anthrakokali. A fact deserving special consideration is the very common co-existence of profuse hemorrhoids with this eruption; the scrotal integuments are likewise traversed by a number of varicose veins. Eczema between the thighs is generally cured by means of lMercurius or Lycopodium; of course the cause has to be strictly avoided. Daily ablutions of the part with good soap are indispensable. Impetigo. 497 Eczema On the leg is likewise very obstinate, no less so than eczema on the scrotum; in order to cure this disease, we have to neutralize the effect of the varices by a carefully applied roller bandage. If the eczema has the impetiginoid form, it is advisable to place the patients for a short time in a horizontal posture, and to order flax-seed poultices to the part; at the same time Rhus toxicod. or Carbo vegetcbilis may be given internally, and, if erysipelatous redness sets in: Mer curius. - Afterwards the chief remedy is Staphysagria which is often sufficient to eradicate the disease; we likewise call attention to Graphites, Sulphur, Lyeopodium. Beside the above-mentioned remedies the following are likewise more or less homleopathic to eczema: KiDreasotun, Aurum muriaticum, Sarsaparilla, Sepia, Silicea, Alumina, Coniumn Ranunculucsocleratus, also Tartarus sitiiatus. 17. Impetigo. By this term we designate the breaking out of small pustules on the skin, either scattered or in clusters. This affection is traceable to the same causes that have been pointed out as causes of eczema; indeed, both these exanthems generally appear associated. Besides this, however, impetigo is generally the expression of a constitutional affection, more particularly of scrofulosis, the first symptom of which is not unfrequently the formation of pustules. Among adults the disease may be caused by an excessive supply as well as by an extreme deprivation of good and nourishing ioced. Owing to peculiar causes, a subacute impetigo may break out after vaccination over the whole body. The appearance of the pustules is sometimes accompanied by symptoms of an inconsiderable febrile irritation, generally, however; without the general organism being involved. At a certain spot on the cuticle, seldom at several spots at once, an efflorescence makes its appearance, attended with itching and burning which, however, never equals in intensity the itching and burning of herpes or eczema; very soon the efflorescent cuticle appears covered with small vesicles of the size of lentils or peas, containing an opaque liquid; after having been out a few days, the vesicles break, and their contents change to yellowish, greenish and brownish crusts, which adhere with a tolerable degree of tenacity and, on falling off, leave for some time red and fiat cicatrices. In the case of a single pustule this course is terminated in ten days to a fortnight. But new pustules keep forming ever and anon, adjoining the first 32 '498 Diseasesof the Skin. pustule; they cover a large portion of the skin, and in this manner the whole process assumes a chronic form. While the new crops of pustules are developing, the exudative process generally continues at the previously-affected places, by which means the originally not very thick scurfs are changed to crusts of considerable thickness, beneath which a superficial ulcerative process may still be going on (impetigo rodens). With impetigo the lymphatic glands involved in the exanthem, almost always swell and become inflamed. In pursuing this course the exanthem may continue on for years, whereas, at other times, the whole course of the eruption may be ended in a few weeks. Scratching and the consequent grafting with the nails contribute a great deal to the spread of the pustules; by this means the eruption may easily be transferred to other individuals, as often happens in the case of children's nurses. Impetigo-pustules, if not excited by local irritants, such as plasters or moist poultices, break out chiefly in the face (crusta lactea, melitagra, porrigo larvalis), upon the hairy scalp (porrigo, tinea), on the nape of the neck and on the lower extremities. The pustules at times appear isolated (impetigo sparsa), at times in large groups or clusters (impetigo figurata), and at other times upon a brightly inflamed base (impetigo erysipelatodes). The pustules generally involving a hair-follicle, the hair, in impetigo of the hairy scalp, is not only glued together in clusters, but is likewise dry and brittle; a good portion of it falls out, giving rise to bald spots of more or less size. Otherwise the constitutional condition of the patient is not impaired by this affection. In treating a case of impetigo, the causal indication is just as important as in a case of eczema, especially if we deal with little children, and a suspicion is consequently excited in our minds, of the disorder being occasioned by a scrofulous taint. In their case it is necessary to attend closely to their diet, cleanliness, etc. A very common cause is not, as is often supposed, too fat milk, but the excessive and too frequent use of milk. We likewise not unfrequently see children attacked with impetigo whom their mothers, especially in the country, nurse until the little ones are two or three years old. Many occupations carried on in a high temperature, are likewise apt to induce impetigo, and all our efforts to cure the disease would be fruitless, if this circumstance were lost sight of. Local treatment has to be conducted in accordance with the rules laid down for eczema; above all, the crusts have to be carefully removed and their return prevented; the further spread of the Ecthyma, Rupia. 499 exanthem by scratching has to be limited as much as possible by appropriate barriers. In resorting to external applications, we must not overlook the fact that the skin of many individuals is exceedingly vulnerable, and that the application of oil or of water-compresses, etc., to such a skin may very speedily excite impetigo, or increase it where it already exists. Medicines employed for this affection may deceive us regarding their curative powers, for the reason that such an exanthem often heals spontaneously within a few weeks. A spontaneous cure of this kind can never be determined beforehand, for it but too often happens that an apparently acute or subacute course is changed to a very chronic one, or that the disorder is continually oscillating between remissions and exacerbations. On this account it is proper that suitable medicines should be given at once at the commencement. In the case of children, and when the face or the hairy scalp is invaded, Mercurius renders the best service as long as the efflorescence of the cuticle continues. Hepar sulph. calc. sometimes arrests the disorder at the onset. If the affection has assumed a chronic character, Antimonium crudum, Lycopodizum, Arsenicumn, Calcarea carbonica, Acidum nitricum or Clematis have -to be resorted to. Lycopodium and Staphysagria are particularly adapted to impetigo of the legs. According to our experience, Sulphur is utterly ineffectual in this affection; Hartmann, on the contrary, writes of this and other remedies as follows: "In impetigo Sulphur is undoubtedly one of the most distinguished remedies, provided it is not given in too scanty a dose; even a bright efflorescence of the base does not counter-indicate it. Among chronic cutanious affections Graphites seems to be characteristically adapted to impetigo. Acidun muriaticum is useful for impetigo on the legs in the case of old people, with burning pain." He likewise mentions Coniuzm, Carbo vegetabilis, Sepia, and a number of other remedies that are scarcely ever in homneopathic relation with the case. For impetigo rodens Hartmann recommends Staphysagria, Kaci hydriodicum; however, his delineation of impetigo does not seem to us to represent an exact image of the disease. 18. Ecthyma, Rupia. Both ecthyma and rupia (or rhypia), according to their general characteristic properties, are nothing else than forms of impetigo, that is: pustules upon the skin, differing only in size. Both may have the same etiology as impetigo, and may likewise break out on individuals of apparently sound health; in most cases, Pemphygus. 501 Treatment. Ecthyma associated with scabies and the syphilitic rupia will be treated of when we come to speak of the itch and syphilis. If not accompanied by malignant symptoms, ecthyma hardly requires any medical treatment. Otherwise our best remedy is Antim. tartar., which is suitable as long as the cutaneous disease has not assumed a chronic character. Mercurius is decidedly inferior to Tartar Emetic. Arsenicum, Staphysagria and perhaps Lycopodium may be tried to keep off the new crops of blebs. As long as rupia does not assume a gangrenous character, Rhus toxicod., Acidum nitricum, muriaticum.or phosphoricum are sufficient to cure it; but if the affected parts are invaded by malignant ulceration, we meet this change with excellent effect by means of Arsenicura and Secale cornutum, to which Carbo vegetabilis and Staphysagria are decidedly inferior although they may at times be useful. The main object is to treat the general condition; both exanthems will disappear so much sooner and will be so much less disposed to break out again, the more carefully the skin is attended to, together with the internal treatment. 19. Pemphygus. This affection which is likewise described under the name of pompholix, is characterized by the formation of large blisters. Its origin, especially that of the acute form, is involved in obscurity, whereas the chronic form is evidently traceable to a constitutional taint,, which is so much more probable as the chronic form of this exanthem is so apt to terminate fatally. Pemphygus may represent an acute affection, but, as such, is of very rare occurrence; we do not consider it necessary to devote any more space to it. Chronic pemphygus most generally commences without fever; nevertheless in cases where the disease consists of several successive crops of blisters, with intermediate free intervals, it often happens that each special eruption sets in with some fever and pains in the limbs. The disease commences with the breaking out of lentilsized red spots, attended with itching and burning; soon a white appearance is perceived in the middle of the spot, which increases rapidly in size, and forms the blister; this sometimes remains quite small, and at other times grows to one inch and a half in diameter. The blisters are filled with a clear fluid, very tense, break very easily, after which no incrustation forms, but the detached and dry epidermis separates, leaving for some time a moist excoriation, so 502 Diseases of the Skin. that a blister runs its" whole course in about afortnight. Inasmuch as the blisters seldom cease to form after their first appearance, on the contrary new blisters form almost every day, the disease niy become very much protracted and all the stages of the pemphygusdisease may be seen and observed on the same patient. Pemlphygus is most frequently seated on the leg, blisters may, however, break out over the whole body. The course of the eruption varies greatly. Either the blisters come out in crops separated by intervals of weeks or even months;-this is a comparatively favorable sign;or else the affection commences with a few or with only one blister, new blisters continuing to form, which involves a loss of serous plasma that may, after a lapse of time, lead to gradual emaciation, hectic fever and death. At all events pemphygus is one of the most obstinate and at the same time one of the most dangerous cutaneous affections. This statement, however, only applies to the above-described form, not to the pemphygus which, like the ecthyma-pustule, sometimes breaks out as a secondary symptom of other cutaneous affections and a variety of other acute diseases, and which has no particular significance. Trecatmee t. Considering the importance of this exanthem, we are not particularly blessed with reliable remedies for it. We may compare: Cantharides, Causticurn, Kreosotum, Lachesis, Dulcamara, Bhus toxicodendron, Ranunculus bulbosus and sceleratts, Secale cornutum. These remedies are theoretically indicated by our provings, but, so far as we know, not one of them has yet cured a single case of this disease. We doubt very much whether Dulcamara is capable of doing any thing for such a deep-seated constitutional disorder. Lachesis of all other remedies has the best and most marked symptoms. Mercuries seems to be in curative rapport with pemphygus. Some years ago we saw in Vienna a woman who for several years had been a nurse in one of the sections for syphilitic patients, and who had rubbed up a good deal of quicksilver with her bare hand. Since then she was attacked with pemphygus, but whether heir handling of Mercury was the cause, is of course problematical. In the subsequent course of the disease other remedies have to be employed for the general consequences of the exanthem rather than for the exanthem itself. Arsenicun, China, Sulphur, Ferrum may possibly keep off the threatening decline, but they are not homceopathically related to pemphygus. Furunculus and, Carbunculus. 503 20. Fuiruneulus and Carbuneulus. Anthrax. Although both furuncle and carbuncle are generally regarded as surgical diseases, yet we are perfectly satisfied that either of these pathological processes can be managed by internal treatment in such a manner as to make all surgical interference unnecessary. A furuncle generally proceeds from a single cutaneous gland, or else from several in close proximity to one another, and the first deposition of the exudation Stakes place into the glandular follicle. The inflammation, however, is not limited to the gland, but spreads to the surrounding cellular tissue, enveloping the follicle in a firm exudation-plug. Amid severe pains, and sometimes in company with intense fever, pus forms in the space of three to ten and more days, and breaks through the skin. Usually the exudation-plug or core cannot be removed until some time after the opening has existed. Furuncles of some size generally break out singly, especially on the buttocks, but it very commonly happens for one furuncle to be followed by another; lay-people consider it an established fact that seven boils must break out one after the other, which shows how seldom a boil is without successors. The cause of boils is very often a local irritation; but there are real furuncleepidemics which have to be accounted for by atmospheric influences. Boils very often occur during convalescence from severe acute diseases and after the excessive use of fat as an article of diet. Carbuncle or anthrax is regarded by many as a combination of several furuncles; but in our opinion this theory is erroneous. A boil is never attended with gangrenous destruction; with a carbuncle this is the rule. Carbuncle, moreover, has its favorite localities, namely the integuments along the dorsal spine, especially in the nape of the neck; less frequently the sternum or the inguinal region. Carbuncle, moreover, is chiefly met with among older persons; boils, on the contrary, may occur at any age, especially among young people. Otherwise it is difficult to decide what are the causes of carbuncle, for it occurs among individuals with cachectic and deteriorated constitutions as well as among perfectly healthy and robust persons. Carbuncle begins and runs its course with great pain. At the painful spot a mere change is scarcely perceived at first; soon, however, it acquires a bluish and sickly look, but without any perceptible swelling. The pus seldom escapes before the sixth day, generally in several places at once, which 504 Diseases of the Skin. afterwards unite and from which a thick, easily decomposed pus is discharged, mixed with a quantity of shreds of detached cellular tissue. This whole process is attended with fever which is apt assume an adynamic type and, after the sudden supervention o cerebral symptoms, may terminate fatally. In a favorable case the cure takes place very slowly, because the loss of substance may be many square inches in extent. Further details about the course of the disease will be given in the next paragraph. Treatnent. Boils require very seldom any medicinal treatment; warm poultices bring the boil to a head in a few days. If the boil is very large, attended with considerable inflammation of the cellular tissue,and a good deal of fever, and if it breaks very tardily, a few doses of Mercurius vivus, to be followed by a few doses of Hepar sulph. calc. hasten the course. We do not advise lancing, because the pains and the suppuration generally last much longer in such a case, whereas, if the boil breaks spontaneously, it generally heals in a few days; however, we should see to the removal of the core at as early a period as possible, for the presence of the core keeps up the suppuration. To eradicate a tendency to a constant return of new boils Acidun phosphoricumn or nitricurn and still more Arsenicum have seemed to us useful remedies. As a matter of course it is very difficult to decide this point. If we desire carbuncle to run a benign course, we have to treat it with medicines from the commencement. Acidur nitricum,, Silicea, Carbo vegetabilis, Seeale cornutumn are recommended for carbuncle, but it is difficult to determine special indications for each of these remedies; nor are we acquainted with definite and permanent results in any case. Arsenicun, given at the onset, renders excellent service, and contributes greatly towards securing a favorable result. Secale cornutum, which is too little thought of in such cases, may be given if cerebral phenomena set in at an early period of the disease; Phosphorus may likewise be indicated under such circumstances. Silicea is suitable if the suppuration has fully set in. Here, too, as in the case of boils, we urgently advise against the artificial opening of the carbuncle, more especially if it is premature. An early access of atmospheric air favors the development of gangrene, pus is but too readily taken up by the cut vessels, and the inflammation is enabled to spread. We are fully aware that surgeons are of a decidedly contrary opinion; but we can only ask them whether they have ever attempted the cure of a carbuncle without a crucial incision. No opponent of our view will be able Seborrhbea. 505 to answer this question affirmatively. After the carbuncle is broke, the shreds of cellular tissue have to be removed as soon and as completely as possible; the sore should likewise be cleansed very frequently. Warm poultices ought to be applied from the start. 21. Seborrkhea. An excessive secretion of sebum on the hairy scalp is a regular occurrence during the first year of infancy. It may likewise take place among perfectly healthy and robust men up to the age of thirty; women afflicted with uterine diseases, and likewise pregnant womlen, often suffer from it. Seborrhea chiefly takes place on the hairy scalp, more frequently on the sinciput than on the forehead, nose and on the sides of this organ. On the hairy scalp the secreted sebum forms fine yellowishwhite scales or, as in the case of children, incrustations which sometimes acquire considerable thickness. In the face the sebum either remains liquid, in which case the affected part looks somewhat injected and has a shining, greasy appearance, and the grease can be removed by means of blotting paper; or else the sebum coagulates very rapidly, forming a yellowish, scurfy, soft lining, beneath which the skin has a natural appearance, except a little redder than usual; numerous excretory ducts of the follicular glands are likewise seen. This disorder, oscillating between more or less, always runs a very chronic course. It is of no great importance, for the general health is not affected by it, except that the patients experience in the affected part a disagreeable tension and prickling, or a violent itching on the hairy scalp. The seborrhcea of pregnant females almost always ceases after confinement. Seborrhcea is important in so far as it is easily confounded with pityriasis and eczema, a mistake that is apt to lead to erroneous and even injurious management. The diagnosis is secured by the circumstance that in seborrhcea the epidermis remains intact. Tr'eatment. Internal treatment is only necessary in cases where the affection is of a primary origin, or depends upon uterine disorders. In the last-mentioned case our chief and, indeed, sole object should be to remove the cause, for the cure of the uterine derangements involves the disappearance of the cutaneous affection. As a primary affection the disease is very obstinate; quite recently, in the case of a robust young farmer, we have employed in vain 506 Diseases of the Skin. every imaginable remedy, more particularly.Aurum, Graphites, Lycopodium, Acidurn nitricum, Calcarea carbonica. The only remedy that improved the case, was Arsenicurn. Tried remedies for this disease are as yet very scarce. [We have cured a case of seborrhcea where the patient, a young woman, looked as if she were enveloped in a coat of liquid and shining grease, with nothing but Aconite and Sambucus; the treatment lasted about two weeks. H.] Too much washing, either with cold or warm water, is hurtful. If soap is used, it must be very mild, lest it should prove disagreeable. Washing with spirits is sometimes useful. Fat food must be strictly avoided. 22. Favuis. loney-comnb Tetter, Scald-head. This cutaneous affection, which is likewise described under the names of porrigo decalvans or tinea favosa, is characterized by the accumulation of multitudes of fungi around the roots of the hairs, hence their exclusive appearance on the hairy portions of the skin. Favus is a disease of the lower classes. It only attacks individuals who pay no sort of attention to cleanliness. In other respects such individuals may either enjoy the most perfect health, or else be of sickly and cachectic constitutions; favus may attack either class. This exanthem can be transferred to other persons by hats, caps and other head-gear, likewise by sleeping in the same bed; it has likewise been transmitted purposely from one individual to another. A single favus-efflorescence has its origin in the orifice of a sebaceous follicle in the form of a small, imbedded, not painful papule, which is perforated by the hair and keeps constantly increasing in breadth and height, until the characteristic crust finally arises from it. This crust has the shape of a dish, with a rounded central depression and round elevated borders; it has a yellowish or gray tint, without any exudation underneath, and has a peculiar odor. If, as usually happens in old cases, the efflorescences are close together, they unite to an uneven incrustation, at whose borders the distinct crusts'are never missing, so that the diagnosis is quite easy. The consequences of favus are: Partial atrophy of the skin in consequence of the crusts being imbedded. in it; eczema occasioned by the scratching; destruction of the hair on the affected parts;. on the other hand, this disorder has no influence upon the Scabies, Itch. 507 general state of the constitution. The disease runs a very chronic course, yet spontaneous cures occur, although very tardily and not without corresponding modifications in the hygienic circumstances of the patients. According to what we have stated concerning the etiology of the disease, we deem an internal treatment of it useless and ineffectual; tlartmann's remarks in this respect have no reference to true favus. If constitutional disorders are present simultaneously with favus, they have, of course, to be treated with appropriate remedies; at the same time they must not be regarded as the originating cause of favus. This can only be cured by removing the crusts in which the fungi are imbedded, and by preventing their return. The surest means of accomplishing this result, is care and cleanliness. The removal of the crusts is secured by softening them with oil, and afterwards removing them together with the perforating hair. This is a very tedious, but sure undertaking. Every sickly-looking hair has to be pulled out singly, for the reason that the disease has already invaded the soil in which it grows. [This eruption is treated with success in some cases by means of Iris versicolor; a cerate is applied to the scalp, and a few drops of the tincture, even as many as twenty, in half a tumblerful of water given internally, in teaspoonful doses, three or four times a day. See Hale's New Remedies. H.] ZS. Scabies, Itch. It is with a certain reluctance that we enter upon a discussion of this affection, since we are satisfied that our views concerning it differ from those of most of our Colleagues. We will, therefore, anticipate all objections by stating that the opinions which we promulgate in this chapter, are simply our ownf, not those entertained by a majority of our Colleagues, whose opinions we have not even sufficient space to refute. The itchis caused by a parasite, the acarus scabiei or sarcoptes hominis. Any one who wishes to become specially acquainted with the natural history of this animalcule, is referred to an article by Gudden, in Vierordt's Archiv, 1855; series XIV, No. 1, from which we transfer the following leading points. The female full-grown acarus is from I to 4 of a line broad, having an ovoid shape, with wavy lines; it is provided with eight limbs and a number of long hairs. To the bare eye it looks like a 508 Diseases of the Skin. faintish-white or yellowish corpuscle. Each acarus contains from 40 to 60 eggs which are laid seriatim and from which the young acarus originates in about eight days. The male acarus is much smaller than the female, and is said to die soon after sexual converse. In the cold the acarus remains quiet, but in the warmth its movements become very lively; the young acarus especially shows a disposition to wander. If an acarus is placed upon the skin, it very soon commences to burrow by placing itself in a vertical position, supporting itself by the bristles projecting from the posterior part of its body. Having perforated the hard layer of the epidermis, it lowers the posterior part of its body continuing to burrow horizontally and very soon beginning to lay eggs. At intervals it makes an opening in the canal towards the outside, probably to afford the young a passage to crawl out. The cuniculi of the male acarus are short, those of the female often one inch in length, generally with irregular curves; but the young acari soon again leave the spot where they had buried themselves, hence do not form cuniculi, but papules and vesicles. From ten days to a fortnight elapse between the time when the acarus first begins to burrow and when the characteristic itching is first perceived. The places preferred by the acarus, are the hands, between the fingers and on the sides, the surface of the wrists, the inner sides of the extremities, the entrance to the axille, the abdomen, the inter-gluteal space, the region around the nipples, especially those of the mammae, the penis and scrotum, and the feet around the t'arsus. The acarus, however, may locate itself anywhere on the trunk, but is never met with in the face. The cuniculi the presence of which is indispensable to establish a correct diagnosis, are most easily found on the hand, at the places indicated; they appear like fine, irregularly dotted dark streaks, owing to dirt having adhered to the orifices of the cuniculi; whereas on the trunk the cuniculi have a whitish appearance. The commencement of the cuniculus is marked by single scales of the epidermis which, being detached, afford an opening to the cuniculus which remains uninterrupted in its further course. The end of the cuniculas is recognized by a whitish-yellow, somewhat elevated point which hides the acarus. If the epidermis is carefully removed at this spot by means of a needle and the needle is firmly pressed against, and moved over the cuniculus, the acarus will readily adhere to the needle and can easily be recognized by means of a Scabies, Itch. 509 glass. With a little practice it will be found quite easy to catch an acarus. In the efflorescences occasioned by the young acari, one of them is seldom found for the reason that they wander about from place to place very rapidly. On individuals who do not wash themselves with care, a cuniculus is most easily discovered by lightly passing a finger moistened with saliva over it several times, in consequences of which the dirt penetrates between and adheres to the scales of the epidermis. In persons with callous hands the acarus has to be sought at the wrist. A transmission of the acarus is most easily effected when it has the greatest desire to wander, hence in a warm bed; it takes place nmuch less frequently by touching objects that had been handled by persons affected with the itch; but it is easily accomplished through wearing apparel. The phenomena caused by the acarus upon the skin, proceed from it either directly or indirectly. The presence of the acarus upon the skin remains without symptoms except a slight itching which is not always present, and does not always become very troublesome even when, as is often the case, especially on the penis, the cuniculus is closed by a little exudation deposited below it and on its side. But immcdiately after leaving the canal, the young acari again bury themselves in its proximity, and small papules topped with fine vesicles break out close to the primary canal, itching violently, and being either speedily lacerated by scratching or, as in the case of children, changing to pustules and forming scabs and crusts of various sizes. The indirect phenomena, according to l-ebra, owe their origin entirely to the scratching caused by the itching; as an evidence of this fact he refers to the circumstance that children and paralytic persons who do not scratch, remain free from these symptoms, and that in healthy persons they are only met with in localities that can be scratched. First papulce, each perforated by a little hair, brealk out, less frequently vesicles or pustules. These papules are scratched, after which their tips become covered with fine, darl-looking scabs. After the cutaneous irritation has lasted for, some time, pustules arise from the papules. On parts of the body that are exposed to constant pressure, or to constant pressure with friction, the skin soon appears infiltrated and is thickly covered with the above-mentioned efflorescences, as for instance round the waist in the case of females on account of the clothes being fastened around too tightly, or in the case of 510 Diseases of the Skin. shoemakers on the nates. In these instances, as in any other persistent cutaneous irritation, eczema may break out. After this explanation it behooves us to examine the question whether, in a case of what is called the itch, and where the abovedescribed process takes place in its totality, the mechanical irritation of the acarus or some other coexisting agent is the cause of the disorder. The doctrine has been started that acari, like Cantharides, contain some corrosive poison which is communicated to the skin and becomes the origin of a. chronic itch-dyscrasia. But many other irritations of the skin produce the same symptoms as the itch, without a virus having been their cause; we notice, moreover, that the itch is always confined to the localities occupied by the acari; that it spreads in proportion as the acari increase in number, and that it ceases to spread as soon as the acari are destroyed. In such a case the consecutive cutaneous phenomena may remain for some time, but the same thing takes place in the case of eczematous eruptions occasioned by other cutaneous irritants, and which, in the loig run, had assumed the character of independent diseases. There is not a single symptom connected with the whole course of the itch, that might lead us to think that the consecutive phenomena in the case of the itch differ from those manifested by other kinds of vermin, such as lice or fleas. If we are asked whether all the old doctrines about the terrible consequences of the itch are false, we answer that we partially admit and partially reject them. They are unfounded in. so far as they originate in the hypothesis of a specific itch-virus; on the other hand, they are founded in so far as the itch, especially if the disease remains for a long time'uncured, and more particularly as it used to be managed in former times, may superinduce consecutive diseases. If the body is rubbed for a long time with ointments containing noxious substances, the organism undoubtedly suffers in consequence of such a proceeding, and no homceopath would want to deny this. The absurd bathing for hours, sweating for days in overheated rooms, and other similar measures, may make the healthiest person sick, and develop germs of sickness in an apparently healthy individual. Even the continued disturbance of.the cutaneous functions by the itch may cause sickness, the more so, the more coexisting constitutional disturbances affect the exanthem unfavorably and vice versa. The best proof that the itch is not a constitutional disease, is afforded by the circumstance that, if the destruction of the acarus Scabies, Itch. 511 is effected with all due caution, the equilibrium of the organism is never disturbed by such a proceeding. This view does not upset the formerly entertained doctrines of secondary diseases resulting from the suppression of the itch. Only if such secondary affections resulted, it was not the itch but prurigo. Those who had no knowledge of the acarus, must necessarily have mistaken prurigo for the itch, and it is the suppression of prurigo that leads to the most dangerous constitutional diseases and more particularly to tuberculosis. After these remarks we need not say what we think of Hahnemann's theory of psora and of Psoricum as a medicinal agent. Psoricum might have had something in its favor, if it had been prepared from the acari themselves. Treatment. Although we have tried in the course of this work, to be in accord with our homceopathic Colleagues in most things, yet in the matter of scabies we have to differ with many of them. We hold that all treatment of the itch, as long as the acarus is not extirpated, is downright absurdity. It is our opinion that the cures of the itch which are reported as having been effected by the exclusive use of internal remedies, are not compatible with correctly scientific observation. The destruction of the acari is the causal indication which not only can, but has to be satisfied. The most simple, never hurtful proceeding and which never fails, if carefully carried out, is the following: First the patient is placed in a water-bath of about 920 F., in which he remains for half an hour. At the end of this period of time he rubs himself well with brown soap, more particularly at the places where the acarus is principally located. By this means the cuniculi are almost completely opened. After the bath the patient is thoroughly dried and enveloped in a woollen blanket for a quarter or half an hour, for the purpose of removing every particle of moisture from the skin and at the same time enabling the ointment to thoroughly penetrate the cuniculi. We now resort to frictions with the following ointment: Two ounces of lard, two drachms of the washed flowers of Sulphur, and half a drachm of the Sulphuret of Lime. These proportions are abundantly sufficient for every adult. The whole body, except the head and neck, has to be rubbed very carefully, especially the places that constitute the favorite haunts of the acarus. The rubbing is best done by two persons at once, one on each side. After the rubbing, the patient is again enveloped in the woollen blankets, in which he remains for an hour and a half. At the end of this period 512 Diseases of the Skin. he is placed in a warm bath of a temperature of 920 F. and, while in the bath, thoroughly rubbed with brown soap. After the bath the patient may take a shower-bath, and be kept in the room for some time longer in order to guard against taking cold. After such a proceeding which we have employed in a number of cases, we have never seen a relapse. The best method of cleansing the clothes as well as the bed-linen is to boil them at a temperature of 2000 F. Under certain circumstances the proceeding here recommended may have to be somewhat modified. In a case of pustulous scabies which is so often met with among children, the pustules have to heal first, otherwise the soap would irritate the skin too much. According to their ages, children only require one-tlird, one-quarter or one-half of the quantity of ointment, and, on account of their skin being so much more tender, need not be kept in the baths, nor remain in the blankets as long as adults. If several members of a family are infected at the same time, they have to undergo the treatment simultaneously. Frictions with brown soap alone are hardly sufficient to kill the acari; still they may be resorted to twice a week in order to make doubly sure of the result. After the cure which does not cause any marked irritation of the skin, this organ is allowed about a fortnight for its restoration to a normal condition. If, after this, any efflorescences remain, they are treated according to the principles laid down above. In most cases the daily use of a tepid or shower-bath is sufficient to complete the whole cure. We have never known this treatment which can be easily pursued in a private family, to be followed by any of the terrible consecutive diseases described in the books. Lest we should be accused of condemning what we know nothing about, we will here state that we have tried every remedy recommended for the itch by homceopathic practitioners, in the form of triturations, tinctures, attenuations, high and low potencies without the least benefit. The acari would not die and the pustules kept increasing in number. In one case, that of a child of six months, we fancied that Sulphur 6 did arrest very speedily the disposition to the formation of pustules. We are satisfied that in making the preceding statements, we shall give offence to many homceopathic physicians, but we shall be happy to hear all condemnations and objections, and shall deem it a pleasure and a duty to answer them. ELEVENTH SECTION. Constitutional Diseases. A. ACUTE AND CHRONIC CONTAGIOUS DISEASES. 1. tforbilli. Measles. Measles are not only a contagious, but a more or less universally epidemic form of disease. In most cases they arise by a transfer of the. contagium. This is contained in the catarrhal secretions, and is transmitted by contact, and still more frequently by the air. It is not very susceptible of being indirectly transmitted by the clothing; this theory is probably adhered to with so much zeal for no other reason than because the doctrine that measles are contagious, is to be maintained at all hazards. The incubation-period of the transmitted contagium is eleven to twelve days, as anybody can easily determine for himself in any outbreak of epidemic measles. The contagium is most active shortly before the appearance of the exanthem upon the skin. We have observed this to be the rule in the epidemic that has now been raging among us for upwards of a year. An apparently mild catarrh is taken no notice of, the child is sent to school in spite of it, and next day the little one is down with the measles. Exactly on the twelfth day after, the nearest neighbors of the sick children are attacked. In this way schools become the true nurseries of the exanthem, whence it afterwards spreads to families. After the exanthem is once out, its infectious nature is decidedly less, and becomes entirely extinct as soon as desquamation sets in. Personally we hold that epidemic measles can spread without contagion, although this is not often the case. We likewise believe in this possibility in the case of scar33 513 514 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. latina and small-pox. It would lead us too far, if we would corroborate this assertion by the evidence of facts; we bespeak so much more urgently the attention of our Colleagues to this fact in existing epidemics. Measles attack individuals of every age and sex, but least frequently very old people and infants. Inasmuch as almost everybody has an attack of measles in his early youth, they are on this account seldom met with among old people. One attack of measles generally protects persons against a second one; exceptions, however, are not very rare, although it behooves us to guard against mistaking roseola for measles. [In the late war measles raged with great fierceness in many of our regiments, and, under allceopathic treatment, destroyed a number of lives. H.] ANo later than two weeks ago we treated two little girls in the same family who were down with the measles, one severely, the younger without any marked constitutional symptoms, but with the eruption in full bloom. Three weeks after desquamation had taken place, the younger child was again attacked with all the preliminary symptoms of measles; indeed, they again broke out with much intensity, attended with severe constitutional symptoms, but in other respects running their course regularly. The ordinary season for measles are the months when catarrhs are common, from October till April; nevertheless measles raged here very extensively last summer, which, it is true, so far as the temperature was concerned, was more like winter. This circumstance alone ought to suffice to show that the measles are not exclusively propagated by a contagium. Sympintoms ard Course. We have already stated that the incubation-period of the measle-contagiuni, until the efflorescences break out upon the skin, is eleven or at most twelve days. Whereas the general health does not seem in the least disturbed in the first eight to nine days of this period, definite preliminary symptoms show themselves in the last two or three days. These preliminary signs are falsely said to have been noticed at an earlier period; but inasmuch as catarrhal affections are very prevalent during epidemic measles, it is very likely that purely catarrhal symptoms have been mistaken for the prodromi of measles. The prodromi proper begin with a slight catarrh of the nose, lassitude and some fever. This fever increases considerably on. the second day, frontal headache supervenes, the eyes look red, are sensitive to the light, but the conjunctiva is seldom puffed up. On the third day there is another Morbilli. 515 increase of fever, the patients feel unable to sit up, the tongue is thickly coated, the appetite gone, and in the night from the third to the fourth day, immediately previous to the appearance of the exanthem, a hoarse, barking cough sets in resembling croup, which, however, is scarcely ever attended with the danger that generally characterizes croup, and never changes to true croup. These symptoms may increase to a considerable degree of intensity, may be associated with vomiting, delirium, sopor; at times, however, they are entirely wanting or so slight that it is not deemed necessary to confine children to the room. This is the reason why the measles spread so rapidly thrbugh the schools, for it is precisely on the day previous to the breaking out of the measles that the infectious principle is most active, and that hence the measles are most easily communicated. VWe account for this circumstance by the fact that in the last twenty-four to twelve hours previous to the appearance of the exanthem upon the skin, distinct, lentil-sized measle-spots are perceived in almost every case on the palate and on the sides of the fauces. We have noticed them in allour cases of the present as well as of last-year's epidemic. Without doubt, it is the extension of these spots to the larynx and trachea that causes the peculiar croupy cough, and we have always considered it an excellent diagnostic sign to find this cough associated with red spots on the: palate, in which case we were able to positively predict the appearance of the eruption within twenty-four hours. In other respects the prodromli have no distinctive peculiarity from which the character of the exanthem might be inferred; it can at most only be suspected after several cases had already occurred in the place, or in its immediate vicinity. As a rule, adults suffer much less from prodromi than children, nor has, in the case of adults, the cough very often the croupy sound. The measle-exanthem breaks out gradually, in one case more rapidly than in another. The first spots always show themselves in the face, most commonly on the cheeks and temples. They are of the size of lentils, of a bright redness and with rather sharp outlines; after being out for a short time, they become somewhat raised above the skin and harder to the feel than this organ. With more or less speed, generally within twenty-four to thirty-six hours, the exanthem comes out over the whole body from above downwards, and is fully out in forty-eight to sixty hours, so that no new spots appear, whereas, up to that time, new spots had continued to break out in addition to the first spots that were more or less 616 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. scattered and isolated. The spots keep growing in size to such an extent that some of them run together, and the normal skin, in the place of spots, exhibits, here and there irregular red patches. In proportion as the exanthem comes out more profusely, its color generally grows darker, sometimes with a bluish tint. With the fuller development of the eruption the constitutional symptoms most commonly increase in intensity. The catarrh of the conjunctiva and the cough especially grow much worse. The pulse sometimes increases to one hundred and forty beats. Sometimes the skin is dry, but at other times covered with perspiration. In very rare cases the constitutional equilibrium remains undisturbed even during the eruptive stage; however, in every considerable epidemic a child with measles is occasionally seen running about the streets. If the exanthem runs a benign course, its decrease commences at the end of the third day, seldom before this time, and continues with great rapidity until the eruption has entirely disappeared. The spots grow smaller, assume a distinctly yellowish tint which is especially marked on iressure with the finger, and within twelve to twenty-four hours the spots have completed their disappearance without leaving a vestige of their existence. Very frequently, however, the yellowish tint remains for several days. The fever declines very speedily, the catarrh of the conjunctiva likewise abates, whereas the bronchial catarrh most generally continues for a few days longer, and resolution sometimes does not take place until a considerable quantity of mucus has formed. Not unfrequently the patient is at this period attacked with diarrhoea for one or two days. Profuse perspiration is not the rule, but is not by any means an anomalous occurrence. Desquamation commonly commences on the seventh day, but may delay until the fourteenth. The epidermis comes off in branshaped scales, very seldom in larger patches in the face and on the extremities the desquamation is most distinct. During this period the general health is generally good; except that the bronchial catarrh and still less frequently the diarrhoea may continue to some extent. In very few cases the irritation of the conjunctiva likewise continues some time longer. According to the nature of the epidemic or other supervening disturbances this normal course of the measles undergoes various modifications which we now proceed to point out, classifying them as benign, that is such as do not complicate the prognosis, and as malignant. We ought to observe, however, that under certain Morbilli. 517 circumstances every anomaly in the course of the measles may become a bad omen, and that we have to watch every case where. deviations from the normal course occur, with redoubled attention. Among the anomalies of a benign character we class the following: The eruption does not break out in the face first, or comes out sparsely on the rest of the body. The single spots are topped with little tubercles or vesicles. The exanthem comes out more slowly than usual, and the spots remain much longer, sometimes beyond a week. In the case of little children the appearance of the exanthem is attended with symptoms of severe cerebral hyperEemia or even convulsions. The cough retains its croupy sound beyond the first day or even during the whole course of the exanthem. Among the malignant deviations we number the following: The spots, when first coming out, are of a pale-red color which does not increase in intensity, nor does it acquire the yellowish tint. Within the spots hemorrhagic appearances are manifested, and between the spots ecchymoses are noticed. The spots fade away soon after their appearance, or else they fade very suddenly at the regular period or before. In the case of children the pulse exceeds 140 beats, and in the case of adults 120 beats; moreover it is a small pulse. The tongue is dry. Angina tonsillaris. Diphtheritic membranes form in the buccal cavity. The respiration becomes hurried and superficial. Sopor and delirium after the second day of the eruption. Of great importance are certain complications of measles, that are very apt to occur and which were formerly regarded as metastases, because the exanthem disappears with the appearance of these complications. Laryngitis with croupous exudation is of rare occurrence while the exanthem is still out; it is more commonly met with after the exanthem has left the skin. A slight bronchitis is an accompaniment of every case of measles; it only assumes a dangerous character if it continues beyond the stage of decline, or reappears again during the stage of desquamation, or otherwise assumes a very acute form. It is very apt to run into an exceedingly obstinate chronic catarrh. Pneumonia is not unfrequent; it is mostly lobular, much less frequently lobar, and may break out in every stage of the disease. It is most threatening, if setting in after the eruption has run its course. It does not usually terminate in complete resorption and, on this account, is very apt to lay the 518 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. foundation for subsequent pulmonary phthisis. Pleuritis is a rare complication, so is pericarditis. Enteritis is a rather frequent complication in some epidemics; it excites legitimate apprehensions, for the reason that other consecutive diseases, more particularly scrofulosis, are apt to follow in its train. Affections of the brain are rare; their intensity is rarely such as to excite apprehensions; the supervention of sopor is a bad sign, because it may usher in a fatal general paralysis. Of the highest importance are likewise the numerous and always obstinate sequele of the measles, which make this exanthem one of the most mlalignant, whereas its ordinary normal course and character entitle it to be regarded as one of the most harmless. Among these sequele we distinguish: Cutaneous affections, especially impetigo and eczema, more or less extensive, but always very obstinate. Chronic conjunctivitis, with impaired vision; chronic otitis, with deafness; chronic ozena; chronic inflammation of the lymphatic glands, mostly without suppuration; chronic inflammation of -the parotid and submaxillary glands. Chronic bronchial catarrh, with which bronchiectasia easily becomes associated and which gives rise to a peculiar spasmodic cough; or real whooping-cough which is much more severe as a sequela of measles than when setting in at other periods, and which very often develops a most dangerous lobular pneumonia. Anasarca with affection of the kidneys is a very rare sequela of measles-; it is not exactly an occurrence of a threatening character. Noma is likewise a sequela of rare occurrence; it is not without -importance. After the measles, children are very frequently attacked with scrofulous symptoms. It is very likely that, in the case of little children, the measles simply act as an existing cause of scrofulosis; but it is likewise among larger children that, after an attack of measles, all sorts of phenomena make their appearance, whlch we are in the habit of designating as scrofulous and which go to show that a morbid change has been impressed upon the whole activity of the organism. Tuberculosis likewise frequently breaks out after measles. We believe with Niemeyer that pulmonary phthisis after measles is most commonly a chronic lobular pneumonia, having nothing in common with tubercles, or else, a lobular pneumonia with suppuration. That tubercles not unfrequently do occur after measles, is Morbilli. 519 shown to us by the circumstance that we have recently lost three children with acute hydrocephalus, in the neighborhood of IHannover, where the measles prevailed much more fiercely than in the city. In every one of these three children the symptoms of acute hydrocephalus set in soon after the measles. Xreatwment. Measles are universally regarded as a typical disease, on which account the so-called rational physicians consider every interference with medicines in a case of measles running their normal course, as useless. From the stand-point of Homceopathy this negative treatment on the part of our opponents, is liable to several important objections. In the first place the measles do not constitute a fixed typical exanthem, for, as regards time, they vary greatly both with respect to the time it takes the eruption to come out, and to the duration of the stage of efflorescence. It is conceivable that this irregularity in the course of the exanthem may be modified by medicines, and every homeopathic physician will agree with us in the statement that, under homceopathic treatment, the measles very seldom run an irregular course. A second proposition the correctness of which has been demonstrated by an abundance of clinical'experience, is that under homoeopathic treatment complications are rare occurrences and that sequelae are seen still less frequently. All our most excellent observers, of whom we number a great many, agree with us in this statement. It is, therefore, our advice to treat every case of measles, even the mildest, with a little medicine, although the action of the medicine may not always be distinctly perceived. The preliminary stage of measles, if there is otherwise nothing abnormal in the existing symptoms, requires either Aconite or.Belladonna. We prefer the latter if the fever is purely catarrhal, the skin is hot but moist, the tongue thickly coated, the pulse hurried but neither hard nor full. These symptoms were uniformly present in the preliminary stage of our last epidemic. We prefer Aconite if the skin is hot and dry, the catarrhal secretion scanty, the tongue is red and the pulse full and hard. We have never seen the much vaunted Pulsatilla do the least good at this stage of the disease, and we are at a loss to perceive upon what grounds the exhibition of this drug could be justified. The croupy cough is a good indication for Belladonna; at any rate, we have never seen it last longer than twenty-four hours after this remedy had been given. Others recommend Spongia or -epar sulphuris cale., either of which may be a suitable remedy according to circumstances. Aconite renders 520 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. excellent service for this croupy, catarrhal cough. If the exanthem had begun to come out, the best course then is to continue the remedy that had been given last, for beside the spots no other symptoms generally make their appearance: the increased, but shortlasting intensity of the existing symptoms does not justify a change of remedies, for the reason that such an increase of the symptoms inheres in the normal course of the disease. As soon as the eruption begins to pale off, we advise the discontinuance of all medicine. If the spots have entirely disappeared, yet the cough continues, the treatment will have to be resumed; if the cough is attended with rattling and wheezing, and the expectoration is not very difficult, Hepar sulphuris calc. is to be given; if the cough is particularly troublesome at night, and is otherwise loose, not very hard, Pulsatilla may be required; for a dry, nocturnal, titillating cough we give flyoscyamus, and if the cough torments the patient the whole day: Nux vomica. The general management of the patient is of great importance, for it is a certain fact that an irregular course of the eruption is sometimes attributable to hygienic neglect or to the enforcement of improper rules and measures. We forbear showing in this place how the poor measle-patients were formerly abused, and still are very frequently abused by insane nurses and practitioners. We pursue the following course from which we have never seen any bad consequences result. If the measles prevail, we have the children who complain of a febrile catarrh, kept at home, but do not confine them to their beds unless they themselves insist upon it. A measle-patient should never be covered too warmly, nor should he ever remain in a temperature above 500 Fahr. The room should be carefully and cautiously ventilated; pure air is of immense benefit to the patient. The room should never be obscured more than is desired by the patients themselves. The best beverage is fresh water in small quantities; if this should increase the cough, the water may be drank with the chill taken off; sweetened with a little white sugar. There is no danger involved in daily ablutions of the patient's face and hands with tepid water. Owing to the impaired appetite there is danger of the patients being treated to improper food. We never refuse stewed fruit; and we allow meat and broth if the patient craves it. After the spots have disappeared and the cough has ceased, or nearly so, we have the patient transferred every morning from the bed into a lukewarm bath, where he is thoroughly washed with soap and afterwards well rubbed dry in a woollen blanket. Next Morbilli. 521 morning he is rapidly washed with cold water and again rubbed off in a woollen blanket. We now regard him as fully recovered and, if the weather permits, send him out into the open air, of course, with all suitable guarantees against taking cold. We have never yet seen any bad consequences result from this treatment. We will now mention the treatment that ought to be pursued for some of the deviations from the normal course, and likewise for the complications and sequelae, for it is these abnormal conditions that require a most thorough knowledge of the appropriate remedies. If the eruption is unusually pale, we have to suspect the presence of complications, and if they cannot be traced, we give Veratrurm a/bum or Ipecacuanha; if the exanthem disappears all at once, without any apparent complication, Arsenicum, Opium or Digitalis will have to be given according to circumstances. If the measle-spots are hemorrhagic, Phosphorus and Arsenicum are suitable, sometimes also Mercurius. Angina, which is a rare occurrence in this disease, requires Belladonna, Mercurius, or Apis. Delirium and sopor after the exanthem is out, may require Rhus toxicodendron, Zincum, or Opium; Ipecacuanha may likewise have to be used. This lastnamed remedy likewise arrests the vomiting which sometimes precedes the appearance of the exanthem. A moderate diarrhcea does not require any treatment; if it becomes too copious and painful, Miercurius, or Veratrum album, or Phosphorus and Ipeeacuanha may have to be given. Adults retain for some time a thickly-coated tongue, and an impaired appetite, for which symptoms Antimonium crudum is an excellent remedy, and, if the tongue is clean, Ipecacuanha. These remedies should be given at once if the appetite does not return immediately after the spots have begun to pale off: Complications require the same treatment that is pursued if they occur without measles, hence, we refer the reader to the chapters on pneumonia, bronchitis, pleuritis, etc. But we must not forget that these complications are very dangerous and may easily adopt an abnormal course; pneumonia, for instance, may assume a chronic form, pleuritis may be transformed into pleuritis serosa. Like the complications, so the sequelae do not require any special treatment on account of the measles; for special conditions, however, certain remedies have become exceedingly valuable. A chronic bronchial catarrh is one of the most common sequelae, and is generally very obstinate; not to mention other remedies that are specially indicated by particular symptoms, Sulphur is the regular 522 Acute and Chron'c Contagious Diseases. curative remedy in such a case, which we deem, however, equalled by Causticum. If the cough is accompanied, with hoarseness, Carbo vegetabilis as well as Tartarus stibiatus will meet the case, if an abundance of mucus is secreted. If the cough changes more and more to a croupy cough, Cuprum has to be given the sooner the better. The subsequent hoarseness or even aphonia constitute great inlpediments to a cure. With the exception of Carbo vegetabilis, Iodine is the only remedy that has shown any curative results in our hands for this affection; all other remedies have proved fruitless, and it has only been in the course of time that the natural voice returned. Phthisis after measles can only be regarded as tubercular, if no sign of pneumonia had been noticed either during the acute stage of the exanthem, or during the period of convalescence; if symptoms of pneumonia had existed, we may take it for granted that the existing phthisis is the result of chronic pneumonia. This point is important on account of the remedies that have to be used; for in the last-mentioned case Sulphur, Hepar sulphuris, and Iodine are the chief remedies, whereas in tubercular phthisis these remedies are of no higher importance than others. Chronic diarrhcea is likewise completely cured by means of Sulphur, likewise by means of Phosphori acidurn. Catarrhal conjunctivitis, if setting in in the stage of desquamation, is exceedingly obstinate. The conjunctiva is not very much thickened, but very red and unusually sensitive to a glaring light as well as to intensely cold air. For this trouble Arsenicurn does more than any other remedy; only it must not be discontinued too soon, because the result generally develops itself very tardily. 2. Scarlatina. Scarlet-fever. Scarlatina is unquestionably a contagious disease; at times it occurs in a sporadic, but more frequently in an epidemic form. What is the nature of this contagium, and what contains it, cannot be determined, but many circumstances argue in favor of the doctrine that it is transmitted through the air. It is often indisputable and certainly more probable than in the case of measles, that scarlatina sometimes breaks out spontaneously and sporadically without any infectious contagium, and likewise epidemically, in which category belong the cases where scarlatina is said to have been transmitted indirectly through the agency of non-affected individuals. It is difficult to determine the duration of the period Scarlatina. 523 of incubation; it is generally supposed to last eight days. The contagium is most fiercely active soon after the appearance of the exanthem, during the period of desquamation the contagious nature of scarlatina has most probably become extinct. The susceptibility to the influence of the scarlatina-contagium is much less general than that to the measle contagium; many persons escape scarlatina altogether. The largest number and the most malignant cases occur between the second and seventh year, a much smaller number between the eight and twenty-fifth year. At a later period, as well as during infancy, scarlatina occurs very seldom. One attack of scarlatina acts almost as an absolutely certain preventive against any subsequent attacks. Epidemic scarlatina most commonly prevails during the transition-seasons, less frequently in the summer, and least frequently in winter. Although certain atmospheric conditions may be supposed to exist during the prevalence of scarlatina, yet they are unknown to us,; nor are we able to explain what circumstances render one epidemic so dangerous and leave another comparatively mild. Epidemic scarlatina very often occurs simultaneously. with, or subsequently to epidemic measles; it likewise not unfrequently occurs together with small-pox; its relation to whooping-cough is less definite. SZympltoms and Cour'se. No acute exanthem is so variable in its course as scarlatina, although certain fixed types are always recognizable. The various epidemics differ very particularly fiom each other. We have not space to consider all these particular differences and shall therefore content ourselves with describing the normal course of ordinary benign scarlatina, and shall afterwards mention the deviations from this course, as we have done when treating of measles. The disease is undoubtedly ushered in by a precursory stage which has no characteristic symptoms any more than the prodromic stage of measles. The patients exhibit the symptoms of a severe catarrhal fever which, in contra-distinction to measles, is not attended with an irritation of the respiratory tract, but with inflammation of the fauces and catarrh of the stomach. This stage differs in no respect from a catarrhal angina, not even by the pulse which, in an affection of this kind, is generally very rapid. Only the skin of the patient is much less frequently moist. After the prodromi have lasted for two days, the exanthem makes its appearance, generally with a marked increase of the fever and the other preliminary symptoms; children are attacked with 524 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. convulsions. The exanthem always first breaks out on the neck, whence it spreads downwards over the rest of the body. First we notice closely-crowded red stigmata, generally of a much darker color than the measle-spots; these stigmata very speedily run into one another, causing an homogeneous, faintly dotted redness (scarlatina laevigata), or else they grow in size and, running together, form single spots of a darker color, seated upon a more faintly-red cuticle (scarlatina variegata), or, finally, small vesicles spring up upon the red surface, most generally in consequence of the intense character of the cutaneous affection, some of which are closely crowded together, others are more scattered (scarlatina miliaris). The exanthem is generally fully out in twenty-four hours, when the stage of efflorescence commences. The redness is most intenseon the neck and on the extensor-surface of the extremities, likewise on the hands. Throughout this stage the constitutional symptoms preserve their intensity, but the fever begins to abate in the last two days; it does not pass away suddenly, as in the case of measles. The angina is very intense, the fauces are dark-red; the tongue, having got rid of its original coating, looks very dark, with prominent papillse, imparting to it a strawberry appearance. The urinary secretion is much less. Sometimes a little bronchial catarrh makes its appearance at this time, but it scarcely ever assumes a violent form. On the fifth or sixth day after the appearance of the exanthem, it commences to pale off, with considerable abatement of the fever and more particularly of the angina. Soon after, the process of desquamation begins. It always commences on the neck in small scales, whereas on the body, and more particularly on the hands, the epidermis most generally peels off in large patches. The appetite now speedily returns and the patients feel quite well. In a fortnight at the latest the desquamation is completed. We will now consider the most important anomalies in the course of the disease, corresponding with the order in which the difierent stages succeed each other. The preliminary stage may be so slight that it may seem as though no such stage had existed. This, however, does not justify the expectation that the disease will run a mild course. On the contrary, if the preliminary stage is considerably longer than usual; if an excessive lassitude is a marked symptom of this stage, we may almost expect with certainty that the disease will assume a comparatively malignant character. Occasionally the fever reaches Scarlatina. 525 even at this stage a height that gives to it the appearance of an intense typhus, so that the patients soon fall victims to its fury. At this stage the angina is never so violent as to cause any anxiety. The convulsions occurring at the breaking out of the exanthem are seldom of any particular significance, for an affection of the brain, except in so far as the excessive fever may cause an irritation of this organ, is a rare occurrence. It is during the eruptive stage and the stage of efflorescence that the course of the exanthem can be watched and learnt. It varies in color, is at times bright-red, at other times of a violet-red, without these distinctions justifying any particular inferences being drawn from them. An extremely bright color is an inauspicious prognostic only if the fever has at the same time a marked ady nanic type. A union of the smaller spots to larger patches of redness is of no great importance. The formation of petechia and larger hemorrhagic effusions on the skin always points to a severe type of fever. In some epidemics the exanthem remains quite rudimrentary, the redness is very slight, is confined to small spots of a bright rose-color, remains only a few cays upon the skin and is not attended with any marked constitutional symptoms. Such cases have been designated as roseola or rubeola, and an attempt has been made to view this exanthem as a special form of disease. The fact that roseola occurs in every mild scarlatina-epidemic, shows that it is nothing else than a very slightly developed case of scarlatina. The angina is likewise liable to important deviations. It is generally of an erythematous character, but not unfrequently involves the parenchyma and shows an extraordinary tendency to invade the glands and cellular tissue of the throat and neck. Since this change does not occur until the exanthem has run its course, it has been supposed that it is the result of a metastasis, which is not the case. Whereas a parenchymatous angina seldom terminates in suipuration, an inflammation of the cervical cellular tissue, on the contrary, has this termination so much more readily; it is this circumstance which constitutes one of the most malignant sequelse of the disease. What is still more dangerous is the supervention of diphtheritic ulcers during the inflammation. Although the diphtheritic ulceration very seldom spreads to the larynx, it communicates itself so much more frequently to the nose, the Eustachian tube and the inner ear, to the cervical cellular tissue and glands; if it does not destroy life by its direct action, the patients succumb slowly to the suppurative process, or are attacked with an incurable 523 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. deafness. Not too much attention can be paid to this malignant angina, especially in the case of children, an examination of whose throats we are very apt to neglect in consequence of the difficulty attending such an operation. A discharge from the nose which is at first thin and has no smell, is almost always a sure sign that diphtheritis has set in; it should never be regarded as a favorable symptom, for the reason that a simple nasal catarrh never occurs in scarlatina. Inflammations of the joints, pleura, pericardium most commonly only occur in cases of great intensity, and do not present any particular features, although they render the prognosis much more dubious and complicated. Nephritis occurring at this stage, is never very acute, and is so much inferior to the other morbid phenomena that it is allowed to pass unperceived. The most obstinate and most dangerous anomalies occur in the stage of desquamation. They do not always date from this period, but are most generally developments of former disturbances that had remained unnoticed during the violence of the fever. This applies to inflammations of the joints, pleura, pericardium, inner ear. Enteritis occurs very rarely; on the other hand, diarrhcea may set in, which, within certain limits, is not a dangerous occurrence. The worst symptoms are the suppurating inflammations of the cervical cellular tissle and lymphatic glands, to which allusion was made previously, and inflammation of the kidneys. During the process of desquamation nephritis becomes a more prominent complication, probably because a suspension of the cutaneous functions, as in extensive burns for example, excites the action of the kidneys in an extraordinary degree, in consequence of which a slight renal catarrh, during the stage of efflorescence, changes to a genuine croupous inflammation during the stage of desquamation. The various reasons which have been adduced to account for the supervening nephritis, do not stand the test of a rigorous examination; in some epidemics there is no nephritis at all, in other epidemics it occurs in every case, no matter how the patients were managed in hygienic and dietetic respects. What is certain is, that nephritis is more easily excited by excessive warmth, especially by too much clothing, which precludes the access of air, than by the patient being kept in a cool room and accessible to the influence of pure air. The renal affection sets in almost imperceptibly; the patients have felt quite well for several days; but, without showing Scarlatina. 527 any symptoms of fever, they do not seem properly to recuperate. The appetite does not return as it should; the discharged urine is dark, and the quantity is scanty; suddenly it shows a still darker, sometimes black or blackish-gray color, and contains a quantity of albumen, blood-disks, fibrinous cylindrical casts. The appetite is gone, the skin becomes cedematous first in the face, and afterwards over the whole body, and to a very high degree. If we do not succeed in controlling the renal affection, the patients die in two or more weeks of cedema of the lungs, or of cardiac disease. In some rare cases cedema sets in as a post-scarlatinal complication without the signs of a marked renal disease; this affection is of infinitely less importance than that which we have just described. All these deviations, complications, etc., vary with the character of the epidemic, both as regards intensity and danger. It is almost impossible, when the epidemic first commences, to establish a prognosis upon a reliable basis; apparently trivial cases sometimes take all at once a bad turn, whereas apparently severe cases run a very normal course. For this reason every epidemic requires to be specially studied; not one epidemic resembles another in every respect. Tireatment. In regard to treatment we apply to scarlatina the same rule that we have proposed for measles, which is, that the specifically-appropriate remedy should be given at the very onset of the disease, because this is the most efficient method of keeping the course of the disease within normal bounds. We infer this from the circumstance that the homceopathic treatment of scarlatina is undoubtedly superior to any other; for this reason we advise the exhibition of Belladonna at the very commencement of the disease, this remedy not only corresponding to the cutaneous affection, but likewise to the angina. This medicine should be continued., provided no particular anomalies set in, until the exanthem begins to pale, the angina disappears, and the pulse decreases in frequency. Under the use of Belladonna the fever generally runs a regular course, during which the special symptoms of course do not undergo any alteration; but this is not expected in the course of any typical afiection. Whether Belladonna can be regarded as a prophylactic against scarlatina, we will not decide, although we are willing to admit that we doubt the prophylactic virtues of this agent for the simple reason that we do not believe in any kind of preventives. We have already stated that scarlatina does not infect everybody Scarlatina. 529 We will now devote some space to the treatment of the anomalies that may turn up during the course of the disease, but we shall not go into details concerning particular indications, for the reason that every epidemic has, after all, to be combated with specificallyappropriate medicines whose symptomatic correspondence will have to be studied out in the Materia Medica. The excessive fever in the preliminary stage, which is often of a threatening character, has to be met by Rhus toxicod. or Arsenicum, as long as the brain remains free; but if delirium, sopor, etc., sets in, Phosphorus or Opium may be tried; we would likewise recommend Digitalis.-If convulsions set in previous to the appearance of the exanthem, Belladonna is entirely sufficient. If the fever sets in with an adynamic type, and the exanthem delays its appearance, Bryonia alba will meet this condition. We do not dwell upon supposed distinctions between smooth scarlatina and purple-rash, because we believe them to be unfounded. We admit that in cases where the angina is very slight or entirely wanting, Aconite is better adapted to purple-rash than Belladonna. If the efflorescent surface is studded with miliaria, Rhus toxicod. is more appropriate than Belladonna. If petechiwe and ecchymoses break out, the fever generally has an adynamic character; Phosphorus, Arsenicum and Kreosotum are the remedies adapted to this change. If the fever has an adynamic type during the stage of efflorescence, great danger is impending. Bryonia may be sufficient in the lower grades of this fever, but the higher grades require: Rhus toxicod., Phosphorus, Digitalis, Veratrum album; the two last-named remedies correspond more particularly to the frequent and small pulse with cerebral symptoms resembling typhus. Ammonium carbon. may deserve a preference, if the pulse accompanying the cerebral symptoms is not excessively rapid. Zincum is likewise recommended in such cases. If a sudden disappearance of the redness is attended with ominous symptoms; if a general paralysis threatens, Camphora should be resorted to. The special symptomatic indications of these various remedies can be learnt from the Materia Medica Pura. The angina, even if only of an erythematous character, is sometimes intense, and Belladonna does not seem to have the least effect upon it. In such a case Apis not unfrequently mitigates the severe pain. If we may judge by the provings, this agent must be an important remedy in scarlet-fever; the clinical record of this drug, 34 530 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. is still very scanty. Whether Apis will prevent the inflammation from penetrating to the deeper tissues, has not yet been decided. If the angina is accompanied by swelling of the tonsils, Mercurius should- be given; this remedy often arrests all further progress of this feature of the disease. If the angina is confined to the tonsils, it will seldom be found necessary to give iepar, for the reason that no suppuration generally sets in. If suppuration takes place, fepar sulphuris calc. should be resorted to without delay. If the inflammation invades the cervical cellular tissue and the cervical glands, which it may do while Mercurius is being exhibited, in which case this remedy is no longer indicated, Bryonia may be given. We do not advise a premature lancing of the abscess, because such a proceeding would undoubtedly favor an ichorous decomposition. For chronic suppuration we recommend Silicea, for subsequent indurations Baryta and Sulphur. A malignant form of angina requires the same treatment as diphtheritis. Iodine has frequently rendered excellent service in this affection; Acidum muriaticum is likewise commended; but, as we said before, such recommendations are not always to be depended upon in all cases, for the reason that one remedy will do better in one epidemic, and the very next epidemic may require a different treatment. A scarlatina-coryza sometimes requires a peculiar treatment; it often remains even after the diphtheritic angina is cured. Aurum muriaticum is the most reliable remedy for it; Sepia or Calcarea carbon. is less so. Parotitis is very seldom an isolated affection in scarlatina; it is generally accompanied by a malignant or parenchymatous angina and requires to be treated with the same remedies that have been recommended for this disorder. If existing alone, we treat it with the remedies that have been recommended for it elsewhere. Pleuritis and pericarditis as complications of scarlatina have no peculiar features requiring any special treatment; they are treated as idiopathically-existing, independent diseases; however, we may state that Tartarus stibiatus has been variously recommended in pericarditis, and Mercurius and Rhus toxicod. in pleuritis. Articular inflammations in scarlatina have the peculiar feature of rarely terminating in suppuration and resembling almost entirely articular rheumatism. Arnica, Phosphorus and Rhus toxicod. deserve special attention in these affections. Cerebral affections occur very rarely in scarlatina; isolated cerebral symptoms, although sometimes very marked, must not be Scarlatina. 531 all at once taken for inflammatory symptoms. If the symptoms denote congestion, with nervous excitement and restlessness, Arnica or Ammoniuml carbon. may be resorted to; if they occur accompanied by a cold perspiration and coolness of the trunk, Ipecac., Camphora, Veratrum album may be tried; marked sopor indicates Opium, convulsions point to Zincum.-We should always endeavor to determine whether the cerebral symptoms are not altogether superinduced by the intense fever and whether our remedies ought not to be primarily directed against it. For nephritis and dropsy Relleborus has acquired a well-earned reputation; it sometimes relieves these affections very speedily. However, it is not sufficient in every case. If the urine contains a good deal of blood, Cantharides and Terebinthina may have to be given; Arnica and Nitrum likewise deserve our regard in this direction. If threatening heart-symptoms supervene, Arsenicum should at once be resorted to, and if the renal inflammation has already run its course, Digitalis or Lycopodium. Finally we wish to make mention of cold water in connection with scarlatina. The not unfavorable results of cold-water treatment while the exanthem is out on the skin, may serve to quiet anxious physicians regarding the danger which they imagine their patients would incur if they were not kept very warm or were not forbidden the luxury of a refreshing, although ever so carefully conducted ablution. We would not resort to the cold packduring the efflorescent stage, for we have remedies that surpass the cold-water treatment in efficacy. Whether cold water will still prove useful if the exanthem recedes from the skin, is not certain; it can only be resorted to as a last resort in such a contingency. During the period of desquamation cold-water treatment is decidedly in its place. If there is nothing abnormal in the course of the disease, the baths and ablutions which we have-recommended for measles, are sufficient; but if cedema has set in, these means are not sufficient, for the skin has to be kept very active. In the case of little children who object to being packed, we sometimes accomplish our purpose by placing them every day in a warm bath of at least 920 F., leaving them in each bath for 15 or 20 minutes, after which we have the little patients carefully dried and wrapt in a woollen blanket for half an hour. Most generally, however, the wet pack is indispensable; of course it ought not to be used to excess and after each pack the patient ought to be rubbed down very thoroughly. In a few days already perspiration begins to set in, when the.patient may be 532 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. considered safe. Under this management we have not yet had to deplore a single loss from post-scarlatinal dropsy. 3. Variola. Small-Pox. It is with a certain timidity that we enter upon a discussion of this subject, because we are aware that our views in this respect difer greatly from the views ordinarily entertained by physicians; nevertheless space is wanting to enable us to substantiate our views by corresponding arguments. We shall have this privilege in due time, in a more appropriate place. Small-pox is chiefly the result of infection. The contagium undoubtedly resides in the contents of the variola-pustules, probably also in the exhalations and in the secretions of the mucous membrane. Although it has been proven beyond a doubt that the contents of the pustules retain their infectious principle for a long time, provided it is kept from great hMeat and is not exposed to the action of atmospheric air, yet we cannot subscribe to the doctrine that the exhalations adhering to the patient's clothing retain for a long time the power of transmitting the disease; hence we believe in a spontaneous origin of variola as well as of scarlatina. The circumstance that small-pox at times only appears sporadically, and at other times breaks out epidemically, likewise speaks in favor of our views. The contagium is not very volatile. It is simple in its nature, that is to say, the same in each of the three species of the small-pox disease, so that varicella may cause variola in one, and varioloid in another. Hence these distinctions do not result from so many distinct contagia, but from the different susceptibilities of the infected individuals, as is likewise the case with measles and scarlatina. For similar reasons we do not attribute the malignant character of one small-pox epidemic and the mild type of another to differences in the nature of the contagium, but to different degrees of susceptibility in the individuals, as well as to other circumstances of a general or local character, upon which the malignant nature of the epidemic depends; precisely as we know similar results to take place during epidemic scarlatina. There is not an individual living of whom we can positively assert that he is inaccessible to the small-pox contagium; it is true, however, that at times the susceptibility seems to be considerably greater, and that it is unquestionably most intense in childhood and up to the age of forty-five years, beyond which it begins to decline. The same Variola. 533 proportion obtains in all epidemic, and likewise in all non-infectious diseases. One attack of small-pox is a tolerably sure, but not an absolutely certain protection against another attack. This accounts for the apparent immunity of numbers of people; while young, they had an attack of varicella without the fact being noticed, and on this account enjoy a protection against small-pox, which is improperly attributed to vaccination, concerning which we shall give further details when speaking of the treatment. Epidemic smallpox breaks out most commonly in mid-summer, very seldom in winter; it is most generally accompanied by epidemic measles and whooping-cough; yet a connection or logical succession between these epidemics cannot be traced. Symptomns and Course. For the sake of convenience and in obedience to custom, we adopt the division of the variolous disease in varicella, varioloid and variola, although these three forms generally exist in the most varied transitions to each other, so that, in a case of varicella, single pustules assume the form of varioloid-pustules and in cases of varioloid, some pustules adopt the form of variola-pustules, or that the whole exanthem runs a medium course between two of these forms. Varicella or chicken-pox constitutes the mildest form under which the variola-disease with contagious pustules develops itself. Chicken-pox is infectious and may give rise to either of the other two forms. It infects more particularly children, although not exclusively. Quite recently we treated a case where a young man of eighteen years, who had varioloid, infected his sister, a child of six months, with variola, and his mother with a very mild form of varicella. This eruption generally sets in without any precursory symptoms, perhaps with slight symptoms of gastric catarrh, but otherwise very seldom with precursory symptoms resembling those of varioloid. A few red stigmata break out in the face which grow rapidly and spread irregularly over the whole body; the largest number are seen on the chest and back. Each of these red stigmata changes in a few hours to an elevated vesicle, the contents of which grow dim in thirty-six to forty hours, and afterwards form thin scabs that fall off already on the seventh day. The vesicles sometimes breaking out in successive crops, the whole exanthem may require a fortnight to complete its course. Very commonly some of the vesicles grow to larger pustules, like variola-pustules, and leaving scars behind. At the same time the general health is often so little im 534 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. paired, espeially if'the vesicles are not numerous, that the family have not the remotest suspicion of the child being sick. Fever, however, is very commonly present on the first days, even a mild delirium not.unfrequently occurs, the appetite is gone, the patients feel languid, complain of headache and difficulty of swallowing caused by the vesicles having broken out in the throat and on the palate. The constitutional symptoms are never very important. The exhalations from such patients have the same odor as those of varioloid patients. Varioloid, or modified variola, always commences with a distinct, but not characteristic precursory stage. The patients experience a violent chill, or most frequently chilly creepings which are at once succeeded by a violent febrile heat with increased temperature and a rapid pulse, and with such an intense feeling of illness, that the approach of a severe disease is unmistakable. With the gastric symptoms, a violent headache and even active delirium become associated, and likewise a somewhat pathognomonic, severe pain in the back and small of the back. As a rule, the fever remits in the morning and exacerbates in the evening, increasing every day in intensity until it reaches its acme on the third evening, when the eruptive stage commences. Shortly previous to the appearance of'the exanthem, an hyperemia, consisting of large spots, is sometimes perceived on various portions of the skin. The exanthem in most cases first breaks out in the face, whence it spreads with tolerable regularity over the whole body, from above downwards. Red, scattered, lentil-sized spots break out. Each single spot passes through the following course of development. In ten to twelve hours it changes to a papula, which, in the next twenty-four hours, becomes transformed into a vesicle, the centre of which is perforated by a hair and correspondingly depressed. In the next twenty-four to forty-eight hours the contents of the vesicle grow dim, and a pustule forms surrounded by a narrow halo. About the sixth day after the breaking out of the exanthem, the contents dry up, giving rise to a brown scab which falls off in three to four days, leaving the spot somewhat injected. This course of development of one pock is not pursued by all the other pocks simultaneously, but occurs in the order in which the exanthem broke out, so that the whole process requires about eleven days or a fortnight until the scabs have completely formed. The general health shows the following changes while these phenomena are taking place upon the skin. During the eruption the fever 536 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. takes place. The pysemic nature of this fever accounts most easily for the dangerous character of this stage upon which we shall dwell more fully by and by when we come to treat of the complications. While the fever is gradually abating, the suppurative stage continues until the fourteenth day, when the desiccation and the scabbing process commence in the same order as the eruption had developed itself. The patients, during this time, are without fever, and feel quite well. The scabs very seldom separate before the seventh, sometimes not till the fourteenth day, leaving reddish-brown, pigmentous spots and scars which disappear very slowly. It now remains for us to indicate several important anomalies in the course of the disease. In doing this, we shall confine ourselves to variola, varioloid having the same modifications except in a lesser degree. In the first place the pustules, instead of remaining isolated, may run together (confluent small-pox). This confluence of the pocks may take place to some extent in every severe case of small-pox; but if it is extensive, the disease becomes much fiercer, the fever abates very little during the stage of efflorescence, the suppurative fever is very intense, becauseconfluent pustules cause deeply-penetrating ulcerations. As a rule, this process only takes place in the face. In the suppurative stage the pustules not unfrequently become mixed with blood, giving rise to the so-called black pock which always constitutes the most dangerous form of the disease, because it sets in with an exquisitely adynamic fever attended with profuse nose-bleed, haematemesis, hsemaptoe. The filling of the pocks with an ichorous pus is a very rare occurence. The size of the pustules varies considerably in the same individual. Some only attain the size of a lentil and dry up very speedily; others resemble the bulle. of pemphigus, and some again do not even leave-their papular form. A few single variola-pustules are met with in every case of varioloid; it is the universality of the suppurative process, and the longer duration of the disease that determine the characteristic nature of small-pox. With regard to the whole course of the disease we distinguish small-pox where the fever preserves an adynaric type during the whole course of the disease, and small-pox with septic tendencies throughout its course. It not unfrequently happens that, after the disease.has passed its first stage, the fever suddenly assumes an adynamic type. In adynamic small-pox the pustules may not reach their ful development; in septic small-pox they are apt to become Variola. 537 hemorrhagic and gangrenous. The phenomena accompanying a change of this kind, resemble altogether those of an intense typhus. Variola without an eruption is a speculative theory rather than a practically verified fact. Complications and sequelse occur much less frequently after small-pox than after measles and scarlatina, but are no less dangerous, for the reason that they have their origin in the suppurative process; hence, they occur almost exclusively during and after the course of variola, and very seldom after or during an attack of varioloid. As direct consequences of the variola-pustules we mention: diphtheritis, croup and cedema glottidis. The last-mentioned process likewise occurs as a complication of varioloid. The course of these complications and sequelse does not essentially vary from that of other analogous diseases. The croupy sound is often heard already during the efflorescent stage of small-pox, but at this period it has no dangerous significance; it only becomes threatening during the stage of suppuration. Violent inflammations especially of the serous membranes, meningitis, pericarditis, pleuritis, inflammations of the large joints, deep-seated abscesses only occur after the suppurative fever has set in. They certainly do not arise from the intensity of the inflammatory process upon the skin, but from the absorption of pus. The eyes in consequence of an inflammatory process going on in their interior, are not unfrequently threatened with hypopyon, whereas it is immaterial in a case of varioloid whether a number of pustules have become seated close to the eye or on the conjunctiva. The danger is altogether determined by the supervention of the suppurative process. In both variola and varioloid the prognosis is very uncertain; the most favorable appearances at the beginning sometimes give way very suddenly to the most dangerous symptoms, and vice versa, cases that set in with symptoms of great severity, turn out very mild at the end. Age is of great consequence in this disease; old people have to suffer a great deal more than young persons, evidently owing to the greater rigidity of the skin. As a matter of course, a vitiated constitution and unfavorable social circumstances, above all, pregnancy and confinement invest small-pox with a character of most threatening gravity. Treatment. Before speaking of the remedial agents that may have to be used for small-pox, we will express our views concerning the great preventive of small-pox, vaccination. Without questioning the right of the State to require the individual citizen to make 538 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. himself or his children sick; without meaning to inquire whether morbid matter can be transmitted by vaccination, for this might be avoided with due caution; simply looking at the fact whether vaccination is really useful or not, we feel bound, from this single point of view, to declare our opposition to this proceeding, for the reason that we do not believe the vaccine-virus possessed of the least prophylactic virtue against variola, by which we mean against the transformation of the pock into a suppurating pustule. If epidemic small-pox is so much less dangerous and extensive at the present time than it was a hundred years ago, this can be just as well accounted for by the undeniable fact that epidemics gradually increase and decrease in intensity, as by the universally practised process of vaccination. If persons who are not vaccinated, die at the present time more frequently of variola than those who are, the cause may be that only those remain unvaccinated at the present time, who, living in the worst conditions of society, are more apt to fall victims to epidemic diseases. The last epidemic among us has shown very satisfactorily that the danger of small-pox is derived from accompanying local circumstances, not so much from the fact that vaccination had been neglected. In the city of IHanover, where we have not had any malignant epidemics since the year 1846, we have had numerous small-pox cases for the least year, with only few deaths, whereas more northward, in our marshy districts, where severe epidemics have prevailed during the last few years, small-pox has likewise claimed a larger number of victims in spite of vaccination. We, therefore, have no hesitation in admitting that we belong to the number of those who repudiate vaccination, and we favor the more and more rapidly spreading movement that has been initiated against this measure. It may be difficult to entirely do away with this peculiar institution; but what can be accomplished is, that, if people insist upon being vaccinated, the operation should be performed under appropriate circumstances. We deem the following points essential to such a purpose: Frequent renewal of the lymph by cowpock-virus;-extreme precaution in selecting the children from whom the vaccine is taken;-a revision of the statute which makes it obligatory upon parents to have their children vaccinated in the first year of infancy;-insertion of the vaccine in only a few places with a view of diminishing as much as possible all unfavorable consequences to the organism. In this respect we maintain that, if vaccination has at all any protecting virtue, one pustule ought to protect as much as a dozen. Speaking Variola. 539 of vaccination we cannot help raising the question whether the diminished mortality in small-pox epidemics may not be owing to a more enlightened management of the disease. The preliminary stage which is not always recognizable as such at the beginning of the attack, will' always invite the employment of remedial agents, although the usefulness or efficacy of such a proceeding is extremely questionable. Aconite is more than any other medicine recommended at this stage, but we do not altogether agree with our Colleagues in the propriety of this course of medication. Aconite is indicated in all inflammatory fevers, but not in febrile conditions that evidently owe their origin to toxication of the blood. For this reason we do not advise Aconite either in measles, scarlatina or typhus, still much less in small-pox. Belladonna will be found preferable, even after a most careful comparison of the symptoms, and ought to be continued until the eruption is fully out. Bryonia will be found much less frequently suitable at this stage of small-pox. Upon the whole we opine that any medicine is useless either totally or nearly so, for the reason that the first stages of small-pox are without any malignant symptoms, even if delirium should set in. As soon as the exanthem is out, the patient feels tolerably well; but now is the time to administer suitable remedies for the purpose of preventing the purulent metamorphosis which must now be expected, and of which we can never positively know how it will result; and, in general, for the purpose of maintaining the course of the disease within normal bounds. We have but one remedy that answers this purpose; this remedy is Mercurius. In any circumstances we would advise our Colleagues never to repeat the dose too often in this disease. It might be a difficult task to show its usefulness as long as we have not a number of comparative observations at our command. If medicine is to be given, it is certain that Mercurius is the most appropriate. Just as well as Xercurius will prevent suppuration in cases of abscesses and small boils, and we know from abundant experience that it will do this, we may likewise expect a favorable effect from it upon the suppurative process in small-pox, so much more as the symptomatic similarity between the pathogenesis of Mercury and small-pox in this special point extends to the minutest particulars. If suppuration does really set in, we may try Hepar sulphuris for the purpose of preventing the excessive development of this process. As long as no anomalies occur, these three remedies will be found sufficient in every case of small-pox or varioloid. Neither the fre 540 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. quently severe conjunctivitis, nor the difficulty of swallowing, nor finally the croupy cough demand any other remedies than the three above named; for these phenomena are simply occasioned by the exanthem running its course upon the mucous lining, and are, therefore, without any special significance. Upon what grounds a number of other remedies are recommended for small-pox, we are unable to conceive, and we, therefore, do not mention them lest their multitude should cause confusion in the reader's mind. Antimoniumo crudum and tartaricum have made more noise than any other remedy, nor can it be denied that the principle of similarity is in their favor; so far, however, it has not been shown that these remedies exert either a modifying or abbreviating influence over the disease, or that the suppurative stage is prevented by them. Among the anomalies and complications we only mention a few, since it is impossible to furnish a complete list of such occurrences. Variola with an adynamic. type of fever is always very threatening, and is characterized by an extraordinary tendency to decomposition and to an approach to typhus. At the commencement Bryonia will very generally be indicated, on the other hand, we think that it is under these circumstances that Tartar emetic is in its place, more especially if the brain is involved. After the pustules are formed, Arsenicum is most likely the most appropriate remedy, not only on account of the constitutional symptoms, as on account of the putrid decomposition which is so apt to set in at this period, attended with hemorrhagic effusions into the pustules and ichorous dissolution. We likewise call attention, at this stage, to Secale cornutum, and to the mineral acids, especially Acidum muriat. This last-mentioned remedy is particularly appropriate if the pustules become associated with symptoms of diphtheritis in the mouth and fauces, and the life of the patient is in the greatest jeopardy. Croup which sets in during the suppurative stage, is not controlled by the medicines usually recommended for croup; it is not the ordinary croup, but a symptom of diphtheritis. We would recommend Hepar sulphuris first, and afterwards Phosphorus. (Edema glottidis during smallpox requires the same remedies that have been suggested for this disease in a former chapter. [I once saved a boy's life with Arsenicum. The child had never been vaccinated, or rather eight different attempts had been made to vaccinate him, but every attempt had proved futile. The boy was attacked with confluent small-pox. The disease was running as favorable a course as could be expected, when I was sent for one Variola. 541 night in a great hurry because the disease had taken a bad turn. I found the boy in an undescribable state of apathy and lethargy. The pustules had suddenly receded and those that were still out upon the skin, looked black. Involuntary diarrhceic evacuations took place every fifteen minutes spreading a most horrid stench; through the room. The skin was cold and clammy, the pulse filiform and could no longer be counted. I gave him Arsenicum second centesimal trituration, one half of a grain at a dose, repeating the dose every fifteen minutes. After the third dose the diarrhoea stopped entirely, the skin warmed up, the pulse returned, the remaining pustules resumed a normal appearance, and the disease went on its course very favorably. After the boy had been sick twelve days, and seemed all but well; after the fever had entirely disappeared, and the child expected to be dressed and play about the room, he was all at once taken with a severe angina, the fever returned with a severe chill, he was seized with partial convulsions and next day was covered with scarlet-rash. He had caught the scarlatina at school, but the variola kept it under until the severer disease had run its course. The boy made a fine recovery, and only showed one or two scarcely perceptible pits on the chin. H.] Secondary inflammations, when occasioned by the absorption of pus, are generally very severe and obstinate; they require different treatment from what similar inflammations require when setting in as primary diseases. Bryonia, and above all Mercurius, Phosphorus, Fepar sulphuris and Arsenicum are most generally the most appropriate remedies. Among these five remedies to which we can add Sulphur, the proper remedy for a given case will undoubtedly be found. [Tartar emetic may likewise be added; a case of pneumonia supervening in the course of scrofulous periostitis, and which could only be accounted for agreeably to Virchow's theory of pus-globules having been deposited in the lungs by the current of the blood, yielded promptly and radically in our hands to the exclusive use of Tartar emetic, third centesimal trituration. H.] As soon as the formation of the scabs is completed, all danger is over. Only in very exceptional cases deep-seated abscesses' form, but in such a latent manner that they are only discovered after the desiccation is terminated. Hience the patient may be safely regarded as cured. In view of the measures which it is common to enforce even at this time in the management of small-pox, a few rules for the ex Syphilis. 543 uncertain, although there is no valid reason to deny it. The fixed nature of the contagium cannot be denied; it is most certainly contained in the primary ulcer, whereas its presence in secondary affections as well as in the blood is maintained by some, and denied by others. The adoption of a different contagium for simple and for indurated chancre depends upon observations, the correctness of which cannot be positively impeached. In the vast majority of cases the chancre-virus is communicated by sexual intercourse; in a few cases only the virus is communicated by a different channel. It is not absolutely necessary that the chancrous matter should be inserted at a spot where the epidermis is injured; inoculation can take place, even if the epidermis is intact; for this purpose it has to be very delicate, as the epidermis of the sexual organs generally is. Syphilis can be inherited from the father as well as from the mother; it would even seem as though it were more easily inherited from the former. Most observations show that constitutional syphilis is a protection against a second infection by the virus of an indurated chancre, as much as a first attack of variola is a protection against a second attack of this disease. The incubation-period is short and does not last.beyond the second week, whereas secondary affections incubate for at least five weeks. A disposition to contract this disease, inheres in every individual; however, its ordinary mode of origination accounts for the circumstance that male adults are more generally affected with it. Some persons seem to possess a natural immunity from constitutional syphilis, whereas others manifest a peculiar susceptibility to this disease; this susceptibility seems founded in the so-called lymphatic constitution. A description of the separate forms under which syphilis generally manifests itself, cannot well be given in one connected paragraph; we therefore prefer describing the various phases of the disease, each by itself, in the order in which they generally succeed each other. a. Primary Chancre. Syphilis always commences with the primary syphilitic ulcer. Except when the disease is hereditary, we have no evidence that syphilis can have any other beginning. The soft, simple chancre is chiefly seated on the inside of the prepuce, on the glans, and in the transition-fold from the prepuce to the glans, more particularly on the frenulum; among women it is chiefly seated at the posterior commissure, at the entrance of the 5:44 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. vagina, and on the lesser labia. But inasmuch as other parts of the body may either accidentally or designedly come in contact with the chancre-virus, a chancre may likewise break out on the integurnents of the penis, on the scrotum, at the anus, on the lips, mamme, and in the posterior parts of the vagina. Its course is generally as follows: at the place of inoculation a small vesicle starts up, surrounded by a red halo; or, if the virus was inserted in an open wound on the skin, an ulcer may form immediately which, when arising from the vesicle, develops in a very short time, so that the vesicle is very seldom seen. The ulcer is generally round, less frequently oval, never sharply angular, of the size of a lentil or pea; it has sharp, shaggy, not prominent borders and a lardaceous base. It gradually spreads, but never grows to a large size; it sometimes acquires a fungoid growth from its base, without, however, becoming indurated on that account. At first only one ulcer of this character generally breaks out, very seldom three, but in the course of the disease new ulcers break out in the immediate neighborhood of the former, so that the glans is surrounded by them as by a wreath; they may likewise become confluent. It is a noticeable fact that the more recent ulcers generally heal Faster, very seldom more tardily than the primary sore. These ulcers heal between three and eight weeks. The healing process is manifested by the fact that the bottom of the ulcer loses its dirty color, becomes covered with usually readily-bleeding granulations, and that the edges lose their shaggy appearance. The cicatrix is generally radiate. If the soft chancre is seated in the urethra, it generally occupies the locality immediately behind the orifice, where it can be seen. If it is seated fartheri on in the urethra, its presence may be inferred from a seated pain when the part is touched, and which is likewise experienced during urination; and also from a scanty discharge of pus, whereas, if the chancre is complicated with gonorrhcea, the diagnosis is very generally impossible. The cure of this urethral chancre takes place in the same manner as that of a chancre seated in some external locality. The indurated, so-called Itunterian chancre is chiefly located in the transition-region from the prepuce to the glans, and on the frenulum, but it may likewise break out on any other place, the same as soft chancre. Many look upon the virus of the Ilunterian chancre as different from that of the soft chancre. This question is not, by any means, decided. This chancre often arises not from a vesicle, but from an induration in consequence of the dissolution Syphilis. 545 of the inflammatory exudation. According to some, this is its only mode of origination. It has chiefly a rounded form; its appearance scarcely varies from that of the simple chancre; its base, however, has a less lardaceous and dirty look. If the induration occupies the bottom of the ulcer, the latter is raised, forming the elevated ulcer; if the borders are chiefly indurated, they form a wall round the funnel-shaped ulcer. The induration sometimes spreads to some distance round the ulcer, and is generally of a cartilaginous consistence. If the indurated chancre develops itself out of a simple chancre, which is very seldom the case during the first appearance of the latter, and generally nbt till after the latter has existed for some time, the appearance of the ulcer often changes very suddenly. The indurated chancre does not multiply on the surrounding parts; hence we seldom see more than one or at most two indurated ulcers. It heals much more slowly than simple chancre, and is almost surely followed by secondary phenomena if a slowly disappearing induration remains after the healing of the ulcer. The delicate scar of the indurated chancre is easily torn by friction, when a chancrous ulcer readily forms again immediately. Phagedsenic chancre is a chancre modified by the constitution of the patient. It only breaks out on cachectic individuals, arising more generally from the simple than from the indurated ulcer. If such an ulcer becomes phagedmenic, it assumes an irregular form, with indentations; it shows a dirty-gray or greenish base, lined with diphtheritic exudations, is surrounded by a sickly-colored and livid areola, and secretes a quantity of thin, sickly and very fetid matter. The ulcer inclines to spread rapidly and to destroy the organic tissues, in consequence of which it may involve a considerable loss of substance and even result fatally in a short time. A phagedaenic chancre most commonly arises in cases where Mercury had been very much abused; it is not difficult to understand that the abuse of Mercury should aggravate a phagedanic chancre very materially. A cure takes place by a separation of the infiltrated parts in the same manner as takes place in a case of simple chancre. A gangrenous chancre may arise both from the simple and indurated chancre in consequence of the parts round the ulcer becoming considerably infiltrated; the ulcer acquires a sickly color and, together with its surroundings, changes to a scurf which is encompassed by a considerable serous infiltration. A cure takes place by means of the scurf becoming separated;- or, in the opposite case, the disorganizing process spreads, but scarcely ever as far as in a 35 546 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. case of phagedenic chancre. Death may very readily ensue. It is not always possible to trace the gangrenous change to its true cause. Either directly caused by the primary ulcer, or in company with it, without any definite connection being perceivable, and sometimes outlasting the ulcer, we have: The syphilitic bubo, that is, lymphadenitis occasioned by the syphilitic affection. The bubo is seated on the side nearest to the place where the infection was first communicated, more especially in the groin below Poupart's ligament. We distinguish acute and chronic buboes. The acute bubo seldom develops itself in the second to the sixth week after the appearance of the primary ulcer, seldom at an earlier period, and likewise seldom after the cicatrization of the ulcer. It generally breaks out after simple chancre, and is most likely to make its appearance if the chancre-is located close to the frenulum. Irritating the ulcer, most likely favors the development of a bubo. At a spot in the bend of the groin, the patient, especially when moving the part briskly,, experiences a pain which is very much aggravated during contact, although the inflamed gland can scarcely yet be felt. It generally grows rapidly in size, is very painful and may reach the size of a goose-egg. It adheres to the integuments, hence is not moveable, and the integuments soon show a red color. Suppuration does not take place very rapidly; fluctuation is never perceived over a large surface, because resolution only takes place fragmentarily. The spontaneous breaking of the abscess takes place with much difficulty; after its discharge the truly virulent bubo forms an ulcer with all the characteristics of chancre, the secretion from which is infectious. A bubo very seldom arises from a simple sympathetic irritation of the lymphatic gland. In the latter case, a cure mostly takes place very speedily, whereas in the former case the healing process is very tardy, and the swelling may remain even a long time after the wound is closed. An extension of the inflammatory process to the surrounding cellular tissue, even to the peritonseum; the formation of fistulous canals and a descension of the pus are not unfrequent occurrences. These bad results generally occur if the bubo is lanced prematurely. We shall revert to this subject when we come to speak of the treatment of syphilis. There is no difficulty in diagnosing the true nature of a bubo, except after the chancre is healed without leaving a scar, or if the bubo develops itself without any previous chancre. A characteristic circumstance in the history of a syphilitic bubo is, that it almost always breaks out below Poupart's ligament. Syphilis. 547 The chronic, indolent bubo runs a slow course; it comes on without pain and is very obstinate; it is distinguished from an acute bubo by the circumstance that it only occurs in connection with an indurated chancre, and is not, like an acute bubo, confined mostly to one gland, but involves a number of them. The swelling progresses very slowly; a single gland does not attain any considerable size, but from several glands swelling close t6gether, a large, hard, bunchy tumor is formed. Single glands very seldom terminate in suppuration; if this happens, pus forms very slowly, the sides of the abscess are very slack, and a whole gland is transformed into purulent matter. Very seldom the inflammation attacks the surrounding parts. Whereas an acute bubo does not justify the conclusion that secondary phenomena will certainly make their appearance, an indolent bubo is almost invariably succeeded by them. A catarrh of the mucous lining of the urethra or vagina does not very frequently accompany the primary ulcer. Chancres in the urethra may run their course without a sign of gonorrhcea, or else the gonorrhcea may be very violent and painful. To account for the latter case, the doctrine has been started that there is a double infection with the chancre as well as the gonorrhoeal virus. This is not necessary to account for the gonorrhoa, for a chancre in the urethra may very readily give rise to extensive urethritis; if it does not, the cause must be the different degrees of irritability of the mucous lining of different individuals. The secretion of a chancrous gonorrhcea is characterized by a strong, very offensive smell. Condylomata are vegetations of the skin belonging to primary as well as to secondary syphilis, but they may likewise occur in combination with gonorrhcea without chancre. We will devote a few general remarks to them in this place. There are two pretty essentially distinct species of condylomata, the soft, humid condyloma with a broad base, and the acuminated condyloma. Soft condylomata very frequently accompany primary syphilis; secondary syphilis is almost always accompanied by them. They are seated on the integuments of the sexual organs, on the glans, thighs, scrotum, in the intergluteal fold, on the external pudendum and in the vagina, in general in localities where two folds of integument are exposed to frequent frictions against each other. They are flat risings,very little or not at all injected, covered by a very thin epidermis, very soft to the feel, and. moistened with a scanty, 548 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. muco-purulent, and most generally disagreeably smelling secretion. By growing the isolated condylomata may unite and rise to a considerable height. The exulcerations and the deep rhagades on their surface impart to the skin that covers them a peculiar ulcerated and split appearance, which is most strikingly noticed at the anus. The period when these vegetations break out, differs a good deal; they come most speedily with an indurated chancre, more particularly, if the primary ulcer is accompanied by profuse blennorrhcea. Acuminated condylomata occur less frequently as accompaniments of chancre, more commonly as accompaniments of gonorrhcea; they grow more especially on places that are continually bathed by the poisonous secretion, hence in the same localities where the soft condylomata are chiefly seated, principally on the glans and prepuce, in the female urethra, and at the entrance of the vagina. Their presence does not always imply the existence of a general infection. As a rule, they have a cauliflower-shaped appearance, are covered with a hard epidermis, are seated on a narrow base, are sometimes pedunculate or, in consequence of being flattened by a pressure on both sides, have a cock's-comb shaped appearance. They often show a great tendency to grow like fungi, in which case they exhibit considerable vascularity; they may reach the size of a man's hand. If they are seated between the glans and prepuce, and of sufficient size, they may cause a great deal of suflering in consequence of being pressed upon and pulled at. They never suppurate, nor are they ever fissured, except by the action of direct force. When healing, they sometimes disappear quite suddenly, sometimes decline gradually. b. Secondary ASyphilis. The phenomena of secondary or constitutional syphilis are all confined to the external skin, the mucous membrane and the higher organs of sense. They succeed the primary ulcer at different periods, very seldom, however, before the sixth week and after the sixth month. They are generally preceded by a period of rest or latent condition, but it likewise not unfrequently happens that secondary syphilis breaks out while the primary phenomena are still running their course. The mercurial treatment of primary syphilis is said to exert a modifying influence over secondary phenomena; whether for the patient's weal or woe, is a question that will be more fully examined by and by. Secondary syphilitic aflec '550 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. arle thin, nor are they massed on top of ea;ch other in thick layers; different from non-syphilitic psoriasis, it spares the elbows and knees, and is most fully developed in the pallns of the hands, and on the soles of the feet. Under the scales the skin is considerably infiltrated, hard and callous, and superficially fissured. The other forms, lichen, impetigo, acne, ecthyma, rupia, pemphigus,.have no peculiar features except the copper-redness. Exanthematic tubercles constitute one of the more frequent and, at all events, more malignant cutaneous affections, since they evince a marked disp6sition to purulent dissolution, and to ulceration. They always exhibit an intensely red color, and break out chiefly on the forehead as the Corona veneris. They give rise to the syphilitic lupus. They usually form definite, most commonly circular clusters; the ulcers arising from them retain the same arrangement. However, they have a very different significance from real lupus, and very seldom involve any considerable loss of substance. Their place is really among the tertiary phenomena; they have been mentioned here simply for the sake of brevity. The syphilitic exanthemata in one form or another generally exist throughout the whole course of secondary or tertiary syphilis, very often constituting the only symptom of the continued presence of the disease. This applies more particularly to acne syphilitica, and to the impetigo of the lower extremities, also to the psoriasis in the palms of the hands; the two last-named exanthems are very frequently associated with considerable callosities in the skin. The hair very frequently becomes diseased, but not as a rule. It is certainly a mistake to suppose that the baldness of syphilitic individuals is always a consequence of mercurial abuse; we have seen this baldness occur in two cases where no Mercury had been taken. What is certain, however, is that after mercurial abuse the hair either does not at all grow again, or only very imperfectly. What causes the falling out of the hair, cannot well be explained, cince the scalp not unfrequently has a perfectly normal appearance. The affections of the mucous membranes are mostly seated in the'lining membrane of the mouth and nose, less frequently of the larynx, and stillless frequently of the rectum. In the mouth their favorite locality are the tonsils and the velum palati, and the region immediately back of the last molar tooth. Iere a deep-colored hyperemia is generally noticed simultaneously with the appearance of the roseola, attended with stinging pain and a difficulty of swallowing as after a cold, which, be it remarked incidentally, fre Syphilis. 551 quently excites the hyperemia. This hypermniia either remains, or else, it disappears for a short period to return again so much more intensely, until finally ulcers break out, having all the appearance of primary chancres. These ulcers may remain unchanged for a long time; sometimes they are very fiat, causing very little trouble. In other cases they show a great tendency to spread to the nose and to the posterior wall of the pharynx and larynx. In such a case they may remain superficial, or else, penetrate even to the cartilages and bones. From the losses of substance thus occasioned, and likewise from the contracting cicatrices caused by the healing of the ulcers, great inconveniences may arise. The ulcers of the Schneiderian membrane are most commonly revealed by a fetid, puriform, sanguinolent discharge. Syphilitic iritis is a phenomenon that cannot be accounted for. It occurs very frequently, and sometimes runs such a mild course, that it is entirely overlooked and is only recognized by its consequences. It only sets in after the appearance of the exanthems, never at the commencement of the secondary phenomena, and there is an evident connection between the iritis and the cutaneous affections; the more intense and extensive these affections, the more certainly we may expect the supervention of iritis. It most generally affects only one eye, very seldom both eyes together, sometimes one after the other. The iritis sets in with violent pains in the globe of the eye; these are scarcely ever absent and exacerbate at night, attended with more or less disturbance of the visual functions and severe illusions of light. The color of the iris seems changed, the organ looks specked, the pupil is all but immovable, angular or ovoid, the anterior chamber looks dim as if filled with pus, sometimes slightly and at other times more strikingly. Occasionally small excrescences are noticed at the border, or dark points on the surface of the pupils. This affection generally runs a chronic course, and is less painful in such a case; if the affection is very acute, it is attended with frightful pains, in which case the eye is apt to be destroyed. A complete cure without any disturbing remnants of disease, can scarcely ever be expected. c. Tertiary Syphilis. UTnder this collective appellation various alterations are comprenended involving a number of organs and being principally located in the osseous system. Sometimes they set in very soon after the 552 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. appearance of the secondary symptoms, ordinarily, however, after the lapse of years. During the development of these tertiary symptoms the secondary phenomena do not disappear, but generally accompany the former in a greater or less degree of intensity. We cannot here undertake to examine the question whether tertiary syphilis is caused by a gradual spread of the infection, or whether it is indebted for its existence exclusively to the use of Mercury. This question it is certainly very difficult to decide in last resort. We are most assuredly of the opinion that tertiary symptoms only set in in consequence of the improper use of Mercury; our reason is that we are not acquainted with a single case of syphilis where tertiary symptoms showed themselves under homceopathic management. If, in reply to this statement, the objection should be raised that under homceopathic treatment syphilis is cured more rapidly, we are perfectly willing to throw in tertiary syphilis, for the superior value of our treatment would not be invalidated by such an admission. The various affections that will be enumerated in the following paragraphs, have the peculiar characteristic of either tending to the purulent metamorphosis and consequent destruction of the affected parts, or causing atrophy of the affected organs by the formation of adventitious areolar tissue. Diseases of the bones and periosteum most commonly involve the skull, and facial bones, the bones of the lower extremities, and more particularly such bones as are not provided with a thick muscular covering, such as the sternum, ribs, etc. The disease sets in with horrid pains which have the peculiarity of exacerbating at night with terrible fierceness (dolores osteocopi). The pains sometimes precede the objective symptoms for some time. At the painful spot tumors are seen, which seem to be super-imposed on the bone and are of two kinds. Some constitute elastic-doughy, soft, flat swellings, called gummata; they contain a tenacious fluid, and either disappear again gradually, or else, become transformed into abscesses. The other class, called tophi, are infiltrations beneath the periosteum, having all the hardness of exostoses. If these tumors do not slowly disappear, they may become real exostoses; they suppurate only in a few cases. The substance of the bones itself is much less frequently the primary seat of inflammation, but is very apt to be invaded by secondary inflammation occasioned by the suppuration of the above-described swellings. It is more particularly in the bones of the nose and face that the disease develops malignant consequences. These bones are destroyed to a greater or Syphilis. 553 less extent, in consequence of which the face becomes horridly disfigured. If the affection is located on the inner surface of the skull, the brain is exposed to great danger, partly in consequence of the pressure exerted upon the brain, and partly in consequence of the probable or at least possible extension of the disease to the meningeal membranes. Gummata are not exclusively seated on the bones, but likewise occur in the interstitial areolar tissue of muscles; various peculiar tertiary affections of special organs seem likewise to be traceable to the existence of gummata. Syphilitic sarcocele occurs pretty fiequently; it generally attacks only one testicle, very rarely both at the same time, sometimes one after the other. It is seated in the substance of the testicle itself, without attacking the epidydimis. Its development takes place slowly and without pain; the testicle may gradually enlarge to the size of a goose-egg, becomes indurated and unequal on its surface. The termination in suppuration is a rare occurrence, and most probably owing to bad management. A retrograde metamorphosis ~takes place very slowly, and in a majority of the cases the interstitial infiltration leads to subsequent and sometimes extensive atrophy of the substance of the testicle. Among the viscera of the trunk the liver is first attacked by an inflammatory process that is exceedingly chronic and sometimes remains latent; as in the testicle so in the liver, this process may result in a contracting 6icatrix, and consequent atrophy and callous degeneration of the substance of the liver. For the spleen, heart, lungs and kidneys we have no forms of disease to which a syphilitic origin might be attributed with positive certainty. The contraction of the biceps muscle without paralysis, or with diminution but not entire suspension of its functions, is almost always a symptom of tertiary syphilis, whereas, if other muscles are similarly affected, a syphilitic origin is more questionable. Upon the general organism tertiary syphilis exerts without exception a most deleterious effect, either in consequence of the disturbances resulting from the above-mentioned processes, or in a more direct mlanner. A very common consequence is a deep melancholy and hypochondria occasioned by depressing reflections conCerning the obstinacy of the disease, and afterwards leading to the most intense derangements of the digestive functions. This result is most apt to take place in the course of sarcocele. Finally all these various complications and disturbances may lead to complete 554 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. cachexia which, however, is not distinguished by any particular features. In reviewing the pathological process of syphilis in its totality we have to offer a few suggestions that are not unessential in a therapeutic point of view; we shall avoid, however, all hypothetical propositions, so much more as a good many points in syphilis still require further examination. In our previous statements we have chiefly adhered to the views of Old School practitioners, with a view of presenting an uniform picture of the disease. Inasmuch, however, as the treatment of syphilis must necessarily exert a greatly modifying influence over the form of its manifestations, it behooves us now to review the changes taking place under homceopathic management. The total course of syphilis is the more rapid, the more vigorous and healthy the affected individual otherwise is; its course is the more tardy, or inclines to chronic and dangerous developments the more, the more debilitated the constitution of the diseased person. In view of this general proposition it is undeniable that under the treatment with large doses of Mercury, the course of syphilis is~ not only much retarded, but is likewise more easliy forced into abnormal deviations. The treatment of syphilis with large doses of Mercury keeps the syphilis latent for a longer period, and by this means prolongs its course. A complete cure takes place so much more speedily, the more speedily the secondary symptoms manifest themselves, for they have to be regarded as curative efforts of the organism. The greater the number of single chancres that break out on an individual, the more intense the cutaneous exanthems, the more speedily will a complete cure be effected. Whether there is a secondary syphilis, is a fact susceptible of demonstration; but it is not so easy to decide what symptoms or modifications of secondary syphilis have to be charged to the action of Mercury. In this respect the judgment of Iomoeopathy is more reliable than that of any other method of treatment. From the stand-point of Homeeopathy we assert that the spots and papule, the intense hypersemia of the mucous lining of the fauces, the superficial ulcers of the fauces, and the condylomata are purely syphilitic; that, on the contrary, the impetigo, the scaly and more particularly the tubercular exanthems, the ulcerations of the fauces and nose, and likewise those of the larynx, are unquestionably due to the treatment. Iritis is likewise a syphilitic phenomenon. The Syphilis. 555 Twhole- series of phenomena that are designated as tertiary, is indoubtedly the result of Mercury, not syphilis. If syphilis is treated homceopathically from the commencement, and every objective symptom has disappeared under this treatment, it is safe to assume that the disease is completely cured, provided no new symptom breaks out in the space of five or six months. Under the old-fashioned mercurial treatment new symptoms may break out even after the lapse of years. It is not fair to infer that these mercurial symptoms are purely and simply the result of mercurial poisoning, for Mercury does not produce such effects when employed in other diseases; the truth seems to be that it is from the union of mercurial and syphilitic action that these phenomena result. The case is precisely similar to that of intermittent fever cured with massive doses of Quinine; the cure is simply apparent and altogether temporary. Hence the total course of syphilis under homceopathic treatment is altogether different from what it is, when the treatment is conducted in accordance with the principles of the Old School. If we have availed ourselves of the course of syphilis under Old school treatment for the purpose of presenting a full picture of the disease, it is because homceopaths are but too often applied to for treatment by syphilitic persons who had been poisoned with Mercury. Under lomlceopathic treatment the course of syphilis is about as follows: The soft chancre heals between six or ten weeks, most generally by iiultiplying considerably; it is scarcely ever followed by secondary phenomena. The indurated chancre heals between nine to fifteen weeks, during which period the infiltration disappears; it is generally succeeded by secondary symptoms, but they break out while the chancre is still existing, and heal completely between two to four months. An acute bubo' breaks only exceptionally, generally it retrogrades without any subsequent secondary symptoms, and is finally completely reabsorbed without leaving any particular infiltration. We have observed this course in the case of buboes that had already reached the size of a hen's egg, with intense redness of the integuments and distinctly-perceptible fluctuation. So far we have never treated a case of syphilis where, after a complete disappearance-of all the symptoms, syphilitic phenomena again showed themselves at a subsequent period.In conclusion we must not omit to state that in Schneider's treatise, entitled: "Syphilis and the methods of curing it," Leipsic, 1861, we possess a valuable work, where the pathological as well as 556 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. therapeutical views concerning syphilis, are subjected to a lucid and exhaustive criticism. We here call attention to this work for the benefit of those who desire to become acquainted with the different methods of treating syphilis, and which we have not space to dwell upon more fully. Treatnme t. The only remedy for all the uncomplicated forms of syphilis is Mercury. Every homceopath accepts this proposition the practical value of which has been verified in a large number of cases, as correct. Simple syphilis whose course we have indicated above, requires for its complete cure nothing but Mercury; but syphilis as manifested in the various forms, a description of which has been given in previous paragraphs, requires for its cure a number of other remedies in almost every case, With a view of simplifying the presentation of our subject, we will describe the treatment of the above-mentioned single forms in successive order. The simple soft chancre heals in the time indicated, seldom within three weeks, under the exclusive use of Mercurius solubilis. If practitioners entertain different views concerning the dose, it is probably because no adequate allowance has been made for the course which syphilis takes.; moreover, there is no doubt that one individual requires a larger, and another a smaller dose. In our practice we are in the habit of employing triturations, although many physicians profess to have effected cures with the sixth and even higher attenuations; we never give more than one dose a day, of one grain each, second or third trituration. TUnder this treatment the chancre never shows an immediate tendency to heal, but it increases in size, three, four or even eight new chancres break out, all of which heal within ten weeks at the latest, leaving a scarcely perceptible cicatrix. Hence the appearance of new chancres should never deceive us; on the contrary, it is a favorable sign, since secondary phenomena scarcely ever break out in such a case. For the last three years we have likewise applied the second trituration of lercurius solubilis externally, dusting the ulcer with it every day by means of a little camel's-hair pencil. This proceeding seems to hasten the cure; the ulcer becomes a little raised, after which the cleansing takes place very rapidly. As soon as this change is beginning to set in, we discontinue the local application, and now give a higher attenuation less frequently, continuing it even for two or three weeks after the cicatrization of the chancre. The inflammation of the prepuce is less important than it might seem; an operation need only to be resorted to, if the glans is too much Syphilis. 557 constricted by an existing paraphimosis. However, since the circumstance that the cut surfaces are apt to become chancrous, does not involve any danger, and phimosis may cause a good deal of distress, our advice is to slit the prepuce whenever it becomes inflamed and swollen. In order to protect the chancre from all unnecessary friction, and at the same time prevent an adhesion between the prepuce and glans-an event of very rare occurrence-we cover the chancre with a thin layer of lint. The indurated chancre likewise requires Mercurius solubilis; this preparation is, however, insufficient in very many cases; under its use the disease runs too protracted a course. However, inasmuch as we cannot fix a normal period for the curative action of Mercury, we should not lose our patience too readily. It is unnecessary to give larger doses than in a case of simple chancre; a dose need not be given more frequently than every other day. In these cases the local application of the remedy has seemed to us of decided benefit. Whether some other mercurial preparation is indicated, had better be determined by the nature of the consecutive phenomena. If an indolent bubo forms, we advise the use of the red Precipitate. For soft, fiat condylomata we prefer Corrosive Sublimate, a weak solution of which we likewise apply externally. We have never yet found it necessary to give stronger doses of either of these two remedies than one grain of the second trituration a day, nor have we ever had to deplore the supervention of medicinal symptoms after either medicine. [We once prescribed half grain doses of the red precipitate, first decimal trituration for several Hunterian chancres on the labia nmaora; the disease was speedily cured, but a horrid salivation broke out, which it took a week to subdue. H.] Condylomata most generally last longer than chancre, but very seldom longer than the induration. Indolent buboes always disappear very slowly. In order not to be led by our impatience to the commission of mistakes, we should always remember that a rapid cure is only preferable to a tardy one, if it is at the same time safe; but that in an opposite case the latter is decidedly preferable. Syphilis can never be cured rapidly. If we are called upon to treat an indurated chancre after it had already been for a long time treated with large doses of Mercury, it is decidedly proper not to give any more Mercury even for three weeks, and to substitute Nitric acid instead. By pursuing this course we obtain so much more certainly an uncontaminated picture of the syphilitic disease, nor need we dread its progress near as much as the insidious development of a syphi 5581 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. litico-mercurial monster. Several physicians recommend for indurated chancre the Iodide of Mercury, and likewise Cinnabaris. It is very likely that these two remedies act well in this form of chancre; we have never yet employed them for the reason that we have always got along with the remedies above mentioned. As we have stated previously, phagedaenic chancre is determined by peculiar constitutional tendencies. It does not bear large doses of Mercury; if this is to be used, it has to be employed with great caution. The best mercurial preparations for this chancre are Corrosive Sublimate and the red Precipitate. Upon the whole, however, Acidurn nitricum or muriaticum had better be substituted for Mercury until the ulcer spreads no longer, and the bottom of the ulcer becomes cleansed. In very bad cases Arsenicum is said to have had a good effect. A gangrenous chancre should never be treated with Mercury until the gangrened parts have sloughed off and provided the remaining ulcer still shows the characteristic properties of chancre, which is not usually the case. Arsenicum is the only remedy capable of arresting the gangrenous destruction. It is a well known fact that this form of chancre is scarcely ever followed by secondary syphilis; hence the apprehension of secondary symptoms need never suggest a resort to Mercury. An acute bubo does not require any other treatment than that of the simple chancre from which it had proceeded. Under the use of Mercury it generally runs its course without suppuration, and' even, if pus has already been deposited, it is very often reabsorbed. Acidum nitricumtn, Hepar sulphuris calc., the red Precipitate and Carbo animalis have likewise been recommended for buboes. Except Iepar, we cannot recommend a single one of these remedies as superior to Jlfercurius sol.; Hepar can only prove useful after the suppurative process has become fully established. Hepar is likewise indicated if, after the evacuation of the pus, or after a partial retrograde metamorphosis, the gland still remains for some time. hard and swollen. Sulphur may likewise have to be employed in: such circumstances, provided of course that no secondary phenoinena have broken out. An indolent bubo which is almost always a sure sign of so-called constitutional syphilis, never disappears rapidly; hence remedies ought not to be changed too rapidly. In such a case the Iodide of Mercury is decidecdly appropriate and sufficient, unless the affec Syphilis. 559 tions of the skin and mucous membrane which may be beginning to make their appearance, should require another remedy. Gonorrhoea occasioned by chancre in the urethra, does not require any special remedies; Mere. solubilis cures the gonorrhcca at the same time as it heals the chancre. For condylomata, Thuya is not a sovereign remedy; this fact is now established beyond a doubt by abundant experience. It is an excellent remedy for the acuminated, dry condylomata, but seems to have very little, if any, effect upon the soft condylomata, either when used internally or externally. In our opinion, these soft condylomata do not always require any particular medication. If they break out in company with a simple chancre, they generally disappear soon after the chancre is healed, and it is good policy, as long as the coidylomata last, to continue the Mercury in smaller and less frequent doses. If they accompany an indurated chancre, they remain for a long time even after the latter is cured, for the reason that they constitute a sign of the more intense and more universal infection. But even in such a case we do not advise any special treatment on their account, because the other constitutional symptoms are much more important. What is certain, however, is that as long as condylomata are present that had come out after a chancre, the syphilitic disease is not cured. If they constitute the only manifestation of the disease, we advise both the internal and external use of Corrosive Sublimate. We have no personal experience to offer concerning Nitri acid., Cinnabaris, Sabina, Staphysagria. [Tartar emetic, internally as well as externally, is an admirable remedy for soft or mucous tubercles. II.] Among the secondary symptoms we first notice the exanthems. They are best managed with the more intensely acting mercurial preparations, Corrosive Sublimate, red and white Precipitate, and, according to our own very satisfactory experience, with our Mercurius vivus which, it seems to us, is not sufficiently appreciated. The violent action of the Napolitan ointment shows that quicksilver acts more rapidly, and even energetically, than most other mercurial preparations; we have found this statement corroborated in a number of cases. Of course not the first, but the third trituration has to be used. It is, moreover, certain that Mercurius vivus causes exanthematic phenomena more certainly and specifically than any other mercurial preparation. For this reason we cannot recommend Mercurius vivus with sufficient emphasis for experimental trials, so much more since it likewise corresponds so perfectly with the 560 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. hypertemia and ulceration of the mucous lining of the fauces. For the above-described uncomplicated affections of the skin and mucous lining, the remedies which we have pointed out will be found suf ficient; however, a marked increase of the cutaneous efflorescences must not be regarded as a bad sign, for the more rapidly and numerously they break out, the more speedily and thoroughly they will be cured. The falling off of the hair is very often remedied by Hepar. Iritis cannot well be treated without Mercury; but it has to be used cautiously; Corrosive Sublimate is the best mercurial preparation for this disease and the most efficient remedy to avert all immediate danger. After the Sublimate, the remaining symptoms are most effectually controlled by means of Clematis; we have cured two cases of iritis with this drug- alone, although the pupil was already considerably distorted. The next syphilitic forms which we shall describe, are a mixture of syphilis and mercurial poisoning, or, which is likewise possible, of syphilis and constitutional anomalies. The treatment of these forms is therefore very different, sometimes exceedingly difficult and always very tedious. It is of great importance that, even in regard to the forms that we have just described, we should know how much Mercury had been used in treating them; this knowledge is indispensable if we are called upon to treat mercurio-syphilitic combinations. We again call to mind a chief rule which is applicable to all these cases, namely: that a curative result must not be expected too impatiently, and that we had better commence the treatment with some indifferent substance, which will afford us time to decide upon the course of treatment that ought to be pursued. We would tender this advice to all those who fancy that a syphilitic patient cannot pass a day without suffering for the want of medicine. Drenching the patient with quantities of medicine is sufficiently destructive in the hands of Old School practitioners, it is likewise hurtful in homceopathic hands, were it only because such a treatment obscures the curative results obtained with our remedies. And we again suggest with all proper emphasis that the cutaneous efflorescences and most other syphilitic phenomena are curative endeavors that ought to be sustained rather than prematurely suppressed. The remedies which homceopaths employ to combat the mixed forms of syphilis and mercurial poisoning, and whose value has been ascertained by clinical experience, are: Jlercurius bijodatus, Kali Syphilis. 561 hydriodicneTepar sulphuris calc., Sulphur, Aurum inuriaticum and metallicurn, Kali' bichromicum, Acidum nitricum, Sarsaparilla, Lycopodium. To undertake to give special indications for every single remedy would be a vain endeavor. In reality we have to be guided by clinical experience, without being able to act in full accord with the law of similarity. We shall rarely be able to effect a cure with any single one of these remedies; most commonly frequent changes will be found indispensable. For this reason we confine ourselves to giving the most necessary rules in the subjoined paragraphs. Syphilitic exanthems, with the exception of roseola, scarcely ever require any Mercury; it is only if the improvement is tardy, or does not seem disposed to set in, and if we are certain that the patient had not yet been poisoned with this drug, that a few doses of Mercury can sometimes be given while the treatment is mainly conducted with some other leading remedy. Psoriasis yields most promptly to Sulphur, Nitri acidum, and, according to some, to Sarsaparilla and Lycopodium. The pustulous forms require the Iodide of Mercury, Nitric acid, the Hydriodate and Bichromate of Potash. Syphilitic pemphigus requires: lepar sulphuris cale., Sulphur, likewise Graphites. Tuberculous exanthems: Aurum metallicum, Acidum nitricum, and likewise Graphites; Lycopodium may likewise be appropiate. The ulcers on the mucous lining are of a mercurial character, if they are deeply-penetrating and affect the bones; we have to avoid Mercury in treating them, and only resort to it, if we are satisfied that no improvement can be achieved by any other means. In such cases the red and white Precipitates are preferable to all other mercurial preparations. For ulcers in the mouth Kali hydriod. may be given alternately with Kali bichromicum; for ozsena, if the bones are yet intact, Kali hydriod. may be prescribed, and if the bones are invaded, Aurum muriaticum. If the patient had previously taken a good deal of Mercury, Acidum nitricum may be given every now and then for a few days at a time. Laryngitis requires above any other remedy Hepar sulphuris, moreover Iodine and the Bichromate oj Potash, and according to Hartmann, Lycopodium. The tertiary phenomena require throughout a cautious, but continued use of the Iodide of Potassium. It is only for single forms that other remedies are required, Aurum, for instance, for syphilitic lupus, for caries of the facial bones, the suppurating tophi, and 36 562 Acute and Chronic Contagious Diseases. finally for sarcbcele. Sulphur scarcely ever produces marked results in tertiary syphilis, nor does Hepar sullpuris. On the other hand, the Iodine-springs of ITall deserve high praise; the water from these springs is the mildest and at the same time most penetrating form in which Iodine can be administered. It remains for us now to make a few remarks concerning the diet of syphilitic patients. In this respect opinions differ even among homceopathic physicians to such an extent that they sometimes are in direct antagonism to each other. We have found the following rules uniformly substantiated by our own experience. Syphilitic ~patients should never be deprived of a sufficient supply of simple and nourishing food; they should not be allowed to eat to excess, nor should they indulge in fat and spiced articles of diet, spirits, heavy beer; light wines do not hurt; a beverage composed of wine and water may safely be permitted. The patient should be allowed to enjoy fresh air, but should.avoid violent exertions, long walks, dancing, etc., until the chancre is healed. These rules are based upon the observation that, if the bodily strength is well preserved, the syphilitic disease runs through its different phases more rapidly; it is moreover a general principle in therapeutic science that the reactive energy of the organism should never be voluntarily depressed in any disease. Mercurial poisoning does not require a deviation from this principle, for it is in debilitated individuals that Mercury causes the most terrible devastation. Of great importance in protracted cases of syphilis is careful attention to the skin which is undoubtedly the most important organ for all critical endeavors of the organism. This is the reason why inveterate secondary and tertiary syphilis improves so rapidly under a rationally and methodically conducted cold-water treatment which should always be resorted to in such cases. Sulphur-baths are much less effectual; they may afford relief, if the patient is attacked with severe rheumatic pains; otherwise they have no other effect than to increase the sensitiveness of the skin to atmospheric influences. B. EPIDEMIC AND ENDEMIC INFECTIOUS DISEASES. I. Intermittent Fever, Fever and Ague. Intermittent fever is now almost universally traced to the influence of malaria; any other origin of this fever is denied. What malaria is, and whence it arises, is either entirely unknown, or else our knowledge of malaria is very uncertain. Where a quantity of vegetable matter is exposed to rapid decay, intermittent fevers are a very common occurrence, and they are the more intense the more rapidly the process of putrefaction takes place, consequently their intensity is greatest in very hot weather. We should be led too far, if we were to dwell more particularly upon the nature of malaria, and we omit this so much more readily as no advantage accrues to the treatment from such speculations. It is well, however, that our attention should be kept fixed on one point, namely the decaying vegetation; for this will remind us of the prophylactic measures that it may be necessary to take. Where malaria prevails, intermittent fever is endemic. But this fever likewise breaks out in a more or less epidemic form, when it invades malarious districts with great violence, or when it visits regions that are generally free from intermittent fever, in a mild form, and does not spread over a large extent of country. Whether epidemics of this kind likewise owe their origin to malarious miasms that had been wafted over from their original locality; is questionable, for, after all, it is difficult to understand why in one year the infectious matter should be carried upon the wings of the wind, and not in another year. Nor are such epidemics confined to certain atmospheric relations. What is remarkable is that such fever-and-ague epidemics are very apt to precede epidemic cholera. Where intermittent fever is an entirely sporadic disease, its origin is still more obscure, as is the case among us, for instance, in the city of Hanover. A special disposition to the disease is determined by age only in so far that middle-aged, robust individuals are more exposed to the exciting causes of the fever. In infancy intermittent fever is a comparatively rare disease. Tuberculosis is an almost certain guarantee against intermittent fever. 563 564 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. As regards the seasons, the disease occurs most frequently when the decay of vegetable matter is going on most extensively, namely in the months of April, May and June, in hot summers with copious showers of rain, likewise in very warm fall-months. Fever and ague is least prevalent during the winter-months, in very cold weather and likewise in very warm, dry weather. Predisposing causes of fever and ague are: errors in diet, catarrh of the digestive tract, colds, working all the time in wet places. This last-mentioned circumstance is the reason why brickmakers are so readily attacked with fever and ague, even if the locality where they work is situated on high ground. One attack of fever and ague undoubtedly increases the disposition to have a second one; persons who move from perfectly healthy into malarious districts are likewise attacked much mrore readily, whereas a protracted sojourn in a nlalarious district diminishes the susceptibility to the malarious miasm. To picture intermittent fever as it really exists, is a difficult undertaking; in the first place, the disease of itself varies greatly in its manifestations; and in the next place the fever is greatly modified by the employment of remedial agents. Inasmuch as these deviations from the normal form will have to be mentioned more particularly when we come to speak of the remedies for this fever, we here confine ourselves to a short description of the most essential modifications. ITncomplicated, genuine intermittent fever is characterized by paroxysms of chill, heat and sweat, returning at regular intervals and separated from each other by a more or less complete apyrexia. The first paroxysm is very generally preceded by a more or less distinct preliminary stage lasting at times a day, at other times a week and even longer, and not presenting any phenomena that definitely point to intermittent fever. In sporadic cases especially, a gastro-intestinal catarrh with slight remittent fever is very apt to run into fever and ague. The paroxysm is very frequently ushered in with a feeling of malaise, stretching and yawning, drawing pains in the extremities; these symptoms are soon succeeded by chills down the spine, and by a feeling of coldness in the extremities and whole body, attended with shaking of the body and chattering of the teeth. On the parts of the body most remote from the heart, the skin generally loses its turgescence, its temperature falls quite considerably, its color is bluish and as if dead. On the other hand, the temperature in the 566 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. lasted for a long time, at times developing itself directly from the tertian type, while the paroxysms postpone, and at other times from the quotidian fever. This quartan type implies the highest degree of tenacity in the disease. The other types, double-tertian, sub-tertian, and whatever their names may be, occur too seldom to deserve, special mention. It is difficult to say what constitutes the normal course of intermittent fever, for the reason that it is always modified by treatment. The following may be regarded as tolerably fixed: In a favorable case the paroxysms scarcely ever cease suddenly; they decrease gradually both in intensity and duratioii, and are apt to discontinue entirely at the end of seven days, the apyrexia being more and more prolonged and gradually becoming permanent. In unfavorable cases, either under the influence of improper management or under the continued action of the malarial poison, but never, or at least very seldom, under homoeopathic treatment, we have a gradual development of the so-called malarial cachexia which we shall dwell upon more fully after having previously described a few deviations from the normal type. Upon the whole, these anomalies occur very seldom at the commencement of the malarious infection, but they become the more frequent, the more the disease approximates to a malarial cachexia. One of the three stages may be entirely wanting, or, if it exists, it may be scarcely perceptible. It is generally the chill and sweaty stage that remain suppressed, the hot stage is almost always present. Some of the stages, more particularly the heat and the sweaty stage, may be separated by an apparent apyrexia of a few hours' duration. Among children, convulsions are not unusual in the first two stages, but they are not of a dangerous import, except when violent and long-lasting. An intermittent fever of long duration and under the continued action of malaria, changes to the remittent type; this circumstance, however, points without an exception to malarial cachexia. In simple. intermittent fever, the spleen never enlarges to any very great extent. One of the characteristic effects of malaria is intermittent neuralgia; the paroxysms set in with all the typical regularity of feverand-ague paroxysms, but without any marked febrile symptoms. During these attacks, the temperature of the body is generally considerably higher than usual. [There are other intermittent paroxysms which take the place of fever and ague and may be regarded as masked forms of the intermittent disease. Some of the Intermittent Fever. 567 more common forms of masked fever and ague are: Intermittent neuralgia, dysentery, pneumonia, articular rheumatism. We have never been able to get along in the treatment of these masked forms of fever and ague without Quinine; it is not necessary to. give large doses, but Quinine is indispensable. H.] The most important anomaly is the intermittens perniciosa or comitata. Most commonly intermittent fever adopts this form in the subsequent course of the disease, very seldom at the beginning. Intermittens perniciosa is a form of fever where a simple increase of the ordinary symptoms becomes dangerous to life. This malignant increase often takes place in the first stage, more particularly in the case of children, but more commonly during the hot stage; the danger arises either from the brain being paralyzed, or else from paralysis of the heart in consequence of the excessive vascular excitement. If the brain is threatened with paralysis, the attack is characterized by delirium, sopor, coma, likewise by paroxysms of excessive maniacal exaltation; if paralysis of the heart threatens, the chill increases to icy-coldness, like the coldness in cholera. Many a case of fever and ague assumes the pernicious type simply because the paroxysms are of an extraordinary duration. [This form of intermittent fever is designated in our country as " Congestive chills;" it acts precisely as Hufeland's febris apoplectica or perniciosa. We have seen a great deal of it. During the chill we give Aconite or G-elseminum, as the case may be, and we sometimes resort to the spirits of Camphor to hasten reaction; during the hot stage we continue the Aconite, or substitute Belladonna; and when the sweaty stage has fairly set in, we give Quinine in sufficient quantity either to keep off the next attack, or at least to secure a modification of the paroxysm. We do not believe that congestive chills, such as we see them in our malarious countries, can be arrested without Quinine; we believe that Quinine is the specific remedy for this form of chills, although other remedies may likewise be required. When the late Dr. Channing was still practising in the city of New York, he had a case of congestive chills to treat, for which he gave the patient, a Western gentleman, a dose of tolerably highly-potentized Nux vomica. A second chill, of course, took place much more violent than the first. The Doctor, with his large brain crammed brimful with the doctrine of homceopathic aggravations, being perfectly satisfied that the Nux had aggravated the symptoms, gave him a drop of Alcohol to counteract the terrible mischief the harmless little globule of rux had done; a third 568 Epidemic and. Endemic Infectious Diseases. paroxysm occurred, which destroyed the patient. II.] The febres comitatme are characterized by the supervention of other threatening symptoms during the paroxysm, more particularly a severe attack of intestinal catarrh like cholera, rupture of the spleen, excessive hyperoemia of the brain, inflammatory affections of vital organs, hemorrhages, apoplexy. Malarial cachexia in its severest form is most usually met with, if a quantity of Quinine is administered to the patient while he continues to be exposed to the action of the malarious miasm. This action alone, without Quinine, never produces a malarial cachexia of the same degree of intensity. Individuals who had taken a great deal of Quinine, after moving out of the infectious district, are very apt to be attacked with malarial cachexia. According to the observations that have been made by a number of practitioners, the close connection between malarial cachexia and Quinine cannot be denied. We will now proceed to describe the course which fever and ague takes when mismanaged by Quinine. With large doses of Quinine we generally succeed in effecting a sudden cessation of the paroxysms; but the period following such a suppression is not free from morbid symptoms; the patients complain more or less. A fortnight, or more commonly three weeks, less frequently four weeks after the suppression, another paroxysm breaks out very suddenly. This. paroxysm likewise yields to Quinine, but after this second suppression the patient generally complains more than after the first; for a third paroxysm, which generally breaks out after a short apyrexia, Quinine now proves ineffectual. The paroxysms either assume the quartan type, or else they break out with great irregularity, and combine with constitutional symptoms that gradually increase in intensity. The spleen is sometimes so large that it fills one-half of the abdominal cavity; the liver becomes enlarged and after a while shows symptoms of fatty degeneration; the digestion is entirely deranged, the appetite is gone, the bowels are excessively constipated, or else, the patient is troubled with a diarrhcea as in hectic fever. The. patients seem to be attacked with a deepseated anammia and have a strikingly sallow complexion. The changes in the abdominal viscera may sooner or later lead to ascites. If, as we have often noticed, a catarrhal affection of the lungs sets in, we obtain a complete picture of florid phthisis. The emaciation of the patients soon reaches a high degree, and, under improper treatment, death now is an almost inevitable result. The prognosis in intermittent fever revolves around the following Intermittent Fever. 569 points: If the attack is recent, the prognosis is quite favorable; the longer the disease had lasted; the more irregular the paroxysms had become; the more strikingly the blood had become altered, the more protracted will be the recovery of the patient. Sporadic cases in a healthy district are of very little importance. Diseases breaking out while the patient continues to be exposed to the influence of malaria, get well very slowly; but even if the patient is removed from the further action of the miasm, the cure takes place very slowly. An advanced as well as a very young age; a dilapitated organism, and more particularly alcoholism, render the prognosis very uncertain. To treat fever and ague according to the homceopathic law is a task which is undoubtedly invested with great difficulties even for the most experienced practitioner. The homceopathic treatment of fever and ague has undoubtedly led to many errors, for the reason that spontaneous cures were too often overlooked and appro. priated as the results of the medicine that had been administered for the fever. In consequence of this, the number of our remedies for fever and ague has been very much increased, to the great inconvenience of the physician who is in need of a remedy for a particular case. For this reason we furnish in the subsequent paragraphs a limited number of remedies with definite indications; of the more unreliable medicines we shall only give the names. In treating a case of fever and ague a few points should never be lost sight of, since attention to these points will save the practitioner from many mistakes. In the first place, it is an important point in the treatment of fever and ague that the totality of the symptoms should never be lost sight of; in other words, not only the symptoms characterizing the paroxysm, but likewise those that are perceived during the apyrexia, or new symptoms, should be carefully noted. A remedy should never be chosen exclusively according to the symptoms of the paroxysm or the apyrexia. It is evident, however, in view of the great similarity of the paroxysms, that the appropriate remedy will more especially be determined by the symptoms during the apyrexia. Higher potencies are undoubtedly sufficient to effect a cure, although a preference is generally accorded to the lower. If a remedy that is evidently homceopathic to the case, does not cure it, it is perfectly proper to try a lower attenuation- before parting with this drug. 570 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. If possible the remedy should never be given during the paroxysm, but as soon as possible after the paroxysm is terminated. If, under the operation of a medicine, the paroxysms decrease in duration and intensity, it should be continued as long as the good effects of this medicine last; by pursuing this course we obtain the most reliable information concerning the use of special remedies in fever and ague. If an epidemic breaks out in a non-malarious district, it will be found that one or two remedies are generally sufficient to cure every case. The following are the most efficient remedies for simple fever and ague: China or Quinine is undoubtedly the most important remedy for fever and ague, but its value is very much impaired by the fact that it is employed as a sovereign remedy not only for fever and ague itself, but likewise for all intermittent diseases. We need n6t dwell any further upon the manner in which this remedy is abused; this fact is too well known to the Profession. All we can say is that China is the most effectual and reliable of all anti-typical medicines, but that it only helps when it is homeopathic to the case. China is suitable in a majority of all cases of endemic and epidemic fever and ague, even during the whole course of the disease, whereas in sporadic cases it is generally of very little use. China is particularly indicated by the following symptoms: Precursory symptoms consisting in nervous excitement, anxiousness, headache, nausea, general irritability; the chill is of short duration, very soon mingled with heat, without thirst which is only experienced at the cornmencement of the hot stage, and is never very intense. Sensitiveness and excessive irritability especially during the chill; the sweaty stage lasts a long while and the perspiration is exceedingly profuse. During the apyrexia we have: great debility with restlessness, loss of appetite with canine hunger, bitter taste and thickly-coated tongue. We do not attach an extreme importance to these indications, for they are often deceptive. As. rule, it is true that China cures every case of fever and ague originating in' malaria; the case must be of recent origin and attended with nervous irritability and gastric-bilious symptoms. In inveterate cases, with marked hypertrophy of the spleen and liver, anemi'a, dropsy, China will seldom be of much use; such patients have always been dosed with this medicine to excess. If they have not, China is indicated by: anaemia, a yellowish-gray complexion; occasional attacks of diarrhea, Intermittent Fever. 571 palpitation of the heart, congestions of the head, back-ache, oedema; irregularity of the paroxysms, the single stages not succeeding each other immediately, and not being completely developed. [We have frequently met with such symptoms under the symptom-treatment of high potentialists, where a few small doses of Quinine would wipe out the whole disease, after the patient had been kept sick and sicker for weeks. II.] Upon the whole, a tertian type is most adapted to the curative range of China, the quartan-type much less frequently. As regards dose we advise the use of the lower preparations in all recent cases, but it will scarcely ever le necessary to go below the second trituration of Quinine or the first attenuation of the tincture of Cinchona. Fevers that do not yield to such doses, are not amenable to the curative action of Quinine, and can only be suppressed, but not cured, by more massive doses of this' drug. In the genuine malarial cachexia, China will very seldom render much service. Ipecacuanha is decidedly adapted to epidemic fever and ague; if it cures one case, it will undoubtedly cure most of the other cases. This circumstance at one time procured for it the inordinate praises of the Old School; afterwards it fell into disrepute, because it was not found adapted to all epidemics, its opponents not being aware that fever and ague epidemics differ amongst each other in character. Ipecac. is only suitable in the milder forms of intermittent fever, scarcely in any other than the tertian type; the different stages run their course without much intensity and the chill is. most marked; it is particularly indicated, if the fever is accompanied by gastric symptoms, such as loss of appetite, loathing of food, nausea, vomiting, diarrhoea with very little bile in the evacuations, or if the paroxysm is caused by dietetic transgressions. Intermittent fevers of this character are generally epidemic in nonmalarious districts. According to IHartmann Nux vomica is indicated by the following symptoms: Fever, with constipation, gastric-bilious symptoms; it breaks out after gross violations of diet, and is characterized by nervous symptoms proceeding from the spinal cord. [We once cured a case of fever and ague of nine months' standing with a few doses of Nux, The patient had been in one of the Nashville hospitals for nine months, and had taken Quinine by the ounce. lie was very fond of liquor and a paroxysm broke out after every debauch. Nux cured him so perfectly that the paroxysms did not even return after he had been drinking. II.] Quotidian and tertian 572 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. fevers, setting in in the afternoon, evening or night, with alternation of heat and chills, enormous craving for beer, frontal headache, vertigo, nausea, bitter taste and eructations, cardialgia, great weakness.-In congestive chills Nux is likewise indicated by the following symptoms: Paralysis of the extremities at the onset, prostration, weariness, trembling, fainting, vertigo, dyspncea, palpitation of the heart, heat of the head with coldness of the body,. delirium. Nux is undoubtedly one of our more important feverremedies; it will not be difficult to determine its homceopathicity in given cases. In inveterate cases Nux would not often be our choice. It is likewise an important remedy if the fever is complicated with bronchitis. Veratrum album is likewise one of our most important fever and ague remedies; marked chill which is slowly followed by heat, with convulsive symptoms and great thirst, vomiting or retching, quick, feeble and small pulse; stupor during the hot stage, with,bland delirium; the third stage is not strikingly marked. In febris comitata Veratrum album is an important remedy if the cerebral symptoms, the pulmonary hypersemia and the profuse intestinal catarrh are prominently developed. Arsenicum, in our estimation is still more important than China; its range of action is still more extensive. In recent cases it is indicated by the following symptoms: Intensity and long duration of the paroxysms, especially burning heat; unquenchable thirst during the whole attack, and extreme anxiety and restlessness except during the sweaty stage, attended with palpitation of the heart, and a subdued, accelerated pulse; moreover functional derangements of single organs. Arsen. is indicated the more specifically the cleaner the tongue remains in extremely violent paroxysms, the more rapidly the strength is exhausted by the single paroxysm and the sooner the characteristic sallow pallor makes its appearance. For this reason Arsen. is an important remedy in endemic fever and ague. In congestive chills the imminent: paralysis of the heart points to Arsenicum beside Verat. alb.; Arsen. is likewise indicated if the fever is complicated with severe cholerine. In fever and ague cachexia Arsen. is a sovereign remedy. Its effect is truly marvellous. With a single dose of Arsenicun 30 we have cured a cachexia of thirteen weeks' standing. The patient, a very robust man, presented the picture of a complete phthisis florida; he was cured even without leaving his home situated in a truly malarious region of country. Another case of nine months' stand Intermittent Fever. 573 ing was cured by means of a few doses of Arsen. 30, so completely that even the hypertrophied spleen was reduced back again to its natural size. The patient was a Hollander who brought the disease with him; after residing in our very healthy city for four months and swallowing large quantities of Quinine, all the symptoms of phthisis florida had developed themselves.-Arsen. is not only a lever-remedy, but likewise an antidote to Quinine. We need not point out special symptoms, for cachexia is amenable to Arsenicum in all its manifestations, which, it is true, generally resemble each other very closely; it is least reliable when the anemia is extreme and the reactive powers of the organism are very much depressed. In the above-mentioned cases we have stated the dose, because we are satisfied that in cachexia small doses exert the most curative influence; on the other hand we are equally satisfied that in more recent cases triturations up to the sixth are most suitable. Natrum muriaticum is very seldom indicated in recent, but so mtch more so in inveterate cases. The stages are very unequal, the chill continuous, the heat moderate, but accompanied by all sorts of accessory symptoms, among which headache occupies the most prominent rank; the perspiration is either wanting, or else it is excessive and debilitating. At the same time the patient is troubled with chronic catarrh of the mouth and stomach, constant constipation, renal catarrh, palpitations of the heart. The patient has a grayish-yellow look; the spleen and liver are very much enlarged. Arnica is adapted to recent as well as inveterate cases if the chill is preceded by violent thirst which abates almost entirely after the heat breaks out; if during the hot stage every little current of air causes the patient to feel chilly, and if, during this stage he seems to be listless but at the same time very restless. To these remedies we add a few from Hartmann, concerning which we do not possess any personal experience. Belladonna in quotidian fever, with horrid headache, vertigo, hallucinations, injected eyes, nausea, vomiting, constant colstipation; or in fevers where each paroxysm is associated with a severe neuralgic attack. Cina, if the fever commences with vomiting of food followed by canine hunger; the attacks come on every day. Pulsatilla; vomiting of mucus at the commencement of the chill, heat and sweat without thirst; mucous diarrhcea during the apyrexia, with loathing of food and nausea. 574 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. Antimonium crudum; heat and sweat break out at the same time, the sweat being only transitory; loss of appetite, eructations, nausea, vomiting, thickly-coated tongue, bitter taste, tension and pressure at the stomach, pain in the chest. Bryonia; the fever sets in early in the morning; the attack is ushered in with vertigo, pressure and a gnawing sensation in the sinciput; at the same time a dry cough with stinging pains in the chest, dyspncea, vomiturition. Sabadilla; the attacks set in with great regularity, neither postpone nor anticipate; short chill, followed by thirst and lastly heat; or only chill without heat or sweat; apyrexia with frequent chilly creeping, pressure and distention at the stomach, with loss of appetite, nocturnal, dry cough, pain in the chest, dyspncea. Ignatia; the chill is removed by external covering; some parts feel cold, others hot; heat only on the outside, without thirst; dulness of the head during the hot stage, bruising pain in the occiput, right side, pressure at the pit of the stomach, great lassitude, paleness of the face, etc. Thirst only after the paroxysm. Carbo vegetabilis; the attack is preceded by a beating in the temples, tearing in the teeth and extremities, stretching, cold feet. Thirst and great lassitude during the chill. During the hot stage, without thirst: headache,vertigo, flushed face, obscuration of vision, nausea, pain in the stomach, abdomen, chest, dyspncea; the fever is succeeded by severe headache. Capsicum; the chill prevails, attended with intense thirst which is wanting or only very moderate (uring the hot stage; sweat during the heat. During the chill: anxiety, restlessness, inability to collect one's-self, sensitiveness to noise; headache, ptyalism, vomiting of mucus, splenetalgia, backache, tearing and contracting sensation in the extremities. During the heat: stinging in the head, fetor from the mouth, colic with ineffectual urging to stool, pain in the chest and back, tearing in the lower limbs. Tartarus emeticus; drowsiness during the attack; Opium is to be given if real sopor is present. We might increase this list, if we would name all the different remedies that might possibly be indicated. But we do not even regard most of the above-mentioned remedies as real fever and ague remedies; their choice depends upon the nature of the accompanying symptoms which, if a cure takes place, would have proved to be the cause, not the consequence of the fever. If we wish to be certain of selecting the right remedy, we have to inquire with Intermittent Fever. 575 great care whether the intermittent character of the attack only constitutes an accidental, although very prominent symptom, or whether the other symptoms emanate from the intermittent paroxysm as their fountain-head. In the latter case the remedies that have been named first, deserve a preference over any other; in the former case the symptoms which are most prominent during the apyrexia, decide a choice of the remedy. In congestive chills as well as in the febres comitatme the threatening accessory symptoms are the main indications. The most suitable remedies cannot be indicated a priori. A fever and ague cachexia'is always such a complicated affection, that it is impossible to indicate therapeutic rules for its management applicable to every case. The whole organism is involved, at times the spleen being more severely affected, at other times the liver, or the stomach and intestines, then again the lungs: sometimes the greatest danger emanates from the anemic condition of the patient, so that it is often very difficult to hit upon the right remedy. If China had not been abused, it will meet most of the symptoms, and will prove the best remedy in the case. If Quinine had been taken to excess, Arsen. will help in the large majority of cases; this remedy should not be given up all at once, if the improvement is not very speedy; in such a case it is much better to change the dose than the remedy. Ferrum is adapted to all cases where the anaemia and debility are highly developed, but no Cedema has yet set in; the patients complain somewhat of congestion of the chest and heart, nor is the stomach disposed to retain any nourishment. Natrum muriaticum and Lycoifodium are indicated if the digestive organs are chiefly affected, and the derangement is characterized by symptoms peculiar to these two drugs. Other remedies may be. required for extraordinary symptoms. We doubt, however, whether Belladonna and Staphysagria, recommended by Ilartmann, are ever of any use in this cachexia. There is no special diet that can be recommended for fever and ague. It depends in every case upon the state of the digestive organs and the necessity of guarding the stomach against every pernicious influence, for it is upon the normal functions of the stomach that depends the possibility of the patient's sinking strength being restored to its natural tone. If possible, the patient had better leave the malarious district, and remove to the mountains where recovery takes place most rapidly. 576 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. 2. Typhus. Typhus occurs in two forms that do not differ much from each other, namely: typhus abdominalis and typhus exanthematicus. More recently this last-lnamed form has become much less frequent than the former. In spite of these differences the etiology of both forms is pretty much the same; up to this period we have not succeeded in discovering the reasons for the appearance of either one or the other form. Typhus originates in some infectious agent; all that is known of this agent is that it is caused by the decomposition of animal substances. Hence typhus occurs most frequently where the decomposition of animal matter is most favored by circumstances, namely in large cities and hospitals; likewise in localities which are least favorably situated for carrying away the products of decomposition, such as cities built in a flat country and with imperfect drainage. The infectious principle at times seems to act with great intensity, at other times very mildly, so that typhus in crowded localities sometimes breaks out with an extraordinary virulence, and at other times with comparative mildness. According to all probability, a graduated difference of this kind is chiefly owing to the quantity of the infectious agent that acts upon the organism, not to its quality. The contagium is reproduced by the patient. We cannot share the views which prevail concerning the formation of a contagium. We do not consider any form of typhus contagious. An apparently contagious transmission of typhus only takes place among those who have been for some time exposed to the emanations from the infected individual, not among those who have only.been in contact with the patient for a short period of time. These remarks likewise apply to exanthematic typhus which is considered as decidedly contagious, but which only appears so for the reason that it produces a larger quantity and a more infectious quality of contagious matter. Physicians in private practice are seldom attacked, notwithstanding they are brought in closest contact with the patients when exploring their chests; hospital-physicians and nurses, on the contrary, are taken down very often. More recently the level of the surface-water has been more particularly examined with reference to typhus and cholera; a high level is supposed to favor the breaking out of these plagues. We are still without any reliable data in this respect. In large cities the construction of wells and water-closets deserves great attention; where both are so Typhus. 577 close together that the well-water can be contaminated by the contents of the closets, typhus is very likely to occur. This subject is without doubt worthy the most serious attention of the Board of Health, for typhus is not only one of the most dangerous, but likewise one of the most frequent diseases. A few points can easily be inferred from what we have said, such as: epidemic and endemic, slightly endemic and sporadic type of typhus; breaking out of typhus in very damp and hot years, during the hot months of the summer and in the fall; likewise in crowded hospitals, more particularly if they are full of wounded soldiers; or in densely populated streets, tenement-houses, on shipboard, etc. Typhus occasioned by an insufficient supply of food, or by unwholesome and deteriorated food, is less easily accounted for. One attack of typhus does not always, but very generally, protect against a second attack. There are certain other cirdumstances that almost positively preclude the possibility of typhus, especially abdominal typhus; these are: Intermittent fever, tuberculosis, carcinoma, heart-disease of the higher grade. Age does not establish any positive lines of demarcation; except infants, persons of any age may be attacked, but more particularly young people and individuals up to the age of fifty. Vigorous constitutions are more easily attacked and likewise more severely. Exciting causes are: Fear and anxiety; a sudden change of diet,. when persons settle in a locality where typhus -is endemic; catarrh of the intestines; mental depression, both by excessive mental labor as well as by care and grief. Symptoms and Course. We deem it unnecessary to analyze the pathological anatomy of typhus, for the reason that the prominent post-mortem phenomena scarcely ever correspond with definite groups of symptoms in the phenomenal totality of the disease. Hence, we confine ourselves to a few more important data. In abdominal typhus the ulcers in the intestines act the most important part; they have even given rise to the name of this form of the disease. However, it behooves us to premise the statement that in their various phases these ulcers do not correspond with definite phases in the total course of the disease. The ulcers form as follows: At first the mucous lining of the ileum is strikingly hyperermic, more particularly in its lower half; gradually this venous hyperemia becomes centered in Peyer's and Brunner's glands, which swell up considerably together with the mesenteric glands. In the former the inflammatory infiltration may be reabsorbed, or 37 578 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. else, which happens much more frequently, the infiltration is decomposed, destroying the super-incumbent mucous lining, and giving rise to an ulcer, the enteric or typhous ulcer. This ulcer is most commonly located in the inferior extremity of the ileum and, according as it arises from a solitary or a conglomerate gland, may be round and small, or enlarge to the size of half a dollar, with irregular, undermined borders. The healing takes place very slowly; the destructive process may likewise penetrate to the deeper tissues, perforating the intestine. The subsequent cicatrix never causes stricture of the intestine. The intestinal ulceration very seldom assumes a chronic form, resulting in a slow, hectic fever. Beside the intestinal ulcers, the spleen shows tolerably constant alterations; in the first weeks it enlarges even to six times its normal size, the capsule is very tense, the substance of the spleen exceedingly vascular and crumbling, its color is very dark; afterwards the swelling goes down. again almost to the natural proportions of the organ, the capsule is relaxed, the parenchyma pale and anemic. Except these two almost constant phenomena, typhus does not offer any permanent, certainly no characteristic signs. The brain, especially, remains unaltered; the lungs, on the contrary, show at first symptoms of pulmonary irritation; afterwards hypostatic, less frequently lobular or lobar pneumonia. During the first weeks of the disease the muscles have a somewhat characteristically dark color, and the internal surface of the arteries has likewise a dark-red appearance. In exanthematic typhus the intestinal ulceration does not exist, whereas in this form likewise the spleen is considerably hypertrophied and softened, and the vessels also have a bright appearance as if injected. Other constantly present anatomical alterations are not perceived. Abdominal typhus very rarely breaks out suddenly; it is generally preceded for a few days or even a week by indefinite symptoms, such as lassitude, indisposition to work, loss of spirits., impaired appetite, very seldom hunger almost bordering upon a voracious desire for food; wandering rheumatoid pains in the limbs, especially in the back, headache of an indeterminate type, sleepjfull of dreams. The disease is generally ushered in by a chill of moderate violence, or by a marked fainting sensation which is soon followed by the characteristic feeling of illness, namely: an inability to stand erect or move about, and a desire to lie down. Very seldom one of these conditions is cntirely wanting, so that it is difficult to point Typhus. 579 out the real beginning of the disease; instead: of one severe chill we often meet with a succession of very feeble chills. The disease now develops itself in the following manner: The patients feel weak, have neither the strength nor the desire to rise from their beds; headache, at times more frontal, and at other times, in the more violent cases, in the occiput, throbbing and very distressing;; complete loss ofappetite; altered, generally pasty taste; vomiting not very frequent; bowels quite torpid in the first week; restless sleep; when waking early in the morning, the patients commence very soon to conplain of phantasms which they cannot avoid; yet they talk very rationally and are perfectly conscious of seeing phantasms. The pulse is generally full, very seldom exceeding one hundred beats, very often dicrotic; the temperature is high, the skin feels burning-hot. The breathing is almost constantly hurried, anxious, the patient talks hurriedly, yet, if desired, he is able to take a long breath. The spleen is generally swollen, the swelling increasing rapidly in size, and is not unfrequently painful. The abdomen does not show any constant alterations, but when the iliocecal region is pressed uponl, the patients complain of pain in this region, and a gurgling sensation is communicate to the finger, with which the pressure is made. The tongue is at times coated very thickly, at other times it only has a whitish coating, and againi it looks quite clean, but the coating changes as the'disease progresses. Sometimes the patients complain of a little hacking cough, and exhibit symptoms of a slight bronchial catarrh. The urine is less in quantity, saturated, notwithstanding that the patients often experience a very violent thirst. All these symptoms remain in force only in-very violent cases; most generally a sensible remission of these symptoms takes place towards the end of the first week. In the second week the symptoms of the disease undergo a marked change, unless the morbid process takes a turn towards recovery, which is very seldom the case. For the present we only speak of typhus of a moderately severe type. In this stage the patients lose their consciousness more and more; they are either lying in a state of lethargic apathy, or else, it is only with great difficulty that they are able to reply to questions or to give utterance to their own ideas. In the evening and during the night this soporous prostration is generally interrupted by a state of nervous exaltation, during which the patients manifest their internal nervousness by animated talking or by a constant endeavor to escape j582 Epidemic and Endemic Infect'ous Diseases. just alluded to, when followed by an exacerbation of the symptoms, is generally looked upon as a fatal change. Death takes place with symptoms of paralysis of the heart and lungs. In favorable cases the fever remits every morning on the last days of the third week, whereas the evening-exacerbations decrease in violence, the consciousness returns gradually and with it a desire for food and drink. At this stage the fever scarcely ever shows a sudden and considerable decrease, with a correspondingly sudden beginning of convalescence. With the third week typhus of a medium grade has reached its intensity in so far as signs of convalescence now begin to show thlernselves, although very slowly. Every case of typhus out-last*ing the third week, maybe safely regarded as very severe. Except.complications take place, no new symptoms develop themselves.during the fourth and fifth weeks. The remissions of the fever,are very distinct and grow more decided in character; the pulse, on the contrary, increases in weakness and frequency. The patient looks as if he were in a state of terrible collapse; occasionally threatening paroxysms of collapse really take place, more particularly in the night; in the later course of the disease, such paroxysms are, however, not as dangerous as they seem. In the case of adults the consciousness usually returns towards the end of the fourth week; but, if the fever continues, delirium is still very -frequent towards evening. The diarrhcea is at times less than it -was, and at other times more profuse; in some cases it now ceases altogether. The skin looks clean, with the exception of rmiliaria -here and there. The bed-sores which are never wanting during such a protracted course of the disease, grow rapidly in extent and -;malignancy. If the fever runs a course of four weeks, recovery takes place very slowly. In very fortunate cases recovery goes on uninterruptedly, but most frequently its course is disturbed by all sorts of accidental inconveniences, such as vomiting alter certain kinds of'food, or even after any kind; sudden disappearance of the appetite that had just begun to return; return or protracted continuance of the diarrhea; exacerbations of the fever. The decubitus, the nature and conduct of which af3ord an excellent criterium by which the amount of progress in the recovery of the patient can be ~measured, sometimes causes a great deal of serious trouble, provided the final cure of the fever is very much delayed. Death either:takes place in consequence of the utter prostration of the patient, 584 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. to react. This course is only met with amongindividuals with exceedingly robust and plethoric constitutions. A protracted course of typhus, or the so-called febris nervosa lenta, is likewise only rarely met with in comparison with other forms of this disease. It occurs more particularly among feeble, nervous individuals, hence more especially among females. There aretwo modifications of this disease. In the first place the disease may creep along imperceptibly, without a chill or any evident sign of serious illness. The patients lose their strength more and more, their appetite leaves them. all at once, they are not tormented by thirst. There is no great rise of temperature, the skin feels even remarkably cool; the pulse is at times very quick and small, upwards of one hundred and twenty, at other times strikingly slow. Diarrhcea may be entirely absent, or is very inconsiderable. The patients look pallid, or else their cheeks show a hectic, circumscribed, easily changing redness. The tongue is seldom coated, never fuliginous, generally of a bright-red color, smooth as a mirror, and greatly disposed to become dry. The spleen is evidently enlarged. In this way the patients may remain six, eight or more weeks without the least change in the symptoms taking place. Recovery almost always takes place imperceptibly. Death either takes place in consequence of slow and intense exhaustion or else by the supervention of acute complications. - In the other case the disease sets in like typhus of a middle grade, continues this course during the first three weeks, but in the fourth week it assumes the lentescent type with the previously-described symptoms of the first variety, except that the prostration is still greater and the diarrhcea is much more common. This form is most easily succeeded by sequelae. Typhus of a more intense type runs a very characteristic course among children during the first period of dentition, The disease begins with the symptoms of a severe catarrhal fever, with intense heat, passing sweats, occasional vomiting, constipation; the pulse, instead of exceeding one hundred and twenty beats which it frequently does in catarrhal fever, usually ranges from one hundred to one hundred and twenty. Towards the end of the first week the somnolence changes to sopor, and in the second week to a deep coma; diarrhea sets in, the passages as well as the urinary secretions taking place involuntarily; the face assumes an appearance of collapse at an early period, the pupils are almost always considerably dilated; deglutition is difficult, only small quantities can be swallowed at a time. The little patients most commonly signify Typhus. 585 the presence of a severe headache by moving a hand or a forearm over their foreheads at short intervals, and uttering every now and then the characteristic "cri encphalique." One side of the body is generally completely paralyzed. The patients remain in this condition which looks very much like meningitis, for weeks without showing the least sign of a change. To judge from the four cases that we have met with in the last two years, it seems to us as though the end of the sixth week were the decisive term of this fever; for on the first day of the seventh week these four children were again restored to consciousness. In such cases the diagnosis has to depend entirely upon the pulse which, in contra-distinction to an inflammatory cerebral affection, especially to acute hydrocephalus, constantly remains at one hundred and twenty; likewise upon the presence of diarrhoea, upon the hypertrophy of the spleen which is seldom very considerable; and finally upon the fetid odor with which the sick-chamber is filled and which strikes one invariably on entering the room from the open air, even if the apartment is ventilated with ever so much care. Sequelae are not very common in such cases; nor is, in spite of the worst apparent signs, the prognosis so very bad, provided the eighteenth day is safely passed. In conclusion we have to make mention of pneumo-typhus, a modification which occurs very frequently at times, whereas it is not met with.at all in other epidemics. The supposition that in such a case the typhoid process runs its course upon the.pulmonary, instead of upon the intestinal lining membrane, is not correct; for the affection of the intestinal lining membrane is not entirely wanting, although it may be inconsiderable. In pneumo-typhus the inflammatory irritation of the bronchia which we meet with in every case of typhus, increases to a more marked degree of intensity; real pneumonia supervenes, and the additional advent of hypostasis occasions a very threatening combination utterly overshadowing the abdominal phenomena. Pneumo-typhus may exist from the beginning of the disease, or it may break out in the course of the first, second, and even third week, most generally in a very insidious manner. Beside the physical signs, pneumo-typhus is not revealed by any other reliable sign, although the presence of a very hurried, superficial respiration, a frequent and painful cough, fan-like motion of the ale nasi during respiration, circumscribed redness of one or both cheeks ought to excite suspicion, and awaken our attention to the disease. The course of the disease is not retarded by this form of typhus, but the critical days are very commonly missed. The 586 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. danger is very great. Very often pneumo-typhus is followed by the development of florid phthisis, probably owing to the circumstance that the typhoid process in the lungs causes existing tubercles to suppurate. The number of complications that may break out during the course of typhus is very great; for this reason we only mention the following which are most common and most important: HIemorrhages from the bowels and nose; the latter occur more frequently at the beginning than during the subsequent course of the disease; they are of very little importance, provided the loss of blood is not excessive; as a rule, the patients feel relieved after the bleeding: Intestinal hemorrhage, on the contrary, occurs during the later period of the disease, and becomes very dangerous either on account of its copiousness, or on account of its exceedingly debilitating influence. If the blood is not discharged from the anus, the hemorrhage may superinduce a sudden and complete collapse. Petechiae and extensive ecchymoses are ominous symptoms which indicate a bad composition of the blood. The frequently-occurring and excessive cerebral exaltation is of importance in so far as it induces the necessity of constantly watching the patient; it manifests itself more frequently in the first and second week than in the subsequent course of the disease, and, since it may break out at any time, typhus-patients should never be left alone for one instant. A sudden collapse, with paralysis of the heart, is not generally met with until after the second week, very often while the fever seems to pursue an apparently mild course; one attack of this kind seldom terminates fatally; but a repetition of the attack, which generally takes place in the evening or during the night, is very apt to end in death. Parotitis has already been spoken of before; it is neither a good nor an absolutely bad symptom. Ulcers in the larynx may lead to ulceration of the cartilages, and by this means endanger life; if inconsiderable, they may likewise endanger life by superinducing cedema glottidis. The worst changes are those occasioned by ulcers in the intestines, namely consecutive peritonitis, and perforation of the intestines with peritoneal inflammation. Both these changes are exceedingly dangerous to life; peritonitis is more apt to set in previous to the intestinal ulceration, the latter may take place at any time after the second week, even after convalescence is already very far advanced. If no adhesion had previously taken place between the intestines and the peritoneum, the inflammation of this membrane soon becomes diffuse and ends fatally in a few hours. Typhus. 587 Meteorism is a common symptom in typhus; when excessive, and when it threatens paralysis, the meteorism becomes a very dangerous Condition. Among the numerous sequele of typhus we distinguish intestinal phthisis, occasioned by the number, and continued ulceration of the infiltrated glands of Peyer, and the solitary glands of Brunner; this ulceration is a very common cause of a protracted convalescence, and may finally terminate in fatal ascites. It is a curable condition. Inflammations of serous membranes are not unfrequent, but they do not, properly speaking, belong to the sequelae. Ulcers of the larynx may lead to stenosis and to obstinate, generally incurable hoarseness. Paralysis of the extremities, especially the lower, and paralysis of single organs of sense, are often met with, but as a rule, they gradually disappear again without any treatment. It is only in rare cases that the mind remains impaired for life. Decubitus may even penetrate to the bones, and may cause death long after the typhus had ceased. Although typhus scarcely ever attacks individuals with decided, especially florid tuberculosis, we often see patients who had been convalescent for weeks, suddenly relapse into a fever, and, in a very short period of time, perish by tubercular phthisis. Whether typhus causes the slumbering germ to grow, or, by its own inherent agency, implants the tubercular disease, has to remain an open question for the present. The former is the more probable of the two.' Exanthematic typhus runs a much more decidedly typical course than typhus abdomninalis; in this respect it bears thegreatest resemblance to acute exanthems. It sets in with very uncharacteristic precursory symptoms, lassitude, want of spirits, a feeling of illness, slight catarrhal symptoms, headache, anxious dreams disturbing his sleep, etc. These symptoms precede the real outbreak by two to seven days. The invasion of the disease is generally marked by a violent chill, less frequently by alternate chilliness and heat. The chill is almost immediately succeeded by intense heat, at the same time as the patients are unable to keep themselves erect. Amid the symptoms that have been described as pathognomonic of abdominal typhus, and which are generally much more intense when occurring as phenomenal manifestations of exanthematic typhus, more particularly the dulness and cloudiness of the sensorium, the roseolaspots make their appearance between the fifth and seventh day, first in small numbers on the trunk, but rapidly multiplying and 588 Epidem'c and Endemic Infectious Diseases. covering the whole body except the face. In size, shape and color these spots resemble measles, except that they are never strikingly raised above the skin. The enlargement of the spleen and the continued violent fever enable us to distinguish this exanthem from measles; it remits about the seventh day, but breaks out so much worse again afterwards. In the second week, all the symptoms reach their highest degree of intensity, and may continue unchanged during the whole of the following week; the cerebral symptoms and the excessive prostration are particularly prominent. The abdomen retains its normal shape; no meteorism takes place as in abdominal typhus, nor is the diarrhcea which is very often wanti-ng, of the same character as the diarrhcea of typhus abdominalis. In cases of a moderate degree of intensity, the fever commonly abates in the second half of the second, less frequently at the commencement of the third week; such an abatement is immediately preceded by an exacerbation. The temperature falls considerably in a very short period of time, the pulse likewise falls to ninety, to hundred, and even a smaller.number of beats. At the same time, a considerable change takes place in the whole condition of the patient. The sensorium is still clouded, but he commences to enjoy a quiet sleep, he is more quiet in his waking condition: a desire for food is felt, and in a few days convalescence is under full headway, so that at the beginning of the fourth week the patient is able to leave his bed, although he still feels weak for a long time. Up to the middle of the second, week, the exanthem continues to increase, the spots assume a darker color; but as soon as the fever abates, the spots show a livid tint, and pale off rapidly without even leaving a vestige of their existence. Not unfrequently the spots, some of them at least, change to real petechie; altogether this form of typhus is distinguished by a tendency to hemorrhagic effusions, and to hemorrhages from every possible organ. Among the complications, inflammatory affections of the respiratory organs are the most striking; in general, a severe bronchial catarrh is very apt to be present at the first outbreak of the disease. A fatal termination most commonly takes place towards the end of the second week, amid,the same symptoms as those that characterize a fatal termination of abdominal typhus. If the disease lasts beyond this period, it is generally owing to these complications; but such a more protracted course is a rare occurrence. With the exception of a long continuance of the cerebral functions, no other sequele are apt to occur. Typhus. 589 The prognosis of abdominal typhus is very uncertain; a tumultnous outbreak of the disease does not justify the conclusion that the course of the disease will be one of great danger, nor does a mild beginning prognosticate an equally mild ending. Life may become suddenly endangered at any period of the disease. According to Wunderlich, those cases are the most serious where the fever does not distinctly remit at the end of the first week. A slow pulse ought to be regarded as a favorable rather than as an unfavorable symptom. The absence of diarrhcea, more especially if an obstinate constipation exists in its place, is a very favorable symptom. A girl of fourteen years who had a most violent attack of typhus, had no passage from her bowels for twenty-one days; on the twentysecond day recovery commenced and progressed very rapidly. No greater folly can be perpetrated than to administer cathartics in typhus. Symptoms denoting a rapid and deep-seated decomposition of the blood, and likewise a rapid increase of the decubitus, render the prognosis more dubious; so do extensive complications when affecting important organs. For the exanthematic form of typhus, when running an uncomplicated course, the prognosis is, upon the whole, favorable, notwithstanding the phenomena of the disease have a very threatening look. Complications of exanthematic typhus are likewise overcome much more readily than those occurring during the course of abdominal typhus, for the reason that exanthematic typhus does not consume the patient's strength as rapidly and thoroughly as the latter. Treatfent. Among all possible diseases there is no disease of which it is so difficult to decide whether the treatment that has been pursued hitherto has been of any, or of how much use. Our opponents cannot be blamed for doubting our successes; the expectant method often furnishes equally favorable results; at no period during the course of typhus can a positive prognosis be set up, and the diagnosis is likewise exposed to a good many uncertainties. After all, the superiority of the two methods of treating typhus can only be decided by comparing the number of deaths in the same epidemic, and in a number of epidemics. In this respect, IHomceopathy has a decided advantage, for the number of deaths under homceopathic treatment never exceeds seven to eight per cent., whereas under other methods of treatment this number amounts to twenty and more percent. These figures cannot be impeached by accusing us of errors in diagnosis, which our opponents are just as capable of committing as we are. 590 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. We omit casting an inquiring glance at the manner in which typhus is treated by the Old School, and by the adherents of the New and Newest School of Homoeopathy; an inquiry of this kind would not be very profitable; we cannot help wondering, however,. that the rational physicians who consider typhus inaccessible to remedial agents, should combat it with such a mass of heterogeneous medicines. However, we must dwell upon two points that are of importance to us homceopathic physicians who are so often called upon for aid in the later stages of typhus. In the first place we wish to point out the consequences of a revulsive or derivative treatment. Sanguineous depletions which are so often resorted to even now, have a bad ef-ect, not only immediately but likewise at a later period; the patients lapse more speedily into sopor, their prostration becomes more excessive, they perish in larger numbers, or, if convalescence sets in, it takes place more slowly and incompletely. Cathartics have likewise a permanently bad effect, and we feel prompted to regard venesection and the use of purgatives in typhus as acts of wickedness. In the second place, we generally notice that patients who have been fed on large doses of Chlorates or Quinine, have the functional power of their stomachs impaired for weeks, and that the integrity of their cerebral functions is, restored very slowly. Regarding the homeopathic treatment of typhus, we do not share the views of all our Colleagues in this respect. They quote a large number of remedies for typhus with the most minute and delicate indications, whereas it is our belief that we as yet possess only a small number of real remedies for typhus, by which we mean remedies that have it in their power to modify the course of the disease, and that most of the other remedies that have been recommended for this disease, only correspond with a few prominent symptomns. Our opinion is based upon the proposition that typhus owes its existence to some definite toxical agent that penetrates the organism from without, as is the case with acute exanthems. It is for this reason that in no epidemic disease the curative virtue of one or more remedies as genuine epidemic-remedies, has been so thoroughly tested as in typhus; and in our opinion the most important task which a physician has to fulfil in every epidemic is, to find out the general remedies adapted to each. A second, still more important circumstance resulting fiom this previous opinion is, that the remedy should never be changed unless distinctly new, unexpected morbid phenomena manifest themselves Typhus. 59t'that are not in harmony with the normal course of the disease. If this course of treatment had been pursued before, and if the natural course of typhus had been watched and regarded with more care, our knowledge of treating typhus would most likely be much further advanced than it really is. Hlow much, for instance, can be claimed for the efficacy of a remedy that was administered on the fifteenth or sixteenth day of the disease, if the fever suddenly moderates on the seventeenth? We wish to call attention to another mistake that very much impairs the physician's professional usefulness. In treating typhus or other typical diseases, we are very apt to proceed as we do in treating other diseases; we forget the typical character. We want to break the fever at any price, and the rage of bringing this about induces us to administer a new remedy every day. But typhus cannot be cut short, except within the above-stated, definite boundaries; typhus never disappears before the seventh day; no typhus terminates critically on the eighth, ninth, fifteenth or sixteenth day, any more than a measle or scarlatina-eruption can be altered by medicines. The real typhus-remedies corresponding with the whole course of this disease, are: Bryonia cala, tRhus toxicoclendron, Arsenicum, Phosphorus, Acidum phosphoricum and muriaticum. Bryonia alba corresponds to those forms of typhus that run a mild or moderately-intense course. The initial symptoms are sometimes so indefinite that both the selection of a remedy and the diagnosis are uncertain, and our choice would properly not fall upon B3ryonia. But as soon as the typhoid character of the disease has become fully established, Bryonia is indicated by the following symptoms: Violent, pressive headache, buzzing in the ears, dulness of the sensorium, yet the patient does not yet lose his consciousness; yellowish and thick, white coating on the tongue whose edges are bright-red, without great tendency to dryness; acute pains in the ileo-cecal and splenetic regions; nausea or even vomiting after every meal; constipation; torpor of the bowels or occasional diarrhoea; pulse full and not very rapid. Bryo??ia corresponds fully with these initial symptoms, and generally with the whole course of the disease which seldom outlasts the seventeenth day. We have often seen typhus cut short at the end of the second week by simply confining the treatment to the use of Bryonia. In febris nervosa lenta B1ryonia is likewise one of our best remedies; its use in this disease is of course more restricted, owing to the variable nature of the 592 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. symptoms. In exanthematic typhus- Bryonia is a distinguished remedy as long as the brain is not altogether deprived of its functional power. We do not point out single groups of symptoms for the reason that the symptoms of the disease as well as those of the remedy are too manifold. Rhus toxicodendron differs in its indications so essentially from those of Bryonia that it is scarcely possible to confound the two remedies with each other. Rhus tox. corresponds to typhus of very intense character; it begins with a chill, followed immediately after by burning heat and, even on the first few days, by all the symptoms that render the diagnosis certain. We may lay it down as a rule that Rhus is indicated the more specifically the more speedily the true character of typhus can be diagnosed. Bhus is especially indicated by active delirium and great prostration, a dark and livid redness of the cheeks, injected eyes, early dryness and redness of the tongue, and a copious diarrhcea which sets in soon after the fever has fairly shown its true character. Cases adapted to ]Rhus, never run a speedy course, nor will the crisis have to be expected previous to the seventeenth day; until then the medicine may be continued without fear unless some other medicine should be indicated by particular symptoms; the symptoms of Rhus correspond to all the stages of a most intense typhus, even to the third week. An alleviating epistaxis, stools tinged with blood, a severe bronchial affection with a dirty-looking, sanguinolent expectoration are special indications for Rhus, which may likewise prove efficacious in pneumotyphus. In exanthematic typhus Rhus generally has the advantage over Bryonia not only on account of the greater intensity of the fever, but of the whole course of the disease. Rhus is generally indicated by excessive reactive endeavors with insufficiency of reactive power, and an excessive irritability of the nervous system. There is scarcely another remedy that has shown its good effects in so many cases, although we must never expect to cut the fever short with this remedy. Arsenicum album is the most prominent remedy in typhus; it will even cure cases that seemed utterly hopeless. The cases adapted to Arsen. resemble those indicating Rhus, at least in the beginning. The fever is intense, the patients are very restless and show by their behavior that they are in great distress; the least pressure on the ileoccecal region and the region of the spleen causes pain. Symptoms of decomposition of the blood set in at an early period, such as nose-bleed, bloody diarrhcea, badly-colored, bloody sputa, petechix Typhus. 593 on the skin; the stools have a foul odor, the exhalations emanating from the patient generally, are very fetid. Instead of perfect sopor we have a change between great nervous excitement and complete prostration. Bedsores break out at an early period of the disease, forming gangrenous 8scurfs with dark-red borders. The pulse is very frequent, hard and tense. The patients are tormented by an unquenchable thirst. Generally A rsenicum is recommended for the second half of the second, and for the third week; but we doubt whether this is practically correct; in our opinion we should accomplish a great deal more by means of Arsenicum, if the remedy were more frequently administered from the commencement or at least in the first week of the disease, for in such a case it might show its effect upon the whole course of typhus. Since Arsenicum is more than any other medicine adapted to the worst forms of all infectious diseases, it seems wrong to delay its administration until the symptoms indicating Arsenicum, are developed in their most malignant intensity. Years ago Fleischmann showed that typhus generally runs a favorable course under the influence of Arsenicum, and we should think that several hundred cures ought to be something in its favor. Fleischmann, however, generalizes too much, whereas Wurmb, on the other hand, errs in individualizing beyond necessity. After all, the balance inclines in Fleischmann's favor, for Arsen. produces the symptoms of lentescent as well as of inflammatory and putrid typhus. Our advice therefore is that Arsen. should be given more frequently than has been customary, from the very beginning of the attack, and that we should not wait until the disease has fully developed its pernicious character. A few special indications for Arsen. are the following: Striking and typical remission of the fever, having the appearance of an actual intermission. Marked meteorism of the bowels, with gurgling in the bowels, but no diarrhcea. Extensive hypostasis of the lungs, with bronchitis and considerable hoarseness. Irregular action of the heart, absence of the second sound of the heart. Paroxysms of sudden collapse towards midnight. Fetid breath. Frequent retching and even vomiting, immediately after drinking, in the second and the subsequent weeks or during convalescence. Considerable enlarmgement of the spleen. In exanthematic typhus Arsen. is indicated much less frequently, and is chiefly adapted only to the putrid form, the so-called putrid typhus. In lentescent typhus Arsen. is an excellent remedy, if the symptoms exacerbate every other day; if the patients are tormented by anxiety; if every little meal causes 38 594 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. retching and vomiting, although the tongue is clean. Arsen. is so much more extensively applicable the more typhus assumes the epidemic form; likewise in endemic typhus. Most observers advocate repeated doses of the second to the fourth trituration. [We remember a case of exanthematic typhus where the putrid stage had fully set in; the patient was emaciated and extremely prostrated; the teeth looked black; the tongue was swollen, blackish and bleeding; blood oozed from the gums; the skin was covered with petechice, from: many of which a black, foul, decomposed blood was constantly oozing; involuntary, bloody, horridly-smelling stools. A few globules of Arsen. 18th excited a reaction which ended in perfect recovery in one week. H.] Phosphorus is one of the most important remedies in typhus; its curative action is, however, limited to certain sharply defined cases; it cannot be regarded as a general remedy for typhus, in the same sense as Arsen. or Bryon. - Above all, Phosphorus is indicated, in pneumo-typhus with violent bronchitis, hepatization, together with hypostasis and laryngitis. It is a sovereign remedy for this condition, unsurpassed by any other medicine. It is indicated by the following abdominal symptoms: Frequent diarrhceic stools at an early period of the disease, coming on after every meal, of a darkdingy, blackish-gray color, or mixed with decomposed blood and containing shreds of intestinal mucous lining. Extreme prostration after every discharge. Numerous roseola-spots, with ecchymoses and sudamina. Burning heat of the trunk, with cold sweat about the head and on the extremities. Pulse frequent, small and feeble. Sensitiveness of the region of the liver and stomach; considerable meteorism. A characteristic indication for Phosphorus is vomiting in the first, and at the commencement of the second week; the vomiting contains watery-bilious and slimy masses which are brought up with great distress. In exanthematic typhus, Phosphorus is one of the first remedies, for the reason that the pulmonary symptoms are generally very prominent and involve the most danger.-Among the sequele, Phosphorus is indicated by diarrhoea when it acts like colliquative diarrhoea. Ilartmann points to sexual excitement as a not unfrequent indication for Phosphorus. Acidum phosphoricum renders eminent service in typhus; even the Rational School acknowledges its power in this disease without, of course, mentioning the source where this knowledge was obtained. Phosphoric acid is a truly specific remedy in lentescent typhus, and is never indicated, if the fever is high and the nerves Typhus. 595, greatly excited. The patients are lying in a state of excessive prostration and apathy, without being exactly in a state of sopor; the face is rather pallid, not turgescent, the pulse very frequent, feeble and small; the tongue is not very dry; it is smooth as a mirror, red. The thirst is inconsiderable; diarrhcea moderate, the discharges occurring only now and then; the meteorism is not very marked. The disease does not show any tendency to a speedy change; perceptible remissions do not take place. The whole process has the appearance of a gradual extinction of the vital powers, without any decided reactive efforts being perceptible on the part of the organism. Beside the cases where Acidum phosphor. is indicated from the beginning, sometimes after Bryonia, but never, properly speaking, after Rhus or Arsenicum, Phosphori acidun can likewise come into play, if, at the end of the fourth week, convalescence seens to remain stationary, more particularly if a moderate diarrhoea is frequent. Of the other mineral acids, Acidum muriaticum is sometimes used; the forms of typhus requiring this acid are, upon the whole, very rare. Muriatic acid is more particularly adapted to lentescent putrid typhus where the decomposition of the fluids is slow and extensive, but does not set in suddenly. The general symptoms resemble those of Phosphoric acid, only the fever is more severe, the restlessness is more marked and the following local symptoms are present: Frequent diarrhceic stools, but scanty; the characteristic fsecal discharges are mingled with shreds of intestinal mucous lining and with lumps of whitish mucus. The discharges are most commonly involuntary; the meteorism is very great. The mucous lining of the mouth is ulcerated here and there, the ulcerations being covered with a dirty-white coating. The bedsores have an indolent, pale look; they are painless and extend very rapidly. The patients' breath is very offensive; they have an aversion to any kind of food, but they crave fresh cold water. [Settling down in the bed, is characteristic of this acid. H.] So far as our present experience goes, these remedies conclude the number of our typhus-remedies; it remains for us now to indicate a number of other remedies that are more or less useful for various phenomena, but do not correspond with the whole character and course of the disease. We will mention them as briefly as possible. If Aconitum is prescribed for the violent fever at the beginning of typhus, it is probably for no other reason than because the diag 596 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. nosis is nbt yet satisfactorily cleared up; we do nfot believe that - Aconitum is capable of either exerting a curative or palliative effect in typhus. Belladonna, which undoubtedly seems to be indicated in the first w.eek of the fever, may sometimes moderate its violence at that period, especially the excessive cerebral hypersemia, but it will scarcely ever produce a striking and incontrovertible effect. It renders most efficient aid against the severe bronchitis of the first week. In the later course of the disease, it is scarcely ever indicated. [We think Boehr underrates the great virtues of.Belladonna as a specific remedy for typhus. We have cured many cases of typhus where no other remedy was used except Belladonna. We will mention a few of them. A.girl of thirteen years, of a healthy constitution and very mild temperament, was attacked with -a severe angina fancium. Next day she was slightly delirious, complained of seeing people in the room, strange-looking faces, dogs, etc. Pulse about one hundred and ten; cheeks scarlet-red, eyes sparkling, tongue dry, like sole-leather, skin dry and hot, urine red, without any sediment; bowels constipated; great prostration and rapid emaciation. I gave her Belladonna 1st attenuation. On the seventh day she left her bed fully recovered. A lady of about forty years was attacked with pleuro-pneumonia; on the third day of the disease, the symptoms of typhus were fully developed. Severe headache; eyes sparkling; cheeks pale, with occasional deep flushes; tongue parched, and of a deep-brown color like sole-leather; skin dry and hot; pulse about one hundred and twenty; bowels constipated, urine of a deep-yellow color with a reddish tint; grasping at flocks, picking at the bedclothes; furious delirium; intense thirst, but the least attempt to swallow a drop of liquid caused the patient to utter a piercing cry and threw her into violent spasms, with foam at the mouth. The patient took nothing but Belladonna. She improved very gradually every week; sometimes no improvement became perceptible under a fortnight. The whole course of the disease extended during a period of three months, I mean from the first outbreak of the fever to the day when the patient took her first ride out in a carriage. A young lady of twenty-three years was attacked with lentescent typhus; the leading symptoms were: headache, somnolence, dry and hot skin, pulse one hundred and twenty; tongue of a deepbrown color, very dry but smooth as a mirror; urine of a deep Typhus. 597 yellow color; prostration, utter loss of appetite, emaciation; bronchial irritation. The disease ran a course of twenty-one days. The patient took nothing but Belladonna, middle and lower potencies. H.1 Arnica in its whole pathogenesis shows so much resemblance to typhus that it must astonish everybody that this remedy should not have been employed in this disease more frequently than it has. The characteristic indications result from a merely'superficial view of the symptoms. The disease is more like an inflammatory fever, the cheeks are pale, with flushes of redness, the pulse is not very much accelerated, the heat is unequally distributed. The patients show an extraordinary sensitivenessof the organs of sense, together with a distressing headache; nose-bleed, bloody expectoration; active delirium without great bodily restlessness. It is questionable whether Arnica can do anything for bedsores. As regards the kind and intensity of the cases to which Arnica is homceopathic, this medicine occupies a middle rank beween Rhus and Bryonia. Carbo vegetabilis is regarded by many as an exquisite remedy for typhus. We do not share this opinion, and simply believe Carbo adapted to certain anomalous manifestations in the'course of the disease. Carbo may be exhibited if the patients are sunk in a state of apathy without any marked symptoms of reaction; if the body is burning-hot and the extremities are icy-cold; if the functional power of the heart fails very speedily; if -petechie break out in large numbers, with extensive hypostasis of the lungs, foul and decomposed diarrhceic stools, frequent attacks of an ominous col-' lapse, wide-spread decubitus, with burning pain of the sores. Carbo is rather suitable in cases that seem to be adapted to Bryonia or Acidum phosphoricum. In the subsequent course of the disease, Carbo is more particularly indicated by the bronchial catarrh, if there is a good deal of tenacious mucus that can only be expectorated with a great deal of difficulty; during the convalescence, this remedy may sometimes be required by the characteristic diarrhoea. Digitalis can only be exhibited in lentescent typhus, if constipation is associated with great irritability of the stomach and painfulness of the region of the liver; the pulse is at times rapid, at other times slow and feeble, and is very much accelerated by every motion, especially by rising from a recumbent position; the sensorium is clouded but consciousness is never entirely lost, and although there is no diarrhea, yet the strength and the flesh waste away very rapidly. Digitalis is und'coubtedly deserving'of great 598 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. consideration in typhus, were it only for the reason that its sphere of action is limited and distinctly circumscribed. Closely related to the former remedy is Cuprum, concerning whose faculty of producing a connected series of typhoid symptoms Frerichs' observation in Mengershausen (see Frank's Archiv. vol. IV.) furnishes the most conclusive testimony. Without reproducing the facts related in that publication, we recommend them to the careful study of all homleopathic practitioners. The coppertyphus sets in and runs its course without any violent fever, but an extraordinary prostration at once makes its appearance, which increases so rapidly amid symptoms of sanguineous decomposition (nose-bleed, petechi)e) that in a short time death takes place with all the symptoms of general paralysis. Secale cornutum is indicated if the attack sets in with convulsions, paralysis of the extremities, gangrenous ulcers especially on the extremities, extensive ecchymoses on the skin. Kreosotum corresponds to putrid typhus if copious atonic hemorrhages exist. Stramonium, Hyoscyamus, Helleborus are only suitable for corresponding cerebral symptoms. In our opinion they will seldom accomplish any real good, nor will they be required for the reason that a delirium of the most varied forms does not constitute any essential deviation from the normal course of typhus. [We do not agree with B3ehr so far as Ryoscyacnus is concerned. We know from experience that an acute outbreak of typhus may yield to Hyoseyamus. A robust merchant of about forty years came home with a terrible headache. IHe had had a heavy chill in his counting-roomn which was very soon followed by fever. The cephalic distress was principally located in one side of the head. Bryonia was given. Next day delirium set in, with picking at the bedclothes; the patient was constantly talking about his business, and wanted to leave his bed; the prostration was very great, and he lost flesh visibly; the bowels were loose, the discharges having an offensive smell. The patient was constantly troubled with the paintings on the wall falling to one side. A drop of the tincture of lyoscyamus was mixed in half a tumbler of water, of which mixture a dessertspoonful was given him every two hours. After the second dose he dropped to sleep, and woke after a refreshing sleep in full tide of recovery. H.] The same remarks apply to Opium; this remedy is said to frequently have removed the deep sopor of typhus-patients; we have Typhus. 599 never been able to accomplish such a result by means of Opium. [A man had an attack of exanthematic typhus; the fever had run six weeks, and the patient seemed irretrievably lost. Towards the end of the sixth week the following symptoms had developed themselves: The patient was constantly settling down in his bed; the eyes were half closed, with the eye-balls turned upwards in their sockets; depression of the lower jaw; strings of a ropy saliva were hanging out at the corners of the mouth; tongue thick and tremulous; involuntary stools; miliaria; excessive emaciation, complete lethargy. A few drops of Muriatic Acid in half a tumbler of water re-awakened the sinking reaction. The paralytic symptoms were followed by a deep sopor. This was on the evening of the forty-first day. A drop of Opium was mixed in half a tumbler of water, of which mixture the patient took a dessertspoonful every two hours. Next morning, instead of the usual exacerbation a sound sleep set in, which lasted with short interruptions, for a whole week. No further medicine was given. The patient drove out in a fortnight, perfectly well. In my opinion the Opium had a curative effect in this case. II.] Camphora acts well for a short time when given as an intermediate remedy for sudden paroxysms of severe collapse coming on the heel of great exaltation of the cerebral functions. A few other, most unimportant remedies will be found indicated under catarrh of the stomach which very often bears a deceptive similarity to the lighter grades of typhus. The general management and the diet to be observed in typhus are of more importance than in any other disease. It is unfortunately true that in this respect physicians are often guilty of the most unpardonable delinquencies. In managing typhus-patients we observe the following rules, the usefulness of which has been abundantly established, and which we have never known to result in any mischief to the patient. The patients should lie on a mattress, never on feather-beds which promote the development of bedsores. Awoollen blanket with a linen sheet is sufficient covering. The windows in the sick-room should neverbe shut entirely, no matter in what season of the year; if possible, the room should always be kept properly ventilated by securing a current of air along the ceiling. If possible, the patients should often be changed to another bed, and even to another room. Once every day, and, if the disease has reached its height, several times a day, the patient should be washed with cold water over the largest part of his body; an ablution of this kind affords an immense amount of comfort to the patient 600 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. The passages from the bowels and bladder have to be removed as soon as possible. If possible, the same person should never be in constant attendance on the patient, lest he should become too much impregnated with the typhus-contagium. Only the most indispensable conversation should be held with the patient, and all mental excitement should be strictly avoided. As long as the violence of the fever continues, no great supply of nourishment is required; the patient does not desire anything, nor should he be persuaded to partake of anything substantial. Liquid nourishment is best adapted to his condition. If the patient desires, he may have: beef-tea, broth (no veal-broth), chicken-broth, milk diluted with one-third water, malt-beer cooked with sago or gruel, which should be allowed to cool before it is used; mucilaginous soups, but not exclusively. The best beverage is fresh water; this should be given the patient quite often, even if he does not call for it, for it is the best means of repairing the waste of moisture caused by the fever. Sugar-water is hurtful; water with the juice of fruit dissolved in it, may be partaken of in very moderate quantities. Sodawater very soon becomes offensive to the patient. Water with a little wine is perfectly appropriate in the later course of the disease. Malt-beer with a little sugar is perfectly admissible; it imparts more than any other beverage the sensation that the thirst is quenched, and the patients crave it even when they are lying in a state of sopor. We have never seen it do any harm. Many patients manifest a strong desire for fruit which they may partake of stewed, but moderately, not too often; stewed prunes without the skin are the best kind. The diet during the period of convalescence is very difficult to manage properly. Either a real canine hunger is experienced by the patients, or else the stomach craves food without being able to digest it. The former is the more common result under homenopathic treatment, the latter is often the result of the abuse of drugs. In the former case the patient's craving for food may be gratified every two hours, but the quantity ought to be small each time, and the food ought moreover to be substantial. Beef, chickens, venison, but very little farinaceous food which, by the deposition of quantities of fsecal matter, might irritate ulcers in the intestines that are not entirely healed. Good vegetables are decidedly beneficial. Individuals recovering from typhus have to be treated like persons that were near starving to death. If the stomach is weak, the food has to be selected with so much more care, nor should the patient be too often persuaded to eat. Good wine after a meal Typhus. 601 sometimes has a marvelously good effect, whereas, if the patient is tormented by canine hunger, it is rather hurtful than beneficial. A resumption of our habitual stimulants, such as coffee, tea, tobacco, should' be postponed as long as possible. The patients may be allowed the use of fresh air as soon as expedient; no apprehension need be entertained of their taking cold. [Among the recent additions to our Materia Medica, Baptisia tinctoria or the wild Indigo is recommended for typhoid fever. This drug was first brought to the notice of the homeopathic profession by Dr. iHoyt in the sixth volume of the North- American Journal. The following interesting cases were published by himl: Mrs. C. was taken with, typhus-fever and treated allopathically. She became so reduced that her life was despaired of. After the continuation of the fever for thirty-one days, as a last resort, Mr. C. prepared a decoction of the Baptisia; taking a piece of the root about three inches long and three-eighths of an inch thick, steeping it in half a pint of water. He commenced by giving her five or six drops of the decoction once in fifteen minutes, increasing till he gave nearly a teaspoonful at a dose. In about one hour and a half the surface of the patient presented an appearance as though she had been literally scalded, so red was the skin, accompanied with a most intense superficial heat; at the same time noticing large drops of sweat standing on her forehead, the medicine was discontinued. In a few minutes a profuse perspiration appeared all over her body which continued for nearly twelve hour's, or till she was bathed freely with brandy and water. From this time she began to improve, and with the occasional administration of a drop or two of the remedy, got well, without any febrile symptoms. It is worthy of remark that immediately upon the administration of the remedy she became quiet and fell asleep; she had been restless and delirious for three weeks previous. Mr. and Mrs. S. being very unwell, I was called and found them suffering with continued fever. After prescribing Aconite, Rhus, etc., without much effect, and my patients growing rapidly worse, I was induced to use the J3aptisia in decoction as in the former case. I remained to watch the operation of the remedy. To my great surprise, in about an hour the perspiration appeared upon the foreheads of my patients, and it gradually covered the entire surface. In about six hours they were thoroughly bathed with tepid water; t'he next morning scarce a vestige of the fever remained, and a rapid recovery followed. 602 Epidemic and Endem'c Infectious Diseases. Mr. RI. was taken with typhus fever, and had the usual homceopathic remedies for several days. An unfavorable prognosis was given and the Baptisia decided upon. It was administered and its effects watched. In this case drop-doses of an alcoholic tincture were used. The fever was reduced more than one half in a few hours, and by a continuation of the remedy he was saved. A fierce delirium was present in this case, but it rapidly gave way under the action of the medicine. English practitioners, Drs. Hughes, Kidd, and others, speak of this medicine very favorably in the incipient stages of typhus, and more particularly when gastric fevers show a tendency to lapse into the typhoid type. According to Dr. Edwin M. Hale, the following are the characteristic indications for its use: Chilliness all day, heat at night; chilliness with soreness of the whole body; heavy, dull, bruised sensation in the head, stupefying headache, confusion of ideas, delirium at night, heavy sleep with frightful dreams, dry and red tongue, or brown coated tongue, sticky mouth, fetid breath, fetid sweat, and great fetor of the discharges (urine and stool), great debility and nervous prostration, with erethism; ulcerations of a bad character, etc. According to my own experience, Baptisia is not so much indicated in fully developed typhus as in intermediate forms of gastrointestinal fever and abdominal typhus. My experience in the use of this drug is limited, but I doubt whether any good can be expected from it after the ulcerative process in abdominal typhus has fully set in. In the first stages of exanthematic typhus, when no other medicines are indicated by characteristic symptoms, Baptisia may have a good effect in kindling a decided reaction. H.] 3. Febris Icterodes. Yellow Fever. This is an epidemic fever of a specific nature and a continuous type, so called because the skin and conjunctiva look yellow, although cases have been known to occur where this yellowness is almost entirely absent. Such patients complain of severe supraorbital headache, and soon become delirious. In the subsequent course of the disease the urinary secretions become suspended, interstitial hemorrhages take place, the patient passes black stools and vomits a black substance; this is the stage of black vomit, which generally terminates fatally. This fever is endemic in low districts on the sea-coast, more par Febris Icterodes. 603. ticularly on some of the West India Islands, Cuba, and in some of our Southern cities, New Orleans, Mobile, Savannah, Charleston, and even higher'North, Wilmington, Norfolk, Baltimore, and occasionally is brought even to Philadelphia and New York. It has likewise been imported into European ports, Lisbon, Southampton, and St. Nazaire, in the Department of the Lower Loire, in France; but the fever has never been known to propagate beyond the 48~ North latitude, nor without a temperature of 72~ Fahr. It has a period of incubation of from three to eight, ten and even more days. It is generally supposed that yellow fever attacks a person only once during his lifetime, but I have known individuals in New Orleans who had two, and one person who had three attacks of the fever during different epidemics. That this fever is a specific fever, owing its existence to some specific contagium by which it is propagated, and which may adhere to such fomites as woollens, feathers, cotton, letters, etc., is not only no longer doubted, but is a fact established beyond the shadow of a doubt by the Lisbon epidemic of 1857, and by the importation of the disease from Havana into the port of St. Nazaire by the "Anne Marie," in 1861, and by the Royal mail-steamer "La Plata" into the port of Southampton, in the month of November, 1852. That yellow fever is a contagious disease, is likewise shown by Dr. Holcombe's interesting report of the yellow fever epidemic, which visited Natchez and the surrounding neighborhood in 1853.'The first cases of the fever," writes the Doctor in the twelfth number of the North American Journal of Homceopathy, "appeared in families some members of which had come from New Orleans within a few weeks. The houses were pleasantly situated in the central part of the city, and the tenants all in comfortable circumstances. There were four distinct centres of emanation whence the disease spread in every direction, not reaching the suburbs until after several weeks. Many of the inhabitants who fled into the country, carried the disease with.them. One gentleman sickened on the road, and stopped at the house of a friend, twelve miles from town, where he died of yellow fever. One of the family speedily exhibited the same disease and died. Another fled into an adjoining county, where he also sickened and communicated the disease to those around him. "In this manner neighborhoods were scourged by yellow fever where the disease was utterly unknown. "In several cases which came under my observation, the families 604 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. were carefully isolated, with the exception of one messenger, who was permitted to visit the town on necessary business, and uniformly that messenger was the first attacked. This epidemic was undoubtedly contagious." The yellow fever epidemic which visited Lisbon in 1857, was carefully investigated by Dr. Lyons, of Dublin, who describes five distinct forms of the disease: 1st, the algid form; 2d, the sthenic form; 3d, the hemorrhagic form; 4th, the'purpuric form; and 5th, the typhous form. The algid type is'the most suddenly fatal form of the disease. "The patient, while in the enjoyment of his usual health, and in the midst of his usual occupation, feels suddenly the effects, as it were, of a sudden blow from a heavy bar on the back, falls down while walking or sta.nding, and dies within a few hours in profound collapse, and after exhibiting more or less of the other symptoms of this fever." The countenance became sunken, the eyes looked dull and filmy, the face and trunk presented a dirty livid hue, and the surface was dotted with points of venous congestion,and hemorrhagic spots or patches like purpura broke out here and there. In severe cases the tongue and breath were cold. In the sthenic form the symptoms of an inflammatory condition of the system, severe headache, a high, full and hard pulse, flushed face and throbbing in the temples, were present. The hemorrhagic type was characterized by effilsions of blood from various organs and tissues, "the hemorrhage never being single, nor from any one source or organ only." In the purpuric form the distinctive signs are purpuric patches of various tints and colors, caused by subcutaneous effusions of the coloring matter of the blood. The typhous form is most generally a sequela of the other types; in some cases the disease presents the character of typhus, with stupor, nervous prostration and other typhoid symptoms, from the outset of the attack. In reference to the course and characteristics of yellow fever, Dr. Ilolcombe imparts the following interesting information in his interesting paper: "Yellow fever, like scarlatina, presents a wide range of manifestation, from an ephemeral mildness to the most malignant severity. The impending attack is sometimes foreshadowed for a few hours by languor, restlessness, and malaise, most commonly a chill comes on, without premonition. Sometimes heat, Febris Icterodes. 605 shiverings, headache and nausea, are all confusedly mingled in the onset. When the febrile reaction is complete, the pain in the head, back and limbs is sometimes exceedingly severe; the skin is hot and dry; the pulse full and hard, from 100 to 130; urine scanty and high colored; eyes injected, watery, brilliant; tongue covered with a pasty, white coat, with red edges and apex; there is sometimes a good deal of mucous and bilious vomiting. This paroxysm, scarcely distinguishable from the incipient stage of bilious remittent, lasts from twelve to thirty-six hours, terminating in a general or partial perspiration with great diminution, but seldom with the disappearance of the symptoms. This remission is the rule, but the exceptions are numerous, and I have repeatedly seen the fever continue uninterruptedly four or five days. In a few hours the patient declares himself worse, and another train of symptoms arises. The pain in the head, back and limbs is not so poignant, frequently is entirely absent. The pulse, tongue and skin may remain natural, whilst in fact the patient is verging into a most critical state. The febrile irritation is rather of the typhoid than of the sthenic type, the pulse being soft, rapid and sometimes irregular. Pain more frequently exists in the epigastric, occasionally in the umbilical or hypochondriac regions. It is sometimes intolerable, while in cases of imminent danger the symptom may be entirely wanting. Diarrhcea, or dysentery, may accompany this stage, but constipation is more common. Burning in the pit of the stomach, acid and acrid eructations, flatulence, thirst, nausea, all combine to produce a remarkable sense of prostration, and a great degree of tossing and sleeplessness. The skin and conjunctiva assume a light lemon-hue, which deepens into a deep orange or gamboge color, although this symptom is by no means universal. The urine is of a sulphur or saffron yellow, and stains linen. Sometimes there is slight strangury, and in bad cases the secretion of urine is totally suppressed. IIemorrhage from the gums and fauces or other mucous membranes is now common. Vomiting becomes a distressing and an alarming symptom. The matters ejected pass from a greenish-yellow into a brownish or claret-colored hue; sometimes blood, red, dark, or brown, is thrown up. The appearance of coffee-ground vomit leaves but a ray of hope. Still the patient may recover through a tardy convalescence, very liable to relapse. If the disease be not arrested, the temperature of the skin falls, the hemorrhage becomes more profilse or ominous, the circulation fails, extreme jactitation comes on, delirium or coma supervenes, and dissolu 606 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. tion is occasionally preceded by general convulsions. The patients seemed generally to be worst on the first, third, and fifth days. Death appeared to be more common on the sixth, but some few died as early as the third day, and many lingered beyond a week. Several cases terminated in dysentery and a good number in common intermittent fever. "The above sketch is purely typical, the symptoms of which would not be presented by any one single case. "I will now mention some local features of importance, which have come under my own observation. " Head. The headache was severe during the first paroxysm, but abated during the remission, seldom to return and never to resume its prior intensity. It was throbbing, boring, with a sensation of undulation in the cranium. There was commonly soreness of the eye-balls in motion, sometimes photophobia, and in one case violent earache. There was sometimes a sensation as if the head was very much enlarged. In a few cases the headache was general, but was mostly referred to the supra-orbital region. I believe it will usually be found that, when the organic functions bear the brunt of the disease, the headache will be referred to the anterior part of the cranium, while the derangements of animal life are rather displayed by vertical and occipital headache. J Eyes. The redness, brilliancy, and watery suffusion of the eye is more marked in the first stage of yellow fever than in any of its allied diseases. " Mouth. Spontaneous ptyalism sometimes occurred, one or two cases of which were ascribed by the unscrupulous malice of our opponents to the secret use of Calomel. " Stomach. Positive pain in the epigastrium sometimes occurred, but there was more frequently only soreness, and sense of weakness and oppression. Thirst, burning in the pit of the stomach, and an indescribable, empty, gnawing, sinking feeling, preceded and accompanied the nausea and vomiting, which were the most troublesome and distressing of the yellow fever symptoms. An insensibility to external pressure stood occasionally in strange discordance with the gastric irritability, and other symptonls of gastro-enteritis. Acid and acrid eructations were very common. Every thing, even cold water, was said by the patient to'turn sour on the stomach.' Conjoined with these symptoms, there was sometimes a morbid, canine hunger which made the patient forget every thing else and think that, could he only eat something, he would feel perfectly Febris Icterodes. 607 well. The nausea was provoked by eating, by motion, and, in some cases, by lying on the left side. Hiccough, which Dr. Stokes considers a strong sign of inflammation about the cardiac orifice of the stomach, occurred in some bad cases. The matters ejected varied in their nature. Black vomit likewise occurred, sometimes in great quantities, and when the patient was much prostrated, the fluid was merely gulped up, running out at the corners of the mouth. It is said to be distinctly acid, reddening litm:ls paper, and effervescing with carbonates. It is not always a fatal symptom. " Genito-urinary Apparatus. The uterus and vagina were by no means exempted from the hemorrhagic tendencies of the other mucous membranes. In a few cases the urine was at first limpid, then yellow, and, occasionally, turbid and brownish like porter. This last was sometimes largely excreted, without proving critical. Suppression of urine is perhaps more frequent in this disease than in any other, excepting Asiatic cholera. It was always a symptom of formidable character, and, when conjoined with black vomit and delirium, presaged too certainly the approach of death. "Chest. The thoracic organs were not principally deranged. A soft, full, compressible pulse, averaging hundred, was very common throughout the disease, whether mild or severe. In one case the wrist was pulseless for some hours, as in Asiatic cholera, the pulsation returning during a partial, but transitory reaction. " Nervous System. In all points of view, as the medium of the mind and of the senses, as an excito-motory apparatus, both voluntary and involuntary, the nervous system was both primarily and secondarily implicated. The subjective phenomena were numerous and distressing: pains, nausea, vertigo, numbness, bad taste, thirst, hunger, coldness, burning heat, frightful dreams, etc. The abdominal pains of the second stage, and even the thirst, heartburn, nausea, etc., were sometimes distinctly, but irregularly intermittent, like the pains of colic, which is explained by the fact that all the functions of the ganglionic plexus are rhythmical in their character. According to Volknann, even a current of electricity is not transmitted continuously through them, but is broken up into a number of successive shocks. Delirium occurring in the first stage, was of little importance. Later in the disease, it was in some cases furious, the patient struggling desperately to get out of bed, but generally it was of the mild, incoherent typhoid type. In an old drunkard it was precisely the delirium of marnia a potu. Stupor, even to profound coma, often marked the last stages. 610 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. myself with five or six drops of the first centesimal dilution prepared in th e sae maner, of which one teaspoonful was given at a time A similar preparation of.pecacuanha was commonly left, to be administered after each act of vomiting. In very mild cases these remedies alone sufficed. " When the second stage -came on, the cerebro-spinal symptoms disappearing, or being much ameliorated, while the patient conplained of nausea, prostration, acid or burning sensations, pain in the abdomen, thirst, restlessness, etc., a change of remedies wa demanded. "On studying the symptoms of this stage, ninety-nine homeopaths out of a hundred would suggest Arsevicum as one of the main remedies. But lest myallopathic reader should distrust Iahnemann's Materia Medica or Jahr's Manual, I will collate from th nearest allopaathic authority, which happens to be Taylor on Poisons, some of the prominent symptoms of the Arsenical pathogenesis. " Faintness, depression, nausea, withntene intense burning in the region of the stomach, increased by pressure. Violent vomiting ofa brown turbid matter, mixed with mucus, and sometimes stained with blood. Sense of constriction with a feeling of oburning in the throat often accompanied by intense thirst. Pulse small, frequent and irregular. Skin cold and clammy in the stage of collapse, at other times it is very hot. Respiration feeble, and accompanied with sighing. Inflammatn t cunti wth ion of the conjunctiv wit sufsion of th eyes, and intolerance of light. Irritation of the skin, accompanie by an eruption. Exfoliation of the cuticle. Great nervous irritability. Intolerable pain in the bowels, with bloody stools. Great emaciation, want of sleep, urine scanty, high-colored, and passed with an effort. Suppression of urine. Strangury and jaundice have been also noticed among the secondary symptoms. Delirium, jactitation, coma, convulsions. "Finally the anatomical lesions of Arsenic are also remarkably similar to those of yellow fever. They are the pure dynamic efects of the drug acting through the nervous system; for it is well know that its specific effects on the stomach will be produced byinjecting the veins or inserting it into a wound. Mr. Taylor says: "Arsenic is not an irritant poison; it does not seem to possess any corrosive properties, that is, it has no chemical action on the animal tissues, and the changes met with in the alimentary canal of a person poisoned by it, are referrible to the effects of the inflammation excited by the poison, and not to any chemical action." Cholera Asiatica. 613 permitted to use small quantities of their favorite beverages during the latter stages of the disease." H.] 4. Cholera Asiatica. Asiatic Cholera, Asiatic cholera is an intensely epidemic disease; sporadic cases, even if they bear the greatest resemblance to cholera, cannot be regarded as such, but must be set down as very violent cases of cholerine. We will not inquire where and how cholera first originated. The important point with us is to be acquainted with the manner in which this epidemic spreads. Cholera is caused by a special contagium which is multiplied by the disease and is contained in the excrements; its presence anywhere else is very doubtful. Hence the infection is principally spread by contact with the excrementitious matter of cholera-patients. This proposition which was first started by Pettenkofer is the only one among the multitude of hypotheses bearing on this point, by which the various bizarre modifications in the spread of the epidemic can be accounted fpr in a natural manner. This involves a second point, namely: that the development of the contagium does not take place within the body of the patient, but in the excrements after their removal out of the body, and that this development takes place so much more rapidly and intensely the more the conditions for a rapid decomposition of the excrements are accumulated. The infection is promoted by all kinds of affections affiliated to cholera, hence chiefly by gastro-intestinal catarrh, by circumstances exerting a depressing effect upon the mind, by a cold, by dietetic transgressions. Neither age nor sex shows either a greater or a less susceptibility to the disease. The epidemic now raging in Egypt furnishes a striking example of the origin and spread of cholera. Hence cholera is not contagious properly speaking. Symptoms arnd Course. It cannot be stated with perfect certainty how soon, after the infection has taken place, the first symptoms of the disease show themselves, but all circumstances tend to show that the period of incubation only lasts three days. It has no characteristic symptoms; the alterations caused by the dread of the fearful malady must not be mistaken for manifestations of the disease itself. A preliminary stage in reality does not exist. The first sign that infection has taken place, is a painless diarrhcea which is very 614 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. thin,-but is still somewhat tinged with bile-; the patient has from three to six discharges every day. On a careful examination, a number of shreds of epithelium are discovered in the excrements. The diarrhcea is not always associated with a marked feeling of malaise; sometimes the only symptoms present are a disproportionate feeling of lassitude, an increase of thirst and an impaired appetite. That this premonitory diarrhcea is real cholera, is shown by the circumstance that it is capable of spreading the infection. Atany rate, every diarrhea- which sets in at the tinme of epidemic cholera ought to be.regarded as a premonitory symptom of the disease. At times the diarrhcea only lasts a few hours, at other times' a few days, scarcely ever beyond a week. It may terminate the attack, or else the disease may pass into the more malignant and more characteristic forms of the epidemic. This passage to the more malignant type generally takes.place quite suddenly. A copious evacuation takes place resembling ricewater, simultaneously with which the debility increases very rapidly. These evacuations succeed each other with more or less rapidity, an agonizing thirst supervenes, and very soon the patient is attacked with vomiting of substances resembling the alvine evacuations, but-having a little more color. At the same time the patients are no longer able to preserve the erect posture; they are tormented by a peculiar anguish which they point out as being located in the precordia; the urinary secretions are scanty or entirely suppressed, the patients have a cadaverous appearance, the eyes are sunken, surrounded by dark margins, the skin is cool, the head is bathed in a cool perspiration; the pulse is small; at this stage cramps of the glutei muscles and of other muscular bundles make their appearance. The affection may persist for some time at this height, very seldom longer than twelve hours, after which recovery takes place, the passages gradually resuming a bilious tinge, becoming less copious and less frequent; and the skin warming up again. Convalescence from this milder form of the disease always proceeds rapidly, without being disturbed by consecutive diseases. Usually, however, this mild form sooner or later passes into the most violent form of the disease. This type of cholera, designated as cholera asphyctica or algida, very seldom breaks out all at once at the outset, but very often succeeds the premonitory diarrhcea with the suddenness of a flash of lightness. The quantity of matter evacuated by the anus and mouth, is enormous; it is colorless and inodorous, contains shreds Cholera Asiatica. 615 of epithelium and a few flocks of mucus. These evacuations often succeed each other without the least intermission. The thirst now becomes agonizing; the vomiting is excited every time after the patient swallows a drink of water. His anxiety is excessive; at times he complains of violent pains in the pit of the stomach, andhe is likewise tormented by severe cramps in the calves. The urinary secretion is entirely suppressed. The consequences of the immense losses of fluids show themselves very speedily. The skin becomes cold, very soon it assumes a cyanotic color, loses its elasticity to such a degree that a fold of integument on the hands, if pinched up, remains in this condition for a long time; the face has a cadaverous appearance, the eyes are deeply sunken in their sockets, the nose is pointed, the lips blue. The temperature is like that of ice. The radial pulse can no longer be felt, not even that of the larger arteries; the sounds of the heart are very feeble, the second sound is often wanting; respiration is labored, the breath is cold; the voice is extinct. After this condition has lasted for twelve hours at most, death takes place, previous to which the evacuations upwards and downwards generally cease and the extreme prostration changes to a complete stupor, without any real death-struggle, and without the rle which usually precedes death. The disease may change for the better even after it has reached the acme of the stage of asphyxia, although recovery from this stage is an event of rare occurrence. The stage of reaction shows the most remarkable differences. The disease may uniformly but slowly progress towards convalescence. This change as well as the beginning of reaction generally is indicated by the circumstance that the patients are able to retain liquids on their stomachs, and that the radial pulse returns. Gradually the temperature of the skin is restored, the alvine discharges diminish in number and are more and more colored; at first they are generally mixed with shreds of intestinal mucous membrane, and have a foul smell. The prostration continues for a few days, the urine is at first turbid and shows traces of an inflammatory process going on in the kidneys. Such a simple convalescence from cholera algida is always an exception, not the rule. In other cases the icy coldness is suddenly succeeded by a febrile excitement, a rapid and full pulse, cerebral hyper emia; this change is either speedily followed by convalescence, or else, typhoid phenomena make their appearance. The moremalignant forms of cholera are very generally followed by typhoid symptonms. After the cessation 616 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. of the vomiting and a return of the pulse, the pulse becomes hard, full and frequent; the turgescence of the skin is very marked. The brain seems blunted, the patients are lying in a state of sopor and delirium, very much prostrated; the temperature rises considerably; the thirst continues and the patient has even occasional attacks of vomiting, the diarrhceic stools are decomposed and have a foul smell; the tongue is dry and has a fuliginous coating. Every symptom points to the supervention of an intense typhus, with which the symptoms of an intense nephritis are generally associated. The transition from this typhoid condition to health always takes place very slowly, although more rapidly than in cases of true typhus. A favorable turn generally takes place already in the second week. Death is a very common termination of this condition. Cholera has no positive sequelse, although the most diversified derangements remain after an attack of cholera, which generally result from the circumstance that the circulation in the various organs had almost been arrested during the frigid stage to the point of inflammatory infiltration. We do not give a detailed statement of the anatomical changes in cholera, because they are almost generally without any characteristic significance. Beside the excessive but perfectly explicable dryness of the tissues, we constantly meet with an extensive destruction of the epithelium of the mucous membrane of the ileum; the gall-bladder is found distended with bile. At all events, the anatomical lesions are not sufficient to account for the frightful rapidity of the development of cholera; the lesions of the intestinal epithelium certainly cannot be the only cause of the profuse watery evacuations. Treatment. We will in the first place call attention in a few remarks to the prophylactic treatment which can be arranged in cholera more easily than in any other epidemic. We know that the excrements of the patients are by far the most active vehicles of the contagium. Hence, it behooves us either to destroy this contagium in the excrements, or else, to remove it. For this reason the discharges should at once be mixed with Sulphate of Iron, and should not be thrown into water-closets, but into deep ditches remote from inhabited dwellings. The soiled bed-linen is best cleansed by boiling it. In order to protect uninfected persons, they must be forbidden to visit the houses of the sick, and above all, the use of the water-closets must be absolutely prohibited. Nurses should never remain with the patient too long at a time. The enactment of further measures is the business of the health-authorities; all Cholera Asiatica. 617 sanitary measures must aim at this one object, to keep the excrements of cholera-patients remote from all contact with healthy persons. On the other hand, it is unnecessary and useless to try to prevent the spread of cholera by placing all cholera-patients in strict quarantine. If cholera were contagious, every physician would have an attack of it. Among the precautionary measures which it behooves each individual to observe, the following are the most important: As much as possible a regular mode of living; the use of simple and substantial nourishment; the slightest possible deviation from one's regular mode of living; avoidance of all debilitating influences, such as excessive mental exertions, depressing emotions, etc., more particularly avoidance of the excessive use of spirits. Whatever tends to excite diarrhea, must be discarded. Persons must take care not to get chilled or overheated. Every diarrhcea with which a person may be attacked, or with which he may already be affected during an epidemic, should be carefully attended to. The observance of these preventive rules is at' all events a much more efficient prophylactic than all the other vaunted preservatives which are almost always made up of spirits. Good claret is the only kind of wine that can be safely allowed as unhurtful. No reasonable person will deny the usefulness of suitable prophylactic means which everybody should employ in his own, and likewise advise in other families under the direction of an enlightened physician. The medicines which a good deal of clinical experience has pointed out as our best remedies for cholera, are not numerous; in view of the great uniformity which the leading symptoms present in all epidemics, no great variety of remedial agents can be expected; from the practical stand-point, this must be looked upon as a great boon to the physician. Our remedies the efficacy of which has been corroborated by trials, are: Ipecacuanha, Camphora, Veratrumr album, Cuprumn, and Arsenicum; this list does not include the remedies for the typhoid condition remaining after cholera. Ipecacuanha is less indicated for real cholera than for the premonitory diarrhoea; its efficacy in this diarrhcea is certainly great, and an attenuated tincture of Ipecacuanha can be safely recommended as the best domestic remedy during epidemic cholera. Real cholera requires Ipecacuacnha, if the vomiting is much worse than the diarrhcea. Ipecacuanha is, moreover, an important remedy in the cholera of little children. Camphora is recommended by Ilahnemann himself for an incip 618 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. ient attack. This recommendation has not been very extensively verified by experience; nevertheless, if the attack is not too violent, the tincture of Camphor had better be tried; likewise, if the attack is preceded by unequivocal, premonitory symptoms, in the so-called, cholera sicca. IHahnemann announces the following symptoms for which Camphor has been used in many cases with great success-: Sudden and rapid failing of strength, so that the person attacked cannot stand on his legs; alteration of the features,: sunken eyes, bluish and icy-cold face, coolness of the rest of the. body; hopeless despondency and anxiety as if he would be asphyxiated; stupefaction, insensibility; constant and unintelligible moaning; burning in the stomach and fauces; crampy pains in the, calves; painfulness of the pit of the stomach to contact; thirst, nausea, vorniting and diarrhoea have not yet set in. After taking Camphor, sweat soon breaks out as a sure sign that an improvement has commenced. As soon: as this takes place, the remedy must be given less frequently and in smaller quantities,, otherwise it might give rise to a troublesome cerebral hypersemia. For the typhoid symptoms remaining after cholera, Camphor has likewise been given; the exhibition of Camphor in this condition is, indeed, justified by the similarity of its pathogenesis to the symptoms characterizing ursemia. The results, however, are not as yet very numerous. Veratrum album is, without doubt,, our most important remedy for cholera. If we wish to, derive good effects from its use, we have to begin its administration in good season, and give it at once for the premonitory diarrhcea, especially if it is colorless. Veratrum is indicated still more, if the attack commences with vomiting and diarrhcea; this remedy often stays the further progress of the disease. Veratrum is less reliable if the symptoms of cholera are fully developed, although even then it surpasses all other remedies in efficacy. Of course, no remedy acts as favorably after the disease has made considerable headway; it is for this reason that Veratrum should be given at as early a period as possible. If the restlessness of the patient has given way to a dull apathy and insensibility; if the skin is cold as marble and the pulse has become perfectly extinct, Veratrum is no longer indicated. In general, it is proper to say that Veratrum album ceases to exert a favorable effect after the symptoms of reaction have become extinct. Cuprum is highly commended by some, and entirely rejected by other physicians. An investigation will show that the latter class 620 Epidemic and Endemic Infectious Diseases. cast all other medicines that are recommended for cholera, into the shade. Who would want to experiment with untried remedies in such a rapidly and terribly fatal plague? Carbo vegetabilis has not unfrequently been found useful at a period in the course of the disease when no special medicine is decidedly indicated. Carbo may be administered in the asphyctic stage, if the diarrhcea and vomiting have ceased, if every spasmodic movement has disappeared, and the patient lies as if dead. Carbo is frequently indicated after Arsenicum, and is particularly in its place in cases where every sign of reaction had seemed extinct from the beginning. Acidum hydrocyanum has similar indications as Carbo, but differs from this medicine in the succession of its symptoms. It is indicated if the attack at once assumes the highest degree of intensity, so that but a few hours intervene between the commencement of the attack and the moment when death seems to be lurking on the threshold; Carbo may be sufficient if the failing of the strength is less rapid. Opium deserves attention in the cholera of little children; it is seldom suitable for adults: Colchicum cannot be regarded as a remedy for cholera, for the reason that it has not the colorless stools. We name moreover: Jatropha curcas, Iris versicolor, Cicuta virosa, Conium, Secale cornutum; these remedies, however, are either unreliable as similia, or because they have not been sufficiently proved. As regards dose, almost all observers agree in recommending the lower preparations, even the strong tinctures, frequently repeated. We have to devote a few lines to the management and diet of cholera-patients. Warm external applications are generally of very little use; they are apt to increase the patients' restlessness, and have to be resorted to very guardedly. Continued but gentle frictions with cold wet clothes are much more beneficial. At the onset of the attack, food is utterly out of the question. The best. beverage is fresh well-water; this will moderate the thirst for a moment at any rate. Small lumps of ice in the mouth likewise refresh the patient a good deal. If Champagne can be had, it may be administered in tablespoonful doses with great advantage. The typhoid symptoms after cholera are so changeable that it is next to impossible to recommend a positive course of treatment for 624 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. have a condition answering to the chill of fever, the cold stage of ague, the collapse of cholera." Page 44 he writes: "Lastly in the collapse of Asiatic cholera, where the chill is so deadly that, were it not for the'consecutive fever,' its true nature would be hardly recognizable, Aconite will still assert its power. I venture to predict that it will some day be recognized as superior even to Arsenic in those terrible cases where vomiting and purging are well nigh absent, and death seems eminent from the arrest of the circulation." If the Doctor will turn to the pages of the British Journal some twenty years back, he will find that I made the same 1rediction at that time, and was laughed at for my pains. II.] C. CONSTITUTIONAL DISEASES WITHOUT DEFINITE INFECTION. Z. Chlorosis. Green-sickness. Chlorosis as an idiopathic disease occurs exclusively among females, and is connected with the sexual functions in a manner that we are as yet unable to account for by a precise and logical process of reasoning. Chlorosis occurs chiefly between the ages of thirteen and twenty-four years, seldom at a later period; if it does, it can be traced to secondary disturbances, such as: confinements of young women coming rapidly one after another, more especially if the women nurse their own children. Hence the real cause of chlorosis has to be traced to the sexual sphere; but it is easily perceived that unconquerable obstacles stand in the way of a thorough investigation. The disease sometimes breaks out previous to the first appearance of the menses, more frequently after several menstrual periods; as an entirely primary disease it only breaks out among unmarried women. It appears to be hereditary; females of a pale complexion are more liable to be attacked with it; no constitution is exempt from the disease, although delicate individuals with irritable nerves are more susceptible to it. Among other causes we may mention: Insufficient exercise, mental exertions without corresponding muscular activity; excitement of the fancy, especially when caused by novel-reading; excitement of 626 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. these symptoms are pains of the most diversified kind, very generally uterine catarrh. The urine has a strikingly pale color. The patients generally sleep very soundly and have to sleep a long time; sleep never refreshes them. One or the other of these derangements is generally wanting; at other times one of them is very prominent, whereas another is inconsiderable; thus it happens that the most varied groups of symptoms often develop themselves which, however, have essentially the same meaning. The one characteristic symptom is never absent: dyspncea and palpitation of the heart from the least unusual effort, especially after going up stairs. The course of chlorosis is always more or less protracted, sometimes very chronic. This, however, must be expected, since the disorder is depending upon anomalies of nutrition that come on very gradually and which can, no more than their consequences, be extirpated very suddenly. If no particular disturbances take place, the affection can sometimes be cured in a few weeks, whereas, if the usual mode of living which had acted as the exciting cause, is persevered in, the trouble may continue for years. In such cases the disease has remissions and exacerbations, and is most commonly more violent in the summer than in the winter-season. Uncomplicated chlorosis always terminates in recovery; it is only when circumstances favor the disease that disturbances of the nervous system and the sexual sphere, but less frequently of the heart, remain. Among the complications, the simultaneous presence of tuberculosis and scrofulosis is most threatening. We generally find that scrofulous girls who are attacked with chlorosis, recover their health to some extent for a year or two, after which they die of consumption, or phthisis may set in as a direct development of a protracted chlorosis. Treatment. This has to be directed with a view of meeting the cause as well as the symptoms of the case. To meet the symptoms, medicines have to be used; but before prescribing our remedy, we ought to find out what the remedy is given for, what we intend to accomplish with it, and what we can legitimally expect from its operation. Most generally, physicians aim at bringing back the menses; if this is accomplished, they fancy that they have gained the battle. This view, however, is not only totally erroneous, but may result in a good deal of mischief. The menses are neither the cause of chlorosis nor do they indicate the grade of its importance. They are often absent, or, if present, they are generally irregular, 628 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. patient should change her mode of living, which she might otheri wrise be indisposed to do. The use of Ferrum is contra-indicated by the following symptoms: Previous employment of tle drug in enormous doses; even small doses cause a marked hyperoemia about the heart and lungs. The last-mentioned effect is apt to occur when tubercles are present in the lungs. Arsenicum is less frequently indicated, but, when indicated, it has an eminently curative effect. It is suitable in all cases of chlorosis that have been mismanaged with Ferrum and which are generally characterized by a high degree of debility, with excessive irritability, cedematous paleness, cardiac phenomena even during rest, and complete gastro-ataxia. Arsenicum is likewise important, if the previously mentioned symptoms are associated with a disposition to adiposis, paroxysms of dyspncea or else continued shortness of breath, profuse menstruation, liver-complaint, violent cardialgia, sleeplessness at night, drowsiness in the day-time. It is remarkable how soon after the administration of Arsenicum the normal appetite returns and the sickly complexion is replaced by a brighter hue. Calcarea carbonica, unaided by other remedies, scarcely ever effects a cure of chlorosis; generally lFerrinm has to be given afterwards. It is indicated by a disposition to congestions of the head and chest; constant and abrupt changes of color; a lively and irritable temperament; the menses are too profuse and premature; acidity of the stomach with complete loathing of animal diet, craving for farinaceous and indigestible food. In such cases Ferrum often agrees best after Calcarea. As a general rule this remedy is only suitable to chlorotic persons during the period of pubescence. Plumbum aceticum is recommended by Winter in accordance with sound reasoning; we have no personal experience with this drug. It is indicated by the following circumstances and symptoms. Severe orthopncea and dyspncea, inconquerable constipation, extreme muscular debility, cedema of the feet. If, in addition to these symptoms, we take the numerous cardiac phenomena, the gastric difficulties and the cough, we obtain a striking picture of an intense, inveterate chlorosis. Beside Winter's, we are not acquainted with any trials that other physicians have made with Lead. Sepia may be regarded as an excellent remedy for the paroxysms of hemicrania which constitute a source of distress to chlorotic females with brown hair and lively temperaments. Sepia is likewise adapted'to chlorosis emanating from the sexual organs as secondary affections. Chlorosis. 629 Pulsatilla has been long regarded as a remedy for chlorosis; however, we are of opinion that most of the cures of - chlorosis that are attributed to the exclusive use of Pulsatilla, are questionable. Pudsatilla is no remedy for primary chlorosis, although we cheerfully admit that, like Sepia, it is a very excellent remedy in secondary chlorosis. Fulsatilla is likewise excellent for special symptoms, such as: pain in the stomach, headache, toothache; but chlorosis is scarcely ever acted upon by this medicine. The removal of the cause, including a certain preventive treatment up to a certain degree, is scarcely ever heeded with sufficient attention. We are not able to determine all the special causes of chlorosis, but the general causes can be clearly made out, and this is sufficient both to guard against the disease and to promote the cure. Let our young ladies be properly educated, and let all premature excitement of the fancy be carefully avoided; let all fashions interfering with the respiration and the digestion be discarded; let our girls have an abundance of very active exercise in the open air; let the mothers' attention be directed to the deleterious practice of onanism and to all premature sexual excitement; and above all, let all novel-reading be strictly prohibited. If the disease has once broken out, a radical change in the mode of living is eminently advisable; city-girls ought to be sent into the country, and country-girls to town. A change of this kind alone is often sufficient to effect a cure.. Of course, the deleterious influences to which we have alluded, have to be strictly avoided. The patients had better confine themselves to the use of milk, leaving off both tea and coffee. A moderate amount of bodily exercise is necessary, continued and fatiguing exercise is hurtful. Cheerful company promotes the cure very much. Sleep should not be limited to a fixed number of hours; on the other hand, constant somnolence should not be yielded to. [B ehr has left out three remedies that may render efficient service in the treatment of chlorosis; they are: Aconite, if chlorosis' is complicated with tuberculosis; such patients are apt to have a dark sallow complexion sometimes with a greenish tint and deep flushes on the cheeks; they are troubled with palpitations, dyspncea, stitching pains in the chest.-Digitalis; in some chlorotic patients the pulse is irregular and intermittent and the heart's action is characterized by similar changes; such symptoms indicate Digitalis. Belladonna is indicated by frequent paroxysms of headache in the forepart of the head; the headache is accompanied by bright flushes 680 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. on the cheeks- deep sparkling looks, heat in the head; such patients are apt to be of a lymphatic disposition and passive turn of mind. H.] 2. Iheuima. Rheumatism. Under this heading we comprehend a group of morbid conditions concerning whose essence our knowledge is very defective; all they have in common is, that they are localized in the fibrous tissues, the muscles, tendons, joints, aponeuroses, etc. We may add that all rheumatic affections are very much aggravated by the influence of cold. Their etiology is no less uncertain and vague than their nomenclature. Whereas the acute forms occur chiefly between the years of fourteen and thirty-five, the chronic forms are principally met with after the fortieth year of age. The former are principally occasioned by exposure to colds and wet, the latter more particularly by damp and cold dwellings, and by continued exposure to wet weather and permanently dwelling in wet localities. There are atmospheric conditions which frequently cause epidemic rheumatism, generally in company with extensive catarrhal diseases. One attack of rheumatism begets a tendency to new attacks. In the case of females, chronic rheumatism is decidedly favored by the influences of the critical age. The rheumatic process shows itself in four distinct forms which we shall describe separately, although their treatment will be condensed in one, in order to avoid unnecessary repetitions. a. Acute Articular Rheumatism. This form of rheumatism often arises from a cold and from exposure to atmospheric influences; it not unfrequently assumes an epidemic type and, in such a case, breaks out most commonly in the fall and winter. The disease commences very gradually with a vague feeling of malaise, accompanied with slight catarrhal symptoms; it may break out after severe attacks of angina, very seldom suddenly, and scarcely ever with a chill, but with alternate chills and heat. Simultaneously with the fever, very seldom after, and still less seldom before, one or more joints become painful; the pain rapidly increases, and the joint swells, sometimes with, and at other times without red Rheuma. 631 ness; at this period the least motion and the least pressure cause pain, so that the patients remain perfectly quiet for fear of hurting themselves. Generally several joints are attacked at once, very seldom only one at a time, never all the joints at once from the start. The disease progresses in a very characteristic manner. While the joint that was first attacked, is getting better in three to five days, sometimes with a complete cessation of the pain as well as the swelling, other joints are attacked in the same manner; in this manner most of the other joints are invaded, after which the rheumatism frequently breaks out again in the joint whence it had originally proceeded. At times the swelling is quite considerable, at other times scarcely perceptible; sometimes it is confined to the joint alone, at other times the surrounding parts are very extensively involved; not unfrequently the articular extremities feel enlarged. The constitutional symptoms are at times very violent, at other times very slight; this depends a good deal upon the number of joints involved. The fever runs pretty high, remitting very irregularly; the temperature is not much raised above the normal level; pulse about hundred, in very acute cases increasing very seldom to one hundred and twenty and upwards, small and chang(able; a copious perspiration, having a musty-sour smell, continues during the whole course of the disease, corresponding with which the patients are tormenttd by a distressing thirst. The urine is very scanty, saturated, and, on cooling, deposits a copious sediment. The digestion is slow, the appetite impaired, but very seldom entirely suspended. The course of uncomplicated rheumatism is never very rapid, generally more or less wavering; recovery takes place gradually; single joints may remain painful and swollen for a long time, the pulse remains obstinately accelerated, the perspiration continues, the weakness abates very slowly. A favorable change takes place very seldom after the first week, a little more frequently after the second, but most commonly only after the third and fourth week. Very often we have noticed that, before the disease terminates, every joint is attacked twice, and that the second attack only lasts half as long as the first. In violent cases all the joints are affected together at the termination of the attack, some, however, are more acutely inflamed than others. Complications generally occasion a more protracted course of the disease, and determine the amount of danger involved in the attack. Among these complications we seldom meet with pneumonia, pleu 632 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. ritis, peritonitis; endo- and pericarditis, on tie contrary, are very common occurrences. Such complications must be expected so much more certainly the larger the number of joints. that are simultaneously involved, and the more fiercely they are attacked. In a majority of cases the cardiac inflammation develops itself so imperceptibly that it is scarcely betrayed by a single symptom; it very seldom sets in with a chill or with acute pain. A symptom thft ought always to excite our suspicion, is the hurried breathing and the abrupt talking of the patient. If this symptom becomes manifest, the heart must be explored forthwith. This, however, should be done every day during an attack of acute rheumatism. The disease generally terminates in recovery, although very slowly, and leaving various inconveniences and discomforts, more particularly a peculiar laming weakness. Death is a very rare termination, except when such complications supervene as generally terminate fatally. Very seldom the rheumatic inflammation increases to such an extent that suppuration takes place; if this happens, the suppurative process always involves a good deal of danger. Among the consecutive diseases, structural alterations of the heart, with their distressing consequences, occur most frequently; paralytic conditions are less frequent, and, moreover, disappear again very speedily. Almost all patients retain a great tendency to relapses. b. Acute Muscular Rheumatism. This rheumatism owes its existence almost exclusively to a heavy cold; such muscles are most easily attacked as were engaged in active work when the exposure took place. This form of rheumatism is one of the milder sort. In rare cases only, it sets in with an acute fever and a continual perspiration, the same as acute articular rheumatism; however, it is of shorter duration and much less dangerous, leaving of course a marked. disposition to chronic muscular rheumatism. Most generally muscular rheumatism develops itself very rapidly, even suddenly, in company with more or less severe catarrhal complaints. In the invaded muscles, the number of which is seldom very great, and which are almost always in close relationship with each other, violent, drawing-tearing pains are experienced during every motion; these pains are likewise felt, if the muscles remain for a long time in the same. position, as at night, in bed; the pains are increased by cold, and likewise by humid warmth; dry warmth relieves them. 634 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. d. Arthritis Deformans, Arthritic JRheumatism. This form of articular rheumatism always runs an exceedingly chronic course; it does not develop itself out of the acute form, occurs very rarely previous to the thirty-fifth year of age, and is most frequent after the fortieth year. It breaks out among all classes, especially, however, the lower; on this account it is very difficult to determine the degree of influence exerted by bad food or damp dwellings over this disease. Arthritic rheumatism affects more particularly the female sex; the critical age undoubtedly favors an outbreak of this disease, for we meet with it most frequently about this time. The disease may attack any joint in the body, but it is mostly limited to the joints of the hands and feet, affecting both sides of the body at the same time. It generally commences in the hand, whose joints become more or less painful, especially when they are moved or pressed upon laterally. Sometimes the pain is principally felt in bed; crepitation is very soon heard in the joint. The joint swells very slowly; at times long intervals occur in the further continuance of the swelling, after which the arthritic process resumes its course amid renewed paroxysms of pain. Towards the end the shape of the joints is very much altered, especially the shape of the phalangeal articulations. The articular extremities look bulbous, they are especially enlarged in breadth; they feel hard; their integumentous covering has a natural color; the articular surfaces are no longer in complete coaptation, giving the opposite bones the appearance of being dislocated, and imparting to the hands and feet a deformed shape. The power of motion is not entirely suspended, but motion is very painful; in the very highest grades of the disease the joints are entirely immovable. Life is not endangered by this condition, but its curability is very doubtful. The swelling never disappears entirely; all that can be properly aimed at by treatment, is to arrest the further progress of the disease. lTreatment. Owing to the peculiar vagueness and indefiniteness of the single forms of rheumatism, whether acute or chronic, we find it difficult to decide whether and what medicines have exerted a curative effect upon the disease. The consequence is that an unreasonably large number of medicines have been employed for this disease, all with more or less pretended effect, yet in similar cases the same remedy does not always produce the same curative Rheuma. 635 result. The natural course of the disease is not taken into account, and a spontaneous cure is mistaken for the work of art. Another reason why our remedies for rheumatism are not perfectly reliable, is the vagueness attaching to a definition of this term. Here we have a striking demonstration of the fact that it is injurious to treat diseases in accordance with pathological names, and that there is, on the other hand, great advantage in individualizing cases according to the rules of Homeopathy, without troubling ourselves whether the morbid condition is called rheumatism or something else, provided the abnormal process ceases. No disease embarrasses the Rational School more than rheumatism which makes a laughing-stock of all hypothetical speculations. Although we have no very exalted opinion of the power of homceopathic medicines over rheumatism, yet we assert without hesitation that the homlceopathic treatment of rheumatism is more effectual than any other; at the same time we admit that it is desirable that we should be able to accomplish a great deal more. In our opinion, one of the principal reasons why we so often fail in curing rheumatism is the dread homceopathic physicians seem to entertain, in administering large doses, which rheumatism often requires, as is evidenced in the case of Sulphur. In the following paragraphs we only mention the leading remedies more fully; of the other less important remedies we only give the names, for we believe that too large a number of drugs is prejudicial. Aconitum is the main remedy in acute articular rheumatism if the pulse is not only frequent but likewise full and hard, the temperature is considerably higher, the joint is red and exceedingly sensitive to contact; it is suitable for nervous, irritable, plethoric individuals; or when pericarditis or endocarditis has supervened. Further indications may be gathered from the Materia Medica Pura. Aconite has been less frequently used in chronic cases where it sometimes acts with great efficacy. Aconite is less adapted to chronic articular than to muscular rheumatism, especially when the disease is located in the upper extremities. [Aconite is a specific remedy for rheumatism of the deltoid muscle. H.] Bryonia alba is a leading remedy for acute and chronic rheumatism, except the arthritic form. The symptoms of this medicine are so numerous that we have to content ourselves with furnishing a few general indications. Bryonia is most suitable for rheumatism Rheuma. 637 muscular rheumatism, RUus tox. is the best remedy, if the attack is caused by exposure to wet; if the above-mentioned circumstances either improve or aggravate the symptoms; if the pains at once become associated with paralysis and contraction; if the muscles of the lower extremities are the seat of the disease. Rheumatic paralysis particularly points to Rhus. In chronic articular rheumatism, Rhus is of little, if any use. [Rhus is generally recommended for rheumatism, if the patient contracted the disease in consequence of getting soaking wet. This indication is unreliable. Some time ago I was called to see a Catholic priest who, while visiting a man in the country, was overtaken by a thunder-storm and was drenched to the skin. In this condition he had to travel eight miles on horseback. Next day he was attacked with neuralgic rheumatism in the upper third of the left upper arm. The pain was as if the bone and marrow were being ground into a thousand fragments. After having been treated allopathically for a whole week, with large doses of Morphia, Quinine, etc., the patient was reduced to a shadow by the pain, deprivation of sleep, etc. Being sent for, I found the arm apparently natural, but the sensitiveness so great that the least attempt to touch the affected limb, caused the patient to exclaim and shudder. The pain extorted agonizing cries. I made up my mind that Mlercury was his remedy, of which he took the first centesimal trituration, a powder every hour. Already after the first powder the pain began to abate, and next morning he was completely relieved and went out again, two days after my first visit. II.] Pulsatilla, according to Iartmann and others, is indicated in mild, subacute rheumatism of the joints and muscles; the affection shifts about frequently and speedily; the pains exacerbate in the evening and at night; they are violent tearing, drawing and jerking pains, increased by warmth, improved by cold, at least for a short time. Pulsatilla is seldom appropriate in chronic rheumatism, more so in the rheumatism of muscles and of the joints. It is neither a reliable remedy, nor one that can be often used for the reason that the rheumatism to which Pulsatilla corresponds, is not of frequent occurrence. [For rheumatism of the dorsum of the foot, Pulsatilla is an excellent specific. A lady, seventy years of age, of a yielding and rather phlegmatic temperament, had an attack of acute rheumatism of the dorsum of the right foot. It was very much swollen, red, excessively painful, and very sensitive to contact. The swelling had a shining appearance. The pain was much worse at night, and 638 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. deprived her of sleep; the fever ran high. She had been sulTering in this way for three nights. I gave her six globules of Pulsatilla 18, dissolved in half a tumbler of water, to be taken in dessertspoonful doses every two hours. After the first dose already the pain moderated, she very soon fell asleep, perspired a little during the night, and next morning was entirely free from pain, fever and swelling. H.] Colchicum is not exactly a remedy for acute rheumatism, but is excellent in subacute affections of the joints and muscles, the external parts of the former being chiefly affected. The fever is not violent, mingled with constant chills, either without or with very little perspiration, the urine is saturated and deposits a copious sediment. The painful joints are neither red nor swollen; the pains increase considerably at night or by motion and contact. The attack comes on in damp and cold weather. Tartarus emeticus deserves to be used more than it so far has been; it is one of those remedies that have a good effect in exceedingly painful local muscular rheumatism, for instance, rheumatism of the dorsal muscles contracted after a cold during the performance of a fatiguing muscular effort. In such a case, Tartar emetic very soon brings relief. In acute articular rheumatism Tartar emetic is indicated by the following symptoms: Marked swelling of a number of joints, the pains are not very great during rest, but this rest is frequently interrupted by spontaneous, spasmodic, very painful contractions of single bundles of muscles. There is not much fever; the symptoms of digestive derangement, on the contrary, are very prominent. A condition marked by such symptoms, sometimes occurs during the subsequent course of articular rheumatism, scarcely ever at the commencement. Digitalis purpurea is, in our opinion, a most important remedy in acute articular rheumatism; in the last few years we have often seen this remedy produce a striking effect and shorten the course of the disease. We do not deem it necessary to demonstrate the similarity of Digitalis to rheumatism; the physiological action of this drug as recorded in the Materia Medica, explains this similarity beyond the possibility of cavil. We do not, however, feel able, to give the special indications of Digitalis in every particular case, for the simple reason that we have not had sufficient opportunities to test it in practice. So far we have been guided in the exhibition of Digitalis by the following points: Hurried, small pulse easily affected by motion; increased strength of the beating of the heart, 640 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. two days she was down stairs at work. While she remained in the family, two years, she had no return of the disease. The Doctor writes: " Since the above result was obtained, I have frequently prescribed the Caulophyllin for articular rheumatism affecting the smaller joints, and several times with a signal success. It has, however, appeared more effectual in case of females than of males, who were ill with this painful disease." H.] Beside these remedies the following deserve being mentioned. In acute cases: Arnica, Belladonna, Nitrum, Spigelia; in sub-acute and more chronic affections: Ledum, Sabina, Cocculus, Mezereum, Clematis, Rhododendron, Ruta, Oleander (especially in cases of rheumatic paralysis); finally, in inveterate cases: Iodium, Causticum, Calcarea carbonica, Silicea. [In arthritic rheumatism, grafted upon a scrofulous basis, Aconite and Iodine are indispensable. H.] Although Sulphur-springs are the most effectual remedy for constitutional rheumatism, yet there are other means calculated either to heal or prevent new attacks; some of these means are often sufficient to perform a cure. In this class we rank the cold-water treatment, sea-bathing, the Turkish and Russian baths. The two last-mentioned have to be employed with great care; if they help at all, the favorable effect is seen already after a few baths. It is a matter of course that the cause should be removed as much as may be. The diet in acute rheumatism is easily managed; the patients either do not crave any nourishment, or theirappetite is very much impaired. Fat and greasy articles of diet are decidedly injurious; acid substances, especially stewed fruit, have a very good effect; raw fruit may be partaken of, but moderately. 3. Arthritis. Gout. The cause of gout is involved in a great deal of obscurity; speculations on this subject have led to the most one-sided hypotheses. All that we know positively is, that gout is not only an hereditary, but in the majority of the cases that come under our notice, an inherited disease; however, it may likewise originate as a primary malady. We likewise know positively that, if the body receives a larger supply of animal food than can be assimilated either by bodily or mental labor, or that, if quantities of heavy or sour wines or heavy Arthritis. 641 beer are drank, the outbreak of the disease is very much facilitated; but whether such causes can occasion the disease primarily, is very questionable. A large majority of cases occur among the male sex; the disease breaks out between the ages of thirty-five and seventy years; if it attacks persons before this time, the disease is inherited. In accordance with these statements we find that gout chiefly attacks the higher strata of society. Symptoms ann Ctocrse. Gout is a decidedly chronic disease the course of which is interrupted by acute attacks. It originates very gradually, with a train of symptoms that do not enable us to draw reliable conclusions regarding the nature of the disease. Shortly after a period, during which a good many dietetic transgressions had been committed, the patients feel out of sorts, irri-'table, ill-humored, they complain of pain in the stomach, heartburn, vomiting of a sour liquid, pressure and repletion in the abdomen, hemor: hoids, gastric headache, and the urine is saturated. After these preliminary symptoms have, lasted for a longer or shorter period, the first Paroxysm of Gout sets in, in the vast majority of cases during sleep, at night. The patient is roused from sleep by a violent, boring-burning pain, with a sensation as if the part were in a vice; at the first attack this pain is almost without an exception seated in the first articulation of the big toe of one or the other foot, increasing very rapidly to such a degree of intensity, that the patients are almost beside themselves. Very soon the painful spot shows a vivid redness and is more or less swollen; but neither redness nor swelling ever spreads over the adjoining parts. Motion is impossible, and external pressure causes such an intense pain that the patients cannot even bear the least touch of the blanket. This pain is often accompanied by a high fever which sometimes remits so fully on the following morning, amid a profuse perspiration, that the day is spent with scarcely any pain. The next night, however,. the pain returns, showing that the diseaQe is still there. This change goes on between one and two weeks, until the painfulness and redness, and soon after the swelling, disappear pretty suddenly, and the patients feel well again, even better than before the attack. The: only striking change after the attack is the great quantity of urates which never fail to be deposited in the urine. This first attack may terminate the whole disease, especially if the patient changes his present mode of living with determined firmness and consistency. If this is not done, a new attack takes place 41 642 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. after a certain lapse of time; this second attack chiefly breaks out during the period from February to April. This circumstance is in some respects accounted for by the patient's more luxurious mode of living during the winter-season, when he takes at the same time less active exercise than usual. The interval is entirely free from ailments until shortly previous to the new attack, when the former premonitory symptoms again make their appearance. With every new attack the free intervals are more and more obscured and shortened, the local disorder leaves calculous deposits on the diseased joint, with more or less permanent pains and a higher or less degree of immobility. The paroxysms are less acute, but instead of at most two, they last eight or twelve weeks; other joints, especially those of the feet, knees, hands and shoulders, likewise become involved. The so-called chronic or atonic gout now is an established infirmity. The more numerous the changes that remain after the attack, the more joints are affected, the longer the attack lasts, the more prominently the chronic affection shows its characteristic features during the interval. The digestion is permanently deranged, the patients complain of pains in the stomach, which sometimes increase to severe paroxysms of cardialgia; they complain, moreover, of acidity of the stomach, pressure, fulness and flatulence after every meal, torpor of the bowels and hemorrhoidal distress; they are very irritable and out of humor. Nutrition is more and more impaired, the complexion assumes a yellowgrayish appearance. The circulation is disturbed in various ways. Such disturbances are very significant in so far as they generally point to a degeneration of the valves and arteries; they commence with frequent, but short-lasting congestions, palpitations, attacks of angina pectoris, asthmatic complaints. The affected joints become more and more deformed and anchylosed. At a more advanced age and by observing a strict diet, this chronic gout may terminate in recovery; of course, the concretions in the joints remain. This form of gout may likewise assume the character of the so-called anomalous gout, which sometimes ushers in the whole disease; in such a case it becomes exceedingly difficult to establish a reliable diagnosis. Anomalous gout may likewise succeed the first attack of gout in the place of chronic gout. The patients suffer with the complaints of chronic gout; above all, the urine looks very cloudy depositing large quantities of urates; but in the place of acute pains in the joints, we have short-lasting pains shifting about from place to place frequently and speedily, without Arthritis. 643 swelling or redness, but very frequently with gradual impairment of the mobility of the joints. Of particular importance are the intermediate affections of internal organs that have been designated as retrograde or metastatic gout. Sometimes they, indeed, depeind upon material changes, products of a permanently established arthritic process; sometimes, however, the organs are attacked in a manner corresponding perfectly with the invasion of the tarsal articulation. The internal organs that are principally attacked, are the heart and stomach, less frequently the brain; the attack consists in a sudden violent inflammation with horrid pains, and, as far as the brain is concerned, with considerable danger, for the attack may terminate fatally in a few days. Arthritis scarcely ever terminates directly fatally; it is still less frequently succeeded by perfect recovery. Death results mostly from alterations in the organs of the circulation, very seldom from a gradual prostration of strength. Recovery being generally imperfect, the prognosis is only conditionally favorable. Treatment. It has to be directed against the single paroxysm, in which case it is necessarily symptomatic; and likewise against the chronic disease, in which case it aims at removing the cause. The treatment of the single paroxysm leads us to the remedies that have been indicated for rheumatism; this is a necessary consequence of the pathological vagueness of both affections and of the insufficiency of our physiological provings. Many remedies are recommended for gout, the value of which is very questionable; in recommending them, their authors probably overlooked the fact that an attack of gout sometimes terminates spontaneously in one week. At the same time we are bound to admit that we are not acquainted with any complete cures of gout under homeopathic treatment. In selecting a remedy, a characteristic phenomenon of the gout, namely the deposition of urates in the urine, must not be lost sight of. Unfortunately the sediments in the urine have not been tested chemically by our provers. For the single paroxysm which is accompanied by violent fever, Aconite renders the most eminent service, but it has to be given in large and frequently repeated doses. Arnica has often done good service, if the attack had been caused by mechanical injuries, or if it sets in after great physical exertions; if the inflamed joint was intensely red, and the patients were very restless in spite of their pains. Arnica is likewise excellent in cases of metastasis to the brain. According to lIartmann, Pulsatilla is indicated by the fol 644 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. lowing symptoms: The pains abate in cool air; the local affection shifts its locality very rapidly; the affection of the knee is characterized by shooting, drawing-stitching pains. Such symptoms may scarcely ever occur in reality. Sabina is, like Pulsatilla, indicated if the affection inclines to rapidly change its locality, but more particularly if the change takes place from the big toe-joint to the hand, and vice versa; the pains are alleviated in the cool air, and the patient is constantly obliged to change the position of the affected part. We have observed all these symptoms in the case of a girl who had swallowed a quantity of Sabina for the purpose of producing a miscarriage; these symptoms convey an exact image of an attack of gout. Staphysagria, if the paroxysms of gout of the tarsal joint gradually assume the form of anomalous gout. Nux vomica is evidently recommended on account of the exciting cause; its pathogenesis does not show any homceopathicity to gout. Digitalis is eminently useful if the attacks are gradually changing in character, and have lasted a good while; in such transitions to chronic gout Digitalis is scarcely ever surpassed by any other remedy; but it must not be given in too small a dose. The first favorable change effected by Digitalis is the supervention of a short sleep. Ledum responds to the imperfect, long-lasting paroxysms involving the carpal and shoulder-joints. Baryta is adapted to affections of the knee. The treatment of the whole disease is more important than that of a single attack, which is always somewhat precarious. The former treatment must be limited in its main features, especially at the beginning of the disease when the intervals are still unclouded, to the enforcement of an appropriate mode of living. What sort of regimen arthritic patients should follow, is evident from what we have said when speaking of the etiology of the disease. In the subsequent course of the disease when the derangements have already become more permanent, it may be difficult'to get along without medicines, but they cannot be indicated a priori for the reason that the symptoms are too diversified. The following remedies are very often suitable: Nux vomica, Lycopodiumn, Ferrum, Arsenicum, Sulphur, Acidum sulphuricum, [also Acidum benzoicum. H.1 In the case of persons of a more advanced age, they must not be altogether deprived of their usual supply of substantial nourishment; nor should the use of wine be entirely prohibited. Sometimes a great deal of good is accomplished, if we substitute a weak grog in the place of the wine, or one kind of wine for another; Hydropsia. 645 light claret is the least injurious to such patients.. Arthritic patients being so readily disposed to forget the strict rules laid down for them by their physicians, it is necessary that these rules should be repeatedly impressed upon their memory. Among the mineral springs, the use of which is sometimes unavoidable in such cases, Carlsbad-springs occupy the first rank, provided the constitution has not yet suffered too much; next to Carlsbad, we recommend Vichy, if the patients have already a leaden complexion, the cautious use of Pyrmont-water does everything that can be expected, to raise the sinking power of the organism, whereas feeble chalybeate springs have no perceptible effect. Many other mineral waters are recommended, and the patients improve by the use of all of them, but no more, generally speaking, than they would have done without drinking the water, provided they had strictly adhered to the severe regimen enforced at the springs. 4~. Hydropsia. _Dropsy. We have assigned this place to this class of diseases because the treatment of dropsy is so uniformly the same that a separate description of the disease as developed in special organs or systems would have led to many useless repetitions. Dropsy is never an idiopathic disease, but always secondary, although it sometimes appears to be of a primary character. In general, all conditions which, in the long run, interfere with the circulation, or retain the water in the blood, lead to dropsy; likewise any other conditions that result in the production of a high grade of hyperemia or anmemia. In most cases, however, something else has to become associated with these conditions, otherwise it would be difficult to comprehend why many anomalies should be able to continue so long before resulting in the development of dropsy. We are unacquainted with the nature of this something; whether it is a relaxation of the coats of the vessels, or a more copious supply of water in the blood, or whatever else, we have not yet been able to find out.. Most likely it is from this unknown cause that dropsy, consequent upon a general marasmus, without any special, mechanical cause results. In accordance with the above-mentioned three categories, dropsy sets in, if the flow of the venous blood into the right heart is interfered with; if the circulation is obstructed by 646 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. thrombi in the larger venous trunks (as for instance in consequence of phlebitis in the lower extremity, in the case of lying-in women; ascites arising from inflammation of the vena portarum); in the case of pulmonary affections impeding the reflux of the blood, such as emphysema, hydro-thorax, pneumo-thorax; in consequence of affections of the liver resulting from obstructions of the portal circulation. -In the case of renal affections, if the function of the kidneys is very much interfered with; in chlorosis, affections of the spleen with hydremia, after copious losses of blood, or after severe, debilitating diseases, in general in conditions of debility of a high order. Symptoms. At the onset dropsy is more or less local; as a rule, it commences with a swelling round the ankles, less frequently in the face; ascites takes place only when the liver is diseased. In this case it may remain localized as ascites; in the former case it gradually spreads throughout the whole of the subcutaneous cellular tissue, unites with ascites, and finally with cedema of the lungs or brain, in which case death soon results. Dropsical effusions are generally accompanied and sometimes preceded by prostration, and by decrease of the urinary secretions. The urine is dark, saturated, becoming cloudy in a short time; the quantity is sometimes very scanty. All the other watery secretions are likewise less, or they are entirely suspended; the stools are very dry, the skin is dry and cracks easily, incapable of perspiration, the mucous membranes are likewise dry, on which account the patient is often tormented by a distressing thirst. Dropsy at times develops itself very speedily and universally, sometimes slowly and progressing very gradually. It is especially after nephritis that water accumulates very rapidly; it collects most slowly in company with affections of the lungs. It is unnecessary for us to describe the special forms of dropsy; these forms and the constitutional symptoms accompanying them, can easily be determined without any further description. The Course of the disease is at times uninterrupted, leading speedily to death, or else it makes pauses, a portion of the serum that had been poured out into the cellular tissue or the cavities, being reabsorbed. This may result from a transitory cessation or diminution of the obstruction in the circulation, or from copious excretions of urine, watery discharges from the bowels, oozing through cracks in the skin, or from a general invigoration of the whole organism. Death generally takes place by cedema of the Hydropsia. 647 lungs or brain. Recovery is attended with copious discharges of urine, very rarely with diarrhoea alone. The Prognosis depends upon the chances of removing or neutralizing the primary obstruction or derangement. The Tireatment has to be chiefly directed against removing the cause; if this is not possible, it has to be almost purely symptomatic or palliative. The causal indication is met by the remedies that have been indicated when the affections of the various organs were treated of; we need not repeat them in this place. Symptomatically we shall have to select remedies capable of stimulating the diminished action of the kidneys, or of the circulatory organs, and, by this means, of promoting indirectly the absorption of the fluid. We possess a tolerable number of such remedies which sometimes help to diminish dropsy depending upon some incurable disease, and by which means Homceopathy enjoys a striking advantage over any other method of treatment. In mentioning these remedies, we will accompany them with short statements, for there are so many possible groups of symptoms, that it is impossible to furnish special indications upon an extensive scale. Moreover, the chronic nature of the disease enables us to compare the remedies in our Materia Medica with all proper attention. Arsenicum album is our most important diuretic. It is suitable in all forms of dropsy, more particularly in dropsy depending upon heart-disease, and cedema of the lungs. After giving Arsenicum, a copious diuresis will sometimes set in with astonishing rapidity, after which the dropsical swelling speedily disappears. The result is most doubtful, if we have only ascites to contend against. Inasmuch as the medicine shows its good effect in a few days already, after a few doses had been taken, it is useless to continue it for a longer period, in the vain hope of eliciting good effects from it by persisting in its use. Digitalis purpurea is much less reliable than Arsenicum, although it is much easier to determine the indications for its use. It is particularly useful in dropsy depending upon, or accompanied by a high degree of general debility; the dropsy is caused by pulmonary or cardiac disease. Digitalis is never indicated for ascites alone, but so much more specifically for cedema of the lungs. The nature of the exciting causes is such that Digitalis can only act as a palliative; if small doses remain ineffectual, larger doses should be resorted to before the medicine is discontinued. China is particularly useful in dropsy setting in after debilitating 648 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infectiou. diseases, great losses of blood, and when the liver is affected. Upon the whole, however, we have to place China among the less reliable medicines. Helleborus niger is not adapted to slowly developing cases of dropsy, but it is an excellent remedy in acute dropsy, probably because this form of the disease generally arises from an affection of the kidneys which comes within the curative range of this drug. Apis at one time was greatly extolled as a remedy for dropsy, but practical trials have disappointed us; we have never been able to obtain any decided results by means of Apis. It is recommended for every form of dropsy. Acidum fluoricum has been used by Haubold with success for the anasarca of a drunkard. We are not aware that this medicine has been often used, but we urgently recommend it for trial. Prunus spinosa is so urgently recommended for general dropsy that it is undoubtedly advisable to try it. lHartmann has seen good effects from this medicine in dropsy depending upon heart-disease. Aurum muriaticum is recommended for general dropsy as well as for dropsy depending upon derangement of the liver, or for ascites alone, especially in the case of cachectic individuals. [Apocynum cannabinum in various doses, but principally in larger quantities, has frequently cured dropsy, general dropsy as well as hydrothorax. Helonin is recommended for dropsy arising from renal difficulties, such as albuminuria, Bright's disease, etc. Cochineal is useful in dropsy from the same cause. H.] The following remedies are indicated by the nature of the exciting cause rather than by the presence of the serous effusion: Cantharis, Terebinthina (for renal affections); Tart. slib., Carbo veget., Squilla, Sulphur (for pulmonary affections); Ferrum, Kali carbonicum, Phosphorus, lodium, Mercurius (for affections of the liver); Lycopodium, Sulphur (for chronic catarrh of the bladder). In no disease it is more difficult to select a suitable remedy than in dropsy; nor are we in any disease more frequently disappointed by the medicine employed, very often on account of some cause hidden from observation. These disappointments are very often owing to the circumstance that we do not give a sufficiently large dose; it is well known, however, that dropsy requires to be treated with larger doses than almost any other disease, although there may be exceptions to this rule. Paracentesis is only to be resorted to as a last resort; it scarcely 650 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. The phenomena of scurvy point to the blood as the seat of some essential alterations in this disease. All the leading constituents of the blood seem to be present, but their normal proportion is disturbed and one or the other essential ingredient is found altered in quantity and quality. Various opinions have been advanced by Christison, Garrod, and others, regarding the causes of scurvy; but it is sufficient briefly to state, that "one of the most evident changes from the healthy condition is seated in the blood, which is altered in composition either by the addition to it of some ingredient or ingredients, or by the absence of such, which ought to exist in it; and the deficient ingredient may be one of the ordinary constituents of the blood, or it may be some principle or element entering into their composition. This deficiency is due to the absence of certain articles of diet; and the disease is known by experience to be at once cured by supplying those articles." (Aitken.) Sympltoms. The first manifestation of the disease is a change of color in the face. The countenance looks bloated, and has a livid, jaundiced hue. A bad symptom is when the disease sets in with a puffiness of the skin around the orbits; the sclerotic conjunctiva is tumid and gives the cornea an appearance as if seen at the bottom of a well. Wandering, rheumatoid pains in the limbs are complained of; the patients feel weary, yet the pulse remains soft; there is no fever, on the contrary, the animal temperature seems depressed. A very high grade of stomatitis develops itself. The gums look spongy and hang over the teeth in flesh-like, palmated excrescences; they bleed readily; in bad cases the inside of the cheeks sloughs off in shreds, the tongue looks broad, flabby and indented; the odor from the mouth is very fetid. At the same time an eruption like flea-bites breaks out on the lower extremities, it has a purple-hue and may ulcerate if the disease becomes very severe. The muscles of the legs become indurated and painful, and the skin is discolored in large patches and sometimes over the larger part of the leg. In the higher grades of scurvy, these patches may break out in ulcerations which are generally located on the calves of the legs, buttocks, hams, shoulders and arms. The skin is exceedingly irritable, the merest rub causing an hemorrhagic effusion under the skin. Deprivation of sleep constitutes one of the keenest sufferings of scorbutic patients. Their strength may be so completely exhausted that death may result from the most trifling bodily effort. Scurvy at the present time is a very rare disease, and with our present means of treatment and our perfect knowl Scorbutus. 651 edge of the nature of the disease, it scarcely ever runs to a fatal termination. Etiology and Treatment. At one time, the excessive or exclusive use of salt-provisions was supposed to be the cause of scurvy, but we know now that scurvy may likewise result from the exclusive use of fresh as well as salt meat. The real cause of scurvy is a deprivation of fresh vegetables. By supplying this want, the disease is readily and effectually cured. " The disease," writes Dr. Parkes, "so fatal when left to itself, is cured with the greatest facility. Symptoms, apparently the most grave and serious, vanish as if by magic, and without leaving behind them any very serious injury to the constitution. The sanious discharge from scorbutic sores has been known to change color and to become healthy in a few hours after the commencement of treatment. In pure cases of scurvy, the blood, and the blood only, is at fault."'"Lemon-juice," writes Dr. Watson, "is really a specific against scurvy, whether it be employed as a preventive or as a remedy. It supplies something to the blood which is essential to its healthy properties." According to Budd, the potato seems to be no less efficacious as a remedy and preventive. Parkes observes that " good lemon-juice seems to be more effectual than pure citric acid." The absence of fresh vegetables deprives the system of the acids which are necessary to the nutrition of the organism; these are citric, tartaric, acetic, lactic and malic acids which form carbonates in the system by entering into combination with alkalies. "When we inquire," says Dr. Parkes, "whether there is any proof of the deficiency of these particular acids and salts from the diets which cause scurvy, we find the strongest evidence not only that this is the case, but that their addition to the diet cures scurvy with great certainty. Tartaric, and especially citric acid, when combined with alkalies, have always been considered the anti-scorbutic remedies, par excellence, and the evidence on this point seems very complete. "Of the vegetable anti-scorbutics," writes Clymer in his American edition of Aitken, "the potato enjoys, and probably deservedly, the highest reputation; sailors cut it in slices, which they pack in molasses; next to it are onions, sliced and eaten raw; which are greedily devoured by scurvy-patients. Cabbage in the form of sourkrout, sorrel, the wild artichoke, the maguey or American aloe, the prickly pear, the dandelion, lamb's-quarter, green corn, the yam, apples, have all been found excellent anti-scorbutics. Uncooked fruits and vegetables are more efficient than cooked in the prevention and cure of scurvy." Scrofulosis. 653 If hereditary scrofulosis and the last-mentioned circumstances meet, scrofulosis reaches the acme of its development. In our opinion, improper nutrition is a much more frequent cause of scrofulosis than hereditary descent. Parents generally bring up their children as they had been brought up themselves; the absurdities of their own parents have become engrafted upon them with the mother's milk, and the grandmother generally stands by the cradle as a faithful watch-dog to prevent the old routine from being departed from in the least particular. In this point of view it is often proper to say, not that scrofulosis has been inherited, but that absurd views concerning the bringing up of children have been transmitted from one generation to another. As an evidence of the truth of this statement, we mention the circumstance that the firstborn in a family is apt to have a feeble and sickly constitution, whereas children born at a subsequent period, are healthy; or that some children who were brought up on improper food, become scrofulous, whereas no sign of scrofula is manifested in children with whom more rational maxims are pursued. Scrofulosis always breaks out in childhood. It seldom manifests itself before the second year. Children that are very large and bloated in the first two years, almost always become scrofulous at a later period; children with firm muscles and slender forms are scarcely ever attacked with the disease. Scrofulosis scarcely ever breaks out after the second dentition, still less frequently after the age of pubescence. Symptoms and Course. It is very difficult to furnish a complete picture of the scrofulous disease, for the reason that it manifests itself in so many different localities and diversified forms; hence a few general statements will have to suffice. Scrofula chiefly localizes itself in the Lymphatic Glandular System. Either we find a more or less extensive hypertrophied degeneration, or else an exudation tending to suppuration, the surrounding cellular tissue being more or less involved in this process. In the former case the swollen glands may remain unchanged for many years until they gradually disappear, most commonly at the age of pubescence, leaving only a few trifling remnants of diseased structure. The inflammatory exudation is seldom deposited in an acute form; generally the glands swell slowly and without pain, the swelling sometimes even remains stationary, or else retrogrades, until gradually one portion of the'gland becomes injected, fluctuates and breaks. The suppuration 654 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. generally takes place very slowly, because the decomposition of the pus goes forward step by step. In other cases, especially in individuals with sickly constitutions, a complete decomposition of the exudation takes place before the swelling discharges; in such a case the discharge indeed takes place very rapidly, but other glands are attacked so much more speedily one after the other, and the patient's strength is undermined by hectic fever. The cervical and posterior cervical glands are generally attacked first and most extensively; but the morbid process may likewise be transmitted to every other part of the body. It becomes most threatening, if the mesenteric or bronchial glands are invaded; in such a case obstinate and severe catarrhal irritations may set in, which are often enough followed by hectic fever and death. If scrofulosis can be suspected, every chronic intestinal catarrh, every chronic bronchitis, must necessary be traceable to a scrofulous origin. The skin is very often the first organ that shows symptoms of the scrofulous taint. It is but too often the case that children who, up to the time when they were weaned, looked fleshy and solid, after they are weaned, are attacked by cutaneous eruptions that almost always look like eczema and impetigo, less frequently like ecthyma or pemphigus; the incrustations are generally accompanied by obstinate ulcers which constitute characteristic symptoms of scrofula. While the exanthem, which is most commonly confined to the head, is still out, or soon after its disappearance, the glands become affected. The localization in the bones and joints is one of the most dangerous signs of scrofulosis. We refer to what we have said concerning the bones and articulations in a former chapter; we wish to observe, moreover, that the inflammatory forms run a very protracted course, and that it is only when the patient's constitution is in a very bad state, that those forms terminate in hectic fever and death, but, on the other hand, leave the affected joints with an impaired mobility, anchylosed and deformed. Scrofulous inflammation of the vertebrae is the most threatening, for it either leads to curvature of the spine or develops hectic fever by the origination of congestive abscesses. Another symptom of scrofula is the ophthalmia which we have already described in a previous chapter. - It is either confined to the margins of the lids, or involves the whole conjunctiva. The ears of scrofulous children have a peculiar inclination to discharge, with eczema breaking out at the same time round the ears; very Scrofulosis. 655 seldom only, and then only if the affection is very deep-seated, the inflammatory process communicates itself to the ossicula and the mastoid bone. The mucous membranes do not show any particular morbid symptoms, but an extraordinary susceptibility to catarrhs, especially the nasal and buccal mucous membrane. In the nose the copious secretion is associated with soreness and ulceration, and a swelling of the whole nose, in which the upper lip generally participates in a manner that is exclusively peculiar to scrofulosis. In the mouth we notice frequent attacks of angina, with disposition to hypertrophy of the tonsils. It is only the highest grades of scrofulosis that are accompanied by peculiar affections of internal organs, such as fatty liver, acute hydrocephalus, etc. These various localizations manifest themselves in the most diversified combinations and successions, sometimes one at a time, and at other times all together. Their course is always slow and dragging, subject to many oscillations between remissions and exacerbations, but generally terminates in recovery, as long as the vital organs remain unaffected by the disease, always, however, leaving some remnants of the disease behind. Even suppuration of the vertebra sometimes terminates in recovery with surprising rapidity. The general state of the organism is of importance both to the course of the disease as well as to the treatment. Pathologists have adopted two kinds of scrofulous constitution, the erethic and torpid; they are indeed sharply separated from each other in practice. The erethic scrofulous constitution is distinguished by a lively circulation and a marked tendency to febrile affections. Such children have a fine, transparent skin, flushed cheeks with great tendency to sudden changes of color in the face, an extreme nervous irritability, increased mental activity, melting, languishing eyes, delicate bones, and slightly-developed muscles. The torpid scrofulous constitution, on the contrary, is characterized by a diminished activity of the circulation and reproduction, and great tendency to adiposis. The whole body of such a person looks bloated, especially the face, the features are coarse, the nose and upper lip are swollen, the bones, especially the skull, are large, and the limbs coarselyshaped; other characteristics are: a distended abdomen, flabby muscles, mental and bodily indolence, a dingy-looking, yellowishgray skin, disposition to canine voracity. From such general symptoms the speedy outbreak of local scrofulous affections can be 656 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. predicted with tolerable certainty; frequently, however, especially if a proper mode of living is pursued from an early period, the scrofulous habit disappears entirely, sometimes at the age of seven years, without having occasioned any local diseases. Treatment. The treatment of the various local scrofulous diseases has already been discussed in former chapters, and all that remains for us to do here, is to consider the disease in its totality. According to what we have said when treating of the etiology of the disease, it is evident that the causal indication in scrofulosis occupies the first rank. Before any medical treatment can be thought of, the mode of living has to be thoroughly changed. This change refers mostly to diet, habitation, exercise in the open air, attention to the skin, etc.; in cases of erethic scrofulosis it has likewise to take into special account the mental, development of the patient, which should never be forced, and premature, and should always go hand in hand with an abundance of bodily exercise. In this respect it is difficult to lay down specific rules which might be adapted to one child, and decidedly contrary to the constitution of another. The physician should carefully investigate, and afterwards remedy the defects of education, but definite laws cannot be laid down to reach such a result. The causal indication likewise includes measures having reference to a true and useful prophylactic treatment; hence, a physician should make it his duty to watch over the education of the children confided to his care, in every possible direction and aspect of the case. How much trouble will a physician save himself by such a course, and how much care and anxiety to others! Except in local affections, the medicine that may be regarded as the chief remedy for scrofulosis, is Calcarea carbonica. It never corresponds with a torpid, but so much more decidedly with an erethic habit. This remedy is not sufficient to alter the habit, a correct mode of living is indispensable to accomplish this purpose; but Calcarea is a most important adjuvans in the treatment. Inasmuch as the effect of this or any of the following remedies is always slow and never very striking, the medicines prescribed for scrofula will have to be given at long intervals. Side by side with this remedy, and equally efficacious for the scrofula of torpid constitutions, we mention Arsenicum which we recommend upon our own responsibility rather than the recommendations of other physicians, since very little is said about this medicine in homceopathic literature as a remedy for scrofula. We have to observe, however, that Arsen. Scrofulosis. 657 is only indicated by the general symptoms, and only by a few, indeed very few local lesions. _Ferrum holds the mean between these' two remedies; it is adapted to the erethic as well as the torpid constitution, provided the process of sanguification is decidedly deficient or imperfect, as may be seen from a disposition to congestions, hemorrhages, palpitation of the heart, ataxia of the stomach, and a deficient secretion of bile. Ferrum is chiefly suitable, if scrofula is most strikingly developed during the age of pubescence, it is much less adapted to the scrofula of childhood. Stdphur must not be forgotten in this place; it is, however, better adapted to the localized forms of the disease than to its general and vaguely expressed symptoms. Sulphur is a distinguished remedy, if the digestion is very irregular; if a disposition to constipation is very marked; if the abdomen is very much distended, the mesenteric glands can be distinctly felt, the cervical and posterior cervical glands are swollen, but painless, the nose and upper lip are swollen, but not inflamed. Sulphur is likewise indicated in chronic bronchial catarrh depending upon infiltration of the bronchial glands. These four remedies are the only ones that we can designate as generally anti-scrofulous. Other remedies require special indications. We will mention the leading remedies of this class, referring for particulars to our former chapters on conjunctivitis, lymphadenitis, ostitis, chronic intestinal catarrh, etc.; they a"e: China, lodium, Silicea, Aurum muriaticum, Baryta carboniaa, Hepar sulphuris, Magnesia carbon., Conium maculatum, iMercurius, Graphites, Spongia. We cannot help mentioning two preparations that are used a great deal by lay-persons, even without a physician's order. One is Oleum jecoris aselli, cod-liver oil. We shall revert to this medicine in the next chapter; a few words on the subject will suffice in this place. Cod-liver oil is decidedly useful if the digestion is impaired, if the stomach seems disinclined to retain food, and if fiequent diarrhceic discharges set in; if, moreover, nutrition is impaired, the body is emaciated and destitute of animal juices. If the appetite is good, the digestion regular, and there is a marked disposition to adiposis, cod-liver oil is decidedly hurtful; in such a case it is apt to derange digestion and impair the appetite. However, in view of the high reputation which cod-liver oil enjoys, neither physician nor patient cares about the harm it may possibly do, imagining as they do that good results must be got out of the oil by sheer force. A proceeding of this kind is, of course, prejudicial. The second remedy are 42 658 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infectiou. saltwater-baths, with or without an addition of malt. That they have a good effect, is evidenced by the numerous baths prepared of the mother-lye of salt-works. When used at home the favorable effect of the baths may be charged to the benefit which the skin derives from the operation. In the case of children attention to the skin is too often and disgracefully neglected. 7. Tuberculosis. Tuberculosis is not only the most frequent of all constitutional diseases, but likewise the most common of all diseases. According to Wunderlich it is characterized by deposits into all sorts of tissues and organs, of a pale, yellowish or gray color, of a soft cheesy, and sometimes a harder or softer consistence, of the size of small granulations to the size of larger bodies, in which the organic elements (molecular granules and a few imperfect nucleated bodies) persevere in a low state, without any organic connection with each other or with the adjoining tissue; do not show themselves capable of any further development, and either dry up, or else, become decomposed and melt. The formation of these deposits or tubercles depends in most cases upon peculiar conditions of the organism with which we are almost unacquainted; it is very questionable whether tubercles can ever be formed without some constitutional anomaly, hence, whether they constitute a purely local a.ffection from which the constitutional disease emanates at a later period. This seems to us just as improbable as the formation of carcinoma without a previous constitutional anomaly. We will designate the radical disease in tuberculosis as the tubercular diathesis. In almost every case tuberculosis can be demonstrated as developing itself under the following circumstances: It may result from a deficient supply or the bad quality of the food in the same manner as has been indicated for scrofulosis; in this manner tuberculosis often succeeds the latter so that when,.at the age of pubescence, scrofulosis disappears, tubercles take the place of the former. It may likewise be occasioned by.a deficient activity of the respiratory organs, as may occur during certain trades, which will be named by and by, or as may result from tight dressing, or from a sedentary mode of life. Whether a pre-existing germ is excited or created by such causes, is uncertain; the former, however, seems to us more probable. It may likewise be inherited like scrofula. Tuberculosis. 659 The tubercular diat;hesis does not manifest itself by any positive symptoms, and the so-called tubercular habit consists of nothing else than the symptoms of general debility and imperfect assimilation. There die as many men without as with this habit. The only point that enables us to be tolerably sure of the existence of a tubercular diathesis, is the fact that the person was affected with scrofula when young. Tuberculosis is found equally distributed in both sexes, perhaps a little more among women. It breaks out chiefly between the ages of eighteen and thirty years. The deposition of tubercles, and hence the tubercular disease generally; perhaps likewise, in many cases, the origin of the peculiar tubercular diathesis, are founded in the following circumstances. A scanty supply and a bad quality of food, damp dwellings, deficient exercise in the open air. On this account the disease is chiefly met with in the lower walks of life, and likewise occurs more frequently in cities than in the country; among individuals whose business confines them to a room; among prisoners. Too rapid growth, more particularly if the growing persons are fed on improper nourishment, for this will occasion a condition of great debility. Continued depressing emotions, especially sorrow and grief, homesickness. The connection of cause and effect between these influences and the disease is not clearly made out; but that this connection exists, can be shown by a number of cases; tubercles are often very properly designated as tears shed inwardly. Circumstances incident to pregnancy, confinement, lactation, the more certainly, the more rapidly one confinement follows another, and the longer the infant is nursed at the breast. Women with tuberculous dispositions generally pass very well through their first confinement; they keep up the nursing business for a year, without losing much strength, but after that, they complain of feeling exhausted. During the next pregnancy they apparently feel better in every respect, but immediately after confinement the symptoms of an approaching tuberculosis multiply; while nursing her child, the mother experiences all sorts of inconveniences; the next pregnancy again brings an improvement, until phthisis suddenly breaks out in all its might, usually during the first weeks after a new confinement, and very often runs a very rapid course to a fatal termination. Tulbrculosis. 661 it assumes a yellowish tint and acquires a cheesy consistence, and, at this point, may dry up to a calcareous little body which is like a rough little stone to the feel; or else, it may soften and be transformed into pus. These suppurating granulations may give rise in the lungs to vomicse or cavities filled with pus, and of a greater or less size in proportion as the number of granulations is greater or smaller. The vomicae may be present in large numbers.; they may either remain isolated, or else unite, forming caverns of the size of a goose-egg. The vomica enlarges either by the dissolution of the tubercles that are still embedded in its walls, or else, the deposition of tubercles in the walls of the vomica goes forward uninterruptedly, the latter process being the one that is most common. The walls of the vomica are excavated, permeated by obliterated vessels and bronchia, or, if the bronchia are destroyed, their irregularly corroded orifices open into the cavity. The blood-vessels resist the destructive process longer than the bronchia, and most commonly shrivel up; but if they are destroyed while blood is still circulating through them, they may give rise to extensive hemorrhages. The vomica may be entirely isolated, or else, it may be in communication with one or more bronchial ramifications. In its growth it may penetrate the pleura and even the chest-wall. The parts surrounding the vomica show bronchial catarrh, interstitial pneumonia in some localities, wikh subsequent atrophy, bronchiectasia, emphysema. The vomica may empty itself and cicatrize, or else, it may become closed and, without being entirely empty, its contents may become transformed into calcareous matter. The pleura, even if not touched by the tuberculous process, is generally thickened and the two pleuras adhere. Inasmuch as in miliary tuberculosis the deposition of tubercles takes place in successive groups or clusters, tubercles are not generally found uniformly altered, but are met with in all the stages of their course. Infiltrated tuberculosis is distinguished from the former class by the circumstance that a pneumonic exudation is transformed into tubercular matter, while the organism had either been in a state of apparently sound health, or during the presence of tubercles in other parts. The infiltrated substance passes through the same changes that have been described above, but it usually dissolves much more rapidly, causes much more radical destructions and its transformation into calcareous matter takes place more tardily. In acute miliary tuberculosis we meet with an extensive deposition of granulations not merely in the whole pulmonary paren 602 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. chyna, but likewise in the pleura, the pia mater, the peritoneum, and the abdominal viscera. The homogeneous uniformity of the granulations shows their simultaneous origin; in the chronic form this does not occur very extensively. Tuberculosis of the intestines, which is scarcely ever absent during the course of pulmonary tuberculosis, reveals at the commencement of the disease granulations in Peyer's and Brunner's glands. These tubercles change to separate round ulcers which unite as they increase in size, and spread in the ileum in a circular form. The most common alterations co-existing with pulmonary tuberculosis, are: Tubercular ulcers in the larynx, resembling those in the intestines; fatty degeneration of the liver, dilatation of the right heart, or atrophy of the heart, slight degree of Bright's disease of the kidneys. Symptoms and Course. In describing this disease we shall adhere to the most common form, namely: chronic miliary tuberculosis. It is very difficult to say, with any thing like certainty, when the disease really commences. The deposition of the first tubercles, especially if not very numerous, is accompanied by symptoms that seem too insignificant to a patient to complain of to a physician. When a physician is consulted, the disease is already sufficiently advanced to be discoverable by the usual means of exploration; at its first beginning no such result can be obtained. That the disease is beginning to set in, can almost positively be interred if individuals who were afflicted with scrofula when young, or lpersons with a tubercular habit, show the following symptoms: Disposition to pulmonary hyperaemia, with palpitation of the heart; disposition to bronchial, tracheal and laryngeal catarrh, the attacks being very obstinate, with bloody sputa, long-lasting hoarseness; general nervous irritability, irritability and increased frequency of the pulse. LRepeated attacks of catarrh ought especially to excite suspicion, for they evidently indicate the period when the first tubercles are deposited. Very often, however, the deposition may be going on for a long time without any apparent symptoms, in which case the supervention of a severe bronchial catarrh which gets worse all the time, shows the sudden outbreak of phthisis or, in other words, of the purulent dissolution of the tubercles. In young women the disease not unfrequently sets in with all the symptoms of chlorosis, which may lead to very inj urious mistakes. The older the patients, the less distinctly is the beginning of the disease recognizable. Very Tuberculosis. 663 seldomi however, the disease breaks out suddenly in such a manner that an apparent fulness of health is suddenly followed by a state of illness with all the characteristics of tuberculosis; a more or less sickly condition almost always precedes the outbreak. It would be of great importance if the first deposition of tubercles could be clearly made out by a physical exploration of the lungs. We only know of two tolerably reliable indications, early attention to which may be of the most decided importance to the treatment. One is a prolonged, although not very much louder expiratory murmur, which is particularly important if it is heard during a slow expiration with closed mouth. The second is the so-called "' respiration saccadee," jerking, wavy, cogged-wheeled respiration, which is most distinctly perceived during an inspiration. In the place of an uniform blowing murmur we hear an inspiratory murmur at intervals, but not otherwise altered in any respect. Another reliable sign is if, during, a slight catarrhal attack, the apices of the lungs exhibit symptoms of catarrhal irritation. Another sign is, when the expectoration looks like soaked sago, or is transparent, having.the shape of fine, firm threads; this is a symptom of chronic catarrh of the finest bronchial ramifications. The existence of a tolerably severe, protracted, acute bronchial catarrh, or a more or less violent hoemoptysis generally, is an evident and very seldom doubtful sign that the phthisis has set in. At the same time the patients complain of unusual debility, stitches, or a peculiar drawing pain in the upper lobes of the lungs, peculiar, rheumatoid pains in the arm of the affected side; the respiration is accelerated, the pulse very frequent; this acceleration is very much increased by the least motion; the existing fever very soon shows typical exacerbations setting in in the morning between nine and eleven, or in the evening between five and seven o'clock, or at both these periods, and sometimes attended with such complete remissions that the fever has very much the appearance of an intermittent disease. From this beginning, the symptoms can easily be observed further in their character of phenomena of tubercular phthisis, with various modifications during their course to which we will first call attention before describing the various local symptoms. The course of the disease, especially among individuals of a more advanced age, is marked by stages. After the first evidently tubercilar catarrh has slowly disappeared, a feeling, of almost perfect health is again enjoyed by the patient, who is at most reminded of 664: Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. the slumbering danger by a dry cough or a disposition to shortness of breath after an unusual bodily exertion or after talking. In the course of months, and sometimes not till years have elapsed, another catarrh breaks out which likewise ends without any untoward symptoms, and these changes continue until finally an acute attack of marked intensity terminates in fully developed phthisis. At the same time, nutrition may remain perfect foryears, the patient may retain his flesh and healthy complexion, or else he may lose his flesh gradually, and acquire a more or less anaemic appearance. A chronic, uniform course of phthisis occurs much less frequently after an acute catarrh. On the contrary it sets in with very trifling symptoms, a slight, hacking cough, loss of flesh, palpitation of the heart, shortness of breath, etc., and the patient already presents a complete picture of phthisis when all at once an acute catarrh sets in which is suddenly transformed into the actual disease. Or else no acute catarrh ever takes place, the patients continue to fail almost imperceptibly, hectic fever supervenes, a tuberculous diarrhcea and edlema make their appearance, and death takes place amid symptoms of complete exhaustion. A subacute course of the disease, phthisis florida, succeeds the initial catarrh sometimes immediately, especially in the case of young individuals and after confinement, likewise after severe acute diseases; very frequently it forms the conclusion of the more chronic forms of phthisis. This subacute course is particularly distinguished by intense hectic fever, tuberculous diarrhcea, disposition to pulmo-; nary hemorrhage. The most vigorous patients fail within eight or ten weeks, nor is it at all possible to arrest the course of the disease in the least degree. In reviewing the most important local alterations caused by tubercular phthisis, we have in the first place to attend to the physical symptoms. Except perhaps in very acute cases, the form of the thorax is plainly and characteristically altered. The thorax is flattened, pressed in and descends lower down, so that the shoulders form a very obtuse angle with the longitudinal axis of the thorax, and the neck appears to be elongated. The intercostal spaces are sunken, ~more particularly the jugular fossa, the clavicles are very prominent; the sternum is much depressed, its upper portion often stands out, so as to form an angle with the rest; the shoulder-blades stand out very prominently. These changes are most striking, if they only exist in one side of the thorax; it is true that in such a case 666 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. tinctly heard. In very rare cases there is no cough during the whole course of the disease, although the infiltration may be extensive and numerous caverns may exist. Previous to the deposition of numerous tubercles and their purulent dissolution, the expectoration is without any characteristic features. Nevertheless a continual expeqtoration of clear mucus is always a suspicious symptom; but such an expectoration acquires significance when it is traversed by fine streaks of a yellowish color, and when, moreover, it frequently appears streaked with blood. Still more characteristic is the presence of sago-like firm little lumps and fibres. Much less frequently hard, yellow or greenish, cheesy little lumps are coughed up at an early period; they generally taste very badly, and frequently have an offensive odor. Sometimes the expectoration contains small lumps of calcareous matter, chalk-like tubercles, seldom, however, previous to suppuration' having fully set in; usually after caverns have formed. The cavernous expectoration has a yellow-&ray color, less frequently a greenish color, is firmly coherent; in the water it forms irregular, shaggy balls which slowly sink to the bottom; it is surrounded by a quantity of clear bronchial mucus with which, however, it does not mix. The microscope discovers elastic fibres in this expectoration, a sure sign of existing phthisis. The larynx and trachea seldom remain intact during the whole course of the disease; they show more or less marked symptoms of catarrhal irritation. At an early period of the disease, the voice becomes husky or loses its resonnance and firmness of tone; at a later period, these organs become painful, according as the abovedescribed ulcers are located, and not unfrequently complete aphonia sets in. The phenomena of the circulatory organs are not by any means' constant, but at the beginning of tuberculosis we generally find dilatation of the right heart, disposition to a tumultuous action of the heart, blowing murmurs under the clavicle, anenmic murmurs in the jugulars, continuation of the sounds of the heart as far as both apices of the lungs. Afterwards the heart becomes more and more atrophied. The tendency to sudden changes of color is a striking phenomenon only at the commencement of the disease. Very soon the pulse becomes frequent and feebler than usual, it is accelerated by every movement. In the stage of phthisis it almost always exceeds 100, sometimes rising to 140. It is only exceptionally that the pulse of phthisicky patients is retarded, and then only 668 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. Infiltrated tubercles are seldom met with, except in the lungs. This form of tuberculosis develops itself from pneumonia, seldom from pleuritis with firm exudation. The inflammatory exudation is not reabsorbed, but transformed into tubercular matter which shows an extraordinary tendency to suppurate; the course of the disease is very seldom protracted. The transformation into tubercular matter generally takes place while tubercular deposits already exist; but it may likewise take place in the case of individuals who had never shown any signs of constitutional tuberculosis. A pneumonia setting in with such peculiar symptoms, may run a perfectly normal course at first; or else, symptoms of adynamia may show themselves at the outset, more particularly a very rapid pulse which does not show any change on the critical days, and an exceedingly exhausting diarrhcea. Not unfrequently the infiltration is observed to take place at intervals. Most usually tubercular pneumonia is met with in the upper lobes of the lungs, It tends to rapid destruction of the parenchyma, to pneumothorax, and to fistulous openings through the chest-walls. In other respects it develops the same phenomena as chronic miliary tuberculosis while rapidly running its course. Acute miliary tuberculosis attacks simultaneously every noble organ in the body. It rarely ever breaks out in individuals who so far had enjoyed a seemingly perfect health, more commonly after acute, debilitating diseases, but most generally it sets in as a termination of chronic miliary tuberculosis. The symptoms of this form are entirely like those of a violent attack of typhus, with which the disease might be confounded so much more easily as it likewise runs its course by stages of seven days. It generally sets in with violent vomiting; after the cessation of the vomiting there is loss of consciousness, and the other symptoms characterizing hydrocephalus to which we therefore refer. Teatment anUd Pro ty osis. Although the prognosis in tubercular diseases is absolutely unfavorable; although the prospect of a tubercular disease that had been diagnosed with positive certainty, is very slim, yet the labor of a physician in this direction is not without reward, since it may be in his power to postpone the fatal termination. Professional aid becomes still more important, if it is tendered at a period when the tubercular disease was still hidden, or had emerged into light with sufficient distinctness to be recognized in its true character with a tolerably reliable degree of certainty. Although success cannot be positively promised at this Tuberculosis. 669 period, yet it is our opinion that the formation of tubercles can either be prevented, or that their further development can be stayed. After all, the case may perhaps be the same as that of other acute or chronic diseases which only become incurable after they are too far advanced. Unfortunately the aid of the physician is not sought until the suppurative process has already set in, in other words, in the stage of phthisis, when help is exceedingly doubtful. It cannot be denied that tuberculosis is curable at any period during its course, although such a result happens very seldom after hectic fever has set in, and more particularly after the tuberculous process has invaded the intestines and the larynx. For this reason no case should at once be abandoned as beyond the reach of successful treatment. A complete cure, that is, a complete reabsorption of the tubercular deposits, indeed cannot be expected; remnants of the disease will remain, and a new outbreak may take place at any time. What we have said shows that the treatment must aim at three objects: preventive treatment, the treatment of tuberculosis as a constitutional disease, and the treatment of the acute intercurrent exacerbations and their most prominent symptoms. The preventive treatment has to embrace a vast range, if it is to be of any use. Inasmuch as mistakes in the first education and care of children may promote, if not originate, scrofulosis, and inasmuch as scrofulosis may easily terminate in tuberculosis, the means of prevention must necessarily go back to the first years of childhood. A correct mode of living from the earliest infancy is an excellent preventive against the dreaded disease; every physician should see to it that physical laws are properly obeyed in the rearing of children, for this will at the same time prevent a legion of other diseases. A physician's duties in this respect are so much more sacred as so many false customs and wrong maxims have been grafted upon the education of the young by the present age. Unfortunately it cannot be denied that physicians pay too little attention to the first development of childhood, and that they confine their solicitude much more to the treatment of existing diseases than to their prevention. Of course, preventing diseases does not pay. We have not space to exhaust the whole subject of prevention; hence we have to limit ourselves to a statement of tle most essential points. The diet should be regulated in accordance with the principles which are more and more universally recognized as correct. Above all, during the first two years the nourishment should principally 670 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. be milk; afterwards other easily digested articles of diet may be added in suitable quantity and order. Potatoes should not by any means constitute the chief nourishment of children, nor should they be fed, as has been the custom, with milk and farinaceous preparations. But not only the quality, also the quantity of the food, which should moreover be supplied at regular intervals, should have our careful attention. It may seem a small matter for a physician to bother about such trifles, when the children are robust and healthy, but it is not a small matter; on the contrary, it is a subject of great importance. Beside proper diet, a salubrious home, fresh air, exercise and cleanliness must likewise be provided for the little ones. The mental culture is likewise of the utmost importance. Daily experience shows that precocious development and continued mental exertions render children irritable, make them look pale, deprive them of their appetite, and predispose them for all sorts of bodily sufferings. These symptoms show themselves, already in the seventh year, but still more at the age of pubescence, particularly among females. How many individuals fall victims at an early age to an unreasonable and precocious mania for acquiring knowledge! The only means of counteracting the absurd claims of our schools is gymnastics in all its forms, especially if it lays particular stress upon the cultivation of the respiratory muscles, but not by imitating the modern plan of practising neck-breaking tours-de-force, and straining the muscles to the outermost limits. A proper system of hardening children should likewise be pursued with a view of rendering them capable at an early period of bearing abrupt changes of temperature without being made sick by the exposure. If it is proper that all these rules should be enforced in the education of every child, it is still more important that they should be strictly carried out in the case of scrofulois children or children born of tuberculous parents. At the age of pubescence all the signs denoting the accession of tuberculosis, become more apparent, and the tuberculous habit frequently shows its peculiar characteristics at an early age. To the above-stated rules a few other important rules may be added. In the first place the young people must be taught to breathe properly, not merely with one portion of the respiratory muscles. Nothing is more conducive to this end than early singing lessons taking care to pay particular attention to a correct practice of the middle notes. It is less important that young people should be invited to perform Tuberculosis. 671 frequent and deep inspirations, and slow expirations; such instructions are too easily forgotten. It is during this period of development that gymnastics perform real miracles; chamber-gymnastics in particular becomes an invaluable aid in the harmonious development of the muscles. However, in practising with the arms, heavy weights must not be used. The dress, likewise, deserves our attention; it should be of such a style as not to interfere with the freedom of respiration. If a catarrh occurs, it must not be neglected; chlorosis should likewise be carefully attended to. In selecting a trade or a profession, male individuals should avoid such as are known to favor the development of tuberculosis. Women should be cautioned against reckless dancing and the continued application to work that requires constant sitting. A rigid prophylactic treatment is likewise necessary if symptoms of tubercles have broken out, and if the tendency to catarrh has at the same time become very prominent. Whatever involves an increased activity on the part'of the lungs, such as running, dancing, continued talking in large crowds, hurried going upstairs or ascending an eminence, should be strictly avoided at this stage; so should anything that interferes with the action of the lungs, such as continued stooping in a sitting posture, tight clothing, etc. The patient now ought to practice deep inspirations; a substantial, but simple diet, without any artificial stimulants, is likewise indispensable. It being of essential importance that the patient should avoid all opportunities of being attacked with acute catarrh, he will have to avoid keen and cold winds, and provide himself with a respirator, the usefulness of which has not yet been sufficiently recognized. The damper the atmosphere of the place where the patient resides, the more important it is that he should wear flannel undershirts; this rule applies more particularly to the female sex. A sojourn in crowded rooms that are lighted with gas, and in damp and musty churches is exceedingly prejudicial. Proper ventilation and' a moderate heating of the rooms should not escape our attention. At this period the food should be more simple and of a more digestible quality than ever; animal food deserves a decided preference. Milk now commends itself as an excellent nourishment, provided the patients are able to bear it, which' is unfortunately not always the case. We should be'led too far ifwe would enumerate all the particulars concerning diet and hygiene; indeed, strict-;rules cannot always be enforced, the physician has to accommodate himself to the circumstances of the patient, and has to blink at a good many Tuberculosis. 673 however, we prefer Belladonna in this form of bronchial catarrh as well as in simple bronchitis; for particular indications we refer to our remarks in the chapter on acute bronchitis. Belladonna is not only adapted to cases with high fever, but likewise to cases without much fever; no remedy is as effectual in moderating the constantly tormenting cough as Belladonna. Bryonia is an excellent remedy, if the patient complains of much lassitude without a great deal of high fever; the drawing-stitching pains in one apex of the lungs and the pains in the arm corresponding with this part of the lungs, or tearing through all the limbs, are likewise complained of; Bryonia is seldom of any use in the subsequent course of the catarrh..Digitalis has rendered us excellent service for some years past in similar cases as those for which Bryonia is indicated; only if Digitalis is to help, the cough must not be dry. It has seemed to us that this remedy arrests, or else reduces the cough very greatly more speedily than any other remedy. Spongia is an excellent remedy if the catarrh commences with obstinate hoarseness, the cough remains for a long time dry and barking, spasmodic, attended with congestive sensations in the chest and asthmatic complaints. Bromine is symptomatically very similar to tubercular catarrh; however, the clinical results that have so far been obtained with Bromine, are not yet very numerous. Pulsatilla is indicated if nothing remains of the catarrh but a racking cough with scanty expectoration of mucus. For other remedies we refer to diseases of the lungs. If, instead of breaking out with acute catarrh, tuberculosis breaks out with bloody cough, we have to depend particularly upon three remedies, namely Aconite, Arnica and Digitalis, the symptomatic indications of which can easily be studied in the Materia Medica. If the treatment of these initial affections has left no doubt in our minds that we have to deal with tuberculosis, it then behooves us to treat the disease as a whole, without, however, neglecting the symptomatic appearances. It would be a great mistake, however, if after the catarrh is fortunately subdued, we were now to pursue an exclusively symptomatic treatment. The patient may seem ever so well, yet he must still be treated as if he were sick. His whole mode of living must be strictly conformable to the rules which we have laid down; a consistent and persevering enforcement of these rules is the surest guarantee for the prevention of new and the calcification of existing tubercular deposits. The only medicines that can now come to the support 43 Tuberculosis. 675 tuberculosis, and how often such patients were formerly sent to Carlsbad to return home again in a dying condition. Arsenicum album has only been employed by us for tuberculosis in the last few years; the cases where Arsenicum is indicated, are too few to enable us to express a positive opinion on its therapeutic value at this time. So far we have found the remedy of use in cases of tuberculosis with almost typical, long-lasting paroxysms of cough attended with retching, and vomiting of small quantities of tenacious mucus, succeeded in a few days by an easy expectoration of the above-mentioned sago-like little lumps. The paroxysms of cough are ushered in with a sensation like violent asthma and are accompanied by severe dyspncea. The general health is not as much impaired as the violent cough might lead one to expect. This so-called first stage of tuberculosis, that is, the period when the tubercular deposits have not yet commenced to suppurate, is the time when a cure of the disease can be hoped for with some certainty. Unfortunately this stage is too often overlooked by the patient as well as by the physician. To the above-mentioned rendies which have to be exhibited for months, a number of other remedies have to be added that we require to use for the removal of all the trifling inconveniences inherent in the disease. This is of the highest importance lest the nutrition of the organism should be impaired beyond what it necessarily will be by the tubercular process. We cannot go into details in this particular. Cod-liver oil, a change of climate, and other methods of cure will be treated of by and by. After the supervention of the suppurative stage, the medicinal treatment has to be considerably modified. We now have to meet two indications, the necessity of preventing the further deposition of tubercular matter, and, secondly, of circumscribing its purulent dissolution. We need hardly state that the prognosis now is much more unfavorable than-previously. To the remedies that have just been named, we now have to add a number of others acting directly upon the local process. The use of.Ferrum, at this stage, requires still more caution than before. Other remedies are: lodium, Phosphorus, Kali carbon., Hepar sulphuris calc., Silicea, Digitalis, Plumbum, Cuprum and Natrum muriaticum. All these remedies seem to have a marvelous effect in some cases, whereas in apparently similar cases they leave us in the lurch, so that it is exceedingly difficult to establish positive indications from clinical results. We omit them so much more readily as the slow course of Tuberculosis. 677 its symptoms are so striking that we limit ourselves to referring the reader to the Materia Medica. Digitalis purpurea is, like Cuprum, particularly adapted to galloping phthisis with intense hectic fever from the commencement; the patient complains of palpitation of the heart, coughs up blood frequently, has no appetite; the bowels are constipated and the pulse is exceedingly quick. Digitalis is the most reliable remedy to moderate the hectic fever, but the dose must not be too small. Nor should the dose be excessively large, because large doses are apt to excite the patient. Natrum muriaticum is only useful in chronic cases, attended with severe disturbances of the cardiac functions. Millefolium is an important domestic remedy f6r tuberculosis. Our provings point to it as such, but clinical results are still wanting. Sulphur, which is too often mentioned as a remedy for phthisis, is not, in our opinion, adapted to a single case of this disease; we have used it frequently, but have never seen it do any good; where it is said to have produced a good effect, chronic pneumonia has probably been confounded with tuberculosis. Concerning the best method of applying all these drugs in practice, views differ considerably. The more striking these differences are, the more earnestly we recommend the golden nrean not only in respect to the size, but likewise in respect to the repetition of the dose. The attenuations from the third to the sixth are generally sufficient; lower attenuations are scarcely ever necessary, higher ones are unreliable. We do not like to give more than one dose a day of the appropriate remedy, sometimes only one dose every two or three days. If a remedy has once been selected, it should not be given up too soon; if the improvement under it seems to stand still, a lower attenuation had better be used before the medicine is entirely abandoned. If this should have been found necessary, and the remedy that is chosen after the former, likewise proves ineffectual, it may be well to return once more to the last remedy that seemed to improve the case. A change of this kind sometimes has a very good effect. We would likewise warn against a medicine being given for every little symptom and a strictly symptomatic treatment being indulged in. This is decidedly injurious and may defeat all chances of a successful termination. This now leads us to mention a few remedies that are not contained in our Materia Medica Pura. As regards Cod-liver oil, even 680 Constitutional Diseases without Definite Infection. the disease, after suppuration had really set in, we have obtained speedy and real relief by means of small doses of Morphine, onetwentieth or one-fiftieth of a grain at a dose, nor have we ever hesitated to avail ourselves of the narcotic properties of this agent. Cannabis is exceedingly unreliable. For a cough with a copious, fetid expectoration, Carbo veget. often proves a most excellent remedy. Hectic fever never requires special remedies; it is a necessary attribute of florid phthisis. - Iemoptysis has to be stopped as soon as possible, not only on account of the anxiety of the patient, but of the loss of blood. Aconitum, Arnica, -Digitalis, Ipecacuanha, Belladonna sometimes arrest it very speedily; if they do not, and the loss of blood is great and threatening, a small teaspoonful of table-salt may be administered; this will sometimes effect an immediate stoppage of the hemorrhage. The laryngeal difficulties are purely symptomatic; they do not yield to any medicine. For violent headache which deprives the patient of sleep, Digitalis and Arsenicum are excellent remedies. The gastric derangements are manifold; they are most distressing, if every time the patient partakes of a little nourishment, he experiences pain in the stomach, nausea, retching, vomiting. For such symptoms Ferrum generally acts as a specific remedy. Arsenicum, Iodine, Kreosotum likewise deserve our attention. Diarrhaea, when not occasioned by intestinal tubercles, is treated according to the usual-rules. If it assumes a tuberculous character, Phosphorus and Phosphori acidurn, Ipecac., Calcarea acetica and phosphorica are the proper remedies. Pulmonary hyperemia generally yields to Aconite; Belladonna and Kati nitricum, likewise Arnica may prove useful for such a condition. Infiltrated tuberculosis is treated according to the same principles as miliary tuberculosis; lodium is a very important remedy in this disease, likewise Lycopodium and Sulphur, together with Phosphorus. Acute miliary tuberculosis generally defies every attempt to cure it, so much more as it is generally very difficult to diagnose it with certainty. Verat. alb., Digitalis, Cuprum, Tartarus stibiatus, Phosphorus may be tried, but the experiment will generally prove fruitless. Constitutional Plethora. 681 In conclusion we will mention a few remedies that are variously recommended for tuberculosis; at times for the disease in its totality, and sometimes for single symptoms; these remedies are: Kreosotum, Kali hydriodicum, Stannum, Ledum, Manganum, Baryta, Alumina, Causticum. This number might still be increased, if we could imagine every possible change in advance, and every occurrence that might complicate or interrupt the course of tuberculosis. In view of so many changeable and diversified groups of symptoms, all that we could well be expected to do was, to explain the general principles upon which the treatment of the disease should be conducted. As regards diet, we need not dwell upon it any further; it results from what we have said when speaking of the prophylactic treatment and the etiological causes of the disease. The following chapters, referring more particularly to the blood and the sphere of nutrition, are taken from the last number of Kafka's second volume. 8. Constitutional Plethora, Polyaemia, Hypervemia. [The volume of blood is increased; this increase of the volume of the blood involves a proportionate increase of the number of blood-corpuscles and of the albumen. It is true that miany modern pathologists deny the existence of plethora; they maintain that nobody has too much blood and that plethora most commonly depends upon an augmentation of the red corpuscles or upon an increased quantity of the fibrin in the blood. But daily experience teaches us that a constitutional hyperamia does occur, although not very frequently, and that it represents a derangement which occasions morbid symptoms. A constitutional plethora most frequently occurs in the case of young people who, having a good and active digestion, consume a quantity of meat and other protein material, without taking much exercise. It is likewise observed in the case of older persons Who, while appropriating a large supply of food, lead a sedentary or indolent mode of life. It is not unfrequently the consequence of a suppressed flow of blood, such as the menstrual or hemorrhoidal flow, etc., and is frequently coincident with a peculiar plethoric constitution, the influence of climate or the seasons. 682 Polyaemia, Hyperamia. A general hyperemiia may be occasioned by circumstances which, by momentarily increasing the action of the heart, may lead to congestions in various parts of the body, whereby a rupture of the. vessels and consequent hemorrhage may be occasioned. The most common causes of general hypersemia are: excessive bodily and mental exertions, such as running, dancing, going upstairs, ascending eminences, etc., too long continued thinking, committing to memory, studying at night, sedentary habits; violent excitement of the feelings, as may be caused.by anger, love, jealousy, etc.; the immoderate indulgence of spirits, heating beverages, stimulating food, exciting and stimulating medicines. Colds, cold winds, stormy weather, a sudden cooling off, sudden changes of temperature, an unexpected supervention of hot weather as in spring; or the supervention of some acute disease, may give rise to general hyperemia. The blood of plethoric individuals is dark and viscid, and is generally distributed irregularly: it is most commonly the lungs, liver, spleen and muscles that are the seat of hypercemia; after death copious coagula are met with in the heart and vessels, most generally sanguineous deposits and exudations. The muscles have a darker color and tear more readily; the heart is dilated, and when sawed through, the bones look dark-red. The general characteristic signs of plethora consist in the fulness and volume of the radial pulse, turgescence of the veins, a vivid and mostly florid color of the skin, increased turgor of this organ, a more elevated temperature of the body and a constant disposition to perspire. In the majority of cases, the size and weight of the body, and the deposition of fat are considerably increased. This condition may exist without a disturbance of the general health being perceptible. However, the presence of the above-mentioned exciting causes may lead to abnormal phenomena of the highest importance. The rapid increase of the action of the heart may give rise to rush of blood to the head, or to the chest, liver, kidneys, pelvic viscera, etc., and the more immediate consequences of these congestions frequently are inflammations or hemorrhages, or a relaxation of some portion of the vascular system and con-.sequent dilatation of the vessels. The degrees of true plethora vary; sometimes they are very slight, scarcely perceptible; at other times they are quite striking, and even so intense that highly characteristic constitutional changes may be determined by the plethora. The so-called apoplectic habit or the square constitution (constitutio quadrata) represent the 684 Polyamia, Hyperaemia. hurtful. For years his views were sought to be refuted by argument and ridicule, until, finally, calm observations in the clinics of Vienna and Prague, which were more particularly conducted with great discretion and impartiality during the treatment of pneumonia, resulted in establishing the fact, that venesections and local depletions are unnecessary in most,. and hurtful in many cases. This conviction which was proclaimed by Hahnemann thirty or forty years previous, has now been adopted as a ruling principle in all medical clinics. Venesection has almost entirely fallen into disuse; leeching is very rarely resorted to, and cupping is known only by name. Impartial and enlightened professors of clinical medicine admit unreservedly that this revolutionary change is primarily due to Homceopathy, and secondarily to the results obtained by post-mortem observations, and to the observations instituted by unprejudiced practitioners at the sick-bed. In order to overcome a plethoric condition of the system, the homceopathic method of treatment not only dispenses with sanguineous depletions, but it likewise rejects the abuse of cathartics which are still in vogue and are still regarded and recommended as means of derivation from more important organs. Nor does Homoeopathy resort to vesicatories, since they not only fail of accomplishing the purpose of derivation, but are in most cases employed without any benefit. In treating plethora homceopathically, we do not merely regard the fact of an excess of blood, but likewise the phenomena connected with it, the exciting causes and the constitutional condition of the patient generally. We have stated in a previous paragraph that the increased action of the heart most commonly determines a rush of blood to various internal or external organs or systems, and that this determination of blood may superinduce hypersemia, inflammatory conditions, hemorrhages, dilatations of vessels. It is upon these conditions and a simultaneous consideration of the anamnestic circumstances that the selection of a homoeopathic remedy is based. It is not by any means immaterial whether we have to deal with congestions to the head, or to the chest, liver, etc.; whether they have resulted in simple hypersemia, or in inflammatory processes, hemorrhages, etc.; whether the plethoric condition was caused by a cold, by an emotion, by excessive bodily exertions, by the unfavorable influences of climate, temperature, etc., whether the patient's organization is of a vigorous or delicate kind. All these circumstances have to be 686 Polyaemia, Hyperaemia. pncea, oppression of the chest, a dry and tight cough, and danger of pneumonia or hsemoptoe are present. If the patients have become very much excited by mental labor, committing to memory, by anger or vexation, abuse of spirits, or have indulged in over-eating or luxurious living; if they complain of pressure in the frontal region, with nausea or actual saburral vomiting; if the tongue has a yellowish coating, the taste is sour or pasty; if the patients are troubled with frequent eructations and distention of the abdomen; if they are irritable, irascible, and the bowels are torpid, Nux vom. 3 in solution, every hour, will not only remove the hypersemia but likewise the gastric disturbance. Under similar circumstances and for similar symptoms, Carba veg. 6 or Cale. carb. 6 may likewise prove useful. The last-named remedies, to which we add Sulphur 6, render good service for general plethora superinduced by the suppression of habitual hemorrhoids; if arising from menstrual suppression, we resort to Conium, Digitalis or Crocus 3. These statements, which are suggested by daily practice, are simply intended to show the manner in which we avail ourselves of the.results of our physiological provings. These statements do not by any means present an exhaustive discussion of the subject, and do not obviate the necessity, in extraordinary cases, of studying the Materia Medica with special reference to a given case, since we have many other remedies, such as ilercur., lHepar sulph., Rhus tox., Lycop., Sepia, Tart. emet., lodium, etc., which are capable of removing a general plethora. Regarding the diet, we recommend to plethoric individuals the use of vegetables, abstinence from spirits and heating beverages, daily exercise in the open air for a couple of hours, avoidance of exciting or depressing emotions, of sedentary habits and protracted sleeping. A spurious sort of plethora accompanying emphysema of the lungs, hypertrophy of the left ventricle, insufficiency or stenosis of the bicuspid valve, goitre, stenosis of the.larynx, has been fully described in the chapters where these diseases are treated of. Kafka relates the case of a lady, seventy years old, with a large and indurated goitre, in consequence of which she became cyanotic, short-breathed, dyspeptic, very feeble and somnolent. Iodine proving ineffectual for these symptoms, Arsen. 3, three doses a day, was resorted to. In a few days already a decided improvement set in. H.] Deficiency or rather Paleness of the Blood. 687 9. Anaemia, Oligaemia. Deficiency or rather Paleness of the Blood. [It is only true anaemia, or deficiency of blood consequent upon excessive losses of this fluid, that consists in a diminution of the quantity of the blood without any simultaneous alteration in the normal composition of this fluid. Spurious aneemia with which we shall principally deal in this chapter, constitutes a disease of the blood where the number of the red corpuscles is more or less diminished, in consequence of which the blood becomes paler and appears variously altered both quantitatively and qualitatively. Hence it is with a qualitative rather than with a quantitative disease of the blood that we have to deal with, where the deficiency of red blood-disks constitutes a characteristic phenomenon, on which account it would be more appropriate, according to Vogel, to denominate the disease oligocythcemia. In a normal condition of the organism, the reproduction of red corpuscles equilibrates their decay, so that, within certain limits, the percentage amount of blood-disks in the blood, and their total quantity remains unchanged. In diseases, however, this relative proportion is disturbed, so that more blood-disks decay than are reproduced; hence arises the condition which Vogel denominates oligocythcemia. The results of our pathological and anatomical investigations show that the blood of anemlic individuals is deficient in red corpuscles; it contains less haematin and fibrin, but on the other hand an excess of serum. The anaemic blood is fluid, pale, the clot is small, soft, floats in a quantity of serum, its specific gravity is diminished; the crassamentum which is sometimes entirely wanting, is less dense and easily disintegrated. Anaemia is either a primary or secondary morbid process. A constitutional anaemia depends upon certain ante-natal influences or conditions of development; its causes are either unknown or not satisfactorily accounted for. It is either congenital, or inherent in the process of development,, or in the period of involution. Congenital anaemia occurs among children of sickly, debilitated parents or of parents afflicted with anaemia, tuberculosis, constitutional syphilis, carcinoma or other exhausting diseases; it occurs Deficiency or rather Paleness of the Blood. 689 sufficient supply of oxygen, in damp valleys or malarious districts, on the borders of large rivers where frequent inundations occur; or in consequence of the inhalation, in mines, of air impregnated with carbo-hydrogen or carbonic acid; or likewise in consequence of a deficient supply of light in damp cellars serving as human habitations, or in consequence of deprivation of sleep, long watching, continued and long-lasting pains and spasms, depressing emotions, such as grief, care, sorrow, mortification, home-sickness, disappointed love, etc.; or in consequence of the working of such passions, as envy, pride, ambition, etc.; likewise from excessive mental exertions, abuse of the sexual organs, etc.; or in consequence of diseases of such organs as are physiologically important to the production and propulsion of the blood, such as: diseases of the lungs, heart, arteries, veins, lymphatic glands, liver, spleen, kidneys, uterus, intestinal canal, etc.; it may likewise result from the inhalation of dust or metallic vapors of chemical substances exerting a hurtful influence upon the formation of the sanguineous fluid, such as: Arsen., lead, copper, phosphorus, mercury, silex, zinc, etc. The abuse of Opium, Belladonna, tobacco, alcohol, etc., and the abuse of certain kinds of nutrient substances, such as: potatoes, tea, etc., may likewise lead to anermia. Secondary anemia only occurs as an accompaniment of other morbid processes, upon which it depends. It occurs in the course of tuberculosis, constitutional syphilis, carcinoma, scurvy, scrofulosis, rhachitis, diabetes, puerperal fever, etc., likewise in the course of chronic articular rheumatism, helminthiasis, diseases of the brain and spinal marrow, in the course of chronic exudations, such as: hydrothorax, hydropericardia, ascites, anasarca, ovarian dropsy, etc. Having dwelt with sufficient detail upon the general and etiological part of anemia, we now give a description of its symptomatic manifestations. The skin is pallid in various degrees, sometimes yellowish or of a grayish white, at other times livid; the paleness of the lips, gums, palpebral conjunctiva and ears is particularly striking. The cutaneous veins appear delicate, bluish, thin and empty. The sclerotic most commonly exhibits a bluish-gray appearance. The temperature of the skin, especially that of the extremities, is in most cases diminished; even the temperature of the axills not unfrequently falls below the normal standard. Anmenic persons exhibit a characteristic sensitiveness to cold, a fondness for warmth, and frequent shiverings increasing even to violent shaking chills. The muscles 44 690 Anaemia, Oligaemia. of anaemic persons are very often soft and flabby; in many cases the bodily weight becomes less, more particularly in anemia of a higher grade, which is frequently combined with atrophy, subcutaneous cedema or hydruemia. The muscular strength is always less; after the least bodily exertion, the patients experience great lassitude in the extremities. When ascending an eminence, going upstairs, dancing, or making the least attempt to run, anemic individuals turn remarkably pale, become short-breathed, the heart palpitates, and, if the anaemia is of a high grade, syncope may set in. The pulse is mostly small, feeble, short and accelerated. The increase of the frequency of the pulse from slight exertions, walking about, and even from sitting up in bed, is a characteristic symptom. If we are in doubt concerning the degree of anmemia, we may direct the patient to walk about; if the pulse increases in frequency after such a trifling effort, we may rest assured that the anaenia has reached a high degree. The palpitations of the heart, with which such patients are frequently troubled, are often attended with systolic blowing murmurs in the region of the heart and in the larger vessels. The more fully developed the anemia, the feebler the impulse of the heart, so that in the highest grades of the disease, as in cholera, the second sound of the heart and that of the arteries disappears entirely. The cerebral functions are generally depressed; anemic individuals are sad, low-spirited, monosyllabic, melancholy; they sleep a good deal, are sleepy even in the day-time, whereas at night they sometimes lie awake for hours. On making a slight bodily effort, their sight becomes obscured, they are attacked with buzzing in the ears and vertigo, phenomena which, in high grades of anemia, may even increase unto syncope. Such patients are frequently attacked by periodical paroxysms of headache, prosopalgia, cardialgia, coxalgia, sometimes by toothache (neuralgia of anemmic persons). The spinal nerves likewise become frequently involved in the anemic condition, so that either disturbances of the sentient system take place in the shape of frequent attacks of pain, or of the motor system in the shape of spasms. IRespiration only becomes impeded after excessive bodily exertions; owing to the deficient oxydation of the blood, the patient has to yawn or sigh quite frequently. The appetite is frequently impaired, or the patient experiences a desire for uncommon things, such as charcoal, chalk, lime, roast Deficiency or rather Paleness of the Blood. 691 coffee, acids, bitter substances, etc.; the digestion is weak, the appetite is speedily satisfied, and, after eating, such patients are frequently attacked with oppression of the stomach or flatulence. The thirst is often very much increased, sometimes quite normal, the bowels are generally torpid, the urine is pale, watery, generally quite copious and has an alkaline reaction. In the case of male patients, the sexual functions remain unaffected; in the case of women, however, the menses often become irregular, or very scanty, or they are entirely suspended. Profuse menses are of much less frequent occurrence; they exert a very prejudicial influence upon the general organism. Anaemic women are very frequently attacked with leucorrhcea and sterility. The secretion of milk is impaired, the milk is watery, thin, not nourishing, hence ansemic women are unfit for the business of nursing and the children who are fed on such milk, generally become anmemic. Most ansemic persons feel better in a state of rest and in a horizontal posture, whereas they soon feel tired when standing, walking, or when performing bodily labor. I-lence they generally feel lazy, are not disposed to work, and soon have to desist from their. labor. We are acquainted with patients who become exhausted even after doing the lightest kind of work, such as knitting, crocheting, embroidering, etc., and even become shortbreathed, experience an oppression on the chest, palpitation of the heart, sometimes even pains in the muscles of the arms, chest and back, or after standing or walking for some time, pains in the muscles of the calves or thighs. As a general rule, ansemic persons feel most uncomfortable in the morning-hours; their sleep is not refreshing or strengthening; the feeling of lassitude does not leave them, on which account they remain sad and depressed in spirits until, in the course of the day, they become artificially stimulated by the use of coffee, tea, wine, beer, broth, etc. This circumstance is very important in a diagnostic point of view; whereas anaemic persons look pale and feel languid while their stomachs are empty, and at such times either yawn or complain of headache and are generally morose: they commonly feel much better after using the above-mentioned stimulants or immediately after eating, their complexion looks much better, they are more active and cheerful. Very seldom anaemic individuals experience an oppression at the stomach, cardialgia or rush of blood to the head after eating or drinking, or feel otherwise uncomfortable and languid. 692 Anamia, Oligamia. Diarrhcea, hemorrhages of every kind, even if very slight, nocturnal emissions, sexual intercourse and nursing aggravate the symptoms of ansemia. Depressing emotions and mental exertions likewise cause aggravations, whereas moderate bodily and mental exercise, cheerful company and surroundings affect anaemic persons very favorably. An anaemic condition is most strikingly increased by the supervention of some acute disease. An occurrence of this kind is apt to bring on an adynamic condition, prostration and sopor; such an acute attack is often attended with fibrinous or serous exudations, drags along very slowly, and convalescence is in most cases very protracted. All the above-mentioned circumstances are of great importance to the homeopathic physician, on which account we have dwelt upon them very minutely. It is only ansemic conditions consequent upon acute losses of blood and other animal fluids that run an acute course; other forms of anaemia run a chronic course and, while the exciting cause continues, may last weeks, months and even years. The more speedily anaemia develops itself, the more rapidly the phenomena characteristic of anaemia set in. If anaemia runs a protracted course, the greatest attention is often required on the part of the physician in order to accurately observe the pathognomonic symptoms of anaemia. A deficiency of the colored corpuscles causes a more or less vitiated nutrition, a gradual vanishing of the fat and of the vital turgor, a decrease of; the natural temperature and of the muscular strength, a high degree of lassitude, indolence and ill-humor, increased beating of the heart after slight bodily exertions, disorders of the nervous system resulting in attacks of pain or spasm of the most diversified kind. The termination in recovery frequently occurs spontaneously, if the exciting causes cease of themselves, as is often the case in constitutional or consecutive anaemia. Very frequently a complete cure is effeected by artificial means. After acute losses of blood or other fluids, the water and salts of the blood are often speedily restored, without the reproduction of the red corpuscles taking place with equal rapidity. In consequence of this, a hyperaemie condition is apt to set in, which is describedl under the name of serous plethora and is often accompanied with congestions of the head, febrile irritation, violent palpitations of the heart, sleeplessness, etc. Deficiency or rather Paleness of the Blood. 693 The more complete the anmmia, the more the fat and muscular strength disappear, the viscera and tissues likewise become impoverished; the watery constituents of the blood increase more and more, and the red corpuscles decrease in proportion; this is the reason why certain parts of the body gradually become cedematous and why serous transudations into the different cavities of the body occur at a later period. This hydrmmic condition is most commonly observed after copious losses of blood and other animal fluids, after continued derangements of the digestive system, in consequence of cardiac and valvular anomalies, of Bright's disease, after severe acute diseases and exanthems, during long-continued attacks of fever and ague, chlorosis, during a highly developed tuberculosis, carcinoma, caries and other wasting diseases. If an improvement or cure cannot be obtained, marasmus and exhaustion set in. It may likewise happen that the blood is deficient in red corpuscles and so much richer in colorless blood-globules. A condition of this kind is generally connected with diseases of the lymphatic glands, the liver, spleen or uterus, and is designated by the name of leuccemia. If the blood is deficient in red blood-disks, but has an excess of pigment which is likewise deposited in the tissues, a condition of this kind is denominated melancemia; it occurs most frequently after old and violent intermittent fevers. After rapid alvine evacuations, as in cholera, the highest grade of anemia is complicated with inspissation of the blood which is characterized by the highest degree of debility and coldness.of the extremities and attended with fainting-like paroxysms and absence of the second cardiac and arterial sound. If this condition cannot be removed, it leads to paralysis of the heart. In treating anaemia, the prognosis depends, above all, upon the various forms and degrees of the disease. The better the exciting causes are known and the more easily they can be removed; the more easily and certainly the loss of the red corpuscles can be repaired and the harmony between their consumption and regeneration can be effected, the more favorable is the prognosis. Among the forms of constitutional anemia, those inherent in the period of evolution admit of a favorable prognosis; in congenital anemia, and in the anaemia of the critical age, the prognosis is less favorable; it is least favorable in the anemia of old people. In consecutive anemnia, that which is consequent on loss of blood, Deficiency or rather Paleness of the Blood. 695 If the causes are known and can be removed, the first step towards a cure is frequently made. Hence all losses of blood and other fluids, the waste of strength, have to be arrested as speedily as possible; anomalies depending upon birth, constitution, age, sex, development, etc., have to be regulated; excessive bodily or mental exertions, depressing emotions, sexual excesses have to be rigidly avoided; the unfavorable influences of climate and atmosphere have to give way to more favorable surroundings; the supply has to be of the right quality and quantity; errors of nutrition and assimilation have to be corrected; the circumstances of education, mode of living, occupation, habit, etc., have to be considered; diseases of single organs and systems, and constitutional anomalies by which anaemic conditions are so often engendered, have to be carefully observed, and the bad effects of sudden changes of temperature, weather, a sudden rise or fall of the barometer or thermometer, or unfavorable influences of the season, have to be counteracted by appropriate measures. In cases where the causes of anemia are unknown, where they are not sufficiently accounted for and cannot be investigated, as is most commonly the case in regard to the various forms of constitutional anemia, we adhere to our previous statement that the diminution of the red corpuscles, and the consequent anaemia, is either occasioned by a too rapid consumption, or by a deficient reproduction of these bodies, or by both these causes at once. If one or the other of these causes prevails, the homceopathic treatment is regullated accordingly, and the true nature of anaemia is reached and modified by these means. The dietetic treatment of anemia has for its object to so regulate the circumstances of the patient as to secure the normal restoration of the blood. The diet is so important that our opponents attribute to it exclusively the good eftects of our treatment. Although we do not deny that many forms of anaemia, especially of the consecutive kind, are cured by a suitable diet after the removal of the causes, there are many other forms of anaemia, especially constitutional and secondary, where the best dietetic measures are insufficient, and where the interference of art is indispensable to a cure. General dietetic -rules adapted to all forms of anaemia cannot be established for the reason that every special case requires a dietetic management of its own. For the present we content ourselves with mentioning the general dietetic arrangements that deserve attention in most cases. Special dietetic rules will be indicated when treating of the special forms of anaemia. 696 Anaemia, Oligaemia. If the process of sanguification and nutrition is to be improved, the condition of the digestive organs has to be carefully attended to above everything else. If ansemic individuals digest very rapidly; if, soon after a copious meal, they again feel hungry; if they do not experience any trouble after eating; if they feel comfortable after a meal and have no fever, the most nourishing diet may be indulged in by such patients. They may use strong soups with the concentrated extract of beef, roast-beef, steak, A-la-mode beef, various kinds of roast without much fat, venison, eggs, farinaceous food, light vegetables which are not of the flatulent kind, cake prepared with sugar, but not fat and without yeast; fish which is not too fat, is likewise allowable, such as trout, salmon, cod, pike, pickerel, etc. Fat food, salad seasoned with sharp vinegar, husks, fresh bread, etc., should be rigidly avoided. Stewed fruit is generally more easily digested than raw fruit. Eggs, almonds, cottage-cheese may be partaken of in moderate quantities. A well fermented beer is the best beverage for anemic persons; during a meal light wines may be indulged in. A little Champaigne may be used with the dessert. If there is a good deal of vascular excitement, disposition to headache and congestions, with sleeplessness, affections of the heart or lungs, hemorrhage, etc., the use of wine has to be strictly avoided; beer, if partaken of discretly or diluted with water and sweetened with sugar, generally agrees with most patients. Ansemic persons had better eat frequently, every few hours, than too much at once. If a sensation of hunger, or of a so-called "empty stomach" is hurtful, and may give rise to frequent yawning, cardialgia, headache, a disagreeable and audible rumbling in the bowels,-weakness of the extremities and even attacks resembling syncope; on the other hand, overloading the stomach is frequently attended with oppression of this organ, flatulence, nausea or even vomiting and diarrhoea, by which conditions the patients are weakened and the anemia is made worse. If the digestion is prostrated, our main object must be to restore this important function as speedily as possible to its normal state; for without it no restore tion of tissue, and hence no amelioration of the blood can be thought of. The management of the digestive apparatus will be indicated when we give the medicinal treatment. For the present, it may suffice to state that the sick stomach must Deficiency or rather Paleness of the Blood. 699 for this kind of exercise and, while riding, do not experience any palpitation of the heart or dyspncea. Long rides, galloping, and a sharp trot, do not agree as a rule. The well known indolence of anemic persons, their disposition to sit or lie down, should not be encouraged by their physician; a protracted rest or a total deprivation of exercise diminishes the functional energy of the muscles and may even result in their atrophy and paralysis. Sleep and waking likewise exert a powerful influence upon the life of the blood. Annemic persons who sleep too much, generally become indolent, peevish, complain of dulness of the head, inability to think; they yawn, look bloated, the blood becomes paler, the muscular fibre more relaxed, and the formation of fat and the serosity of the blood become very marked. The want of regular sleep as well as complete sleeplessness make the anmmia worse, and frequently result in nervous erethism, hyperaesthesia, debility, digestive derangements, and emaciation. A natural sleep of six, seven or eight hours is refreshing, strengthening, promotes the restoration of the muscular fibre, improves the process of sanguification, and invigorates the cerebral functions. Voluntary watching when the hours which should be devoted, to sleep, are spent in a state of intentional wakefulness, is very prejudicial to anemic individuals. The will acting in opposition to the natural want, an effort takes place both of a physical and. psychical nature and equal to the sleeplessness added to an excess of bodily and mental exertion, in consequence of which the anemia becomes more deep-seated. On this account, antmic persons should neither watch with the sick, nor for purposes of manual or other work; they should not read, study or travel at night. Even social entertainments should not be indulged in after midnight, so that the remainder of the night can be devoted to rest. Depressing emotions, such as grief, sorrow, mortified feelings, fear, homesickness, disappointed love, etc., and excessive passions, such as envy, hatred, jealousy, ambition, wounded pride, etc., affect anaemic patients equally badly as sleeplessness. Hence it is necessary in the case of anemic persons that this morbid direction of the thoughts and feelings should be moderated or entirely subdued by an appeal to their reason as well as by the personal influence of the physician. 700 Anaemia, Oligaemia. The atmospheric air is likewise of great importance as a means of improving the quality of the blood; the purity of the air and the quantity of oxygen it contains contribute greatly to the increase of the red corpuscles. If the digestion is at the same time active, and a sufficient supply of proper nourishment is introduced into the organism, bad cases of anaemia are sometimes cured by these simple means without medicine. It is more particularly the anaemia of convalescent patients that can be removed in this manner. Anaemic persons residing in crowded cities or in damp and close districts where the air is rendered impure by frequent inundations, coal-vapors, decaying vegetable matter, etc., should, if their circumstances permit, be sent during the warm season into regions of country where the air is pure and rich in oxygen. The dwellings of ansemic persons must be dry, spacious, with facilities for being easily heated, accessible to sunlight. We know from experience that damp and chilly dwellings give rise to a variety of diseases. The clothing of anaemic individuals has to be adapted to the season and the weather; the want of animal heat and an extreme sensitiveness to changes of temperature make it desirable that ansemic persons should be warmly clad or, at any rate, that they should at all times and places be provided with a supply of thick clothing, so as to be protected against the bad effects of sudden changes of temperature or of a sudden access of bad weather. They must be cautioned against leaving off their winter-clothing too soon, or against throwing off their cloaks, coats or shawls in cool places or while covered with perspiration. Anaemic persons who are disposed to sadness and to keep away from company, must be cheered up by pleasant surroundings, quiet games, entertaining books, theatrical representations, frequent but not too long walks or rides, short journeys, etc. Baths are only useful to anaemic persons if their temperature is pleasant to them. Experience has shown that baths with a temperature of over 880 F. cause a loss of muscular power and bodily weight in the case of anaemic patients, whereas baths below 500 F. cause chilliness, a loss of animal heat, followed by an excess of reaction. For this reason the best plan to be adopted for such patients is to give them tepid baths between 65 and 85~ F. only two or three times a week, and only fifteen to twenty minutes to each bath. Swimming may be allowed, provided the patients are sufficiently strong, and neither are troubled with cough, nor dyspncea, nor Congenital Anamia. 701 diarrhoea; the temperature of the river or sea-water must at least be 57 to 600 F., that of the air at least 64; there must be no cool or keen wind, nor must the air be damp or chilly. Hydroemic patients should not bathe under any circumstances. In high grades of anaemia sexual intercourse is hurtful to persons of either sex; however, if they improve in looks, if they feel more vigorous and frequently experience sexual desires or nocturnal emissions, moderate sexual intercourse is admissible. The medicinal treatment of anaemia requires a good deal of discretion and judgment on the part of the physician. In selecting a remedy, it is not only of importance that the exciting causes should be carefully investigated, butthat the physician should understand whether the ansemia he is called upon to treat, is of a primary or secondary character. A primary anaemia generally admits of a direct treatment and is curable, whereas a secondary anaemia always requires a careful consideration of the primary pathological process, and can only be reached indirectly by homceopathic remedial agents, and not unfrequently resists the most rational and judicious treatment. A direct anti-anmemic treatment requires, beside the removal of the cause and a suitable diet, the use of such remedies as have it in their power to correct the process of sanguification by their direct influence. We have no universal specific for anaemla. After investigating the various forms of anemia, their causes and the morbid processes upon which they depend, we are able to avail ourselves of a considerable number of remedies whose effects upon the human organism have been carefully studied, and by their means to obtain favorable results with surprising rapidity even in severe cases where medicinal aid seemed all but useless. Since the selection of homceopathic remedies for anaemia is principally determined by the nature of the exciting causes and by the resemblance between the remedies and the disease, we have deemed it proper to present the various forms of anemia and to indicate the special treatment of each of them. By this means we obtain a clearer perception of the various morbid processes, and greater facilities in surveying the list of specially adapted remedial agents. 10. Congenital Aniemia. Owing to hemorrhages of the mother during pregnancy or during the act of parturition, children are often born anemic. If they arrive at full term, they generally look fleshy, but in the place of 702 Congenital Anamia. the natural bright flesh-color, the skin has a pale-yellow appearance; the nails and lips likewise look pale, and the sclerotica has a bluish color. Their movements are not very vigorous, their voice is feeble, they do not sleep much, moan a good deal, and nurse very feebly. Such infants very soon pick up strength at the breast of a healthy wet-nurse whose milk, rendered more nourishing by a good meatdiet and the use of beer, easily and speedily accomplishes the restoration of the red blood-disks. If anmemic children are at the same time born feeble, they are generally emaciated, lobk old, wrinkled; they are sometimes so feeble that their moans can scarcely be heard; their weakness is so great that they find it very difficult to take the breast, and sometimes decline doing so. Such children have to be fed on the nurse's milk by means of a little spoon; otherwise, being too feeble to draw the milk from the breast, they would soon perish of exhaustion; in order to support the deficient nutrition, it is likewise proper to bathe the little ones once a day in tepid cow's-milk. As soon as they have become somewhat more lively and vigorous, we introduce every day the little finger into their mouthsfor the purpose of ascertaining whether they are able to nurse. If they are strong enough to draw the milk, they may then be put to the breast; by pursuing this course, they generally gain very rapidly. If anaemic children are born before their full term, they generally sleep a great deal, have a wrinkled skin which is covered with a fine downy hair; they look old, their little nails are soft, the hair on their heads is short, their heads are disproportionately large, their fontanels are far apart, etc. Such children have to be roused from their sleep quite often, in order to feed them a little nurse's milk by means of a spoon; this should be done at least once every two or three hours, if their vital energy is to be preserved and sufficiently strengthened. The nutrition is likewise sustained by tepid. milk-baths and injections of tepid milk or soup; the injections should only be given in small quantities, about half an ounce, in order to secure their retention in the intestinal canal and subsequent absorption. For purposes of nutrition, the milk of healthy and robust nurses is much better than that of mothers whose milk has become watery in consequence of copious hemorrhages or exhausting diseases, or which has become greatly deprived of its protein constituents. Congenital anaemia occasioned by diseases of the parents or of Congenital Anaemia. 703 the mother alone, is generally very obstinate, frequently continuing during the whole period of dentition and even beyond the period of pubescence. Such children generally cut their teeth at a late period and with difficulty, are frequently attacked with derangements of the digestive functions and of the nervous system, among the nervous disorders are subject to frequent attacks of eclampsia; they begin to run about, and they acquire the use of speech at a late period, generally have a pale and bloated appearance, have weak and thin extremities, a bloated belly; enlargements of the spleen, liver and mesenteric glands are frequent occurrences which are moreover often accompanied by leucsemia; they show great liability to softening of the bones and to scrofulosis, to nasal, bronchial and intestinal catarrhs, to croupous processes and basilar meningitis. The most common results of congenital and protracted anaemia are tuberculosis, scrofulosis, rhachitis and atrophy. Children afflicted with congenital anaemia should have healthy wet-nurses during the first months, they should be taken out into the open air as often as the weather permits, the use of sugar-tits should be strictly prohibited, nor should they be fed on thick gruel or pap, lest the digestive functions should become disordered; they should never be fed to excess, they should be kept clean and frequently bathed in tepid water. Acute or chronic gastric, intestinal or bronchial catarrhs have to be treated in the manner indicated in their respective chapters; they favor more than anything else the diminution of the red corpuscles. Sleep is likewise a function of great importance to such children. If they will not sleep at all, or can only be got to sleep with great difficulty, we administer Cale. 6, or Nux vomr. 3, or Puls. 3, or 1Mere. sol. 3, a dose every two or three hours. If the children become exceedingly restless, so that they will not remain in their beds and have to be carried about all the time, the most approved remedies for such a trouble are Arsen. 3, Bellad. 3, Ignat. 3, Nux vom. 3, or Cale. 6, or Sulph. 6. If, especially during the period of dentition, they frequently start from their sleep and afterwards remain wakeful, we resort to Chamom. 3, Coffea 3, Nux vom. 3, or Natrum mur. 6, or Silic. 6. The slow dentition of such children is attended with great delay in the process of ossification; the fontanels remain open for a long time, the skull-bones are thin and fragile, the articular cartilages grow thick and rickety; the vertebral column and the long Loncs are liable to become curved. 704 Congenital Anaemia. In such cases Cale. 6 to 30, two doses a day, is a splendid remedy which speedily regulates the digestive and assimilative functions, thus improving the quality of the blood and visibly promoting the process of ossification. What Iron is to chlorosis, Arsen. to hydrmemia, that Lime is to delaying ossification. This remedy is likewise of great value where the skin is bloated, the abdomen meteoristically distended, the extremities are thin, the mesenteric glands swollen and where the patients are at the same time suffering with gastric, nasal or intestinal catarrhs. The continued use of this remedy for several weeks, in increasingly large doses, accompanied by a proper dietetic management, may lead to favorable results even in cases where an hereditary disposition to tuberculosis is present. If the delay in the process of ossification has already resulted in actual curvatures; if single bones have become hypertrophied, if the angular edges of the long bones have become rounded off like cylinders, if the articular extremities become disproportionately large and the broad bones thick, we may be sure that osteomalacia has set in. In such cases a gelatinous substance is found exuded into the cells of the friable and interstitially distended osseous tissue, in consequence of which the bones not only become distorted, but osteoporosis takes place, or a dilatation of the medullary canals and cells. Such phenomena find a sovereign remedy in Silicea 6 to 30, two doses a day. What Lime is to a delaying ossification, that Silicea is to osteomalacia. Silicea, by first regulating the digestive and assimilative functions,' corrects the composition of the blood and not only secures a reabsorption of the gelatinous mass, but even a perfect ossification. This remedy likewise renders efficient service in cases of hereditary disposition and, like Calcarea, is often administered with advantage in alternation with Sulphur 6 to 30. If Silicea is not sufficient, we resort to Phosphorus 3 to 6, with which we have obtained the most satisfactory results in the case of feeble and exhausted children who did not acquire the use of their legs until very late. (See the article "Meningitis Spinalis, Spondylitis.") Children who learn to walk with difficulty or at a late period, must not be made to stand upon their feet; every attempt at making them walk, is an injury to them. It is better for them to lie down as much as possible. Carrying them in a sitting posture or Consecutive Anemia. 709 remedy is not sufficient to remove the anmmia, we give Quinine and Ferrum in alternation, giving Quinine one day and Ferr. the next; or a dose of Ferrur in the morning after breakfast, shortly before dinner a dose of Quinine, another dose of Ferr. in the afternoon, and a dose of Quinine at night. Either method leads very speedily to a successful result. For the nosebleed of anaemic individuals, two or three doses of Crocus 3 a day proves very efficient. If debility is a prominent symptom, China 1 or Phosphor. 3 are important remedies which will arrest severe hemorrhages. After the nosebleed ceases, the general treatment of anemia has to be continued. For haemoptysis from excessive walking, dancing, running, ascending eminences, etc., attended with vascular erethism, Aeon. 3 in solution, a dose every fifteen or thirty minutes, in connection with cold applications to the chest, renders most excellent service. If, under similar circumstances, the lungs have become wearied by much talking or loud reading, blowing on wind-instruments, etc., and an oppression is felt on the chest, and symptoms of pneumonia threaten, we at once resort to Phosph. 3 in solution, a dose every hour or half hour; at the same time we employ cold applications to the chest. We likewise refer the reader to the chapter on haemoptysis or hemorrhage from the lungs. Nux vom. 3 may prove a good remedy for the hmmoptysis of anemic persons, when caused by excessive mental labor or by the abuse of spirits. For the best means of invigorating the constitution, diet, exercise, occupation, etc., we refer the reader to the chapter on tuberculosis. For the anemia of chlorotic persons, the reader is referred to the chapter on Chlorosis. ill. Consecutive Ansemia. Consecutive anemia is in every particular case attended with a diminution of fat, decrease of strength and loss of bodily weight. These conditions, together with their exciting causes and consequences, are of great importance for the selection of the right remedy. Among the phenomena which accompany or follow this form of anemia, we distinguish paroxysms of syncope, spasms, neuralgia, hyperasthesia, anesthesia, debility, emaciation, hydroemia. The treatment of acute anemia consequent upon severe hemor 712 Marasmus, Tabes. head falls out more and more, the nails become curved and brittle, the extremities are mostly cool, the patients frequently complain of a feeling of coldness and cannot get warm. At times the appetite is great, increasing even to canine hunger, but the hunger is soon appeased and digestion takes place very slowly. At other times the patients experience an irresistible aversion to meat or certain kinds of food. In most cases the thirst is increased. The breath is often fetid, the gums are atrophied, the teeth are denuded, and gradually become loose and fall out. The voice is feeble and without resonnance, the respiration is frequently normal, but often oppressed, and after the least bodily exertion dyspncea and palpitation of the heart set in. The breasts become pendulous and flabby, the abdomen is at times sunken, at other times distended; the bowels are at times loose, at other times constipated, and again dysenteric; the urine is mostly secreted in small quantities and saturated, the genital organs become atrophied and the sexual instinct is either diminished or becomes entirely extinct. The pulse is small and feeble, sleep fatiguing rather than refreshing, sometimes it is very much disturbed; the patients are either hypochondriac or irascible; sometimes they show much apathy or obstinacy, their memory is weakened, their behavior is often childish and vacillating. The muscles are flabby and atrophied, and the strength becomes less and less. The disease may last months or years; in some cases marasmus progresses at a rapid rate to a fatal termination. Recovery can only be obtained if the exciting causes can be removed; however, it takes place very slowly, sometimes with frequent interruptions and disposition to relapses. Wounds, ulcers, abscesses, etc., heal slowly and with difficulty; accidental diseases run a slow course which inclines to become chronic. If the patients are compelled to remain in a recumbent posture, hypostatic inflammations are very apt to set in. According to the nature of the cause and of existing complications, death may take place by anamia, hydrnemia, dropsy, pyemia, embolism, gangrene, etc. The prognosis is favorable only if the disease remains after severe diseases, losses of blood and other animal fluids, excessive exertions, etc. The marasmus of children is likewise a curable disease, provided the causes can be removed. In marasmus senilis, and in the marasmus consequent -upon in Marasmus, Tabes. 713 curable diseases, such as tuberculosis, carcinoma, diabetes, caries, diseases of the brain or spinal marrow, etc., the prognosis is unfavorable. Treatment. Marasmus scarcely ever sets in without anaemia to which we refer the reader for further details, more particularly consecutive anaemia and the anemia inherent in the period of involution. The marasmus consequent upon intermittent fevers is always accompanied with malarial cachexia, the treatment of which has been indicated in the chapter on intermittent fever. Marasmus senilis is almost always complicated with anaemia. It occurs either between the years of forty and fifty (marasmus precox, premature old age), or after the age of sixty or seventy years. For the treatment of marasmus precox we refer the reader to the treatment of the amemia of involution; as regards the marasmus of old people, we treat it according to its symptomatic indications. If the anemnia is not very considerable; if the loss of muscular or adipose tissue is attended with great debility, disposition to sleep in the day-time, feeble impulse and sounds of the heart, with oppression on the chest, dyspncea after slight exertions, disposition to painful diarrhcea, we recommend Phosphor. 3, a dose every two hours. This admirable remedy acts much better upon such symptoms than Quinine; it quickens the circulation, invigorates the digestive functions, regulates the alvine evacuations, and is likewise indicated if the patients are attacked with vertigo when walking, stooping, closing their eyes, turning the head, with a sensation as if they had to tumble over to one side or the other. If the patients are weak and anmmic, dyspeptic with disposition to constipation, hypochondriac, irascible; if they are subject to vertigo and nausea; if their gait is unsteady and dragging, we give Nux vom. 3 every two hours, until these symptoms improve, after which we give Quinine with excellent effect. Ferrum carbon. or metal. may likewise be given after Nux. In such a case we give these remedies in daily alternation with excellent effect. For obstinate dyspeptic symptoms without any symptoms of gastric or intestinal catarrh, we have sometimes given Pepsin, in doses of three to five grains. Arsen. 3, a dose every two or three hours, may be employed in cases of antemia if the patients are very feeble, faint frequently, are dyspeptic and thirsty, restless at night, so that they have to get up 714 Obesitas, Adiposis, Polysarcia, Obesity. and walk about; this remedy is eminently proper if hectic fever has set in, with fetor fronm the mouth and large eccehymoses on the lower extremities. A small and feeble pulse, cold extremities, painless and cadaverously smelling diarrhceic stools, cedema of the lower extremities are further indications for Ars. which may still afford help in the most desperate cases. If this remedy is not sufficient, we resort to Chininum arsenicosum 1, three to four doses a day, and order small quantities of pure old wine to be taken during the intervals. In all cases of incipient or far advanced marasmus, a strengthening diet is of the utmost importance. We recommend broth, extract of beef, old wine, if possible old claret, Malaga, Port or Tokay in small quantities either pure or diluted with water; good porter is likewise appropriate. The patients must be kept warm, especially the feet, lest other diseases should supervene. Country and midmountain air, the use of strengthening springs and, if the lower extremities are very weak, the use of electricity by induction, are powerful adjuvants during the treatment and promote a cure. IH.] 14. Obesitas, Adiposis, Polysarcia, Obesity. An excessive accumulation of fat is a morbid condition that may be attended with a variety of important derangements. A disposition to obesity is at times congenital, at other times hereditary; it frequently occurs already in childhood; it is much less frequent after the period of pubescence is passed and is most frequently noticed in advanced manhood. As a rule, women are more frequently subject to fatness than men. An accumlulation of fat in the subcutaneous cellular tissue is often so excessive that the skin is an inch in thickness and the circumference of the body becomes monstrous. The thickest layers of fat are found on the breasts, abdomen and thighs. There are fat persons weighing from four to six hundred pounds. Adiposis presupposes a peculiar disposition; many persons can eat and drink as much as they please, they remain thin nevertheless; many, on the contrary, eat scantily, are a prey to depressing emotions, and yet grow or remain fat. Excessive fatness may be caused by a too copious supply of food, or too much fat or substantial food, and a simultaneous deficiency of exercise in the open air; drinking beer and spirits to excess; sleeping too long; mental indolence; abstemiousness from sexual Obesitas, Adiposis, Polysarcia, Obesity. 715 intercourse, want of active labor, disposition to idlQness, a phllegmatic temperament. An excessive deposition of fat may likewise be occasioned by castration, or at the critical age, after severe diseases, etc. An accumulation of fat in the subcutaneous cellular tissue generally takes place very gradually: single parts of the body grow fuller and rounder, the white or yellowish skin becomes smooth and, in consequence of the increased secretion of sebum, glistens like fat and has a fatty feel. The more the body increases in volume, the more numerous become the semi-circular furrows in various parts of the body, for instance in the umbilical region, in the riddle of the thighs, at the nape of the neck, under the chin. If the accumulation of fat becomes excessive, the neck vanishes more and more, the abdomen bulges very strikingly, and the gluteal region expands more and more in breadth and becomes more and more repulsive. In consequence of the excessive fulness of the abdomen, the diaphragm is pushed up more and more, and the cavity of the thorax being encroached upon, the lungs are compressed. The natural consequence of this condition is a striking dyspnea with which very fat persons are more or less afflicted. This dyspnrea embarrasses them in walking, going upstairs, ascending an eminence or performing the slightest bodily labor. Fat persons generally have to lie on their backs, in which position they snore, have frihtful dreams which often cause them to cry out suddenly as if tormented by anxiety. The compression of the lungs, the encroachment upon the thoracic cavity and the consequent dyspncea cause disturbances in the circulation characterized by palpitation of the heart, syncope, determination of blood to the head or liver, stomach, kidneys, uterus, etc. At the commencement of the disease, the digestion is generally yery active and frequently degenerates in canine hunger; after the fatness has acquired a high degree, the patients often become dyspeptic, are tormented by flatulence, acidity of the stomach, eructations. In consequence of the resulting congestion of the stomach and liver, the slightest meal leads to oppression of the stomach and nausea which frequently increases to sour or bilious vomiting. Such' patients are not troubled with costiveness, and frequently have two or three papescent evacuations in the course of the day. The urine is frequently cloudy, opalescent; after bodily work, the emission of urine is attended with a burning sensation in the urethra, and a quantity of uric acid is deposited. 716 Obesitas, Adiposis, Polysarcia, Obesity. The perspiration has a peculiar, sometimes a rancid smell, or like the odor of a goat. In the above-mentioned semi-circular furrows or folds the frequent sweating causes an erythema which afterwards changes to a moist and exceedingly fetid intertrigo. This may likewise take place under the breasts, between the thighs and pudendum, and even at the anus. The pulse is mostly feeble, small and easily compressible, the sensitiveness to cold is much less, the menses are scanty, the sexual instinct frigid or even extinct; women are often sterile. As a rule, fat persons are indolent, apathetic; they dread bodily exercise, even a little mental labor; their muscles are deficient in tone, their senses are dull, their intellect is torpid, and they are inclined to sleep. These phenomena are not, however, without exception; a great many fat persons remain quick, of active mind and body; we have known a fat old gentleman who danced more vigorously than his young associates and, not feeling tired, at the same time entertained his company with the most piquant anecdotes. Polysarcia is frequently attended with a disposition to parasitical growths, such as lipoma, cancerous depositions, or with a tendency to scurvy or dropsy. While teething, fat children are in danger from congestions of the head. It is very seldom that they live to an old age. Fat persons are often suddenly struck down with apoplexy and paralysis of the heart. Intercurrent diseases often assume a dangerous character on account of the existing disturbances in the respiration and circulation. Fat persons are frequently anemic; in such a case, especially after severe diseases, hydrpemic conditions frequently develop themselves which it is difficult to distinguish from morbid fatness. Fat persons are frequently attacked with boils and carbuncles; the latter frequently run a dangerous course, causing vast destructions in the subcutaneous cellular tissue. Acute diseases are often succeeded by dropsy or marasmus. On this account a good deal of cautious reserve should be used in establishing a prognosis in high grades of polysarcia, more especially if an atheromatous degeneration of the blood-vessels or a fatty degeneration of the heart may be suspected. Treatment. An excessive deposition of fat is an anomaly in the sphere of nutrition which, in our opinion, depends upon a weakness of the assimilative functions. In the case of children it is frequently caused by over-feeding, and in the case of adults an exces Obesitas, Adiposis, Polysarcia, Obesity. 717 sive supply of nourishment is likewise the frequent cause of fatness. In either case the overloading of the digestive organs weakens them, the food is not adequately transformed into firm constituents, such as muscular fibre, osseous tissue, but, remaining at a low stage of assimilation, is transformed into carbo-hydrates. Starting from this point of view, the treatment of adiposis should, in our judgment, aim at invigorating the assimilative energy of the organism and at the same time preventing an excessive supply of fat-making food. It is a well-known fact that adiposis cannot be arrested by any known method of treatment. For, independently of the weakness of the assimilative functions, we frequently have to contend against other congenital, hereditary or individual, known or unknown tendencies which favor the excessive deposition of fat and which it is either difficult or impossible to control. For this reason, when treating polysarcia, we confine ourselves to such dietetic and hygienic measures as will quicken the metamorphosis of the tissues and invigorate the assimilative functions; at the same time we resort to such internal remedies as will correct constitutional tendencies and promote nutrition. In order to accomplish this object with as much speed and certainty as possible, we prescribe regular meals and a moderate diet, but sufficient to satisfy the appetite; such patients had better confine themselves to lean and young meat, with fresh vegetables and salad, and abstain from rich soups, fat gravies, fat farinaceous food, fat fish, potatoes, beans and peas, quantities of bread, beer, spirits; they must likewise avoid coffee, tea and tobacco, for these substances retard digestion and interfere with the metamorphosis of the tissues. The best beverage for such patients is fresh water, or wine and water, acidulated alkaline beverages with or without wine, water mixed with acidulated jellies. For breakfast we recommend weak beef-broth or vegetable soups without fat, or skimmed milk with a little sugar; eggs and chocolate have to be avoided, they contain too much fatty matter. For dessert we permit fresh or stewed fruit, and for supper a light soup and stewed fruit. Food spiced with a little pepper agrees with such patients, provided it is not fat. Water-ices are likewise allowable, ice-cream is too rich and must be avoided. Together with these dietetic arrangements which have to be strictly obeyed if they are to do any good, the following rules are of special importance. In order to stimulate the metamorphosis of 718 Obesitas, Adiposis, Polysarcia, Obesity. the tissues and secure the introduction of as much oxygen as possible into the organism, fat persons should walk or ride on horseback whenever their time and circumstances will permit; riding in a carriage is of no use to them; active exercise in the open air, especially in the morning and evening, promotes in a high degree the assimilation of food and the metamorphosis of the tissues. It is well if, during their walk, they frequently drink cold water, rest a little when tired and then continue their walk. The more exercise they take in the open air, the more healthy the blood becomes and the more the fat disappears. They had better sleep as little as possible, and avoid inaction as much as they can. Active exercise at home, while attending to their domestic affairs, is advisable; idleness promotes the deposition of fat. Swimming, riding on horseback, hunting, cold ablutions, cold baths, in bad weather walking up and down in the room at a rapid rate; gymnastic exercises, if resorted to in systematic order, impart great activity to the metamorphosis of the tissues. These measures, if carried out strictly, are often alone sufficient to arrest the tendency to fatness and diminish the amount of fat. The so-called panting-cure, which has been frequently resorted to in modern times, rests almost upon the same principles and has produced good results in some cases. In pursuing a strict diet, the main point is for the patients to persevere until the mass of fat has considerably decreased and they have gained in agility and ease of motion. In pursuing a dietetic treatment, the bodily strength increases instead of diminishing, the blood does not grow paler but it attains a higher degree of oxygenation, and the weight and circumference of the body decrease, whereas all the physical and psychical functions become more animated. In conducting the internal treatment, we pay particular attention to the disturbances in the respiration and circulation, the functions of the stomach and intestinal canal, the quality of the blood and the other coexisting abnormal symptoms. Pat persons are often short-breathed, especially when going upstairs or performing the slightest bodily work, or walking a little faster thanr usual. In such cases a careful exploration of the thorax and abdomen becomes indispensable. If, on percussing the region of the heart, we discover a dulness over a larger surface, the impulse of the heart remaining vigorous and the sounds of the heart loud and distinct, we infer the existence of a larger abnormal deposition of fat about the heart or in the mediastinum, in con 720 Uremia. Attention has likewise to be paid to the liver. This viscus is likewise liable to fatty degeneration giving rise to digestive derangements, dyspnoea, pressure in the epigastrium. The treatment for fatty liver has been indicated in the chapter on diseases of the liver. Other conditions which sometimes accompany fatty degenerations of internal viscera, or adiposis generally, such as: hyperemria of the liver, palpitation of the heart, fainting fits, sudden rush of blood to the head or chest and other symptoms of plethora; anemia, dyspepsia, intertrigo, etc., require the same treatment as is found indicated in the respective chapters where these conditions are spoken of. Adiposis is sometimes benefitted by the use of mineral springs. Patients of this kind should never visit spas for purposes of health without the advice and consent of their family-physician. Chalybeate springs may be advisable in some cases; in others Sulphursprings, in others effervescent waters, and in others again Iodinesprings. In all cases let the diet and general hygiene of the patient be regulated by his physician. H.] t5. TUrwemia. [Anatomical Characteristics. The cadavers of uraemic patients do not exhibit any striking alterations by which the grave symptoms during the course of the disease could be satisfactorily accounted for. The brain and spinal marrow do not show any pathological alterations of tissue, nor any constantly occurring anomalies in the condition of their blood and vessels. The lungs are sometimes infiltrated as in pneumonia, the bowels are injected, sometimes covered with follicular ulcerations, the kidneys are frequently hypermemic, or inflamed, or degenerated. The serous effusions which not unfrequently occur in the extremities, as well as the mucus of the stomach and the secretions in the lungs have been found to produce an alkaline reaction and to contain ammonia. The blood sometimes has a violet color and, in many cases, shows greater coagulability and an increase of fibrin. According to Frerichs, the blood contains in all cases where the characteristic symptoms of ursemia are present, carbonate of ammonia in varying quantities, sometimes manifesting its presence by its disagreeable odor and. at other times effervescing by the addition of muriatic acid. Uraemia. 721 ltiology. Uraemia is only observed in the course of other diseases. It may be caused by obstructions in the secretion of urine, as may occur during an intense hyperenmia of the kidneys, nephritis, extensive infiltration of the renal canaliculi in Bright's disease, in the course of scarlatina, etc.; or in degeneration of the kidneys by renal calculi, carcinoma, atrophy, etc., or during the shrinking of the substance of the kidneys in old people; or it may be caused by obstructions in the excretion of the urine, in consequence of pressure upon both ureters, or in consequence of obstacles at the sphincter of the bladder or in the urethra, as in the case of stone or gravel, or from hypertrophy of the prostate, strictures of the urethra, etc. Uremlia may likewise occur during the last months of pregnancy, during or after parturition, in the course of scarlatina, cholera, etc., or from effusion of the urine between the tissues as during operations, wounds, injuries, perforations, etc. Symptomss. According to the course and intensity of the symptoms we distinguish acute and chronic uremia. Acute uraemia is almost always preceded by a diminished secretion of urine, or the secretion of urine meets with difficulties or is obstructed; at times there is only a reabsorption of the urine in consequence of effusion of urine into the cellular tissue. The first signs of uremic intoxication of the blood often consist in vomiting and diarrhea, or only in vomiting, sometimes in apathy and drowsiness, or in headache with vomiting, weakness of sight and bland delirium; or convulsions and amaurosis set in all at once, and are commonly followed by uremia of the highest degree of intensity. At other times the invasion of urmmia takes place with a violent chill followed by intense fever with typhoid symptoms. If cerebral symptoms set in, they generally point to the presence of adynamia; we notice a dulness of perception, a difficulty of collecting one's mind, stupefaction, somnolence or a deep sopor; the delirium is generally of the bland or moaning kind. In rare cases only there is great restlessness, an excited state of the mind, loud delirium, desire' to escape, etc. The cerebral symptoms are frequently associated. with amblyopia, vertigo, mistiness of sight, or even real amaurosis,, deficient irritability of the pupil with hardness of hearing and buzzing in the ears, gritting of the teeth or trismus. The buccal cavity and teeth are generally dry, the thirst is very moderate, the appetite is entirely gone, the voice is rough or husky, the respiration accelerated, dyspnceic or stertorous. The expired air has often the smell of urea or contains traces of ammonia. 46 724 Uremia. time present, the accumulations of serum under the skin and the various transudations contain urea and carbonate of ammonia. The course of ammoniaemia is either acute or chronic; its symptomns bear the greatest resemblance to uraemia with which it is frequently confounded. The above-mentioned pathognomonic symptoms give the exact diagnostic distinctions between these two conditions. Uremic symptoms frequently occur without any symptoms of ammoniaemia; but the latter never exist without the former. Acute ammoniamia likewise sometimes runs its. course with the suddenness of lightning, especially in the case of anmemic and exceedingly debilitated patients. Vomitirg sets in, or vomiting and diarrhcea, or diarrhcea without vomiting, or else a sudden dysentery followed by -a rapidly increasing sopor and death in twelve, twenty-four or forty-eight hours. In most cases acute ammonimaeia, if it runs a moderate course, lasts a few weeks; but the possibility of sudden effusions into the pleura, pericardium, cerebral ventricles, etc.: the possible supervention of croupous pneumonia or acute cedema of the lungs, etc., impart a high degree of danger to the disease. Chills frequently occur during the course of acute ammonisemia, frequently with typical regularity and bearing a highly deceptive resemblance to intermittent fever. Chronic uraemia as well as chronic ammonisemia may last months and even years; they may get better and worse again according as the determining causes decrease or increase in virulence. The worst cases generally occur in consequence of ischuria or anuria. If the desire to urinate can be restored, the danger is momentarily removed. Dryness of the mucous membrane of the mouth and fauces, "as though every atom of moisture had been absorbed by blotting paper, the mucous membrane appearing dry and glistening;" hoarseness or even aphonia; the plainly ammoniacal odor of the expired air; a constant aversion to, meat; livid color of the skin, a progressive emaciation and muscular debility constitute, according to Professor Jaksch, reliable diagnostic signs of ammoniaemia which are very seldom observed in cases of uremia. Convulsions, amaurosis and dropsy have never been seen by Jaksch in the course of ammoniaemia. Hlowever, since this condition never occurs except in the course of uraemia, we hold that the above-described phenomena may likewise characterize a condition of uremia. Light and moderate, even severe and very acute cases of uremia and ammoniaemia frequently terminate in recovery, provided the 730 Pyaemia. disease is sometimes very rapid, This is most frequently the case in puerperal fever; the patients are attacked with chills and intense fever-heat which does not remit; they become delirious, lose their consciousness, lapse into a deep sopor and die in forty-eight or sixty hours. In such cases pysemic localizations are frequently met with in the brain or lungs. A milder course of the disease is marked by distinct remissions lasting from ten to sixteen hours in benignant and only three to four hours in malignant cases. The shorter the remission the more dangerous the course of the disease. The more violent the fever: the more imminent the danger of internal or external inflammations, the shorter the course of the disease and the more frequent a fatal termination. In moderate forms of the disease it may last four, five or six, weeks and terminate in recovery. Convalescence is however in all cases a slow process, slower even than after typhus. In cases running a rapid course the prognosis is generally fatal. In a mild form of the disease a good deal depends upon the circumstance whether the various manifestations of the pathological process can be improved. If we succeed in moderating the inflammatory symptoms and sustaining the strength of the patient, the prognosis is usually favorable. Sopor, constant diarrhoea, hemorrhages, decubitus, paralysis of the sphincters do not admit of a favorable prognosis. A diphtheritic change in existing wounds is likewise a symptom of very bad omen. Treatment. If we deal with morbid processes in the course of which pyaemia may be apprehended (see etiology), we must take care to prevent this result. To this end existing abscesses have to be opened in due season, wounds have to be kept clean and the access of air into such cavities has to be carefully guarded against. At the same time the sick-room has to be frequently ventilated, over-crowding with patients has to be avoided, cleanliness and good nursing have to be seen to. If, in the course of the above-mentioned diseases repeated shiverings or chills set in, they always denote the beginning of pyaemia; the symptoms are evidently of a typhoid character, associated with great debility and dissolution of the blood. For this reason, with a view of preventing as speedily as possible the great loss of strength or correcting the fluids, we resort at once to Quinine 1, a dose every two hours, and continue this remedy until the chills cease and the violence of the fever abates. Pyemia. 731 If a high grade of anaemia and great prostration manifest themselves during the chills, it is well to substitute Chlinm arsenicosumn 1, a dose every two hours. The further course of the pysemic process resembles that of typhus and the subsequent treatment is likewise like that of typhus. The more violent the paroxysms of fever and the longer the exacerbations last, the more imminent becomes the danger of inflammation. On this account the physician should be unremitting in his attention; he should frequently examine the surface of the body, and especially the abdomen; a physical exploration of the thorax is likewise indispensable. If the sensorium is depressed, it is important that, during such explorations, the frequency of the respirations or any impediments to' the act of breathing, or a distortion of the features when pressure is made upon the abdomen or muscles, should be carefully noted. Inflammations in the subcutaneous cellular tissue, or in the muscles, in internal viscera, in the joints, never fail to occur, and they have to be removed as speedily as possible. For the treatment to be pursued in such cases we refer the reader to the chapters on meningitis, parotitis, arthrocace, pneumonia, puerperal fever, typhus. Of excellent effect in the course of pyaemia are ablutions of the body with dilute vinegar, two or three times a day. If pustules show themselves on different parts of the body, they can be destroyed and their increase in number prevented by rubbing the parts with coarse, wet cloths. Larger pustules have to be opened with a lancet. For the aphthae or diphtheritic exudations in the mouth and fauces we have in vain used Iodine, Mere., Borax and Hepar sulph. The much vaunted Kali chloricum and Arg. nilr. likewise proved fruitless. Generally these processes only cease with the cessation of pyemia. In the case of aphthae the frequent rinsing or washing of the mouth with cold water; and in the case of diphtheritic exudations frictions of the buccal and pharyngeal mucous membrane with dry linen rags, or which have been dipped in cold water, render excellent service. Abscesses have to be sought for with great care and, even if deep-seated, have to be emptied as speedily as possible. The dietetic and general precautionary measures to be adopted during convalescence are the same as those that have been recommended for abdominal typhus. After the termination of the disease a high degree of anemia 7^32 Septicamia. and muscular debility generally remains. For the former we give Ferr. metall., carbon., or lacticum 1; for the latter China 1 or Quinine 1, two or three doses a day, together with a strengthening diet. Country-air is well calculated to promote convalescence. In the British Journal Vol. 26, page 480, Lachesis is recommended for pyaemia. This agent may be adapted to some cases. In our hands a case of pyremic phlebitis of the left lower extremity promptly yielded to Belladonna preceded by a few doses of Aconite; and a case of pneumonic pyemia to Tartar emetic. H.] 17. Septiceemia. Putrid Decomposition of the Blood. [Anatomical Characteristics. The blood is of dark color, and does not turn red when exposed to the air; it loses its coagulibility either totally or only partially, putrefies more rapidly and, in many cases, has an acid reaction. The serum has frequently a bloody color, the blood-corpuscles are partially dissolved and the blood-vessels are penetrated by their contents. In the interior of the tissues we frequently discover infiltrations with dissolved htematin. Etiology. In most cases septicemia proceeds from gangrened localities or is occasioned by local processes of decomposition or transformation into ichor. Not unfrequently it is the consequence of contagious or miasmatic influences, as in the plague, dysentery, etc. Or it may arise by the decomposition of substances that ought to have been excreted but remain behind in the organism, as in acute gastric and intestinal catarrhs, ichorous exudations, etc. In many cases the etiological origin of the disease remains unknown, in which case the septic infection of the blood has to be exclusively ascribed to the genius epidemicus or to endemic influences with which we are unacquainted. Symptorms. The septic condition sets in with or without precursory symptoms. The precursory symptoms consist in weariness and heaviness of the body; in dull headache accompanied by a sense of dreariness, dulness and apathetic indifference; in restless and unrefreshing sleep; in dull, wandering pains in the limbs; in pressure at the stomach and in the loins; in loss of appetite with a sensation of repletion, and with an insipid, bitter or foul taste; in frequent chills with fugitive heat and occasional outbreak of sweat; in the secretion of strong-smelling urine and in 734 Septicamia. overwhelming virulence, so that a fatal termination takes place already in two or three days. Some cases run a milder course for two, three or four weeks and upwards, and sometimes recover. Cases arising in consequence of a contagium or miasm or from unknown causes, generally set in with precursory symptoms; the intensity of the pathognomonic phenomena mostly depends upon the violence of the exciting cause or upon constitutional tendencies. If the prevailing type of disease is of a malignant character, and the individual has a feeble, sickly or debilitated constitution, the phenomena of septicaemia are generally very violent and the disease runs a rapid course. The most dangerous cases are, if the fever remits but little or not at all, the prostration is excessive, and the septic phenomena make their appearance at an early period. Nevertheless, even the most threatening symptoms should not be sufficient to discourage the physician: as in typhus, so in septicaemia,' the disease may have reached the acme of its intensity, when all at once the fever abates while copious fetid sweats break out, or frequent discharges of urine take place, or bloody, also ashcolored and fetid stools are passed, after which the disease progresses slowly towards final recovery. In most cases death takes place by exhaustion, or in consequence of intense and frequent hemorrhages, or by paralysis, gangrenous decubitus, gangrene in other parts of the body, or by effusions of a bloody serum into the various cavities of the body. As after-diseases we notice a long-lasting weakness of the whole organism, obstinate derangements of the digestive functions or in the composition of the blood, a high degree of anaemia, hectic fever, a cachectic appearance followed by dropsy or marasmus. As a rule the prognosis is doubtful. Very acute cases with trifling or no remissions are almost always fatal. Frequent hemorrhages; foul-smelling excretions, a fetid breath and perspiration, soporous conditions, the access of gangrenous decubitus, partial paralysis, rapid prostration with collapse of the features, discoloration of the petechive, subsultus tendinum and grasping at flocks, a vitiated constitution and depressing social circumstances are unfavorable prognostic signs. Treatment. When treating ichorous abscesses, ulcers or ichorous wounds, or any other pathological processes where gangrene has supervened, we must always be prepared for the supervention of septic phenomena. In many cases septicemia can be prevented by diligent washing of the abscesses, ulcers, wounds or gangrenous (Addenda from KAFKA and from personal experience.) [ls. Gastromalaeia. Softening of the Stomach. Anatomical Characteristics. In the case of children the mucous coat of the stomach, especially in the region of the cul-desac, is found transformed into a gelatinous, colorless pulp which, in the case of adults, has a dirty-brown color. There are no signs of gastritis or ulceration. During the formative stage of the softening the mucous coat is interstitially distended, soft and lax; it is easily destroyed by scraping it with the back of the scalpel and can no longer, as in its normal condition, be detached in patches from the submucous cellular tissue. Inl a high degree of softening, all the coats of the stomach decay and the shape of the stomach is sustained only by the thin, gauzy peritoneum which tears by the slightest touch; or else the stomach is perforated and its contents are poured into the abdominal cavity or, if the cesophagus is involved in the softening, into the thorax, more especially into its left half. If the serous coat is intact, the stomach is mostly distended with gas and chiefly contains a badly-colored, sour-smelling fluid. The softened parts are never sharply circumscribed; the softening always commences in the mucous coat whence it spreads outwardly, frequently drawing the cesophagus, the spleen and the left half of the diaphragm into the morbid process. Etiology. Gastromalacia most commonly attacks children of a year old, whose constitutions have become deteriorated by improper nourishment, by disease or general neglect. It most frequently occurs after weaning. Secondarily it is apt to set in as a sequel of cholera infantum; sometimes it develops itself in the course of hydrocephalus and meningitis. In the case of adults, gastromalacia always constitutes a secondary process developing itself in the course of malignant typhus, pysemia, puerperal fever, acute tuberculosis, tubercular meningitis, etc. The circumstance that softening of the stomach has been met with in the case of perfectly healthy individuals who suddenly died shortly after a meal, and that the stomachs of infants at the breast 47 (731) 738 Gastromalacia. are always found in a state of softening if they contain milk shortly after the infants' death, has led modern pathologists to assert that softening of the stomach is under all circumstances a simple postmortem appearance. It is possible and probable that many cases of gastromalacia are simple post-mortem appearances in the cadaver; on the other hand it is -likewise certain that many forms of gastromalacia have been correctly diagnosed as independent diseases which were verified as such by post-mortem examinations. Symptoms. The gastromalacia of children, as an idiopathic disease, at times manifests itself in the form of cholera, at other times as a gastritis, again as an acute hydrocephalus and finally with the symptoms of a typhoid condition. The cholera-form of the disease sets in with frequent vomiting of greenish, mostly sour-smelling slimy fluids; simultaneouslyoccurring alvine discharges having a green color, of watery consistence, sour-smelling and corroding the anus; unquenchable thirst, sudden collapse, fainting turns, convulsions, coldness of the extremities, speedy supervention of sopor; such an attack generally sets in without any precursory symptoms and with so much violence that the little patients are either saved or else succumb to the attack in twenty-four hours. Or the symptoms of gastritis may set in suddenly without any precursory signs: the children are very feverish, cry incessantly, want to drink and to be carried about all the time, belch up wind frequently, vomit frequently without any relief, and have watery discharges from the bowels, which corrode the anus, are attended with severe pain and cause the little patients to draw their limbs up to the abdomen. At the same time the region of the stomach is very painful, exceedingly sensitive to contact, the abdomen is hot and distended, the skin much warmer than usual. If we do not succeed in speedily arresting the attack, the patients emaciate very rapidly, the features collapse, the skin gradually cools off, the crying of the patients gradually changes to a continual moaning, and they lapse into sopor or convulsions. The hydrocephaloid as well as the typhoid form never set in without precursory symptoms. Most commonly they consist in continual diarrhcea, frequent eructations, occasional sour vomiting with sleeplessness, peevish or very irritable mood, pallor and expression of suffering of the countenance, loss of appetite. In a few days the fever increases, the vomiting and diarrhceic discharges become more frequent, the abdomen becomes bloated; the head, Softening of the Stomach. 739 which had been hot hitherto, and the extremities gradually cool off, whereas the trunk and especially the abdomen feel hot; very soon the little patients become apathetic and, with their eyes half closed, lie in a soporous condition, from which, however, they are easily roused when spoken to. They hurriedly grasp the tumbler, hold on to it with both hands and are unwilling to relinquish their hold. Very often they start from their slumber with a cry, and, after looking about wildly, they relapse into their sopor. At the same time the children become rapidly emaciated, especially about the neck; the pulse becomes smaller and more hurried, the alvine evacuations acquire a foul odor, become watery, are destitute of fsecal matter and distinguished from the urine only by their cadaverous smell; the respiration becomes short and labored, and is often accompanied by a.tormenting cough. Finally there is complete loss of consciousness and sensibility, the eyeballs are distorted, spasms or convulsions set in, with symptoms of the most profound exhaustion. This hydrocephaloid condition is distinguished from true hydrocephalus by the absence of the pathognomonic signs of the latter, namely: rigidity of the nape of the neck, the piercing cri encdphalique, boring with the head into the pillow backwards,.the diminished frequency of the pulse and respiration, the retraction of the abdomen, the dilatation of the pupils and the automatic grasping at the head. If the above-mentioned precursory symptoms usher in a typhoid condition, the children have frequent attacks of vomiting and diarrhcea while the supervening fever very soon reaches a high degree of intensity; they do not sleep, the tongue and lips become dry, the nostrils have a sooty appearance; there is an expression of suffering and anxiety in the countenance; the little patients become rapidly emaciated, the skin looks pallid, they are very restless, want to be carried all the time and moan unceasingly. At last they quiet down, become cooler, and, owing to the ansemia of the brain, lapse into a soporous condition which is generally a precursor of approaching death. In some cases the symptoms are less striking and the disease runs a chronic course; the diarrhcea and vomiting, the intense thirst, the bloating and painfulness of the abdomen, the rapid emaciation and the gradual prostration most commonly set in without fever, and, unless the disease is arrested, the patients slowly die of exhaustion. Softening of the Stomach. 741 If these symptoms are accompanied by sopor instead of convulsions, we resort to Tart. emet., same dose. These three remedies are perfectly reliable and sometimes effect an improvement after the first dose. If the disease breaks out in the form of gastritis, Bellad. 3 is a sovereign remedy which speedily moderates both the pains and the fever and arrests the vomiting and diarrhcea. We give this remedy in solution, a teaspoonful every fifteen minutes, extending the intervals as soon as an improvement becomes apparent. If no improvement sets in in two or three hours, we resort to the Sulphate of Atropine 3 same dose and form, with which we have often succeeded in subduing the most dangerous symptoms. At the same time we apply cold water compresses to the region of the stomach, and if the abdomen is painful and bloated, likewise to the latter. If the whole body is very hot, we resort to general ablutions with dilute vinegar. If, after the termination of the acute stage, the patients are collapsed, with cold extremities, frequent diarrhceic stools, sopor or convulsions, Ars. 3 or Laches. 6 may be resorted to, a few drops of wine or brandy and water may be administered, the cold extremities may be rubbed with warm wine or brandy and enveloped in warm cloths, after which a favorable reaction and a general improvement will sometimes set in even in cases that had seemed hopeless. If the disease breaks out in the form of an hydrocephaloid, we are guided in the selection of a remedy by the febrile phenomena, the evacuations, the strength of the patient and the cerebral symptoms. As long as there is fever and the evacuations continue frequent, the children retain their strength, the brain is free, but the head is hot and heavy, we give Bellad. 3 in solution, every hour. If the extremities are cool, the children are pale and languid, the trunk is hot, the alvine evacuations are copious and symptoms of sopor set in, we give Verat. alb. 3 in the same dose and form. If collapse and signs of insensibility show themselves, with sudden cries and starting from the deep sopor, or even convulsions, we depend chiefly upon Arsen. 3 in solution, every half hour or hour. Tart. emet. 3,: and Laches. 6, may likewise prove useful in such eases. For typhoid gastromalacia we recommend Phosphor acid. 3 or Rhus tox. 3 in solution, every hour. 744 Goitre, Bronchocele. terminating in tubercular phthisis; in such cases the structure of the goitre, from the incipiency of the disorganization, was identical with that of the tubercular deposition. Treatment. For all practical purposes it is sufficient to distinguish the simple vascular enlargement of goitre, and the hypertrophy of the thyroid parenchyma. The cartilaginous, schirrous and tubercular disorganization may resist all treatment, although not in all cases. In unacclimated individuals first coming under the influence of lime water, we have sometimes succeeded in arresting an incipient goitre by causing the patient to consume quantities of lemon-juice, sour fruit, and to drink water acidulated with lemon-juice or vinegar. A simple vascular enlargement of the thyroid gland often yields to Aconite alone; sometimes Aconite and Iodine have to be'used in alternation internally and compresses of a weak solution of Iodine may have to be applied externally. We sometimes employ with a good deal of success compresses of bay-rum with which the tincture of Iodine is mixed in the proportion of one drachm of Iodine to a quart-bottle of bay-rum; a weak solution of Iodine being at the same time used internally; even very hard, cartilaginous goitres sometimes yield to this treatment. The tincture of Iodine rubbed upon the goitre, has been of comparatively little use in our hands. We have derived more benefit from the Iodide of Potassium-ointment and a solution of five grains of the salt used internally every day. Another excellent application is an ointment of the Iodide of Mercury. Some persons are very sensitive to the action of this ointment, and it has therefore to be used with great care. Even one-sixteenth of a grain of the Iodide has been known to blister the skin most shockingly. We have succeeded in removing very large and rather soft goitres with an ointment containing only the one hundredth part of a grain of the Iodide. There are cases of goitre where Spongia, or roast sponge, has to be given internally and an ointment of Spongia has at the same time to be applied externally. In other cases Calcarea and Hepar sulphuris may be required to act upon the constitutional disposition. Goitre is very apt to reappear even after it had seemed to have completely disappeared under the influence of appropriate treatment. I.} ALPHABETICAL INDEX OF THE DISEASES TREATED OF IN THESE TWO VOLUMES. (The Roman figure II refers to the diseases described in the second volume.) Page PaNe Abscess, =Psoas, see Psoitis. Bladder, inflammation of the.......... 625 Abscess, retropharyngeal............... 294, paralysis of the..................... 634 Acid stomach, see Catarrh of the sto- Blennorrhcea of the conjunctiva, acute 242 mach, acute and chronic...359 and 379 --- - chronic 243 Acne II...................................... 478 of the urethra II..................... 1 - rosacea II............................. 482 of the vagina, see Gonorrhoea of Adiposis II................................ 714 the female and leucorrhaea. Adipositas cordis II.................... 382 Blood, deficient, II.................. 687 Albuminuria, see Bright's disease. -, pale, II........................ 687 Amenorrhcea II........................... 55 Bloody urine........................... 629 Ammoniaemia, see Uraemia. Bones, inflammation of, II............ 410 Amygdalitis................................ 284 Bottle-nose II.......................... 482 Amyloid liver....................... 541 Bowels, inflammation of the........... 435 Aniemia II................................. 687, occlusion, obstruction of the!.. 479 of the brain........................... 65 -, stenosis of the...................... 479, congenital, II...................... 701 Brain, anaemia of the..................... 65 -,consecutive, II.................. 709 -, concussion of the.................. 92, secondary, II....................... 711 -, congestion of the, see Brain, Anasarca, see Dropsy. hyperamia of the. Aneurysms II............................... 436 -, dropsy of the, see HydrocephaAngina catarrhalis....................... 281 lus.......................... 99 - parotidea............................. 314, hyperemia ofthe........... 57 pectoris II......................*..... 405 -, Inflammation of the............ 86 tonsillaris............................ 284 -, yellow softening of the............99 Anthrax II................................. 503 Breasts, see Mamme. Aphthae...................................... 279 Bright's disease of the kidneys........ 596 Apoplexy, cerebral........................ 70 Bronchia, acute inflammation of the, Arteries, inflammation of the, II...... 436 II.................................... 14 Arthritis II...................................640, chronic inflammation of the, II. 210 deformons II......................... 634, dilatation of the, II............... 234 Ascarides..................................... 493 Bronchitis, acute, II..................... 164 A scites, see Dropsy., chronic, II..2............ 230 Asiatic cholera II........................ 613 Bronchiectasia II......................... 234 Asthma II................................... 311 Bronchocele II......................... 736 Ataxia, progressive locomotor II...... 425 Calculi, biliari............................... 564 Atrophy of the liver, acute yellow... 542, renal.......................... 614 Aurigo, see Jaundice. Cancer, see also Carcinoma. Barber's itch II....................... 480 - aquaticus............................. 307 Biliari calculi............................... 564 - of the mammae II................ 100 Bilious fever........................... 422 - of the womb I....................... $1 (745) 716 Alphabetical Index. Page Page Capsular hepatitis......................... 531 Ccecum, inflammation of the........... 440 Carbuncle II.......................... 503 Cold in the head........................... 263 Carcinoma of the liver.................. 569 Colic............................................ 468 of the stomach....................... 375 Concussion of the brain.................. 92,see also Cancer. Congestion of the brain, see Brain, Cardiiagia..................................... 391 hyperaemia of the. Carditis II................................. 347 of the lungs II..................... 150 Caries of the vertebrse, ee Spondy- Congestive chill, see Intermittent litis................................ 120 fever. of vertebrae, see also Pott's dis- Conjunctiva, acute blennorrhcea of ease. the............................... 242 Catalepsy................................... 177 -, chronic blennorrhcea of the..... 243 Catamenia, see Menses., catarrhal inflammation of the 237 Cataract.................................... 256, scrofulous inflammation of the 249 Catarrh..................................... 263 Conjunctivitis blennorrhoica........... 242 -, acute laryngotracheal, II........ 107 catarrhalis........................... 237, chronic laryngotracheal, II...... 129 scrofulosa............................. 249, chronic intestinal................... 413 Consumption, dorsal...................... 129, intestinal........................ 404 Convulsions of infants and partu-, simple intestinal.................... 406 rient women, see Eclampsia infanof the stomach, acute............. 359 tum and parturientium. - - - chronic......... 379 Copper-nose II......................... 482 of the urethra II.................. 1 Cornea, inflammation of the............ 256 of the vagina II................. 20 Corneitis............................... 256 Catarrhus intestinalis..................... 404 Coryza...................................... 263 - ventriculi acutus................... 359 Coxalgia II................................. 427 ventriculi chronicus................ 379 Coxarthrocace II......................... 427 Catarrhal fever.......................... 422 Critical Age II............................. 87 Cellular tissue of the intestinal canal, Croup, membranous, II.................. 112 inflammation of the..................... 451 Cystitis....................................... 625 Cellulitis...................................... 451 Cystoplegia............................. 634 Cephalalgia................................... 220 Cystospasmus............................... 632 Cephalhematoma........................... 218 Dandriff II..................................470 Cerebritis, (see also meningitis)...... 94 Debility, see Anmemia. Cerebro-spinal meningitis............... 130 Degeneration of the heart, fatty, II. 382 Chancre II.................................... 543 Delirium tremens II...................... 463 Change of life II............................ 87 Dentition, see Eclampsia infantum. Chest, dropsy of the, II.................. 342 Deranged stomach, see Catarrh of the Chicken-pox, see Variola. stomach, acute and chronic....359, 379 Child-bed fever, see Puerperal fever. Derbyshire neck II........................ 743 Chlorosis II................................. 624 Diabetes melitus........................... 617 Cholelithiasis................................ 564 Diaphragm, hernia of the, II.......... 324 Cholera, Asiatic, II..................... 613 ~, inflammation of the, II........... 322 infantum............................... 413 Diaphragmitis II......................... 322 sporadica............................... 408 Diarrhcea,-for the various forms of Cholerine...................................... 408 diarrhoea, see Catarrh, intestinal, 404 Chorea...................................... 170 to 413 Cirrhosis of the liver..................... 539 -, chronic, see also Catarrh, inClap, see Gonorrhcea. testinal..................1......... 413 Climacteric period II..................... 87 Dilatation of the heart II............... 381 Climaxis II............................. 87 - of the veins II........................ 438 748 Alphabetical Index. Page Page Helminthiasis........................ 492 Inflammation of the cellular tissue Hemicrania............................ 221 of the intestinal canal........ 451 Hemiplegia, see Paralysis. of the caecum........................ 440 Hemorrhage in the kidneys............. 609 - of the conjunctiva, blennorrheeic 242i - from the lungs II................... 154 - - - catarrhal..... 237 from the nose......................269 - scrofulous.... 249 from the stomach.................. 383 - of the cornea......................... 256 from the womb II.................. 66 - of the diaphragm II................ 322i Hemorrhoids................................ 485 - of the inner ear....................... 258 Hepatitis, acute............................ 528 - of the outer ear......................... 261, capsular.............................. 531 - of the heart II....................... 347 -, chronic................................. 537 of the hip-joint II.................. 427 Herniaof the diaphragm II............ 324 of the iris.............................. 256 Herpes II..................................... 486 of the joints II....................... 426 circinnatus II........................ 490 of the kidneys.................... 586, facial, II............................ 487 of the knee-joint II................. 430 Iris II.................................. 490 of the larynx................... 107, preputial, II....................... 487 of the liver, acute.................. 529 Zoster II............................... 488 - chronic.............. 537 Hiccup II.................................... 323 - of the capsules of the liver...... 531 Hip-disease................................... 427 of the lungs II....................... 243 Hip-joint, inflammation of, II......... 427 of lymphatic glands II............ 445 Hives II....................................... 466 - of lymphatic vessels & glands II 442. Honey-comb tetter II..................... 506 of the nose........-.............. 268 Hydrocephalus, acute..................... 99 of the cesophagus.................... 326 (stricte sic dictus)................... 109 - f the ovaries II..................... 45 Hydrotorax II-. 342 - of the pancrea s.578 Hydrothorax I............................ 342 of the pancreas..........'............ 578' of the parotida........................ 3714 Hypermmia of the brain................. 57...14,constitutional, II................... 81 malignant 317 - of the liver.522 - of the periosteum II.410 of the'-liver............................. 522 oftheperiosteum II..............410 - of thelungs.150 -^ ~of the peritoneum............ 503 - of the lungs II........................ 150 of the pleura II.................... 325 Hypertrophy of the heart II............ 372 of the psoas-muscle II............ 421 of the liver........................ 538 of the retu, catarral........ 445 Hypochondria............................... 207 of the sclerotica..................... 256 Hypochondriasis, see Hypochondria 207 of the spinal cord.................. 110i Hypopyon................................. 256 - of the spleen....................... 573; Hysteria.................................... 190 of the stomach................... 361 Ichthyosis II................................. 473 of the tarsus II..................... 433: Icterus........................................... 554 of the testes II....................... 13 Impetigo II................................ 497 of the tongue............. 311 Indigestion, acute, see Catarrh of the - of the tonsils.......................... 284 stomach, acute.......................... 359 of the trachea...................... 107 Inflammation of the arteries II....... 436 - of the urethra II..................... 1 of the bladder...................... 625 of the veins II........................ 436 - of bones II............................. 410 - of the vena porta..................... 532 - of the bowels......................... 435 - of the vertebre, see Spondylitis 120 - of the brain.. 86 of the womb II............. 27 - of the breasts II................. 95 - -puerperal, II....... 34 of the bronchia, acute, II........ 164 Influenza II................................. 182 -...... ~ chronic II......210 Insufficiency of aortic valves II........394 Alphabetical Index. 749 Page Page Insufficiency of mitral valve II........ 388 Lymphadenitis chronica II.............. 445 Intercostal neuralgia II.................. 450 Lymphangioitis II................. 442 Intermittent fever II................... 563 Lymphatics, acute inflammation of, Iris, inflammation of the................ 256 II......................................... 442 Iritis............................................ 256 Lymphatic vessels and glands, chronIrregularities, menstrual.............. 47 ic inflammation of, II....... 445 Irritation, spinal........................ 135 Malaria, see Intermittent fever. Ischias II........................ 447 Mammae, cancer of the, II............... 100 Itch II......................................... 507, inflammation of the, II.......... 95 Jacob's ulcer II............. 483 Mania-a-potu, see Delirium tremens. Jaundice........................ 554 Marasmus II................................. 711 Joints, inflammation of, II............. 426 Mastitis II................................. 95 Kidneys, diseases of the................. 580 Mastodynia II..................... 99, hemorrhage in the................. 609 Measles II.................................. 513 -,inflammation of the............... 586 Megrim....................... 221 Knee-joint, inflammation of, II....... 430 M]elituria................................... 617 Laryngitis submucosa II............... 137 Membranous croup II.................... 112 Laryngotracheitis catarrhalis acuta Meningitis................... 86 II............................. 107 cerebro-spinalis...................... 130 chronica II............................ 129 spinalis, see Inflammation of - h na.1 - spi nalis, see Inflammation of crouposa II.......................... 112 the spinal cord............. 110 Laryngotracheal catarrh, chronic, II 129 Meningitis, tubercular, granular, baLarynx, inflammation of the, II..... 107 silar...................................... 99, ulcers of the, II.................... 145 Menorrhagia, see Menses, profuse. Leucorrhea II............................. 20 Menostasia, see Amenorrh a. Lichen II................................... 474 Menses, difficult, II................... 60, 61 Liver, acute yellow atrophy of the... 542 -, profuse, II........................... 57, carcinoma of the................... 569 scanty, II.................... 60, cirrhosis of the.................... 538;, suppression of the, II....... 55 - fatty...................... 540 Menstrual irregularities II.............. 47 -, hyperemia of the.................. 522 Mentagra II................................. 480, hypertrophy of the.............. 538 Metritis II.................................... 27, acute inflammation of the...... 529 puerperalis II................. 34, nutmeg-........................... 38 etrorrhagia I I............. 66,waxy or amyloid.................... 541 Miliaria........................ 469 Lockjaw, see Tetanus................... 178 Morbilli II..................... 513 Lumbago II.............................. 422 M mps....................... 314 Lumbrici, see Worms. Myocarditis II..................... 347 Lungs, congestion of the II............ 150 Myelitis, see Inflammation of the -, dropsy of the, II................... 307 spinal cord............................... 110 -, emphysema of the, II............ 235 Nasitis............................... 268 -, gangrene of the, II............... 303 Nephritis.................................. 586 -, hemorrhage from the, II......... 154 Nerve, neuralgia of ischiadic, II...... 447 -, hypersemia of the, II.............. 150 Nettle-rash II............................... 466 -, inflammation of the, II.......... 243 Neuralgia Fothergilli, see Prosopalco., edema of the, II.................. 307 gia., plethora of the, II.............. 150 intercostalis II....................... 450 Lupus II..................................... 483 - f ischiadic nerve II......... 447 Luxation, spontaneous, see Hip-dis- spinalis............................... 135 ease. - trigemini 22.......7..................... 27 Lymphadenitis acuta II.............. 442 of the vagina II..................... 92 752 Alphabetical Index. Page Page Tongue, inflammation of the......... 311 Varices II....^.............................. 438 Tonsillitis............................ 284 Varicose veins II....................... 438 Tonsils, inflammation of the........... 284 Varicella, see Variola. Toothache........................... 828 Variola II..........3............2............. 32 Tooth-rash II................................ 474 Varioloid, see Variola. tTrismus..................................... 178 Veins, dilatation of, II................... 438 Tuberculosis II........................... 658 inflammation of the, II......... 436 Tumor albus genu II..................... 430 Vena porta, inflammation of the...... 532 of the scalp, bloody................ 218 Venereal disease II.................. 542 Tussis convulsiva II..................... 193 Vertebra, inflammation of the......... 120 Typhlitis...................... 440 Vertigo......................................... 69 Typhoid fever, see Typhus. St. Vitus' dance, see Chorea............ 170 Typhus II............................. 576 Wasting palsy, see Progressive musUlcer, Jacob's.............................. 483 cular paralysis. - of the stomach, chronic........... 68Waterbrash, see Catarrh of the s. Waterbrash, see Catarrh of the stoUlcers of the larynx II................... 145 Tlcers of the larynx II.. 145 mach, acute and chronic... 359 and 379 Ulcus perforans ventriculi seu rotun-, axy tiver a....................... 5 dum...................................3.... 68 Waxy liver...........541 Uremia II............................. 720 Weak stomach, see Dyspepsia. Urethra, blennorrhoea of the, II......... 1 Wetting the bed........................... 631,rcatarrh of the, II.43, catarrh of the, II................... White swelling II........................... 430 ~, inflammation of the, II.......... I Whites, II.................................... 20, inflammation of the, II.......... Whites, 120 Urethritis II................................. 1 Urine, bloody............................. 629 P Wolf II........................................ 483 Urticaria II....................... 466 Womb, cancer of the, II............... 81 Uterine hemorrhage II................... 66, heorrhage from te, II......... 66 Uterus, see Womb., inflammation of the............... 27 Vagina, catarrh of the, 20 neuralgiaI............... 89 -, neuralgia of the, II................ -92, prolapsus of the, II............... 88 Vaginismus II............................... 94 P peral inflmmationof the, Vaginitismus II................................. 34 Vaginitis II................................... 20........................... Vaginodynia II........................ 92 Worms........................... 492 Valve, insufficiency of mitral, II...... 388 Yellow atrophy of the liver, acute.. 542 Valves, insufficiency of aortic, II..... 394 fever II................................ 602 Valvular diseases II............... 388, 399 Zona II......................................... 488 Recent and Standard Books on Homceopathy. iering, C. The Honceopathic Domestic Laurie, J. The Parent's Guide, conPhysician. Bound................... $2 50 tanin the Diseases of Infancy and Hitchman, Win. Consumption, its Na- Childhood and their Homeeop. Treatture, Prevention and Homceopathic ment, ed. Ly W. Williamson. Bd. $1 00 Treatment. Bound.............. 75 Lippe, Ad. Textbook of Materia MedHolcombe, W.. How I became a ica. Bound............................. $6 00 Homoeopath.........-...................- 25 Lutze, A. Manual of IHommeopathic What'is Homoeopathy? 5th Edit. s Homeopathy? 5th Edit. Theory and Practice, by C. J. Hempel. - 151 Bound.................................... $2 50 Cookery, Homoeopathic. Bound, - 501 I Madden, H. R.' Uterine Diseases. Bd. Hughes, Rich. Manual of Therapeu- - 50 tics. Bound........................... $3 00 alan,. Family Gide to the AdManual of Pharmacodynamics. 2d ministratfon of Homoeopathic Reme-.Edit. -Bound.................. 00 -dies. Bound............... 30 Both Volumes.............. $5 00 Hull's Jahr. SymptomatolQgy. 5th Ed. Family Guide, in Spanish..... 75 by C. J. Hempel. Bound......... $7 00 Marcy, E..E. Homoeopathy and AlloRepertory. 5th Edition, by C. J. pathy. Bound.................. - 50 Hempel. Bound............... $4 00 Marcy and T. W. Hunt. The Homre- Life of S. Hahnemann..........- 40 opathic Theory and Practice of MediHumphreys,.Fred. Dysentery and its cine. 2 Vols. Bound...............12 00 Homoeopatlic Treatment. Bd. - 50 I Materia Medica of American Provilgs, The Cholera and its Homoeopathic arranged by W. P. Esrey. 4th Edtit. Treatment. Bound.......... - 40 Bound.......................... $1 00 Jahr, G. H. G. New Manual of the lMIetcalf, J. W. Homoeopathic Pr4vHomceop. Materia Medica, by Hempel. ings. Bound...........................$1 50 5th Edition. Bound............... $4 50 Millard, H. B. The Climate and StatThe Venereal Diseases, by Hempel. istics of Consumption. Bound... 75 Bound.......................... $4 00 - Guide for Emergencies......... - 50 Alphabetical Repertory of the SkinSymptoms and External Altera- Morgan, Wim. The Homeop. Treattions of Substance, ed. by C. I. 1 ment of Indigestion, Constipation and Hem el. Bound........... 1 5 Hmorrhoids, with additions by A. E. Small. Bound......................... 75 The Homceopathic Treatment of the Bou......................... 75 Diseases of Females and Infants, unde, Chas. Hydriatic Treatment of by Hempel. Bound.......... $2 50 Scarlet Fever in its different Forms. Bound..................................... 50 Jahr, G. H. G. & Gruner. New Ho- mceopathic Pharmacopceia and Posol- Mure, B. Materia Medica, or Provings ogy, ed. by C. J. Hempel. Bd.... 3 00 f the Principal Animal and Vegetable Poisons of the Brazilian Empire. Ed. Joslin, B. F. Principles of Homoe-e Brazilian Empire. Ed. opathy. Bound. u n -...... by C. J Hempel. Boundl $1 00 opathy. Bound......................... 75$ Homceopathic Treatment of Chol- Neatby, T. Homceopathy on its Social era.$1 00' Importance............... - 20 era........................... $1 001 Importance......................... 20 Kreussler, E. The.HomoeopathicTreat- Neidhard, C. Crotalus Horridus, its ment of Acute and Chronic Diseases Analogy to Yellow Fever and other Fevers. gd Edit.'Bound.......... $1 00 ed. by C. J. Hempel. Bound..... - 75 o Laurie, J. The Homceopathic Domestic Diphtheria as it prevailed in the Medicine, ed. by A. G. Hull. Bound.d. S. from 1860 to 1866. Bound, $1 75 - 60 Peters, J. C. A Complete Treatise on Appendix to Domestic Medicine by Headaches and Diseases of the Head. A. G. Hull. Bound........ $1 25 Bound....................................$3 00 9 Recent and Standard Books on Homceopathy. Peters, J. C. On Apoplexy, Softening Rush, J. Handbook to Veterinary Hoon the Brain and Paralysis. Bd. $1 00 mceopathy, by J. F. Sheek. Bd. -- 50 Diseases of Married Females. Bd. Schaefer, J. C. New Manual of Homce$1 00 opathic Veterinary Medicine, by J. C. Principal Diseases of the Eyes. Bd. Hempel. Bound.................... $2 00 $1 50 Small, A. E. Diseases of the Nervous Internal Diseases of the Eyes. Ed. System with a Treatise on the Diseases $1 00 of the Skin, by C. E. Toothaker. Bd. Inflammatory and Organic Diseases $1 00 of the Brain. Bound.........$1 00 Manual of Homceopathic Practice. Nervous Derangements and Mental 13th Edition. Bound........ $3 00 Disorders. Bound........... $1 00 The same in German. Bd... $3 00 Bapou, A. On Typhoid Fever and its Pocket Manual of Homoeopathic Homceopathic Treatment. Bd. - 50 Practice. 8th Edition, by J. F. Sheek. Bound...... - 40 Rau, G. L. Organon of the Specific.T Bound................ -40 The same in German. Bound. -40 Healing Art, by C. J. Hempel. Bound. Stapff, E. Additions to the Materia Raue, C. G. Special Pathology and ic Pura, by C. J. Hempel. Bd Diagnostics with Therapeutic Hints. $ Bo un d. ~CO~ Ten Reasons for Preferring HomceBound....................... $5 o Reil. On Aconite, its Therapeutic and opa................................. 5 Ditto in German.............. - 10 Physiological Effects, with its uses, by Tessier, J.P. Homceopathic TreatB. Millard. Bound.............. $- 75 ment of Asiatic Cholera, by C. J. Rokitansky, C. Pathological Anatomy, Hempel. Bound..75 by J. C. Peters. Bound...... - 75 Do. of Pneumonia, by C. J. HemRoth, M. Notes on the Movement Cure, pel. Bound................... 75 with Illustrations................. 10 Vanderburgh. Appeal for HomceRueckert, E. F. Therapeutics of Ho- opathy.................................... 15 mceopathy, by C. J. Hempel. Bound. Williamson, V. Diseases of Females $4 00 and Children and their Homceopathic Ruoff's Repertory of Homceop. Medi- Treatmcnt. 3d Edition. Bound, $1 00 cine, by A. H. Okie and G. Humphrey. Wolf, C. W. Apis Mellifica, or the Bound........ 1 0 I Poison of the Honey-Eee......... - 25 NEW PUBLICATIONS. Bell. Homceopathic Therapeutics of Diarrhcea, etc............ $1 25 Burt. Characteristic Materia Medica..................... 300 Berjeau, Edited by FROST. On Syphilis, Gonorrhcea, etc......... 2 00 Breyfogle. Epitome of Homceopathic Medicines.............. 1 25 Jahr. Clinical Guide. Second American Edition by LILIENTHAL...3 00 Therapeutical Guide; the results of more than forty years practice......... 3 50 Venereal Diseases............ 4 00 Baehr. Therapeutics. 2 Volumes........................ 10 00 3